This is a modern-English version of On the Origin of Species By Means of Natural Selection: Or, the Preservation of Favoured Races in the Struggle for Life, originally written by Darwin, Charles. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

1228 1859, First Edition
1860, Second Edition
1872, Sixth Edition, considered the definitive edition.

On
the Origin of Species

BY MEANS OF NATURAL SELECTION,

OR THE
PRESERVATION OF FAVOURED RACES IN THE STRUGGLE FOR LIFE.

By Charles Darwin, M.A.,

Fellow Of The Royal, Geological, Linnæan, Etc., Societies;
Author Of ‘Journal Of Researches During H.M.S. Beagle’s Voyage Round The World.’


LONDON:
JOHN MURRAY, ALBEMARLE STREET.
1859.


“But with regard to the material world, we can at least go so far as this—we can perceive that events are brought about not by insulated interpositions of Divine power, exerted in each particular case, but by the establishment of general laws.”

“But when it comes to the material world, we can at least say this—we can see that events happen not by isolated acts of Divine power applied in each specific case, but through the establishment of general laws.”

W. WHEWELL: Bridgewater Treatise.

W. WHEWELL: Bridgewater Treatise.

“To conclude, therefore, let no man out of a weak conceit of sobriety, or an ill-applied moderation, think or maintain, that a man can search too far or be too well studied in the book of God’s word, or in the book of God’s works; divinity or philosophy; but rather let men endeavour an endless progress or proficience in both.”

“To wrap up, no one should mistakenly believe that it's a sign of seriousness or moderation to think that someone can study too deeply or learn too much from the Bible or from the works of God, whether that's in theology or philosophy. Instead, we should strive for continuous growth and improvement in both.”

BACON: Advancement of Learning.

BACON: Learning Advancement.

Down, Bromley, Kent,
    October
, 1st, 1859.

Down, Bromley, Kent,
    October 1, 1859.


Contents

INTRODUCTION.
1. VARIATION UNDER DOMESTICATION.
2. VARIATION UNDER NATURE.
3. STRUGGLE FOR EXISTENCE.
4. NATURAL SELECTION.
5. LAWS OF VARIATION.
6. DIFFICULTIES ON THEORY.
7. INSTINCT.
8. HYBRIDISM.
9. ON THE IMPERFECTION OF THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD.
10. ON THE GEOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF ORGANIC BEINGS.
11. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION.
12. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION—continued.
13. MUTUAL AFFINITIES OF ORGANIC BEINGS: MORPHOLOGY:
14. RECAPITULATION AND CONCLUSION.
INDEX

DETEAILED CONTENTS. ON THE ORIGIN OF SPECIES.

CHAPTER I. VARIATION UNDER DOMESTICATION.

Causes of Variability.
Effects of Habit.
Correlation of Growth.
Inheritance.
Character of Domestic Varieties.
Difficulty of distinguishing between Varieties and Species.
Origin of Domestic Varieties from one or more Species.
Domestic Pigeons, their Differences and Origin.
Principle of Selection anciently followed, its Effects.
Methodical and Unconscious Selection.
Unknown Origin of our Domestic Productions.
Circumstances favourable to Man’s power of Selection.

CHAPTER I. VARIATION UNDER DOMESTICATION.

Causes of Variation.
Effects of Habit.
Relationship of Growth.
Inheritance.
Characteristics of Domestic Varieties.
Difficulty in Distinguishing between Varieties and Species.
Origin of Domestic Varieties from One or More Species.
Domestic Pigeons: Their Differences and Origin.
Principles of Selection Used in the Past and Their Effects.
Methodical and Unconscious Selection.
Unknown Origins of Our Domestic Products.
Conditions Favorable to Human Selection.

CHAPTER 2. VARIATION UNDER NATURE.

Variability.
Individual Differences.
Doubtful species.
Wide ranging, much diffused, and common species vary most.
Species of the larger genera in any country vary more than the species of the smaller genera.
Many of the species of the larger genera resemble varieties in being very closely, but unequally, related to each other, and in having restricted ranges.

CHAPTER 2. VARIATION UNDER NATURE.

Variation.
Individual Differences.
Questionable species.
Widespread, well-distributed, and common species show the most variation.
Species from larger genera in any country tend to vary more than those from smaller genera.
Many species from larger genera are similar to varieties in that they are very closely, but unevenly, related to each other and have limited ranges.

CHAPTER 3. STRUGGLE FOR EXISTENCE.

Bears on natural selection.
The term used in a wide sense.
Geometrical powers of increase.
Rapid increase of naturalised animals and plants.
Nature of the checks to increase.
Competition universal.
Effects of climate.
Protection from the number of individuals.
Complex relations of all animals and plants throughout nature.
Struggle for life most severe between individuals and varieties of the same species; often severe between species of the same genus.
The relation of organism to organism the most important of all relations.

CHAPTER 3. STRUGGLE FOR EXISTENCE.

Bears and natural selection.
The term is used in a broad sense.
Geometric potential for growth.
Rapid growth of introduced animals and plants.
Nature of the limitations on growth.
Competition is everywhere.
Impact of climate.
Protection from the population size.
Complex interactions among all animals and plants in nature.
The struggle for existence is most intense between individuals and varieties of the same species; often intense between species of the same genus.
The relationship between organisms is the most important of all relations.

CHAPTER 4. NATURAL SELECTION.

Natural Selection: its power compared with man’s selection, its power on characters of trifling importance, its power at all ages and on both sexes.
Sexual Selection.
On the generality of intercrosses between individuals of the same species.
Circumstances favourable and unfavourable to Natural Selection,
namely, intercrossing, isolation, number of individuals.
Slow action.
Extinction caused by Natural Selection.
Divergence of Character, related to the diversity of inhabitants of any small area, and to naturalisation.
Action of Natural Selection, through Divergence of Character and
Extinction, on the descendants from a common parent.
Explains the Grouping of all organic beings.

CHAPTER 4. NATURAL SELECTION.

Natural Selection: its impact compared to human selection, its influence on traits of little importance, its effect across all ages and on both genders.
Sexual Selection.
On the general occurrence of hybrids between individuals of the same species.
Conditions favorable and unfavorable to Natural Selection,
such as interbreeding, isolation, and population size.
Gradual process.
Extinction resulting from Natural Selection.
Divergence of Traits, connected to the variety of species in any small area, and to naturalization.
The role of Natural Selection, through Divergence of Traits and
Extinction, on the offspring of a common ancestor.
Explains the classification of all living organisms.

CHAPTER 5. LAWS OF VARIATION.

Effects of external conditions.
Use and disuse, combined with natural selection; organs of flight and of vision.
Acclimatisation.
Correlation of growth.
Compensation and economy of growth.
False correlations.
Multiple, rudimentary, and lowly organised structures variable.
Parts developed in an unusual manner are highly variable: specific characters more variable than generic: secondary sexual characters variable.
Species of the same genus vary in an analogous manner.
Reversions to long-lost characters.
Summary.

CHAPTER 5. LAWS OF VARIATION.

Effects of external conditions.
The roles of use and disuse, along with natural selection; flight and vision organs.
Acclimatization.
Growth correlation.
Compensation and growth efficiency.
Misleading correlations.
Variable structures that are multiple, rudimentary, and simply organized.
Parts that develop in unusual ways are highly variable; specific traits are more variable than general traits; secondary sexual traits are variable.
Species within the same genus show similar variations.
Reappearances of long-lost traits.
Summary.

CHAPTER 6. DIFFICULTIES ON THEORY.

Difficulties on the theory of descent with modification.
Transitions.
Absence or rarity of transitional varieties.
Transitions in habits of life.
Diversified habits in the same species.
Species with habits widely different from those of their allies.
Organs of extreme perfection.
Means of transition.
Cases of difficulty.
Natura non facit saltum.
Organs of small importance.
Organs not in all cases absolutely perfect.
The law of Unity of Type and of the Conditions of Existence embraced by the theory of Natural Selection.

CHAPTER 6. DIFFICULTIES ON THEORY.

Difficulties with the theory of descent through modification.
Transitions.
Lack or rarity of transitional varieties.
Transitions in lifestyle habits.
Diverse habits within the same species.
Species with lifestyles that are very different from those of their relatives.
Organs of extreme perfection.
Means of transition.
Challenges encountered.
Nature does not make leaps.
Organs of minor importance.
Organs that are not always absolutely perfect.
The law of Unity of Type and the Conditions of Existence as understood by the theory of Natural Selection.

CHAPTER 7. INSTINCT.

Instincts comparable with habits, but different in their origin.
Instincts graduated.
Aphides and ants.
Instincts variable.
Domestic instincts, their origin.
Natural instincts of the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees.
Slave-making ants.
Hive-bee, its cell-making instinct.
Difficulties on the theory of the Natural Selection of instincts.
Neuter or sterile insects.

Summary.

CHAPTER 7. INSTINCT.

Instincts are similar to habits, but they come from different sources.
Instincts can vary in complexity.
Look at aphids and ants.
Instincts can change.
The origins of domestic instincts.
The natural instincts of the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees.
Ants that create slave colonies.
The hive bee and its instinct for building cells.
Challenges to the theory of natural selection concerning instincts.
Neuter or sterile insects.

Summary.

CHAPTER 8. HYBRIDISM.

Distinction between the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids.
Sterility various in degree, not universal, affected by close interbreeding, removed by domestication.
Laws governing the sterility of hybrids.
Sterility not a special endowment, but incidental on other differences.
Causes of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids.
Parallelism between the effects of changed conditions of life and crossing.
Fertility of varieties when crossed and of their mongrel offspring not universal.
Hybrids and mongrels compared independently of their fertility.
Summary.

CHAPTER 8. HYBRIDISM.

The difference between the sterility of first crosses and hybrids.
Sterility varies in degree, isn’t universal, is influenced by close inbreeding, and can be reduced through domestication.
Rules that govern the sterility of hybrids.
Sterility isn’t a unique trait but rather a side effect of other differences.
Reasons for the sterility of first crosses and hybrids.
Similarities between the impacts of changed living conditions and crossing.
The fertility of varieties when crossed and of their mixed offspring isn’t universal.
Hybrids and mixed breeds compared without considering their fertility.
Summary.

CHAPTER 9. ON THE IMPERFECTION OF THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD.

On the absence of intermediate varieties at the present day.
On the nature of extinct intermediate varieties; on their number.
On the vast lapse of time, as inferred from the rate of deposition and of denudation.
On the poorness of our palæontological collections.
On the intermittence of geological formations.
On the absence of intermediate varieties in any one formation.
On the sudden appearance of groups of species.
On their sudden appearance in the lowest known fossiliferous strata.

CHAPTER 9. ON THE IMPERFECTION OF THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD.

About the lack of intermediate varieties today.
About the nature of extinct intermediate varieties; about how many there are.
About the long passage of time, based on the rate of sediment deposition and erosion.
About the inadequacy of our paleontological collections.
About the inconsistency of geological formations.
About the absence of intermediate varieties in any one formation.
About the sudden emergence of groups of species.
About their sudden appearance in the oldest known fossil-rich layers.

CHAPTER 10. ON THE GEOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF ORGANIC BEINGS.

On the slow and successive appearance of new species.
On their different rates of change.
Species once lost do not reappear.
Groups of species follow the same general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single species.
On Extinction.
On simultaneous changes in the forms of life throughout the world.
On the affinities of extinct species to each other and to living species.
On the state of development of ancient forms.
On the succession of the same types within the same areas.
Summary of preceding and present chapters.

CHAPTER 10. ON THE GEOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF ORGANIC BEINGS.

On the gradual and ongoing emergence of new species.
On their varying rates of evolution.
Species that have gone extinct do not come back.
Groups of species follow similar patterns in how they appear and disappear, just like individual species.
On Extinction.
On simultaneous changes in living forms across the globe.
On the relationships between extinct species and both each other and living species.
On the level of development of ancient forms.
On the repetition of the same types within the same regions.
Summary of previous and current chapters.

CHAPTER 11. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION.

Present distribution cannot be accounted for by differences in physical conditions.
Importance of barriers.
Affinity of the productions of the same continent.
Centres of creation.
Means of dispersal, by changes of climate and of the level of the land, and by occasional means.
Dispersal during the Glacial period co-extensive with the world.

CHAPTER 11. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION.

The current distribution can't be explained by differences in physical conditions.
The importance of barriers.
Similarity of species from the same continent.
Centers of origin.
Methods of spreading, including climate changes, shifts in land elevation, and other occasional factors.
Dispersal during the Ice Age was widespread across the globe.

CHAPTER 12. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION—continued.

Distribution of fresh-water productions.
On the inhabitants of oceanic islands.
Absence of Batrachians and of terrestrial Mammals.
On the relation of the inhabitants of islands to those of the nearest mainland.
On colonisation from the nearest source with subsequent modification.
Summary of the last and present chapters.

CHAPTER 12. GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION—continued.

Distribution of freshwater species.
On the people of oceanic islands.
Lack of amphibians and land mammals.
On the connection between island inhabitants and those of the closest mainland.
On colonization from the nearest source with later changes.
Summary of the previous and current chapters.

CHAPTER 13. MUTUAL AFFINITIES OF ORGANIC BEINGS: MORPHOLOGY: EMBRYOLOGY: RUDIMENTARY ORGANS.

CLASSIFICATION, groups subordinate to groups.
Natural system.
Rules and difficulties in classification, explained on the theory of descent with modification.
Classification of varieties.
Descent always used in classification.
Analogical or adaptive characters.
Affinities, general, complex and radiating.
Extinction separates and defines groups.
MORPHOLOGY, between members of the same class, between parts of the same individual.
EMBRYOLOGY, laws of, explained by variations not supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a corresponding age.
RUDIMENTARY ORGANS; their origin explained.
Summary.

CHAPTER 13. MUTUAL AFFINITIES OF ORGANIC BEINGS: MORPHOLOGY: EMBRYOLOGY: RUDIMENTARY ORGANS.

CLASSIFICATION, groups within groups.
Natural system.
Challenges and rules in classification, explained by the theory of evolution through modification.
Classification of varieties.
Descent is always used in classification.
Analogical or adaptive traits.
Affinities: general, complex, and radiating.
Extinction separates and defines groups.
MORPHOLOGY, among members of the same class, and between parts of the same individual.
EMBRYOLOGY, laws of, explained by variations that do not occur at an early age and are inherited at a corresponding age.
RUDIMENTARY ORGANS; their origin explained.
Summary.

CHAPTER 14. RECAPITULATION AND CONCLUSION.

Recapitulation of the difficulties on the theory of Natural Selection.
Recapitulation of the general and special circumstances in its favour.
Causes of the general belief in the immutability of species.
How far the theory of natural selection may be extended.
Effects of its adoption on the study of Natural history.
Concluding remarks.

CHAPTER 14. RECAPITULATION AND CONCLUSION.

Summary of the challenges related to the theory of Natural Selection.
Overview of the general and specific factors supporting it.
Reasons behind the widespread belief in the unchanging nature of species.
How far the theory of natural selection can be applied.
Impact of its acceptance on the study of Natural history.
Final thoughts.

ON THE ORIGIN OF SPECIES.

INTRODUCTION.

When on board H.M.S. ‘Beagle,’ as naturalist, I was much struck with certain facts in the distribution of the inhabitants of South America, and in the geological relations of the present to the past inhabitants of that continent. These facts seemed to me to throw some light on the origin of species—that mystery of mysteries, as it has been called by one of our greatest philosophers. On my return home, it occurred to me, in 1837, that something might perhaps be made out on this question by patiently accumulating and reflecting on all sorts of facts which could possibly have any bearing on it. After five years’ work I allowed myself to speculate on the subject, and drew up some short notes; these I enlarged in 1844 into a sketch of the conclusions, which then seemed to me probable: from that period to the present day I have steadily pursued the same object. I hope that I may be excused for entering on these personal details, as I give them to show that I have not been hasty in coming to a decision.

While on board H.M.S. ‘Beagle’ as a naturalist, I was really struck by certain facts about the distribution of people in South America and the geological connections between current and past inhabitants of the continent. These facts seemed to shed some light on the origin of species—what has been called the mystery of mysteries by one of our greatest philosophers. When I returned home, in 1837, I thought that maybe, by carefully gathering and reflecting on all kinds of facts that could be related to this question, I could gain some insight. After five years of work, I allowed myself to speculate on the topic and created some brief notes; I expanded these in 1844 into a draft of the conclusions that seemed probable to me at the time. Since then, I have consistently pursued the same goal. I hope I can be forgiven for sharing these personal details, as I offer them to show that I haven't rushed to a conclusion.

My work is now nearly finished; but as it will take me two or three more years to complete it, and as my health is far from strong, I have been urged to publish this Abstract. I have more especially been induced to do this, as Mr. Wallace, who is now studying the natural history of the Malay archipelago, has arrived at almost exactly the same general conclusions that I have on the origin of species. Last year he sent to me a memoir on this subject, with a request that I would forward it to Sir Charles Lyell, who sent it to the Linnean Society, and it is published in the third volume of the Journal of that Society. Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Hooker, who both knew of my work—the latter having read my sketch of 1844—honoured me by thinking it advisable to publish, with Mr. Wallace’s excellent memoir, some brief extracts from my manuscripts.

My work is almost done; however, it will take me another two or three years to finish it, and my health isn’t great, so I've been encouraged to publish this Abstract. I’ve been particularly motivated to do this because Mr. Wallace, who is currently studying the natural history of the Malay archipelago, has reached almost the exact same conclusions that I have about the origin of species. Last year, he sent me a paper on this topic, asking me to forward it to Sir Charles Lyell, who then passed it on to the Linnean Society, where it was published in the third volume of their Journal. Sir C. Lyell and Dr. Hooker, both of whom were aware of my work—the latter having read my draft from 1844—honored me by suggesting that we publish some brief excerpts from my manuscripts alongside Mr. Wallace’s outstanding paper.

This Abstract, which I now publish, must necessarily be imperfect. I cannot here give references and authorities for my several statements; and I must trust to the reader reposing some confidence in my accuracy. No doubt errors will have crept in, though I hope I have always been cautious in trusting to good authorities alone. I can here give only the general conclusions at which I have arrived, with a few facts in illustration, but which, I hope, in most cases will suffice. No one can feel more sensible than I do of the necessity of hereafter publishing in detail all the facts, with references, on which my conclusions have been grounded; and I hope in a future work to do this. For I am well aware that scarcely a single point is discussed in this volume on which facts cannot be adduced, often apparently leading to conclusions directly opposite to those at which I have arrived. A fair result can be obtained only by fully stating and balancing the facts and arguments on both sides of each question; and this cannot possibly be here done.

This abstract, which I’m publishing now, is inevitably going to be imperfect. I can't provide references and sources for all my statements here, so I have to rely on the reader placing some trust in my accuracy. I’m sure there are mistakes, but I hope I've been careful to rely only on credible sources. I can only present the general conclusions I've reached, along with a few illustrative facts, which I hope will be sufficient in most cases. No one understands better than I do how important it is to eventually publish all the details, along with references, supporting my conclusions; I hope to do this in a future work. I know that nearly every point discussed in this volume could be backed by facts that often lead to conclusions opposite to mine. A fair conclusion can only be reached by fully presenting and weighing the facts and arguments on both sides of each issue, and that's not something that can be accomplished here.

I much regret that want of space prevents my having the satisfaction of acknowledging the generous assistance which I have received from very many naturalists, some of them personally unknown to me. I cannot, however, let this opportunity pass without expressing my deep obligations to Dr. Hooker, who for the last fifteen years has aided me in every possible way by his large stores of knowledge and his excellent judgment.

I regret that I don't have enough space to properly acknowledge the generous help I've received from many naturalists, some of whom I haven't met in person. However, I can't let this opportunity go by without expressing my deep gratitude to Dr. Hooker, who has supported me in every possible way over the last fifteen years with his vast knowledge and great judgment.

In considering the Origin of Species, it is quite conceivable that a naturalist, reflecting on the mutual affinities of organic beings, on their embryological relations, their geographical distribution, geological succession, and other such facts, might come to the conclusion that each species had not been independently created, but had descended, like varieties, from other species. Nevertheless, such a conclusion, even if well founded, would be unsatisfactory, until it could be shown how the innumerable species inhabiting this world have been modified, so as to acquire that perfection of structure and coadaptation which most justly excites our admiration. Naturalists continually refer to external conditions, such as climate, food, etc., as the only possible cause of variation. In one very limited sense, as we shall hereafter see, this may be true; but it is preposterous to attribute to mere external conditions, the structure, for instance, of the woodpecker, with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue, so admirably adapted to catch insects under the bark of trees. In the case of the misseltoe, which draws its nourishment from certain trees, which has seeds that must be transported by certain birds, and which has flowers with separate sexes absolutely requiring the agency of certain insects to bring pollen from one flower to the other, it is equally preposterous to account for the structure of this parasite, with its relations to several distinct organic beings, by the effects of external conditions, or of habit, or of the volition of the plant itself.

Considering the Origin of Species, it’s entirely possible that a naturalist, thinking about the connections between living organisms, their embryonic links, their geographical spread, geological history, and other similar facts, might conclude that each species wasn’t created independently but has evolved, like varieties, from other species. However, even if such a conclusion were well-supported, it would still be unsatisfactory until we could demonstrate how the countless species that inhabit this world have been altered to achieve that remarkable perfection of structure and adaptation that truly inspires our admiration. Naturalists often point to external factors, like climate and food, as the sole reasons for variation. In a very limited way, as we will see later, this may hold some truth; but it’s absurd to attribute the design, for example, of the woodpecker—with its feet, tail, beak, and tongue so perfectly suited for catching insects beneath tree bark—to mere external factors. Similarly, with the mistletoe, which survives on specific trees, has seeds that need to be carried by certain birds, and has flowers with separate sexes that absolutely require the help of specific insects to transfer pollen from one flower to another, it is equally ridiculous to explain the structure of this parasite and its relationships with multiple distinct organisms solely by external factors, habit, or the will of the plant itself.

The author of the ‘Vestiges of Creation’ would, I presume, say that, after a certain unknown number of generations, some bird had given birth to a woodpecker, and some plant to the misseltoe, and that these had been produced perfect as we now see them; but this assumption seems to me to be no explanation, for it leaves the case of the coadaptations of organic beings to each other and to their physical conditions of life, untouched and unexplained.

The author of ‘Vestiges of Creation’ would likely argue that, after an unspecified number of generations, some bird gave rise to a woodpecker, and some plant produced the mistletoe, both appearing just as we observe them today. However, this assumption doesn't really provide an explanation, as it overlooks the interrelationships of living organisms with each other and their physical living conditions, leaving those aspects unaddressed and unclear.

It is, therefore, of the highest importance to gain a clear insight into the means of modification and coadaptation. At the commencement of my observations it seemed to me probable that a careful study of domesticated animals and of cultivated plants would offer the best chance of making out this obscure problem. Nor have I been disappointed; in this and in all other perplexing cases I have invariably found that our knowledge, imperfect though it be, of variation under domestication, afforded the best and safest clue. I may venture to express my conviction of the high value of such studies, although they have been very commonly neglected by naturalists.

It’s incredibly important to gain a clear understanding of how modifications and coadaptations happen. When I first started my observations, I thought that studying domesticated animals and cultivated plants would provide the best chance of figuring out this complex issue. I haven’t been let down; in this case and all other confusing situations, I’ve consistently found that our imperfect knowledge of variation in domestication gives us the best and most reliable clues. I believe strongly in the high value of these studies, even though they’ve often been overlooked by naturalists.

From these considerations, I shall devote the first chapter of this Abstract to Variation under Domestication. We shall thus see that a large amount of hereditary modification is at least possible, and, what is equally or more important, we shall see how great is the power of man in accumulating by his Selection successive slight variations. I will then pass on to the variability of species in a state of nature; but I shall, unfortunately, be compelled to treat this subject far too briefly, as it can be treated properly only by giving long catalogues of facts. We shall, however, be enabled to discuss what circumstances are most favourable to variation. In the next chapter the Struggle for Existence amongst all organic beings throughout the world, which inevitably follows from their high geometrical powers of increase, will be treated of. This is the doctrine of Malthus, applied to the whole animal and vegetable kingdoms. As many more individuals of each species are born than can possibly survive; and as, consequently, there is a frequently recurring struggle for existence, it follows that any being, if it vary however slightly in any manner profitable to itself, under the complex and sometimes varying conditions of life, will have a better chance of surviving, and thus be naturally selected. From the strong principle of inheritance, any selected variety will tend to propagate its new and modified form.

From these considerations, I will dedicate the first chapter of this Abstract to Variation under Domestication. This will show us that a significant amount of hereditary change is at least possible, and, even more importantly, we will see how powerful humans are in accumulating small variations through their selection. I will then move on to the variability of species in their natural state; however, I will unfortunately have to cover this topic too briefly, as it can only be properly addressed with extensive lists of facts. Nonetheless, we will be able to discuss what conditions are most favorable for variation. In the next chapter, I will address the Struggle for Existence among all living beings across the globe, which inevitably arises from their rapid potential for growth. This is Malthus's doctrine applied to the entire animal and plant kingdoms. Since many more individuals of each species are born than can survive, and therefore, there is often a recurring struggle for existence, any being that varies even slightly in a way that benefits it will have a better chance of surviving and thus be naturally selected. Due to the strong principle of inheritance, any selected variety will tend to pass on its new and modified traits.

This fundamental subject of Natural Selection will be treated at some length in the fourth chapter; and we shall then see how Natural Selection almost inevitably causes much Extinction of the less improved forms of life and induces what I have called Divergence of Character. In the next chapter I shall discuss the complex and little known laws of variation and of correlation of growth. In the four succeeding chapters, the most apparent and gravest difficulties on the theory will be given: namely, first, the difficulties of transitions, or in understanding how a simple being or a simple organ can be changed and perfected into a highly developed being or elaborately constructed organ; secondly the subject of Instinct, or the mental powers of animals, thirdly, Hybridism, or the infertility of species and the fertility of varieties when intercrossed; and fourthly, the imperfection of the Geological Record. In the next chapter I shall consider the geological succession of organic beings throughout time; in the eleventh and twelfth, their geographical distribution throughout space; in the thirteenth, their classification or mutual affinities, both when mature and in an embryonic condition. In the last chapter I shall give a brief recapitulation of the whole work, and a few concluding remarks.

This essential topic of Natural Selection will be explored in detail in the fourth chapter; and we will see how Natural Selection almost inevitably leads to a lot of Extinction of the less advanced forms of life and encourages what I've referred to as Divergence of Character. In the next chapter, I will talk about the complex and not very well understood laws of variation and the correlation of growth. In the next four chapters, I will address the most significant and serious challenges to the theory: first, the challenges of transitions, or how a simple organism or organ can be transformed and improved into a highly developed organism or complex organ; second, the topic of Instinct, or the mental abilities of animals; third, Hybridism, or the infertility of species and the fertility of varieties when they interbreed; and fourth, the gaps in the Geological Record. In the next chapter, I will examine the geological succession of living things over time; in the eleventh and twelfth chapters, their geographical distribution across space; and in the thirteenth, their classification or relationships, both when fully developed and in an embryonic state. In the final chapter, I will provide a brief summary of the entire work and some concluding thoughts.

No one ought to feel surprise at much remaining as yet unexplained in regard to the origin of species and varieties, if he makes due allowance for our profound ignorance in regard to the mutual relations of all the beings which live around us. Who can explain why one species ranges widely and is very numerous, and why another allied species has a narrow range and is rare? Yet these relations are of the highest importance, for they determine the present welfare, and, as I believe, the future success and modification of every inhabitant of this world. Still less do we know of the mutual relations of the innumerable inhabitants of the world during the many past geological epochs in its history. Although much remains obscure, and will long remain obscure, I can entertain no doubt, after the most deliberate study and dispassionate judgment of which I am capable, that the view which most naturalists entertain, and which I formerly entertained—namely, that each species has been independently created—is erroneous. I am fully convinced that species are not immutable; but that those belonging to what are called the same genera are lineal descendants of some other and generally extinct species, in the same manner as the acknowledged varieties of any one species are the descendants of that species. Furthermore, I am convinced that Natural Selection has been the main but not exclusive means of modification.

No one should be surprised that many aspects about the origin of species and varieties remain unexplained, considering our significant ignorance about the relationships among all the living beings around us. Who can explain why one species is widespread and abundant, while another related species is limited in range and rare? Yet, these relationships are extremely important because they affect the current well-being and, as I believe, the future success and changes of every inhabitant of this planet. We know even less about the relationships among the countless inhabitants of the world throughout the many geological eras in its history. Although much is still unclear and will likely remain so for a long time, I have no doubt—after considerable study and a fair assessment—that the view held by most naturalists, and which I once shared—that each species was created independently—is incorrect. I am completely convinced that species are not fixed; rather, those within what we call the same genera are direct descendants of other generally extinct species, just like the recognized varieties of any given species are descendants of that species. Moreover, I believe that Natural Selection has been the primary, though not the only, means of modification.

CHAPTER I.
VARIATION UNDER DOMESTICATION.

Causes of Variability. Effects of Habit. Correlation of Growth. Inheritance. Character of Domestic Varieties. Difficulty of distinguishing between Varieties and Species. Origin of Domestic Varieties from one or more Species. Domestic Pigeons, their Differences and Origin. Principle of Selection anciently followed, its Effects. Methodical and Unconscious Selection. Unknown Origin of our Domestic Productions. Circumstances favourable to Man’s power of Selection.

Causes of Variability. Effects of Habit. Correlation of Growth. Inheritance. Traits of Domestic Varieties. Challenges in differentiating between Varieties and Species. Origin of Domestic Varieties from one or more Species. Domestic Pigeons, their Differences and Origin. The Principle of Selection used since ancient times, and its Effects. Methodical and Unconscious Selection. Unknown Origin of our Domestic Products. Conditions that favor Man's ability to Select.

When we look to the individuals of the same variety or sub-variety of our older cultivated plants and animals, one of the first points which strikes us, is, that they generally differ much more from each other, than do the individuals of any one species or variety in a state of nature. When we reflect on the vast diversity of the plants and animals which have been cultivated, and which have varied during all ages under the most different climates and treatment, I think we are driven to conclude that this greater variability is simply due to our domestic productions having been raised under conditions of life not so uniform as, and somewhat different from, those to which the parent-species have been exposed under nature. There is, also, I think, some probability in the view propounded by Andrew Knight, that this variability may be partly connected with excess of food. It seems pretty clear that organic beings must be exposed during several generations to the new conditions of life to cause any appreciable amount of variation; and that when the organisation has once begun to vary, it generally continues to vary for many generations. No case is on record of a variable being ceasing to be variable under cultivation. Our oldest cultivated plants, such as wheat, still often yield new varieties: our oldest domesticated animals are still capable of rapid improvement or modification.

When we look at individuals of the same type or sub-type of our older cultivated plants and animals, one of the first things that stands out is that they usually differ from each other much more than individuals of any one species or variety in the wild. When we consider the huge variety of plants and animals that have been cultivated and have changed over time under various climates and treatments, I think we have to conclude that this greater variability is simply because our domestic productions have been raised under life conditions that are less uniform and a bit different from those faced by the parent species in nature. I also think there’s some likelihood in Andrew Knight's idea that this variability may be partly linked to an excess of food. It seems pretty clear that living beings need to be exposed to new life conditions for several generations to cause a noticeable amount of variation; and once the organization starts to change, it usually keeps changing for many generations. There’s no record of a variable being stopping its variability under cultivation. Our oldest cultivated plants, like wheat, still often produce new varieties: our oldest domesticated animals can still improve or change rapidly.

It has been disputed at what period of life the causes of variability, whatever they may be, generally act; whether during the early or late period of development of the embryo, or at the instant of conception. Geoffroy St. Hilaire’s experiments show that unnatural treatment of the embryo causes monstrosities; and monstrosities cannot be separated by any clear line of distinction from mere variations. But I am strongly inclined to suspect that the most frequent cause of variability may be attributed to the male and female reproductive elements having been affected prior to the act of conception. Several reasons make me believe in this; but the chief one is the remarkable effect which confinement or cultivation has on the functions of the reproductive system; this system appearing to be far more susceptible than any other part of the organisation, to the action of any change in the conditions of life. Nothing is more easy than to tame an animal, and few things more difficult than to get it to breed freely under confinement, even in the many cases when the male and female unite. How many animals there are which will not breed, though living long under not very close confinement in their native country! This is generally attributed to vitiated instincts; but how many cultivated plants display the utmost vigour, and yet rarely or never seed! In some few such cases it has been found out that very trifling changes, such as a little more or less water at some particular period of growth, will determine whether or not the plant sets a seed. I cannot here enter on the copious details which I have collected on this curious subject; but to show how singular the laws are which determine the reproduction of animals under confinement, I may just mention that carnivorous animals, even from the tropics, breed in this country pretty freely under confinement, with the exception of the plantigrades or bear family; whereas, carnivorous birds, with the rarest exceptions, hardly ever lay fertile eggs. Many exotic plants have pollen utterly worthless, in the same exact condition as in the most sterile hybrids. When, on the one hand, we see domesticated animals and plants, though often weak and sickly, yet breeding quite freely under confinement; and when, on the other hand, we see individuals, though taken young from a state of nature, perfectly tamed, long-lived, and healthy (of which I could give numerous instances), yet having their reproductive system so seriously affected by unperceived causes as to fail in acting, we need not be surprised at this system, when it does act under confinement, acting not quite regularly, and producing offspring not perfectly like their parents or variable.

There has been debate about when the causes of variability generally occur in life, whether it's during early or late development of the embryo, or at the moment of conception. Geoffroy St. Hilaire’s experiments show that unnatural treatment of the embryo leads to deformities, and deformities can't be clearly distinguished from ordinary variations. However, I strongly suspect that the most common cause of variability is linked to the male and female reproductive elements being affected before conception. I have several reasons to believe this, but the main one is the significant impact that confinement or cultivation has on the reproductive system, which seems to be much more sensitive than any other part of the body to changes in living conditions. It's easy to tame an animal, but challenging to get it to reproduce freely in captivity, even when the male and female come together. Many animals won’t breed, even after living for a long time under mild confinement in their native habitat! This is usually blamed on distorted instincts, but many cultivated plants are vigorous yet rarely or never produce seeds! In some cases, researchers have found that very slight changes, like a little more or less water at a particular growth stage, can determine whether a plant produces seeds. I can’t delve into the abundant details I’ve gathered on this interesting subject, but to illustrate how strange the laws governing reproduction of animals in captivity can be, I’ll mention that carnivorous animals, even from tropical regions, tend to breed quite freely in this country while confined, with the exception of bears; whereas, carnivorous birds, with very few exceptions, hardly ever lay fertile eggs. Many exotic plants have pollen that is completely useless, similar to that of the most sterile hybrids. When we see domesticated animals and plants, often weak and unhealthy, breeding without issue in captivity, and at the same time observe individuals that were taken young from the wild, perfectly tamed, long-lived, and healthy (of which I have many examples), yet have their reproductive system so negatively impacted by unnoticed factors that it fails to function, it’s not surprising that when this system does function in captivity, it doesn’t do so regularly and produces offspring that are not perfectly like their parents or that show variability.

Sterility has been said to be the bane of horticulture; but on this view we owe variability to the same cause which produces sterility; and variability is the source of all the choicest productions of the garden. I may add, that as some organisms will breed most freely under the most unnatural conditions (for instance, the rabbit and ferret kept in hutches), showing that their reproductive system has not been thus affected; so will some animals and plants withstand domestication or cultivation, and vary very slightly—perhaps hardly more than in a state of nature.

Sterility is often seen as a major problem in gardening; however, if we consider that variability comes from the same factor that causes sterility, we can understand that variability is essential for all the best products in the garden. Additionally, just as some animals, like rabbits and ferrets kept in cages, can breed easily even in unnatural settings—indicating that their reproductive systems remain largely unaffected—some animals and plants can also endure domestication or cultivation with only minor changes, perhaps no more than what occurs in their natural environments.

A long list could easily be given of “sporting plants;” by this term gardeners mean a single bud or offset, which suddenly assumes a new and sometimes very different character from that of the rest of the plant. Such buds can be propagated by grafting, etc., and sometimes by seed. These “sports” are extremely rare under nature, but far from rare under cultivation; and in this case we see that the treatment of the parent has affected a bud or offset, and not the ovules or pollen. But it is the opinion of most physiologists that there is no essential difference between a bud and an ovule in their earliest stages of formation; so that, in fact, “sports” support my view, that variability may be largely attributed to the ovules or pollen, or to both, having been affected by the treatment of the parent prior to the act of conception. These cases anyhow show that variation is not necessarily connected, as some authors have supposed, with the act of generation.

A long list could easily be made of “sporting plants”; gardeners use this term to refer to a single bud or offset that unexpectedly takes on a new and sometimes very different character than the rest of the plant. Such buds can be propagated through grafting and sometimes by seed. These “sports” are extremely rare in nature but quite common in cultivation; here we can see that the treatment of the parent has influenced a bud or offset, not the ovules or pollen. However, most physiologists believe there is no fundamental difference between a bud and an ovule in their earliest stages of formation; so, in fact, “sports” support my view that variability may largely stem from the ovules or pollen, or both, being affected by the treatment of the parent before conception occurs. These instances demonstrate that variation is not necessarily linked, as some authors have suggested, to the act of generation.

Seedlings from the same fruit, and the young of the same litter, sometimes differ considerably from each other, though both the young and the parents, as Müller has remarked, have apparently been exposed to exactly the same conditions of life; and this shows how unimportant the direct effects of the conditions of life are in comparison with the laws of reproduction, and of growth, and of inheritance; for had the action of the conditions been direct, if any of the young had varied, all would probably have varied in the same manner. To judge how much, in the case of any variation, we should attribute to the direct action of heat, moisture, light, food, etc., is most difficult: my impression is, that with animals such agencies have produced very little direct effect, though apparently more in the case of plants. Under this point of view, Mr. Buckman’s recent experiments on plants seem extremely valuable. When all or nearly all the individuals exposed to certain conditions are affected in the same way, the change at first appears to be directly due to such conditions; but in some cases it can be shown that quite opposite conditions produce similar changes of structure. Nevertheless some slight amount of change may, I think, be attributed to the direct action of the conditions of life—as, in some cases, increased size from amount of food, colour from particular kinds of food and from light, and perhaps the thickness of fur from climate.

Seedlings from the same fruit and young animals from the same litter can vary quite a bit from each other, even though both the young and their parents, as Müller pointed out, have seemingly been in the same living conditions. This highlights how minor the direct effects of living conditions are compared to the laws of reproduction, growth, and inheritance. If the living conditions had a direct impact, then if any of the young showed variation, most likely all would show variation in the same way. It's tough to determine how much of any variation can be traced to direct influences like heat, moisture, light, food, and so on. In my view, these influences have produced fairly little direct effect in animals, although they seem to have a greater impact on plants. From this perspective, Mr. Buckman’s recent experiments on plants are particularly valuable. When nearly all individuals exposed to certain conditions change in the same way, at first it seems that those changes are directly due to those conditions. However, in some cases, it's been shown that completely different conditions can lead to similar structural changes. Still, I believe a small amount of change can be attributed to the direct effects of living conditions—like increased size from more food, color variations from specific types of food and light, and possibly fur thickness due to climate.

Habit also has a decided influence, as in the period of flowering with plants when transported from one climate to another. In animals it has a more marked effect; for instance, I find in the domestic duck that the bones of the wing weigh less and the bones of the leg more, in proportion to the whole skeleton, than do the same bones in the wild-duck; and I presume that this change may be safely attributed to the domestic duck flying much less, and walking more, than its wild parent. The great and inherited development of the udders in cows and goats in countries where they are habitually milked, in comparison with the state of these organs in other countries, is another instance of the effect of use. Not a single domestic animal can be named which has not in some country drooping ears; and the view suggested by some authors, that the drooping is due to the disuse of the muscles of the ear, from the animals not being much alarmed by danger, seems probable.

Habit also has a significant impact, similar to how plants flower when moved from one climate to another. In animals, the effect is even more pronounced; for instance, I've noticed in domestic ducks that the bones in their wings are lighter and those in their legs are heavier in relation to the entire skeleton, compared to wild ducks. I think this change can be attributed to domestic ducks flying much less and walking more than their wild counterparts. Another example of how use affects development is the significant growth of udders in cows and goats in regions where they are regularly milked, compared to those in other areas. Not a single domestic animal can be identified that doesn’t have drooping ears in some part of the world; the idea suggested by some authors that drooping is due to the muscles of the ear being underused because these animals are generally not very alarmed by threats seems likely.

There are many laws regulating variation, some few of which can be dimly seen, and will be hereafter briefly mentioned. I will here only allude to what may be called correlation of growth. Any change in the embryo or larva will almost certainly entail changes in the mature animal. In monstrosities, the correlations between quite distinct parts are very curious; and many instances are given in Isidore Geoffroy St. Hilaire’s great work on this subject. Breeders believe that long limbs are almost always accompanied by an elongated head. Some instances of correlation are quite whimsical; thus cats with blue eyes are invariably deaf; colour and constitutional peculiarities go together, of which many remarkable cases could be given amongst animals and plants. From the facts collected by Heusinger, it appears that white sheep and pigs are differently affected from coloured individuals by certain vegetable poisons. Hairless dogs have imperfect teeth; long-haired and coarse-haired animals are apt to have, as is asserted, long or many horns; pigeons with feathered feet have skin between their outer toes; pigeons with short beaks have small feet, and those with long beaks large feet. Hence, if man goes on selecting, and thus augmenting, any peculiarity, he will almost certainly unconsciously modify other parts of the structure, owing to the mysterious laws of the correlation of growth.

There are many laws governing variation, some of which are only vaguely understood and will be briefly mentioned later. Here, I will just refer to what might be called the correlation of growth. Any change in the embryo or larva is likely to lead to changes in the adult animal. In cases of abnormalities, the connections between quite different parts can be very interesting; many examples are provided in Isidore Geoffroy St. Hilaire’s extensive work on this topic. Breeders believe that having long limbs usually goes hand-in-hand with having an elongated head. Some examples of correlation are quite peculiar; for instance, cats with blue eyes are always deaf. Color and unique traits often occur together, with many remarkable instances found among animals and plants. According to information gathered by Heusinger, white sheep and pigs react differently to certain plant toxins compared to colored individuals. Hairless dogs tend to have imperfect teeth; long-haired and coarse-haired animals are said to have long or multiple horns; pigeons with feathered feet have skin webbing between their outer toes; pigeons with short beaks tend to have small feet, while those with long beaks have larger feet. Therefore, if humans continue to select and enhance any particular trait, they will almost certainly unintentionally modify other structural elements due to the mysterious laws of growth correlation.

The result of the various, quite unknown, or dimly seen laws of variation is infinitely complex and diversified. It is well worth while carefully to study the several treatises published on some of our old cultivated plants, as on the hyacinth, potato, even the dahlia, etc.; and it is really surprising to note the endless points in structure and constitution in which the varieties and sub-varieties differ slightly from each other. The whole organisation seems to have become plastic, and tends to depart in some small degree from that of the parental type.

The outcome of the various, mostly unknown, or vaguely understood laws of variation is incredibly complex and varied. It’s definitely worthwhile to closely examine the different reports published on some of our older cultivated plants, like the hyacinth, potato, and even the dahlia; and it’s truly surprising to see the countless ways in which the varieties and sub-varieties differ slightly from each other in terms of structure and makeup. The entire organization appears to have become flexible and tends to deviate slightly from the original parent type.

Any variation which is not inherited is unimportant for us. But the number and diversity of inheritable deviations of structure, both those of slight and those of considerable physiological importance, is endless. Dr. Prosper Lucas’s treatise, in two large volumes, is the fullest and the best on this subject. No breeder doubts how strong is the tendency to inheritance: like produces like is his fundamental belief: doubts have been thrown on this principle by theoretical writers alone. When a deviation appears not unfrequently, and we see it in the father and child, we cannot tell whether it may not be due to the same original cause acting on both; but when amongst individuals, apparently exposed to the same conditions, any very rare deviation, due to some extraordinary combination of circumstances, appears in the parent—say, once amongst several million individuals—and it reappears in the child, the mere doctrine of chances almost compels us to attribute its reappearance to inheritance. Every one must have heard of cases of albinism, prickly skin, hairy bodies, etc., appearing in several members of the same family. If strange and rare deviations of structure are truly inherited, less strange and commoner deviations may be freely admitted to be inheritable. Perhaps the correct way of viewing the whole subject, would be, to look at the inheritance of every character whatever as the rule, and non-inheritance as the anomaly.

Any variation that isn't inherited doesn't matter to us. However, the number and variety of inheritable structural changes, whether minor or significant in physiological terms, is endless. Dr. Prosper Lucas’s two-volume work is the most comprehensive and is the best on this topic. No breeder questions the strong tendency toward inheritance: "like produces like" is a core belief. Only theoretical writers have raised doubts about this principle. When a deviation occurs frequently, and we see it in both the parent and child, we can’t determine if it’s due to the same original cause affecting both. But when a very rare deviation, resulting from an extraordinary combination of circumstances, appears in the parent—say, one instance among several million individuals—and it shows up again in the child, the odds almost force us to conclude that it's due to inheritance. Everyone has heard of cases like albinism, prickly skin, or hairy bodies appearing in multiple family members. If odd and rare structural deviations are truly inherited, then less strange and more common deviations can also be seen as inheritable. A better way to view the entire topic would be to consider the inheritance of every trait as the norm, with non-inheritance being the exception.

The laws governing inheritance are quite unknown; no one can say why the same peculiarity in different individuals of the same species, and in individuals of different species, is sometimes inherited and sometimes not so; why the child often reverts in certain characters to its grandfather or grandmother or other much more remote ancestor; why a peculiarity is often transmitted from one sex to both sexes or to one sex alone, more commonly but not exclusively to the like sex. It is a fact of some little importance to us, that peculiarities appearing in the males of our domestic breeds are often transmitted either exclusively, or in a much greater degree, to males alone. A much more important rule, which I think may be trusted, is that, at whatever period of life a peculiarity first appears, it tends to appear in the offspring at a corresponding age, though sometimes earlier. In many cases this could not be otherwise: thus the inherited peculiarities in the horns of cattle could appear only in the offspring when nearly mature; peculiarities in the silkworm are known to appear at the corresponding caterpillar or cocoon stage. But hereditary diseases and some other facts make me believe that the rule has a wider extension, and that when there is no apparent reason why a peculiarity should appear at any particular age, yet that it does tend to appear in the offspring at the same period at which it first appeared in the parent. I believe this rule to be of the highest importance in explaining the laws of embryology. These remarks are of course confined to the first appearance of the peculiarity, and not to its primary cause, which may have acted on the ovules or male element; in nearly the same manner as in the crossed offspring from a short-horned cow by a long-horned bull, the greater length of horn, though appearing late in life, is clearly due to the male element.

The laws around inheritance are largely unknown; nobody can explain why the same trait is sometimes passed down in different individuals of the same species or between different species, or why a child often shows characteristics of a grandparent or even more distant ancestor. It's also unclear why a trait is sometimes inherited by one sex or both, though it tends to be passed down more frequently to the same sex. It’s somewhat notable that traits that show up in male domestic animals are frequently inherited either exclusively or predominantly by males. A more important principle, which I believe can be counted on, is that whenever a trait first appears in a parent, it usually shows up in their offspring at a similar age, though sometimes a bit earlier. In many instances, this seems unavoidable. For example, inherited traits in the horns of cattle usually show up in the offspring when they are almost mature; traits in silkworms are known to appear at the appropriate caterpillar or cocoon stage. However, hereditary diseases and other evidence lead me to think this principle applies more broadly, suggesting that even when there’s no clear reason for a trait to emerge at a specific age, it still tends to manifest in the offspring at the same stage it first appeared in the parent. I believe this principle is crucial for understanding the laws of embryology. These comments relate specifically to the first appearance of the trait, and not to its root cause, which may have acted on the eggs or sperm; similarly, in the offspring of a short-horned cow and a long-horned bull, the longer horns, despite appearing later in life, are clearly a result of the male sperm.

Having alluded to the subject of reversion, I may here refer to a statement often made by naturalists—namely, that our domestic varieties, when run wild, gradually but certainly revert in character to their aboriginal stocks. Hence it has been argued that no deductions can be drawn from domestic races to species in a state of nature. I have in vain endeavoured to discover on what decisive facts the above statement has so often and so boldly been made. There would be great difficulty in proving its truth: we may safely conclude that very many of the most strongly-marked domestic varieties could not possibly live in a wild state. In many cases we do not know what the aboriginal stock was, and so could not tell whether or not nearly perfect reversion had ensued. It would be quite necessary, in order to prevent the effects of intercrossing, that only a single variety should be turned loose in its new home. Nevertheless, as our varieties certainly do occasionally revert in some of their characters to ancestral forms, it seems to me not improbable, that if we could succeed in naturalising, or were to cultivate, during many generations, the several races, for instance, of the cabbage, in very poor soil (in which case, however, some effect would have to be attributed to the direct action of the poor soil), that they would to a large extent, or even wholly, revert to the wild aboriginal stock. Whether or not the experiment would succeed, is not of great importance for our line of argument; for by the experiment itself the conditions of life are changed. If it could be shown that our domestic varieties manifested a strong tendency to reversion,—that is, to lose their acquired characters, whilst kept under unchanged conditions, and whilst kept in a considerable body, so that free intercrossing might check, by blending together, any slight deviations of structure, in such case, I grant that we could deduce nothing from domestic varieties in regard to species. But there is not a shadow of evidence in favour of this view: to assert that we could not breed our cart and race-horses, long and short-horned cattle, and poultry of various breeds, and esculent vegetables, for an almost infinite number of generations, would be opposed to all experience. I may add, that when under nature the conditions of life do change, variations and reversions of character probably do occur; but natural selection, as will hereafter be explained, will determine how far the new characters thus arising shall be preserved.

Having mentioned the topic of reversion, I can refer here to a common claim made by naturalists—that our domestic varieties, when they go wild, gradually but surely revert to their original forms. Because of this, it's been argued that we can’t make any conclusions about domestic breeds in relation to species in their natural environment. I’ve tried unsuccessfully to find out what solid facts support this bold statement. Proving its truth would be quite difficult: we can safely say that many of the most distinct domestic varieties could not survive in the wild. In many instances, we don’t know what the original stock was, so we can't determine if a complete reversion has taken place. To avoid the effects of intercrossing, it would be necessary to release only a single variety into its new environment. Still, since our varieties do occasionally revert to some of their ancestral traits, I think it’s not unlikely that if we could naturalize, or cultivate for many generations, various races of cabbage in very poor soil (where some effects would need to be linked to the direct influence of the poor soil), they would largely, or even completely, revert to the original wild stock. Whether or not this experiment would succeed isn’t crucial for our argument since the experiment itself changes the living conditions. If we could show that our domestic varieties have a strong tendency to revert—that is, to lose their acquired traits while kept under stable conditions and in sufficient numbers, so that free intercrossing could blend any minor structural deviations—then I agree we could draw no conclusions from domestic varieties about species. However, there is no evidence supporting this idea: claiming that we could not breed our cart and racehorses, long and short-horned cattle, various poultry breeds, and edible vegetables for nearly infinite generations contradicts all experience. I should add that when conditions in nature do change, variations and reversion of traits likely occur. But as will be explained later, natural selection will determine how far these new traits will be preserved.

When we look to the hereditary varieties or races of our domestic animals and plants, and compare them with species closely allied together, we generally perceive in each domestic race, as already remarked, less uniformity of character than in true species. Domestic races of the same species, also, often have a somewhat monstrous character; by which I mean, that, although differing from each other, and from the other species of the same genus, in several trifling respects, they often differ in an extreme degree in some one part, both when compared one with another, and more especially when compared with all the species in nature to which they are nearest allied. With these exceptions (and with that of the perfect fertility of varieties when crossed,—a subject hereafter to be discussed), domestic races of the same species differ from each other in the same manner as, only in most cases in a lesser degree than, do closely-allied species of the same genus in a state of nature. I think this must be admitted, when we find that there are hardly any domestic races, either amongst animals or plants, which have not been ranked by some competent judges as mere varieties, and by other competent judges as the descendants of aboriginally distinct species. If any marked distinction existed between domestic races and species, this source of doubt could not so perpetually recur. It has often been stated that domestic races do not differ from each other in characters of generic value. I think it could be shown that this statement is hardly correct; but naturalists differ most widely in determining what characters are of generic value; all such valuations being at present empirical. Moreover, on the view of the origin of genera which I shall presently give, we have no right to expect often to meet with generic differences in our domesticated productions.

When we examine the different breeds or varieties of our domesticated animals and plants and compare them with closely related species, we usually notice that each domestic breed, as previously mentioned, shows less consistency in characteristics than true species. Domestic breeds of the same species often have some unusual traits; by this, I mean that while they may differ from each other and from other species in the same genus in several minor ways, they can significantly differ in one particular aspect, both when compared to one another and especially when compared to all the species in nature that are most closely related to them. With these exceptions (and with regard to the complete fertility of varieties when crossed—a topic we will discuss later), domestic breeds of the same species differ from each other in a similar way as, though typically to a lesser extent than, closely related species of the same genus in their natural state. This has to be acknowledged, considering there are hardly any domestic breeds, whether animals or plants, that haven’t been classified by some knowledgeable authorities as mere varieties and by others as descendants of originally distinct species. If there was a clear distinction between domestic breeds and species, this uncertainty wouldn't keep coming up. It has often been claimed that domestic breeds do not differ from one another in ways that are significant at the generic level. I think it could be demonstrated that this claim is not entirely accurate; however, naturalists vary widely in their opinions on which characteristics hold generic value, and all such assessments are currently based on observation. Furthermore, based on the perspective of the origin of genera that I will present shortly, we shouldn't expect to frequently find generic differences in our domesticated products.

When we attempt to estimate the amount of structural difference between the domestic races of the same species, we are soon involved in doubt, from not knowing whether they have descended from one or several parent-species. This point, if it could be cleared up, would be interesting; if, for instance, it could be shown that the greyhound, bloodhound, terrier, spaniel, and bull-dog, which we all know propagate their kind so truly, were the offspring of any single species, then such facts would have great weight in making us doubt about the immutability of the many very closely allied and natural species—for instance, of the many foxes—inhabiting different quarters of the world. I do not believe, as we shall presently see, that all our dogs have descended from any one wild species; but, in the case of some other domestic races, there is presumptive, or even strong, evidence in favour of this view.

When we try to estimate the structural differences among domestic breeds of the same species, we quickly run into uncertainty because we don’t know if they all descended from one or several parent species. If we could figure this out, it would be intriguing; for example, if it could be shown that the greyhound, bloodhound, terrier, spaniel, and bulldog, which we know reproduce reliably, came from a single species, then that would significantly challenge our beliefs about the fixed nature of the many closely related and natural species—like the various foxes—living in different parts of the world. I don't believe, as we will soon discuss, that all our dogs came from one wild species; however, for some other domestic breeds, there is likely strong evidence supporting this idea.

It has often been assumed that man has chosen for domestication animals and plants having an extraordinary inherent tendency to vary, and likewise to withstand diverse climates. I do not dispute that these capacities have added largely to the value of most of our domesticated productions; but how could a savage possibly know, when he first tamed an animal, whether it would vary in succeeding generations, and whether it would endure other climates? Has the little variability of the ass or guinea-fowl, or the small power of endurance of warmth by the rein-deer, or of cold by the common camel, prevented their domestication? I cannot doubt that if other animals and plants, equal in number to our domesticated productions, and belonging to equally diverse classes and countries, were taken from a state of nature, and could be made to breed for an equal number of generations under domestication, they would vary on an average as largely as the parent species of our existing domesticated productions have varied.

It's often been thought that humans chose to domesticate animals and plants that naturally vary a lot and can adapt to different climates. I agree that these traits have significantly increased the value of most domesticated products; however, how could a primitive person possibly know, when they first tamed an animal, whether it would change over generations or if it could handle different climates? Did the limited variability of donkeys or guinea-fowl, or the reindeer's lesser ability to cope with heat, or the common camel's difficulty with cold prevent them from being domesticated? I firmly believe that if other animals and plants, equal in number to what we domesticate now and from various classes and regions, were taken from the wild and allowed to breed for the same number of generations under domestication, they would indeed vary as much, on average, as the ancestors of our current domesticated species have changed.

In the case of most of our anciently domesticated animals and plants, I do not think it is possible to come to any definite conclusion, whether they have descended from one or several species. The argument mainly relied on by those who believe in the multiple origin of our domestic animals is, that we find in the most ancient records, more especially on the monuments of Egypt, much diversity in the breeds; and that some of the breeds closely resemble, perhaps are identical with, those still existing. Even if this latter fact were found more strictly and generally true than seems to me to be the case, what does it show, but that some of our breeds originated there, four or five thousand years ago? But Mr. Horner’s researches have rendered it in some degree probable that man sufficiently civilized to have manufactured pottery existed in the valley of the Nile thirteen or fourteen thousand years ago; and who will pretend to say how long before these ancient periods, savages, like those of Tierra del Fuego or Australia, who possess a semi-domestic dog, may not have existed in Egypt?

In the case of most of our ancient domesticated animals and plants, I don't think we can reach any definite conclusion about whether they descended from one or several species. Those who support the idea of multiple origins for our domestic animals argue that we see much diversity in breeds in the oldest records, especially on the monuments of Egypt, and that some of these breeds closely resemble, or might even be identical to, those that still exist today. Even if this latter point were found to be more strictly and generally true than I believe it to be, what does it prove, except that some of our breeds originated there four or five thousand years ago? However, Mr. Horner's research has made it somewhat likely that humans capable of making pottery existed in the Nile valley thirteen or fourteen thousand years ago; and who can say how long before these ancient times, savages like those in Tierra del Fuego or Australia, who have a semi-domestic dog, may not have existed in Egypt?

The whole subject must, I think, remain vague; nevertheless, I may, without here entering on any details, state that, from geographical and other considerations, I think it highly probable that our domestic dogs have descended from several wild species. In regard to sheep and goats I can form no opinion. I should think, from facts communicated to me by Mr. Blyth, on the habits, voice, and constitution, etc., of the humped Indian cattle, that these had descended from a different aboriginal stock from our European cattle; and several competent judges believe that these latter have had more than one wild parent. With respect to horses, from reasons which I cannot give here, I am doubtfully inclined to believe, in opposition to several authors, that all the races have descended from one wild stock. Mr. Blyth, whose opinion, from his large and varied stores of knowledge, I should value more than that of almost any one, thinks that all the breeds of poultry have proceeded from the common wild Indian fowl (Gallus bankiva). In regard to ducks and rabbits, the breeds of which differ considerably from each other in structure, I do not doubt that they all have descended from the common wild duck and rabbit.

I think the entire topic has to stay somewhat unclear; however, I can say, without going into specifics, that based on geographical and other factors, it's very likely that our domestic dogs come from several wild species. As for sheep and goats, I can't form a clear opinion. From what Mr. Blyth shared with me about the habits, sounds, and characteristics of the humped Indian cattle, I believe they originated from a different ancestral stock than our European cattle; and several experts think that the latter have more than one wild ancestor. Regarding horses, for reasons I can't explain here, I'm somewhat inclined to believe—contrary to various authors—that all breeds come from one wild stock. Mr. Blyth, whose insights I highly value due to his extensive knowledge, believes that all poultry breeds originated from the common wild Indian fowl (Gallus bankiva). For ducks and rabbits, which vary significantly in structure, I'm confident that they all descended from the common wild duck and rabbit.

The doctrine of the origin of our several domestic races from several aboriginal stocks, has been carried to an absurd extreme by some authors. They believe that every race which breeds true, let the distinctive characters be ever so slight, has had its wild prototype. At this rate there must have existed at least a score of species of wild cattle, as many sheep, and several goats in Europe alone, and several even within Great Britain. One author believes that there formerly existed in Great Britain eleven wild species of sheep peculiar to it! When we bear in mind that Britain has now hardly one peculiar mammal, and France but few distinct from those of Germany and conversely, and so with Hungary, Spain, etc., but that each of these kingdoms possesses several peculiar breeds of cattle, sheep, etc., we must admit that many domestic breeds have originated in Europe; for whence could they have been derived, as these several countries do not possess a number of peculiar species as distinct parent-stocks? So it is in India. Even in the case of the domestic dogs of the whole world, which I fully admit have probably descended from several wild species, I cannot doubt that there has been an immense amount of inherited variation. Who can believe that animals closely resembling the Italian greyhound, the bloodhound, the bull-dog, or Blenheim spaniel, etc.—so unlike all wild Canidæ—ever existed freely in a state of nature? It has often been loosely said that all our races of dogs have been produced by the crossing of a few aboriginal species; but by crossing we can get only forms in some degree intermediate between their parents; and if we account for our several domestic races by this process, we must admit the former existence of the most extreme forms, as the Italian greyhound, bloodhound, bull-dog, etc., in the wild state. Moreover, the possibility of making distinct races by crossing has been greatly exaggerated. There can be no doubt that a race may be modified by occasional crosses, if aided by the careful selection of those individual mongrels, which present any desired character; but that a race could be obtained nearly intermediate between two extremely different races or species, I can hardly believe. Sir J. Sebright expressly experimentised for this object, and failed. The offspring from the first cross between two pure breeds is tolerably and sometimes (as I have found with pigeons) extremely uniform, and everything seems simple enough; but when these mongrels are crossed one with another for several generations, hardly two of them will be alike, and then the extreme difficulty, or rather utter hopelessness, of the task becomes apparent. Certainly, a breed intermediate between two very distinct breeds could not be got without extreme care and long-continued selection; nor can I find a single case on record of a permanent race having been thus formed.

The idea that our various domestic breeds come from different original species has been taken to an absurd level by some writers. They think that every breed that reliably reproduces, no matter how slight the differences, has had its wild counterpart. By this logic, there must have been at least twenty species of wild cattle, just as many sheep, and several types of goats in Europe alone, and even more within Great Britain. One writer claims that there used to be eleven wild sheep species unique to Great Britain! Considering that Britain hardly has any unique mammals now, and France has few that are different from those in Germany, and the same goes for Hungary, Spain, etc., it’s clear that many domestic breeds must have developed in Europe. Where else could they have come from, since these countries don’t have many unique species as distinct parent stocks? The same applies to India. Even regarding domestic dogs worldwide, which I agree likely descended from several wild species, I cannot believe there has not been a vast amount of inherited variation. Who can seriously think that animals resembling the Italian greyhound, bloodhound, bull dog, or Blenheim spaniel—so different from any wild canines—ever existed freely in nature? It’s often said that all our dog breeds came from a few wild species crossing, but crossing can only produce forms that are somewhat intermediate between their parents. If we try to explain our various dog breeds this way, we must accept that the most extreme forms, like the Italian greyhound, bloodhound, bull dog, etc., existed in the wild. Moreover, the ability to create distinct breeds through crossing has been greatly overstated. It's clear that a breed can be modified through occasional crosses, especially with careful selection of the mixed individuals that show the desired traits; however, it’s hard to believe that one could produce a breed nearly intermediate between two very different breeds or species. Sir J. Sebright specifically experimented with this and did not succeed. The offspring from the first cross of two pure breeds are usually quite uniform, and at times (as I’ve observed with pigeons) extremely so, making it seem straightforward. But when these mixed breeds are crossed with each other for several generations, hardly two look alike, making the difficulty—or rather the utter hopelessness—of the task clear. Certainly, one could not create a breed between two very distinct breeds without extreme care and prolonged selection; nor can I find any documented case of a permanent breed being formed this way.

On the Breeds of the Domestic Pigeon.—Believing that it is always best to study some special group, I have, after deliberation, taken up domestic pigeons. I have kept every breed which I could purchase or obtain, and have been most kindly favoured with skins from several quarters of the world, more especially by the Honourable W. Elliot from India, and by the Honourable C. Murray from Persia. Many treatises in different languages have been published on pigeons, and some of them are very important, as being of considerable antiquity. I have associated with several eminent fanciers, and have been permitted to join two of the London Pigeon Clubs. The diversity of the breeds is something astonishing. Compare the English carrier and the short-faced tumbler, and see the wonderful difference in their beaks, entailing corresponding differences in their skulls. The carrier, more especially the male bird, is also remarkable from the wonderful development of the carunculated skin about the head, and this is accompanied by greatly elongated eyelids, very large external orifices to the nostrils, and a wide gape of mouth. The short-faced tumbler has a beak in outline almost like that of a finch; and the common tumbler has the singular and strictly inherited habit of flying at a great height in a compact flock, and tumbling in the air head over heels. The runt is a bird of great size, with long, massive beak and large feet; some of the sub-breeds of runts have very long necks, others very long wings and tails, others singularly short tails. The barb is allied to the carrier, but, instead of a very long beak, has a very short and very broad one. The pouter has a much elongated body, wings, and legs; and its enormously developed crop, which it glories in inflating, may well excite astonishment and even laughter. The turbit has a very short and conical beak, with a line of reversed feathers down the breast; and it has the habit of continually expanding slightly the upper part of the oesophagus. The Jacobin has the feathers so much reversed along the back of the neck that they form a hood, and it has, proportionally to its size, much elongated wing and tail feathers. The trumpeter and laugher, as their names express, utter a very different coo from the other breeds. The fantail has thirty or even forty tail-feathers, instead of twelve or fourteen, the normal number in all members of the great pigeon family; and these feathers are kept expanded, and are carried so erect that in good birds the head and tail touch; the oil-gland is quite aborted. Several other less distinct breeds might have been specified.

On the Breeds of the Domestic Pigeon.—Believing that it's always best to focus on a specific group, I have decided to explore domestic pigeons. I've kept every breed I could buy or acquire, and I've been generously given skins from various parts of the world, especially by the Honorable W. Elliot from India and by the Honorable C. Murray from Persia. Many studies in different languages have been published about pigeons, some of which are quite significant due to their historical value. I've associated with several well-known fanciers and have been allowed to join two of the London Pigeon Clubs. The variety of breeds is truly astonishing. If you compare the English carrier with the short-faced tumbler, you'll notice a remarkable difference in their beaks, which leads to corresponding variations in their skulls. The carrier, particularly the male, is notable for the impressive development of the fleshy skin around its head, along with notably long eyelids, very large nostrils, and a wide-open mouth. The short-faced tumbler has a beak that resembles that of a finch; and the common tumbler has a unique inherited tendency to fly at great heights in a tight flock and tumble in the air head over heels. The runt is a large bird with a long, thick beak and big feet; some types of runts have very long necks, while others have long wings and tails, and some have unusually short tails. The barb is similar to the carrier, but instead of a long beak, it has a very short and wide one. The pouter has a much elongated body, wings, and legs; and its massively developed crop, which it proudly inflates, can be quite astonishing and even amusing. The turbit has a very short, conical beak with a line of reversed feathers down its chest; it continuously expands the upper part of its esophagus slightly. The Jacobin has feathers so reversed along the back of its neck that they form a hood, and it has relatively long wing and tail feathers for its size. The trumpeter and laugher, as their names suggest, produce a very different coo compared to the other breeds. The fantail has thirty or even forty tail feathers, instead of the twelve or fourteen that are typical in most of the pigeon family; these feathers are held spread out and can be positioned so upright that in well-bred birds the head and tail touch; the oil gland is practically absent. Several other less distinct breeds could also be mentioned.

In the skeletons of the several breeds, the development of the bones of the face in length and breadth and curvature differs enormously. The shape, as well as the breadth and length of the ramus of the lower jaw, varies in a highly remarkable manner. The number of the caudal and sacral vertebræ vary; as does the number of the ribs, together with their relative breadth and the presence of processes. The size and shape of the apertures in the sternum are highly variable; so is the degree of divergence and relative size of the two arms of the furcula. The proportional width of the gape of mouth, the proportional length of the eyelids, of the orifice of the nostrils, of the tongue (not always in strict correlation with the length of beak), the size of the crop and of the upper part of the oesophagus; the development and abortion of the oil-gland; the number of the primary wing and caudal feathers; the relative length of wing and tail to each other and to the body; the relative length of leg and of the feet; the number of scutellæ on the toes, the development of skin between the toes, are all points of structure which are variable. The period at which the perfect plumage is acquired varies, as does the state of the down with which the nestling birds are clothed when hatched. The shape and size of the eggs vary. The manner of flight differs remarkably; as does in some breeds the voice and disposition. Lastly, in certain breeds, the males and females have come to differ to a slight degree from each other.

In the skeletons of various breeds, the development of the facial bones in length, width, and curvature varies significantly. The shape, width, and length of the lower jaw's ramus are particularly striking in their differences. The number of caudal and sacral vertebrae varies, as does the number of ribs, along with their relative width and the presence of processes. The size and shape of the openings in the sternum are quite variable, as is the degree of divergence and relative size of the two arms of the furcula. The proportional width of the mouth’s opening, the proportional length of the eyelids, the size of the nostrils, and the tongue (which doesn’t always correlate strictly with the length of the beak), the size of the crop and the upper part of the esophagus; the development or absence of the oil gland; the number of primary wing and tail feathers; the relative lengths of the wing and tail to each other and to the body; the relative lengths of the legs and feet; the number of scutes on the toes; and the development of skin between the toes, are all structural points that vary. The age at which the perfect plumage is obtained varies, as does the state of down in nestling birds at hatching. The shape and size of the eggs also differ. The flight patterns vary significantly, as do the voices and temperaments in some breeds. Finally, in certain breeds, there are slight differences between males and females.

Altogether at least a score of pigeons might be chosen, which if shown to an ornithologist, and he were told that they were wild birds, would certainly, I think, be ranked by him as well-defined species. Moreover, I do not believe that any ornithologist would place the English carrier, the short-faced tumbler, the runt, the barb, pouter, and fantail in the same genus; more especially as in each of these breeds several truly-inherited sub-breeds, or species as he might have called them, could be shown him.

Altogether, at least twenty pigeons could be selected, which, if presented to an ornithologist and told that they were wild birds, would definitely be classified by him as distinct species. Additionally, I don't believe any ornithologist would categorize the English carrier, the short-faced tumbler, the runt, the barb, pouter, and fantail as belonging to the same genus; especially since, within each of these breeds, several clearly inherited sub-breeds—or species, as he might refer to them—could be demonstrated to him.

Great as the differences are between the breeds of pigeons, I am fully convinced that the common opinion of naturalists is correct, namely, that all have descended from the rock-pigeon (Columba livia), including under this term several geographical races or sub-species, which differ from each other in the most trifling respects. As several of the reasons which have led me to this belief are in some degree applicable in other cases, I will here briefly give them. If the several breeds are not varieties, and have not proceeded from the rock-pigeon, they must have descended from at least seven or eight aboriginal stocks; for it is impossible to make the present domestic breeds by the crossing of any lesser number: how, for instance, could a pouter be produced by crossing two breeds unless one of the parent-stocks possessed the characteristic enormous crop? The supposed aboriginal stocks must all have been rock-pigeons, that is, not breeding or willingly perching on trees. But besides C. livia, with its geographical sub-species, only two or three other species of rock-pigeons are known; and these have not any of the characters of the domestic breeds. Hence the supposed aboriginal stocks must either still exist in the countries where they were originally domesticated, and yet be unknown to ornithologists; and this, considering their size, habits, and remarkable characters, seems very improbable; or they must have become extinct in the wild state. But birds breeding on precipices, and good fliers, are unlikely to be exterminated; and the common rock-pigeon, which has the same habits with the domestic breeds, has not been exterminated even on several of the smaller British islets, or on the shores of the Mediterranean. Hence the supposed extermination of so many species having similar habits with the rock-pigeon seems to me a very rash assumption. Moreover, the several above-named domesticated breeds have been transported to all parts of the world, and, therefore, some of them must have been carried back again into their native country; but not one has ever become wild or feral, though the dovecot-pigeon, which is the rock-pigeon in a very slightly altered state, has become feral in several places. Again, all recent experience shows that it is most difficult to get any wild animal to breed freely under domestication; yet on the hypothesis of the multiple origin of our pigeons, it must be assumed that at least seven or eight species were so thoroughly domesticated in ancient times by half-civilized man, as to be quite prolific under confinement.

As different as the breeds of pigeons are, I firmly believe that the general consensus among naturalists is right: they all come from the rock pigeon (Columba livia). This includes several geographical races or sub-species that vary in just minor ways. Since some of the reasons supporting my belief can apply to other cases as well, I’ll outline them briefly. If the different breeds are not varieties and didn’t originate from the rock pigeon, they would have to come from at least seven or eight original stocks. It’s impossible to create the current domestic breeds by mixing any fewer than that; for example, how could a pouter be produced from crossing two breeds unless one of the parent stocks had that huge crop trait? The supposed original stocks must have all been rock pigeons, meaning they didn’t breed or perch willingly in trees. But apart from C. livia and its geographical sub-species, there are only two or three other rock-pigeon species known, and they don’t share the traits of domestic breeds. So, the imagined original stocks would either still exist in the places where they were first domesticated and remain unknown to ornithologists—which seems very unlikely given their size, habits, and unique traits—or they would have gone extinct in the wild. However, birds that breed on cliffs and are good fliers are hard to wipe out, and the common rock pigeon, which shares the same habits as domestic breeds, hasn’t disappeared even on some of the smaller British islands and along the Mediterranean coast. Therefore, assuming that so many species with similar habits to the rock pigeon have gone extinct seems like a very questionable assertion. Additionally, the various domestic breeds have been taken around the world, so some must have been returned to their original home, yet none have become wild or feral, although the dovecot pigeon, which is very slightly altered from the rock pigeon, has become feral in several areas. Furthermore, all recent experience indicates that it's really tough to get any wild animal to breed freely in captivity; yet, if we assume our pigeons originated from multiple species, we would have to believe that at least seven or eight species were completely domesticated long ago by semi-civilized humans to the point that they could reproduce well under confinement.

An argument, as it seems to me, of great weight, and applicable in several other cases, is, that the above-specified breeds, though agreeing generally in constitution, habits, voice, colouring, and in most parts of their structure, with the wild rock-pigeon, yet are certainly highly abnormal in other parts of their structure: we may look in vain throughout the whole great family of Columbidæ for a beak like that of the English carrier, or that of the short-faced tumbler, or barb; for reversed feathers like those of the jacobin; for a crop like that of the pouter; for tail-feathers like those of the fantail. Hence it must be assumed not only that half-civilized man succeeded in thoroughly domesticating several species, but that he intentionally or by chance picked out extraordinarily abnormal species; and further, that these very species have since all become extinct or unknown. So many strange contingencies seem to me improbable in the highest degree.

An argument that seems very strong to me and can apply to several other situations is that the breeds mentioned above, even though they generally share similar characteristics, behaviors, voices, colors, and most of their structure with the wild rock pigeon, are definitely highly unusual in other aspects of their structure. We can’t find a beak like that of the English carrier, or the short-faced tumbler, or the barb anywhere in the entire Columbidæ family; nor can we find reversed feathers like those of the jacobin; or a crop like that of the pouter; or tail feathers like those of the fantail. Therefore, we must assume that not only did semi-civilized humans successfully domesticate several species, but that they also intentionally or accidentally selected for extraordinarily unusual species; and moreover, that these very species have since all become extinct or unknown. So many strange coincidences seem to me extremely unlikely.

Some facts in regard to the colouring of pigeons well deserve consideration. The rock-pigeon is of a slaty-blue, and has a white rump (the Indian sub-species, C. intermedia of Strickland, having it bluish); the tail has a terminal dark bar, with the bases of the outer feathers externally edged with white; the wings have two black bars; some semi-domestic breeds and some apparently truly wild breeds have, besides the two black bars, the wings chequered with black. These several marks do not occur together in any other species of the whole family. Now, in every one of the domestic breeds, taking thoroughly well-bred birds, all the above marks, even to the white edging of the outer tail-feathers, sometimes concur perfectly developed. Moreover, when two birds belonging to two distinct breeds are crossed, neither of which is blue or has any of the above-specified marks, the mongrel offspring are very apt suddenly to acquire these characters; for instance, I crossed some uniformly white fantails with some uniformly black barbs, and they produced mottled brown and black birds; these I again crossed together, and one grandchild of the pure white fantail and pure black barb was of as beautiful a blue colour, with the white rump, double black wing-bar, and barred and white-edged tail-feathers, as any wild rock-pigeon! We can understand these facts, on the well-known principle of reversion to ancestral characters, if all the domestic breeds have descended from the rock-pigeon. But if we deny this, we must make one of the two following highly improbable suppositions. Either, firstly, that all the several imagined aboriginal stocks were coloured and marked like the rock-pigeon, although no other existing species is thus coloured and marked, so that in each separate breed there might be a tendency to revert to the very same colours and markings. Or, secondly, that each breed, even the purest, has within a dozen or, at most, within a score of generations, been crossed by the rock-pigeon: I say within a dozen or twenty generations, for we know of no fact countenancing the belief that the child ever reverts to some one ancestor, removed by a greater number of generations. In a breed which has been crossed only once with some distinct breed, the tendency to reversion to any character derived from such cross will naturally become less and less, as in each succeeding generation there will be less of the foreign blood; but when there has been no cross with a distinct breed, and there is a tendency in both parents to revert to a character, which has been lost during some former generation, this tendency, for all that we can see to the contrary, may be transmitted undiminished for an indefinite number of generations. These two distinct cases are often confounded in treatises on inheritance.

Some facts about the coloring of pigeons are worth considering. The rock pigeon is a slate-blue color and has a white rump (the Indian subspecies, C. intermedia of Strickland, having a bluish color); its tail has a dark bar at the end, with the bases of the outer feathers edged in white on the outside; the wings have two black bars; some semi-domestic breeds and a few wild breeds have, in addition to the two black bars, wings that are checkered with black. These various markings do not appear together in any other species of the entire family. Now, in every domestic breed, when looking at well-bred birds, all of the above markings, including the white edges on the outer tail feathers, sometimes occur perfectly developed. Furthermore, when two birds from two different breeds are crossed, neither of which is blue or has any of the specified markings, the mixed offspring often suddenly develop these traits; for instance, I crossed some uniformly white fantails with some uniformly black barbs, and they produced mottled brown and black birds; when I crossed those again, one grandchild of the pure white fantail and pure black barb was as beautifully blue, with a white rump, double black wing bars, and barred and white-edged tail feathers, as any wild rock pigeon! We can understand these facts through the well-known principle of reversion to ancestral traits if all domestic breeds have descended from the rock pigeon. But if we deny this, we must accept one of two unlikely assumptions. First, that all the various imagined original stocks were colored and marked like the rock pigeon, even though no other existing species has such coloring and markings, so there might be a tendency in each breed to revert to the same colors and markings. Or, second, that each breed, even the purest, has been crossed with the rock pigeon within a dozen or, at most, twenty generations: I mention a dozen or twenty generations because we have no evidence to support the idea that offspring ever revert to a single ancestor removed by a greater number of generations. In a breed that has only been crossed once with a different breed, the tendency to revert to any trait derived from that cross will naturally lessen over successive generations, as there will be less foreign blood in each generation. But when there has been no cross with a different breed, and both parents show a tendency to revert to a trait that has been lost in earlier generations, this tendency, despite appearances to the contrary, can be passed down unchanged for an indefinite number of generations. These two distinct cases are often confused in discussions about inheritance.

Lastly, the hybrids or mongrels from between all the domestic breeds of pigeons are perfectly fertile. I can state this from my own observations, purposely made on the most distinct breeds. Now, it is difficult, perhaps impossible, to bring forward one case of the hybrid offspring of two animals clearly distinct being themselves perfectly fertile. Some authors believe that long-continued domestication eliminates this strong tendency to sterility: from the history of the dog I think there is some probability in this hypothesis, if applied to species closely related together, though it is unsupported by a single experiment. But to extend the hypothesis so far as to suppose that species, aboriginally as distinct as carriers, tumblers, pouters, and fantails now are, should yield offspring perfectly fertile, inter se, seems to me rash in the extreme.

Lastly, hybrids or mixes from all the domestic pigeon breeds are completely fertile. I can confirm this based on my own observations, specifically focusing on the most distinct breeds. Now, it’s challenging, maybe even impossible, to find a clear case of hybrid offspring from two animals that are obviously different being perfectly fertile themselves. Some authors believe that long-term domestication reduces this strong tendency toward sterility; based on the history of dogs, I think there’s some likelihood in this idea when it comes to closely related species, even though it's not supported by any experiments. However, extending this idea to suggest that species as distinct as carriers, tumblers, pouters, and fantails are now should produce perfectly fertile offspring with each other seems extremely reckless to me.

From these several reasons, namely, the improbability of man having formerly got seven or eight supposed species of pigeons to breed freely under domestication; these supposed species being quite unknown in a wild state, and their becoming nowhere feral; these species having very abnormal characters in certain respects, as compared with all other Columbidæ, though so like in most other respects to the rock-pigeon; the blue colour and various marks occasionally appearing in all the breeds, both when kept pure and when crossed; the mongrel offspring being perfectly fertile;—from these several reasons, taken together, I can feel no doubt that all our domestic breeds have descended from the Columba livia with its geographical sub-species.

Due to several reasons, such as the unlikelihood of humans having previously managed to breed seven or eight supposed species of pigeons in captivity—these supposed species being completely unknown in the wild and not existing as feral types anywhere—these species exhibiting some unusual traits compared to other Columbidæ, even though they closely resemble the rock-pigeon in many ways; the blue color and various markings that occasionally show up in all breeds, whether kept pure or crossbred; and the fact that the mixed offspring are fully fertile—taking all these reasons into account, I have no doubt that all our domestic breeds have originated from the Columba livia and its geographic sub-species.

In favour of this view, I may add, firstly, that C. livia, or the rock-pigeon, has been found capable of domestication in Europe and in India; and that it agrees in habits and in a great number of points of structure with all the domestic breeds. Secondly, although an English carrier or short-faced tumbler differs immensely in certain characters from the rock-pigeon, yet by comparing the several sub-breeds of these breeds, more especially those brought from distant countries, we can make an almost perfect series between the extremes of structure. Thirdly, those characters which are mainly distinctive of each breed, for instance the wattle and length of beak of the carrier, the shortness of that of the tumbler, and the number of tail-feathers in the fantail, are in each breed eminently variable; and the explanation of this fact will be obvious when we come to treat of selection. Fourthly, pigeons have been watched, and tended with the utmost care, and loved by many people. They have been domesticated for thousands of years in several quarters of the world; the earliest known record of pigeons is in the fifth Aegyptian dynasty, about 3000 B.C., as was pointed out to me by Professor Lepsius; but Mr. Birch informs me that pigeons are given in a bill of fare in the previous dynasty. In the time of the Romans, as we hear from Pliny, immense prices were given for pigeons; “nay, they are come to this pass, that they can reckon up their pedigree and race.” Pigeons were much valued by Akber Khan in India, about the year 1600; never less than 20,000 pigeons were taken with the court. “The monarchs of Iran and Turan sent him some very rare birds;” and, continues the courtly historian, “His Majesty by crossing the breeds, which method was never practised before, has improved them astonishingly.” About this same period the Dutch were as eager about pigeons as were the old Romans. The paramount importance of these considerations in explaining the immense amount of variation which pigeons have undergone, will be obvious when we treat of Selection. We shall then, also, see how it is that the breeds so often have a somewhat monstrous character. It is also a most favourable circumstance for the production of distinct breeds, that male and female pigeons can be easily mated for life; and thus different breeds can be kept together in the same aviary.

In support of this view, I’d like to point out that C. livia, or the rock-pigeon, has been successfully domesticated in Europe and India; and it shares behaviors and many structural features with all domestic breeds. Additionally, while an English carrier or short-faced tumbler is vastly different in specific traits from the rock-pigeon, comparing the various sub-breeds of these types, especially those from far-off countries, shows that there's an almost perfect range between the structural extremes. Moreover, the traits that mainly distinguish each breed—like the wattle and the beak length of the carrier, the short beak of the tumbler, and the number of tail feathers in the fantail—are highly variable within each breed; the reasons for this will become clear when we discuss selection. Furthermore, pigeons have been observed and cared for with great attention, and they have been loved by many people throughout history. They’ve been domesticated for thousands of years in different parts of the world; the earliest known mention of pigeons dates back to the fifth Egyptian dynasty, around 3000 B.C., as noted by Professor Lepsius, but Mr. Birch informs me that pigeons also appear in a menu from an earlier dynasty. During Roman times, as noted by Pliny, pigeons fetched incredibly high prices; “in fact, they’ve reached a point where they can trace their pedigree and lineage.” Pigeons were highly valued by Akbar Khan in India around 1600, with no fewer than 20,000 pigeons accompanying the court. “The kings of Iran and Turan sent him some very rare birds,” and, according to the historian, “His Majesty, by crossbreeding the species—a method never used before—has greatly enhanced them.” Around this same time, the Dutch were just as enthusiastic about pigeons as the ancient Romans. The significance of these points in understanding the vast variations seen in pigeons will be clear when we discuss Selection. We’ll also explore why many breeds often display somewhat unusual characteristics. Additionally, it's a big advantage for creating distinct breeds that male and female pigeons can easily mate for life, allowing different breeds to coexist in the same aviary.

I have discussed the probable origin of domestic pigeons at some, yet quite insufficient, length; because when I first kept pigeons and watched the several kinds, knowing well how true they bred, I felt fully as much difficulty in believing that they could ever have descended from a common parent, as any naturalist could in coming to a similar conclusion in regard to the many species of finches, or other large groups of birds, in nature. One circumstance has struck me much; namely, that all the breeders of the various domestic animals and the cultivators of plants, with whom I have ever conversed, or whose treatises I have read, are firmly convinced that the several breeds to which each has attended, are descended from so many aboriginally distinct species. Ask, as I have asked, a celebrated raiser of Hereford cattle, whether his cattle might not have descended from long horns, and he will laugh you to scorn. I have never met a pigeon, or poultry, or duck, or rabbit fancier, who was not fully convinced that each main breed was descended from a distinct species. Van Mons, in his treatise on pears and apples, shows how utterly he disbelieves that the several sorts, for instance a Ribston-pippin or Codlin-apple, could ever have proceeded from the seeds of the same tree. Innumerable other examples could be given. The explanation, I think, is simple: from long-continued study they are strongly impressed with the differences between the several races; and though they well know that each race varies slightly, for they win their prizes by selecting such slight differences, yet they ignore all general arguments, and refuse to sum up in their minds slight differences accumulated during many successive generations. May not those naturalists who, knowing far less of the laws of inheritance than does the breeder, and knowing no more than he does of the intermediate links in the long lines of descent, yet admit that many of our domestic races have descended from the same parents—may they not learn a lesson of caution, when they deride the idea of species in a state of nature being lineal descendants of other species?

I’ve talked about the likely origins of domestic pigeons a bit, but not enough. When I first raised pigeons and observed the various types, I found it just as hard to believe they could have all come from a common ancestor as any naturalist would feel about the many species of finches or other large groups of birds in nature. One thing that struck me is that all the breeders of domestic animals and plant growers I've talked to or whose writings I’ve read are totally convinced that the different breeds they work with originated from distinct, original species. Ask a well-known breeder of Hereford cattle if his cattle might have descended from longhorns, and he’ll just laugh at you. I’ve never met a pigeon, poultry, duck, or rabbit enthusiast who wasn’t completely convinced that each main breed came from a unique species. Van Mons, in his writing about pears and apples, shows how strongly he believes that the different types, like Ribston-pippin or Codlin-apple, couldn’t possibly come from the seeds of the same tree. There are countless other examples. I think the explanation is simple: after years of study, they’re deeply aware of the differences between the various breeds. Even though they know that each breed varies slightly—since they win prizes by picking out those slight differences—they ignore the overall arguments and refuse to consider the small changes that have accumulated over many generations. Could it be that naturalists, who know much less about inheritance than breeders do and understand just as little about the intermediate links in the long lines of descent, might take a lesson in caution when they scoff at the notion that species in nature are linear descendants of other species?

Selection.—Let us now briefly consider the steps by which domestic races have been produced, either from one or from several allied species. Some little effect may, perhaps, be attributed to the direct action of the external conditions of life, and some little to habit; but he would be a bold man who would account by such agencies for the differences of a dray and race horse, a greyhound and bloodhound, a carrier and tumbler pigeon. One of the most remarkable features in our domesticated races is that we see in them adaptation, not indeed to the animal’s or plant’s own good, but to man’s use or fancy. Some variations useful to him have probably arisen suddenly, or by one step; many botanists, for instance, believe that the fuller’s teazle, with its hooks, which cannot be rivalled by any mechanical contrivance, is only a variety of the wild Dipsacus; and this amount of change may have suddenly arisen in a seedling. So it has probably been with the turnspit dog; and this is known to have been the case with the ancon sheep. But when we compare the dray-horse and race-horse, the dromedary and camel, the various breeds of sheep fitted either for cultivated land or mountain pasture, with the wool of one breed good for one purpose, and that of another breed for another purpose; when we compare the many breeds of dogs, each good for man in very different ways; when we compare the game-cock, so pertinacious in battle, with other breeds so little quarrelsome, with “everlasting layers” which never desire to sit, and with the bantam so small and elegant; when we compare the host of agricultural, culinary, orchard, and flower-garden races of plants, most useful to man at different seasons and for different purposes, or so beautiful in his eyes, we must, I think, look further than to mere variability. We cannot suppose that all the breeds were suddenly produced as perfect and as useful as we now see them; indeed, in several cases, we know that this has not been their history. The key is man’s power of accumulative selection: nature gives successive variations; man adds them up in certain directions useful to him. In this sense he may be said to make for himself useful breeds.

Selection.—Let's now take a quick look at how domestic breeds have developed, whether from one or several related species. Some impact may come from the direct influence of external living conditions and a bit from habits; however, it would take a bold person to explain the differences between a dray horse and a racehorse, a greyhound and a bloodhound, or a carrier pigeon and a tumbler pigeon solely through these factors. One of the most striking aspects of our domesticated breeds is that they show adaptation tailored not to the animal’s or plant’s own benefit, but to what humans find useful or appealing. Some variations that serve human needs may have occurred suddenly or through a single step; many botanists, for example, believe that the fuller’s teazle, which has hooks unmatched by any mechanical device, is simply a variety of the wild Dipsacus, and this change could have happened quickly in a seedling. The same could be true for the turnspit dog, and this is known to be the case with the ancon sheep. But when we look at the dray horse and racehorse, the dromedary and camel, the various sheep breeds adapted for either cultivated land or mountain pastures—with the wool of one breed suited for one purpose and that of another for a different purpose—when we compare the different dog breeds, each serving humans in unique ways; when we contrast the gamecock, so fierce in battle, with other breeds that are much less combative, with "everlasting layers" that never want to nest, and with the small and graceful bantam; when we examine the variety of agricultural, culinary, orchard, and ornamental plant breeds that are most beneficial to humans at different times and for various purposes, or that are simply beautiful to look at, we must, I believe, look beyond simple variability. We can't assume that all breeds appeared suddenly as perfect and useful as we see them today; indeed, in many cases, we know that hasn’t been their story. The key lies in man's ability for selective breeding: nature provides successive variations; man selects and breeds them in certain directions that are useful to him. In this way, he effectively creates useful breeds for himself.

The great power of this principle of selection is not hypothetical. It is certain that several of our eminent breeders have, even within a single lifetime, modified to a large extent some breeds of cattle and sheep. In order fully to realise what they have done, it is almost necessary to read several of the many treatises devoted to this subject, and to inspect the animals. Breeders habitually speak of an animal’s organisation as something quite plastic, which they can model almost as they please. If I had space I could quote numerous passages to this effect from highly competent authorities. Youatt, who was probably better acquainted with the works of agriculturalists than almost any other individual, and who was himself a very good judge of an animal, speaks of the principle of selection as “that which enables the agriculturist, not only to modify the character of his flock, but to change it altogether. It is the magician’s wand, by means of which he may summon into life whatever form and mould he pleases.” Lord Somerville, speaking of what breeders have done for sheep, says:—“It would seem as if they had chalked out upon a wall a form perfect in itself, and then had given it existence.” That most skilful breeder, Sir John Sebright, used to say, with respect to pigeons, that “he would produce any given feather in three years, but it would take him six years to obtain head and beak.” In Saxony the importance of the principle of selection in regard to merino sheep is so fully recognised, that men follow it as a trade: the sheep are placed on a table and are studied, like a picture by a connoisseur; this is done three times at intervals of months, and the sheep are each time marked and classed, so that the very best may ultimately be selected for breeding.

The incredible power of this principle of selection isn’t just a theory. It's clear that several of our top breeders have, even within their lifetimes, significantly changed some breeds of cattle and sheep. To truly understand what they’ve accomplished, it’s almost essential to read several of the many works dedicated to this topic and to observe the animals. Breeders often describe an animal’s structure as something quite adaptable, which they can shape as they wish. If I had more space, I could share numerous excerpts from well-respected experts to support this. Youatt, who was likely more familiar with agricultural texts than nearly anyone else and who was himself a skilled judge of animals, referred to the principle of selection as “that which allows the farmer to not only change the character of his flock but to completely transform it. It is the magician’s wand, through which he can bring any form and shape he desires to life.” Lord Somerville, discussing what breeders have accomplished with sheep, mentioned: “It seems as if they’ve sketched out a perfect form on a wall and then brought it to life.” The highly skilled breeder, Sir John Sebright, used to say regarding pigeons that “he could produce any specific feather in three years, but it would take him six years to get the head and beak right.” In Saxony, the significance of the principle of selection concerning merino sheep is so well recognized that people practice it as a profession: the sheep are placed on a table and examined like a piece of art by a connoisseur; this happens three times at intervals of months, with each sheep being marked and categorized, so that only the very best are ultimately chosen for breeding.

What English breeders have actually effected is proved by the enormous prices given for animals with a good pedigree; and these have now been exported to almost every quarter of the world. The improvement is by no means generally due to crossing different breeds; all the best breeders are strongly opposed to this practice, except sometimes amongst closely allied sub-breeds. And when a cross has been made, the closest selection is far more indispensable even than in ordinary cases. If selection consisted merely in separating some very distinct variety, and breeding from it, the principle would be so obvious as hardly to be worth notice; but its importance consists in the great effect produced by the accumulation in one direction, during successive generations, of differences absolutely inappreciable by an uneducated eye—differences which I for one have vainly attempted to appreciate. Not one man in a thousand has accuracy of eye and judgment sufficient to become an eminent breeder. If gifted with these qualities, and he studies his subject for years, and devotes his lifetime to it with indomitable perseverance, he will succeed, and may make great improvements; if he wants any of these qualities, he will assuredly fail. Few would readily believe in the natural capacity and years of practice requisite to become even a skilful pigeon-fancier.

What English breeders have actually achieved is shown by the huge prices paid for animals with a good pedigree, which have now been exported to nearly every part of the world. The improvement isn't largely due to crossing different breeds; all the top breeders are strongly against this, except sometimes among closely related sub-breeds. When a cross does happen, careful selection is even more crucial than in typical cases. If selection were just about isolating a distinct variety and breeding from it, the principle would be so clear that it might hardly warrant mention. Its significance lies in the substantial effects created by focusing on the same traits over generations, resulting in differences that are completely unnoticeable to an untrained eye—differences I've personally struggled to notice. Not one person in a thousand has the keen eye and judgment needed to become an outstanding breeder. If someone possesses these traits, studies the field for years, and dedicates their life to it with unwavering determination, they will succeed and can make significant improvements; if they lack any of these qualities, they will definitely fail. Few people would easily believe in the natural talent and years of experience needed to even become a skilled pigeon fancier.

The same principles are followed by horticulturists; but the variations are here often more abrupt. No one supposes that our choicest productions have been produced by a single variation from the aboriginal stock. We have proofs that this is not so in some cases, in which exact records have been kept; thus, to give a very trifling instance, the steadily-increasing size of the common gooseberry may be quoted. We see an astonishing improvement in many florists’ flowers, when the flowers of the present day are compared with drawings made only twenty or thirty years ago. When a race of plants is once pretty well established, the seed-raisers do not pick out the best plants, but merely go over their seed-beds, and pull up the “rogues,” as they call the plants that deviate from the proper standard. With animals this kind of selection is, in fact, also followed; for hardly any one is so careless as to allow his worst animals to breed.

The same principles are applied by horticulturists, but the differences are often much more pronounced here. No one thinks that our best plants come from just a single change from the original species. We have evidence that this isn't the case in some instances where detailed records have been kept; for example, the steadily increasing size of the common gooseberry can be mentioned. There's a remarkable difference in many florists’ flowers when we compare the blooms of today to drawings made just twenty or thirty years ago. Once a type of plant is well-established, seed producers don’t choose the best plants; they simply go through their seedbeds and pull out the “rogues,” which are the plants that don't meet the desired standard. With animals, this kind of selection is also practiced, as hardly anyone is careless enough to let their worst animals breed.

In regard to plants, there is another means of observing the accumulated effects of selection—namely, by comparing the diversity of flowers in the different varieties of the same species in the flower-garden; the diversity of leaves, pods, or tubers, or whatever part is valued, in the kitchen-garden, in comparison with the flowers of the same varieties; and the diversity of fruit of the same species in the orchard, in comparison with the leaves and flowers of the same set of varieties. See how different the leaves of the cabbage are, and how extremely alike the flowers; how unlike the flowers of the heartsease are, and how alike the leaves; how much the fruit of the different kinds of gooseberries differ in size, colour, shape, and hairiness, and yet the flowers present very slight differences. It is not that the varieties which differ largely in some one point do not differ at all in other points; this is hardly ever, perhaps never, the case. The laws of correlation of growth, the importance of which should never be overlooked, will ensure some differences; but, as a general rule, I cannot doubt that the continued selection of slight variations, either in the leaves, the flowers, or the fruit, will produce races differing from each other chiefly in these characters.

When it comes to plants, there's another way to observe the results of selection—by looking at the variety of flowers across different types of the same species in a flower garden; the variety of leaves, pods, or tubers, or any part that is valued, in a kitchen garden, compared to the flowers of those same varieties; and the variety of fruit from the same species in an orchard, compared to the leaves and flowers from the same set of varieties. For instance, notice how different cabbage leaves are, while the flowers look almost identical; how the flowers of heartsease vary greatly, yet the leaves are very similar; and how the fruit from different types of gooseberries varies in size, color, shape, and fuzziness, even though the flowers show only minor differences. It's not that varieties that differ significantly in one area don't show differences in others; this is rarely, if ever, the case. The rules governing growth correlation, which should never be overlooked, will ensure some differences; but, generally speaking, I believe that the ongoing selection of slight variations—whether in leaves, flowers, or fruit—will result in varieties that mainly differ in these traits.

It may be objected that the principle of selection has been reduced to methodical practice for scarcely more than three-quarters of a century; it has certainly been more attended to of late years, and many treatises have been published on the subject; and the result, I may add, has been, in a corresponding degree, rapid and important. But it is very far from true that the principle is a modern discovery. I could give several references to the full acknowledgment of the importance of the principle in works of high antiquity. In rude and barbarous periods of English history choice animals were often imported, and laws were passed to prevent their exportation: the destruction of horses under a certain size was ordered, and this may be compared to the “roguing” of plants by nurserymen. The principle of selection I find distinctly given in an ancient Chinese encyclopædia. Explicit rules are laid down by some of the Roman classical writers. From passages in Genesis, it is clear that the colour of domestic animals was at that early period attended to. Savages now sometimes cross their dogs with wild canine animals, to improve the breed, and they formerly did so, as is attested by passages in Pliny. The savages in South Africa match their draught cattle by colour, as do some of the Esquimaux their teams of dogs. Livingstone shows how much good domestic breeds are valued by the negroes of the interior of Africa who have not associated with Europeans. Some of these facts do not show actual selection, but they show that the breeding of domestic animals was carefully attended to in ancient times, and is now attended to by the lowest savages. It would, indeed, have been a strange fact, had attention not been paid to breeding, for the inheritance of good and bad qualities is so obvious.

It might be argued that the principle of selection has only become methodical practice for about the last seventy-five years; however, it has definitely received more attention in recent years, and many works have been published on the topic. The outcome, I can add, has been correspondingly rapid and significant. But it is far from accurate to say that this principle is a modern invention. I could provide several references that fully acknowledge its importance in ancient texts. In rough and barbaric times in English history, selected animals were often imported, and laws were enacted to prevent their export. The culling of horses below a certain size was mandated, which can be compared to nurserymen “roguing” plants. I find the principle of selection clearly outlined in an ancient Chinese encyclopedia. Some Roman classical writers established explicit rules regarding it. From texts in Genesis, it's evident that even at that early stage, the color of domestic animals was considered. Indigenous people today sometimes cross their dogs with wild canines to enhance the breed, a practice that has also been documented in Pliny. The indigenous people in South Africa select their draft animals by color, just as certain Eskimos choose their dog teams. Livingstone demonstrates the high value placed on good domestic breeds by the black communities in the interior of Africa who haven't interacted with Europeans. While some of these facts do not showcase actual selection, they do indicate that the breeding of domestic animals was taken seriously in ancient times and continues to be recognized by the least advanced societies today. Indeed, it would be quite strange if breeding had not been given attention, as the inheritance of good and bad traits is so clear.

At the present time, eminent breeders try by methodical selection, with a distinct object in view, to make a new strain or sub-breed, superior to anything existing in the country. But, for our purpose, a kind of Selection, which may be called Unconscious, and which results from every one trying to possess and breed from the best individual animals, is more important. Thus, a man who intends keeping pointers naturally tries to get as good dogs as he can, and afterwards breeds from his own best dogs, but he has no wish or expectation of permanently altering the breed. Nevertheless I cannot doubt that this process, continued during centuries, would improve and modify any breed, in the same way as Bakewell, Collins, etc., by this very same process, only carried on more methodically, did greatly modify, even during their own lifetimes, the forms and qualities of their cattle. Slow and insensible changes of this kind could never be recognised unless actual measurements or careful drawings of the breeds in question had been made long ago, which might serve for comparison. In some cases, however, unchanged or but little changed individuals of the same breed may be found in less civilised districts, where the breed has been less improved. There is reason to believe that King Charles’s spaniel has been unconsciously modified to a large extent since the time of that monarch. Some highly competent authorities are convinced that the setter is directly derived from the spaniel, and has probably been slowly altered from it. It is known that the English pointer has been greatly changed within the last century, and in this case the change has, it is believed, been chiefly effected by crosses with the fox-hound; but what concerns us is, that the change has been effected unconsciously and gradually, and yet so effectually, that, though the old Spanish pointer certainly came from Spain, Mr. Borrow has not seen, as I am informed by him, any native dog in Spain like our pointer.

Right now, top breeders are trying to create a new strain or sub-breed that is better than anything currently available in the country through careful selection with a clear goal in mind. However, for our discussion, a type of selection called Unconscious Selection, which happens when everyone aims to own and breed from the best individual animals, is more significant. For example, a person who wants to keep pointers will naturally try to get the best dogs possible and then breed from their own best dogs, but they have no intention or expectation of permanently changing the breed. Still, I can't doubt that this process, carried out over centuries, would improve and alter any breed, just as Bakewell, Collins, and others did by this same method—though they did it much more systematically—vastly transforming the forms and qualities of their cattle even during their own lifetimes. These slow and subtle changes would go unnoticed unless accurate measurements or detailed drawings of the breeds had been made long ago for comparison. In some cases, though, we can find individuals of the same breed that have remained unchanged or only slightly changed in less developed areas, where the breed has seen less improvement. There’s reason to believe that King Charles’s spaniel has been significantly modified unintentionally since his time. Some highly regarded experts believe that the setter is directly descended from the spaniel and has likely been gradually altered from it. The English pointer has changed significantly over the last century, mostly believed to be due to breeding with the foxhound; however, what matters here is that this change occurred unconsciously and gradually, yet so effectively that, although the original Spanish pointer undoubtedly came from Spain, Mr. Borrow has not seen any native dog in Spain resembling our pointer, as he informed me.

By a similar process of selection, and by careful training, the whole body of English racehorses have come to surpass in fleetness and size the parent Arab stock, so that the latter, by the regulations for the Goodwood Races, are favoured in the weights they carry. Lord Spencer and others have shown how the cattle of England have increased in weight and in early maturity, compared with the stock formerly kept in this country. By comparing the accounts given in old pigeon treatises of carriers and tumblers with these breeds as now existing in Britain, India, and Persia, we can, I think, clearly trace the stages through which they have insensibly passed, and come to differ so greatly from the rock-pigeon.

By a similar process of selection and careful training, the entire population of English racehorses has come to outpace and outsize their original Arab stock, so much so that the latter are given weight advantages under the rules for the Goodwood Races. Lord Spencer and others have demonstrated how English cattle have gained weight and reached maturity faster compared to the stock that used to be raised in this country. By comparing the descriptions in old pigeon books about carrier pigeons and tumblers with these breeds as they currently exist in Britain, India, and Persia, I believe we can clearly trace the gradual changes they've undergone and how they differ so significantly from the rock-pigeon.

Youatt gives an excellent illustration of the effects of a course of selection, which may be considered as unconsciously followed, in so far that the breeders could never have expected or even have wished to have produced the result which ensued—namely, the production of two distinct strains. The two flocks of Leicester sheep kept by Mr. Buckley and Mr. Burgess, as Mr. Youatt remarks, “have been purely bred from the original stock of Mr. Bakewell for upwards of fifty years. There is not a suspicion existing in the mind of any one at all acquainted with the subject that the owner of either of them has deviated in any one instance from the pure blood of Mr. Bakewell’s flock, and yet the difference between the sheep possessed by these two gentlemen is so great that they have the appearance of being quite different varieties.”

Youatt provides a great example of how a selection process can happen without conscious intent, where breeders never expected or wanted the outcome that followed—specifically, the creation of two distinct strains. According to Youatt, the two flocks of Leicester sheep owned by Mr. Buckley and Mr. Burgess “have been purely bred from the original stock of Mr. Bakewell for over fifty years. No one familiar with the topic suspects that either owner has strayed from the pure bloodline of Mr. Bakewell’s flock, and still, the difference between the sheep owned by these two men is so significant that they seem like completely different varieties.”

If there exist savages so barbarous as never to think of the inherited character of the offspring of their domestic animals, yet any one animal particularly useful to them, for any special purpose, would be carefully preserved during famines and other accidents, to which savages are so liable, and such choice animals would thus generally leave more offspring than the inferior ones; so that in this case there would be a kind of unconscious selection going on. We see the value set on animals even by the barbarians of Tierra del Fuego, by their killing and devouring their old women, in times of dearth, as of less value than their dogs.

If there are people so uncivilized that they never consider the inherited traits of their domestic animals, any specific animal that is particularly useful to them for a certain task would still be carefully preserved during famines and other crises, which these people are often prone to. Those chosen animals would typically produce more offspring than the lesser ones, leading to a sort of unconscious selection taking place. We can see how much value is placed on animals, even by the primitive tribes of Tierra del Fuego, as they resort to killing and eating their elderly women during times of scarcity, viewing them as less valuable than their dogs.

In plants the same gradual process of improvement, through the occasional preservation of the best individuals, whether or not sufficiently distinct to be ranked at their first appearance as distinct varieties, and whether or not two or more species or races have become blended together by crossing, may plainly be recognised in the increased size and beauty which we now see in the varieties of the heartsease, rose, pelargonium, dahlia, and other plants, when compared with the older varieties or with their parent-stocks. No one would ever expect to get a first-rate heartsease or dahlia from the seed of a wild plant. No one would expect to raise a first-rate melting pear from the seed of a wild pear, though he might succeed from a poor seedling growing wild, if it had come from a garden-stock. The pear, though cultivated in classical times, appears, from Pliny’s description, to have been a fruit of very inferior quality. I have seen great surprise expressed in horticultural works at the wonderful skill of gardeners, in having produced such splendid results from such poor materials; but the art, I cannot doubt, has been simple, and, as far as the final result is concerned, has been followed almost unconsciously. It has consisted in always cultivating the best known variety, sowing its seeds, and, when a slightly better variety has chanced to appear, selecting it, and so onwards. But the gardeners of the classical period, who cultivated the best pear they could procure, never thought what splendid fruit we should eat; though we owe our excellent fruit, in some small degree, to their having naturally chosen and preserved the best varieties they could anywhere find.

In plants, the same slow process of improvement through selectively keeping the best individuals can be clearly seen in the larger size and beauty of the heartsease, rose, pelargonium, dahlia, and other plants today, especially when compared to older varieties or their parent stocks. No one would ever expect to get a top-quality heartsease or dahlia from the seed of a wild plant. Similarly, people wouldn't expect to grow a top-notch melting pear from the seed of a wild pear, although they might succeed with a poor seedling if it originated from cultivated stock. The pear, even though it was grown in ancient times, seems to have been a fruit of very low quality based on Pliny’s description. I've seen a lot of astonishment in gardening literature about the incredible abilities of gardeners in producing such great results from such low-quality materials; however, the process has been straightforward and, in terms of the final outcome, almost instinctual. It involved consistently cultivating the best known variety, sowing its seeds, and selecting any slightly improved variety whenever it appeared, and so on. However, the gardeners from classical times, who grew the best pears available, likely never imagined the fantastic fruit we enjoy today. Yet, we owe our excellent fruit, at least in part, to their natural selection and preservation of the best varieties they could find.

A large amount of change in our cultivated plants, thus slowly and unconsciously accumulated, explains, as I believe, the well-known fact, that in a vast number of cases we cannot recognise, and therefore do not know, the wild parent-stocks of the plants which have been longest cultivated in our flower and kitchen gardens. If it has taken centuries or thousands of years to improve or modify most of our plants up to their present standard of usefulness to man, we can understand how it is that neither Australia, the Cape of Good Hope, nor any other region inhabited by quite uncivilised man, has afforded us a single plant worth culture. It is not that these countries, so rich in species, do not by a strange chance possess the aboriginal stocks of any useful plants, but that the native plants have not been improved by continued selection up to a standard of perfection comparable with that given to the plants in countries anciently civilised.

A significant amount of change in our cultivated plants has gradually and unconsciously accumulated, which explains, as I believe, the well-known fact that in many cases we cannot identify, and therefore do not know, the wild ancestors of the plants that have been cultivated for the longest time in our flower and kitchen gardens. If it has taken centuries or even thousands of years to enhance or modify most of our plants to their current level of usefulness to humans, we can understand why neither Australia, the Cape of Good Hope, nor any other region inhabited by completely uncivilized people has provided us with a single plant worth cultivating. It's not that these areas, rich in species, don't happen to have the original stocks of any useful plants, but that the native plants have not been improved through continued selection to a level of perfection comparable to that of plants in historically civilized countries.

In regard to the domestic animals kept by uncivilised man, it should not be overlooked that they almost always have to struggle for their own food, at least during certain seasons. And in two countries very differently circumstanced, individuals of the same species, having slightly different constitutions or structure, would often succeed better in the one country than in the other, and thus by a process of “natural selection,” as will hereafter be more fully explained, two sub-breeds might be formed. This, perhaps, partly explains what has been remarked by some authors, namely, that the varieties kept by savages have more of the character of species than the varieties kept in civilised countries.

When it comes to the domestic animals raised by primitive people, it's important to note that they often have to fend for themselves when it comes to food, especially during certain seasons. In two very different countries, individuals of the same species, with slightly different makeups or structures, might do better in one country than the other. This can lead to a process of “natural selection,” which will be explained in more detail later, resulting in the formation of two sub-breeds. This may help to clarify a point made by some writers, who have observed that the varieties kept by uncivilized people resemble species more than the varieties kept in modern societies do.

On the view here given of the all-important part which selection by man has played, it becomes at once obvious, how it is that our domestic races show adaptation in their structure or in their habits to man’s wants or fancies. We can, I think, further understand the frequently abnormal character of our domestic races, and likewise their differences being so great in external characters and relatively so slight in internal parts or organs. Man can hardly select, or only with much difficulty, any deviation of structure excepting such as is externally visible; and indeed he rarely cares for what is internal. He can never act by selection, excepting on variations which are first given to him in some slight degree by nature. No man would ever try to make a fantail, till he saw a pigeon with a tail developed in some slight degree in an unusual manner, or a pouter till he saw a pigeon with a crop of somewhat unusual size; and the more abnormal or unusual any character was when it first appeared, the more likely it would be to catch his attention. But to use such an expression as trying to make a fantail, is, I have no doubt, in most cases, utterly incorrect. The man who first selected a pigeon with a slightly larger tail, never dreamed what the descendants of that pigeon would become through long-continued, partly unconscious and partly methodical selection. Perhaps the parent bird of all fantails had only fourteen tail-feathers somewhat expanded, like the present Java fantail, or like individuals of other and distinct breeds, in which as many as seventeen tail-feathers have been counted. Perhaps the first pouter-pigeon did not inflate its crop much more than the turbit now does the upper part of its oesophagus,—a habit which is disregarded by all fanciers, as it is not one of the points of the breed.

Based on the perspective presented here about the significant role that human selection has played, it's clear how our domestic breeds have adapted in their structure or habits to fit human needs or preferences. We can also better understand why our domestic breeds often exhibit unusual traits and why their differences in external features are so pronounced while internal parts or organs show relatively minor variation. Humans can hardly select for any structural changes unless they are visibly clear, and they generally don’t concern themselves with internal characteristics. Selection can only happen based on variations that nature first presents to us in some minor way. No one would ever think to create a fantail pigeon until they spotted one with a slightly unusual tail, or a pouter until they saw a pigeon with an unusually sized crop; the more bizarre or distinct any trait was when it first appeared, the more it would capture attention. However, saying that someone is trying to create a fantail is, I believe, mostly incorrect. The individual who first chose a pigeon with a slightly larger tail had no idea what the offspring of that pigeon would eventually become through long-term, partly unconscious and partly intentional selection. The ancestor of all fantails might have only had fourteen somewhat expanded tail feathers, similar to the current Java fantail or to individuals of other distinct breeds that have been noted to have up to seventeen tail feathers. The first pouter pigeon may not have inflated its crop much more than how the turbit does with the upper part of its esophagus—an aspect that is overlooked by breeders since it's not considered a key characteristic of the breed.

Nor let it be thought that some great deviation of structure would be necessary to catch the fancier’s eye: he perceives extremely small differences, and it is in human nature to value any novelty, however slight, in one’s own possession. Nor must the value which would formerly be set on any slight differences in the individuals of the same species, be judged of by the value which would now be set on them, after several breeds have once fairly been established. Many slight differences might, and indeed do now, arise amongst pigeons, which are rejected as faults or deviations from the standard of perfection of each breed. The common goose has not given rise to any marked varieties; hence the Thoulouse and the common breed, which differ only in colour, that most fleeting of characters, have lately been exhibited as distinct at our poultry-shows.

Don't think that a major change in structure is needed to catch a buyer's eye; they notice very subtle differences, and it's human nature to appreciate any new feature, no matter how small, in what they own. Also, we can't judge the value once placed on minor differences among individuals of the same species by what we think now, after several breeds have been clearly established. Many slight differences can, and do, occur among pigeons, which are now considered faults or deviations from each breed’s ideal standard. The common goose hasn't produced any notable varieties; therefore, the Thoulouse and the common breed, which only differ in color, that most fleeting of traits, have recently been shown as distinct at our poultry shows.

I think these views further explain what has sometimes been noticed—namely that we know nothing about the origin or history of any of our domestic breeds. But, in fact, a breed, like a dialect of a language, can hardly be said to have had a definite origin. A man preserves and breeds from an individual with some slight deviation of structure, or takes more care than usual in matching his best animals and thus improves them, and the improved individuals slowly spread in the immediate neighbourhood. But as yet they will hardly have a distinct name, and from being only slightly valued, their history will be disregarded. When further improved by the same slow and gradual process, they will spread more widely, and will get recognised as something distinct and valuable, and will then probably first receive a provincial name. In semi-civilised countries, with little free communication, the spreading and knowledge of any new sub-breed will be a slow process. As soon as the points of value of the new sub-breed are once fully acknowledged, the principle, as I have called it, of unconscious selection will always tend,—perhaps more at one period than at another, as the breed rises or falls in fashion,—perhaps more in one district than in another, according to the state of civilisation of the inhabitants—slowly to add to the characteristic features of the breed, whatever they may be. But the chance will be infinitely small of any record having been preserved of such slow, varying, and insensible changes.

I believe these viewpoints further clarify what has sometimes been noticed—specifically that we know nothing about the origin or history of any of our domestic breeds. In reality, a breed, like a dialect of a language, can hardly be said to have a specific origin. A person maintains and breeds from an individual with a slight variation in structure, or pays extra attention when matching their best animals, thereby improving them, and the improved individuals gradually spread in the local area. At this point, they typically won’t have a distinct name, and being only marginally valued, their history will be overlooked. As they are further improved through the same slow and gradual process, they will spread more widely and gain recognition as something unique and valuable, likely first receiving a regional name. In less developed countries, where communication is limited, the spread and awareness of any new sub-breed will be a slow process. Once the valuable traits of the new sub-breed are fully recognized, the principle, which I refer to as unconscious selection, will always tend—maybe more at certain times than others, depending on the breed's popularity—potentially more in some areas than others, depending on the level of civilization of the people—to slowly enhance the characteristic features of the breed, whatever they may be. However, the likelihood of any record being kept of such slow, varying, and subtle changes is extremely low.

I must now say a few words on the circumstances, favourable, or the reverse, to man’s power of selection. A high degree of variability is obviously favourable, as freely giving the materials for selection to work on; not that mere individual differences are not amply sufficient, with extreme care, to allow of the accumulation of a large amount of modification in almost any desired direction. But as variations manifestly useful or pleasing to man appear only occasionally, the chance of their appearance will be much increased by a large number of individuals being kept; and hence this comes to be of the highest importance to success. On this principle Marshall has remarked, with respect to the sheep of parts of Yorkshire, that “as they generally belong to poor people, and are mostly in small lots, they never can be improved.” On the other hand, nurserymen, from raising large stocks of the same plants, are generally far more successful than amateurs in getting new and valuable varieties. The keeping of a large number of individuals of a species in any country requires that the species should be placed under favourable conditions of life, so as to breed freely in that country. When the individuals of any species are scanty, all the individuals, whatever their quality may be, will generally be allowed to breed, and this will effectually prevent selection. But probably the most important point of all, is, that the animal or plant should be so highly useful to man, or so much valued by him, that the closest attention should be paid to even the slightest deviation in the qualities or structure of each individual. Unless such attention be paid nothing can be effected. I have seen it gravely remarked, that it was most fortunate that the strawberry began to vary just when gardeners began to attend closely to this plant. No doubt the strawberry had always varied since it was cultivated, but the slight varieties had been neglected. As soon, however, as gardeners picked out individual plants with slightly larger, earlier, or better fruit, and raised seedlings from them, and again picked out the best seedlings and bred from them, then, there appeared (aided by some crossing with distinct species) those many admirable varieties of the strawberry which have been raised during the last thirty or forty years.

I need to share some thoughts on the factors that impact a person's ability to choose. A high level of variation is clearly beneficial as it provides the raw materials for selection to work with; not that individual differences aren’t enough, with great care, to accumulate significant changes in almost any direction we want. However, because the variations that are useful or appealing to people only show up occasionally, having a large number of individuals increases the chances of their appearance, making this a key factor for success. For example, Marshall noted about the sheep in parts of Yorkshire, that "since they usually belong to poor people and are kept mostly in small groups, they can never be improved." Conversely, nurserymen tend to be much more successful than hobbyists in creating new and valuable plant varieties because they work with large quantities of the same plants. To maintain a substantial number of individuals of any species in a region, that species must be kept under favorable living conditions, promoting efficient breeding. When individuals of a species are limited, regardless of their quality, they will generally all be allowed to reproduce, which will hinder selection. Perhaps the most crucial factor is that the animal or plant should be extremely useful or highly valued by people, so even minor changes in qualities or structure receive close attention. Without this attention, nothing can be achieved. It's been pointed out that it was quite fortunate that strawberries began to vary just as gardeners started focusing more on this plant. No doubt strawberries have always varied since cultivation began, but those small variations went unnoticed. However, once gardeners began to select individual plants with slightly larger, earlier, or better fruit, and bred seedlings from them, and then continued to choose the best seedlings for breeding, we saw the emergence (enhanced by some crossing with different species) of the many remarkable strawberry varieties that have been developed over the last thirty or forty years.

In the case of animals with separate sexes, facility in preventing crosses is an important element of success in the formation of new races,—at least, in a country which is already stocked with other races. In this respect enclosure of the land plays a part. Wandering savages or the inhabitants of open plains rarely possess more than one breed of the same species. Pigeons can be mated for life, and this is a great convenience to the fancier, for thus many races may be kept true, though mingled in the same aviary; and this circumstance must have largely favoured the improvement and formation of new breeds. Pigeons, I may add, can be propagated in great numbers and at a very quick rate, and inferior birds may be freely rejected, as when killed they serve for food. On the other hand, cats, from their nocturnal rambling habits, cannot be matched, and, although so much valued by women and children, we hardly ever see a distinct breed kept up; such breeds as we do sometimes see are almost always imported from some other country, often from islands. Although I do not doubt that some domestic animals vary less than others, yet the rarity or absence of distinct breeds of the cat, the donkey, peacock, goose, etc., may be attributed in main part to selection not having been brought into play: in cats, from the difficulty in pairing them; in donkeys, from only a few being kept by poor people, and little attention paid to their breeding; in peacocks, from not being very easily reared and a large stock not kept; in geese, from being valuable only for two purposes, food and feathers, and more especially from no pleasure having been felt in the display of distinct breeds.

In animals with separate sexes, the ability to prevent crossbreeding is crucial for successfully developing new breeds—especially in a region that already has other breeds. In this regard, land enclosure matters. Nomadic people or those living in open plains usually have only one breed of a species. Pigeons can pair for life, which greatly helps breeders because it allows them to maintain distinct breeds even when they're housed together in the same aviary. This situation has likely played a significant role in the improvement and creation of new breeds. Additionally, pigeons can reproduce in large numbers and quickly, and inferior birds can be easily culled since they can be used for food. On the flip side, cats, due to their nighttime wandering habits, are hard to breed, and even though they are highly valued by women and children, distinct breeds are rarely maintained; the breeds we do see are often imported from other countries, frequently from islands. While I believe that some domestic animals vary less than others, the rarity or lack of distinct breeds in cats, donkeys, peacocks, geese, and so on can largely be attributed to the absence of selective breeding: with cats, it's due to mating difficulties; with donkeys, it's because only a few are kept by poorer people and little focus is given to their breeding; with peacocks, it's due to their challenging care and the lack of a large breeding stock; and with geese, it's because they are only valuable for food and feathers, and there hasn’t been much enjoyment in showcasing distinct breeds.

To sum up on the origin of our Domestic Races of animals and plants. I believe that the conditions of life, from their action on the reproductive system, are so far of the highest importance as causing variability. I do not believe that variability is an inherent and necessary contingency, under all circumstances, with all organic beings, as some authors have thought. The effects of variability are modified by various degrees of inheritance and of reversion. Variability is governed by many unknown laws, more especially by that of correlation of growth. Something may be attributed to the direct action of the conditions of life. Something must be attributed to use and disuse. The final result is thus rendered infinitely complex. In some cases, I do not doubt that the intercrossing of species, aboriginally distinct, has played an important part in the origin of our domestic productions. When in any country several domestic breeds have once been established, their occasional intercrossing, with the aid of selection, has, no doubt, largely aided in the formation of new sub-breeds; but the importance of the crossing of varieties has, I believe, been greatly exaggerated, both in regard to animals and to those plants which are propagated by seed. In plants which are temporarily propagated by cuttings, buds, etc., the importance of the crossing both of distinct species and of varieties is immense; for the cultivator here quite disregards the extreme variability both of hybrids and mongrels, and the frequent sterility of hybrids; but the cases of plants not propagated by seed are of little importance to us, for their endurance is only temporary. Over all these causes of Change I am convinced that the accumulative action of Selection, whether applied methodically and more quickly, or unconsciously and more slowly, but more efficiently, is by far the predominant Power.

To sum up the origin of our domestic breeds of animals and plants, I believe that the conditions of life are crucial in affecting variability through their impact on the reproductive system. I don't think variability is an essential and inevitable condition for all living things, as some authors suggest. The effects of variability are influenced by different levels of inheritance and reversion. Variability is controlled by many unknown laws, especially the correlation of growth. Some of it can be attributed to the direct impact of life conditions, while some must be attributed to use and disuse. The end result is incredibly complex. In some situations, I believe that the interbreeding of originally distinct species has played a significant role in the development of our domestic products. Once several domestic breeds have been established in a country, their occasional interbreeding, combined with selective breeding, has likely helped create new sub-breeds. However, I think the importance of crossing varieties has been overstated, both for animals and for seed-propagated plants. In plants that are temporarily propagated by cuttings, buds, etc., the importance of crossing distinct species and varieties is huge; here, the cultivator ignores the extreme variability of hybrids and mongrels and the frequent infertility of hybrids. However, the instances of plants not propagated by seed are of little importance to us, as their endurance is only temporary. Through all these factors of change, I am convinced that the cumulative effect of selection—whether applied intentionally and quickly or unconsciously and more slowly, but more effectively—is by far the dominant force.

CHAPTER II.
VARIATION UNDER NATURE.

Variability. Individual differences. Doubtful species. Wide ranging, much diffused, and common species vary most. Species of the larger genera in any country vary more than the species of the smaller genera. Many of the species of the larger genera resemble varieties in being very closely, but unequally, related to each other, and in having restricted ranges.

Variability. Individual differences. Uncertain species. Widespread, well-dispersed, and common species show the most variation. The species in larger genera in any country tend to vary more than those in smaller genera. Many species within the larger genera are similar to varieties because they are very closely related to each other, but not equally so, and they often have limited ranges.

Before applying the principles arrived at in the last chapter to organic beings in a state of nature, we must briefly discuss whether these latter are subject to any variation. To treat this subject at all properly, a long catalogue of dry facts should be given; but these I shall reserve for my future work. Nor shall I here discuss the various definitions which have been given of the term species. No one definition has as yet satisfied all naturalists; yet every naturalist knows vaguely what he means when he speaks of a species. Generally the term includes the unknown element of a distinct act of creation. The term “variety” is almost equally difficult to define; but here community of descent is almost universally implied, though it can rarely be proved. We have also what are called monstrosities; but they graduate into varieties. By a monstrosity I presume is meant some considerable deviation of structure in one part, either injurious to or not useful to the species, and not generally propagated. Some authors use the term “variation” in a technical sense, as implying a modification directly due to the physical conditions of life; and “variations” in this sense are supposed not to be inherited: but who can say that the dwarfed condition of shells in the brackish waters of the Baltic, or dwarfed plants on Alpine summits, or the thicker fur of an animal from far northwards, would not in some cases be inherited for at least some few generations? and in this case I presume that the form would be called a variety.

Before applying the principles discussed in the last chapter to organic beings in their natural state, we need to briefly address whether they can undergo any variation. To do this topic justice, a long list of dry facts should be presented; however, I will save those for my future work. I won’t delve into the various definitions of the term “species” here. No single definition has yet satisfied all naturalists, but every naturalist has a general idea of what they mean when they refer to a species. Typically, the term includes the unknown aspect of a distinct act of creation. The term “variety” is almost as challenging to define; usually, it implies common descent, though that can rarely be proven. We also have what are called monstrosities, which gradually lead into varieties. By “monstrosity,” I assume we mean a significant structural deviation in one part that either harms or is not beneficial to the species, and is not generally passed on. Some authors use the term “variation” in a specific sense, referring to modifications directly caused by the physical conditions of life; and variations in this sense are thought not to be inherited. But who can say that the smaller size of shells in the brackish waters of the Baltic, the dwarfed plants on Alpine peaks, or the thicker fur of animals from the far north wouldn’t, in some cases, be inherited for a few generations? In that instance, I would assume the form would be called a variety.

Again, we have many slight differences which may be called individual differences, such as are known frequently to appear in the offspring from the same parents, or which may be presumed to have thus arisen, from being frequently observed in the individuals of the same species inhabiting the same confined locality. No one supposes that all the individuals of the same species are cast in the very same mould. These individual differences are highly important for us, as they afford materials for natural selection to accumulate, in the same manner as man can accumulate in any given direction individual differences in his domesticated productions. These individual differences generally affect what naturalists consider unimportant parts; but I could show by a long catalogue of facts, that parts which must be called important, whether viewed under a physiological or classificatory point of view, sometimes vary in the individuals of the same species. I am convinced that the most experienced naturalist would be surprised at the number of the cases of variability, even in important parts of structure, which he could collect on good authority, as I have collected, during a course of years. It should be remembered that systematists are far from pleased at finding variability in important characters, and that there are not many men who will laboriously examine internal and important organs, and compare them in many specimens of the same species. I should never have expected that the branching of the main nerves close to the great central ganglion of an insect would have been variable in the same species; I should have expected that changes of this nature could have been effected only by slow degrees: yet quite recently Mr. Lubbock has shown a degree of variability in these main nerves in Coccus, which may almost be compared to the irregular branching of the stem of a tree. This philosophical naturalist, I may add, has also quite recently shown that the muscles in the larvæ of certain insects are very far from uniform. Authors sometimes argue in a circle when they state that important organs never vary; for these same authors practically rank that character as important (as some few naturalists have honestly confessed) which does not vary; and, under this point of view, no instance of an important part varying will ever be found: but under any other point of view many instances assuredly can be given.

Once again, we notice many subtle differences that can be called individual differences, which often appear among the offspring of the same parents, or are presumed to arise from being frequently observed in individuals of the same species living in the same small area. No one thinks that all individuals of the same species are identical. These individual differences are incredibly important because they provide the raw material for natural selection to build upon, just like humans can enhance specific traits in domesticated animals. These individual differences usually involve features that naturalists consider unimportant; however, I could present a long list of facts showing that even parts deemed important, whether from a physiological or classification standpoint, can vary among individuals of the same species. I am confident that even the most experienced naturalist would be astonished by how many cases of variability, even in important structural features, he could gather from reliable sources, as I have over the years. It's important to note that systematists are not pleased when they find variability in significant traits, and not many people are willing to meticulously examine internal and important organs and compare them across multiple specimens of the same species. I never would have anticipated that the branching of the main nerves near the central ganglion of an insect could vary within the same species; I would have thought such changes could only happen gradually. Yet, very recently, Mr. Lubbock demonstrated a surprising degree of variability in these main nerves in Coccus, which can almost be compared to the irregular branching of a tree's trunk. This philosophical naturalist has also recently shown that the muscles in the larvae of certain insects are far from consistent. Sometimes authors create a circular argument when they claim that important organs never vary; these same authors typically consider a trait as important (as a few naturalists have honestly admitted) only if it does not change. From this perspective, no instance of an important part varying will ever be found; however, from any other perspective, many examples can certainly be provided.

There is one point connected with individual differences, which seems to me extremely perplexing: I refer to those genera which have sometimes been called “protean” or “polymorphic,” in which the species present an inordinate amount of variation; and hardly two naturalists can agree which forms to rank as species and which as varieties. We may instance Rubus, Rosa, and Hieracium amongst plants, several genera of insects, and several genera of Brachiopod shells. In most polymorphic genera some of the species have fixed and definite characters. Genera which are polymorphic in one country seem to be, with some few exceptions, polymorphic in other countries, and likewise, judging from Brachiopod shells, at former periods of time. These facts seem to be very perplexing, for they seem to show that this kind of variability is independent of the conditions of life. I am inclined to suspect that we see in these polymorphic genera variations in points of structure which are of no service or disservice to the species, and which consequently have not been seized on and rendered definite by natural selection, as hereafter will be explained.

There's one aspect related to individual differences that I find really confusing: I'm talking about those groups that are sometimes called “protean” or “polymorphic,” where the species show an excessive amount of variation; hardly any two naturalists can agree on which forms should be classified as species and which as varieties. For example, consider Rubus, Rosa, and Hieracium among plants, various insect genera, and several genera of Brachiopod shells. In most polymorphic groups, some of the species have stable and clear characteristics. Groups that are polymorphic in one country seem to be, with a few exceptions, polymorphic in other countries as well, and similarly, judging by Brachiopod shells, during earlier periods of time. These facts are quite puzzling, as they seem to indicate that this type of variability does not depend on environmental conditions. I suspect that in these polymorphic groups, we observe variations in structural features that do not benefit or harm the species, which means they haven't been fixed and defined by natural selection, as will be explained later.

Those forms which possess in some considerable degree the character of species, but which are so closely similar to some other forms, or are so closely linked to them by intermediate gradations, that naturalists do not like to rank them as distinct species, are in several respects the most important for us. We have every reason to believe that many of these doubtful and closely-allied forms have permanently retained their characters in their own country for a long time; for as long, as far as we know, as have good and true species. Practically, when a naturalist can unite two forms together by others having intermediate characters, he treats the one as a variety of the other, ranking the most common, but sometimes the one first described, as the species, and the other as the variety. But cases of great difficulty, which I will not here enumerate, sometimes occur in deciding whether or not to rank one form as a variety of another, even when they are closely connected by intermediate links; nor will the commonly-assumed hybrid nature of the intermediate links always remove the difficulty. In very many cases, however, one form is ranked as a variety of another, not because the intermediate links have actually been found, but because analogy leads the observer to suppose either that they do now somewhere exist, or may formerly have existed; and here a wide door for the entry of doubt and conjecture is opened.

Some forms have characteristics of species but are so similar to other forms, or connected to them by gradual changes, that naturalists are hesitant to classify them as distinct species. These forms are particularly significant for us. We believe that many of these uncertain and closely related forms have maintained their traits in their respective regions for a long time, as long as, to the best of our knowledge, established species have. Typically, when a naturalist can connect two forms through others with intermediate traits, he considers one a variety of the other, usually labeling the more common one—or sometimes the one described first—as the species, and the other as the variety. However, there are often challenging cases that arise in determining whether to classify one form as a variety of another, even when they are closely linked by intermediate forms; moreover, just because the intermediate forms are typically thought to be hybrids doesn’t always simplify matters. In many instances, a form is designated as a variety of another not because actual intermediate forms have been discovered, but because the observer, by analogy, believes that they currently exist somewhere or may have existed in the past. This opens a wide door for uncertainty and speculation.

Hence, in determining whether a form should be ranked as a species or a variety, the opinion of naturalists having sound judgment and wide experience seems the only guide to follow. We must, however, in many cases, decide by a majority of naturalists, for few well-marked and well-known varieties can be named which have not been ranked as species by at least some competent judges.

Therefore, when deciding whether a form should be classified as a species or a variety, the views of naturalists with good judgment and extensive experience appear to be the best guide. However, in many cases, we must rely on the consensus of naturalists, since there are few clearly defined and well-known varieties that haven't been classified as species by at least some qualified experts.

That varieties of this doubtful nature are far from uncommon cannot be disputed. Compare the several floras of Great Britain, of France or of the United States, drawn up by different botanists, and see what a surprising number of forms have been ranked by one botanist as good species, and by another as mere varieties. Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I lie under deep obligation for assistance of all kinds, has marked for me 182 British plants, which are generally considered as varieties, but which have all been ranked by botanists as species; and in making this list he has omitted many trifling varieties, but which nevertheless have been ranked by some botanists as species, and he has entirely omitted several highly polymorphic genera. Under genera, including the most polymorphic forms, Mr. Babington gives 251 species, whereas Mr. Bentham gives only 112,—a difference of 139 doubtful forms! Amongst animals which unite for each birth, and which are highly locomotive, doubtful forms, ranked by one zoologist as a species and by another as a variety, can rarely be found within the same country, but are common in separated areas. How many of those birds and insects in North America and Europe, which differ very slightly from each other, have been ranked by one eminent naturalist as undoubted species, and by another as varieties, or, as they are often called, as geographical races! Many years ago, when comparing, and seeing others compare, the birds from the separate islands of the Galapagos Archipelago, both one with another, and with those from the American mainland, I was much struck how entirely vague and arbitrary is the distinction between species and varieties. On the islets of the little Madeira group there are many insects which are characterized as varieties in Mr. Wollaston’s admirable work, but which it cannot be doubted would be ranked as distinct species by many entomologists. Even Ireland has a few animals, now generally regarded as varieties, but which have been ranked as species by some zoologists. Several most experienced ornithologists consider our British red grouse as only a strongly-marked race of a Norwegian species, whereas the greater number rank it as an undoubted species peculiar to Great Britain. A wide distance between the homes of two doubtful forms leads many naturalists to rank both as distinct species; but what distance, it has been well asked, will suffice? if that between America and Europe is ample, will that between the Continent and the Azores, or Madeira, or the Canaries, or Ireland, be sufficient? It must be admitted that many forms, considered by highly-competent judges as varieties, have so perfectly the character of species that they are ranked by other highly-competent judges as good and true species. But to discuss whether they are rightly called species or varieties, before any definition of these terms has been generally accepted, is vainly to beat the air.

It's undeniable that varieties of this uncertain nature are quite common. If you compare the various floras of Great Britain, France, or the United States created by different botanists, you'll see a surprising number of forms classified as good species by one botanist and as mere varieties by another. Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I am deeply grateful for his support in many ways, has identified 182 British plants that are generally seen as varieties but are classified by some botanists as species. In compiling this list, he has left out many minor varieties, which some botanists still consider species, and he has completely omitted several highly polymorphic genera. Mr. Babington lists 251 species under genera that include the most polymorphic forms, while Mr. Bentham lists only 112—a difference of 139 questionable forms! Among animals that mate for each birth and are highly mobile, it’s rare to find doubtful forms classified as species by one zoologist and as varieties by another within the same country, but they are common in distant areas. How many birds and insects in North America and Europe that differ slightly from one another are classified as certain species by one prominent naturalist and as varieties, or geographical races as they are often called, by another? Many years ago, while comparing the birds from the separate islands of the Galapagos Archipelago and observing others do the same with those from the American mainland, I was struck by how vague and arbitrary the distinction between species and varieties is. On the islets of the small Madeira group, there are many insects noted as varieties in Mr. Wollaston’s excellent work, but many entomologists would certainly classify them as distinct species. Even Ireland has a few animals currently considered varieties, but some zoologists have classified them as species. Several experienced ornithologists see our British red grouse as just a strongly marked race of a Norwegian species, while most classify it as a definitive species unique to Great Britain. A significant distance between the homes of two doubtful forms leads many naturalists to consider both distinct species; but as has been wisely asked, what distance is necessary? If the gap between America and Europe is enough, will the distance between the Continent and the Azores, Madeira, the Canaries, or Ireland be sufficient? It must be acknowledged that many forms viewed as varieties by highly qualified experts have such distinct characteristics of species that other equally qualified experts classify them as true species. However, debating whether they are properly labeled as species or varieties before any widely accepted definition of these terms exists is pointless.

Many of the cases of strongly-marked varieties or doubtful species well deserve consideration; for several interesting lines of argument, from geographical distribution, analogical variation, hybridism, etc., have been brought to bear on the attempt to determine their rank. I will here give only a single instance,—the well-known one of the primrose and cowslip, or Primula veris and elatior. These plants differ considerably in appearance; they have a different flavour and emit a different odour; they flower at slightly different periods; they grow in somewhat different stations; they ascend mountains to different heights; they have different geographical ranges; and lastly, according to very numerous experiments made during several years by that most careful observer Gärtner, they can be crossed only with much difficulty. We could hardly wish for better evidence of the two forms being specifically distinct. On the other hand, they are united by many intermediate links, and it is very doubtful whether these links are hybrids; and there is, as it seems to me, an overwhelming amount of experimental evidence, showing that they descend from common parents, and consequently must be ranked as varieties.

Many cases of clearly defined varieties or questionable species deserve attention; several interesting arguments, such as geographical distribution, analogous variation, hybridization, and more, have been used to determine their classification. I'll provide just one example—the well-known case of the primrose and cowslip, or Primula veris and elatior. These plants look quite different; they have different tastes and release different scents; they bloom at slightly different times; they thrive in somewhat different locations; they reach different elevations in the mountains; they have different geographical ranges; and finally, according to numerous experiments conducted over several years by and the meticulous observer Gärtner, they can only be crossed with significant difficulty. It’s hard to find better evidence that these two forms are specifically distinct. On the flip side, they are connected by many intermediate forms, and it is quite uncertain whether these are hybrids; in my view, there is strong experimental evidence indicating that they share common ancestors, and therefore, should be classified as varieties.

Close investigation, in most cases, will bring naturalists to an agreement how to rank doubtful forms. Yet it must be confessed, that it is in the best-known countries that we find the greatest number of forms of doubtful value. I have been struck with the fact, that if any animal or plant in a state of nature be highly useful to man, or from any cause closely attract his attention, varieties of it will almost universally be found recorded. These varieties, moreover, will be often ranked by some authors as species. Look at the common oak, how closely it has been studied; yet a German author makes more than a dozen species out of forms, which are very generally considered as varieties; and in this country the highest botanical authorities and practical men can be quoted to show that the sessile and pedunculated oaks are either good and distinct species or mere varieties.

A close examination usually leads naturalists to agree on how to classify uncertain forms. However, it's worth noting that the countries we know best tend to have the largest number of forms with questionable value. I've noticed that if any animal or plant is particularly useful to humans or captures our attention for any reason, there will almost always be various recorded types of it. Additionally, some authors often classify these types as species. Take the common oak, for instance; it has been studied extensively. Yet, a German author describes more than a dozen species from forms that are generally regarded as varieties. In this country, leading botanical experts and practical professionals can be referenced to argue that the sessile and pedunculated oaks are either valid distinct species or just varieties.

When a young naturalist commences the study of a group of organisms quite unknown to him, he is at first much perplexed to determine what differences to consider as specific, and what as varieties; for he knows nothing of the amount and kind of variation to which the group is subject; and this shows, at least, how very generally there is some variation. But if he confine his attention to one class within one country, he will soon make up his mind how to rank most of the doubtful forms. His general tendency will be to make many species, for he will become impressed, just like the pigeon or poultry-fancier before alluded to, with the amount of difference in the forms which he is continually studying; and he has little general knowledge of analogical variation in other groups and in other countries, by which to correct his first impressions. As he extends the range of his observations, he will meet with more cases of difficulty; for he will encounter a greater number of closely-allied forms. But if his observations be widely extended, he will in the end generally be enabled to make up his own mind which to call varieties and which species; but he will succeed in this at the expense of admitting much variation,—and the truth of this admission will often be disputed by other naturalists. When, moreover, he comes to study allied forms brought from countries not now continuous, in which case he can hardly hope to find the intermediate links between his doubtful forms, he will have to trust almost entirely to analogy, and his difficulties will rise to a climax.

When a young naturalist starts studying a group of organisms he's completely unfamiliar with, he initially feels quite confused about which differences are significant enough to be considered distinct species and which ones are just variations. This is partly because he has no knowledge about the extent and types of variations that exist within that group, highlighting that there is generally some variation present. However, if he focuses on one class in a single country, he'll soon figure out how to categorize most of the uncertain forms. His tendency will likely be to create many species, as he'll be struck, similar to the pigeon or poultry enthusiast mentioned earlier, by the variety he continually observes. He also lacks knowledge about analogous variations in other groups and countries that could help adjust his first impressions. As he broadens his observations, he'll face even more challenges due to encountering more closely related forms. But if he keeps expanding his studies, he'll eventually be able to decide which ones to classify as varieties and which as species; however, this will come at the cost of recognizing a lot of variation, and other naturalists may often dispute this perspective. Additionally, when he studies related forms from distant countries that aren't currently connected, making it unlikely he’ll find the missing links between his uncertain forms, he'll have to rely almost entirely on analogy, which will intensify his difficulties.

Certainly no clear line of demarcation has as yet been drawn between species and sub-species—that is, the forms which in the opinion of some naturalists come very near to, but do not quite arrive at the rank of species; or, again, between sub-species and well-marked varieties, or between lesser varieties and individual differences. These differences blend into each other in an insensible series; and a series impresses the mind with the idea of an actual passage.

Certainly, no clear boundary has yet been established between species and sub-species—that is, the forms that some naturalists believe are very close to, but do not quite reach, the level of species; or, again, between sub-species and clearly defined varieties, or between lesser varieties and individual differences. These differences blend into one another in a way that feels natural; and a series gives the impression of an actual transition.

Hence I look at individual differences, though of small interest to the systematist, as of high importance for us, as being the first step towards such slight varieties as are barely thought worth recording in works on natural history. And I look at varieties which are in any degree more distinct and permanent, as steps leading to more strongly marked and more permanent varieties; and at these latter, as leading to sub-species, and to species. The passage from one stage of difference to another and higher stage may be, in some cases, due merely to the long-continued action of different physical conditions in two different regions; but I have not much faith in this view; and I attribute the passage of a variety, from a state in which it differs very slightly from its parent to one in which it differs more, to the action of natural selection in accumulating (as will hereafter be more fully explained) differences of structure in certain definite directions. Hence I believe a well-marked variety may be justly called an incipient species; but whether this belief be justifiable must be judged of by the general weight of the several facts and views given throughout this work.

So, I consider individual differences, which may not mean much to systematists, to be very important for us, as they are the first step toward the subtle varieties that are barely noted in natural history texts. I see varieties that are somewhat more distinct and permanent as steps toward more clearly defined and stable varieties; and these, in turn, lead to sub-species and species. The transition from one level of difference to another, higher level can sometimes be simply the result of long-term exposure to different physical conditions in two distinct areas; however, I don't have much faith in this perspective. Instead, I believe that the change of a variety from a state with slight differences from its parent to one with greater differences occurs due to natural selection working to accumulate (as I will explain in more detail later) structural differences in specific directions. Therefore, I argue that a well-defined variety can be rightly considered an incipient species; but whether this belief is justified should be assessed by the overall strength of the various facts and ideas presented throughout this work.

It need not be supposed that all varieties or incipient species necessarily attain the rank of species. They may whilst in this incipient state become extinct, or they may endure as varieties for very long periods, as has been shown to be the case by Mr. Wollaston with the varieties of certain fossil land-shells in Madeira. If a variety were to flourish so as to exceed in numbers the parent species, it would then rank as the species, and the species as the variety; or it might come to supplant and exterminate the parent species; or both might co-exist, and both rank as independent species. But we shall hereafter have to return to this subject.

It shouldn't be assumed that all varieties or early forms of species will eventually become fully recognized species. They could, while still in this early stage, become extinct, or they might survive as varieties for a very long time, as Mr. Wollaston has shown with certain fossil land-shell varieties in Madeira. If a variety becomes so successful that its numbers surpass those of the parent species, it would then be classified as a species, while the parent species would be considered the variety; or it could potentially replace and eliminate the parent species entirely; or both could coexist and both be recognized as independent species. But we'll need to return to this topic later.

From these remarks it will be seen that I look at the term species, as one arbitrarily given for the sake of convenience to a set of individuals closely resembling each other, and that it does not essentially differ from the term variety, which is given to less distinct and more fluctuating forms. The term variety, again, in comparison with mere individual differences, is also applied arbitrarily, and for mere convenience sake.

From these comments, it's clear that I see the term species as something that's arbitrarily assigned for convenience to a group of individuals that closely resemble each other. It doesn't fundamentally differ from the term variety, which refers to less distinct and more changeable forms. Similarly, the term variety, when compared to individual differences, is also used arbitrarily and just for convenience.

Guided by theoretical considerations, I thought that some interesting results might be obtained in regard to the nature and relations of the species which vary most, by tabulating all the varieties in several well-worked floras. At first this seemed a simple task; but Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I am much indebted for valuable advice and assistance on this subject, soon convinced me that there were many difficulties, as did subsequently Dr. Hooker, even in stronger terms. I shall reserve for my future work the discussion of these difficulties, and the tables themselves of the proportional numbers of the varying species. Dr. Hooker permits me to add, that after having carefully read my manuscript, and examined the tables, he thinks that the following statements are fairly well established. The whole subject, however, treated as it necessarily here is with much brevity, is rather perplexing, and allusions cannot be avoided to the “struggle for existence,” “divergence of character,” and other questions, hereafter to be discussed.

Based on my theoretical ideas, I thought it might be interesting to gather results related to the nature and relationships of the most variable species by listing all the varieties found in several well-studied floras. Initially, this seemed like a straightforward task; however, Mr. H. C. Watson, to whom I owe a lot of valuable advice and help on this topic, quickly made me realize that there were numerous challenges, as did Dr. Hooker later on, in even stronger terms. I will save the discussion of these challenges and the tables showing the proportional numbers of the variable species for my future work. Dr. Hooker has allowed me to add that after thoroughly reading my manuscript and reviewing the tables, he believes that the following statements are fairly well supported. However, the entire subject, as it is necessarily presented here with much brevity, is rather confusing, and I cannot avoid referring to the “struggle for existence,” “divergence of character,” and other issues that will be discussed later.

Alph. De Candolle and others have shown that plants which have very wide ranges generally present varieties; and this might have been expected, as they become exposed to diverse physical conditions, and as they come into competition (which, as we shall hereafter see, is a far more important circumstance) with different sets of organic beings. But my tables further show that, in any limited country, the species which are most common, that is abound most in individuals, and the species which are most widely diffused within their own country (and this is a different consideration from wide range, and to a certain extent from commonness), often give rise to varieties sufficiently well-marked to have been recorded in botanical works. Hence it is the most flourishing, or, as they may be called, the dominant species,—those which range widely over the world, are the most diffused in their own country, and are the most numerous in individuals,—which oftenest produce well-marked varieties, or, as I consider them, incipient species. And this, perhaps, might have been anticipated; for, as varieties, in order to become in any degree permanent, necessarily have to struggle with the other inhabitants of the country, the species which are already dominant will be the most likely to yield offspring which, though in some slight degree modified, will still inherit those advantages that enabled their parents to become dominant over their compatriots.

Alph. De Candolle and others have shown that plants with very wide ranges usually have different varieties. This makes sense, as they are exposed to various physical conditions and compete with different groups of living beings (which, as we will discuss later, is a much more significant factor). My tables further indicate that in any given country, the species that are most common—meaning they have the highest number of individuals—and those that are most widespread within their own country (which is a different consideration than simply having a wide range, and somewhat distinct from commonality), often produce varieties that are well-defined enough to be documented in botanical studies. Therefore, it's the most thriving, or what could be called the dominant species—those that have a wide global range, are the most widespread in their home country, and have the largest number of individuals—that most frequently give rise to distinct varieties, or what I consider incipient species. This might have been expected; because varieties need to compete with the other species present to remain viable, the species that are already dominant will likely produce offspring that, while slightly modified, still carry the advantages that allowed their parents to become dominant over their peers.

If the plants inhabiting a country and described in any Flora be divided into two equal masses, all those in the larger genera being placed on one side, and all those in the smaller genera on the other side, a somewhat larger number of the very common and much diffused or dominant species will be found on the side of the larger genera. This, again, might have been anticipated; for the mere fact of many species of the same genus inhabiting any country, shows that there is something in the organic or inorganic conditions of that country favourable to the genus; and, consequently, we might have expected to have found in the larger genera, or those including many species, a large proportional number of dominant species. But so many causes tend to obscure this result, that I am surprised that my tables show even a small majority on the side of the larger genera. I will here allude to only two causes of obscurity. Fresh-water and salt-loving plants have generally very wide ranges and are much diffused, but this seems to be connected with the nature of the stations inhabited by them, and has little or no relation to the size of the genera to which the species belong. Again, plants low in the scale of organisation are generally much more widely diffused than plants higher in the scale; and here again there is no close relation to the size of the genera. The cause of lowly-organised plants ranging widely will be discussed in our chapter on geographical distribution.

If you take the plants found in a country and described in any Flora and split them into two equal groups—putting all the species in the larger genera on one side and all those in the smaller genera on the other—you’ll find that a greater number of the very common and widely spread or dominant species are on the side of the larger genera. This outcome makes sense because having many species from the same genus in a country indicates that there’s something about that country’s organic or inorganic conditions that suits the genus. Therefore, we might have expected the larger genera, which include many species, to have a higher proportion of dominant species. However, there are many factors that obscure this result, and I’m surprised that my data shows even a small majority leaning toward the larger genera. I will mention only two of these obscuring factors. Freshwater and saltwater plants tend to have very wide ranges and are quite widespread, but this appears to relate more to the nature of the environments they inhabit rather than the size of the genera they belong to. Additionally, plants that are lower on the organizational scale generally have a much wider distribution than those higher up; again, there’s no strong connection to the size of the genera. The reason why lowly organized plants can spread widely will be discussed in our chapter on geographical distribution.

From looking at species as only strongly-marked and well-defined varieties, I was led to anticipate that the species of the larger genera in each country would oftener present varieties, than the species of the smaller genera; for wherever many closely related species (i.e. species of the same genus) have been formed, many varieties or incipient species ought, as a general rule, to be now forming. Where many large trees grow, we expect to find saplings. Where many species of a genus have been formed through variation, circumstances have been favourable for variation; and hence we might expect that the circumstances would generally be still favourable to variation. On the other hand, if we look at each species as a special act of creation, there is no apparent reason why more varieties should occur in a group having many species, than in one having few.

From viewing species as just distinct and clearly defined types, I started to expect that the species in larger genera within each country would often show more varieties than those in smaller genera. This is because wherever many closely related species (i.e., species from the same genus) have developed, it stands to reason that many varieties or emerging species should be forming as a general trend. Just like we expect to find young saplings where many large trees grow. When many species of a genus have emerged through variation, the conditions have likely been favorable for variation, so we would assume those conditions are still conducive to change. On the flip side, if we think of each species as a unique act of creation, there's no clear reason why more varieties would appear in a group with many species compared to one with only a few.

To test the truth of this anticipation I have arranged the plants of twelve countries, and the coleopterous insects of two districts, into two nearly equal masses, the species of the larger genera on one side, and those of the smaller genera on the other side, and it has invariably proved to be the case that a larger proportion of the species on the side of the larger genera present varieties, than on the side of the smaller genera. Moreover, the species of the large genera which present any varieties, invariably present a larger average number of varieties than do the species of the small genera. Both these results follow when another division is made, and when all the smallest genera, with from only one to four species, are absolutely excluded from the tables. These facts are of plain signification on the view that species are only strongly marked and permanent varieties; for wherever many species of the same genus have been formed, or where, if we may use the expression, the manufactory of species has been active, we ought generally to find the manufactory still in action, more especially as we have every reason to believe the process of manufacturing new species to be a slow one. And this certainly is the case, if varieties be looked at as incipient species; for my tables clearly show as a general rule that, wherever many species of a genus have been formed, the species of that genus present a number of varieties, that is of incipient species, beyond the average. It is not that all large genera are now varying much, and are thus increasing in the number of their species, or that no small genera are now varying and increasing; for if this had been so, it would have been fatal to my theory; inasmuch as geology plainly tells us that small genera have in the lapse of time often increased greatly in size; and that large genera have often come to their maxima, declined, and disappeared. All that we want to show is, that where many species of a genus have been formed, on an average many are still forming; and this holds good.

To test this prediction, I've organized the plants from twelve countries and the beetle species from two areas into two almost equal groups: one with species from larger genera and the other with those from smaller genera. It has consistently turned out that a higher proportion of species from the larger genera show variations compared to those from the smaller genera. Additionally, the species from the large genera that do have variations tend to have a higher average number of variations than those from the small genera. These results remain consistent even when we exclude the smallest genera that have only one to four species from the data. These facts clearly suggest that species are just strongly defined and stable variations; whenever many species within the same genus have emerged, or where, if we may say, the process of creating species has been active, we should generally expect to find that process continuing, especially since we believe that the creation of new species is a slow process. This certainly holds true if we view variations as early-stage species, as my data shows that, as a general rule, where there are many species in a genus, those species tend to have a higher number of variations, which are essentially early-stage species. It’s not that all large genera are currently varying significantly and increasing their number of species, nor that no small genera are varying and increasing; if that were the case, it would undermine my theory, since geology shows us that small genera have often grown much larger over time, while large genera have frequently reached their peak, declined, and disappeared. What we want to demonstrate is that where many species of a genus exist, on average, many are still in the process of forming, and this is indeed the case.

There are other relations between the species of large genera and their recorded varieties which deserve notice. We have seen that there is no infallible criterion by which to distinguish species and well-marked varieties; and in those cases in which intermediate links have not been found between doubtful forms, naturalists are compelled to come to a determination by the amount of difference between them, judging by analogy whether or not the amount suffices to raise one or both to the rank of species. Hence the amount of difference is one very important criterion in settling whether two forms should be ranked as species or varieties. Now Fries has remarked in regard to plants, and Westwood in regard to insects, that in large genera the amount of difference between the species is often exceedingly small. I have endeavoured to test this numerically by averages, and, as far as my imperfect results go, they always confirm the view. I have also consulted some sagacious and most experienced observers, and, after deliberation, they concur in this view. In this respect, therefore, the species of the larger genera resemble varieties, more than do the species of the smaller genera. Or the case may be put in another way, and it may be said, that in the larger genera, in which a number of varieties or incipient species greater than the average are now manufacturing, many of the species already manufactured still to a certain extent resemble varieties, for they differ from each other by a less than usual amount of difference.

There are other connections between the species of large genera and their recorded varieties that are worth noting. We've seen that there's no foolproof way to distinguish between species and clearly defined varieties; and in cases where no intermediate forms have been found between questionable types, naturalists have to decide based on the degree of difference between them, by judging analogously whether that difference is enough to classify one or both as species. Therefore, the degree of difference is a key factor in determining whether two forms should be classified as species or varieties. Fries noted regarding plants, and Westwood regarding insects, that in large genera, the difference between species is often very minimal. I've tried to test this with averages, and as far as my incomplete findings suggest, they consistently support this idea. I've also consulted some wise and highly experienced observers, and after discussion, they agree with this perspective. In this way, the species of larger genera resemble varieties more than the species of smaller genera do. Alternatively, it could be said that in larger genera, where a greater than average number of varieties or emerging species are currently developing, many of the already defined species still somewhat resemble varieties, as they differ from one another by less than the usual degree of difference.

Moreover, the species of the large genera are related to each other, in the same manner as the varieties of any one species are related to each other. No naturalist pretends that all the species of a genus are equally distinct from each other; they may generally be divided into sub-genera, or sections, or lesser groups. As Fries has well remarked, little groups of species are generally clustered like satellites around certain other species. And what are varieties but groups of forms, unequally related to each other, and clustered round certain forms—that is, round their parent-species? Undoubtedly there is one most important point of difference between varieties and species; namely, that the amount of difference between varieties, when compared with each other or with their parent-species, is much less than that between the species of the same genus. But when we come to discuss the principle, as I call it, of Divergence of Character, we shall see how this may be explained, and how the lesser differences between varieties will tend to increase into the greater differences between species.

Furthermore, the species within large genera are connected to one another in the same way that the varieties of a single species are linked. No naturalist claims that all species in a genus are equally distinct from one another; they can typically be classified into subgenera, sections, or smaller groups. As Fries pointed out, small groups of species are often clustered like satellites around certain other species. And what do we call varieties but groups of forms that are not equally related to each other and are centered around certain forms—that is, around their parent species? There is certainly one crucial difference between varieties and species; that is, the degree of difference between varieties, whether compared to each other or their parent species, is much smaller than the differences seen between the species within the same genus. However, when we examine what I refer to as the principle of Divergence of Character, we will understand how this can be explained and how the smaller differences among varieties will tend to grow into the larger differences seen among species.

There is one other point which seems to me worth notice. Varieties generally have much restricted ranges: this statement is indeed scarcely more than a truism, for if a variety were found to have a wider range than that of its supposed parent-species, their denominations ought to be reversed. But there is also reason to believe, that those species which are very closely allied to other species, and in so far resemble varieties, often have much restricted ranges. For instance, Mr. H. C. Watson has marked for me in the well-sifted London Catalogue of plants (4th edition) 63 plants which are therein ranked as species, but which he considers as so closely allied to other species as to be of doubtful value: these 63 reputed species range on an average over 6.9 of the provinces into which Mr. Watson has divided Great Britain. Now, in this same catalogue, 53 acknowledged varieties are recorded, and these range over 7.7 provinces; whereas, the species to which these varieties belong range over 14.3 provinces. So that the acknowledged varieties have very nearly the same restricted average range, as have those very closely allied forms, marked for me by Mr. Watson as doubtful species, but which are almost universally ranked by British botanists as good and true species.

There’s one other thing that I think is worth noting. Varieties usually have very limited ranges: this is almost a given; if a variety were found to have a wider range than its supposed parent species, their names should be switched. However, there’s also reason to believe that species that are very closely related to other species, and thus resemble varieties, often have limited ranges as well. For example, Mr. H. C. Watson highlighted for me in the well-compiled London Catalogue of plants (4th edition) 63 plants that are classified as species, but which he considers so closely related to other species that their classification is questionable: these 63 species average a range across 6.9 of the provinces that Mr. Watson has defined in Great Britain. In the same catalogue, 53 recognized varieties are listed, and these cover an average of 7.7 provinces, whereas the species that these varieties belong to range over 14.3 provinces. This means that the recognized varieties have almost the same limited average range as those closely related forms that Mr. Watson marked as questionable species, but which are nearly always classified by British botanists as valid and true species.

Finally, then, varieties have the same general characters as species, for they cannot be distinguished from species,—except, firstly, by the discovery of intermediate linking forms, and the occurrence of such links cannot affect the actual characters of the forms which they connect; and except, secondly, by a certain amount of difference, for two forms, if differing very little, are generally ranked as varieties, notwithstanding that intermediate linking forms have not been discovered; but the amount of difference considered necessary to give to two forms the rank of species is quite indefinite. In genera having more than the average number of species in any country, the species of these genera have more than the average number of varieties. In large genera the species are apt to be closely, but unequally, allied together, forming little clusters round certain species. Species very closely allied to other species apparently have restricted ranges. In all these several respects the species of large genera present a strong analogy with varieties. And we can clearly understand these analogies, if species have once existed as varieties, and have thus originated: whereas, these analogies are utterly inexplicable if each species has been independently created.

Finally, varieties have the same general characteristics as species, as they can't be distinguished from species—except, firstly, by the discovery of intermediate linking forms, and the existence of such links doesn't change the actual characteristics of the forms they connect; and except, secondly, by a certain amount of difference. If two forms differ very slightly, they are usually classified as varieties, even if no intermediate linking forms have been found; however, the amount of difference needed to classify two forms as species is quite unclear. In genera with more than the average number of species in any country, the species within these genera tend to have more than the average number of varieties. In large genera, the species tend to be closely but unevenly related, forming little clusters around certain species. Species that are very closely related to other species often have limited ranges. In all these respects, the species in large genera show a strong similarity to varieties. We can clearly understand these similarities if species have once existed as varieties and originated that way; however, these analogies are completely unexplainable if each species was created independently.

We have, also, seen that it is the most flourishing and dominant species of the larger genera which on an average vary most; and varieties, as we shall hereafter see, tend to become converted into new and distinct species. The larger genera thus tend to become larger; and throughout nature the forms of life which are now dominant tend to become still more dominant by leaving many modified and dominant descendants. But by steps hereafter to be explained, the larger genera also tend to break up into smaller genera. And thus, the forms of life throughout the universe become divided into groups subordinate to groups.

We have also seen that the most successful and dominant species of the larger genera tend to vary the most on average; and varieties, as we will see later, often evolve into new and distinct species. Therefore, the larger genera tend to grow larger; and throughout nature, the life forms that are currently dominant tend to become even more dominant by producing many modified and dominant descendants. However, as we will explain later, the larger genera also tend to split into smaller genera. Thus, the life forms throughout the universe become divided into groups that are subordinate to other groups.

CHAPTER III.
STRUGGLE FOR EXISTENCE.

Bears on natural selection. The term used in a wide sense. Geometrical powers of increase. Rapid increase of naturalised animals and plants. Nature of the checks to increase. Competition universal. Effects of climate. Protection from the number of individuals. Complex relations of all animals and plants throughout nature. Struggle for life most severe between individuals and varieties of the same species; often severe between species of the same genus. The relation of organism to organism the most important of all relations.

Bears and natural selection. The term is used broadly. The geometric powers of increase. The quick growth of naturalized animals and plants. The nature of the limits to this growth. Competition is everywhere. The effects of climate. Protection comes from the number of individuals. The complex relationships of all animals and plants within nature. The struggle for survival is harshest between individuals and varieties of the same species; often intense between species of the same genus. The relationship between organisms is the most important of all relationships.

Before entering on the subject of this chapter, I must make a few preliminary remarks, to show how the struggle for existence bears on Natural Selection. It has been seen in the last chapter that amongst organic beings in a state of nature there is some individual variability; indeed I am not aware that this has ever been disputed. It is immaterial for us whether a multitude of doubtful forms be called species or sub-species or varieties; what rank, for instance, the two or three hundred doubtful forms of British plants are entitled to hold, if the existence of any well-marked varieties be admitted. But the mere existence of individual variability and of some few well-marked varieties, though necessary as the foundation for the work, helps us but little in understanding how species arise in nature. How have all those exquisite adaptations of one part of the organisation to another part, and to the conditions of life, and of one distinct organic being to another being, been perfected? We see these beautiful co-adaptations most plainly in the woodpecker and missletoe; and only a little less plainly in the humblest parasite which clings to the hairs of a quadruped or feathers of a bird; in the structure of the beetle which dives through the water; in the plumed seed which is wafted by the gentlest breeze; in short, we see beautiful adaptations everywhere and in every part of the organic world.

Before diving into the topic of this chapter, I need to make a few preliminary comments to show how the struggle for existence relates to Natural Selection. As mentioned in the last chapter, there’s some individual variability among organisms in a natural state; in fact, I’m not aware that anyone has ever disputed this. It doesn’t matter to us whether a variety of uncertain forms are called species, subspecies, or varieties; it’s irrelevant what classification the two or three hundred uncertain forms of British plants fall under, as long as we acknowledge the existence of some clear varieties. However, while the presence of individual variability and a few distinct varieties is necessary as a foundation for our discussion, it doesn’t really help us understand how species originate in nature. How have all those amazing adaptations of one part of an organism to another and to environmental conditions, as well as between different organisms, developed? We can best observe these beautiful co-adaptations clearly in the woodpecker and mistletoe; not quite as obviously in the simplest parasite that clings to the hairs of a mammal or the feathers of a bird; in the structure of the beetle that swims in water; in the feathered seed that floats on the slightest breeze; in short, we see remarkable adaptations everywhere and in every part of the organic world.

Again, it may be asked, how is it that varieties, which I have called incipient species, become ultimately converted into good and distinct species, which in most cases obviously differ from each other far more than do the varieties of the same species? How do those groups of species, which constitute what are called distinct genera, and which differ from each other more than do the species of the same genus, arise? All these results, as we shall more fully see in the next chapter, follow inevitably from the struggle for life. Owing to this struggle for life, any variation, however slight and from whatever cause proceeding, if it be in any degree profitable to an individual of any species, in its infinitely complex relations to other organic beings and to external nature, will tend to the preservation of that individual, and will generally be inherited by its offspring. The offspring, also, will thus have a better chance of surviving, for, of the many individuals of any species which are periodically born, but a small number can survive. I have called this principle, by which each slight variation, if useful, is preserved, by the term of Natural Selection, in order to mark its relation to man’s power of selection. We have seen that man by selection can certainly produce great results, and can adapt organic beings to his own uses, through the accumulation of slight but useful variations, given to him by the hand of Nature. But Natural Selection, as we shall hereafter see, is a power incessantly ready for action, and is as immeasurably superior to man’s feeble efforts, as the works of Nature are to those of Art.

Again, one might ask, how do the varieties, which I've referred to as incipient species, eventually transform into fully developed and distinct species that often differ from each other much more than the varieties within the same species? How do groups of species, which are known as distinct genera and differ from each other more than the species within the same genus, come into being? All these outcomes, as we'll explore in more detail in the next chapter, follow naturally from the struggle for survival. Because of this struggle, any variation—regardless of how minor and from what source it arises—if it benefits an individual of any species in its incredibly complex interactions with other living beings and the environment, will likely help that individual survive, and will generally be passed down to its offspring. The offspring will therefore have a better chance of surviving because, out of the many individuals of any species that are born periodically, only a small fraction can survive. I’ve termed this principle, by which every slight variation that is beneficial is preserved, as Natural Selection, to highlight its connection to human selection. We’ve observed that humans can certainly achieve great results through selection, adapting living beings for our own purposes by accumulating slight but beneficial variations provided by Nature. However, Natural Selection, as we will see later, is a force that is always ready to act and is immensely more powerful than human efforts, just as the creations of Nature far surpass those of Art.

We will now discuss in a little more detail the struggle for existence. In my future work this subject shall be treated, as it well deserves, at much greater length. The elder De Candolle and Lyell have largely and philosophically shown that all organic beings are exposed to severe competition. In regard to plants, no one has treated this subject with more spirit and ability than W. Herbert, Dean of Manchester, evidently the result of his great horticultural knowledge. Nothing is easier than to admit in words the truth of the universal struggle for life, or more difficult—at least I have found it so—than constantly to bear this conclusion in mind. Yet unless it be thoroughly engrained in the mind, I am convinced that the whole economy of nature, with every fact on distribution, rarity, abundance, extinction, and variation, will be dimly seen or quite misunderstood. We behold the face of nature bright with gladness, we often see superabundance of food; we do not see, or we forget, that the birds which are idly singing round us mostly live on insects or seeds, and are thus constantly destroying life; or we forget how largely these songsters, or their eggs, or their nestlings, are destroyed by birds and beasts of prey; we do not always bear in mind, that though food may be now superabundant, it is not so at all seasons of each recurring year.

Let's talk a bit more about the struggle for survival. I'll cover this topic in much greater detail in my future work, as it really deserves it. The elder De Candolle and Lyell have extensively and thoughtfully demonstrated that all living creatures face intense competition. When it comes to plants, no one has addressed this topic with more enthusiasm and skill than W. Herbert, Dean of Manchester, thanks to his vast horticultural knowledge. It's easy to agree in theory that there's a universal struggle for life, but I've found it much harder to keep this idea in mind consistently. However, unless we truly internalize this concept, I'm convinced that our understanding of nature's entire system—covering facts about distribution, rarity, abundance, extinction, and variation—will be unclear or completely misinterpreted. We see nature looking bright and cheerful, and often notice an abundance of food; we don't realize, or we forget, that the birds singing around us mostly rely on insects or seeds, which means they are constantly taking life away. We also tend to overlook how many of these songbirds, their eggs, or their young are preyed upon by other animals. We don’t always remember that even if food seems plentiful now, it isn’t so during every season of the year.

I should premise that I use the term Struggle for Existence in a large and metaphorical sense, including dependence of one being on another, and including (which is more important) not only the life of the individual, but success in leaving progeny. Two canine animals in a time of dearth, may be truly said to struggle with each other which shall get food and live. But a plant on the edge of a desert is said to struggle for life against the drought, though more properly it should be said to be dependent on the moisture. A plant which annually produces a thousand seeds, of which on an average only one comes to maturity, may be more truly said to struggle with the plants of the same and other kinds which already clothe the ground. The missletoe is dependent on the apple and a few other trees, but can only in a far-fetched sense be said to struggle with these trees, for if too many of these parasites grow on the same tree, it will languish and die. But several seedling missletoes, growing close together on the same branch, may more truly be said to struggle with each other. As the missletoe is disseminated by birds, its existence depends on birds; and it may metaphorically be said to struggle with other fruit-bearing plants, in order to tempt birds to devour and thus disseminate its seeds rather than those of other plants. In these several senses, which pass into each other, I use for convenience sake the general term of struggle for existence.

I want to clarify that when I say Struggle for Existence, I’m using the term broadly and metaphorically. It includes how one being relies on another, and most importantly, it encompasses not just the survival of an individual but also their success in having offspring. For instance, two dogs during a food shortage can be said to struggle with each other for food and survival. Meanwhile, a plant at the edge of a desert is said to be struggling for life against drought, although it’s more accurate to say it relies on moisture. A plant that produces a thousand seeds a year, of which only one typically survives, is more accurately said to be struggling against other plants of the same and different species that are already growing in the area. Mistletoe depends on apple trees and a few other types of trees, but in a very indirect way, it’s hard to say it truly struggles with these trees since if too many mistletoes grow on one tree, that tree will suffer and die. However, multiple young mistletoes growing closely on the same branch can genuinely be said to struggle with each other. Since birds help spread mistletoe, its survival relies on them; it can be metaphorically described as struggling with other fruit-bearing plants to attract birds so they’ll eat its seeds rather than those of other plants. In all these various senses, which overlap, I use the term struggle for existence for convenience.

A struggle for existence inevitably follows from the high rate at which all organic beings tend to increase. Every being, which during its natural lifetime produces several eggs or seeds, must suffer destruction during some period of its life, and during some season or occasional year, otherwise, on the principle of geometrical increase, its numbers would quickly become so inordinately great that no country could support the product. Hence, as more individuals are produced than can possibly survive, there must in every case be a struggle for existence, either one individual with another of the same species, or with the individuals of distinct species, or with the physical conditions of life. It is the doctrine of Malthus applied with manifold force to the whole animal and vegetable kingdoms; for in this case there can be no artificial increase of food, and no prudential restraint from marriage. Although some species may be now increasing, more or less rapidly, in numbers, all cannot do so, for the world would not hold them.

A struggle for survival inevitably arises from the high rate at which all living things tend to reproduce. Every organism that produces multiple eggs or seeds during its lifetime must face destruction at some point, whether during a specific season or an occasional year; otherwise, based on the principle of exponential growth, its numbers would quickly reach levels that no environment could sustain. Therefore, since more individuals are born than can possibly make it, there must always be a struggle for survival—either among individuals of the same species, between different species, or against the physical conditions of life. This is Malthus’s theory applied powerfully to both the animal and plant kingdoms because, in this case, there can be no artificial increase in food supply and no voluntary restraint on reproduction. While some species may currently be increasing in numbers, not all can do so, or the world simply wouldn't be able to accommodate them.

There is no exception to the rule that every organic being naturally increases at so high a rate, that if not destroyed, the earth would soon be covered by the progeny of a single pair. Even slow-breeding man has doubled in twenty-five years, and at this rate, in a few thousand years, there would literally not be standing room for his progeny. Linnæus has calculated that if an annual plant produced only two seeds—and there is no plant so unproductive as this—and their seedlings next year produced two, and so on, then in twenty years there would be a million plants. The elephant is reckoned to be the slowest breeder of all known animals, and I have taken some pains to estimate its probable minimum rate of natural increase: it will be under the mark to assume that it breeds when thirty years old, and goes on breeding till ninety years old, bringing forth three pair of young in this interval; if this be so, at the end of the fifth century there would be alive fifteen million elephants, descended from the first pair.

There’s no exception to the rule that every living organism naturally reproduces at such a high rate that, if not kept in check, the earth would soon be filled with the offspring of just one pair. Even humans, who reproduce slowly, double their population in twenty-five years, and at that pace, in a few thousand years, there wouldn’t literally be enough space for their descendants. Linnæus figured that if an annual plant produced just two seeds—and no plant is less productive than that—and those seedlings produced two the next year, and so on, then in twenty years there would be a million plants. The elephant is thought to be the slowest reproducer of all known animals, and I’ve made some effort to estimate its likely minimum rate of natural increase: it’s reasonable to assume it breeds at thirty years old and continues until ninety, producing three pairs of young during that time; if that’s the case, by the end of five centuries, there would be fifteen million elephants alive, all descended from the original pair.

But we have better evidence on this subject than mere theoretical calculations, namely, the numerous recorded cases of the astonishingly rapid increase of various animals in a state of nature, when circumstances have been favourable to them during two or three following seasons. Still more striking is the evidence from our domestic animals of many kinds which have run wild in several parts of the world: if the statements of the rate of increase of slow-breeding cattle and horses in South America, and latterly in Australia, had not been well authenticated, they would have been quite incredible. So it is with plants: cases could be given of introduced plants which have become common throughout whole islands in a period of less than ten years. Several of the plants now most numerous over the wide plains of La Plata, clothing square leagues of surface almost to the exclusion of all other plants, have been introduced from Europe; and there are plants which now range in India, as I hear from Dr. Falconer, from Cape Comorin to the Himalaya, which have been imported from America since its discovery. In such cases, and endless instances could be given, no one supposes that the fertility of these animals or plants has been suddenly and temporarily increased in any sensible degree. The obvious explanation is that the conditions of life have been very favourable, and that there has consequently been less destruction of the old and young, and that nearly all the young have been enabled to breed. In such cases the geometrical ratio of increase, the result of which never fails to be surprising, simply explains the extraordinarily rapid increase and wide diffusion of naturalised productions in their new homes.

But we have stronger evidence on this topic than just theoretical calculations: the many recorded instances of the surprisingly rapid growth of various animals in the wild when conditions have been favorable for two or three consecutive seasons. Even more compelling is the evidence from various domestic animals that have gone feral in different parts of the world. If the reports on the increase of slow-breeding cattle and horses in South America, and more recently in Australia, hadn't been well documented, they would seem unbelievable. The same goes for plants: there are examples of introduced plants that have spread widely across entire islands in less than ten years. Several of the plants that are now most abundant in the vast plains of La Plata, covering large areas almost entirely by themselves, have been brought from Europe; and there are plants now found in India, as noted by Dr. Falconer, that range from Cape Comorin to the Himalayas and have been introduced from America since its discovery. In these cases, and countless more could be mentioned, no one believes that the fertility of these animals or plants has suddenly and temporarily increased in any significant way. The clear explanation is that the living conditions have been very favorable, leading to less mortality among the old and young, and that nearly all the young have been able to reproduce. In such instances, the geometric ratio of increase, which is always astonishing, simply accounts for the incredibly rapid growth and wide spread of naturalized species in their new environments.

In a state of nature almost every plant produces seed, and amongst animals there are very few which do not annually pair. Hence we may confidently assert, that all plants and animals are tending to increase at a geometrical ratio, that all would most rapidly stock every station in which they could any how exist, and that the geometrical tendency to increase must be checked by destruction at some period of life. Our familiarity with the larger domestic animals tends, I think, to mislead us: we see no great destruction falling on them, and we forget that thousands are annually slaughtered for food, and that in a state of nature an equal number would have somehow to be disposed of.

In nature, almost every plant produces seeds, and among animals, there are very few that don't mate every year. So we can confidently say that all plants and animals are inclined to grow at a geometric rate. They would quickly populate any environment where they could survive, and this geometric growth needs to be limited by some form of destruction at some point in their lives. Our familiarity with larger domestic animals can be misleading; we notice that they don’t face significant loss, and we forget that thousands are slaughtered for food each year, and in the wild, an equal number would have to be dealt with somehow.

The only difference between organisms which annually produce eggs or seeds by the thousand, and those which produce extremely few, is, that the slow-breeders would require a few more years to people, under favourable conditions, a whole district, let it be ever so large. The condor lays a couple of eggs and the ostrich a score, and yet in the same country the condor may be the more numerous of the two: the Fulmar petrel lays but one egg, yet it is believed to be the most numerous bird in the world. One fly deposits hundreds of eggs, and another, like the hippobosca, a single one; but this difference does not determine how many individuals of the two species can be supported in a district. A large number of eggs is of some importance to those species, which depend on a rapidly fluctuating amount of food, for it allows them rapidly to increase in number. But the real importance of a large number of eggs or seeds is to make up for much destruction at some period of life; and this period in the great majority of cases is an early one. If an animal can in any way protect its own eggs or young, a small number may be produced, and yet the average stock be fully kept up; but if many eggs or young are destroyed, many must be produced, or the species will become extinct. It would suffice to keep up the full number of a tree, which lived on an average for a thousand years, if a single seed were produced once in a thousand years, supposing that this seed were never destroyed, and could be ensured to germinate in a fitting place. So that in all cases, the average number of any animal or plant depends only indirectly on the number of its eggs or seeds.

The only difference between organisms that produce thousands of eggs or seeds each year and those that produce very few is that the slow-reproducing ones would need a few more years to populate, under favorable conditions, an entire area, no matter how large it is. The condor lays a couple of eggs while the ostrich lays about twenty, yet in the same region, the condor could be more numerous than the ostrich. The Fulmar petrel lays just one egg, yet it's believed to be the most abundant bird in the world. One fly lays hundreds of eggs, and another, like the hippobosca, lays only one; but this difference doesn't decide how many individuals of each species can thrive in a given area. A large number of eggs is important for those species that rely on quickly changing food supplies because it enables them to boost their populations fast. However, the main reason for producing a lot of eggs or seeds is to compensate for significant losses at some stage of life, which in most cases happens early on. If an animal can protect its own eggs or young, it can produce fewer offspring while still maintaining a stable population. But if many eggs or young are lost, then many must be produced, or the species risks extinction. For a tree that lives, on average, a thousand years, it would be enough to produce just one seed every thousand years, as long as that seed isn't destroyed and can grow in a suitable location. This means that the average number of any animal or plant depends mainly on factors beyond just the number of its eggs or seeds.

In looking at Nature, it is most necessary to keep the foregoing considerations always in mind—never to forget that every single organic being around us may be said to be striving to the utmost to increase in numbers; that each lives by a struggle at some period of its life; that heavy destruction inevitably falls either on the young or old, during each generation or at recurrent intervals. Lighten any check, mitigate the destruction ever so little, and the number of the species will almost instantaneously increase to any amount. The face of Nature may be compared to a yielding surface, with ten thousand sharp wedges packed close together and driven inwards by incessant blows, sometimes one wedge being struck, and then another with greater force.

When observing Nature, it's crucial to keep the previous points in mind—never forget that every single living thing around us is essentially trying its hardest to reproduce; that each one faces challenges at some point in its life; that significant destruction inevitably affects either the young or the old, during each generation or at regular intervals. Ease any obstacle, lessen the destruction just a bit, and the population of the species will almost immediately increase dramatically. The landscape of Nature can be likened to a soft surface with thousands of sharp wedges tightly packed together, constantly being driven inwards by relentless impacts, sometimes striking one wedge, then another with even more force.

What checks the natural tendency of each species to increase in number is most obscure. Look at the most vigorous species; by as much as it swarms in numbers, by so much will its tendency to increase be still further increased. We know not exactly what the checks are in even one single instance. Nor will this surprise any one who reflects how ignorant we are on this head, even in regard to mankind, so incomparably better known than any other animal. This subject has been ably treated by several authors, and I shall, in my future work, discuss some of the checks at considerable length, more especially in regard to the feral animals of South America. Here I will make only a few remarks, just to recall to the reader’s mind some of the chief points. Eggs or very young animals seem generally to suffer most, but this is not invariably the case. With plants there is a vast destruction of seeds, but, from some observations which I have made, I believe that it is the seedlings which suffer most from germinating in ground already thickly stocked with other plants. Seedlings, also, are destroyed in vast numbers by various enemies; for instance, on a piece of ground three feet long and two wide, dug and cleared, and where there could be no choking from other plants, I marked all the seedlings of our native weeds as they came up, and out of the 357 no less than 295 were destroyed, chiefly by slugs and insects. If turf which has long been mown, and the case would be the same with turf closely browsed by quadrupeds, be let to grow, the more vigorous plants gradually kill the less vigorous, though fully grown, plants: thus out of twenty species growing on a little plot of turf (three feet by four) nine species perished from the other species being allowed to grow up freely.

What limits the natural tendency of each species to grow in number is quite unclear. Look at the most vigorous species; the more it multiplies, the stronger its urge to increase. We don't really know what the limits are, even in a single case. This shouldn't surprise anyone who thinks about our ignorance on this matter, even regarding humans, who are so much better understood than any other animal. Several authors have addressed this topic expertly, and I will discuss some of the constraints in detail in my future work, especially concerning feral animals in South America. Here, I'll just make a few comments to remind readers of some key points. Eggs or very young animals generally suffer the most, although this isn’t always the case. With plants, a large number of seeds are destroyed, but from some observations I’ve made, I believe it’s the seedlings that actually suffer the most when they germinate in areas already crowded with other plants. Seedlings are also lost in huge numbers to various predators; for example, in a patch of ground three feet long and two feet wide, which was dug and cleared—where other plants couldn’t choke them out—I marked all the seedlings of our native weeds as they sprouted, and out of 357, no less than 295 were killed, mainly by slugs and insects. If grass that has been regularly mown, and the same goes for grass heavily grazed by animals, is allowed to grow, the stronger plants gradually outcompete and kill the weaker, even fully grown, plants: thus, out of twenty species growing in a small area of turf (three feet by four), nine species died out when the other species were allowed to grow freely.

The amount of food for each species of course gives the extreme limit to which each can increase; but very frequently it is not the obtaining food, but the serving as prey to other animals, which determines the average numbers of a species. Thus, there seems to be little doubt that the stock of partridges, grouse, and hares on any large estate depends chiefly on the destruction of vermin. If not one head of game were shot during the next twenty years in England, and, at the same time, if no vermin were destroyed, there would, in all probability, be less game than at present, although hundreds of thousands of game animals are now annually killed. On the other hand, in some cases, as with the elephant and rhinoceros, none are destroyed by beasts of prey: even the tiger in India most rarely dares to attack a young elephant protected by its dam.

The amount of food available for each species sets the maximum limit on how much they can grow; however, it’s often not about getting food but rather being preyed upon by other animals that affects the average population of a species. It seems clear that the number of partridges, grouse, and hares on any large estate mostly relies on controlling vermin. If no game were hunted over the next twenty years in England, but no vermin were eliminated, there would likely be fewer game animals than we have now, despite the fact that hundreds of thousands are currently killed each year. Conversely, in some cases, like with elephants and rhinoceroses, they face no threats from predators; even tigers in India very rarely try to attack a young elephant when its mother is nearby.

Climate plays an important part in determining the average numbers of a species, and periodical seasons of extreme cold or drought, I believe to be the most effective of all checks. I estimated that the winter of 1854-55 destroyed four-fifths of the birds in my own grounds; and this is a tremendous destruction, when we remember that ten per cent. is an extraordinarily severe mortality from epidemics with man. The action of climate seems at first sight to be quite independent of the struggle for existence; but in so far as climate chiefly acts in reducing food, it brings on the most severe struggle between the individuals, whether of the same or of distinct species, which subsist on the same kind of food. Even when climate, for instance extreme cold, acts directly, it will be the least vigorous, or those which have got least food through the advancing winter, which will suffer most. When we travel from south to north, or from a damp region to a dry, we invariably see some species gradually getting rarer and rarer, and finally disappearing; and the change of climate being conspicuous, we are tempted to attribute the whole effect to its direct action. But this is a very false view: we forget that each species, even where it most abounds, is constantly suffering enormous destruction at some period of its life, from enemies or from competitors for the same place and food; and if these enemies or competitors be in the least degree favoured by any slight change of climate, they will increase in numbers, and, as each area is already fully stocked with inhabitants, the other species will decrease. When we travel southward and see a species decreasing in numbers, we may feel sure that the cause lies quite as much in other species being favoured, as in this one being hurt. So it is when we travel northward, but in a somewhat lesser degree, for the number of species of all kinds, and therefore of competitors, decreases northwards; hence in going northward, or in ascending a mountain, we far oftener meet with stunted forms, due to the directly injurious action of climate, than we do in proceeding southwards or in descending a mountain. When we reach the Arctic regions, or snow-capped summits, or absolute deserts, the struggle for life is almost exclusively with the elements.

Climate significantly influences the average population of a species, and periods of extreme cold or drought are, I believe, the most impactful factors. I estimated that the winter of 1854-55 wiped out four-fifths of the birds on my property; this is a staggering loss when we consider that a ten percent mortality rate is considered extraordinarily high for humans due to epidemics. At first glance, climate action appears separate from the struggle for survival; however, since climate mostly affects food availability, it intensifies competition among individuals of the same or different species that depend on the same food sources. Even when climate directly impacts species, such as in extreme cold, it's the less vigorous individuals or those with less food during the harsh winter that suffer the most. As we move from south to north or from wet to dry areas, we frequently observe some species becoming increasingly rare and eventually disappearing; with the changing climate evident, we tend to wrongly attribute the entire effect to direct climate action. But this perspective is misleading: we often overlook that each species, even in abundance, continually faces significant destruction at different life stages due to predators or competition for habitat and food; if these predators or competitors benefit even slightly from a climate change, their populations will grow, and since any area is already home to a full range of species, the affected species will decline. When moving south and witnessing a species decrease in numbers, we can be confident the cause is just as much about other species thriving as it is about the decline of the species in question. The same occurs when moving north, but to a lesser extent, since the number of species and, consequently, competitors decreases as we head north. Thus, traveling north or ascending a mountain, we often encounter stunted forms resulting from the directly harmful effects of climate more frequently than when we travel south or descend a mountain. In the Arctic regions, at snow-capped peaks, or in absolute deserts, the fight for survival primarily involves coping with the elements.

That climate acts in main part indirectly by favouring other species, we may clearly see in the prodigious number of plants in our gardens which can perfectly well endure our climate, but which never become naturalised, for they cannot compete with our native plants, nor resist destruction by our native animals.

That climate primarily works indirectly by supporting other species. We can clearly see this in the huge number of plants in our gardens that can thrive in our climate but never become established because they can't compete with our native plants or withstand destruction by our native animals.

When a species, owing to highly favourable circumstances, increases inordinately in numbers in a small tract, epidemics—at least, this seems generally to occur with our game animals—often ensue: and here we have a limiting check independent of the struggle for life. But even some of these so-called epidemics appear to be due to parasitic worms, which have from some cause, possibly in part through facility of diffusion amongst the crowded animals, been disproportionably favoured: and here comes in a sort of struggle between the parasite and its prey.

When a species experiences extremely favorable conditions, it can massively increase in numbers in a small area, leading to outbreaks—at least this tends to happen with our game animals—often as a result. This represents a limiting factor separate from the competition for survival. However, some of these so-called outbreaks seem to be caused by parasitic worms that, for some reason, possibly due to their ability to spread among the crowded animals, have become disproportionately successful. This introduces a kind of competition between the parasite and its host.

On the other hand, in many cases, a large stock of individuals of the same species, relatively to the numbers of its enemies, is absolutely necessary for its preservation. Thus we can easily raise plenty of corn and rape-seed, etc., in our fields, because the seeds are in great excess compared with the number of birds which feed on them; nor can the birds, though having a superabundance of food at this one season, increase in number proportionally to the supply of seed, as their numbers are checked during winter: but any one who has tried, knows how troublesome it is to get seed from a few wheat or other such plants in a garden; I have in this case lost every single seed. This view of the necessity of a large stock of the same species for its preservation, explains, I believe, some singular facts in nature, such as that of very rare plants being sometimes extremely abundant in the few spots where they do occur; and that of some social plants being social, that is, abounding in individuals, even on the extreme confines of their range. For in such cases, we may believe, that a plant could exist only where the conditions of its life were so favourable that many could exist together, and thus save each other from utter destruction. I should add that the good effects of frequent intercrossing, and the ill effects of close interbreeding, probably come into play in some of these cases; but on this intricate subject I will not here enlarge.

On the other hand, in many cases, having a large population of the same species, relative to the number of its predators, is essential for its survival. This is why we can easily grow a lot of corn and rapeseed in our fields; the seeds are far more abundant than the birds that eat them. Even though the birds have plenty of food during this season, they can't increase in numbers in proportion to the seed supply because their population is limited during winter. Anyone who has tried knows how difficult it is to get seeds from a few wheat or other plants in a garden; in my case, I lost every single seed. This idea that a large population of the same species is necessary for survival explains, I believe, some interesting phenomena in nature, such as the fact that very rare plants can sometimes be extremely abundant in the few locations where they do exist, and that certain social plants are plentiful, even at the farthest edges of their range. In these situations, we can assume that a plant can thrive only where the conditions are so favorable that many can grow together, thus protecting each other from complete extinction. I should mention that the benefits of frequent crossbreeding and the downsides of close interbreeding likely play a role in some of these cases; however, I won't delve into this complex topic here.

Many cases are on record showing how complex and unexpected are the checks and relations between organic beings, which have to struggle together in the same country. I will give only a single instance, which, though a simple one, has interested me. In Staffordshire, on the estate of a relation where I had ample means of investigation, there was a large and extremely barren heath, which had never been touched by the hand of man; but several hundred acres of exactly the same nature had been enclosed twenty-five years previously and planted with Scotch fir. The change in the native vegetation of the planted part of the heath was most remarkable, more than is generally seen in passing from one quite different soil to another: not only the proportional numbers of the heath-plants were wholly changed, but twelve species of plants (not counting grasses and carices) flourished in the plantations, which could not be found on the heath. The effect on the insects must have been still greater, for six insectivorous birds were very common in the plantations, which were not to be seen on the heath; and the heath was frequented by two or three distinct insectivorous birds. Here we see how potent has been the effect of the introduction of a single tree, nothing whatever else having been done, with the exception that the land had been enclosed, so that cattle could not enter. But how important an element enclosure is, I plainly saw near Farnham, in Surrey. Here there are extensive heaths, with a few clumps of old Scotch firs on the distant hill-tops: within the last ten years large spaces have been enclosed, and self-sown firs are now springing up in multitudes, so close together that all cannot live. When I ascertained that these young trees had not been sown or planted, I was so much surprised at their numbers that I went to several points of view, whence I could examine hundreds of acres of the unenclosed heath, and literally I could not see a single Scotch fir, except the old planted clumps. But on looking closely between the stems of the heath, I found a multitude of seedlings and little trees, which had been perpetually browsed down by the cattle. In one square yard, at a point some hundred yards distant from one of the old clumps, I counted thirty-two little trees; and one of them, judging from the rings of growth, had during twenty-six years tried to raise its head above the stems of the heath, and had failed. No wonder that, as soon as the land was enclosed, it became thickly clothed with vigorously growing young firs. Yet the heath was so extremely barren and so extensive that no one would ever have imagined that cattle would have so closely and effectually searched it for food.

Many examples show how intricate and surprising the interactions and relationships are between living organisms that have to compete in the same environment. I'll share just one instance that, while simple, has captured my interest. In Staffordshire, on a relative's estate where I had plenty of opportunity to investigate, there was a large and extremely barren heath that had never been disturbed by humans; however, several hundred acres of identical terrain had been enclosed and planted with Scotch fir twenty-five years earlier. The change in the native vegetation of the planted area was striking, more than is typically observed when moving from one distinctly different type of soil to another: not only were the ratios of heath plants completely altered, but there were twelve species of plants (excluding grasses and sedges) thriving in the plantations that could not be found on the heath. The impact on the insects must have been even more significant, as six insect-eating birds were common in the plantations but absent on the heath; meanwhile, the heath was visited by two or three distinct species of insectivorous birds. This illustrates how powerful the effect of introducing just one type of tree can be, especially since nothing else was done other than enclosing the land to keep cattle out. However, I clearly saw how crucial enclosure is near Farnham, in Surrey. Here, there are vast heaths with a few clumps of old Scotch firs on the far-off hills: in the last ten years, large areas have been enclosed, and self-sown firs are now sprouting in huge numbers, so close together that not all of them can survive. When I discovered that these young trees had not been intentionally sown or planted, I was so surprised by their numbers that I went to several vantage points from which I could observe hundreds of acres of the open heath, and literally, I could not see a single Scotch fir, except for the old planted clumps. But upon closer inspection between the stems of the heath, I found many seedlings and small trees that had been continuously grazed by cattle. In one square yard, a little over a hundred yards from one of the old clumps, I counted thirty-two small trees; and one of them, based on its growth rings, had attempted for twenty-six years to grow above the heath's stems but had not succeeded. It's no surprise that as soon as the land was enclosed, it quickly became densely covered with vigorously growing young firs. Yet the heath was so barren and vast that no one would have ever guessed that cattle would have searched it so thoroughly for food.

Here we see that cattle absolutely determine the existence of the Scotch fir; but in several parts of the world insects determine the existence of cattle. Perhaps Paraguay offers the most curious instance of this; for here neither cattle nor horses nor dogs have ever run wild, though they swarm southward and northward in a feral state; and Azara and Rengger have shown that this is caused by the greater number in Paraguay of a certain fly, which lays its eggs in the navels of these animals when first born. The increase of these flies, numerous as they are, must be habitually checked by some means, probably by birds. Hence, if certain insectivorous birds (whose numbers are probably regulated by hawks or beasts of prey) were to increase in Paraguay, the flies would decrease—then cattle and horses would become feral, and this would certainly greatly alter (as indeed I have observed in parts of South America) the vegetation: this again would largely affect the insects; and this, as we just have seen in Staffordshire, the insectivorous birds, and so onwards in ever-increasing circles of complexity. We began this series by insectivorous birds, and we have ended with them. Not that in nature the relations can ever be as simple as this. Battle within battle must ever be recurring with varying success; and yet in the long-run the forces are so nicely balanced, that the face of nature remains uniform for long periods of time, though assuredly the merest trifle would often give the victory to one organic being over another. Nevertheless so profound is our ignorance, and so high our presumption, that we marvel when we hear of the extinction of an organic being; and as we do not see the cause, we invoke cataclysms to desolate the world, or invent laws on the duration of the forms of life!

Here we see that cattle completely determine the presence of the Scotch fir; however, in various parts of the world, insects determine the presence of cattle. Paraguay offers perhaps the most interesting example of this; here neither cattle, horses, nor dogs have ever lived wild, even though they thrive in a feral state both to the south and north. Azara and Rengger have demonstrated that this is due to the higher number of a specific fly in Paraguay that lays its eggs in the navels of these animals when they are first born. The population of these flies, abundant as they are, must be kept in check by some means, likely by birds. Therefore, if certain insect-eating birds (whose populations are probably regulated by hawks or predators) were to increase in Paraguay, the flies would decrease—leading to cattle and horses becoming feral, which would certainly change (as indeed I have observed in parts of South America) the vegetation. This would, in turn, significantly impact the insects; and as seen recently in Staffordshire, the insectivorous birds, and so forth in ever-expanding circles of complexity. We started this discussion with insectivorous birds, and we conclude with them. However, nature's relationships are never as simple as this. Conflicts within conflicts will always arise, with varying levels of success; yet in the long run, the forces are so finely balanced that the face of nature remains consistent over extended periods, although even a minor change could tip the scales in favor of one organism over another. Despite this, our ignorance is profound, and our arrogance is great, leading us to wonder when we hear about the extinction of an organism; and since we do not see the cause, we resort to calling forth cataclysms to devastate the world or create theories about the lifespan of living forms!

I am tempted to give one more instance showing how plants and animals, most remote in the scale of nature, are bound together by a web of complex relations. I shall hereafter have occasion to show that the exotic Lobelia fulgens, in this part of England, is never visited by insects, and consequently, from its peculiar structure, never can set a seed. Many of our orchidaceous plants absolutely require the visits of moths to remove their pollen-masses and thus to fertilise them. I have, also, reason to believe that humble-bees are indispensable to the fertilisation of the heartsease (Viola tricolor), for other bees do not visit this flower. From experiments which I have tried, I have found that the visits of bees, if not indispensable, are at least highly beneficial to the fertilisation of our clovers; but humble-bees alone visit the common red clover (Trifolium pratense), as other bees cannot reach the nectar. Hence I have very little doubt, that if the whole genus of humble-bees became extinct or very rare in England, the heartsease and red clover would become very rare, or wholly disappear. The number of humble-bees in any district depends in a great degree on the number of field-mice, which destroy their combs and nests; and Mr. H. Newman, who has long attended to the habits of humble-bees, believes that “more than two thirds of them are thus destroyed all over England.” Now the number of mice is largely dependent, as every one knows, on the number of cats; and Mr. Newman says, “Near villages and small towns I have found the nests of humble-bees more numerous than elsewhere, which I attribute to the number of cats that destroy the mice.” Hence it is quite credible that the presence of a feline animal in large numbers in a district might determine, through the intervention first of mice and then of bees, the frequency of certain flowers in that district!

I want to share another example of how plants and animals, even those that seem completely unrelated, are interconnected by a complex web of relationships. I will later show that the exotic Lobelia fulgens in this area of England is never visited by insects and, due to its unique structure, can never produce seeds. Many of our orchid species rely on moths to move their pollen masses and fertilize them. I also believe that humble-bees are crucial for the fertilization of the heartsease (Viola tricolor) since other bees do not visit this flower. From my experiments, I've found that the visits from bees, while perhaps not essential, are definitely beneficial for fertilizing our clovers; however, only humble-bees visit the common red clover (Trifolium pratense) because other bees can't reach the nectar. I am quite convinced that if all humble-bees were to become extinct or very rare in England, heartsease and red clover would become quite rare or disappear altogether. The population of humble-bees in any area largely depends on the number of field mice, which destroy their nests; Mr. H. Newman, who has studied humble-bee behavior for a long time, believes that “more than two thirds of them are thus destroyed all over England.” The number of mice, as everyone knows, is closely tied to the number of cats; Mr. Newman notes, “Near villages and small towns I have found the nests of humble-bees more numerous than elsewhere, which I attribute to the number of cats that destroy the mice.” Therefore, it’s entirely plausible that a significant presence of cats in an area could influence, through the intermediary effects of mice and bees, the abundance of certain flowers in that area!

In the case of every species, many different checks, acting at different periods of life, and during different seasons or years, probably come into play; some one check or some few being generally the most potent, but all concurring in determining the average number or even the existence of the species. In some cases it can be shown that widely-different checks act on the same species in different districts. When we look at the plants and bushes clothing an entangled bank, we are tempted to attribute their proportional numbers and kinds to what we call chance. But how false a view is this! Every one has heard that when an American forest is cut down, a very different vegetation springs up; but it has been observed that the trees now growing on the ancient Indian mounds, in the Southern United States, display the same beautiful diversity and proportion of kinds as in the surrounding virgin forests. What a struggle between the several kinds of trees must here have gone on during long centuries, each annually scattering its seeds by the thousand; what war between insect and insect—between insects, snails, and other animals with birds and beasts of prey—all striving to increase, and all feeding on each other or on the trees or their seeds and seedlings, or on the other plants which first clothed the ground and thus checked the growth of the trees! Throw up a handful of feathers, and all must fall to the ground according to definite laws; but how simple is this problem compared to the action and reaction of the innumerable plants and animals which have determined, in the course of centuries, the proportional numbers and kinds of trees now growing on the old Indian ruins!

In every species, various factors come into play at different points in life and during different seasons or years. Some specific factor or a few tend to be the most influential, but all contribute to determining the average population or even the survival of the species. In some instances, it's clear that vastly different factors affect the same species in different areas. When we observe the plants and shrubs covering a tangled bank, we might be tempted to think their numbers and varieties are just a matter of chance. But that's a misleading perspective! Everyone knows that when a forest in America is cleared, a completely different type of vegetation takes over. However, it's been noted that the trees now growing on ancient Indian mounds in the Southern United States show the same beautiful variety and proportion as in the surrounding untouched forests. There must have been an ongoing struggle among different types of trees over many centuries, each one releasing thousands of seeds every year; there has been fierce competition among insects, insects versus other creatures, and between insects and birds or predators—all trying to thrive, all feeding on one another or on the trees, their seeds, or on the other plants that initially covered the ground and limited the trees' growth! If you throw a handful of feathers in the air, they'll fall to the ground according to clear laws; but this is such a simple problem compared to the complex interactions of the countless plants and animals that, over centuries, have shaped the current numbers and varieties of trees growing on those ancient Indian sites!

The dependency of one organic being on another, as of a parasite on its prey, lies generally between beings remote in the scale of nature. This is often the case with those which may strictly be said to struggle with each other for existence, as in the case of locusts and grass-feeding quadrupeds. But the struggle almost invariably will be most severe between the individuals of the same species, for they frequent the same districts, require the same food, and are exposed to the same dangers. In the case of varieties of the same species, the struggle will generally be almost equally severe, and we sometimes see the contest soon decided: for instance, if several varieties of wheat be sown together, and the mixed seed be resown, some of the varieties which best suit the soil or climate, or are naturally the most fertile, will beat the others and so yield more seed, and will consequently in a few years quite supplant the other varieties. To keep up a mixed stock of even such extremely close varieties as the variously coloured sweet-peas, they must be each year harvested separately, and the seed then mixed in due proportion, otherwise the weaker kinds will steadily decrease in numbers and disappear. So again with the varieties of sheep: it has been asserted that certain mountain-varieties will starve out other mountain-varieties, so that they cannot be kept together. The same result has followed from keeping together different varieties of the medicinal leech. It may even be doubted whether the varieties of any one of our domestic plants or animals have so exactly the same strength, habits, and constitution, that the original proportions of a mixed stock could be kept up for half a dozen generations, if they were allowed to struggle together, like beings in a state of nature, and if the seed or young were not annually sorted.

The reliance of one living organism on another, much like a parasite depends on its host, generally occurs between beings that are far apart on the evolutionary scale. This is often true for those that are strictly competing for survival, like locusts and grazing mammals. However, the competition is usually most intense among individuals of the same species, as they inhabit the same areas, need the same food, and face the same threats. For different varieties of the same species, the competition is typically just as fierce, and we sometimes see the outcome quickly decided: for example, if several varieties of wheat are planted together and the mixed seeds are replanted, some varieties that are better suited to the soil or climate, or are naturally more fertile, will outcompete the others, producing more seeds and eventually completely replacing the other varieties. To maintain a mixed stock of closely related varieties like the variously colored sweet peas, they must be harvested separately each year, and then the seeds must be mixed in the right proportions; otherwise, the weaker varieties will steadily decline and disappear. The same goes for different sheep varieties: it's been claimed that certain mountain varieties can outcompete other mountain varieties, making it impossible to keep them together. A similar outcome has been observed with different varieties of the medicinal leech. It can even be questioned whether any of our domesticated plants or animals have exactly the same strength, habits, and constitution to maintain the original ratios of a mixed stock over several generations, if they are allowed to compete naturally and if the seeds or young are not sorted annually.

As species of the same genus have usually, though by no means invariably, some similarity in habits and constitution, and always in structure, the struggle will generally be more severe between species of the same genus, when they come into competition with each other, than between species of distinct genera. We see this in the recent extension over parts of the United States of one species of swallow having caused the decrease of another species. The recent increase of the missel-thrush in parts of Scotland has caused the decrease of the song-thrush. How frequently we hear of one species of rat taking the place of another species under the most different climates! In Russia the small Asiatic cockroach has everywhere driven before it its great congener. One species of charlock will supplant another, and so in other cases. We can dimly see why the competition should be most severe between allied forms, which fill nearly the same place in the economy of nature; but probably in no one case could we precisely say why one species has been victorious over another in the great battle of life.

As species within the same genus often share some similarities in habits and structure, the competition is usually more intense between these species than between those from different genera. We see this in the recent spread of one swallow species across parts of the United States, which has led to a decline in another species. Similarly, the recent rise of the missel-thrush in certain areas of Scotland has resulted in a decrease of the song-thrush. It's common to hear about one species of rat replacing another in various climates. In Russia, the small Asiatic cockroach has pushed out its larger cousin everywhere. One species of charlock may take over another, and there are many other examples. We can vaguely understand why competition is toughest among closely related species that occupy similar roles in nature, but we can never pinpoint exactly why one species succeeds over another in the ongoing struggle for survival.

A corollary of the highest importance may be deduced from the foregoing remarks, namely, that the structure of every organic being is related, in the most essential yet often hidden manner, to that of all other organic beings, with which it comes into competition for food or residence, or from which it has to escape, or on which it preys. This is obvious in the structure of the teeth and talons of the tiger; and in that of the legs and claws of the parasite which clings to the hair on the tiger’s body. But in the beautifully plumed seed of the dandelion, and in the flattened and fringed legs of the water-beetle, the relation seems at first confined to the elements of air and water. Yet the advantage of plumed seeds no doubt stands in the closest relation to the land being already thickly clothed by other plants; so that the seeds may be widely distributed and fall on unoccupied ground. In the water-beetle, the structure of its legs, so well adapted for diving, allows it to compete with other aquatic insects, to hunt for its own prey, and to escape serving as prey to other animals.

An important conclusion can be drawn from the earlier comments: the structure of every living organism is fundamentally connected, often in subtle ways, to that of all other organisms. These connections arise from competition for food or habitat, the need to escape predators, or the act of hunting. This is clear in the design of a tiger's teeth and claws, as well as in the legs and claws of the parasites that cling to its fur. However, in the case of the beautifully seeded dandelion and the water-beetle with its flattened, fringed legs, the relationship might initially appear limited to air and water. Yet, the advantage of plumed seeds is tightly linked to the fact that the land is often densely populated by other plants, allowing the seeds to be distributed widely and land on unused soil. For the water-beetle, the unique structure of its legs is perfectly tailored for diving, enabling it to compete with other water insects, hunt for its own food, and avoid becoming prey to other creatures.

The store of nutriment laid up within the seeds of many plants seems at first sight to have no sort of relation to other plants. But from the strong growth of young plants produced from such seeds (as peas and beans), when sown in the midst of long grass, I suspect that the chief use of the nutriment in the seed is to favour the growth of the young seedling, whilst struggling with other plants growing vigorously all around.

The nutrients stored in the seeds of many plants might seem unrelated to other plants at first glance. However, observing the strong growth of young plants like peas and beans when they're sown among tall grass, I suspect that the main purpose of the nutrients in the seed is to support the growth of the young seedling as it competes with the other thriving plants around it.

Look at a plant in the midst of its range, why does it not double or quadruple its numbers? We know that it can perfectly well withstand a little more heat or cold, dampness or dryness, for elsewhere it ranges into slightly hotter or colder, damper or drier districts. In this case we can clearly see that if we wished in imagination to give the plant the power of increasing in number, we should have to give it some advantage over its competitors, or over the animals which preyed on it. On the confines of its geographical range, a change of constitution with respect to climate would clearly be an advantage to our plant; but we have reason to believe that only a few plants or animals range so far, that they are destroyed by the rigour of the climate alone. Not until we reach the extreme confines of life, in the arctic regions or on the borders of an utter desert, will competition cease. The land may be extremely cold or dry, yet there will be competition between some few species, or between the individuals of the same species, for the warmest or dampest spots.

Look at a plant in the middle of its range; why doesn’t it just double or quadruple its numbers? We know it can handle a little more heat or cold, dampness or dryness because it thrives in slightly hotter or colder, wetter or drier areas elsewhere. Here, we can see that if we wanted to imagine giving the plant the ability to increase in number, we’d have to give it some edge over its competitors or the animals that prey on it. At the edges of its geographical range, a change in its ability to adapt to climate would clearly be a benefit to our plant; however, we have reason to believe that only a few plants or animals can extend so far that they’re destroyed solely by the harshness of the climate. Not until we reach the extreme edges of life, in the Arctic regions or on the brink of a complete desert, does competition cease. The land may be extremely cold or dry, yet there will still be competition among a few species or even among individuals of the same species for the warmest or dampest spots.

Hence, also, we can see that when a plant or animal is placed in a new country amongst new competitors, though the climate may be exactly the same as in its former home, yet the conditions of its life will generally be changed in an essential manner. If we wished to increase its average numbers in its new home, we should have to modify it in a different way to what we should have done in its native country; for we should have to give it some advantage over a different set of competitors or enemies.

Therefore, we can see that when a plant or animal is introduced to a new country with different competitors, even if the climate is exactly the same as in its original home, the conditions of its life will usually change significantly. If we want to increase its population in the new environment, we will need to modify it differently than we would have in its native country; we would have to give it some advantage over a new set of competitors or predators.

It is good thus to try in our imagination to give any form some advantage over another. Probably in no single instance should we know what to do, so as to succeed. It will convince us of our ignorance on the mutual relations of all organic beings; a conviction as necessary, as it seems to be difficult to acquire. All that we can do, is to keep steadily in mind that each organic being is striving to increase at a geometrical ratio; that each at some period of its life, during some season of the year, during each generation or at intervals, has to struggle for life, and to suffer great destruction. When we reflect on this struggle, we may console ourselves with the full belief, that the war of nature is not incessant, that no fear is felt, that death is generally prompt, and that the vigorous, the healthy, and the happy survive and multiply.

It's useful to imagine how one form might have an edge over another. In most cases, we probably wouldn't know the best approach to take in order to succeed. This realization highlights our lack of understanding about the relationships among all living beings—a realization that's both important and challenging to come to grips with. All we can do is remember that every living thing is trying to grow at an exponential rate; that at some point in its life, during certain seasons, in each generation, or at various times, it has to fight for survival and faces significant losses. When we think about this struggle, we can find comfort in the belief that nature's conflict isn't constant, that there's little fear, that death usually comes quickly, and that the strong, the healthy, and the happy endure and reproduce.

CHAPTER IV.
NATURAL SELECTION.

Natural Selection: its power compared with man’s selection, its power on characters of trifling importance, its power at all ages and on both sexes. Sexual Selection. On the generality of intercrosses between individuals of the same species. Circumstances favourable and unfavourable to Natural Selection, namely, intercrossing, isolation, number of individuals. Slow action. Extinction caused by Natural Selection. Divergence of Character, related to the diversity of inhabitants of any small area, and to naturalisation. Action of Natural Selection, through Divergence of Character and Extinction, on the descendants from a common parent. Explains the Grouping of all organic beings.

Natural Selection: its impact compared to human selection, its influence on traits of little significance, its effect at all ages and on both genders. Sexual Selection. On how often individuals of the same species interbreed. Factors that favor or hinder Natural Selection, such as interbreeding, isolation, and population size. Slow process. Extinction caused by Natural Selection. Divergence of Traits, linked to the variety of inhabitants in small areas, and to naturalization. The effect of Natural Selection, through Trait Divergence and Extinction, on the descendants of a common ancestor. Explains the Organization of all living beings.

How will the struggle for existence, discussed too briefly in the last chapter, act in regard to variation? Can the principle of selection, which we have seen is so potent in the hands of man, apply in nature? I think we shall see that it can act most effectually. Let it be borne in mind in what an endless number of strange peculiarities our domestic productions, and, in a lesser degree, those under nature, vary; and how strong the hereditary tendency is. Under domestication, it may be truly said that the whole organisation becomes in some degree plastic. Let it be borne in mind how infinitely complex and close-fitting are the mutual relations of all organic beings to each other and to their physical conditions of life. Can it, then, be thought improbable, seeing that variations useful to man have undoubtedly occurred, that other variations useful in some way to each being in the great and complex battle of life, should sometimes occur in the course of thousands of generations? If such do occur, can we doubt (remembering that many more individuals are born than can possibly survive) that individuals having any advantage, however slight, over others, would have the best chance of surviving and of procreating their kind? On the other hand, we may feel sure that any variation in the least degree injurious would be rigidly destroyed. This preservation of favourable variations and the rejection of injurious variations, I call Natural Selection. Variations neither useful nor injurious would not be affected by natural selection, and would be left a fluctuating element, as perhaps we see in the species called polymorphic.

How does the struggle for existence, which was discussed too briefly in the last chapter, relate to variation? Can the principle of selection, which we’ve seen is very effective in human hands, also apply in nature? I believe we will find that it can be very effective. Keep in mind the countless strange traits that our domesticated species display, and to a lesser extent, those in nature, and how strong the tendency to inherit these traits is. When domesticated, it can be said that the whole organism becomes somewhat flexible. Consider how infinitely complex and interconnected all living beings are with one another and their physical environments. Is it really hard to believe that since useful variations for humans have certainly occurred, other variations that are beneficial in some way to each organism in the vast and intricate battle of life might also happen over thousands of generations? If such variations do occur, can we doubt (keeping in mind that many more individuals are born than can survive) that those individuals with even a slight advantage over others would have a better chance of surviving and reproducing? Conversely, we can be confident that any detrimental variation would be eliminated. This process of preserving beneficial variations and getting rid of harmful ones is what I call Natural Selection. Variations that are neither beneficial nor harmful would not be influenced by natural selection and would remain a fluctuating factor, as we might see in species that are polymorphic.

We shall best understand the probable course of natural selection by taking the case of a country undergoing some physical change, for instance, of climate. The proportional numbers of its inhabitants would almost immediately undergo a change, and some species might become extinct. We may conclude, from what we have seen of the intimate and complex manner in which the inhabitants of each country are bound together, that any change in the numerical proportions of some of the inhabitants, independently of the change of climate itself, would most seriously affect many of the others. If the country were open on its borders, new forms would certainly immigrate, and this also would seriously disturb the relations of some of the former inhabitants. Let it be remembered how powerful the influence of a single introduced tree or mammal has been shown to be. But in the case of an island, or of a country partly surrounded by barriers, into which new and better adapted forms could not freely enter, we should then have places in the economy of nature which would assuredly be better filled up, if some of the original inhabitants were in some manner modified; for, had the area been open to immigration, these same places would have been seized on by intruders. In such case, every slight modification, which in the course of ages chanced to arise, and which in any way favoured the individuals of any of the species, by better adapting them to their altered conditions, would tend to be preserved; and natural selection would thus have free scope for the work of improvement.

We'll better understand how natural selection works by looking at a country going through some physical change, like a shift in climate. The population of its residents would almost immediately change, and some species might go extinct. From what we've noticed about the close and complicated relationships among the inhabitants of each country, we can conclude that any shift in the numbers of some inhabitants, regardless of the climate change itself, would significantly impact many others. If the country has open borders, new species would likely move in, which would also greatly disrupt relationships among some of the existing residents. It's important to remember how influential a single introduced tree or mammal can be. However, in the case of an island, or a country partially surrounded by barriers, where new and better-suited forms couldn't easily enter, we would have areas in the ecosystem that would certainly be better utilized if some of the original inhabitants were modified in some way; because if the area had been open to immigration, those same places would have been occupied by newcomers. In such cases, every minor modification that occurred over time and helped any of the species adapt better to their changed conditions would likely be preserved; and natural selection would then have the freedom to promote improvement.

We have reason to believe, as stated in the first chapter, that a change in the conditions of life, by specially acting on the reproductive system, causes or increases variability; and in the foregoing case the conditions of life are supposed to have undergone a change, and this would manifestly be favourable to natural selection, by giving a better chance of profitable variations occurring; and unless profitable variations do occur, natural selection can do nothing. Not that, as I believe, any extreme amount of variability is necessary; as man can certainly produce great results by adding up in any given direction mere individual differences, so could Nature, but far more easily, from having incomparably longer time at her disposal. Nor do I believe that any great physical change, as of climate, or any unusual degree of isolation to check immigration, is actually necessary to produce new and unoccupied places for natural selection to fill up by modifying and improving some of the varying inhabitants. For as all the inhabitants of each country are struggling together with nicely balanced forces, extremely slight modifications in the structure or habits of one inhabitant would often give it an advantage over others; and still further modifications of the same kind would often still further increase the advantage. No country can be named in which all the native inhabitants are now so perfectly adapted to each other and to the physical conditions under which they live, that none of them could anyhow be improved; for in all countries, the natives have been so far conquered by naturalised productions, that they have allowed foreigners to take firm possession of the land. And as foreigners have thus everywhere beaten some of the natives, we may safely conclude that the natives might have been modified with advantage, so as to have better resisted such intruders.

We have reason to believe, as mentioned in the first chapter, that a change in life conditions, particularly affecting the reproductive system, causes or increases variability; and in the previous case, life conditions are thought to have changed, which would clearly benefit natural selection by increasing the chance for useful variations to occur. Without useful variations, natural selection can't do anything. I don't think that an extreme amount of variability is necessary; just like humans can achieve significant results by accumulating individual differences in a specific direction, nature could do the same but much more easily, given the vast amount of time it has at its disposal. I also don't think that a major physical change, like a shift in climate, or a significant level of isolation to block immigration, is actually necessary to create new and unoccupied spaces for natural selection to adapt and improve some of the varying inhabitants. Since all the inhabitants of every country are competing together with finely balanced forces, even tiny changes in the structure or behaviors of one inhabitant could often provide an advantage over others; and further changes like this would frequently enhance that advantage. No country can be mentioned where all the native inhabitants are now perfectly adapted to each other and the physical conditions they live in, such that none of them could be improved in any way; because in all countries, the natives have been overrun by introduced species, allowing outsiders to take strong control of the land. And since outsiders have consistently outcompeted some of the natives, we can safely conclude that the natives could have been modified for the better, enabling them to better resist such intruders.

As man can produce and certainly has produced a great result by his methodical and unconscious means of selection, what may not nature effect? Man can act only on external and visible characters: nature cares nothing for appearances, except in so far as they may be useful to any being. She can act on every internal organ, on every shade of constitutional difference, on the whole machinery of life. Man selects only for his own good; Nature only for that of the being which she tends. Every selected character is fully exercised by her; and the being is placed under well-suited conditions of life. Man keeps the natives of many climates in the same country; he seldom exercises each selected character in some peculiar and fitting manner; he feeds a long and a short beaked pigeon on the same food; he does not exercise a long-backed or long-legged quadruped in any peculiar manner; he exposes sheep with long and short wool to the same climate. He does not allow the most vigorous males to struggle for the females. He does not rigidly destroy all inferior animals, but protects during each varying season, as far as lies in his power, all his productions. He often begins his selection by some half-monstrous form; or at least by some modification prominent enough to catch his eye, or to be plainly useful to him. Under nature, the slightest difference of structure or constitution may well turn the nicely-balanced scale in the struggle for life, and so be preserved. How fleeting are the wishes and efforts of man! how short his time! and consequently how poor will his products be, compared with those accumulated by nature during whole geological periods. Can we wonder, then, that nature’s productions should be far “truer” in character than man’s productions; that they should be infinitely better adapted to the most complex conditions of life, and should plainly bear the stamp of far higher workmanship?

As humans can achieve significant results through their systematic and often unconscious methods of selection, just think of what nature can accomplish! Humans can only focus on external and visible traits, while nature disregards appearances unless they serve a specific purpose for any being. Nature operates on every internal organ, every subtle difference in constitution, and the entire machinery of life. Humans select only for their own benefit, whereas nature acts for the good of the beings she nurtures. Every trait that nature selects is fully utilized, and the being is placed in conditions that suit it well. Humans may gather species from various climates in one place, but they often neglect to exercise each selected trait in a unique and proper way; for example, they feed both long- and short-beaked pigeons the same food and don't train long-backed or long-legged animals in any specific manner. Sheep with different types of wool are exposed to the same climate. He doesn’t let the strongest males compete for females, nor does he strictly eliminate all weaker animals, but instead protects all his breeds as much as possible through changing seasons. He often starts his selection process with some unusual form, or at least with traits that are noticeable enough to attract his attention or be directly useful to him. In nature, even the slightest structural or constitutional difference can tip the scales in the fierce competition for survival, leading to preservation. How fleeting are human desires and efforts! How brief is their time! As a result, their products will pale in comparison to those that nature has developed over vast geological timescales. Can we really be surprised that nature's outcomes are much "truer" in character than those created by humans, that they are far more suited to the complex challenges of life, and that they clearly reflect a much higher level of craftsmanship?

It may be said that natural selection is daily and hourly scrutinising, throughout the world, every variation, even the slightest; rejecting that which is bad, preserving and adding up all that is good; silently and insensibly working, whenever and wherever opportunity offers, at the improvement of each organic being in relation to its organic and inorganic conditions of life. We see nothing of these slow changes in progress, until the hand of time has marked the long lapse of ages, and then so imperfect is our view into long past geological ages, that we only see that the forms of life are now different from what they formerly were.

Natural selection is constantly examining every variation, no matter how small, all around the world; it discards the bad and keeps building on the good. This process operates quietly and unnoticed whenever opportunities arise, improving each living being in relation to its life conditions, both organic and inorganic. We don’t notice these gradual changes happening until a long period of time has passed, and even then, our understanding of past geological ages is so limited that we can only see that life forms today are different from how they used to be.

Although natural selection can act only through and for the good of each being, yet characters and structures, which we are apt to consider as of very trifling importance, may thus be acted on. When we see leaf-eating insects green, and bark-feeders mottled-grey; the alpine ptarmigan white in winter, the red-grouse the colour of heather, and the black-grouse that of peaty earth, we must believe that these tints are of service to these birds and insects in preserving them from danger. Grouse, if not destroyed at some period of their lives, would increase in countless numbers; they are known to suffer largely from birds of prey; and hawks are guided by eyesight to their prey,—so much so, that on parts of the Continent persons are warned not to keep white pigeons, as being the most liable to destruction. Hence I can see no reason to doubt that natural selection might be most effective in giving the proper colour to each kind of grouse, and in keeping that colour, when once acquired, true and constant. Nor ought we to think that the occasional destruction of an animal of any particular colour would produce little effect: we should remember how essential it is in a flock of white sheep to destroy every lamb with the faintest trace of black. In plants the down on the fruit and the colour of the flesh are considered by botanists as characters of the most trifling importance: yet we hear from an excellent horticulturist, Downing, that in the United States smooth-skinned fruits suffer far more from a beetle, a curculio, than those with down; that purple plums suffer far more from a certain disease than yellow plums; whereas another disease attacks yellow-fleshed peaches far more than those with other coloured flesh. If, with all the aids of art, these slight differences make a great difference in cultivating the several varieties, assuredly, in a state of nature, where the trees would have to struggle with other trees and with a host of enemies, such differences would effectually settle which variety, whether a smooth or downy, a yellow or purple fleshed fruit, should succeed.

Although natural selection can only operate for the benefit of each organism, characteristics and traits that we might consider insignificant can still be influenced. When we observe that leaf-eating insects are green and bark-feeding ones are mottled grey; when the alpine ptarmigan is white in winter, the red grouse is the color of heather, and the black grouse resembles peaty earth, we must believe these colors help protect these birds and insects from danger. If grouse aren't eliminated at some point in their lives, they would multiply in huge numbers; they are known to be heavily preyed upon by birds of prey, and hawks hunt primarily by sight—so much so that in some parts of the continent, people are warned not to keep white pigeons, as they are the most likely to be killed. Thus, I see no reason to doubt that natural selection could be highly effective in determining the right color for each type of grouse and in maintaining that color, once established, as consistent. We also shouldn’t think that the occasional death of an animal of a specific color wouldn’t have much impact: we must remember how crucial it is to eliminate every lamb with even a hint of black from a flock of white sheep. In plants, the fuzz on the fruit and the flesh color are seen by botanists as minor traits; yet, we hear from a notable horticulturist, Downing, that in the United States, smooth-skinned fruits suffer far more from a beetle, the curculio, than downy ones do. Purple plums are much more affected by a particular disease than yellow plums, while another disease attacks yellow-fleshed peaches more than those with different-colored flesh. If, even with all the help of cultivation, these slight differences have a significant impact on growing different varieties, surely, in nature, where trees face competition from each other and many enemies, such differences would decisively determine whether a smooth or downy, yellow or purple-fleshed fruit would thrive.

In looking at many small points of difference between species, which, as far as our ignorance permits us to judge, seem to be quite unimportant, we must not forget that climate, food, etc., probably produce some slight and direct effect. It is, however, far more necessary to bear in mind that there are many unknown laws of correlation of growth, which, when one part of the organisation is modified through variation, and the modifications are accumulated by natural selection for the good of the being, will cause other modifications, often of the most unexpected nature.

When looking at the many small differences between species, which seem pretty insignificant based on what we know, we shouldn't overlook that factors like climate and food likely have some small direct effects. However, it's even more important to remember that there are many unknown laws governing growth correlation. When one part of an organism changes due to variation, and those changes are selected by nature for the benefit of the being, it can lead to other changes that are often quite unexpected.

As we see that those variations which under domestication appear at any particular period of life, tend to reappear in the offspring at the same period;—for instance, in the seeds of the many varieties of our culinary and agricultural plants; in the caterpillar and cocoon stages of the varieties of the silkworm; in the eggs of poultry, and in the colour of the down of their chickens; in the horns of our sheep and cattle when nearly adult;—so in a state of nature, natural selection will be enabled to act on and modify organic beings at any age, by the accumulation of profitable variations at that age, and by their inheritance at a corresponding age. If it profit a plant to have its seeds more and more widely disseminated by the wind, I can see no greater difficulty in this being effected through natural selection, than in the cotton-planter increasing and improving by selection the down in the pods on his cotton-trees. Natural selection may modify and adapt the larva of an insect to a score of contingencies, wholly different from those which concern the mature insect. These modifications will no doubt affect, through the laws of correlation, the structure of the adult; and probably in the case of those insects which live only for a few hours, and which never feed, a large part of their structure is merely the correlated result of successive changes in the structure of their larvæ. So, conversely, modifications in the adult will probably often affect the structure of the larva; but in all cases natural selection will ensure that modifications consequent on other modifications at a different period of life, shall not be in the least degree injurious: for if they became so, they would cause the extinction of the species.

As we notice, variations that show up during domestication at a specific stage of life tend to show up again in the offspring at the same time; for example, in the seeds of many varieties of our food and agricultural plants, in the caterpillar and cocoon phases of silkworm varieties, in poultry eggs, and in the color of their chicks’ down, as well as in the horns of our sheep and cattle as they approach adulthood. Similarly, in the wild, natural selection can act on and modify living beings at any age by accumulating beneficial variations at that age and passing them down at a corresponding age. If it benefits a plant to have its seeds spread more widely by the wind, I don’t see any greater challenge in this happening through natural selection than in a cotton farmer improving the fibers in the pods of their cotton plants through selection. Natural selection can adjust and adapt an insect's larva to various situations that are completely different from what the adult insect experiences. These changes will likely influence, through the laws of correlation, the structure of the adult; and probably, in the case of insects that only live for a few hours and do not feed, a significant part of their structure is simply a correlated result of the gradual changes in the structure of their larvae. Conversely, changes in the adult will often influence the structure of the larva; but in all cases, natural selection will ensure that changes resulting from other modifications at different life stages are not harmful at all: because if they were, they would lead to the species' extinction.

Natural selection will modify the structure of the young in relation to the parent, and of the parent in relation to the young. In social animals it will adapt the structure of each individual for the benefit of the community; if each in consequence profits by the selected change. What natural selection cannot do, is to modify the structure of one species, without giving it any advantage, for the good of another species; and though statements to this effect may be found in works of natural history, I cannot find one case which will bear investigation. A structure used only once in an animal’s whole life, if of high importance to it, might be modified to any extent by natural selection; for instance, the great jaws possessed by certain insects, and used exclusively for opening the cocoon—or the hard tip to the beak of nestling birds, used for breaking the egg. It has been asserted, that of the best short-beaked tumbler-pigeons more perish in the egg than are able to get out of it; so that fanciers assist in the act of hatching. Now, if nature had to make the beak of a full-grown pigeon very short for the bird’s own advantage, the process of modification would be very slow, and there would be simultaneously the most rigorous selection of the young birds within the egg, which had the most powerful and hardest beaks, for all with weak beaks would inevitably perish: or, more delicate and more easily broken shells might be selected, the thickness of the shell being known to vary like every other structure.

Natural selection will change the structure of the young compared to the parent, and of the parent compared to the young. In social animals, it will adjust the structure of each individual for the benefit of the group, as long as each benefits from the selected changes. What natural selection can’t do is alter the structure of one species without giving it any advantage for the benefit of another species; and even though you can find claims like this in natural history books, I haven’t found a single case that holds up under scrutiny. A structure that is only used once in an animal's life, if it's really important, can be modified extensively by natural selection; for example, the large jaws of certain insects that are used solely for opening the cocoon, or the hard tip of a nestling bird’s beak that’s used for breaking the eggshell. It has been claimed that more of the best short-beaked tumbler pigeons die in the egg than make it out; hence, fanciers help with hatching. Now, if nature needed to make the beak of an adult pigeon very short for the bird’s own benefit, the modification process would be very slow, and there would also be a very strict selection of young birds within the egg, with those having the strongest and hardest beaks surviving, while those with weaker beaks would inevitably die off; or, thinner and more fragile eggshells might be selected, knowing that the thickness of the shell varies like any other structure.

Sexual Selection.—Inasmuch as peculiarities often appear under domestication in one sex and become hereditarily attached to that sex, the same fact probably occurs under nature, and if so, natural selection will be able to modify one sex in its functional relations to the other sex, or in relation to wholly different habits of life in the two sexes, as is sometimes the case with insects. And this leads me to say a few words on what I call Sexual Selection. This depends, not on a struggle for existence, but on a struggle between the males for possession of the females; the result is not death to the unsuccessful competitor, but few or no offspring. Sexual selection is, therefore, less rigorous than natural selection. Generally, the most vigorous males, those which are best fitted for their places in nature, will leave most progeny. But in many cases, victory will depend not on general vigour, but on having special weapons, confined to the male sex. A hornless stag or spurless cock would have a poor chance of leaving offspring. Sexual selection by always allowing the victor to breed might surely give indomitable courage, length to the spur, and strength to the wing to strike in the spurred leg, as well as the brutal cock-fighter, who knows well that he can improve his breed by careful selection of the best cocks. How low in the scale of nature this law of battle descends, I know not; male alligators have been described as fighting, bellowing, and whirling round, like Indians in a war-dance, for the possession of the females; male salmons have been seen fighting all day long; male stag-beetles often bear wounds from the huge mandibles of other males. The war is, perhaps, severest between the males of polygamous animals, and these seem oftenest provided with special weapons. The males of carnivorous animals are already well armed; though to them and to others, special means of defence may be given through means of sexual selection, as the mane to the lion, the shoulder-pad to the boar, and the hooked jaw to the male salmon; for the shield may be as important for victory, as the sword or spear.

Sexual Selection.—Since unique traits often emerge in one sex during domestication and become hereditary in that sex, a similar phenomenon likely occurs in nature. If that’s the case, natural selection could modify one sex's functional relationship to the other sex or relate to completely different lifestyles for the two sexes, which is sometimes seen with insects. This leads me to discuss what I call Sexual Selection. This concept is based not on a struggle for survival, but on competition among males for access to females. The outcome doesn't typically result in death for the unsuccessful competitor, but rather fewer or no offspring. Therefore, sexual selection is generally less intense than natural selection. Usually, the most vigorous males—those best suited for their roles in nature—will have the most offspring. However, in many instances, success depends not on overall fitness but on possessing specific traits unique to males. A hornless stag or spurless rooster would have a low chance of producing offspring. Because sexual selection typically allows the winner to breed, it can surely lead to remarkable traits like indomitable courage, longer spurs, and stronger wings for striking in the spurred leg, similar to how a skilled cock fighter knows he can enhance his breed through careful selection of the best chickens. I'm unsure how far down the scale of nature this principle of competition extends; male alligators have been observed battling, bellowing, and spinning around like Indians in a war dance for female attention; male salmon have been seen fighting throughout the day; male stag beetles often bear injuries from the large mandibles of rival males. The competition is perhaps most intense among males of polygamous species, which frequently have specialized weapons. Male carnivorous animals are already well equipped, yet sexual selection may still add certain defensive features, like the lion’s mane, the boar’s shoulder pads, and the male salmon's hooked jaw; because protection can be just as crucial for victory as offensive weapons like swords or spears.

Amongst birds, the contest is often of a more peaceful character. All those who have attended to the subject, believe that there is the severest rivalry between the males of many species to attract by singing the females. The rock-thrush of Guiana, birds of Paradise, and some others, congregate; and successive males display their gorgeous plumage and perform strange antics before the females, which standing by as spectators, at last choose the most attractive partner. Those who have closely attended to birds in confinement well know that they often take individual preferences and dislikes: thus Sir R. Heron has described how one pied peacock was eminently attractive to all his hen birds. It may appear childish to attribute any effect to such apparently weak means: I cannot here enter on the details necessary to support this view; but if man can in a short time give elegant carriage and beauty to his bantams, according to his standard of beauty, I can see no good reason to doubt that female birds, by selecting, during thousands of generations, the most melodious or beautiful males, according to their standard of beauty, might produce a marked effect. I strongly suspect that some well-known laws with respect to the plumage of male and female birds, in comparison with the plumage of the young, can be explained on the view of plumage having been chiefly modified by sexual selection, acting when the birds have come to the breeding age or during the breeding season; the modifications thus produced being inherited at corresponding ages or seasons, either by the males alone, or by the males and females; but I have not space here to enter on this subject.

Among birds, the competition is often more peaceful. Anyone who has studied this topic believes there is intense rivalry among the males of many species to attract females through their singing. The rock-thrush of Guiana, birds of Paradise, and a few others gather together; successive males display their vibrant plumage and perform unusual antics in front of the females, who watch as spectators until they finally choose the most appealing partner. Those who have closely observed birds in captivity know that they often develop individual likes and dislikes: for example, Sir R. Heron described how one pied peacock was particularly attractive to all his hens. It may seem naive to attribute any impact to such seemingly weak methods: I can’t dive into the details needed to support this view here, but if humans can quickly enhance the elegance and beauty of their bantams based on their own standards of beauty, I don’t see any good reason to doubt that female birds, by choosing the most melodious or beautiful males over thousands of generations according to their own standards of beauty, could produce significant changes. I strongly suspect that some well-known principles regarding the plumage of male and female birds, when compared to the plumage of the young, can be explained by the idea that plumage has primarily changed due to sexual selection, which occurs when birds reach breeding age or during the breeding season; the modifications resulting from this process being inherited at corresponding ages or seasons, either by males alone or by both males and females; however, I don’t have the space to explore this topic further here.

Thus it is, as I believe, that when the males and females of any animal have the same general habits of life, but differ in structure, colour, or ornament, such differences have been mainly caused by sexual selection; that is, individual males have had, in successive generations, some slight advantage over other males, in their weapons, means of defence, or charms; and have transmitted these advantages to their male offspring. Yet, I would not wish to attribute all such sexual differences to this agency: for we see peculiarities arising and becoming attached to the male sex in our domestic animals (as the wattle in male carriers, horn-like protuberances in the cocks of certain fowls, etc.), which we cannot believe to be either useful to the males in battle, or attractive to the females. We see analogous cases under nature, for instance, the tuft of hair on the breast of the turkey-cock, which can hardly be either useful or ornamental to this bird;—indeed, had the tuft appeared under domestication, it would have been called a monstrosity.

I believe that when male and female animals share similar lifestyles but differ in their physical traits like structure, color, or decorations, these differences are mostly due to sexual selection. This means that individual males have had slight advantages over other males in terms of their weapons, defense mechanisms, or attractiveness, and they have passed these advantages down to their male offspring over generations. However, I don’t think we should attribute all sexual differences to this factor. We can see unique traits developing in male domestic animals, such as the wattle on male carriers and horn-like growths on certain roosters, that don’t seem to aid them in fighting or attract females. Similar cases appear in nature, like the tuft of hair on a male turkey's breast, which likely isn’t useful or decorative for the bird. In fact, if that tuft developed during domestication, it would probably be seen as a freakish deformity.

Illustrations of the action of Natural Selection.—In order to make it clear how, as I believe, natural selection acts, I must beg permission to give one or two imaginary illustrations. Let us take the case of a wolf, which preys on various animals, securing some by craft, some by strength, and some by fleetness; and let us suppose that the fleetest prey, a deer for instance, had from any change in the country increased in numbers, or that other prey had decreased in numbers, during that season of the year when the wolf is hardest pressed for food. I can under such circumstances see no reason to doubt that the swiftest and slimmest wolves would have the best chance of surviving, and so be preserved or selected,—provided always that they retained strength to master their prey at this or at some other period of the year, when they might be compelled to prey on other animals. I can see no more reason to doubt this, than that man can improve the fleetness of his greyhounds by careful and methodical selection, or by that unconscious selection which results from each man trying to keep the best dogs without any thought of modifying the breed.

Illustrations of the action of Natural Selection.—To clarify how I believe natural selection works, I’d like to share a couple of hypothetical examples. Let’s consider a wolf that hunts different animals, using cunning, strength, or speed to catch its prey. Now, imagine that the fastest prey, like deer, has increased in number due to some changes in the environment, or that other prey has dwindled during the time of year when wolves are struggling to find food. In this situation, I see no reason to doubt that the quickest and leanest wolves would have the best chances of survival and would therefore be favored or selected—provided they still had the strength to catch their prey at this time or at other times of the year when they might have to hunt different animals. I find no more reason to doubt this than that a person can enhance the speed of their greyhounds through careful and planned selection, or through that unintentional selection that occurs when people simply try to keep the best dogs without intending to change the breed.

Even without any change in the proportional numbers of the animals on which our wolf preyed, a cub might be born with an innate tendency to pursue certain kinds of prey. Nor can this be thought very improbable; for we often observe great differences in the natural tendencies of our domestic animals; one cat, for instance, taking to catch rats, another mice; one cat, according to Mr. St. John, bringing home winged game, another hares or rabbits, and another hunting on marshy ground and almost nightly catching woodcocks or snipes. The tendency to catch rats rather than mice is known to be inherited. Now, if any slight innate change of habit or of structure benefited an individual wolf, it would have the best chance of surviving and of leaving offspring. Some of its young would probably inherit the same habits or structure, and by the repetition of this process, a new variety might be formed which would either supplant or coexist with the parent-form of wolf. Or, again, the wolves inhabiting a mountainous district, and those frequenting the lowlands, would naturally be forced to hunt different prey; and from the continued preservation of the individuals best fitted for the two sites, two varieties might slowly be formed. These varieties would cross and blend where they met; but to this subject of intercrossing we shall soon have to return. I may add, that, according to Mr. Pierce, there are two varieties of the wolf inhabiting the Catskill Mountains in the United States, one with a light greyhound-like form, which pursues deer, and the other more bulky, with shorter legs, which more frequently attacks the shepherd’s flocks.

Even without any change in the proportion of the animals that our wolf hunted, a cub could be born with a natural instinct to go after certain types of prey. This isn’t too far-fetched; we often see significant differences in the natural behaviors of our pets. For example, one cat might prefer catching rats, while another goes after mice. One cat, as noted by Mr. St. John, might bring home birds, while another might catch hares or rabbits, and yet another could be hunting in marshy areas, often capturing woodcocks or snipes. The tendency to catch rats instead of mice is known to be passed down through generations. If a minor natural change in behavior or structure helped an individual wolf survive, it would have the best chance of continuing its lineage. Some of its offspring would likely inherit those same habits or traits, and through this repeated process, a new variety could emerge that might replace or exist alongside the original wolf type. Moreover, wolves living in mountainous regions and those in lowland areas would naturally have to hunt different prey; over time, the individuals best suited for each environment could slowly develop into two distinct varieties. These varieties would interbreed where their territories overlapped; however, we will need to discuss interbreeding more later. I should also mention that, according to Mr. Pierce, there are two varieties of wolves in the Catskill Mountains in the United States: one that resembles a light greyhound and hunts deer, and another that is bulkier with shorter legs, which more often preys on shepherds' flocks.

Let us now take a more complex case. Certain plants excrete a sweet juice, apparently for the sake of eliminating something injurious from their sap: this is effected by glands at the base of the stipules in some Leguminosæ, and at the back of the leaf of the common laurel. This juice, though small in quantity, is greedily sought by insects. Let us now suppose a little sweet juice or nectar to be excreted by the inner bases of the petals of a flower. In this case insects in seeking the nectar would get dusted with pollen, and would certainly often transport the pollen from one flower to the stigma of another flower. The flowers of two distinct individuals of the same species would thus get crossed; and the act of crossing, we have good reason to believe (as will hereafter be more fully alluded to), would produce very vigorous seedlings, which consequently would have the best chance of flourishing and surviving. Some of these seedlings would probably inherit the nectar-excreting power. Those individual flowers which had the largest glands or nectaries, and which excreted most nectar, would be oftenest visited by insects, and would be oftenest crossed; and so in the long-run would gain the upper hand. Those flowers, also, which had their stamens and pistils placed, in relation to the size and habits of the particular insects which visited them, so as to favour in any degree the transportal of their pollen from flower to flower, would likewise be favoured or selected. We might have taken the case of insects visiting flowers for the sake of collecting pollen instead of nectar; and as pollen is formed for the sole object of fertilisation, its destruction appears a simple loss to the plant; yet if a little pollen were carried, at first occasionally and then habitually, by the pollen-devouring insects from flower to flower, and a cross thus effected, although nine-tenths of the pollen were destroyed, it might still be a great gain to the plant; and those individuals which produced more and more pollen, and had larger and larger anthers, would be selected.

Let's consider a more complicated example. Some plants release a sweet juice, seemingly to get rid of something harmful from their sap. This happens through glands at the base of the stipules in certain legumes and at the back of the leaves of the common laurel. Even though this juice is in small amounts, insects eagerly seek it out. Now, imagine a little sweet juice or nectar being released from the inner bases of a flower's petals. In this scenario, as insects search for the nectar, they would get covered in pollen and often carry that pollen from one flower to the stigma of another. This way, the flowers from two different individuals of the same species would cross-pollinate; and crossing, as we will discuss in more detail later, is believed to produce very strong seedlings, which would have a better chance of thriving and surviving. Some of these seedlings might inherit the ability to produce nectar. The individual flowers that have larger glands or nectaries and release more nectar would attract insects more often and would be crossed more frequently; thus, over time, they would dominate. Flowers that arrange their stamens and pistils in ways that favor the transportation of their pollen by the specific insects visiting them would also be favored or selected. We could also consider the case of insects visiting flowers to collect pollen instead of nectar. Since pollen is created solely for fertilization, its loss seems like a downside for the plant. However, if a little pollen were carried occasionally at first and then more regularly by pollen-eating insects from flower to flower, resulting in cross-pollination, then even if most of the pollen were lost, it could still benefit the plant significantly. Those plants that produced more pollen and had larger anthers would be selected over time.

When our plant, by this process of the continued preservation or natural selection of more and more attractive flowers, had been rendered highly attractive to insects, they would, unintentionally on their part, regularly carry pollen from flower to flower; and that they can most effectually do this, I could easily show by many striking instances. I will give only one—not as a very striking case, but as likewise illustrating one step in the separation of the sexes of plants, presently to be alluded to. Some holly-trees bear only male flowers, which have four stamens producing rather a small quantity of pollen, and a rudimentary pistil; other holly-trees bear only female flowers; these have a full-sized pistil, and four stamens with shrivelled anthers, in which not a grain of pollen can be detected. Having found a female tree exactly sixty yards from a male tree, I put the stigmas of twenty flowers, taken from different branches, under the microscope, and on all, without exception, there were pollen-grains, and on some a profusion of pollen. As the wind had set for several days from the female to the male tree, the pollen could not thus have been carried. The weather had been cold and boisterous, and therefore not favourable to bees, nevertheless every female flower which I examined had been effectually fertilised by the bees, accidentally dusted with pollen, having flown from tree to tree in search of nectar. But to return to our imaginary case: as soon as the plant had been rendered so highly attractive to insects that pollen was regularly carried from flower to flower, another process might commence. No naturalist doubts the advantage of what has been called the “physiological division of labour;” hence we may believe that it would be advantageous to a plant to produce stamens alone in one flower or on one whole plant, and pistils alone in another flower or on another plant. In plants under culture and placed under new conditions of life, sometimes the male organs and sometimes the female organs become more or less impotent; now if we suppose this to occur in ever so slight a degree under nature, then as pollen is already carried regularly from flower to flower, and as a more complete separation of the sexes of our plant would be advantageous on the principle of the division of labour, individuals with this tendency more and more increased, would be continually favoured or selected, until at last a complete separation of the sexes would be effected.

When our plant, through the ongoing preservation or natural selection of increasingly attractive flowers, became very appealing to insects, they would unintentionally carry pollen from flower to flower on a regular basis. I could easily demonstrate how effectively they do this with numerous examples. I’ll provide just one—not as a particularly striking case, but also highlighting a step in the separation of plant sexes, which I’ll refer to shortly. Some holly trees only have male flowers, which feature four stamens that produce a small amount of pollen and a rudimentary pistil; other holly trees have only female flowers, which have a fully developed pistil and four stamens with shriveled anthers that contain no detectable pollen. After finding a female tree exactly sixty yards away from a male tree, I examined the stigmas of twenty flowers from different branches through a microscope, and every single one had pollen grains, with some showing a plethora of pollen. Since the wind had been blowing from the female tree to the male tree for several days, it’s unlikely the pollen was carried this way. The weather had been cold and stormy, which is not ideal for bees, yet every female flower I looked at had been successfully fertilized by bees that accidentally picked up pollen while flying from tree to tree in search of nectar. But back to our hypothetical case: once the plant had become so attractive to insects that pollen was consistently carried from flower to flower, a different process could begin. No naturalist doubts the benefit of what’s known as the “physiological division of labor;” therefore, we can assume it would be advantageous for a plant to produce stamens in one flower or on one entire plant, while producing pistils in another flower or on another plant. In cultivated plants under new living conditions, at times the male organs and other times the female organs become more or less ineffective; now if we assume this happens, even slightly, in nature, and since pollen is already frequently transferred between flowers, a more complete separation of our plant's sexes could be beneficial based on the division of labor principle. Individuals with this tendency would increasingly be favored or selected, leading to a complete separation of the sexes over time.

Let us now turn to the nectar-feeding insects in our imaginary case: we may suppose the plant of which we have been slowly increasing the nectar by continued selection, to be a common plant; and that certain insects depended in main part on its nectar for food. I could give many facts, showing how anxious bees are to save time; for instance, their habit of cutting holes and sucking the nectar at the bases of certain flowers, which they can, with a very little more trouble, enter by the mouth. Bearing such facts in mind, I can see no reason to doubt that an accidental deviation in the size and form of the body, or in the curvature and length of the proboscis, etc., far too slight to be appreciated by us, might profit a bee or other insect, so that an individual so characterised would be able to obtain its food more quickly, and so have a better chance of living and leaving descendants. Its descendants would probably inherit a tendency to a similar slight deviation of structure. The tubes of the corollas of the common red and incarnate clovers (Trifolium pratense and incarnatum) do not on a hasty glance appear to differ in length; yet the hive-bee can easily suck the nectar out of the incarnate clover, but not out of the common red clover, which is visited by humble-bees alone; so that whole fields of the red clover offer in vain an abundant supply of precious nectar to the hive-bee. Thus it might be a great advantage to the hive-bee to have a slightly longer or differently constructed proboscis. On the other hand, I have found by experiment that the fertility of clover greatly depends on bees visiting and moving parts of the corolla, so as to push the pollen on to the stigmatic surface. Hence, again, if humble-bees were to become rare in any country, it might be a great advantage to the red clover to have a shorter or more deeply divided tube to its corolla, so that the hive-bee could visit its flowers. Thus I can understand how a flower and a bee might slowly become, either simultaneously or one after the other, modified and adapted in the most perfect manner to each other, by the continued preservation of individuals presenting mutual and slightly favourable deviations of structure.

Let’s now look at the nectar-feeding insects in our hypothetical scenario: we can imagine that the plant we've been gradually improving with more nectar through selection is a common one, and that certain insects rely mainly on its nectar for food. I could provide many examples that show how eager bees are to save time; for instance, they often cut holes and suck nectar from the bases of certain flowers instead of entering them through the front. Keeping this in mind, I see no reason to doubt that a random change in size or shape of the body, or in the curvature and length of the proboscis, which might be too subtle for us to notice, could benefit a bee or other insect, allowing it to get its food faster, thus increasing its chances of survival and reproduction. Its offspring would likely inherit a tendency toward similar slight structural changes. The tubes of the common red and incarnate clovers (Trifolium pratense and incarnatum) might not seem different in length at first glance; however, the honeybee can easily reach the nectar in the incarnate clover, but not in the common red clover, which is only visited by bumblebees. As a result, entire fields of red clover provide a plentiful supply of nectar in vain for the honeybee. Therefore, having a slightly longer or differently shaped proboscis could be a significant advantage for the honeybee. On the flip side, I’ve found through experimentation that the fertility of clover greatly relies on bees visiting and moving parts of the corolla to transfer pollen onto the stigma. So again, if bumblebees were to become less common in a region, it might benefit red clover to have a shorter or more deeply divided corolla tube, enabling honeybees to visit its flowers. In this way, I can understand how a flower and a bee might gradually become perfectly adapted to each other, either simultaneously or one after the other, through the continuous preservation of individuals exhibiting mutually beneficial and slightly advantageous structural variations.

I am well aware that this doctrine of natural selection, exemplified in the above imaginary instances, is open to the same objections which were at first urged against Sir Charles Lyell’s noble views on “the modern changes of the earth, as illustrative of geology;” but we now very seldom hear the action, for instance, of the coast-waves, called a trifling and insignificant cause, when applied to the excavation of gigantic valleys or to the formation of the longest lines of inland cliffs. Natural selection can act only by the preservation and accumulation of infinitesimally small inherited modifications, each profitable to the preserved being; and as modern geology has almost banished such views as the excavation of a great valley by a single diluvial wave, so will natural selection, if it be a true principle, banish the belief of the continued creation of new organic beings, or of any great and sudden modification in their structure.

I understand that the idea of natural selection, illustrated in the examples above, faces the same criticisms that were initially raised against Sir Charles Lyell’s impressive theories on “the modern changes of the earth, as illustrative of geology;” however, we rarely now dismiss the effects of coast-waves as a minor and insignificant factor when discussing the carving out of massive valleys or the creation of extensive inland cliffs. Natural selection can only operate through the preservation and buildup of tiny inherited changes, each beneficial to the surviving organism. Just as modern geology has largely dismissed the notion that a massive valley could be formed by a single flood wave, natural selection, if it is indeed a valid principle, will eliminate the belief in the ongoing creation of new organic beings or significant, sudden changes in their structure.

On the Intercrossing of Individuals.—I must here introduce a short digression. In the case of animals and plants with separated sexes, it is of course obvious that two individuals must always unite for each birth; but in the case of hermaphrodites this is far from obvious. Nevertheless I am strongly inclined to believe that with all hermaphrodites two individuals, either occasionally or habitually, concur for the reproduction of their kind. This view, I may add, was first suggested by Andrew Knight. We shall presently see its importance; but I must here treat the subject with extreme brevity, though I have the materials prepared for an ample discussion. All vertebrate animals, all insects, and some other large groups of animals, pair for each birth. Modern research has much diminished the number of supposed hermaphrodites, and of real hermaphrodites a large number pair; that is, two individuals regularly unite for reproduction, which is all that concerns us. But still there are many hermaphrodite animals which certainly do not habitually pair, and a vast majority of plants are hermaphrodites. What reason, it may be asked, is there for supposing in these cases that two individuals ever concur in reproduction? As it is impossible here to enter on details, I must trust to some general considerations alone.

On the Intercrossing of Individuals.—I need to take a brief detour here. In the case of animals and plants with separate sexes, it's clear that two individuals must come together for each birth; however, this is less straightforward with hermaphrodites. Still, I strongly believe that in all hermaphrodites, two individuals, either occasionally or regularly, work together for reproduction. This idea was first proposed by Andrew Knight. We'll see how important this is shortly, but I need to cover this topic very briefly, even though I have enough information for a detailed discussion. All vertebrate animals, all insects, and some other major groups of animals pair for reproduction. Recent research has significantly reduced the number of species thought to be hermaphroditic, and among those that truly are, many still pair; that is, two individuals consistently come together to reproduce, which is what matters to us. However, there are still many hermaphroditic animals that certainly do not regularly pair, and a large majority of plants are hermaphrodites. One might wonder, what reason is there to believe that two individuals ever join together in reproduction in these cases? Since I cannot go into details here, I'll rely on some general considerations.

In the first place, I have collected so large a body of facts, showing, in accordance with the almost universal belief of breeders, that with animals and plants a cross between different varieties, or between individuals of the same variety but of another strain, gives vigour and fertility to the offspring; and on the other hand, that close interbreeding diminishes vigour and fertility; that these facts alone incline me to believe that it is a general law of nature (utterly ignorant though we be of the meaning of the law) that no organic being self-fertilises itself for an eternity of generations; but that a cross with another individual is occasionally—perhaps at very long intervals—indispensable.

First, I've gathered a substantial amount of evidence showing, in line with the nearly universal belief among breeders, that crossing different varieties or individuals of the same variety but from different strains results in offspring that are stronger and more fertile. On the other hand, close interbreeding leads to decreased vigor and fertility. These findings lead me to believe that it’s a general law of nature (even though we may not fully understand what that law means) that no living organism can self-fertilize indefinitely; rather, a cross with another individual is sometimes—perhaps after a long time—essential.

On the belief that this is a law of nature, we can, I think, understand several large classes of facts, such as the following, which on any other view are inexplicable. Every hybridizer knows how unfavourable exposure to wet is to the fertilisation of a flower, yet what a multitude of flowers have their anthers and stigmas fully exposed to the weather! but if an occasional cross be indispensable, the fullest freedom for the entrance of pollen from another individual will explain this state of exposure, more especially as the plant’s own anthers and pistil generally stand so close together that self-fertilisation seems almost inevitable. Many flowers, on the other hand, have their organs of fructification closely enclosed, as in the great papilionaceous or pea-family; but in several, perhaps in all, such flowers, there is a very curious adaptation between the structure of the flower and the manner in which bees suck the nectar; for, in doing this, they either push the flower’s own pollen on the stigma, or bring pollen from another flower. So necessary are the visits of bees to papilionaceous flowers, that I have found, by experiments published elsewhere, that their fertility is greatly diminished if these visits be prevented. Now, it is scarcely possible that bees should fly from flower to flower, and not carry pollen from one to the other, to the great good, as I believe, of the plant. Bees will act like a camel-hair pencil, and it is quite sufficient just to touch the anthers of one flower and then the stigma of another with the same brush to ensure fertilisation; but it must not be supposed that bees would thus produce a multitude of hybrids between distinct species; for if you bring on the same brush a plant’s own pollen and pollen from another species, the former will have such a prepotent effect, that it will invariably and completely destroy, as has been shown by Gärtner, any influence from the foreign pollen.

Believing this to be a natural law, we can understand several large groups of facts that would otherwise be unexplainable. Every hybridizer knows that wet conditions are not good for a flower's fertilization, yet there are so many flowers with their anthers and stigmas exposed to the elements! However, if occasional cross-pollination is necessary, this exposure allows for pollen from other individuals to enter, especially since a plant's own anthers and pistils are usually so close together that self-fertilization seems almost unavoidable. Many flowers, on the other hand, have their reproductive organs tightly enclosed, like those in the pea family; yet, in several, perhaps all, of these flowers, there's a fascinating adaptation between the flower's structure and how bees collect nectar. In doing so, bees either transfer the flower's own pollen onto the stigma or bring in pollen from another flower. The visits from bees to these flowers are so crucial that, based on experiments I've published elsewhere, their fertility significantly decreases if these visits are prevented. It’s almost impossible for bees to move from flower to flower without transferring pollen between them, which I believe greatly benefits the plants. Bees act like a camel-hair brush, and it’s enough to just touch the anthers of one flower and then the stigma of another with the same brush to ensure fertilization; but it shouldn't be assumed that bees would create a lot of hybrids between different species this way. If both a plant’s own pollen and pollen from another species end up on the same brush, the plant’s own pollen has such a strong effect that it will always completely override the influence of the foreign pollen, as Gärtner has demonstrated.

When the stamens of a flower suddenly spring towards the pistil, or slowly move one after the other towards it, the contrivance seems adapted solely to ensure self-fertilisation; and no doubt it is useful for this end: but, the agency of insects is often required to cause the stamens to spring forward, as Kölreuter has shown to be the case with the barberry; and curiously in this very genus, which seems to have a special contrivance for self-fertilisation, it is well known that if very closely-allied forms or varieties are planted near each other, it is hardly possible to raise pure seedlings, so largely do they naturally cross. In many other cases, far from there being any aids for self-fertilisation, there are special contrivances, as I could show from the writings of C. C. Sprengel and from my own observations, which effectually prevent the stigma receiving pollen from its own flower: for instance, in Lobelia fulgens, there is a really beautiful and elaborate contrivance by which every one of the infinitely numerous pollen-granules are swept out of the conjoined anthers of each flower, before the stigma of that individual flower is ready to receive them; and as this flower is never visited, at least in my garden, by insects, it never sets a seed, though by placing pollen from one flower on the stigma of another, I raised plenty of seedlings; and whilst another species of Lobelia growing close by, which is visited by bees, seeds freely. In very many other cases, though there be no special mechanical contrivance to prevent the stigma of a flower receiving its own pollen, yet, as C. C. Sprengel has shown, and as I can confirm, either the anthers burst before the stigma is ready for fertilisation, or the stigma is ready before the pollen of that flower is ready, so that these plants have in fact separated sexes, and must habitually be crossed. How strange are these facts! How strange that the pollen and stigmatic surface of the same flower, though placed so close together, as if for the very purpose of self-fertilisation, should in so many cases be mutually useless to each other! How simply are these facts explained on the view of an occasional cross with a distinct individual being advantageous or indispensable!

When the stamens of a flower suddenly spring toward the pistil, or slowly move toward it one after another, it seems designed solely to ensure self-fertilization; and undoubtedly, it serves this purpose well. However, insects often play a crucial role in making the stamens move forward, as Kölreuter has demonstrated with the barberry. Interestingly, in this very genus, which appears to have a specialized mechanism for self-fertilization, it's well known that if closely related forms or varieties are planted near one another, it's nearly impossible to raise pure seedlings, as they tend to crossbreed extensively. In many other instances, rather than aiding self-fertilization, there are specific mechanisms, as I could illustrate from the works of C. C. Sprengel and my own observations, that effectively prevent the stigma from receiving pollen from its own flower. For example, in Lobelia fulgens, there is a truly beautiful and intricate mechanism that sweeps all the countless pollen grains out of the connected anthers of each flower before the stigma of that same flower is ready to accept them. Since this flower is never visited—at least in my garden—by insects, it never produces seeds. However, by transferring pollen from one flower to the stigma of another, I was able to raise plenty of seedlings, while another species of Lobelia nearby, which is visited by bees, freely produces seeds. In many other instances, even though there isn’t a specific mechanical device to stop a flower's stigma from receiving its own pollen, as C. C. Sprengel has shown and I can confirm, either the anthers burst before the stigma is ready for fertilization, or the stigma is ready before the pollen from that flower is ready. This indicates that these plants essentially have separated sexes and must regularly cross-fertilize. How strange are these facts! How strange that the pollen and stigmatic surface of the same flower, though positioned so closely together as if for self-fertilization, can be so often ineffective for each other! These facts are simply explained by the notion that occasional crossing with a distinct individual is beneficial or necessary!

If several varieties of the cabbage, radish, onion, and of some other plants, be allowed to seed near each other, a large majority, as I have found, of the seedlings thus raised will turn out mongrels: for instance, I raised 233 seedling cabbages from some plants of different varieties growing near each other, and of these only 78 were true to their kind, and some even of these were not perfectly true. Yet the pistil of each cabbage-flower is surrounded not only by its own six stamens, but by those of the many other flowers on the same plant. How, then, comes it that such a vast number of the seedlings are mongrelized? I suspect that it must arise from the pollen of a distinct variety having a prepotent effect over a flower’s own pollen; and that this is part of the general law of good being derived from the intercrossing of distinct individuals of the same species. When distinct species are crossed the case is directly the reverse, for a plant’s own pollen is always prepotent over foreign pollen; but to this subject we shall return in a future chapter.

If different types of cabbage, radish, onion, and a few other plants are allowed to seed close to each other, I've found that a large majority of the seedlings produced will be hybrids. For example, I grew 233 seedling cabbages from plants of various types growing nearby, and only 78 of them were true to their type, with some of those not being completely accurate. Each cabbage flower has its own six stamens, but also those from many other flowers on the same plant. So, why do so many of these seedlings end up being hybrids? I think it's because pollen from a different variety has a stronger influence over a flower's own pollen, and this might be part of the general principle that good can come from crossing different individuals of the same species. However, when different species are crossed, the opposite happens: a plant’s own pollen is always more dominant than foreign pollen. We will discuss this topic further in a future chapter.

In the case of a gigantic tree covered with innumerable flowers, it may be objected that pollen could seldom be carried from tree to tree, and at most only from flower to flower on the same tree, and that flowers on the same tree can be considered as distinct individuals only in a limited sense. I believe this objection to be valid, but that nature has largely provided against it by giving to trees a strong tendency to bear flowers with separated sexes. When the sexes are separated, although the male and female flowers may be produced on the same tree, we can see that pollen must be regularly carried from flower to flower; and this will give a better chance of pollen being occasionally carried from tree to tree. That trees belonging to all Orders have their sexes more often separated than other plants, I find to be the case in this country; and at my request Dr. Hooker tabulated the trees of New Zealand, and Dr. Asa Gray those of the United States, and the result was as I anticipated. On the other hand, Dr. Hooker has recently informed me that he finds that the rule does not hold in Australia; and I have made these few remarks on the sexes of trees simply to call attention to the subject.

In the case of a huge tree covered with countless flowers, one might argue that pollen could rarely be transferred from tree to tree, and at most, only from flower to flower on the same tree. Besides, flowers on the same tree can only be seen as separate individuals to a limited extent. I think this objection is valid, but nature has mostly addressed it by encouraging trees to produce flowers with distinct sexes. When the sexes are separated, even though male and female flowers might be on the same tree, we can see that pollen must be regularly moved from flower to flower; this increases the chances of pollen being occasionally transferred from tree to tree. I have noticed that trees from all genera tend to have their sexes separated more often than other plants in this country. At my request, Dr. Hooker compiled a list of the trees in New Zealand, and Dr. Asa Gray did the same for the United States, and the results were as I expected. However, Dr. Hooker recently informed me that this pattern does not apply in Australia; I've made these observations on the sexes of trees just to draw attention to the topic.

Turning for a very brief space to animals: on the land there are some hermaphrodites, as land-mollusca and earth-worms; but these all pair. As yet I have not found a single case of a terrestrial animal which fertilises itself. We can understand this remarkable fact, which offers so strong a contrast with terrestrial plants, on the view of an occasional cross being indispensable, by considering the medium in which terrestrial animals live, and the nature of the fertilising element; for we know of no means, analogous to the action of insects and of the wind in the case of plants, by which an occasional cross could be effected with terrestrial animals without the concurrence of two individuals. Of aquatic animals, there are many self-fertilising hermaphrodites; but here currents in the water offer an obvious means for an occasional cross. And, as in the case of flowers, I have as yet failed, after consultation with one of the highest authorities, namely, Professor Huxley, to discover a single case of an hermaphrodite animal with the organs of reproduction so perfectly enclosed within the body, that access from without and the occasional influence of a distinct individual can be shown to be physically impossible. Cirripedes long appeared to me to present a case of very great difficulty under this point of view; but I have been enabled, by a fortunate chance, elsewhere to prove that two individuals, though both are self-fertilising hermaphrodites, do sometimes cross.

Turning briefly to animals: on land, there are some hermaphrodites, like land mollusks and earthworms, but they all pair up. So far, I haven't found a single instance of a terrestrial animal that can fertilize itself. This striking fact, which contrasts sharply with terrestrial plants, can be understood by considering that an occasional cross is essential, along with the environment terrestrial animals inhabit and the nature of the fertilizing element; we have no method similar to the action of insects and wind in plants that would allow for an occasional cross among terrestrial animals without the involvement of two individuals. In aquatic animals, however, there are many self-fertilizing hermaphrodites because water currents provide a clear way for an occasional cross. And, like with flowers, I have yet to find a single case of a hermaphrodite animal whose reproductive organs are so completely enclosed within the body that outside access and the occasional influence of a distinct individual are physically impossible, despite consulting one of the leading experts, Professor Huxley. I once thought cirripedes presented a very challenging case from this perspective, but I’ve been fortunate enough to prove elsewhere that even though they are both self-fertilizing hermaphrodites, two individuals can sometimes cross.

It must have struck most naturalists as a strange anomaly that, in the case of both animals and plants, species of the same family and even of the same genus, though agreeing closely with each other in almost their whole organisation, yet are not rarely, some of them hermaphrodites, and some of them unisexual. But if, in fact, all hermaphrodites do occasionally intercross with other individuals, the difference between hermaphrodites and unisexual species, as far as function is concerned, becomes very small.

It probably seemed like an odd anomaly to many naturalists that, for both animals and plants, species from the same family and even the same genus, while closely resembling each other in nearly all their structures, are often, some being hermaphrodites and others being unisexual. However, if all hermaphrodites do sometimes cross with other individuals, the functional difference between hermaphrodites and unisexual species becomes minimal.

From these several considerations and from the many special facts which I have collected, but which I am not here able to give, I am strongly inclined to suspect that, both in the vegetable and animal kingdoms, an occasional intercross with a distinct individual is a law of nature. I am well aware that there are, on this view, many cases of difficulty, some of which I am trying to investigate. Finally then, we may conclude that in many organic beings, a cross between two individuals is an obvious necessity for each birth; in many others it occurs perhaps only at long intervals; but in none, as I suspect, can self-fertilisation go on for perpetuity.

Based on these various considerations and the many specific facts I’ve gathered, which I can’t present here, I strongly suspect that, in both plants and animals, occasionally crossbreeding with a different individual is a natural law. I know that there are a lot of complicated cases related to this idea, some of which I am currently investigating. So, we can conclude that for many living organisms, breeding between two individuals is an obvious necessity for each birth; in many others, it only happens perhaps after a long time; but in none, as I suspect, can self-fertilization happen indefinitely.

Circumstances favourable to Natural Selection.—This is an extremely intricate subject. A large amount of inheritable and diversified variability is favourable, but I believe mere individual differences suffice for the work. A large number of individuals, by giving a better chance for the appearance within any given period of profitable variations, will compensate for a lesser amount of variability in each individual, and is, I believe, an extremely important element of success. Though nature grants vast periods of time for the work of natural selection, she does not grant an indefinite period; for as all organic beings are striving, it may be said, to seize on each place in the economy of nature, if any one species does not become modified and improved in a corresponding degree with its competitors, it will soon be exterminated.

Circumstances Favorable to Natural Selection.—This is a very complex topic. A significant amount of inheritable and diverse variability is beneficial, but I think that just individual differences are enough for the process. Having a large number of individuals gives a better chance for advantageous variations to emerge within any given timeframe, which can make up for a smaller amount of variability in each individual. I believe this is a crucial factor for success. Although nature provides long periods of time for natural selection to occur, it doesn’t allow for an endless period. Since all living beings are competing to secure their place in the ecosystem, if a species does not adapt and improve in line with its competitors, it will soon face extinction.

In man’s methodical selection, a breeder selects for some definite object, and free intercrossing will wholly stop his work. But when many men, without intending to alter the breed, have a nearly common standard of perfection, and all try to get and breed from the best animals, much improvement and modification surely but slowly follow from this unconscious process of selection, notwithstanding a large amount of crossing with inferior animals. Thus it will be in nature; for within a confined area, with some place in its polity not so perfectly occupied as might be, natural selection will always tend to preserve all the individuals varying in the right direction, though in different degrees, so as better to fill up the unoccupied place. But if the area be large, its several districts will almost certainly present different conditions of life; and then if natural selection be modifying and improving a species in the several districts, there will be intercrossing with the other individuals of the same species on the confines of each. And in this case the effects of intercrossing can hardly be counterbalanced by natural selection always tending to modify all the individuals in each district in exactly the same manner to the conditions of each; for in a continuous area, the conditions will generally graduate away insensibly from one district to another. The intercrossing will most affect those animals which unite for each birth, which wander much, and which do not breed at a very quick rate. Hence in animals of this nature, for instance in birds, varieties will generally be confined to separated countries; and this I believe to be the case. In hermaphrodite organisms which cross only occasionally, and likewise in animals which unite for each birth, but which wander little and which can increase at a very rapid rate, a new and improved variety might be quickly formed on any one spot, and might there maintain itself in a body, so that whatever intercrossing took place would be chiefly between the individuals of the same new variety. A local variety when once thus formed might subsequently slowly spread to other districts. On the above principle, nurserymen always prefer getting seed from a large body of plants of the same variety, as the chance of intercrossing with other varieties is thus lessened.

In a breeder's careful selection process, they choose specific traits, and allowing random mixing would completely disrupt their work. However, when many people, not intending to change a breed, have a shared idea of perfection and all seek to breed from the best animals, significant improvements arise gradually through this unintentional process of selection, even with a lot of breeding with less desirable animals. This is how nature operates; within a limited area, if some aspects of its environment aren't fully occupied, natural selection will help preserve individuals that vary positively, even if to different extents, to better fill the unoccupied spots. But in a larger area, different regions will likely have different living conditions; if natural selection is enhancing a species in these various districts, there will be mixing with other individuals of the same species at the borders of each. In this scenario, the effects of mixing can hardly be offset by natural selection, which is always adjusting individuals in each district to suit their specific conditions, because in a continuous area, the conditions generally shift gradually from one district to another. The mixing will mostly impact those animals that mate often, roam widely, and do not reproduce quickly. Therefore, in such animals, like birds, varieties typically remain limited to distinct regions, and I believe this to be true. In organisms that are hermaphroditic and only occasionally crossbreed, as well as in animals that mate for each reproduction but have limited movement and can reproduce rapidly, a new and enhanced variety could quickly develop in one location and sustain itself there, so any mixing that happens would mainly be between individuals of the same new variety. Once a local variety forms, it may slowly spread to other areas. Based on this principle, nurserymen prefer to collect seeds from a large group of plants of the same variety to reduce the likelihood of mixing with other varieties.

Even in the case of slow-breeding animals, which unite for each birth, we must not overrate the effects of intercrosses in retarding natural selection; for I can bring a considerable catalogue of facts, showing that within the same area, varieties of the same animal can long remain distinct, from haunting different stations, from breeding at slightly different seasons, or from varieties of the same kind preferring to pair together.

Even with slow-breeding animals that come together for each birth, we shouldn’t overestimate how much interbreeding slows down natural selection. I have a substantial list of examples that show that within the same area, different varieties of the same animal can stay distinct for a long time, whether due to living in different habitats, breeding at slightly different times, or because different varieties prefer to mate with each other.

Intercrossing plays a very important part in nature in keeping the individuals of the same species, or of the same variety, true and uniform in character. It will obviously thus act far more efficiently with those animals which unite for each birth; but I have already attempted to show that we have reason to believe that occasional intercrosses take place with all animals and with all plants. Even if these take place only at long intervals, I am convinced that the young thus produced will gain so much in vigour and fertility over the offspring from long-continued self-fertilisation, that they will have a better chance of surviving and propagating their kind; and thus, in the long run, the influence of intercrosses, even at rare intervals, will be great. If there exist organic beings which never intercross, uniformity of character can be retained amongst them, as long as their conditions of life remain the same, only through the principle of inheritance, and through natural selection destroying any which depart from the proper type; but if their conditions of life change and they undergo modification, uniformity of character can be given to their modified offspring, solely by natural selection preserving the same favourable variations.

Interbreeding plays a crucial role in nature by keeping individuals of the same species or variety consistent and uniform in their traits. It’s clear that this process works much more effectively with animals that mate for each birth; however, I’ve already tried to show that we have good reason to believe that occasional interbreeding occurs with all animals and plants. Even if these interbreeding events happen only infrequently, I believe that the offspring produced will be significantly stronger and more fertile than those resulting from long periods of self-fertilization. This means they will have a better chance of surviving and passing on their genes; therefore, over time, the impact of interbreeding, even when it happens rarely, will be significant. If there are organisms that never interbreed, they can maintain their uniformity only as long as their living conditions remain unchanged. This uniformity is upheld through inheritance and natural selection, which eliminates any individuals that stray from the standard type. However, if their living conditions change and they start to evolve, the uniformity of their modified offspring can only be achieved through natural selection favoring the beneficial variations.

Isolation, also, is an important element in the process of natural selection. In a confined or isolated area, if not very large, the organic and inorganic conditions of life will generally be in a great degree uniform; so that natural selection will tend to modify all the individuals of a varying species throughout the area in the same manner in relation to the same conditions. Intercrosses, also, with the individuals of the same species, which otherwise would have inhabited the surrounding and differently circumstanced districts, will be prevented. But isolation probably acts more efficiently in checking the immigration of better adapted organisms, after any physical change, such as of climate or elevation of the land, etc.; and thus new places in the natural economy of the country are left open for the old inhabitants to struggle for, and become adapted to, through modifications in their structure and constitution. Lastly, isolation, by checking immigration and consequently competition, will give time for any new variety to be slowly improved; and this may sometimes be of importance in the production of new species. If, however, an isolated area be very small, either from being surrounded by barriers, or from having very peculiar physical conditions, the total number of the individuals supported on it will necessarily be very small; and fewness of individuals will greatly retard the production of new species through natural selection, by decreasing the chance of the appearance of favourable variations.

Isolation is also a key factor in natural selection. In a small, confined area, the organic and inorganic conditions of life will typically be quite uniform, so natural selection will likely modify all individuals of a varying species in the same way, given the same conditions. Crossbreeding with other individuals of the same species, which would have otherwise lived in surrounding areas with different circumstances, will also be limited. However, isolation probably plays a more significant role in preventing the arrival of better-adapted organisms after any physical changes, like shifts in climate or land elevation. This means that new opportunities in the natural order of the region are left open for the original inhabitants to compete for and adapt to through changes in their structure and make-up. Finally, isolation, by limiting immigration and therefore competition, allows time for any new variety to gradually improve; this can sometimes be crucial for the development of new species. On the other hand, if an isolated area is very small, whether due to barriers or unique physical conditions, the total number of individuals it can support will be quite limited; and fewer individuals will significantly slow down the emergence of new species through natural selection by reducing the chances of beneficial variations appearing.

If we turn to nature to test the truth of these remarks, and look at any small isolated area, such as an oceanic island, although the total number of the species inhabiting it, will be found to be small, as we shall see in our chapter on geographical distribution; yet of these species a very large proportion are endemic,—that is, have been produced there, and nowhere else. Hence an oceanic island at first sight seems to have been highly favourable for the production of new species. But we may thus greatly deceive ourselves, for to ascertain whether a small isolated area, or a large open area like a continent, has been most favourable for the production of new organic forms, we ought to make the comparison within equal times; and this we are incapable of doing.

If we look to nature to verify these statements and examine a small, isolated area like an oceanic island, we’ll find that while the total number of species living there is relatively low, as we'll discuss in our chapter on geographical distribution, a significant portion of these species are endemic—that is, they originated there and nowhere else. Therefore, an oceanic island might initially appear to be very conducive to the development of new species. However, we could easily mislead ourselves; to determine whether a small isolated area or a large open area like a continent is more favorable for the emergence of new organic forms, we would need to make comparisons over equal time periods, which we are unable to do.

Although I do not doubt that isolation is of considerable importance in the production of new species, on the whole I am inclined to believe that largeness of area is of more importance, more especially in the production of species, which will prove capable of enduring for a long period, and of spreading widely. Throughout a great and open area, not only will there be a better chance of favourable variations arising from the large number of individuals of the same species there supported, but the conditions of life are infinitely complex from the large number of already existing species; and if some of these many species become modified and improved, others will have to be improved in a corresponding degree or they will be exterminated. Each new form, also, as soon as it has been much improved, will be able to spread over the open and continuous area, and will thus come into competition with many others. Hence more new places will be formed, and the competition to fill them will be more severe, on a large than on a small and isolated area. Moreover, great areas, though now continuous, owing to oscillations of level, will often have recently existed in a broken condition, so that the good effects of isolation will generally, to a certain extent, have concurred. Finally, I conclude that, although small isolated areas probably have been in some respects highly favourable for the production of new species, yet that the course of modification will generally have been more rapid on large areas; and what is more important, that the new forms produced on large areas, which already have been victorious over many competitors, will be those that will spread most widely, will give rise to most new varieties and species, and will thus play an important part in the changing history of the organic world.

While I don't doubt that isolation plays a significant role in creating new species, I generally believe that the size of an area is even more important, especially when it comes to producing species that can survive long-term and spread widely. In a vast and open area, there's a greater chance for beneficial variations to arise from the large population of the same species present there. Additionally, the living conditions are incredibly complex due to the many existing species. If some of these numerous species become modified and enhanced, others will also need to adapt or they will be wiped out. Each new form, once significantly improved, will be able to expand across the open and continuous area and will thus compete with many others. This leads to more new habitats being created, and the competition to occupy them will be fiercer in larger areas than in smaller, isolated ones. Furthermore, large areas, although currently continuous, have often been fragmented in the past due to changes in land level, meaning the benefits of isolation will still have had some influence. In conclusion, while small isolated areas may have been somewhat favorable for the development of new species, the process of modification is likely to be faster in larger areas. More importantly, the new forms that emerge in large areas, having already outcompeted many others, are those that will spread the farthest, generate the most new varieties and species, and thus have a significant impact on the evolving history of the organic world.

We can, perhaps, on these views, understand some facts which will be again alluded to in our chapter on geographical distribution; for instance, that the productions of the smaller continent of Australia have formerly yielded, and apparently are now yielding, before those of the larger Europæo-Asiatic area. Thus, also, it is that continental productions have everywhere become so largely naturalised on islands. On a small island, the race for life will have been less severe, and there will have been less modification and less extermination. Hence, perhaps, it comes that the flora of Madeira, according to Oswald Heer, resembles the extinct tertiary flora of Europe. All fresh-water basins, taken together, make a small area compared with that of the sea or of the land; and, consequently, the competition between fresh-water productions will have been less severe than elsewhere; new forms will have been more slowly formed, and old forms more slowly exterminated. And it is in fresh water that we find seven genera of Ganoid fishes, remnants of a once preponderant order: and in fresh water we find some of the most anomalous forms now known in the world, as the Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren, which, like fossils, connect to a certain extent orders now widely separated in the natural scale. These anomalous forms may almost be called living fossils; they have endured to the present day, from having inhabited a confined area, and from having thus been exposed to less severe competition.

We can, perhaps, based on these ideas, understand some facts that will be mentioned again in our chapter on geographical distribution; for example, that the products of the smaller continent of Australia have previously provided, and seem to still provide, more than those of the larger Euro-Asian area. Likewise, this is why continental species have become so widely established on islands. On a small island, the struggle for survival is typically less intense, leading to less change and fewer extinctions. This might explain why the flora of Madeira, according to Oswald Heer, is similar to the extinct tertiary flora of Europe. All freshwater systems combined represent a small area compared to the sea or land; consequently, competition among freshwater species is likely less fierce than in other environments, resulting in new forms evolving more slowly and old forms disappearing at a slower rate. In freshwater, we find seven genera of Ganoid fishes, remnants of a once-dominant group: and in freshwater, we encounter some of the most unusual forms known today, like the Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren, which, much like fossils, link together to some extent orders that are now very separated in the natural classification. These unusual forms could almost be considered living fossils; they have survived to this day by living in a confined area and therefore facing less intense competition.

To sum up the circumstances favourable and unfavourable to natural selection, as far as the extreme intricacy of the subject permits. I conclude, looking to the future, that for terrestrial productions a large continental area, which will probably undergo many oscillations of level, and which consequently will exist for long periods in a broken condition, will be the most favourable for the production of many new forms of life, likely to endure long and to spread widely. For the area will first have existed as a continent, and the inhabitants, at this period numerous in individuals and kinds, will have been subjected to very severe competition. When converted by subsidence into large separate islands, there will still exist many individuals of the same species on each island: intercrossing on the confines of the range of each species will thus be checked: after physical changes of any kind, immigration will be prevented, so that new places in the polity of each island will have to be filled up by modifications of the old inhabitants; and time will be allowed for the varieties in each to become well modified and perfected. When, by renewed elevation, the islands shall be re-converted into a continental area, there will again be severe competition: the most favoured or improved varieties will be enabled to spread: there will be much extinction of the less improved forms, and the relative proportional numbers of the various inhabitants of the renewed continent will again be changed; and again there will be a fair field for natural selection to improve still further the inhabitants, and thus produce new species.

To sum up the factors that favor and hinder natural selection, as much as the complexity of the subject allows, I conclude that looking to the future, a large continental area, which is likely to experience many changes in elevation and thus exist for long periods in a fragmented state, will be the most conducive to the emergence of many new life forms that are likely to endure and spread widely. This area would have first existed as a continent, where the inhabitants, numerous in both individuals and species, would have faced intense competition. Once this area turns into large separate islands due to sinking, there will still be many individuals of the same species on each island: interbreeding at the edges of each species' range will be hindered. After any physical changes, immigration will be limited, which means that new roles in the ecosystems of each island will need to be filled by modifications of the existing inhabitants; this will provide enough time for the varieties in each area to become well adapted and refined. When, after being uplifted again, the islands convert back into a continental area, competition will intensify once more; the most favorable or improved varieties will be able to spread; many of the less improved forms will go extinct, and the relative proportions of the various inhabitants of the newly formed continent will again change. This will create another opportunity for natural selection to further improve the inhabitants and produce new species.

That natural selection will always act with extreme slowness, I fully admit. Its action depends on there being places in the polity of nature, which can be better occupied by some of the inhabitants of the country undergoing modification of some kind. The existence of such places will often depend on physical changes, which are generally very slow, and on the immigration of better adapted forms having been checked. But the action of natural selection will probably still oftener depend on some of the inhabitants becoming slowly modified; the mutual relations of many of the other inhabitants being thus disturbed. Nothing can be effected, unless favourable variations occur, and variation itself is apparently always a very slow process. The process will often be greatly retarded by free intercrossing. Many will exclaim that these several causes are amply sufficient wholly to stop the action of natural selection. I do not believe so. On the other hand, I do believe that natural selection will always act very slowly, often only at long intervals of time, and generally on only a very few of the inhabitants of the same region at the same time. I further believe, that this very slow, intermittent action of natural selection accords perfectly well with what geology tells us of the rate and manner at which the inhabitants of this world have changed.

I completely accept that natural selection always works very slowly. Its impact relies on the presence of opportunities in the natural world that can be better taken up by some of the species in the area that are undergoing change. The existence of these opportunities often hinges on slow physical changes and the limited arrival of better-adapted species. However, natural selection often depends even more on some of the current species slowly changing, which disrupts the relationships with many other species. Nothing can happen without favorable changes, and these changes are generally a slow process. Additionally, this process can be significantly slowed down by random mixing of species. Many might argue that these factors are more than enough to completely halt natural selection. I don’t think that’s true. On the other hand, I believe that natural selection will always work very slowly, often only at long intervals, and typically affects only a few species in the same area at the same time. I also believe that this very slow, sporadic action of natural selection aligns perfectly with what geology tells us about the pace and manner in which the species on this planet have evolved.

Slow though the process of selection may be, if feeble man can do much by his powers of artificial selection, I can see no limit to the amount of change, to the beauty and infinite complexity of the coadaptations between all organic beings, one with another and with their physical conditions of life, which may be effected in the long course of time by nature’s power of selection.

Even though the process of selection might be slow, if weak humans can achieve a lot through artificial selection, I see no limit to the amount of change, the beauty, and the endless complexity of the relationships among all living beings, as well as their interactions with their physical environments, that could be brought about over time by nature's power of selection.

Extinction.—This subject will be more fully discussed in our chapter on Geology; but it must be here alluded to from being intimately connected with natural selection. Natural selection acts solely through the preservation of variations in some way advantageous, which consequently endure. But as from the high geometrical powers of increase of all organic beings, each area is already fully stocked with inhabitants, it follows that as each selected and favoured form increases in number, so will the less favoured forms decrease and become rare. Rarity, as geology tells us, is the precursor to extinction. We can, also, see that any form represented by few individuals will, during fluctuations in the seasons or in the number of its enemies, run a good chance of utter extinction. But we may go further than this; for as new forms are continually and slowly being produced, unless we believe that the number of specific forms goes on perpetually and almost indefinitely increasing, numbers inevitably must become extinct. That the number of specific forms has not indefinitely increased, geology shows us plainly; and indeed we can see reason why they should not have thus increased, for the number of places in the polity of nature is not indefinitely great,—not that we have any means of knowing that any one region has as yet got its maximum of species. Probably no region is as yet fully stocked, for at the Cape of Good Hope, where more species of plants are crowded together than in any other quarter of the world, some foreign plants have become naturalised, without causing, as far as we know, the extinction of any natives.

Extinction.—This topic will be explored in more detail in our chapter on Geology; however, it needs to be mentioned here because it's closely related to natural selection. Natural selection operates solely by preserving variations that provide some advantage, which therefore persist. But since all living beings have a rapid growth potential, each area is already fully populated, which means that as the selected and favored forms increase in number, the less favored forms will decrease and become rare. Rarity, as geology indicates, is the precursor to extinction. Additionally, it's evident that any form represented by a small number of individuals faces a significant risk of complete extinction during seasonal changes or fluctuations in the number of its predators. Moreover, since new forms are continually and gradually arising, unless we assume that the number of specific forms continues to increase indefinitely, some numbers must inevitably become extinct. Geology clearly shows that the number of specific forms has not increased indefinitely; we can also see reasons why they should not have increased, as the capacity within nature is not unlimited. However, we still don't have any means of knowing if any one region has reached its maximum number of species. It's likely that no region is fully stocked; for example, at the Cape of Good Hope, where more plant species are concentrated than anywhere else in the world, some foreign plants have become established without, as far as we know, leading to the extinction of any native species.

Furthermore, the species which are most numerous in individuals will have the best chance of producing within any given period favourable variations. We have evidence of this, in the facts given in the second chapter, showing that it is the common species which afford the greatest number of recorded varieties, or incipient species. Hence, rare species will be less quickly modified or improved within any given period, and they will consequently be beaten in the race for life by the modified descendants of the commoner species.

Furthermore, the species that have the largest populations will have the best chance of producing favorable variations over any given time period. We see evidence of this in the facts presented in the second chapter, which show that it’s the common species that provide the highest number of recorded varieties or early species. Therefore, rare species will change or improve less quickly in any given time frame, and as a result, they will be outpaced in the struggle for survival by the modified descendants of the more common species.

From these several considerations I think it inevitably follows, that as new species in the course of time are formed through natural selection, others will become rarer and rarer, and finally extinct. The forms which stand in closest competition with those undergoing modification and improvement, will naturally suffer most. And we have seen in the chapter on the Struggle for Existence that it is the most closely-allied forms,—varieties of the same species, and species of the same genus or of related genera,—which, from having nearly the same structure, constitution, and habits, generally come into the severest competition with each other. Consequently, each new variety or species, during the progress of its formation, will generally press hardest on its nearest kindred, and tend to exterminate them. We see the same process of extermination amongst our domesticated productions, through the selection of improved forms by man. Many curious instances could be given showing how quickly new breeds of cattle, sheep, and other animals, and varieties of flowers, take the place of older and inferior kinds. In Yorkshire, it is historically known that the ancient black cattle were displaced by the long-horns, and that these “were swept away by the short-horns” (I quote the words of an agricultural writer) “as if by some murderous pestilence.”

From these various considerations, I believe it inevitably follows that as new species develop over time through natural selection, others will become increasingly rare and ultimately go extinct. The forms that are in closest competition with those that are changing and improving will naturally suffer the most. As we discussed in the chapter on the Struggle for Existence, it is the closely related forms—varieties of the same species and species from the same genus or related genera—that tend to compete most fiercely with each other due to their similar structures, constitutions, and habits. Therefore, each new variety or species, as it forms, will typically put the most pressure on its closest relatives and tend to eliminate them. We see the same extermination process among our domesticated species through the selection of improved forms by humans. Many fascinating examples could be given showing how quickly new breeds of cattle, sheep, and other animals, as well as varieties of flowers, replace older and inferior types. In Yorkshire, it is historically noted that the ancient black cattle were replaced by the long-horns, and that these “were swept away by the short-horns” (I quote the words of an agricultural writer) “as if by some murderous pestilence.”

Divergence of Character.—The principle, which I have designated by this term, is of high importance on my theory, and explains, as I believe, several important facts. In the first place, varieties, even strongly-marked ones, though having somewhat of the character of species—as is shown by the hopeless doubts in many cases how to rank them—yet certainly differ from each other far less than do good and distinct species. Nevertheless, according to my view, varieties are species in the process of formation, or are, as I have called them, incipient species. How, then, does the lesser difference between varieties become augmented into the greater difference between species? That this does habitually happen, we must infer from most of the innumerable species throughout nature presenting well-marked differences; whereas varieties, the supposed prototypes and parents of future well-marked species, present slight and ill-defined differences. Mere chance, as we may call it, might cause one variety to differ in some character from its parents, and the offspring of this variety again to differ from its parent in the very same character and in a greater degree; but this alone would never account for so habitual and large an amount of difference as that between varieties of the same species and species of the same genus.

Divergence of Character.—The principle I refer to with this term is crucial to my theory and explains, as I believe, several important facts. First, varieties, even those with distinct differences, while somewhat resembling species—as shown by the ongoing confusion in many cases about how to classify them—still differ from each other far less than well-defined species do. However, in my view, varieties are species in the process of becoming fully formed or, as I’ve called them, incipient species. How does this smaller difference between varieties increase into the larger difference seen between species? We can infer that this regularly occurs from the numerous species in nature that show clear differences; whereas varieties, thought to be the precursors and ancestors of future distinct species, exhibit minor and vague differences. Pure chance, as we might describe it, could lead one variety to differ from its parents in certain traits, and the offspring of that variety to differ further from its parent in the same trait; but this alone wouldn’t explain the consistent and significant differences observed between varieties of the same species and species of the same genus.

As has always been my practice, let us seek light on this head from our domestic productions. We shall here find something analogous. A fancier is struck by a pigeon having a slightly shorter beak; another fancier is struck by a pigeon having a rather longer beak; and on the acknowledged principle that “fanciers do not and will not admire a medium standard, but like extremes,” they both go on (as has actually occurred with tumbler-pigeons) choosing and breeding from birds with longer and longer beaks, or with shorter and shorter beaks. Again, we may suppose that at an early period one man preferred swifter horses; another stronger and more bulky horses. The early differences would be very slight; in the course of time, from the continued selection of swifter horses by some breeders, and of stronger ones by others, the differences would become greater, and would be noted as forming two sub-breeds; finally, after the lapse of centuries, the sub-breeds would become converted into two well-established and distinct breeds. As the differences slowly become greater, the inferior animals with intermediate characters, being neither very swift nor very strong, will have been neglected, and will have tended to disappear. Here, then, we see in man’s productions the action of what may be called the principle of divergence, causing differences, at first barely appreciable, steadily to increase, and the breeds to diverge in character both from each other and from their common parent.

As has always been my practice, let's look for insights on from our own examples. Here, we can find something similar. One breeder is drawn to a pigeon with a slightly shorter beak; another is attracted to a pigeon with a longer beak. Based on the accepted idea that “breeders don’t admire a middle ground, but prefer extremes,” they both end up (as has actually happened with tumbler pigeons) selecting and breeding birds with longer and longer beaks, or shorter and shorter beaks. Similarly, we might imagine that early on, one person liked faster horses, while another preferred stronger, bulkier ones. The early differences would be minimal; over time, as some breeders continued to select for faster horses and others for stronger ones, the differences would grow, eventually being recognized as two sub-breeds. After many centuries, these sub-breeds would evolve into two distinct and well-established breeds. As these differences gradually expand, the inferior animals with intermediate traits, being neither very fast nor very strong, will have been overlooked and would tend to disappear. Thus, we can see in human-created varieties the effect of what might be called the principle of divergence, leading to differences that were initially minor but steadily increase, causing the breeds to differ from one another and from their common ancestor.

But how, it may be asked, can any analogous principle apply in nature? I believe it can and does apply most efficiently, from the simple circumstance that the more diversified the descendants from any one species become in structure, constitution, and habits, by so much will they be better enabled to seize on many and widely diversified places in the polity of nature, and so be enabled to increase in numbers.

But how, one might wonder, can a similar principle apply in nature? I believe it can and does apply effectively, simply because the more varied the descendants from any one species are in their structure, make-up, and behaviors, the better they are able to occupy many different roles in the natural world, which allows them to increase in population.

We can clearly see this in the case of animals with simple habits. Take the case of a carnivorous quadruped, of which the number that can be supported in any country has long ago arrived at its full average. If its natural powers of increase be allowed to act, it can succeed in increasing (the country not undergoing any change in its conditions) only by its varying descendants seizing on places at present occupied by other animals: some of them, for instance, being enabled to feed on new kinds of prey, either dead or alive; some inhabiting new stations, climbing trees, frequenting water, and some perhaps becoming less carnivorous. The more diversified in habits and structure the descendants of our carnivorous animal became, the more places they would be enabled to occupy. What applies to one animal will apply throughout all time to all animals—that is, if they vary—for otherwise natural selection can do nothing. So it will be with plants. It has been experimentally proved, that if a plot of ground be sown with one species of grass, and a similar plot be sown with several distinct genera of grasses, a greater number of plants and a greater weight of dry herbage can thus be raised. The same has been found to hold good when first one variety and then several mixed varieties of wheat have been sown on equal spaces of ground. Hence, if any one species of grass were to go on varying, and those varieties were continually selected which differed from each other in at all the same manner as distinct species and genera of grasses differ from each other, a greater number of individual plants of this species of grass, including its modified descendants, would succeed in living on the same piece of ground. And we well know that each species and each variety of grass is annually sowing almost countless seeds; and thus, as it may be said, is striving its utmost to increase its numbers. Consequently, I cannot doubt that in the course of many thousands of generations, the most distinct varieties of any one species of grass would always have the best chance of succeeding and of increasing in numbers, and thus of supplanting the less distinct varieties; and varieties, when rendered very distinct from each other, take the rank of species.

We can clearly see this with animals that have simple habits. Take a carnivorous four-legged animal, for example. The number of these animals that can thrive in any country has long reached its limit. If it’s allowed to reproduce naturally, it can only increase (assuming the environment stays the same) by its different offspring taking over areas currently occupied by other animals: some might be able to eat new types of prey, either dead or alive; some may live in new environments, climbing trees, using water, and some might even become less carnivorous. The more varied in habits and characteristics the descendants of our carnivorous animal become, the more places they can occupy. What applies to one animal applies to all animals throughout time—that is, if they change—because otherwise natural selection has no effect. The same goes for plants. It's been experimentally shown that if a plot of land is planted with one type of grass, and another plot with several different types of grasses, more plants and more weight of dry grass can be produced. This has also been observed with wheat, where first one variety and then several mixed varieties are planted on the same area. Therefore, if one type of grass continues to change, and those variations are consistently chosen based on how different they are from each other, just like how distinct species and types of grasses differ, a larger number of individual plants of that grass species, along with its modified descendants, would be able to thrive on the same land. We know that each species and variety of grass is producing nearly countless seeds every year; thus, it is striving to increase its numbers. Consequently, I have no doubt that over many thousands of generations, the most distinct varieties of any one grass species would always have the best chances to thrive and grow in numbers, potentially replacing the less distinct varieties; and when varieties become very different from one another, they start to be recognized as distinct species.

The truth of the principle, that the greatest amount of life can be supported by great diversification of structure, is seen under many natural circumstances. In an extremely small area, especially if freely open to immigration, and where the contest between individual and individual must be severe, we always find great diversity in its inhabitants. For instance, I found that a piece of turf, three feet by four in size, which had been exposed for many years to exactly the same conditions, supported twenty species of plants, and these belonged to eighteen genera and to eight orders, which shows how much these plants differed from each other. So it is with the plants and insects on small and uniform islets; and so in small ponds of fresh water. Farmers find that they can raise most food by a rotation of plants belonging to the most different orders: nature follows what may be called a simultaneous rotation. Most of the animals and plants which live close round any small piece of ground, could live on it (supposing it not to be in any way peculiar in its nature), and may be said to be striving to the utmost to live there; but, it is seen, that where they come into the closest competition with each other, the advantages of diversification of structure, with the accompanying differences of habit and constitution, determine that the inhabitants, which thus jostle each other most closely, shall, as a general rule, belong to what we call different genera and orders.

The truth of the idea that the greatest variety of life can be supported by a wide range of structures is evident in many natural situations. In a very small area, especially if it's open to immigration and where competition among individuals is intense, we always see a high diversity among the species present. For example, I discovered that a patch of grass measuring three feet by four, which had been exposed to the same conditions for many years, supported twenty species of plants, belonging to eighteen different genera and eight orders. This illustrates how diverse these plants were from one another. The same is true for the plants and insects on small, uniform islands and in small freshwater ponds. Farmers find they can cultivate the most food by rotating plants from very different categories: nature seems to practice what could be called a simultaneous rotation. Most of the animals and plants living around any small patch of land could survive on it (assuming it isn't uniquely different in any way) and are essentially trying their hardest to thrive there. However, it becomes clear that in situations where they compete most closely, the benefits of various structures, along with the accompanying differences in habits and characteristics, generally lead to the inhabitants, who are forced to compete, belonging to what we refer to as different genera and orders.

The same principle is seen in the naturalisation of plants through man’s agency in foreign lands. It might have been expected that the plants which have succeeded in becoming naturalised in any land would generally have been closely allied to the indigenes; for these are commonly looked at as specially created and adapted for their own country. It might, also, perhaps have been expected that naturalised plants would have belonged to a few groups more especially adapted to certain stations in their new homes. But the case is very different; and Alph. De Candolle has well remarked in his great and admirable work, that floras gain by naturalisation, proportionally with the number of the native genera and species, far more in new genera than in new species. To give a single instance: in the last edition of Dr. Asa Gray’s ‘Manual of the Flora of the Northern United States,’ 260 naturalised plants are enumerated, and these belong to 162 genera. We thus see that these naturalised plants are of a highly diversified nature. They differ, moreover, to a large extent from the indigenes, for out of the 162 genera, no less than 100 genera are not there indigenous, and thus a large proportional addition is made to the genera of these States.

The same principle can be observed in how plants become naturalized by human actions in foreign lands. It might have been expected that the plants that successfully naturalize in a region would typically be closely related to the native species, as these are often thought to be specially created and suited for their own country. It might also have been expected that naturalized plants would belong to a few groups that are especially suited to particular environments in their new homes. However, the reality is quite different; as Alph. De Candolle has noted in his remarkable work, floras benefit from naturalization, increasing their number of new genera far more than their new species, in proportion to the number of native genera and species. For example, in the latest edition of Dr. Asa Gray’s ‘Manual of the Flora of the Northern United States,’ there are 260 naturalized plants listed, which belong to 162 genera. This demonstrates that these naturalized plants are highly diverse. Furthermore, they significantly differ from the native species, as out of the 162 genera, as many as 100 are not indigenous, contributing a substantial proportional increase to the genera in these states.

By considering the nature of the plants or animals which have struggled successfully with the indigenes of any country, and have there become naturalised, we can gain some crude idea in what manner some of the natives would have had to be modified, in order to have gained an advantage over the other natives; and we may, I think, at least safely infer that diversification of structure, amounting to new generic differences, would have been profitable to them.

By looking at the types of plants or animals that have successfully adapted to the locals in any country, we can get a rough idea of how some of the natives would need to change in order to gain an edge over others; and we can safely conclude that having a variety of structures, leading to new generic differences, would have been beneficial for them.

The advantage of diversification in the inhabitants of the same region is, in fact, the same as that of the physiological division of labour in the organs of the same individual body—a subject so well elucidated by Milne Edwards. No physiologist doubts that a stomach by being adapted to digest vegetable matter alone, or flesh alone, draws most nutriment from these substances. So in the general economy of any land, the more widely and perfectly the animals and plants are diversified for different habits of life, so will a greater number of individuals be capable of there supporting themselves. A set of animals, with their organisation but little diversified, could hardly compete with a set more perfectly diversified in structure. It may be doubted, for instance, whether the Australian marsupials, which are divided into groups differing but little from each other, and feebly representing, as Mr. Waterhouse and others have remarked, our carnivorous, ruminant, and rodent mammals, could successfully compete with these well-pronounced orders. In the Australian mammals, we see the process of diversification in an early and incomplete stage of development. After the foregoing discussion, which ought to have been much amplified, we may, I think, assume that the modified descendants of any one species will succeed by so much the better as they become more diversified in structure, and are thus enabled to encroach on places occupied by other beings. Now let us see how this principle of great benefit being derived from divergence of character, combined with the principles of natural selection and of extinction, will tend to act.

The benefit of having a variety of species in the same area is similar to the way different organs in a single body specialize in their functions—a concept that Milne Edwards explained very well. No physiologist disputes that a stomach designed to digest either only plant matter or meat alone extracts the most nutrients from those specific foods. Likewise, in the overall ecosystem of any region, the more diverse the animals and plants are in their lifestyles, the more individuals can thrive there. A group of animals with little variation in their structure would struggle to compete with a group that is more structurally diverse. For example, it’s questionable whether Australian marsupials, which are grouped closely together and only weakly represent our carnivorous, ruminant, and rodent mammals, could compete effectively with these well-defined groups. In Australian mammals, we observe diversification in an early and incomplete stage. After this discussion, which could have been much more detailed, we can assume that the modified descendants of a single species will thrive better as they become more structurally diverse, allowing them to invade niches occupied by other organisms. Now, let's explore how this principle of gaining benefits from diversification, combined with the principles of natural selection and extinction, is likely to play out.

The accompanying diagram will aid us in understanding this rather perplexing subject. Let A to L represent the species of a genus large in its own country; these species are supposed to resemble each other in unequal degrees, as is so generally the case in nature, and as is represented in the diagram by the letters standing at unequal distances. I have said a large genus, because we have seen in the second chapter, that on an average more of the species of large genera vary than of small genera; and the varying species of the large genera present a greater number of varieties. We have, also, seen that the species, which are the commonest and the most widely-diffused, vary more than rare species with restricted ranges. Let (A) be a common, widely-diffused, and varying species, belonging to a genus large in its own country. The little fan of diverging dotted lines of unequal lengths proceeding from (A), may represent its varying offspring. The variations are supposed to be extremely slight, but of the most diversified nature; they are not supposed all to appear simultaneously, but often after long intervals of time; nor are they all supposed to endure for equal periods. Only those variations which are in some way profitable will be preserved or naturally selected. And here the importance of the principle of benefit being derived from divergence of character comes in; for this will generally lead to the most different or divergent variations (represented by the outer dotted lines) being preserved and accumulated by natural selection. When a dotted line reaches one of the horizontal lines, and is there marked by a small numbered letter, a sufficient amount of variation is supposed to have been accumulated to have formed a fairly well-marked variety, such as would be thought worthy of record in a systematic work.

The diagram will help us understand this confusing topic. Let A to L represent the species of a large genus in its own country; these species are thought to resemble each other to varying degrees, as is often the case in nature, and this is shown in the diagram by the letters spaced unevenly. I mentioned a large genus because we saw in the second chapter, that, on average, more species from larger genera vary compared to smaller ones; and the varying species of larger genera show a greater number of varieties. We also saw that the species that are most common and widespread vary more than rare species with limited distributions. Let (A) be a common, widely-distributed, varying species from a large genus in its own country. The small fan of diverging dotted lines of different lengths coming from (A) may represent its varying offspring. The variations are thought to be very small but highly diverse; they are not all expected to appear at the same time, but often after long intervals; nor are they all expected to last for the same duration. Only those variations that provide some kind of advantage will be preserved or naturally selected. This is where the importance of deriving benefits from differing characteristics comes in; this will usually lead to the preservation and accumulation of the most distinct variations (represented by the outer dotted lines) through natural selection. When a dotted line reaches one of the horizontal lines and is marked by a small numbered letter, it is assumed that enough variation has built up to form a well-defined variety, one that would be considered worth noting in a systematic study.

The intervals between the horizontal lines in the diagram, may represent each a thousand generations; but it would have been better if each had represented ten thousand generations. After a thousand generations, species (A) is supposed to have produced two fairly well-marked varieties, namely a1 and m1. These two varieties will generally continue to be exposed to the same conditions which made their parents variable, and the tendency to variability is in itself hereditary, consequently they will tend to vary, and generally to vary in nearly the same manner as their parents varied. Moreover, these two varieties, being only slightly modified forms, will tend to inherit those advantages which made their common parent (A) more numerous than most of the other inhabitants of the same country; they will likewise partake of those more general advantages which made the genus to which the parent-species belonged, a large genus in its own country. And these circumstances we know to be favourable to the production of new varieties.

The spaces between the horizontal lines in the diagram might each represent a thousand generations, but it would have been better if each represented ten thousand generations. After a thousand generations, species (A) is believed to have produced two distinct varieties, namely a1 and m1. These two varieties will usually continue to face the same conditions that made their parents variable, and since the tendency to vary is hereditary, they will likely continue to change, and typically in a similar way to how their parents changed. Furthermore, these two varieties, being only slightly altered forms, will likely inherit the advantages that made their common ancestor (A) more abundant than many other species in the same area; they will also benefit from the broader advantages that helped the genus to which the parent species belonged to thrive in its own region. We know that these conditions are favorable for the development of new varieties.

If, then, these two varieties be variable, the most divergent of their variations will generally be preserved during the next thousand generations. And after this interval, variety a1 is supposed in the diagram to have produced variety a2, which will, owing to the principle of divergence, differ more from (A) than did variety a1. Variety m1 is supposed to have produced two varieties, namely m2 and s2, differing from each other, and more considerably from their common parent (A). We may continue the process by similar steps for any length of time; some of the varieties, after each thousand generations, producing only a single variety, but in a more and more modified condition, some producing two or three varieties, and some failing to produce any. Thus the varieties or modified descendants, proceeding from the common parent (A), will generally go on increasing in number and diverging in character. In the diagram the process is represented up to the ten-thousandth generation, and under a condensed and simplified form up to the fourteen-thousandth generation.

If these two types are variable, the most distinct variations will usually be preserved over the next thousand generations. After this period, variety a1 is shown in the diagram to have produced variety a2, which, due to the principle of divergence, will differ even more from (A) than variety a1 did. Variety m1 is shown to have produced two varieties, m2 and s2, which differ from each other and are significantly different from their common ancestor (A). We can continue this process step by step indefinitely; some varieties, after each thousand generations, produce only one variety, but in increasingly modified forms, while others produce two or three varieties, and some produce none. Therefore, the varieties or modified descendants from the common ancestor (A) will generally continue to increase in number and diverge in their characteristics. The diagram illustrates this process up to the ten-thousandth generation, and in a condensed and simplified form, up to the fourteen-thousandth generation.

But I must here remark that I do not suppose that the process ever goes on so regularly as is represented in the diagram, though in itself made somewhat irregular. I am far from thinking that the most divergent varieties will invariably prevail and multiply: a medium form may often long endure, and may or may not produce more than one modified descendant; for natural selection will always act according to the nature of the places which are either unoccupied or not perfectly occupied by other beings; and this will depend on infinitely complex relations. But as a general rule, the more diversified in structure the descendants from any one species can be rendered, the more places they will be enabled to seize on, and the more their modified progeny will be increased. In our diagram the line of succession is broken at regular intervals by small numbered letters marking the successive forms which have become sufficiently distinct to be recorded as varieties. But these breaks are imaginary, and might have been inserted anywhere, after intervals long enough to have allowed the accumulation of a considerable amount of divergent variation.

But I have to say that I don’t think the process ever happens as smoothly as the diagram shows, even though it may look a bit irregular. I don’t believe that the most different varieties will always dominate and multiply; a middle form can often survive for a long time and might or might not produce more than one modified descendant. Natural selection will always act based on the nature of the areas that are either unoccupied or not fully occupied by other organisms, and this depends on incredibly complex relationships. Generally speaking, the more varied the structure of the descendants from any one species, the more places they will be able to occupy, and the greater their modified offspring will be. In our diagram, the line of succession is interrupted at regular points by small numbered letters indicating the different forms that have become distinct enough to be noted as varieties. However, these interruptions are imaginary and could have been placed anywhere, after long enough intervals to allow for a significant amount of divergent variation to accumulate.

As all the modified descendants from a common and widely-diffused species, belonging to a large genus, will tend to partake of the same advantages which made their parent successful in life, they will generally go on multiplying in number as well as diverging in character: this is represented in the diagram by the several divergent branches proceeding from (A). The modified offspring from the later and more highly improved branches in the lines of descent, will, it is probable, often take the place of, and so destroy, the earlier and less improved branches: this is represented in the diagram by some of the lower branches not reaching to the upper horizontal lines. In some cases I do not doubt that the process of modification will be confined to a single line of descent, and the number of the descendants will not be increased; although the amount of divergent modification may have been increased in the successive generations. This case would be represented in the diagram, if all the lines proceeding from (A) were removed, excepting that from a1 to a10. In the same way, for instance, the English race-horse and English pointer have apparently both gone on slowly diverging in character from their original stocks, without either having given off any fresh branches or races.

As all the modified descendants from a common and widely spread species, which belongs to a large genus, will tend to share the same advantages that helped their parent thrive, they will generally continue to multiply in number as well as vary in characteristics: this is shown in the diagram by the various divergent branches coming from (A). The modified offspring from the later and more advanced branches in the lines of descent will likely often replace and thus eliminate the earlier and less developed branches: this is illustrated in the diagram by some of the lower branches not reaching the upper horizontal lines. In some cases, I believe that the process of modification will be limited to a single line of descent, and the number of descendants will not increase; although the extent of divergent modification may have grown in the successive generations. This scenario would be depicted in the diagram if all the lines coming from (A) were removed, except for the one from a1 to a10. Similarly, for example, the English racehorse and English pointer have both apparently continued to slowly diverge in character from their original breeds, without either producing any new branches or races.

After ten thousand generations, species (A) is supposed to have produced three forms, a10, f10, and m10, which, from having diverged in character during the successive generations, will have come to differ largely, but perhaps unequally, from each other and from their common parent. If we suppose the amount of change between each horizontal line in our diagram to be excessively small, these three forms may still be only well-marked varieties; or they may have arrived at the doubtful category of sub-species; but we have only to suppose the steps in the process of modification to be more numerous or greater in amount, to convert these three forms into well-defined species: thus the diagram illustrates the steps by which the small differences distinguishing varieties are increased into the larger differences distinguishing species. By continuing the same process for a greater number of generations (as shown in the diagram in a condensed and simplified manner), we get eight species, marked by the letters between a14 and m14, all descended from (A). Thus, as I believe, species are multiplied and genera are formed.

After ten thousand generations, species (A) is expected to have produced three forms, a10, f10, and m10, which, due to having diverged in characteristics over successive generations, will have come to differ significantly, albeit perhaps unevenly, from each other and from their common ancestor. If we assume the amount of change between each horizontal line in our diagram is extremely small, these three forms may still be just well-defined varieties; or they may have reached the uncertain category of sub-species. However, if we were to envision the steps in the modification process as being more numerous or more substantial, we could turn these three forms into distinctly defined species. Thus, the diagram shows the process by which small differences that distinguish varieties grow into the larger differences that define species. By continuing this process over a larger number of generations (as depicted in the diagram in a condensed and simplified manner), we obtain eight species, indicated by the letters between a14 and m14, all descended from (A). Therefore, as I believe, species are generated and genera are formed.

In a large genus it is probable that more than one species would vary. In the diagram I have assumed that a second species (I) has produced, by analogous steps, after ten thousand generations, either two well-marked varieties (w10 and z10) or two species, according to the amount of change supposed to be represented between the horizontal lines. After fourteen thousand generations, six new species, marked by the letters n14 to z14, are supposed to have been produced. In each genus, the species, which are already extremely different in character, will generally tend to produce the greatest number of modified descendants; for these will have the best chance of filling new and widely different places in the polity of nature: hence in the diagram I have chosen the extreme species (A), and the nearly extreme species (I), as those which have largely varied, and have given rise to new varieties and species. The other nine species (marked by capital letters) of our original genus, may for a long period continue transmitting unaltered descendants; and this is shown in the diagram by the dotted lines not prolonged far upwards from want of space.

In a large group of related species, it's likely that more than one species will change over time. In the diagram, I've suggested that a second species (I) has developed, through similar processes, after ten thousand generations, either into two distinct varieties (w10 and z10) or into two species, depending on how much change is represented between the horizontal lines. After fourteen thousand generations, six new species, labeled with the letters n14 to z14, are expected to have emerged. Within each group, the species that are already quite different from one another will usually produce the most modified descendants; these descendants will have the best chance of filling new and diverse roles in nature. That's why, in the diagram, I selected the most extreme species (A) and the nearly extreme species (I) as examples of those that have considerably varied and given rise to new varieties and species. The other nine species (marked with capital letters) from our original group may continue to pass down unchanged descendants for a long time, which is illustrated in the diagram by the dotted lines that don't extend far upward due to lack of space.

But during the process of modification, represented in the diagram, another of our principles, namely that of extinction, will have played an important part. As in each fully stocked country natural selection necessarily acts by the selected form having some advantage in the struggle for life over other forms, there will be a constant tendency in the improved descendants of any one species to supplant and exterminate in each stage of descent their predecessors and their original parent. For it should be remembered that the competition will generally be most severe between those forms which are most nearly related to each other in habits, constitution, and structure. Hence all the intermediate forms between the earlier and later states, that is between the less and more improved state of a species, as well as the original parent-species itself, will generally tend to become extinct. So it probably will be with many whole collateral lines of descent, which will be conquered by later and improved lines of descent. If, however, the modified offspring of a species get into some distinct country, or become quickly adapted to some quite new station, in which child and parent do not come into competition, both may continue to exist.

But during the process of change, shown in the diagram, another key principle, known as extinction, will play an important role. Just like in any fully populated country, natural selection works because the favored form has some advantage in the struggle for survival over other forms. This creates a constant tendency for the improved descendants of any species to replace and eliminate their predecessors and their original parent at each stage of evolution. It's important to remember that competition is usually fiercest among forms that are closely related to each other in habits, structure, and make-up. As a result, all the intermediate forms between the earlier and later stages—meaning the less and more advanced states of a species—as well as the original parent species itself, will typically move toward extinction. This will likely happen to many entire lines of descent that will be overtaken by newer and improved lines. However, if the modified offspring of a species end up in a different country, or quickly adapt to a new environment where parent and offspring do not compete, both can continue to thrive.

If then our diagram be assumed to represent a considerable amount of modification, species (A) and all the earlier varieties will have become extinct, having been replaced by eight new species (a14 to m14); and (I) will have been replaced by six (n14 to z14) new species.

If we assume our diagram represents a significant amount of change, species (A) and all the earlier varieties will have gone extinct, having been replaced by eight new species (a14 to m14); and (I) will have been replaced by six new species (n14 to z14).

But we may go further than this. The original species of our genus were supposed to resemble each other in unequal degrees, as is so generally the case in nature; species (A) being more nearly related to B, C, and D, than to the other species; and species (I) more to G, H, K, L, than to the others. These two species (A) and (I), were also supposed to be very common and widely diffused species, so that they must originally have had some advantage over most of the other species of the genus. Their modified descendants, fourteen in number at the fourteen-thousandth generation, will probably have inherited some of the same advantages: they have also been modified and improved in a diversified manner at each stage of descent, so as to have become adapted to many related places in the natural economy of their country. It seems, therefore, to me extremely probable that they will have taken the places of, and thus exterminated, not only their parents (A) and (I), but likewise some of the original species which were most nearly related to their parents. Hence very few of the original species will have transmitted offspring to the fourteen-thousandth generation. We may suppose that only one (F), of the two species which were least closely related to the other nine original species, has transmitted descendants to this late stage of descent.

But we can go further than this. The original species of our genus were thought to be similar to each other in varying degrees, which is typical in nature; species (A) being more closely related to B, C, and D than to the other species, and species (I) being more related to G, H, K, and L than to the others. These two species (A) and (I) were also believed to be quite common and widely spread, suggesting they must have originally had some advantage over most of the other species in the genus. Their modified descendants, fourteen in total at the fourteen-thousandth generation, will likely have inherited some of those same advantages: they have also been altered and improved in various ways at each stage of descent, adapting to many related roles in the natural environment of their country. Therefore, it seems very likely to me that they will have replaced and thus eliminated not only their parents (A) and (I) but also some of the original species that were most closely related to their parents. Consequently, very few of the original species will have produced offspring that reached the fourteen-thousandth generation. We might assume that only one (F) of the two species that were least closely related to the other nine original species has passed on descendants to this later stage of descent.

The new species in our diagram descended from the original eleven species, will now be fifteen in number. Owing to the divergent tendency of natural selection, the extreme amount of difference in character between species a14 and z14 will be much greater than that between the most different of the original eleven species. The new species, moreover, will be allied to each other in a widely different manner. Of the eight descendants from (A) the three marked a14, q14, p14, will be nearly related from having recently branched off from a10; b14 and f14, from having diverged at an earlier period from a5, will be in some degree distinct from the three first-named species; and lastly, o14, e14, and m14, will be nearly related one to the other, but from having diverged at the first commencement of the process of modification, will be widely different from the other five species, and may constitute a sub-genus or even a distinct genus.

The new species in our diagram have evolved from the original eleven species and will now total fifteen. Due to the varying effects of natural selection, the differences between species a14 and z14 will be much more significant than the differences among the original eleven species. Additionally, the new species will be related to each other in various ways. Of the eight descendants from (A), the three labeled a14, q14, and p14, will be closely related since they branched off recently from a10; b14 and f14, having diverged earlier from a5, will be somewhat distinct from the first three species. Finally, o14, e14, and m14, will be closely related to each other, but since they diverged at the very beginning of the modification process, they will be quite different from the other five species and might form a sub-genus or even a separate genus.

The six descendants from (I) will form two sub-genera or even genera. But as the original species (I) differed largely from (A), standing nearly at the extreme points of the original genus, the six descendants from (I) will, owing to inheritance, differ considerably from the eight descendants from (A); the two groups, moreover, are supposed to have gone on diverging in different directions. The intermediate species, also (and this is a very important consideration), which connected the original species (A) and (I), have all become, excepting (F), extinct, and have left no descendants. Hence the six new species descended from (I), and the eight descended from (A), will have to be ranked as very distinct genera, or even as distinct sub-families.

The six descendants from (I) will create two sub-genera or even separate genera. However, since the original species (I) was quite different from (A), positioned nearly at opposite ends of the original genus, the six descendants from (I) will, due to inheritance, vary significantly from the eight descendants from (A). Additionally, it’s believed that the two groups have continued to diverge in different ways. The intermediate species that linked the original species (A) and (I) have all become extinct, except for (F), and have left no offspring. Therefore, the six new species that descended from (I) and the eight that descended from (A) will need to be classified as very distinct genera, or potentially even as separate sub-families.

Thus it is, as I believe, that two or more genera are produced by descent, with modification, from two or more species of the same genus. And the two or more parent-species are supposed to have descended from some one species of an earlier genus. In our diagram, this is indicated by the broken lines, beneath the capital letters, converging in sub-branches downwards towards a single point; this point representing a single species, the supposed single parent of our several new sub-genera and genera.

Thus, I believe that two or more genera arise from the descent, with modifications, of two or more species from the same genus. The two or more parent species are thought to have come from a single species of an earlier genus. In our diagram, this is shown by the dashed lines beneath the capital letters, converging in sub-branches downward towards a single point; this point represents a single species, which is believed to be the common ancestor of our various new sub-genera and genera.

It is worth while to reflect for a moment on the character of the new species F14, which is supposed not to have diverged much in character, but to have retained the form of (F), either unaltered or altered only in a slight degree. In this case, its affinities to the other fourteen new species will be of a curious and circuitous nature. Having descended from a form which stood between the two parent-species (A) and (I), now supposed to be extinct and unknown, it will be in some degree intermediate in character between the two groups descended from these species. But as these two groups have gone on diverging in character from the type of their parents, the new species (F14) will not be directly intermediate between them, but rather between types of the two groups; and every naturalist will be able to bring some such case before his mind.

It's worth taking a moment to think about the new species F14, which is thought not to have changed much in character but has kept the form of (F), either unchanged or only slightly modified. In this situation, its connections to the other fourteen new species will be quite interesting and indirect. Having evolved from a form that existed between the two parent species (A) and (I), which are now believed to be extinct and unknown, it will be somewhat intermediate in character between the two groups that descended from these species. However, since these two groups have continued to diverge in character from their parent type, the new species (F14) will not be directly intermediate between them, but rather between types of the two groups; and any naturalist will be able to think of similar examples.

In the diagram, each horizontal line has hitherto been supposed to represent a thousand generations, but each may represent a million or hundred million generations, and likewise a section of the successive strata of the earth’s crust including extinct remains. We shall, when we come to our chapter on Geology, have to refer again to this subject, and I think we shall then see that the diagram throws light on the affinities of extinct beings, which, though generally belonging to the same orders, or families, or genera, with those now living, yet are often, in some degree, intermediate in character between existing groups; and we can understand this fact, for the extinct species lived at very ancient epochs when the branching lines of descent had diverged less.

In the diagram, each horizontal line has so far been assumed to represent a thousand generations, but each one could stand for a million or even a hundred million generations, and similarly, a section of the successive layers of the earth's crust that includes fossil remains. When we get to our chapter on Geology, we'll need to revisit this topic, and I believe we will then see that the diagram sheds light on the connections between extinct beings, which, although generally belonging to the same orders, families, or genera as those currently living, are often somewhat intermediate in nature between existing groups; and we can understand this fact, for the extinct species existed in very ancient times when the branching lines of descent had diverged less.

I see no reason to limit the process of modification, as now explained, to the formation of genera alone. If, in our diagram, we suppose the amount of change represented by each successive group of diverging dotted lines to be very great, the forms marked a14 to p14, those marked b14 and f14, and those marked o14 to m14, will form three very distinct genera. We shall also have two very distinct genera descended from (I) and as these latter two genera, both from continued divergence of character and from inheritance from a different parent, will differ widely from the three genera descended from (A), the two little groups of genera will form two distinct families, or even orders, according to the amount of divergent modification supposed to be represented in the diagram. And the two new families, or orders, will have descended from two species of the original genus; and these two species are supposed to have descended from one species of a still more ancient and unknown genus.

I see no reason to limit the modification process, as explained, to just the formation of genera. If we assume that each successive group of diverging dotted lines in our diagram represents a significant amount of change, the forms labeled a14 to p14, those labeled b14 and f14, and those labeled o14 to m14 will create three very distinct genera. We will also have two very distinct genera descended from (I), and since these two genera will differ greatly from the three genera descended from (A) due to continued divergence and inheritance from a different ancestor, the two small groups of genera will form two distinct families, or even orders, depending on the extent of divergent modification shown in the diagram. And these two new families, or orders, will have originated from two species of the original genus; these two species are thought to have evolved from one species of an even more ancient and unknown genus.

We have seen that in each country it is the species of the larger genera which oftenest present varieties or incipient species. This, indeed, might have been expected; for as natural selection acts through one form having some advantage over other forms in the struggle for existence, it will chiefly act on those which already have some advantage; and the largeness of any group shows that its species have inherited from a common ancestor some advantage in common. Hence, the struggle for the production of new and modified descendants, will mainly lie between the larger groups, which are all trying to increase in number. One large group will slowly conquer another large group, reduce its numbers, and thus lessen its chance of further variation and improvement. Within the same large group, the later and more highly perfected sub-groups, from branching out and seizing on many new places in the polity of Nature, will constantly tend to supplant and destroy the earlier and less improved sub-groups. Small and broken groups and sub-groups will finally tend to disappear. Looking to the future, we can predict that the groups of organic beings which are now large and triumphant, and which are least broken up, that is, which as yet have suffered least extinction, will for a long period continue to increase. But which groups will ultimately prevail, no man can predict; for we well know that many groups, formerly most extensively developed, have now become extinct. Looking still more remotely to the future, we may predict that, owing to the continued and steady increase of the larger groups, a multitude of smaller groups will become utterly extinct, and leave no modified descendants; and consequently that of the species living at any one period, extremely few will transmit descendants to a remote futurity. I shall have to return to this subject in the chapter on Classification, but I may add that on this view of extremely few of the more ancient species having transmitted descendants, and on the view of all the descendants of the same species making a class, we can understand how it is that there exist but very few classes in each main division of the animal and vegetable kingdoms. Although extremely few of the most ancient species may now have living and modified descendants, yet at the most remote geological period, the earth may have been as well peopled with many species of many genera, families, orders, and classes, as at the present day.

We have observed that in every country, it’s usually the species within larger genera that frequently show varieties or emerging species. This is actually what we would expect; because natural selection operates through one form having some advantages over others in the fight for survival, it primarily affects those forms that already have some edge. The size of a group indicates that its species inherited some common advantage from a shared ancestor. Therefore, the competition to produce new and modified descendants mainly occurs among larger groups, which are all trying to grow in number. One large group will gradually overpower another large group, reduce its population, and thus diminish the chances for further variation and improvement. Within the same large group, the newer and more advanced sub-groups, by branching out and occupying new roles in the ecosystem, will constantly push out and eliminate the earlier and less developed sub-groups. Small and fragmented groups and sub-groups will eventually disappear. Looking ahead, we can predict that the groups of living organisms that are currently large and successful, and that are least fragmented, meaning they have experienced the least extinction, will continue to grow for a long time. However, which groups will ultimately dominate is unpredictable since we know that many previously dominant groups have become extinct. Looking even further into the future, we can anticipate that due to the ongoing and steady growth of the larger groups, many smaller groups will become completely extinct and leave no modified descendants; consequently, very few species alive at any given time will pass on descendants to a distant future. I’ll have to revisit this topic in the chapter on Classification, but it’s worth noting that based on the idea that very few of the ancient species have left descendants, and considering that all descendants of the same species form a class, we can see why there are so few classes in each major category of the animal and plant kingdoms. Although very few of the most ancient species may have living and modified descendants today, during the most distant geological periods, the earth could have been populated by many species across many genera, families, orders, and classes, just as it is now.

Summary of the Chapter.—If during the long course of ages and under varying conditions of life, organic beings vary at all in the several parts of their organisation, and I think this cannot be disputed; if there be, owing to the high geometrical powers of increase of each species, at some age, season, or year, a severe struggle for life, and this certainly cannot be disputed; then, considering the infinite complexity of the relations of all organic beings to each other and to their conditions of existence, causing an infinite diversity in structure, constitution, and habits, to be advantageous to them, I think it would be a most extraordinary fact if no variation ever had occurred useful to each being’s own welfare, in the same way as so many variations have occurred useful to man. But if variations useful to any organic being do occur, assuredly individuals thus characterised will have the best chance of being preserved in the struggle for life; and from the strong principle of inheritance they will tend to produce offspring similarly characterised. This principle of preservation, I have called, for the sake of brevity, Natural Selection. Natural selection, on the principle of qualities being inherited at corresponding ages, can modify the egg, seed, or young, as easily as the adult. Amongst many animals, sexual selection will give its aid to ordinary selection, by assuring to the most vigorous and best adapted males the greatest number of offspring. Sexual selection will also give characters useful to the males alone, in their struggles with other males.

Summary of the Chapter.—If, over the long course of ages and under different living conditions, living organisms do vary in their various parts, I believe this is undeniable; if there is, due to the rapid growth potential of each species, a tough struggle for survival at some point, season, or year, this too is undeniable; then, considering the endless complexity of how all living beings relate to one another and to their environments, which leads to a vast diversity in structure, function, and behavior that benefits them, it would be quite remarkable if no variations had ever occurred that were beneficial to each being's own survival, just as many variations have proven advantageous to humans. However, if beneficial variations do happen in any living organism, those individuals will likely have the best chance of surviving the struggle for life; and thanks to the strong principle of inheritance, they will tend to produce offspring with similar traits. I have referred to this principle of survival, for the sake of simplicity, as Natural Selection. Natural selection, based on the inheritance of traits at corresponding ages, can modify the egg, seed, or young just as easily as the adult. In many animals, sexual selection will complement natural selection by ensuring that the strongest and best-adapted males have the most offspring. Sexual selection will also develop traits that are beneficial to males alone in their competition with other males.

Whether natural selection has really thus acted in nature, in modifying and adapting the various forms of life to their several conditions and stations, must be judged of by the general tenour and balance of evidence given in the following chapters. But we already see how it entails extinction; and how largely extinction has acted in the world’s history, geology plainly declares. Natural selection, also, leads to divergence of character; for more living beings can be supported on the same area the more they diverge in structure, habits, and constitution, of which we see proof by looking at the inhabitants of any small spot or at naturalised productions. Therefore during the modification of the descendants of any one species, and during the incessant struggle of all species to increase in numbers, the more diversified these descendants become, the better will be their chance of succeeding in the battle of life. Thus the small differences distinguishing varieties of the same species, will steadily tend to increase till they come to equal the greater differences between species of the same genus, or even of distinct genera.

Whether natural selection has truly operated in nature by modifying and adapting various forms of life to their specific conditions must be assessed based on the overall evidence presented in the following chapters. However, we can already see how it leads to extinction, and geology clearly shows how significant extinction has been throughout the world's history. Natural selection also promotes the divergence of characteristics; more living beings can thrive in the same area the more they differ in structure, habits, and constitution, as we can observe in the inhabitants of any small locale or in naturalized species. Therefore, as the descendants of any one species evolve and during the constant struggle of all species to grow in numbers, the more diverse these descendants become, the better their chances of succeeding in the competition for survival. Thus, the small differences that distinguish varieties of the same species will increasingly tend to grow until they match the larger differences between species of the same genus, or even between different genera.

We have seen that it is the common, the widely-diffused, and widely-ranging species, belonging to the larger genera, which vary most; and these will tend to transmit to their modified offspring that superiority which now makes them dominant in their own countries. Natural selection, as has just been remarked, leads to divergence of character and to much extinction of the less improved and intermediate forms of life. On these principles, I believe, the nature of the affinities of all organic beings may be explained. It is a truly wonderful fact—the wonder of which we are apt to overlook from familiarity—that all animals and all plants throughout all time and space should be related to each other in group subordinate to group, in the manner which we everywhere behold—namely, varieties of the same species most closely related together, species of the same genus less closely and unequally related together, forming sections and sub-genera, species of distinct genera much less closely related, and genera related in different degrees, forming sub-families, families, orders, sub-classes, and classes. The several subordinate groups in any class cannot be ranked in a single file, but seem rather to be clustered round points, and these round other points, and so on in almost endless cycles. On the view that each species has been independently created, I can see no explanation of this great fact in the classification of all organic beings; but, to the best of my judgment, it is explained through inheritance and the complex action of natural selection, entailing extinction and divergence of character, as we have seen illustrated in the diagram.

We have noticed that it’s the common, widely spread, and diverse species, which belong to larger groups, that vary the most; and these species are likely to pass on their advantages to their modified offspring, which is why they currently dominate in their habitats. As we’ve just pointed out, natural selection causes variations and leads to the extinction of less developed and intermediate forms of life. Based on these principles, I believe we can understand the relationships among all living organisms. It’s a truly amazing fact—one we often take for granted due to its familiarity—that all animals and plants across time and space are connected in a hierarchy of groups, as we see everywhere. This means that varieties within the same species are most closely related, species within the same genus are less closely related, forming sections and sub-genera, while species in different genera are much less related, and genera relate in various ways to form sub-families, families, orders, sub-classes, and classes. The different subordinate groups in any class can't be neatly lined up; instead, they seem to cluster around points, which are then clustered around other points, and so on in almost endless cycles. If we consider that each species was created independently, I find it difficult to explain this significant fact in the classification of all living beings. However, in my view, it can be explained through inheritance and the complex processes of natural selection, which involve extinction and character divergence, as we've seen illustrated in the diagram.

The affinities of all the beings of the same class have sometimes been represented by a great tree. I believe this simile largely speaks the truth. The green and budding twigs may represent existing species; and those produced during each former year may represent the long succession of extinct species. At each period of growth all the growing twigs have tried to branch out on all sides, and to overtop and kill the surrounding twigs and branches, in the same manner as species and groups of species have tried to overmaster other species in the great battle for life. The limbs divided into great branches, and these into lesser and lesser branches, were themselves once, when the tree was small, budding twigs; and this connexion of the former and present buds by ramifying branches may well represent the classification of all extinct and living species in groups subordinate to groups. Of the many twigs which flourished when the tree was a mere bush, only two or three, now grown into great branches, yet survive and bear all the other branches; so with the species which lived during long-past geological periods, very few now have living and modified descendants. From the first growth of the tree, many a limb and branch has decayed and dropped off; and these lost branches of various sizes may represent those whole orders, families, and genera which have now no living representatives, and which are known to us only from having been found in a fossil state. As we here and there see a thin straggling branch springing from a fork low down in a tree, and which by some chance has been favoured and is still alive on its summit, so we occasionally see an animal like the Ornithorhynchus or Lepidosiren, which in some small degree connects by its affinities two large branches of life, and which has apparently been saved from fatal competition by having inhabited a protected station. As buds give rise by growth to fresh buds, and these, if vigorous, branch out and overtop on all sides many a feebler branch, so by generation I believe it has been with the great Tree of Life, which fills with its dead and broken branches the crust of the earth, and covers the surface with its ever branching and beautiful ramifications.

The connections among all beings in the same category have sometimes been compared to a huge tree. I think this comparison has a lot of truth to it. The green and budding twigs might represent existing species, while those that emerged in previous years could symbolize the long line of extinct species. At every stage of growth, all the growing twigs have tried to branch out in every direction and outgrow and overshadow the nearby twigs and branches, just like species and groups of species have attempted to dominate others in the fierce competition for survival. The branches split into larger branches, which then divide into smaller ones, and these were once, when the tree was younger, budding twigs themselves; this connection between past and present buds through branching may accurately represent the classification of all extinct and living species in groups within groups. Of the many twigs that thrived when the tree was just a bush, only two or three have now grown into significant branches that support all the others; similarly, from the species that lived in long-gone geological periods, very few have living and modified descendants today. Since the tree first started growing, many limbs and branches have decayed and fallen off; these lost branches of various sizes could represent entire orders, families, and genera that no longer have living representatives and are known to us only through fossils. Just as we sometimes see a thin, straggly branch sprouting from a low fork in a tree that, by some chance, has thrived and remains alive at its tip, we occasionally encounter an animal like the Ornithorhynchus or Lepidosiren, which somewhat connects two major branches of life, and has seemingly escaped disastrous competition by existing in a protected environment. Just as buds grow into new buds, which, if they are strong, branch out and overshadow many weaker branches, I believe it has been the same with the great Tree of Life, which fills the Earth’s crust with its dead and broken branches, covering its surface with its ever-expanding and beautiful offshoots.

CHAPTER V.
LAWS OF VARIATION.

Effects of external conditions. Use and disuse, combined with natural selection; organs of flight and of vision. Acclimatisation. Correlation of growth. Compensation and economy of growth. False correlations. Multiple, rudimentary, and lowly organised structures variable. Parts developed in an unusual manner are highly variable: specific characters more variable than generic: secondary sexual characters variable. Species of the same genus vary in an analogous manner. Reversions to long lost characters. Summary.

Effects of external conditions. Use and disuse, along with natural selection; organs for flying and seeing. Acclimatization. Growth correlation. Compensation and growth efficiency. Incorrect correlations. Multiple, rudimentary, and simply organized structures are variable. Parts that develop in unusual ways are highly variable: specific traits are more variable than generic ones: secondary sexual traits are variable. Species within the same genus vary in similar ways. Reversions to long-lost traits. Summary.

I have hitherto sometimes spoken as if the variations—so common and multiform in organic beings under domestication, and in a lesser degree in those in a state of nature—had been due to chance. This, of course, is a wholly incorrect expression, but it serves to acknowledge plainly our ignorance of the cause of each particular variation. Some authors believe it to be as much the function of the reproductive system to produce individual differences, or very slight deviations of structure, as to make the child like its parents. But the much greater variability, as well as the greater frequency of monstrosities, under domestication or cultivation, than under nature, leads me to believe that deviations of structure are in some way due to the nature of the conditions of life, to which the parents and their more remote ancestors have been exposed during several generations. I have remarked in the first chapter—but a long catalogue of facts which cannot be here given would be necessary to show the truth of the remark—that the reproductive system is eminently susceptible to changes in the conditions of life; and to this system being functionally disturbed in the parents, I chiefly attribute the varying or plastic condition of the offspring. The male and female sexual elements seem to be affected before that union takes place which is to form a new being. In the case of “sporting” plants, the bud, which in its earliest condition does not apparently differ essentially from an ovule, is alone affected. But why, because the reproductive system is disturbed, this or that part should vary more or less, we are profoundly ignorant. Nevertheless, we can here and there dimly catch a faint ray of light, and we may feel sure that there must be some cause for each deviation of structure, however slight.

I have sometimes talked as if the variations—so common and diverse in domesticated organisms, and to a lesser extent in those in the wild—were simply due to chance. This, of course, is an entirely inaccurate way to phrase it, but it openly acknowledges our ignorance about the cause of each specific variation. Some authors believe that the reproductive system is just as responsible for creating individual differences or very slight structural variations as it is for making the offspring resemble their parents. However, the much greater variability and the higher frequency of abnormalities in domesticated or cultivated organisms compared to those in nature lead me to think that structural variations are somehow related to the living conditions that the parents and their more distant ancestors have experienced over many generations. I noted in the first chapter—but a long list of facts, which I can’t provide here, would be necessary to support this point—that the reproductive system is particularly sensitive to changes in living conditions; and to this system being functionally disrupted in the parents, I primarily attribute the variable or adaptable nature of the offspring. The male and female reproductive elements appear to be affected even before they combine to create a new being. In the case of “sporting” plants, the bud, which at its earliest stage doesn’t seem to differ significantly from an ovule, is the only part that is affected. But we remain deeply clueless as to why, when the reproductive system is disrupted, this part or that should vary more or less. Nevertheless, we can occasionally catch a glimpse of insight, and we can be certain that there must be some cause behind each structural variation, no matter how minor.

How much direct effect difference of climate, food, etc., produces on any being is extremely doubtful. My impression is, that the effect is extremely small in the case of animals, but perhaps rather more in that of plants. We may, at least, safely conclude that such influences cannot have produced the many striking and complex co-adaptations of structure between one organic being and another, which we see everywhere throughout nature. Some little influence may be attributed to climate, food, etc.: thus, E. Forbes speaks confidently that shells at their southern limit, and when living in shallow water, are more brightly coloured than those of the same species further north or from greater depths. Gould believes that birds of the same species are more brightly coloured under a clear atmosphere, than when living on islands or near the coast. So with insects, Wollaston is convinced that residence near the sea affects their colours. Moquin-Tandon gives a list of plants which when growing near the sea-shore have their leaves in some degree fleshy, though not elsewhere fleshy. Several other such cases could be given.

How much of a direct effect climate, food, and other factors have on any living being is very uncertain. I think the effect is quite small for animals, but maybe a bit more significant for plants. We can at least conclude that these influences are not responsible for the many striking and complex adaptations of structure between different organisms that we see all over nature. Some minor effect may be linked to climate, food, etc.: for example, E. Forbes confidently states that shells at their southern limit, when living in shallow water, are more brightly colored than those of the same species found further north or in deeper water. Gould believes that birds of the same species are more vividly colored in a clear atmosphere than when they live on islands or near the coast. Similarly, Wollaston is convinced that living close to the sea influences the colors of insects. Moquin-Tandon provides a list of plants that develop somewhat fleshy leaves when they grow near the shore, while they do not have fleshy leaves elsewhere. Several other examples like this could be mentioned.

The fact of varieties of one species, when they range into the zone of habitation of other species, often acquiring in a very slight degree some of the characters of such species, accords with our view that species of all kinds are only well-marked and permanent varieties. Thus the species of shells which are confined to tropical and shallow seas are generally brighter-coloured than those confined to cold and deeper seas. The birds which are confined to continents are, according to Mr. Gould, brighter-coloured than those of islands. The insect-species confined to sea-coasts, as every collector knows, are often brassy or lurid. Plants which live exclusively on the sea-side are very apt to have fleshy leaves. He who believes in the creation of each species, will have to say that this shell, for instance, was created with bright colours for a warm sea; but that this other shell became bright-coloured by variation when it ranged into warmer or shallower waters.

The fact that different varieties of one species sometimes enter the living areas of other species, and in doing so, may take on a few characteristics of those species, supports our view that all types of species are really just well-defined and stable varieties. For example, shell species found in tropical, shallow waters are generally brighter in color than those found in colder, deeper seas. According to Mr. Gould, birds that live on continents tend to have brighter colors than those found on islands. Insect species that are limited to coastal areas, as every collector knows, often exhibit a brassy or vivid appearance. Plants that grow exclusively by the sea often have fleshy leaves. Anyone who believes that each species was created separately would have to say that this particular shell was designed with bright colors for a warm sea; while this other shell became brightly colored due to variations when it entered warmer or shallower waters.

When a variation is of the slightest use to a being, we cannot tell how much of it to attribute to the accumulative action of natural selection, and how much to the conditions of life. Thus, it is well known to furriers that animals of the same species have thicker and better fur the more severe the climate is under which they have lived; but who can tell how much of this difference may be due to the warmest-clad individuals having been favoured and preserved during many generations, and how much to the direct action of the severe climate? for it would appear that climate has some direct action on the hair of our domestic quadrupeds.

When a variation is even slightly useful to a being, it's hard to determine how much we should credit the gradual process of natural selection versus the conditions of life. For instance, fur traders know that animals of the same species have thicker and better fur in harsher climates where they’ve lived, but who can say how much of this difference is because the better-furred individuals were favored and survived over generations, and how much is due to the direct effects of the harsh climate? It seems that climate does have some direct impact on the fur of our domestic animals.

Instances could be given of the same variety being produced under conditions of life as different as can well be conceived; and, on the other hand, of different varieties being produced from the same species under the same conditions. Such facts show how indirectly the conditions of life must act. Again, innumerable instances are known to every naturalist of species keeping true, or not varying at all, although living under the most opposite climates. Such considerations as these incline me to lay very little weight on the direct action of the conditions of life. Indirectly, as already remarked, they seem to play an important part in affecting the reproductive system, and in thus inducing variability; and natural selection will then accumulate all profitable variations, however slight, until they become plainly developed and appreciable by us.

Instances can be found where the same variety develops under vastly different living conditions; conversely, different varieties can arise from the same species under similar conditions. These facts demonstrate how indirectly life conditions must influence things. Furthermore, there are countless examples known to every naturalist of species remaining true to form, showing no variation at all, despite existing in extremely different climates. These considerations lead me to place minimal importance on the direct influence of life conditions. Indirectly, as noted earlier, they seem to play a significant role in impacting the reproductive system, thereby inducing variability; and natural selection will then gather all beneficial variations, no matter how minor, until they become clearly developed and recognizable to us.

Effects of Use and Disuse.—From the facts alluded to in the first chapter, I think there can be little doubt that use in our domestic animals strengthens and enlarges certain parts, and disuse diminishes them; and that such modifications are inherited. Under free nature, we can have no standard of comparison, by which to judge of the effects of long-continued use or disuse, for we know not the parent-forms; but many animals have structures which can be explained by the effects of disuse. As Professor Owen has remarked, there is no greater anomaly in nature than a bird that cannot fly; yet there are several in this state. The logger-headed duck of South America can only flap along the surface of the water, and has its wings in nearly the same condition as the domestic Aylesbury duck. As the larger ground-feeding birds seldom take flight except to escape danger, I believe that the nearly wingless condition of several birds, which now inhabit or have lately inhabited several oceanic islands, tenanted by no beast of prey, has been caused by disuse. The ostrich indeed inhabits continents and is exposed to danger from which it cannot escape by flight, but by kicking it can defend itself from enemies, as well as any of the smaller quadrupeds. We may imagine that the early progenitor of the ostrich had habits like those of a bustard, and that as natural selection increased in successive generations the size and weight of its body, its legs were used more, and its wings less, until they became incapable of flight.

Effects of Use and Disuse.—Based on the facts mentioned in the first chapter, it's clear that using parts of our domestic animals strengthens and enlarges them, while not using them leads to a decrease in size; and that these changes can be passed down to future generations. In the wild, we don’t have a benchmark to measure the effects of long-term use or disuse since we don't know the original forms. However, many animals have features that can be explained by disuse. As Professor Owen pointed out, one of nature's biggest oddities is a bird that can't fly; yet there are several like that. The logger-headed duck from South America can only waddle along the water's surface and has wings almost identical to those of the domestic Aylesbury duck. Larger ground-feeding birds usually only fly when they’re in danger, so I believe that the nearly wingless state of several birds currently living or recently living on various oceanic islands—where there are no predators—has resulted from disuse. The ostrich does inhabit continents and faces threats from which it cannot escape by flying, but it can defend itself against predators by kicking, just as well as any smaller quadrupeds. We can envision that the early ancestor of the ostrich had habits similar to a bustard and that as natural selection acted over generations, the size and weight of its body increased, leading to greater use of its legs and less of its wings, until they became incapable of flight.

Kirby has remarked (and I have observed the same fact) that the anterior tarsi, or feet, of many male dung-feeding beetles are very often broken off; he examined seventeen specimens in his own collection, and not one had even a relic left. In the Onites apelles the tarsi are so habitually lost, that the insect has been described as not having them. In some other genera they are present, but in a rudimentary condition. In the Ateuchus or sacred beetle of the Egyptians, they are totally deficient. There is not sufficient evidence to induce us to believe that mutilations are ever inherited; and I should prefer explaining the entire absence of the anterior tarsi in Ateuchus, and their rudimentary condition in some other genera, by the long-continued effects of disuse in their progenitors; for as the tarsi are almost always lost in many dung-feeding beetles, they must be lost early in life, and therefore cannot be much used by these insects.

Kirby has noted (and I've seen the same thing) that the front legs, or feet, of many male dung-feeding beetles are often broken off; he looked at seventeen specimens in his own collection, and not one had even a remnant left. In the Onites apelles, the legs are so frequently missing that the insect has been described as not having them. In some other genera, they are present but in a very reduced state. In the Ateuchus or sacred beetle of the Egyptians, they are completely absent. There isn’t enough evidence to make us believe that injuries are ever inherited; and I would rather explain the complete absence of the front legs in Ateuchus, and their reduced state in some other genera, by the long-term effects of not being used in their ancestors; since the legs are almost always lost in many dung-feeding beetles, they must be lost early in life and therefore can’t be much used by these insects.

In some cases we might easily put down to disuse modifications of structure which are wholly, or mainly, due to natural selection. Mr. Wollaston has discovered the remarkable fact that 200 beetles, out of the 550 species inhabiting Madeira, are so far deficient in wings that they cannot fly; and that of the twenty-nine endemic genera, no less than twenty-three genera have all their species in this condition! Several facts, namely, that beetles in many parts of the world are very frequently blown to sea and perish; that the beetles in Madeira, as observed by Mr. Wollaston, lie much concealed, until the wind lulls and the sun shines; that the proportion of wingless beetles is larger on the exposed Dezertas than in Madeira itself; and especially the extraordinary fact, so strongly insisted on by Mr. Wollaston, of the almost entire absence of certain large groups of beetles, elsewhere excessively numerous, and which groups have habits of life almost necessitating frequent flight;—these several considerations have made me believe that the wingless condition of so many Madeira beetles is mainly due to the action of natural selection, but combined probably with disuse. For during thousands of successive generations each individual beetle which flew least, either from its wings having been ever so little less perfectly developed or from indolent habit, will have had the best chance of surviving from not being blown out to sea; and, on the other hand, those beetles which most readily took to flight will oftenest have been blown to sea and thus have been destroyed.

In some cases, we might easily attribute the changes in structure that are entirely or mostly due to natural selection to disuse. Mr. Wollaston discovered the interesting fact that 200 beetles out of the 550 species living in Madeira have such underdeveloped wings that they can't fly; and out of the twenty-nine unique genera, a remarkable twenty-three have all their species in this condition! Several facts support this: beetles in many regions are often blown out to sea and die; the beetles in Madeira, as noted by Mr. Wollaston, tend to stay hidden until the wind calms down and the sun comes out; the number of wingless beetles is higher on the exposed Dezertas than in Madeira itself; and especially the surprising fact emphasized by Mr. Wollaston, about the almost complete absence of certain large groups of beetles, which are very numerous in other places and whose lifestyles almost require frequent flying—these factors lead me to believe that the wingless condition of so many Madeira beetles is mainly due to natural selection, probably combined with disuse. For over thousands of generations, each individual beetle that flew less, either because its wings were slightly less developed or due to a lazy habit, would have had a better chance of surviving by not being blown out to sea; on the other hand, those beetles that frequently took to the air would often be blown out to sea and thus perish.

The insects in Madeira which are not ground-feeders, and which, as the flower-feeding coleoptera and lepidoptera, must habitually use their wings to gain their subsistence, have, as Mr. Wollaston suspects, their wings not at all reduced, but even enlarged. This is quite compatible with the action of natural selection. For when a new insect first arrived on the island, the tendency of natural selection to enlarge or to reduce the wings, would depend on whether a greater number of individuals were saved by successfully battling with the winds, or by giving up the attempt and rarely or never flying. As with mariners shipwrecked near a coast, it would have been better for the good swimmers if they had been able to swim still further, whereas it would have been better for the bad swimmers if they had not been able to swim at all and had stuck to the wreck.

The insects in Madeira that aren’t ground-feeders, and that, like the flower-eating beetles and butterflies, need to use their wings regularly to survive, have, as Mr. Wollaston believes, not reduced their wings but even made them larger. This fits well with the process of natural selection. When a new insect first arrived on the island, whether natural selection led to larger or smaller wings would depend on whether more individuals survived by successfully navigating the winds or by choosing not to fly at all. Similar to shipwrecked sailors near the shore, it would have been better for good swimmers if they could swim even farther, while it would have been better for poor swimmers if they couldn't swim at all and had stayed with the wreck.

The eyes of moles and of some burrowing rodents are rudimentary in size, and in some cases are quite covered up by skin and fur. This state of the eyes is probably due to gradual reduction from disuse, but aided perhaps by natural selection. In South America, a burrowing rodent, the tuco-tuco, or Ctenomys, is even more subterranean in its habits than the mole; and I was assured by a Spaniard, who had often caught them, that they were frequently blind; one which I kept alive was certainly in this condition, the cause, as appeared on dissection, having been inflammation of the nictitating membrane. As frequent inflammation of the eyes must be injurious to any animal, and as eyes are certainly not indispensable to animals with subterranean habits, a reduction in their size with the adhesion of the eyelids and growth of fur over them, might in such case be an advantage; and if so, natural selection would constantly aid the effects of disuse.

The eyes of moles and some digging rodents are pretty small and often covered by skin and fur. This change likely happened over time due to not using their eyes much, possibly supported by natural selection. In South America, a burrowing rodent called the tuco-tuco, or Ctenomys, spends even more time underground than the mole. A Spaniard who often caught them told me that they were often blind; one I kept alive was definitely blind, which was found during dissection to be caused by inflammation of the nictitating membrane. Since regular eye inflammation must harm any animal and since eyes aren't really necessary for animals that live underground, having smaller eyes with their eyelids stuck together and fur over them might actually be beneficial; if that's the case, natural selection would continue to support the effects of not using them.

It is well known that several animals, belonging to the most different classes, which inhabit the caves of Styria and of Kentucky, are blind. In some of the crabs the foot-stalk for the eye remains, though the eye is gone; the stand for the telescope is there, though the telescope with its glasses has been lost. As it is difficult to imagine that eyes, though useless, could be in any way injurious to animals living in darkness, I attribute their loss wholly to disuse. In one of the blind animals, namely, the cave-rat, the eyes are of immense size; and Professor Silliman thought that it regained, after living some days in the light, some slight power of vision. In the same manner as in Madeira the wings of some of the insects have been enlarged, and the wings of others have been reduced by natural selection aided by use and disuse, so in the case of the cave-rat natural selection seems to have struggled with the loss of light and to have increased the size of the eyes; whereas with all the other inhabitants of the caves, disuse by itself seems to have done its work.

It's well known that several animals from various classes that live in the caves of Styria and Kentucky are blind. In some crabs, the stalk for the eye remains, even though the eye is gone; the structure for the telescope is there, but the telescope with its lenses has disappeared. It's hard to believe that eyes, even if they serve no purpose, could harm animals living in darkness, so I think their loss is entirely due to disuse. In one blind animal, specifically the cave rat, the eyes are huge; Professor Silliman believed that it regained some minimal vision after spending a few days in the light. Just like in Madeira, where some insect wings have grown larger and others smaller due to natural selection influenced by use and disuse, in the case of the cave rat, natural selection seems to have reacted to the lack of light and increased the size of the eyes; whereas for all the other cave inhabitants, disuse alone appears to have done its job.

It is difficult to imagine conditions of life more similar than deep limestone caverns under a nearly similar climate; so that on the common view of the blind animals having been separately created for the American and European caverns, close similarity in their organisation and affinities might have been expected; but, as Schiödte and others have remarked, this is not the case, and the cave-insects of the two continents are not more closely allied than might have been anticipated from the general resemblance of the other inhabitants of North America and Europe. On my view we must suppose that American animals, having ordinary powers of vision, slowly migrated by successive generations from the outer world into the deeper and deeper recesses of the Kentucky caves, as did European animals into the caves of Europe. We have some evidence of this gradation of habit; for, as Schiödte remarks, “animals not far remote from ordinary forms, prepare the transition from light to darkness. Next follow those that are constructed for twilight; and, last of all, those destined for total darkness.” By the time that an animal had reached, after numberless generations, the deepest recesses, disuse will on this view have more or less perfectly obliterated its eyes, and natural selection will often have effected other changes, such as an increase in the length of the antennæ or palpi, as a compensation for blindness. Notwithstanding such modifications, we might expect still to see in the cave-animals of America, affinities to the other inhabitants of that continent, and in those of Europe, to the inhabitants of the European continent. And this is the case with some of the American cave-animals, as I hear from Professor Dana; and some of the European cave-insects are very closely allied to those of the surrounding country. It would be most difficult to give any rational explanation of the affinities of the blind cave-animals to the other inhabitants of the two continents on the ordinary view of their independent creation. That several of the inhabitants of the caves of the Old and New Worlds should be closely related, we might expect from the well-known relationship of most of their other productions. Far from feeling any surprise that some of the cave-animals should be very anomalous, as Agassiz has remarked in regard to the blind fish, the Amblyopsis, and as is the case with the blind Proteus with reference to the reptiles of Europe, I am only surprised that more wrecks of ancient life have not been preserved, owing to the less severe competition to which the inhabitants of these dark abodes will probably have been exposed.

It's hard to picture life conditions that are more alike than those in deep limestone caves under nearly identical climates. So, considering the common belief that blind animals were created separately for the American and European caves, you'd expect them to be quite similar in their structure and connections. However, as Schiödte and others have pointed out, that's not the case, as cave insects from the two continents aren't any closer related than what you'd expect based on the overall similarities of other species in North America and Europe. I think we should assume that American animals, which have regular eyesight, gradually moved deeper into the Kentucky caves over many generations, just as European animals did in Europe’s caves. There's some evidence to support this gradual adaptation; as Schiödte notes, “animals not far from ordinary forms create the transition from light to darkness. Next come those that are suited for twilight, and finally, those adapted to total darkness.” By the time an animal has eventually reached the deepest parts after countless generations, the lack of use would have largely wiped out its eyes, and natural selection would likely have caused other changes, such as longer antennae or palps, to compensate for blindness. Despite these changes, we would still expect to see in American cave animals some connections to other species on that continent, and similarly in European cave animals to those on their continent. Some American cave species, as I hear from Professor Dana, do show these connections, and several European cave insects are closely related to those found in nearby regions. It would be quite challenging to provide a reasonable explanation for the links between the blind cave animals and other inhabitants of the two continents if we accepted the traditional view of their independent creation. We could expect some inhabitants of the caves in both the Old and New Worlds to be related because most of their other species are well-known to have connections. Rather than being surprised that some cave animals are very unusual, as Agassiz noted with the blind fish, Amblyopsis, and with the blind Proteus concerning Europe’s reptiles, I'm only surprised that there aren't more remnants of ancient life preserved, given the less intense competition that creatures in these dark environments likely faced.

Acclimatisation.—Habit is hereditary with plants, as in the period of flowering, in the amount of rain requisite for seeds to germinate, in the time of sleep, etc., and this leads me to say a few words on acclimatisation. As it is extremely common for species of the same genus to inhabit very hot and very cold countries, and as I believe that all the species of the same genus have descended from a single parent, if this view be correct, acclimatisation must be readily effected during long-continued descent. It is notorious that each species is adapted to the climate of its own home: species from an arctic or even from a temperate region cannot endure a tropical climate, or conversely. So again, many succulent plants cannot endure a damp climate. But the degree of adaptation of species to the climates under which they live is often overrated. We may infer this from our frequent inability to predict whether or not an imported plant will endure our climate, and from the number of plants and animals brought from warmer countries which here enjoy good health. We have reason to believe that species in a state of nature are limited in their ranges by the competition of other organic beings quite as much as, or more than, by adaptation to particular climates. But whether or not the adaptation be generally very close, we have evidence, in the case of some few plants, of their becoming, to a certain extent, naturally habituated to different temperatures, or becoming acclimatised: thus the pines and rhododendrons, raised from seed collected by Dr. Hooker from trees growing at different heights on the Himalaya, were found in this country to possess different constitutional powers of resisting cold. Mr. Thwaites informs me that he has observed similar facts in Ceylon, and analogous observations have been made by Mr. H. C. Watson on European species of plants brought from the Azores to England. In regard to animals, several authentic cases could be given of species within historical times having largely extended their range from warmer to cooler latitudes, and conversely; but we do not positively know that these animals were strictly adapted to their native climate, but in all ordinary cases we assume such to be the case; nor do we know that they have subsequently become acclimatised to their new homes.

Acclimatization.—Habit is inherited in plants, as seen in their flowering periods, the amount of rain needed for seeds to sprout, and their dormancy periods, leading me to discuss acclimatization. It's quite common for species from the same genus to thrive in both very hot and very cold countries, and if I’m right that all species of the same genus have descended from a single ancestor, acclimatization should occur over time. It’s well-known that each species is suited to the climate of its native habitat; species from arctic or even temperate regions struggle in tropical climates, and vice versa. Similarly, many succulent plants cannot survive in damp climates. However, the extent to which species adapt to their climates is often exaggerated. We can see this from our frequent inability to predict whether an imported plant will survive in our climate and from the number of plants and animals brought from warmer areas that thrive here. We believe species in their natural state are limited in their ranges by competition with other organisms just as much, if not more than, by their adaptation to specific climates. Regardless of how closely adaptation occurs, we have evidence from a few plants that they can become somewhat naturally accustomed to different temperatures or acclimatized: for example, pines and rhododendrons grown from seeds collected by Dr. Hooker at various elevations on the Himalayas displayed different abilities to resist cold when brought to this country. Mr. Thwaites has noted similar cases in Ceylon, and Mr. H. C. Watson has made comparable observations on European plant species taken from the Azores to England. Regarding animals, several documented instances show species have significantly extended their ranges from warmer to cooler latitudes and vice versa; however, we don’t definitively know if these animals were strictly adapted to their original climates, although we typically assume they were; nor do we know if they have become acclimatized to their new environments.

As I believe that our domestic animals were originally chosen by uncivilised man because they were useful and bred readily under confinement, and not because they were subsequently found capable of far-extended transportation, I think the common and extraordinary capacity in our domestic animals of not only withstanding the most different climates but of being perfectly fertile (a far severer test) under them, may be used as an argument that a large proportion of other animals, now in a state of nature, could easily be brought to bear widely different climates. We must not, however, push the foregoing argument too far, on account of the probable origin of some of our domestic animals from several wild stocks: the blood, for instance, of a tropical and arctic wolf or wild dog may perhaps be mingled in our domestic breeds. The rat and mouse cannot be considered as domestic animals, but they have been transported by man to many parts of the world, and now have a far wider range than any other rodent, living free under the cold climate of Faroe in the north and of the Falklands in the south, and on many islands in the torrid zones. Hence I am inclined to look at adaptation to any special climate as a quality readily grafted on an innate wide flexibility of constitution, which is common to most animals. On this view, the capacity of enduring the most different climates by man himself and by his domestic animals, and such facts as that former species of the elephant and rhinoceros were capable of enduring a glacial climate, whereas the living species are now all tropical or sub-tropical in their habits, ought not to be looked at as anomalies, but merely as examples of a very common flexibility of constitution, brought, under peculiar circumstances, into play.

I believe that our domesticated animals were initially chosen by primitive humans because they were useful and reproduced easily in captivity, not because they were later found capable of being transported over long distances. I think the ability of our domestic animals to not only survive in a variety of climates but also to be fully fertile in them (which is a much tougher test) can support the idea that many other animals currently in the wild could easily adapt to very different climates. However, we shouldn't take this argument too far since some of our domestic animals likely originated from multiple wild species. For example, our domestic breeds may carry the genetic influence of both tropical and arctic wolves or wild dogs. Rats and mice aren't considered domestic animals, but they have been spread by humans to many regions across the globe, and now they inhabit a broader range than any other rodent species, thriving in the cold climates of the Faroe Islands in the north, the Falklands in the south, and on several islands in hot zones. Therefore, I tend to see adaptation to specific climates as a trait that can easily be added to an inherent broad flexibility in constitution, which is common to most animals. From this perspective, the ability of humans and their domestic animals to endure various climates, along with the fact that ancient species of elephants and rhinoceroses could handle glacial climates, while today's species are all tropical or subtropical, shouldn't be viewed as exceptions. They are simply examples of a widespread constitutional flexibility that comes into play under certain conditions.

How much of the acclimatisation of species to any peculiar climate is due to mere habit, and how much to the natural selection of varieties having different innate constitutions, and how much to both means combined, is a very obscure question. That habit or custom has some influence I must believe, both from analogy, and from the incessant advice given in agricultural works, even in the ancient Encyclopædias of China, to be very cautious in transposing animals from one district to another; for it is not likely that man should have succeeded in selecting so many breeds and sub-breeds with constitutions specially fitted for their own districts: the result must, I think, be due to habit. On the other hand, I can see no reason to doubt that natural selection will continually tend to preserve those individuals which are born with constitutions best adapted to their native countries. In treatises on many kinds of cultivated plants, certain varieties are said to withstand certain climates better than others: this is very strikingly shown in works on fruit trees published in the United States, in which certain varieties are habitually recommended for the northern, and others for the southern States; and as most of these varieties are of recent origin, they cannot owe their constitutional differences to habit. The case of the Jerusalem artichoke, which is never propagated by seed, and of which consequently new varieties have not been produced, has even been advanced—for it is now as tender as ever it was—as proving that acclimatisation cannot be effected! The case, also, of the kidney-bean has been often cited for a similar purpose, and with much greater weight; but until some one will sow, during a score of generations, his kidney-beans so early that a very large proportion are destroyed by frost, and then collect seed from the few survivors, with care to prevent accidental crosses, and then again get seed from these seedlings, with the same precautions, the experiment cannot be said to have been even tried. Nor let it be supposed that no differences in the constitution of seedling kidney-beans ever appear, for an account has been published how much more hardy some seedlings appeared to be than others.

How much of how species adapt to a specific climate is just from habit, how much is due to natural selection favoring varieties with different innate traits, and how much comes from a combination of both is a pretty unclear question. I have to believe that habit or custom has some influence, both from analogy and from the constant advice found in agricultural texts, even in the ancient encyclopedias of China, warning people to be very careful about moving animals from one area to another; it seems unlikely that humans could have successfully selected so many breeds and sub-breeds that are specially suited to their local environments without some influence from habit. On the flip side, I have no reason to doubt that natural selection will constantly work to preserve individuals that are born with traits best suited to their home regions. In manuals about various cultivated plants, certain varieties are noted to handle specific climates better than others: this is particularly evident in works on fruit trees published in the United States, where certain varieties are routinely recommended for northern states and others for southern states; since most of these varieties are relatively new, their differences in constitution can’t just be due to habit. The example of the Jerusalem artichoke, which is never grown from seed and therefore hasn’t produced new varieties, has even been mentioned—as it remains just as delicate as it ever was—as proof that acclimatization isn’t possible! The case of the kidney-bean has often been brought up for a similar reason, and with much greater credibility; but until someone plants kidney-beans for multiple generations early enough in the season that many are ruined by frost, then collects seeds from the few survivors while carefully preventing accidental crossbreeding, and then collects seeds from those seedlings with the same precautions, the experiment can’t really be said to have been attempted. And let’s not assume that there are no differences in the make-up of seedling kidney-beans; there has been a report showing how some seedlings were noticeably hardier than others.

On the whole, I think we may conclude that habit, use, and disuse, have, in some cases, played a considerable part in the modification of the constitution, and of the structure of various organs; but that the effects of use and disuse have often been largely combined with, and sometimes overmastered by, the natural selection of innate differences.

Overall, I believe we can conclude that habits, use, and disuse have, in some cases, significantly influenced the changes in our constitution and the structure of different organs. However, the effects of use and disuse have often been largely intertwined with, and at times overshadowed by, the natural selection of inherent differences.

Correlation of Growth.—I mean by this expression that the whole organisation is so tied together during its growth and development, that when slight variations in any one part occur, and are accumulated through natural selection, other parts become modified. This is a very important subject, most imperfectly understood. The most obvious case is, that modifications accumulated solely for the good of the young or larva, will, it may safely be concluded, affect the structure of the adult; in the same manner as any malconformation affecting the early embryo, seriously affects the whole organisation of the adult. The several parts of the body which are homologous, and which, at an early embryonic period, are alike, seem liable to vary in an allied manner: we see this in the right and left sides of the body varying in the same manner; in the front and hind legs, and even in the jaws and limbs, varying together, for the lower jaw is believed to be homologous with the limbs. These tendencies, I do not doubt, may be mastered more or less completely by natural selection: thus a family of stags once existed with an antler only on one side; and if this had been of any great use to the breed it might probably have been rendered permanent by natural selection.

Correlation of Growth.—What I mean by this term is that the entire organization is so interconnected during its growth and development that when slight changes happen in any one part, and these changes accumulate through natural selection, other parts also get modified. This is a crucial topic, though it's not well understood. The clearest example is that changes that benefit the young or larva will, most likely, impact the structure of the adult; in the same way that any irregularity affecting the early embryo can seriously alter the entire organization of the adult. The different parts of the body that are homologous and resemble each other in the early embryonic stage seem to be prone to varying in a similar way: we observe this in the right and left sides of the body changing similarly; in the front and back legs, and even in the jaws and limbs, which vary together, as the lower jaw is thought to be homologous with the limbs. I have no doubt that these tendencies can be more or less controlled by natural selection: for instance, there was once a family of stags with an antler only on one side; if this had been significantly beneficial to the breed, it might have become a permanent change through natural selection.

Homologous parts, as has been remarked by some authors, tend to cohere; this is often seen in monstrous plants; and nothing is more common than the union of homologous parts in normal structures, as the union of the petals of the corolla into a tube. Hard parts seem to affect the form of adjoining soft parts; it is believed by some authors that the diversity in the shape of the pelvis in birds causes the remarkable diversity in the shape of their kidneys. Others believe that the shape of the pelvis in the human mother influences by pressure the shape of the head of the child. In snakes, according to Schlegel, the shape of the body and the manner of swallowing determine the position of several of the most important viscera.

Homologous parts, as some authors have noted, tend to stick together; this is often seen in abnormal plants, and nothing is more common than the connection of homologous parts in normal structures, like the joining of the petals of the corolla into a tube. Hard parts seem to influence the shape of adjacent soft parts; some authors believe that the differences in the shape of the pelvis in birds lead to the remarkable variety in the shape of their kidneys. Others think that the shape of the pelvis in human mothers affects the shape of the baby's head through pressure. In snakes, according to Schlegel, the shape of the body and the way they swallow determine the position of several of the key organs.

The nature of the bond of correlation is very frequently quite obscure. M. Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire has forcibly remarked, that certain malconformations very frequently, and that others rarely coexist, without our being able to assign any reason. What can be more singular than the relation between blue eyes and deafness in cats, and the tortoise-shell colour with the female sex; the feathered feet and skin between the outer toes in pigeons, and the presence of more or less down on the young birds when first hatched, with the future colour of their plumage; or, again, the relation between the hair and teeth in the naked Turkish dog, though here probably homology comes into play? With respect to this latter case of correlation, I think it can hardly be accidental, that if we pick out the two orders of mammalia which are most abnormal in their dermal coverings, viz. Cetacea (whales) and Edentata (armadilloes, scaly ant-eaters, etc.), that these are likewise the most abnormal in their teeth.

The nature of the correlation bond is often quite unclear. M. Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire pointed out that certain deformities often occur together, while others do so rarely, and we can't explain why. What could be stranger than the relationship between blue eyes and deafness in cats or the connection between tortoiseshell coloring and female cats? Then there are features like feathered feet and skin between the outer toes in pigeons, and the varying amounts of down on young birds when they hatch, which relate to their future plumage color. Additionally, consider the link between hair and teeth in the hairless Turkish dog, though in this case, homology likely plays a role. Regarding this last case of correlation, it's likely not coincidental that if we look at the two groups of mammals with the most unusual skin coverings, namely Cetacea (whales) and Edentata (armadillos, scaly anteaters, etc.), these groups also have the most unusual teeth.

I know of no case better adapted to show the importance of the laws of correlation in modifying important structures, independently of utility and, therefore, of natural selection, than that of the difference between the outer and inner flowers in some Compositous and Umbelliferous plants. Every one knows the difference in the ray and central florets of, for instance, the daisy, and this difference is often accompanied with the abortion of parts of the flower. But, in some Compositous plants, the seeds also differ in shape and sculpture; and even the ovary itself, with its accessory parts, differs, as has been described by Cassini. These differences have been attributed by some authors to pressure, and the shape of the seeds in the ray-florets in some Compositæ countenances this idea; but, in the case of the corolla of the Umbelliferæ, it is by no means, as Dr. Hooker informs me, in species with the densest heads that the inner and outer flowers most frequently differ. It might have been thought that the development of the ray-petals by drawing nourishment from certain other parts of the flower had caused their abortion; but in some Compositæ there is a difference in the seeds of the outer and inner florets without any difference in the corolla. Possibly, these several differences may be connected with some difference in the flow of nutriment towards the central and external flowers: we know, at least, that in irregular flowers, those nearest to the axis are oftenest subject to peloria, and become regular. I may add, as an instance of this, and of a striking case of correlation, that I have recently observed in some garden pelargoniums, that the central flower of the truss often loses the patches of darker colour in the two upper petals; and that when this occurs, the adherent nectary is quite aborted; when the colour is absent from only one of the two upper petals, the nectary is only much shortened.

I know of no case better suited to demonstrate the significance of correlation laws in shaping important structures, regardless of utility and therefore natural selection, than the difference between the outer and inner flowers in some composite and umbellifer plants. Everyone is aware of the difference between the ray and central florets, for example, in daisies, and this difference often comes with some parts of the flower being underdeveloped. However, in certain composite plants, the seeds also vary in shape and texture; even the ovary and its extra parts differ, as described by Cassini. Some authors attribute these differences to pressure, and the shape of the seeds in the ray-florets in some composites supports this idea. But, in the case of the corolla of the umbellifers, it's not always the species with the densest flower heads where the inner and outer flowers most frequently differ, as Dr. Hooker informed me. One might think that the development of the ray petals drawing nourishment from other parts of the flower caused their underdevelopment; yet in some composites, the seeds of the outer and inner florets differ even without any change in the corolla. Perhaps these various differences are linked to some difference in how nutrients flow toward the central and outer flowers: we know that in irregular flowers, those closest to the axis are often most susceptible to peloria and become regular. As an example of this and as a striking case of correlation, I've recently noticed in some garden pelargoniums that the central flower of the truss often loses the darker patches on the two upper petals; when this happens, the attached nectary is completely absent; if the color is missing from only one of the two upper petals, the nectary is just significantly shorter.

With respect to the difference in the corolla of the central and exterior flowers of a head or umbel, I do not feel at all sure that C. C. Sprengel’s idea that the ray-florets serve to attract insects, whose agency is highly advantageous in the fertilisation of plants of these two orders, is so far-fetched, as it may at first appear: and if it be advantageous, natural selection may have come into play. But in regard to the differences both in the internal and external structure of the seeds, which are not always correlated with any differences in the flowers, it seems impossible that they can be in any way advantageous to the plant: yet in the Umbelliferæ these differences are of such apparent importance—the seeds being in some cases, according to Tausch, orthospermous in the exterior flowers and coelospermous in the central flowers,—that the elder De Candolle founded his main divisions of the order on analogous differences. Hence we see that modifications of structure, viewed by systematists as of high value, may be wholly due to unknown laws of correlated growth, and without being, as far as we can see, of the slightest service to the species.

Regarding the differences in the petals of the central and outer flowers of a cluster or umbel, I’m not completely convinced that C. C. Sprengel’s idea—that the ray flowers help attract insects, which is beneficial for the fertilization of plants of these two orders—is as far-fetched as it might seem at first. If it is advantageous, then natural selection might have played a role. However, when it comes to the differences in both the internal and external structures of the seeds, which aren’t always linked to any differences in the flowers, it seems unlikely that these variations provide any benefit to the plant. Yet, in the Umbelliferae, these differences seem crucial—the seeds can be orthospermous in the outer flowers and coelospermous in the central flowers, according to Tausch—leading the elder De Candolle to base his main classifications of the order on similar differences. Therefore, we can see that changes in structure, which systematists consider important, could purely result from unknown laws of correlated growth, and they may not offer any apparent advantage to the species.

We may often falsely attribute to correlation of growth, structures which are common to whole groups of species, and which in truth are simply due to inheritance; for an ancient progenitor may have acquired through natural selection some one modification in structure, and, after thousands of generations, some other and independent modification; and these two modifications, having been transmitted to a whole group of descendants with diverse habits, would naturally be thought to be correlated in some necessary manner. So, again, I do not doubt that some apparent correlations, occurring throughout whole orders, are entirely due to the manner alone in which natural selection can act. For instance, Alph. De Candolle has remarked that winged seeds are never found in fruits which do not open: I should explain the rule by the fact that seeds could not gradually become winged through natural selection, except in fruits which opened; so that the individual plants producing seeds which were a little better fitted to be wafted further, might get an advantage over those producing seed less fitted for dispersal; and this process could not possibly go on in fruit which did not open.

We often mistakenly link growth to traits that are common across entire groups of species, which are actually just a result of inheritance. An ancient ancestor might have developed a specific structural change through natural selection, and after many generations, another independent change might occur. Both of these changes would be inherited by a whole group of descendants with different behaviors, making it seem like they are inherently connected. Additionally, I believe that some apparent correlations seen throughout entire groups can be explained by how natural selection operates. For example, Alph. De Candolle noted that winged seeds are never found in fruits that don’t open. I would explain this rule by saying that seeds can’t gradually become winged through natural selection unless they’re in fruits that open. This means that individual plants producing seeds that are slightly better at being carried further would have an edge over those producing seeds that aren’t as well-suited for dispersal, and this couldn’t happen in fruits that didn’t open.

The elder Geoffroy and Goethe propounded, at about the same period, their law of compensation or balancement of growth; or, as Goethe expressed it, “in order to spend on one side, nature is forced to economise on the other side.” I think this holds true to a certain extent with our domestic productions: if nourishment flows to one part or organ in excess, it rarely flows, at least in excess, to another part; thus it is difficult to get a cow to give much milk and to fatten readily. The same varieties of the cabbage do not yield abundant and nutritious foliage and a copious supply of oil-bearing seeds. When the seeds in our fruits become atrophied, the fruit itself gains largely in size and quality. In our poultry, a large tuft of feathers on the head is generally accompanied by a diminished comb, and a large beard by diminished wattles. With species in a state of nature it can hardly be maintained that the law is of universal application; but many good observers, more especially botanists, believe in its truth. I will not, however, here give any instances, for I see hardly any way of distinguishing between the effects, on the one hand, of a part being largely developed through natural selection and another and adjoining part being reduced by this same process or by disuse, and, on the other hand, the actual withdrawal of nutriment from one part owing to the excess of growth in another and adjoining part.

The elder Geoffroy and Goethe proposed, around the same time, their law of compensation or balance of growth; or, as Goethe put it, “to give more to one side, nature has to save on the other side.” I think this is somewhat true with our domestic products: if nourishment goes to one part or organ too much, it usually doesn’t go, at least not too much, to another part; thus, it’s tough to get a cow to produce a lot of milk while also putting on weight quickly. The same varieties of cabbage don’t provide both abundant, nutritious leaves and a large yield of oil-rich seeds. When the seeds in our fruits are underdeveloped, the fruit itself often increases in size and quality. In our poultry, a large tuft of feathers on the head typically comes with a smaller comb, and a big beard usually means smaller wattles. In species found in nature, it’s hard to say that this law applies universally; however, many solid observers, especially botanists, believe it's true. I won’t provide specific examples here, as I see little way to differentiate between, on one hand, a part becoming highly developed through natural selection while another adjoining part is reduced by the same process or by disuse, and on the other hand, the actual withdrawal of nutrients from one part due to the excessive growth of another nearby part.

I suspect, also, that some of the cases of compensation which have been advanced, and likewise some other facts, may be merged under a more general principle, namely, that natural selection is continually trying to economise in every part of the organisation. If under changed conditions of life a structure before useful becomes less useful, any diminution, however slight, in its development, will be seized on by natural selection, for it will profit the individual not to have its nutriment wasted in building up an useless structure. I can thus only understand a fact with which I was much struck when examining cirripedes, and of which many other instances could be given: namely, that when a cirripede is parasitic within another and is thus protected, it loses more or less completely its own shell or carapace. This is the case with the male Ibla, and in a truly extraordinary manner with the Proteolepas: for the carapace in all other cirripedes consists of the three highly-important anterior segments of the head enormously developed, and furnished with great nerves and muscles; but in the parasitic and protected Proteolepas, the whole anterior part of the head is reduced to the merest rudiment attached to the bases of the prehensile antennæ. Now the saving of a large and complex structure, when rendered superfluous by the parasitic habits of the Proteolepas, though effected by slow steps, would be a decided advantage to each successive individual of the species; for in the struggle for life to which every animal is exposed, each individual Proteolepas would have a better chance of supporting itself, by less nutriment being wasted in developing a structure now become useless.

I also suspect that some of the compensation cases that have been presented, along with some other facts, might fit under a broader principle—that natural selection is always trying to save resources in every part of the organism. If, under changed living conditions, a structure that was once useful becomes less so, any reduction, no matter how small, in its development will be favored by natural selection. This is because it benefits the individual not to waste energy on unnecessary structures. This helps me understand a fascinating fact I noticed while studying barnacles, and there are many other examples: when a barnacle is parasitic on another and thus protected, it loses most of its shell or carapace. This is true for the male Ibla, and even more dramatically for the Proteolepas; in all other barnacles, the carapace consists of three highly important, greatly developed anterior segments of the head, complete with large nerves and muscles. But in the parasitic and protected Proteolepas, the entire anterior part of the head is reduced to a mere remnant attached to the base of the grasping antennae. The reduction of a large and complex structure, made unnecessary by the Proteolepas's parasitic lifestyle, would gradually provide a significant advantage to each successive individual of the species. In the struggle for survival that every animal faces, each individual Proteolepas would have a better chance of thriving by using less energy to develop a structure that has become redundant.

Thus, as I believe, natural selection will always succeed in the long run in reducing and saving every part of the organisation, as soon as it is rendered superfluous, without by any means causing some other part to be largely developed in a corresponding degree. And, conversely, that natural selection may perfectly well succeed in largely developing any organ, without requiring as a necessary compensation the reduction of some adjoining part.

So, I believe that natural selection will always eventually succeed in reducing and saving every part of an organism as soon as it becomes unnecessary, without necessarily causing other parts to develop significantly in response. Similarly, natural selection can successfully lead to the significant development of any organ without needing to compensate by reducing a nearby part.

It seems to be a rule, as remarked by Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire, both in varieties and in species, that when any part or organ is repeated many times in the structure of the same individual (as the vertebræ in snakes, and the stamens in polyandrous flowers) the number is variable; whereas the number of the same part or organ, when it occurs in lesser numbers, is constant. The same author and some botanists have further remarked that multiple parts are also very liable to variation in structure. Inasmuch as this “vegetative repetition,” to use Professor Owen’s expression, seems to be a sign of low organisation; the foregoing remark seems connected with the very general opinion of naturalists, that beings low in the scale of nature are more variable than those which are higher. I presume that lowness in this case means that the several parts of the organisation have been but little specialised for particular functions; and as long as the same part has to perform diversified work, we can perhaps see why it should remain variable, that is, why natural selection should have preserved or rejected each little deviation of form less carefully than when the part has to serve for one special purpose alone. In the same way that a knife which has to cut all sorts of things may be of almost any shape; whilst a tool for some particular object had better be of some particular shape. Natural selection, it should never be forgotten, can act on each part of each being, solely through and for its advantage.

It seems to be a rule, as noted by Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire, that both in varieties and in species, when any part or organ is repeated many times in the structure of the same individual (like the vertebrae in snakes and the stamens in polyandrous flowers), the number is variable. In contrast, the number of the same part or organ, when it occurs in smaller numbers, is consistent. The same author and some botanists have also observed that multiple parts are very likely to vary in structure. Since this “vegetative repetition,” as Professor Owen described it, appears to indicate a lower level of organization, this observation seems linked to the widespread belief among naturalists that organisms lower on the evolutionary scale are more variable than those higher up. I assume that being lower in this context means that the various parts of the organism have not been highly specialized for specific functions. As long as the same part has to perform a range of tasks, it makes sense why it would remain variable; natural selection would preserve or reject minor variations in form less rigorously than when the part serves a single specific purpose. Just like a knife that needs to cut various things can come in many shapes, whereas a tool designed for a specific job is better off having a particular shape. It's important to remember that natural selection operates on each part of every organism solely for its benefit.

Rudimentary parts, it has been stated by some authors, and I believe with truth, are apt to be highly variable. We shall have to recur to the general subject of rudimentary and aborted organs; and I will here only add that their variability seems to be owing to their uselessness, and therefore to natural selection having no power to check deviations in their structure. Thus rudimentary parts are left to the free play of the various laws of growth, to the effects of long-continued disuse, and to the tendency to reversion.

Basic parts, as some authors have suggested—and I believe accurately—tend to be very variable. We will need to revisit the overall topic of rudimentary and undeveloped organs; for now, I will only add that their variability appears to result from their lack of function, and therefore natural selection has no influence on their structural changes. Thus rudimentary parts are left to the unrestricted influence of different growth laws, the consequences of prolonged disuse, and the inclination to revert to earlier forms.

A part developed in any species in an extraordinary degree or manner, in comparison with the same part in allied species, tends to be highly variable.—Several years ago I was much struck with a remark, nearly to the above effect, published by Mr. Waterhouse. I infer also from an observation made by Professor Owen, with respect to the length of the arms of the ourang-outang, that he has come to a nearly similar conclusion. It is hopeless to attempt to convince any one of the truth of this proposition without giving the long array of facts which I have collected, and which cannot possibly be here introduced. I can only state my conviction that it is a rule of high generality. I am aware of several causes of error, but I hope that I have made due allowance for them. It should be understood that the rule by no means applies to any part, however unusually developed, unless it be unusually developed in comparison with the same part in closely allied species. Thus, the bat’s wing is a most abnormal structure in the class mammalia; but the rule would not here apply, because there is a whole group of bats having wings; it would apply only if some one species of bat had its wings developed in some remarkable manner in comparison with the other species of the same genus. The rule applies very strongly in the case of secondary sexual characters, when displayed in any unusual manner. The term, secondary sexual characters, used by Hunter, applies to characters which are attached to one sex, but are not directly connected with the act of reproduction. The rule applies to males and females; but as females more rarely offer remarkable secondary sexual characters, it applies more rarely to them. The rule being so plainly applicable in the case of secondary sexual characters, may be due to the great variability of these characters, whether or not displayed in any unusual manner—of which fact I think there can be little doubt. But that our rule is not confined to secondary sexual characters is clearly shown in the case of hermaphrodite cirripedes; and I may here add, that I particularly attended to Mr. Waterhouse’s remark, whilst investigating this Order, and I am fully convinced that the rule almost invariably holds good with cirripedes. I shall, in my future work, give a list of the more remarkable cases; I will here only briefly give one, as it illustrates the rule in its largest application. The opercular valves of sessile cirripedes (rock barnacles) are, in every sense of the word, very important structures, and they differ extremely little even in different genera; but in the several species of one genus, Pyrgoma, these valves present a marvellous amount of diversification: the homologous valves in the different species being sometimes wholly unlike in shape; and the amount of variation in the individuals of several of the species is so great, that it is no exaggeration to state that the varieties differ more from each other in the characters of these important valves than do other species of distinct genera.

A part that develops in any species to an extraordinary degree or in an unusual way, compared to the same part in related species, tends to be highly variable.—A few years ago, I was really impressed by a comment, similar to the one above, made by Mr. Waterhouse. I also gather from an observation by Professor Owen about the arm length of the orangutan that he reached a nearly identical conclusion. It's pointless to try to convince anyone of the truth of this idea without presenting the extensive list of facts I've gathered, which can't possibly be included here. I can only express my belief that it is a widely applicable rule. I'm aware of several potential errors, but I believe I have accounted for them. It's important to note that the rule doesn't apply to any part, no matter how unusually developed, unless it's unusually developed when compared with the same part in closely related species. For example, the bat's wing is an extremely unusual structure in mammals; however, the rule wouldn’t apply here because there is an entire group of bats that have wings. It would only apply if a particular species of bat had wings that were developed in a remarkable way compared to other species of the same genus. The rule strongly applies to secondary sexual characteristics when they are displayed in any unusual way. The term "secondary sexual characteristics," used by Hunter, refers to traits that are specific to one sex and are not directly involved in reproduction. The rule applies to both males and females, but since females less often display significant secondary sexual characteristics, it applies to them less frequently. The clear applicability of this rule in secondary sexual characteristics may be due to the great variability of these traits, whether displayed unusually or not—of which I think there can be little doubt. However, the fact that our rule is not limited to secondary sexual traits is clearly illustrated by hermaphrodite barnacles; and I’d like to add that I paid particular attention to Mr. Waterhouse’s comment while studying this group, and I am fully convinced that the rule almost always holds true for barnacles. In my future work, I will provide a list of the more notable cases; for now, I'll briefly mention one example that illustrates the rule in its broadest sense. The opercular valves of sessile barnacles (rock barnacles) are, in every sense, very important structures, and they vary very little even among different genera. However, within the various species of one genus, Pyrgoma, these valves show an incredible amount of diversity: the corresponding valves in different species can be completely different in shape; and the variation among individuals of several of the species is so significant that it’s no exaggeration to say that the variations differ more from each other in the characteristics of these important valves than do species from distinct genera.

As birds within the same country vary in a remarkably small degree, I have particularly attended to them, and the rule seems to me certainly to hold good in this class. I cannot make out that it applies to plants, and this would seriously have shaken my belief in its truth, had not the great variability in plants made it particularly difficult to compare their relative degrees of variability.

As birds within the same country differ only slightly, I have focused on them, and this rule seems to definitely apply to this group. I can’t determine if it applies to plants, and this would have seriously challenged my belief in its truth if the significant variability in plants didn’t make it especially hard to compare their levels of variability.

When we see any part or organ developed in a remarkable degree or manner in any species, the fair presumption is that it is of high importance to that species; nevertheless the part in this case is eminently liable to variation. Why should this be so? On the view that each species has been independently created, with all its parts as we now see them, I can see no explanation. But on the view that groups of species have descended from other species, and have been modified through natural selection, I think we can obtain some light. In our domestic animals, if any part, or the whole animal, be neglected and no selection be applied, that part (for instance, the comb in the Dorking fowl) or the whole breed will cease to have a nearly uniform character. The breed will then be said to have degenerated. In rudimentary organs, and in those which have been but little specialised for any particular purpose, and perhaps in polymorphic groups, we see a nearly parallel natural case; for in such cases natural selection either has not or cannot come into full play, and thus the organisation is left in a fluctuating condition. But what here more especially concerns us is, that in our domestic animals those points, which at the present time are undergoing rapid change by continued selection, are also eminently liable to variation. Look at the breeds of the pigeon; see what a prodigious amount of difference there is in the beak of the different tumblers, in the beak and wattle of the different carriers, in the carriage and tail of our fantails, etc., these being the points now mainly attended to by English fanciers. Even in the sub-breeds, as in the short-faced tumbler, it is notoriously difficult to breed them nearly to perfection, and frequently individuals are born which depart widely from the standard. There may be truly said to be a constant struggle going on between, on the one hand, the tendency to reversion to a less modified state, as well as an innate tendency to further variability of all kinds, and, on the other hand, the power of steady selection to keep the breed true. In the long run selection gains the day, and we do not expect to fail so far as to breed a bird as coarse as a common tumbler from a good short-faced strain. But as long as selection is rapidly going on, there may always be expected to be much variability in the structure undergoing modification. It further deserves notice that these variable characters, produced by man’s selection, sometimes become attached, from causes quite unknown to us, more to one sex than to the other, generally to the male sex, as with the wattle of carriers and the enlarged crop of pouters.

When we notice any part or organ that has developed significantly in any species, we can fairly assume it's very important to that species; however, that part is likely to vary a lot. Why is this the case? If we believe that each species was created independently, with all its parts as we see them now, I can’t explain it. But if we accept that groups of species have descended from others and have changed through natural selection, then it makes more sense. In our domestic animals, if any part or the whole animal is neglected and no selection is applied, that part (like the comb in the Dorking fowl) or the entire breed will lose its uniform character. We would then say that the breed has degenerated. In rudimentary organs, and in those that haven't been specialized for a specific purpose, and possibly in polymorphic groups, we observe a similar natural situation; in these cases, natural selection either hasn't or can't fully function, leaving the organization in a state of fluctuation. What concerns us more here is that in our domestic animals, the traits currently undergoing rapid change due to continued selection are also particularly prone to variation. Take a look at pigeon breeds; notice the incredible differences in the beaks of the various tumblers, the beaks and wattles of different carriers, and the posture and tails of our fantails, etc. These are the traits that English fanciers focus on most. Even within the sub-breeds, like the short-faced tumbler, it's notoriously challenging to breed them almost perfectly, and individuals often emerge that vary greatly from the standard. There is a constant struggle between the tendency to revert to a less modified state and an inherent tendency for further variability of all kinds, and on the other hand, the power of consistent selection to maintain the breed's integrity. In the long run, selection prevails, and we don't expect to fail to breed a bird as rough as a common tumbler from a good short-faced strain. However, as long as selection is actively taking place, we can always expect a lot of variability in the traits that are changing. It’s also worth noting that these variable traits, shaped by human selection, sometimes seem to be more prominent in one sex than the other, typically in males, like the wattles of carriers and the enlarged crops of pouters.

Now let us turn to nature. When a part has been developed in an extraordinary manner in any one species, compared with the other species of the same genus, we may conclude that this part has undergone an extraordinary amount of modification, since the period when the species branched off from the common progenitor of the genus. This period will seldom be remote in any extreme degree, as species very rarely endure for more than one geological period. An extraordinary amount of modification implies an unusually large and long-continued amount of variability, which has continually been accumulated by natural selection for the benefit of the species. But as the variability of the extraordinarily-developed part or organ has been so great and long-continued within a period not excessively remote, we might, as a general rule, expect still to find more variability in such parts than in other parts of the organisation, which have remained for a much longer period nearly constant. And this, I am convinced, is the case. That the struggle between natural selection on the one hand, and the tendency to reversion and variability on the other hand, will in the course of time cease; and that the most abnormally developed organs may be made constant, I can see no reason to doubt. Hence when an organ, however abnormal it may be, has been transmitted in approximately the same condition to many modified descendants, as in the case of the wing of the bat, it must have existed, according to my theory, for an immense period in nearly the same state; and thus it comes to be no more variable than any other structure. It is only in those cases in which the modification has been comparatively recent and extraordinarily great that we ought to find the generative variability, as it may be called, still present in a high degree. For in this case the variability will seldom as yet have been fixed by the continued selection of the individuals varying in the required manner and degree, and by the continued rejection of those tending to revert to a former and less modified condition.

Now let’s talk about nature. When a part of a species develops in an extraordinary way compared to other species in the same genus, we can conclude that this part has undergone significant modification since the species diverged from the common ancestor of the genus. This divergence usually isn’t very distant in time, as species rarely persist for more than one geological period. Significant modification suggests a large and ongoing amount of variability that has been consistently shaped by natural selection for the benefit of the species. However, since the variability of this highly developed part or organ has been so extensive and prolonged within a relatively recent timeframe, we would generally expect to find even more variability in these parts compared to other parts of the organism that have remained stable for much longer. And I believe this is indeed the case. The competition between natural selection on one hand and the tendency to revert and show variability on the other hand will eventually stop; I have no reason to doubt that the most unusually developed organs can become stable. Therefore, when an organ, no matter how abnormal it may be, has been passed down in about the same condition to many modified descendants, like the wing of a bat, it must have existed, according to my theory, for a long time in a similar state; thus, it becomes as stable as any other structure. Only in cases where the modification has been relatively recent and extraordinarily extensive should we expect to find significant generative variability still present. In these cases, variability usually hasn’t been fixed yet by the ongoing selection of individuals that vary in the necessary ways and by the continuous rejection of those that tend to revert to a previous and less modified state.

The principle included in these remarks may be extended. It is notorious that specific characters are more variable than generic. To explain by a simple example what is meant. If some species in a large genus of plants had blue flowers and some had red, the colour would be only a specific character, and no one would be surprised at one of the blue species varying into red, or conversely; but if all the species had blue flowers, the colour would become a generic character, and its variation would be a more unusual circumstance. I have chosen this example because an explanation is not in this case applicable, which most naturalists would advance, namely, that specific characters are more variable than generic, because they are taken from parts of less physiological importance than those commonly used for classing genera. I believe this explanation is partly, yet only indirectly, true; I shall, however, have to return to this subject in our chapter on Classification. It would be almost superfluous to adduce evidence in support of the above statement, that specific characters are more variable than generic; but I have repeatedly noticed in works on natural history, that when an author has remarked with surprise that some important organ or part, which is generally very constant throughout large groups of species, has differed considerably in closely-allied species, that it has, also, been variable in the individuals of some of the species. And this fact shows that a character, which is generally of generic value, when it sinks in value and becomes only of specific value, often becomes variable, though its physiological importance may remain the same. Something of the same kind applies to monstrosities: at least Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire seems to entertain no doubt, that the more an organ normally differs in the different species of the same group, the more subject it is to individual anomalies.

The principle in these remarks can be broadened. It's well-known that specific traits often vary more than general ones. To illustrate with a simple example: if some species in a large plant genus have blue flowers and others have red, color would be a specific trait, and nobody would be surprised if one of the blue species changed to red, or the other way around. But if all the species had blue flowers, then color would be a general trait, and any variation would be more unusual. I've chosen this example because the usual explanation offered by many naturalists—that specific traits are more variable than general traits because they come from parts of less physiological importance—does not apply here. I think that explanation is only partially accurate and indirectly true; I will have to come back to this topic in our chapter on Classification. It would almost be unnecessary to provide evidence in support of the statement that specific traits are more variable than general ones. However, I've often noticed in natural history texts that when an author expresses surprise that some important organ—usually very consistent across large species groups—has varied significantly in closely related species, it has also been variable among individuals of some of those species. This indicates that when a trait typically holds generic value but loses that value to become specific, it often becomes variable, even if its physiological importance remains unchanged. A similar situation applies to anomalies; at least Is. Geoffroy St. Hilaire seems to have no doubt that the more an organ differs among species in the same group, the more likely it is to have individual irregularities.

On the ordinary view of each species having been independently created, why should that part of the structure, which differs from the same part in other independently-created species of the same genus, be more variable than those parts which are closely alike in the several species? I do not see that any explanation can be given. But on the view of species being only strongly marked and fixed varieties, we might surely expect to find them still often continuing to vary in those parts of their structure which have varied within a moderately recent period, and which have thus come to differ. Or to state the case in another manner:—the points in which all the species of a genus resemble each other, and in which they differ from the species of some other genus, are called generic characters; and these characters in common I attribute to inheritance from a common progenitor, for it can rarely have happened that natural selection will have modified several species, fitted to more or less widely-different habits, in exactly the same manner: and as these so-called generic characters have been inherited from a remote period, since that period when the species first branched off from their common progenitor, and subsequently have not varied or come to differ in any degree, or only in a slight degree, it is not probable that they should vary at the present day. On the other hand, the points in which species differ from other species of the same genus, are called specific characters; and as these specific characters have varied and come to differ within the period of the branching off of the species from a common progenitor, it is probable that they should still often be in some degree variable,—at least more variable than those parts of the organisation which have for a very long period remained constant.

On the common understanding that each species was created independently, why would the parts of the structure that differ from the same parts in other independently-created species of the same genus be more variable than those parts that are similar in the various species? I don’t think any explanation can be provided. However, if we consider species as strongly marked and fixed varieties, we could certainly expect to see them still frequently varying in those parts of their structure that have changed relatively recently and have thus come to differ. To put it another way: the traits in which all species of a genus resemble each other and differ from species of another genus are called generic characters; I attribute these common traits to inheritance from a common ancestor, since it’s unlikely that natural selection would have modified several species adapted to different habits in exactly the same way. These so-called generic characters have been inherited from a distant time, back to when the species first diverged from their common ancestor, and they have not varied or changed significantly, making it unlikely that they would vary today. Conversely, the traits in which species differ from other species of the same genus are called specific characters; since these specific characters have varied and changed since the species branched off from a common ancestor, it’s likely that they are still often somewhat variable—at least more variable than those parts of the organization that have stayed constant for a very long time.

In connexion with the present subject, I will make only two other remarks. I think it will be admitted, without my entering on details, that secondary sexual characters are very variable; I think it also will be admitted that species of the same group differ from each other more widely in their secondary sexual characters, than in other parts of their organisation; compare, for instance, the amount of difference between the males of gallinaceous birds, in which secondary sexual characters are strongly displayed, with the amount of difference between their females; and the truth of this proposition will be granted. The cause of the original variability of secondary sexual characters is not manifest; but we can see why these characters should not have been rendered as constant and uniform as other parts of the organisation; for secondary sexual characters have been accumulated by sexual selection, which is less rigid in its action than ordinary selection, as it does not entail death, but only gives fewer offspring to the less favoured males. Whatever the cause may be of the variability of secondary sexual characters, as they are highly variable, sexual selection will have had a wide scope for action, and may thus readily have succeeded in giving to the species of the same group a greater amount of difference in their sexual characters, than in other parts of their structure.

In relation to the current topic, I will only make two additional points. I think it’s widely accepted, without needing to go into details, that secondary sexual traits are quite variable; I also believe it's recognized that species within the same group differ more in their secondary sexual traits than in other aspects of their structure. For example, if you compare the differences between male gallinaceous birds, where secondary sexual traits are prominently displayed, with the differences between their females, you'll find that this statement holds true. The reason for the initial variability of secondary sexual traits isn't clear; however, it's understandable why these traits haven't become as fixed and uniform as other structural parts. This is because secondary sexual traits have developed through sexual selection, which is less strict than natural selection, as it doesn’t lead to death but rather results in fewer offspring for the less favored males. Whatever the reason for the variability of secondary sexual traits may be, their high variability allows sexual selection to have a broader range to operate, which likely has led to greater differences in these traits among species in the same group than in other structural aspects.

It is a remarkable fact, that the secondary sexual differences between the two sexes of the same species are generally displayed in the very same parts of the organisation in which the different species of the same genus differ from each other. Of this fact I will give in illustration two instances, the first which happen to stand on my list; and as the differences in these cases are of a very unusual nature, the relation can hardly be accidental. The same number of joints in the tarsi is a character generally common to very large groups of beetles, but in the Engidæ, as Westwood has remarked, the number varies greatly; and the number likewise differs in the two sexes of the same species: again in fossorial hymenoptera, the manner of neuration of the wings is a character of the highest importance, because common to large groups; but in certain genera the neuration differs in the different species, and likewise in the two sexes of the same species. This relation has a clear meaning on my view of the subject: I look at all the species of the same genus as having as certainly descended from the same progenitor, as have the two sexes of any one of the species. Consequently, whatever part of the structure of the common progenitor, or of its early descendants, became variable; variations of this part would it is highly probable, be taken advantage of by natural and sexual selection, in order to fit the several species to their several places in the economy of nature, and likewise to fit the two sexes of the same species to each other, or to fit the males and females to different habits of life, or the males to struggle with other males for the possession of the females.

It’s an interesting fact that the secondary sexual differences between males and females of the same species are usually found in the same parts of the body where different species of the same genus differ from each other. I’ll illustrate this with two examples from my list; since the differences in these cases are quite unusual, the connection seems unlikely to be coincidental. The same number of joints in the tarsi is generally a trait shared by large groups of beetles, but in the Engidæ, as Westwood pointed out, the number varies a lot; this number also differs between the two sexes of the same species. Similarly, in digging wasps, the pattern of wing veins is a very important trait because it’s consistent in large groups; but in certain genera, the wing vein patterns differ among species and also between the sexes of the same species. This connection makes sense from my perspective: I see all species of the same genus as definitely descending from the same ancestor, just like the two sexes of any one species. Therefore, any part of the structure of this common ancestor, or its early descendants, that showed variation is likely to have been shaped by natural and sexual selection. This would help adapt the different species to their specific roles in nature and also allow the two sexes of the same species to adapt to each other, or to enable males and females to fit different lifestyles, or for males to compete with one another for access to females.

Finally, then, I conclude that the greater variability of specific characters, or those which distinguish species from species, than of generic characters, or those which the species possess in common;—that the frequent extreme variability of any part which is developed in a species in an extraordinary manner in comparison with the same part in its congeners; and the not great degree of variability in a part, however extraordinarily it may be developed, if it be common to a whole group of species;—that the great variability of secondary sexual characters, and the great amount of difference in these same characters between closely allied species;—that secondary sexual and ordinary specific differences are generally displayed in the same parts of the organisation,—are all principles closely connected together. All being mainly due to the species of the same group having descended from a common progenitor, from whom they have inherited much in common,—to parts which have recently and largely varied being more likely still to go on varying than parts which have long been inherited and have not varied,—to natural selection having more or less completely, according to the lapse of time, overmastered the tendency to reversion and to further variability,—to sexual selection being less rigid than ordinary selection,—and to variations in the same parts having been accumulated by natural and sexual selection, and thus adapted for secondary sexual, and for ordinary specific purposes.

Finally, I conclude that there is greater variability in specific traits that distinguish species from one another than in generic traits that species share; that parts developed in a species in an extraordinary way tend to show extreme variability compared to the same parts in related species; and that parts, no matter how uniquely developed, don’t vary much if they are common across an entire group of species. This also applies to the significant variability of secondary sexual traits and the notable differences in these traits between closely related species; and that secondary sexual and common specific differences are generally found in the same parts of the organism. All these principles are closely connected and are primarily due to species from the same group having descended from a common ancestor, with whom they share many features. Parts that have recently and significantly varied are more likely to continue varying than those that have been inherited for a long time without change. Natural selection has largely, depending on the time elapsed, overridden the tendency to revert to previous traits and to show further variability. Sexual selection tends to be less strict than regular selection, and variations in the same traits have been accumulated through natural and sexual selection, making them suitable for both secondary sexual and common specific purposes.

Distinct species present analogous variations; and a variety of one species often assumes some of the characters of an allied species, or reverts to some of the characters of an early progenitor.—These propositions will be most readily understood by looking to our domestic races. The most distinct breeds of pigeons, in countries most widely apart, present sub-varieties with reversed feathers on the head and feathers on the feet,—characters not possessed by the aboriginal rock-pigeon; these then are analogous variations in two or more distinct races. The frequent presence of fourteen or even sixteen tail-feathers in the pouter, may be considered as a variation representing the normal structure of another race, the fantail. I presume that no one will doubt that all such analogous variations are due to the several races of the pigeon having inherited from a common parent the same constitution and tendency to variation, when acted on by similar unknown influences. In the vegetable kingdom we have a case of analogous variation, in the enlarged stems, or roots as commonly called, of the Swedish turnip and Ruta baga, plants which several botanists rank as varieties produced by cultivation from a common parent: if this be not so, the case will then be one of analogous variation in two so-called distinct species; and to these a third may be added, namely, the common turnip. According to the ordinary view of each species having been independently created, we should have to attribute this similarity in the enlarged stems of these three plants, not to the vera causa of community of descent, and a consequent tendency to vary in a like manner, but to three separate yet closely related acts of creation.

Different species show similar variations; and a variety of one species often takes on some traits of a related species or returns to some traits of an earlier ancestor.—These ideas are best understood by examining our domesticated breeds. The most distinct breeds of pigeons, found in widely separated countries, have sub-varieties with reversed feathers on their heads and feathers on their feet—traits not seen in the original rock-pigeon; these are analogous variations among two or more distinct races. The frequent occurrence of fourteen or even sixteen tail feathers in the pouter can be seen as a variation that corresponds to the typical structure of another breed, the fantail. I believe no one would question that all these analogous variations arise from the different pigeon races inheriting from a common ancestor the same makeup and tendency to vary when influenced by similar unknown factors. In the plant kingdom, we have an example of analogous variation in the enlarged stems, or roots as they are commonly called, of the Swedish turnip and Ruta baga, which several botanists classify as varieties cultivated from a common ancestor; if this is not the case, it would then be an example of analogous variation between two supposedly distinct species, and we could also include a third, the common turnip. According to the usual perspective that each species was created independently, we would have to explain the similarity in the enlarged stems of these three plants not as a true cause of shared ancestry and a resulting tendency to vary similarly, but as three separate yet closely related acts of creation.

With pigeons, however, we have another case, namely, the occasional appearance in all the breeds, of slaty-blue birds with two black bars on the wings, a white rump, a bar at the end of the tail, with the outer feathers externally edged near their bases with white. As all these marks are characteristic of the parent rock-pigeon, I presume that no one will doubt that this is a case of reversion, and not of a new yet analogous variation appearing in the several breeds. We may I think confidently come to this conclusion, because, as we have seen, these coloured marks are eminently liable to appear in the crossed offspring of two distinct and differently coloured breeds; and in this case there is nothing in the external conditions of life to cause the reappearance of the slaty-blue, with the several marks, beyond the influence of the mere act of crossing on the laws of inheritance.

With pigeons, though, we have a different situation. Occasionally, all breeds show up slaty-blue birds that have two black bars on their wings, a white rump, a bar at the end of the tail, and the outer feathers near their bases edged in white. Since all these features are typical of the original rock-pigeon, I think no one will argue that this is a case of reversion rather than a new yet similar variation arising in different breeds. We can confidently reach this conclusion because, as we've observed, these color markings are very likely to show up in the mixed offspring of two distinct breeds with different colors; and in this instance, there’s nothing in the external conditions of life causing the reappearance of the slaty-blue with its various markings, except for the simple act of crossing affecting the laws of inheritance.

No doubt it is a very surprising fact that characters should reappear after having been lost for many, perhaps for hundreds of generations. But when a breed has been crossed only once by some other breed, the offspring occasionally show a tendency to revert in character to the foreign breed for many generations—some say, for a dozen or even a score of generations. After twelve generations, the proportion of blood, to use a common expression, of any one ancestor, is only 1 in 2048; and yet, as we see, it is generally believed that a tendency to reversion is retained by this very small proportion of foreign blood. In a breed which has not been crossed, but in which both parents have lost some character which their progenitor possessed, the tendency, whether strong or weak, to reproduce the lost character might be, as was formerly remarked, for all that we can see to the contrary, transmitted for almost any number of generations. When a character which has been lost in a breed, reappears after a great number of generations, the most probable hypothesis is, not that the offspring suddenly takes after an ancestor some hundred generations distant, but that in each successive generation there has been a tendency to reproduce the character in question, which at last, under unknown favourable conditions, gains an ascendancy. For instance, it is probable that in each generation of the barb-pigeon, which produces most rarely a blue and black-barred bird, there has been a tendency in each generation in the plumage to assume this colour. This view is hypothetical, but could be supported by some facts; and I can see no more abstract improbability in a tendency to produce any character being inherited for an endless number of generations, than in quite useless or rudimentary organs being, as we all know them to be, thus inherited. Indeed, we may sometimes observe a mere tendency to produce a rudiment inherited: for instance, in the common snapdragon (Antirrhinum) a rudiment of a fifth stamen so often appears, that this plant must have an inherited tendency to produce it.

It's quite surprising that traits can reappear after being absent for many generations, sometimes even for hundreds. However, if a breed has been crossbred just once with another breed, the offspring might show a tendency to revert to characteristics of that foreign breed for many generations—some say for a dozen or even twenty. After twelve generations, the genetic contribution from any one ancestor is only 1 in 2048; yet, it's widely believed that the influence of that small amount of foreign blood can still linger. In a breed that hasn’t been crossbred but where both parents have lost some traits from their ancestor, the tendency—whether strong or weak—to reproduce those lost traits might, despite appearances to the contrary, be passed down for almost any number of generations. When a lost trait reappears after many generations, the likely explanation isn’t that the offspring suddenly resembles an ancestor from hundreds of generations ago, but rather that there has been a consistent tendency to reproduce that trait in each generation, which eventually, under certain unknown favorable conditions, gains prominence. For example, in every generation of the barb-pigeon, which rarely produces a blue and black-barred bird, there’s likely been a tendency for the plumage to take on that color. This idea is hypothetical but can be supported by some facts; I don't see any more abstract improbability in a tendency to produce a trait being inherited over countless generations than in seemingly useless or rudimentary organs being inherited, as is well documented. In fact, we sometimes see a tendency to produce a rudiment inherited; for example, in the common snapdragon (Antirrhinum), a rudimentary fifth stamen appears so frequently that this plant must have an inherited tendency to produce it.

As all the species of the same genus are supposed, on my theory, to have descended from a common parent, it might be expected that they would occasionally vary in an analogous manner; so that a variety of one species would resemble in some of its characters another species; this other species being on my view only a well-marked and permanent variety. But characters thus gained would probably be of an unimportant nature, for the presence of all important characters will be governed by natural selection, in accordance with the diverse habits of the species, and will not be left to the mutual action of the conditions of life and of a similar inherited constitution. It might further be expected that the species of the same genus would occasionally exhibit reversions to lost ancestral characters. As, however, we never know the exact character of the common ancestor of a group, we could not distinguish these two cases: if, for instance, we did not know that the rock-pigeon was not feather-footed or turn-crowned, we could not have told, whether these characters in our domestic breeds were reversions or only analogous variations; but we might have inferred that the blueness was a case of reversion, from the number of the markings, which are correlated with the blue tint, and which it does not appear probable would all appear together from simple variation. More especially we might have inferred this, from the blue colour and marks so often appearing when distinct breeds of diverse colours are crossed. Hence, though under nature it must generally be left doubtful, what cases are reversions to an anciently existing character, and what are new but analogous variations, yet we ought, on my theory, sometimes to find the varying offspring of a species assuming characters (either from reversion or from analogous variation) which already occur in some other members of the same group. And this undoubtedly is the case in nature.

Since all species in the same genus are believed, according to my theory, to have evolved from a common ancestor, one might expect that they would occasionally show similar variations. This means that a different variety of one species might share some traits with another species, which in my view is simply a distinct and stable variety. However, these traits would likely be insignificant because the key traits are shaped by natural selection based on the different habits of the species and aren't left to the combined effects of environmental conditions and similar inherited characteristics. Additionally, we might expect that species within the same genus would sometimes show signs of reverting to traits of their lost ancestors. Yet, since we can never know the exact traits of a common ancestor for a group, we can’t clearly differentiate between these two situations: for instance, if we didn’t know that the rock-pigeon wasn’t feather-footed or turn-crowned, we wouldn’t be able to tell whether these traits in our domestic breeds were reversions or merely analogous variations. However, we might speculate that the blueness represents a reversion, based on the number of markings associated with the blue color, which it seems unlikely would all emerge from simple variation. Especially, we might conclude this from how the blue color and markings often appear when different breeds of varying colors are crossed. Therefore, while in nature it’s often left uncertain which cases are reversions to an ancestral trait and which are new yet analogous variations, we should, according to my theory, sometimes observe the varying offspring of a species taking on traits (either from reversion or analogous variation) that already exist in other members of the same group. And this undoubtedly happens in nature.

A considerable part of the difficulty in recognising a variable species in our systematic works, is due to its varieties mocking, as it were, some of the other species of the same genus. A considerable catalogue, also, could be given of forms intermediate between two other forms, which themselves must be doubtfully ranked as either varieties or species; and this shows, unless all these forms be considered as independently created species, that the one in varying has assumed some of the characters of the other, so as to produce the intermediate form. But the best evidence is afforded by parts or organs of an important and uniform nature occasionally varying so as to acquire, in some degree, the character of the same part or organ in an allied species. I have collected a long list of such cases; but here, as before, I lie under a great disadvantage in not being able to give them. I can only repeat that such cases certainly do occur, and seem to me very remarkable.

A big part of the difficulty in identifying a variable species in our classification efforts comes from its varieties resembling, in a way, some of the other species within the same genus. There's also a significant list of forms that are intermediate between two other forms, which can themselves be uncertainly categorized as either varieties or species; this suggests that unless we treat all these forms as independently created species, the one that's varying has taken on some traits of the other, leading to the creation of the intermediate form. However, the strongest evidence comes from parts or organs of a significant and consistent nature occasionally changing to take on, to some extent, the characteristics of the same part or organ in a related species. I've gathered a long list of such cases; but here, as before, I'm at a major disadvantage in not being able to provide them. I can only reiterate that such cases definitely happen and seem very noteworthy to me.

I will, however, give one curious and complex case, not indeed as affecting any important character, but from occurring in several species of the same genus, partly under domestication and partly under nature. It is a case apparently of reversion. The ass not rarely has very distinct transverse bars on its legs, like those on the legs of a zebra: it has been asserted that these are plainest in the foal, and from inquiries which I have made, I believe this to be true. It has also been asserted that the stripe on each shoulder is sometimes double. The shoulder stripe is certainly very variable in length and outline. A white ass, but not an albino, has been described without either spinal or shoulder-stripe; and these stripes are sometimes very obscure, or actually quite lost, in dark-coloured asses. The koulan of Pallas is said to have been seen with a double shoulder-stripe. The hemionus has no shoulder-stripe; but traces of it, as stated by Mr. Blyth and others, occasionally appear: and I have been informed by Colonel Poole that the foals of this species are generally striped on the legs, and faintly on the shoulder. The quagga, though so plainly barred like a zebra over the body, is without bars on the legs; but Dr. Gray has figured one specimen with very distinct zebra-like bars on the hocks.

I’ll share one interesting and complicated case, not because it involves an important character, but because it appears in several species of the same genus, both domesticated and wild. It seems to be a case of reversion. Donkeys often have clear transverse bars on their legs, similar to the stripes on zebras. It has been claimed that these bars are most noticeable in foals, and from what I’ve found, I believe this is accurate. It has also been said that the shoulder stripe can sometimes appear double. The shoulder stripe definitely varies in length and shape. A white donkey, but not an albino, has been described without either a spinal or shoulder stripe; these stripes can sometimes be very faint or completely absent in dark-colored donkeys. The koulan of Pallas is reported to have been seen with a double shoulder stripe. The hemionus does not have a shoulder stripe, but as noted by Mr. Blyth and others, traces of one sometimes show up. Colonel Poole has informed me that foals of this species typically have stripes on their legs and faintly on their shoulders. The quagga, while clearly striped like a zebra on its body, has no stripes on its legs; however, Dr. Gray has illustrated one specimen with very distinct zebra-like stripes on its hocks.

With respect to the horse, I have collected cases in England of the spinal stripe in horses of the most distinct breeds, and of all colours; transverse bars on the legs are not rare in duns, mouse-duns, and in one instance in a chestnut: a faint shoulder-stripe may sometimes be seen in duns, and I have seen a trace in a bay horse. My son made a careful examination and sketch for me of a dun Belgian cart-horse with a double stripe on each shoulder and with leg-stripes; and a man, whom I can implicitly trust, has examined for me a small dun Welch pony with three short parallel stripes on each shoulder.

Regarding horses, I've gathered examples in England of the spinal stripe in horses from various distinct breeds and of all colors; transverse bars on the legs are common in duns, mouse-duns, and in one case in a chestnut: a faint shoulder stripe can sometimes be seen in duns, and I've observed a trace in a bay horse. My son carefully examined and sketched a dun Belgian cart horse that had a double stripe on each shoulder and stripes on its legs; and a man I completely trust has inspected a small dun Welsh pony with three short parallel stripes on each shoulder.

In the north-west part of India the Kattywar breed of horses is so generally striped, that, as I hear from Colonel Poole, who examined the breed for the Indian Government, a horse without stripes is not considered as purely-bred. The spine is always striped; the legs are generally barred; and the shoulder-stripe, which is sometimes double and sometimes treble, is common; the side of the face, moreover, is sometimes striped. The stripes are plainest in the foal; and sometimes quite disappear in old horses. Colonel Poole has seen both gray and bay Kattywar horses striped when first foaled. I have, also, reason to suspect, from information given me by Mr. W. W. Edwards, that with the English race-horse the spinal stripe is much commoner in the foal than in the full-grown animal. Without here entering on further details, I may state that I have collected cases of leg and shoulder stripes in horses of very different breeds, in various countries from Britain to Eastern China; and from Norway in the north to the Malay Archipelago in the south. In all parts of the world these stripes occur far oftenest in duns and mouse-duns; by the term dun a large range of colour is included, from one between brown and black to a close approach to cream-colour.

In the northwest part of India, the Kattywar breed of horses is so commonly striped that, according to Colonel Poole, who studied the breed for the Indian Government, a horse without stripes isn’t considered purebred. The spine is always striped, the legs are usually barred, and the shoulder stripe, which can be double or even triple, is common; the sides of the face are sometimes striped too. The stripes are most noticeable in foals and can sometimes completely fade in older horses. Colonel Poole has seen both gray and bay Kattywar horses with stripes when they were first born. I also suspect, based on information from Mr. W. W. Edwards, that with English racehorses, the spinal stripe is much more common in foals than in fully grown horses. Without going into more detail, I have collected examples of leg and shoulder stripes in horses of various breeds across different countries, from Britain to Eastern China, and from Norway in the north to the Malay Archipelago in the south. In all parts of the world, these stripes are most often found in duns and mouse-duns; the term dun covers a wide range of colors, from a mix of brown and black to a shade close to cream.

I am aware that Colonel Hamilton Smith, who has written on this subject, believes that the several breeds of the horse have descended from several aboriginal species—one of which, the dun, was striped; and that the above-described appearances are all due to ancient crosses with the dun stock. But I am not at all satisfied with this theory, and should be loth to apply it to breeds so distinct as the heavy Belgian cart-horse, Welch ponies, cobs, the lanky Kattywar race, etc., inhabiting the most distant parts of the world.

I know that Colonel Hamilton Smith, who has written about this topic, believes that the different horse breeds come from various original species—one of which, the dun, had stripes. He thinks that the characteristics mentioned earlier are all a result of ancient crossbreeding with the dun stock. However, I really don’t agree with this theory and would hesitate to use it to explain breeds as distinct as the heavy Belgian cart horse, Welsh ponies, cobs, the slender Kattywar breed, and others found in far-off parts of the world.

Now let us turn to the effects of crossing the several species of the horse-genus. Rollin asserts, that the common mule from the ass and horse is particularly apt to have bars on its legs. I once saw a mule with its legs so much striped that any one at first would have thought that it must have been the product of a zebra; and Mr. W. C. Martin, in his excellent treatise on the horse, has given a figure of a similar mule. In four coloured drawings, which I have seen, of hybrids between the ass and zebra, the legs were much more plainly barred than the rest of the body; and in one of them there was a double shoulder-stripe. In Lord Moreton’s famous hybrid from a chestnut mare and male quagga, the hybrid, and even the pure offspring subsequently produced from the mare by a black Arabian sire, were much more plainly barred across the legs than is even the pure quagga. Lastly, and this is another most remarkable case, a hybrid has been figured by Dr. Gray (and he informs me that he knows of a second case) from the ass and the hemionus; and this hybrid, though the ass seldom has stripes on its legs and the hemionus has none and has not even a shoulder-stripe, nevertheless had all four legs barred, and had three short shoulder-stripes, like those on the dun Welch pony, and even had some zebra-like stripes on the sides of its face. With respect to this last fact, I was so convinced that not even a stripe of colour appears from what would commonly be called an accident, that I was led solely from the occurrence of the face-stripes on this hybrid from the ass and hemionus, to ask Colonel Poole whether such face-stripes ever occur in the eminently striped Kattywar breed of horses, and was, as we have seen, answered in the affirmative.

Now let’s look at the effects of crossing different species of horses. Rollin states that the common mule, a mix of donkey and horse, often has stripes on its legs. I once saw a mule with such prominently striped legs that anyone might have thought it was the offspring of a zebra. Mr. W. C. Martin, in his great book on horses, has included a picture of a similar mule. In four colored drawings I’ve come across of hybrids between a donkey and zebra, the legs were much more distinctly striped than the rest of the body; in one drawing, there was a double shoulder stripe. In Lord Moreton’s well-known hybrid from a chestnut mare and a male quagga, the hybrid and even the pure offspring that came later from the mare with a black Arabian stallion had much more distinct stripes on their legs than even pure quagga. Lastly, and this is another very interesting case, a hybrid has been illustrated by Dr. Gray (and he tells me he knows of another case) from a donkey and a hemionus; this hybrid, even though donkeys usually don’t have stripes on their legs and hemionus don't have any stripes, still had all four legs striped and three short shoulder stripes, similar to those found on the dun Welch pony, and even had some zebra-like stripes on the sides of its face. Regarding this last observation, I was so convinced that not even a single stripe appeared by what one would typically call an accident, that I asked Colonel Poole whether such face stripes ever occur in the heavily striped Kattywar breed of horses, and, as we’ve seen, he replied affirmatively.

What now are we to say to these several facts? We see several very distinct species of the horse-genus becoming, by simple variation, striped on the legs like a zebra, or striped on the shoulders like an ass. In the horse we see this tendency strong whenever a dun tint appears—a tint which approaches to that of the general colouring of the other species of the genus. The appearance of the stripes is not accompanied by any change of form or by any other new character. We see this tendency to become striped most strongly displayed in hybrids from between several of the most distinct species. Now observe the case of the several breeds of pigeons: they are descended from a pigeon (including two or three sub-species or geographical races) of a bluish colour, with certain bars and other marks; and when any breed assumes by simple variation a bluish tint, these bars and other marks invariably reappear; but without any other change of form or character. When the oldest and truest breeds of various colours are crossed, we see a strong tendency for the blue tint and bars and marks to reappear in the mongrels. I have stated that the most probable hypothesis to account for the reappearance of very ancient characters, is—that there is a tendency in the young of each successive generation to produce the long-lost character, and that this tendency, from unknown causes, sometimes prevails. And we have just seen that in several species of the horse-genus the stripes are either plainer or appear more commonly in the young than in the old. Call the breeds of pigeons, some of which have bred true for centuries, species; and how exactly parallel is the case with that of the species of the horse-genus! For myself, I venture confidently to look back thousands on thousands of generations, and I see an animal striped like a zebra, but perhaps otherwise very differently constructed, the common parent of our domestic horse, whether or not it be descended from one or more wild stocks, of the ass, the hemionus, quagga, and zebra.

What are we supposed to make of these various facts now? We notice several distinct horse species becoming striped on their legs like a zebra or striped on their shoulders like a donkey through simple variation. In horses, this tendency is stronger whenever a dun color appears—a color that is close to the general coloring of other species in the genus. The appearance of stripes doesn’t come with any changes in form or any other new traits. We see this tendency to become striped most clearly in hybrids between several distinct species. Now, consider the different breeds of pigeons: they come from a pigeon (including a few sub-species or geographical races) of a bluish color with specific bars and other markings; and when any breed develops a bluish tint through simple variation, those bars and other markings consistently reappear, but without any change in form or character. When the oldest and purest breeds of various colors are mixed, we see a strong tendency for the blue tint and bars and markings to show up again in the mixed breeds. I’ve stated that the most likely explanation for the reappearance of very ancient traits is that there is a tendency in the young of each generation to produce long-lost traits, and this tendency, for reasons we don’t understand, sometimes prevails. We’ve just seen that in several species of the horse genus, the stripes are either clearer or show up more often in the young than in the old. If we call some pigeon breeds species, some of which have bred true for centuries, how closely does this parallel the situation with the species of the horse genus! Personally, I confidently look back thousands upon thousands of generations and envision an animal striped like a zebra, yet possibly very different in structure, the common ancestor of our domestic horse, whether it descended from one or more wild sources, and of the donkey, hemionus, quagga, and zebra.

He who believes that each equine species was independently created, will, I presume, assert that each species has been created with a tendency to vary, both under nature and under domestication, in this particular manner, so as often to become striped like other species of the genus; and that each has been created with a strong tendency, when crossed with species inhabiting distant quarters of the world, to produce hybrids resembling in their stripes, not their own parents, but other species of the genus. To admit this view is, as it seems to me, to reject a real for an unreal, or at least for an unknown, cause. It makes the works of God a mere mockery and deception; I would almost as soon believe with the old and ignorant cosmogonists, that fossil shells had never lived, but had been created in stone so as to mock the shells now living on the sea-shore.

Anyone who thinks that each horse species was created independently will likely argue that each species was created with a tendency to vary, both in nature and when domesticated, in such a way that they often end up having stripes like other species in the same family. They would also argue that each species has a strong tendency, when crossed with species from far-off parts of the world, to produce hybrids that have stripes resembling other species in the family, rather than their own parents. Accepting this view, it seems to me, is to choose an unreal or at least unknown cause over a real one. It turns the works of God into a mere mockery and deception; I would almost prefer to believe, like the old and ignorant theorists, that fossil shells never lived, but were created in stone just to imitate the shells that are currently living on the beach.

Summary.—Our ignorance of the laws of variation is profound. Not in one case out of a hundred can we pretend to assign any reason why this or that part differs, more or less, from the same part in the parents. But whenever we have the means of instituting a comparison, the same laws appear to have acted in producing the lesser differences between varieties of the same species, and the greater differences between species of the same genus. The external conditions of life, as climate and food, etc., seem to have induced some slight modifications. Habit in producing constitutional differences, and use in strengthening, and disuse in weakening and diminishing organs, seem to have been more potent in their effects. Homologous parts tend to vary in the same way, and homologous parts tend to cohere. Modifications in hard parts and in external parts sometimes affect softer and internal parts. When one part is largely developed, perhaps it tends to draw nourishment from the adjoining parts; and every part of the structure which can be saved without detriment to the individual, will be saved. Changes of structure at an early age will generally affect parts subsequently developed; and there are very many other correlations of growth, the nature of which we are utterly unable to understand. Multiple parts are variable in number and in structure, perhaps arising from such parts not having been closely specialised to any particular function, so that their modifications have not been closely checked by natural selection. It is probably from this same cause that organic beings low in the scale of nature are more variable than those which have their whole organisation more specialised, and are higher in the scale. Rudimentary organs, from being useless, will be disregarded by natural selection, and hence probably are variable. Specific characters—that is, the characters which have come to differ since the several species of the same genus branched off from a common parent—are more variable than generic characters, or those which have long been inherited, and have not differed within this same period. In these remarks we have referred to special parts or organs being still variable, because they have recently varied and thus come to differ; but we have also seen in the second Chapter that the same principle applies to the whole individual; for in a district where many species of any genus are found—that is, where there has been much former variation and differentiation, or where the manufactory of new specific forms has been actively at work—there, on an average, we now find most varieties or incipient species. Secondary sexual characters are highly variable, and such characters differ much in the species of the same group. Variability in the same parts of the organisation has generally been taken advantage of in giving secondary sexual differences to the sexes of the same species, and specific differences to the several species of the same genus. Any part or organ developed to an extraordinary size or in an extraordinary manner, in comparison with the same part or organ in the allied species, must have gone through an extraordinary amount of modification since the genus arose; and thus we can understand why it should often still be variable in a much higher degree than other parts; for variation is a long-continued and slow process, and natural selection will in such cases not as yet have had time to overcome the tendency to further variability and to reversion to a less modified state. But when a species with any extraordinarily-developed organ has become the parent of many modified descendants—which on my view must be a very slow process, requiring a long lapse of time—in this case, natural selection may readily have succeeded in giving a fixed character to the organ, in however extraordinary a manner it may be developed. Species inheriting nearly the same constitution from a common parent and exposed to similar influences will naturally tend to present analogous variations, and these same species may occasionally revert to some of the characters of their ancient progenitors. Although new and important modifications may not arise from reversion and analogous variation, such modifications will add to the beautiful and harmonious diversity of nature.

Summary.—We are deeply ignorant about the laws of variation. In fewer than one out of a hundred cases can we reasonably explain why this or that part differs, either more or less, from the same part in the parents. However, whenever we can compare, the same laws seem to have operated in producing the smaller differences between varieties of the same species and the larger differences between species of the same genus. External life conditions, like climate and food, appear to cause some slight changes. Habit seems to create constitutional differences, while use strengthens and disuse weakens or diminishes organs, and these factors seem to have a more significant impact. Homologous parts tend to vary similarly and stick together. Changes in hard and external parts can sometimes influence softer and internal parts. When one part is significantly developed, it may draw nourishment from nearby parts, and any part of the structure that can be preserved without harming the individual will be saved. Structural changes at an early age usually affect parts that develop later, and there are many other growth correlations that we completely fail to understand. Multiple parts can vary in number and structure, possibly because they haven't been closely specialized for a specific function, so their changes haven’t been too restricted by natural selection. This might explain why organisms lower in the natural hierarchy are more variable than those that are more specialized and higher up. Rudimentary organs, being useless, are likely ignored by natural selection and, therefore, tend to be variable. Specific traits—that is, the traits that have changed since the various species of the same genus split from a common ancestor—are generally more variable than generic traits, which have been inherited for a long time without change. In these observations, we've mentioned specific parts or organs being variable because they've only recently changed and thus differ; but we also noted in the second Chapter that the same principle applies to the entire individual. In areas where many species of a genus are found—that is, where there's been significant variation and differentiation in the past, or where new specific forms have actively developed—there, on average, we now find the most varieties or emerging species. Secondary sexual traits are highly variable and differ greatly among species in the same group. Variability in the same organizational parts has generally been exploited to give secondary sexual differences to the sexes of the same species and specific differences to the various species of the same genus. Any part or organ developing exceptionally large or unusually compared to the same part or organ in related species must have undergone a significant amount of modification since the genus emerged; thus we can understand why it might still vary considerably compared to other parts, as variation is a lengthy and slow process, and natural selection may not have had enough time to eliminate the tendency for further variability and reversion to a less modified state. However, when a species with a uniquely developed organ becomes the parent of many modified descendants—which I believe must be a very gradual process taking a long time—natural selection may have successfully fixed the character of that organ, regardless of how extraordinary its development might be. Species that inherit nearly the same traits from a common ancestor and are exposed to similar influences will naturally tend to exhibit similar variations, and these species may occasionally revert to some characteristics of their ancient ancestors. Although new and significant changes may not result from reversion and analogous variation, such changes will contribute to the beautiful and harmonious diversity of nature.

Whatever the cause may be of each slight difference in the offspring from their parents—and a cause for each must exist—it is the steady accumulation, through natural selection, of such differences, when beneficial to the individual, that gives rise to all the more important modifications of structure, by which the innumerable beings on the face of this earth are enabled to struggle with each other, and the best adapted to survive.

Whatever the reason behind each small difference between parents and their offspring—and there has to be a reason for each—it’s the gradual build-up, through natural selection, of these advantageous differences that leads to significant changes in structure. This process allows countless beings on this planet to compete with one another, with those best suited to their environment surviving.

CHAPTER VI.
DIFFICULTIES ON THEORY.

Difficulties on the theory of descent with modification. Transitions. Absence or rarity of transitional varieties. Transitions in habits of life. Diversified habits in the same species. Species with habits widely different from those of their allies. Organs of extreme perfection. Means of transition. Cases of difficulty. Natura non facit saltum. Organs of small importance. Organs not in all cases absolutely perfect. The law of Unity of Type and of the Conditions of Existence embraced by the theory of Natural Selection.

Difficulties with the theory of evolution through modification. Transitional forms. Lack of or few transitional varieties. Changes in lifestyle. Varied behaviors within the same species. Species with habits very different from those of their relatives. Organs of exceptional perfection. Ways of making transitions. Examples of difficulty. Nature doesn't make jumps. Organs that are of minor importance. Organs that aren’t always completely perfect. The principle of Unity of Type and the Conditions of Existence included in the theory of Natural Selection.

Long before having arrived at this part of my work, a crowd of difficulties will have occurred to the reader. Some of them are so grave that to this day I can never reflect on them without being staggered; but, to the best of my judgment, the greater number are only apparent, and those that are real are not, I think, fatal to my theory.

Long before reaching this point in my work, the reader will have faced a lot of challenges. Some of these are so serious that I still find them overwhelming when I think about them; however, in my opinion, most are just illusions, and the ones that are genuine aren't, I believe, a dealbreaker for my theory.

These difficulties and objections may be classed under the following heads:—

These challenges and concerns can be categorized into the following groups:—

Firstly, why, if species have descended from other species by insensibly fine gradations, do we not everywhere see innumerable transitional forms? Why is not all nature in confusion instead of the species being, as we see them, well defined?

Firstly, if species have evolved from other species through very slight changes over time, why don’t we see countless transitional forms everywhere? Why isn’t nature all mixed up instead of species being, as we observe, clearly defined?

Secondly, is it possible that an animal having, for instance, the structure and habits of a bat, could have been formed by the modification of some animal with wholly different habits? Can we believe that natural selection could produce, on the one hand, organs of trifling importance, such as the tail of a giraffe, which serves as a fly-flapper, and, on the other hand, organs of such wonderful structure, as the eye, of which we hardly as yet fully understand the inimitable perfection?

Secondly, is it possible that an animal with the structure and habits of a bat could have evolved from some other animal with completely different habits? Can we really believe that natural selection could create, on one hand, organs of little significance, like a giraffe's tail that just swats away flies, and, on the other hand, organs of such incredible complexity, like the eye, which we still don't fully grasp in terms of its unmatched perfection?

Thirdly, can instincts be acquired and modified through natural selection? What shall we say to so marvellous an instinct as that which leads the bee to make cells, which have practically anticipated the discoveries of profound mathematicians?

Thirdly, can instincts be learned and changed through natural selection? What can we say about such an amazing instinct as the one that drives the bee to build cells, which almost seems to have anticipated the discoveries of advanced mathematicians?

Fourthly, how can we account for species, when crossed, being sterile and producing sterile offspring, whereas, when varieties are crossed, their fertility is unimpaired?

Fourthly, how can we explain that when species are crossed, they are sterile and produce sterile offspring, while crossing varieties does not affect their fertility?

The two first heads shall be here discussed—Instinct and Hybridism in separate chapters.

The first two topics will be discussed here—Instinct and Hybridism in separate chapters.

On the absence or rarity of transitional varieties.—As natural selection acts solely by the preservation of profitable modifications, each new form will tend in a fully-stocked country to take the place of, and finally to exterminate, its own less improved parent or other less-favoured forms with which it comes into competition. Thus extinction and natural selection will, as we have seen, go hand in hand. Hence, if we look at each species as descended from some other unknown form, both the parent and all the transitional varieties will generally have been exterminated by the very process of formation and perfection of the new form.

On the absence or rarity of transitional varieties.—Since natural selection only works by preserving beneficial changes, each new form in a fully populated area will tend to replace and ultimately eliminate its own less advanced ancestor or any other less favored forms competing with it. Therefore, extinction and natural selection will, as we have observed, occur together. Thus, if we consider each species as coming from some other unknown form, both the parent and all the transitional varieties will typically have been eliminated by the very process of forming and perfecting the new form.

But, as by this theory innumerable transitional forms must have existed, why do we not find them embedded in countless numbers in the crust of the earth? It will be much more convenient to discuss this question in the chapter on the Imperfection of the geological record; and I will here only state that I believe the answer mainly lies in the record being incomparably less perfect than is generally supposed; the imperfection of the record being chiefly due to organic beings not inhabiting profound depths of the sea, and to their remains being embedded and preserved to a future age only in masses of sediment sufficiently thick and extensive to withstand an enormous amount of future degradation; and such fossiliferous masses can be accumulated only where much sediment is deposited on the shallow bed of the sea, whilst it slowly subsides. These contingencies will concur only rarely, and after enormously long intervals. Whilst the bed of the sea is stationary or is rising, or when very little sediment is being deposited, there will be blanks in our geological history. The crust of the earth is a vast museum; but the natural collections have been made only at intervals of time immensely remote.

But, since this theory suggests that countless transitional forms must have existed, why don't we find them in large numbers embedded in the Earth's crust? It's more convenient to discuss this question in the chapter on the Imperfection of the geological record; I’ll just say that I believe the answer mainly lies in the record being far less complete than commonly thought. The record’s imperfection is mainly due to organisms not living in the deep sea, and their remains only being embedded and preserved in sediment that is thick and extensive enough to survive significant future erosion. Such fossil-rich layers can only form where a lot of sediment collects on the shallow seabed as it slowly sinks. These conditions are rare and occur over extremely long periods. When the seabed is stable or rising, or when very little sediment is being deposited, there will be gaps in our geological history. The Earth's crust is like a vast museum, but natural collections have only been made at intervals of tremendous time.

But it may be urged that when several closely-allied species inhabit the same territory we surely ought to find at the present time many transitional forms. Let us take a simple case: in travelling from north to south over a continent, we generally meet at successive intervals with closely allied or representative species, evidently filling nearly the same place in the natural economy of the land. These representative species often meet and interlock; and as the one becomes rarer and rarer, the other becomes more and more frequent, till the one replaces the other. But if we compare these species where they intermingle, they are generally as absolutely distinct from each other in every detail of structure as are specimens taken from the metropolis inhabited by each. By my theory these allied species have descended from a common parent; and during the process of modification, each has become adapted to the conditions of life of its own region, and has supplanted and exterminated its original parent and all the transitional varieties between its past and present states. Hence we ought not to expect at the present time to meet with numerous transitional varieties in each region, though they must have existed there, and may be embedded there in a fossil condition. But in the intermediate region, having intermediate conditions of life, why do we not now find closely-linking intermediate varieties? This difficulty for a long time quite confounded me. But I think it can be in large part explained.

But it can be argued that when several closely related species live in the same area, we should currently find many transitional forms. Let’s consider a simple example: when we travel from north to south across a continent, we usually encounter closely related or representative species at various points, obviously filling almost the same role in the ecosystem of the land. These representative species often overlap; as one becomes rarer, the other becomes more common, until one replaces the other. However, if we look at these species where they overlap, they are generally as distinct from each other in every structural detail as specimens taken from the main city each species inhabits. According to my theory, these related species have descended from a common ancestor, and during their evolution, each has adapted to the living conditions of its specific area, replacing and wiping out its original ancestor and all the transitional forms between its past and current states. Therefore, we shouldn’t expect to find numerous transitional varieties in each area right now, even though they must have existed there and may be found in a fossilized state. But in the intermediate area, with intermediate living conditions, why don’t we find closely linked intermediate varieties now? This issue perplexed me for a long time. However, I believe it can be mostly explained.

In the first place we should be extremely cautious in inferring, because an area is now continuous, that it has been continuous during a long period. Geology would lead us to believe that almost every continent has been broken up into islands even during the later tertiary periods; and in such islands distinct species might have been separately formed without the possibility of intermediate varieties existing in the intermediate zones. By changes in the form of the land and of climate, marine areas now continuous must often have existed within recent times in a far less continuous and uniform condition than at present. But I will pass over this way of escaping from the difficulty; for I believe that many perfectly defined species have been formed on strictly continuous areas; though I do not doubt that the formerly broken condition of areas now continuous has played an important part in the formation of new species, more especially with freely-crossing and wandering animals.

First of all, we should be very careful when inferring that an area has been continuously connected just because it is continuous now. Geology suggests that almost every continent has been divided into islands, even during the later tertiary periods; and distinct species may have developed separately on these islands without any intermediate varieties existing in the spaces in between. Due to changes in the landscape and climate, marine areas that are now continuous likely existed in a much less cohesive and uniform state not too long ago. However, I will move past this way of addressing the issue; I believe that many clearly defined species have emerged in areas that are strictly continuous. Still, I don't doubt that the previously fragmented state of areas now continuous has played a significant role in the emergence of new species, especially with animals that are freely crossing and roaming.

In looking at species as they are now distributed over a wide area, we generally find them tolerably numerous over a large territory, then becoming somewhat abruptly rarer and rarer on the confines, and finally disappearing. Hence the neutral territory between two representative species is generally narrow in comparison with the territory proper to each. We see the same fact in ascending mountains, and sometimes it is quite remarkable how abruptly, as Alph. De Candolle has observed, a common alpine species disappears. The same fact has been noticed by Forbes in sounding the depths of the sea with the dredge. To those who look at climate and the physical conditions of life as the all-important elements of distribution, these facts ought to cause surprise, as climate and height or depth graduate away insensibly. But when we bear in mind that almost every species, even in its metropolis, would increase immensely in numbers, were it not for other competing species; that nearly all either prey on or serve as prey for others; in short, that each organic being is either directly or indirectly related in the most important manner to other organic beings, we must see that the range of the inhabitants of any country by no means exclusively depends on insensibly changing physical conditions, but in large part on the presence of other species, on which it depends, or by which it is destroyed, or with which it comes into competition; and as these species are already defined objects (however they may have become so), not blending one into another by insensible gradations, the range of any one species, depending as it does on the range of others, will tend to be sharply defined. Moreover, each species on the confines of its range, where it exists in lessened numbers, will, during fluctuations in the number of its enemies or of its prey, or in the seasons, be extremely liable to utter extermination; and thus its geographical range will come to be still more sharply defined.

When we look at how species are currently spread out over a large area, we typically find them fairly abundant in certain regions, then becoming noticeably rarer at the edges, and eventually disappearing altogether. As a result, the neutral zone between two similar species is usually quite narrow compared to the area each occupies. We observe the same phenomenon when climbing mountains, and sometimes it’s striking how suddenly, as Alph. De Candolle noted, a common alpine species vanishes. Forbes has made similar observations while exploring the ocean depths with a dredge. For those who see climate and physical conditions as the key factors for distribution, these findings might be surprising since climate and elevation or depth gradually change. However, if we consider that nearly every species, even in its core environment, would flourish in numbers if not for competition from other species; that almost all are either predators or prey; and that all living beings are closely interconnected with one another, we can understand that the distribution of species in any region is not solely determined by slowly changing physical conditions. Instead, it’s largely influenced by the presence of other species, which it relies on, competes with, or is harmed by. As these species are distinct entities (regardless of how they came to be), not blending into each other through gradual transitions, the range of any one species—being reliant on the ranges of others—is likely to be sharply defined. Additionally, each species at the edge of its range, where it exists in reduced numbers, will be particularly vulnerable to complete extinction during fluctuations in the population of its enemies or prey, or due to seasonal changes; thus, its geographical range will become even more distinctly defined.

If I am right in believing that allied or representative species, when inhabiting a continuous area, are generally so distributed that each has a wide range, with a comparatively narrow neutral territory between them, in which they become rather suddenly rarer and rarer; then, as varieties do not essentially differ from species, the same rule will probably apply to both; and if we in imagination adapt a varying species to a very large area, we shall have to adapt two varieties to two large areas, and a third variety to a narrow intermediate zone. The intermediate variety, consequently, will exist in lesser numbers from inhabiting a narrow and lesser area; and practically, as far as I can make out, this rule holds good with varieties in a state of nature. I have met with striking instances of the rule in the case of varieties intermediate between well-marked varieties in the genus Balanus. And it would appear from information given me by Mr. Watson, Dr. Asa Gray, and Mr. Wollaston, that generally when varieties intermediate between two other forms occur, they are much rarer numerically than the forms which they connect. Now, if we may trust these facts and inferences, and therefore conclude that varieties linking two other varieties together have generally existed in lesser numbers than the forms which they connect, then, I think, we can understand why intermediate varieties should not endure for very long periods;—why as a general rule they should be exterminated and disappear, sooner than the forms which they originally linked together.

If I'm correct in thinking that related or representative species in a continuous area are typically spread out so that each has a broad range, with a relatively narrow neutral territory between them where they become increasingly rare; then, since varieties are not fundamentally different from species, the same principle likely applies to both. If we imagine a variable species across a large area, we would need to adapt two varieties to two large areas, and a third variety to a narrow middle zone. The intermediate variety will therefore exist in smaller numbers because it's in a narrow and smaller area. In practice, as far as I can tell, this rule seems to hold true for varieties in nature. I've encountered significant examples of this rule regarding intermediate varieties between well-defined varieties in the genus Balanus. Additionally, based on information from Mr. Watson, Dr. Asa Gray, and Mr. Wollaston, it appears that whenever intermediate varieties between two other forms occur, they are usually much rarer than the forms they connect. If we can rely on these facts and conclusions, and thus deduce that varieties linking two other varieties tend to exist in fewer numbers than the forms they connect, then I think we can understand why intermediate varieties don’t last for very long; why, as a general rule, they tend to be eliminated and disappear sooner than the forms they originally connected.

For any form existing in lesser numbers would, as already remarked, run a greater chance of being exterminated than one existing in large numbers; and in this particular case the intermediate form would be eminently liable to the inroads of closely allied forms existing on both sides of it. But a far more important consideration, as I believe, is that, during the process of further modification, by which two varieties are supposed on my theory to be converted and perfected into two distinct species, the two which exist in larger numbers from inhabiting larger areas, will have a great advantage over the intermediate variety, which exists in smaller numbers in a narrow and intermediate zone. For forms existing in larger numbers will always have a better chance, within any given period, of presenting further favourable variations for natural selection to seize on, than will the rarer forms which exist in lesser numbers. Hence, the more common forms, in the race for life, will tend to beat and supplant the less common forms, for these will be more slowly modified and improved. It is the same principle which, as I believe, accounts for the common species in each country, as shown in the second chapter, presenting on an average a greater number of well-marked varieties than do the rarer species. I may illustrate what I mean by supposing three varieties of sheep to be kept, one adapted to an extensive mountainous region; a second to a comparatively narrow, hilly tract; and a third to wide plains at the base; and that the inhabitants are all trying with equal steadiness and skill to improve their stocks by selection; the chances in this case will be strongly in favour of the great holders on the mountains or on the plains improving their breeds more quickly than the small holders on the intermediate narrow, hilly tract; and consequently the improved mountain or plain breed will soon take the place of the less improved hill breed; and thus the two breeds, which originally existed in greater numbers, will come into close contact with each other, without the interposition of the supplanted, intermediate hill-variety.

Any form that exists in smaller populations will, as previously mentioned, have a greater risk of being wiped out compared to one that exists in larger numbers. In this specific case, the intermediate form would be especially vulnerable to being outcompeted by closely related forms on either side of it. However, a much more crucial factor, I believe, is that during the ongoing process of modification, which my theory suggests leads to two varieties evolving into two distinct species, those that exist in larger populations and cover more extensive areas will have a significant advantage over the intermediate variety, which exists in smaller numbers within a narrow zone. Forms that exist in larger populations will continually have a better chance, within any given timeframe, of producing more favorable variations for natural selection to act on than the rarer forms with smaller populations. Therefore, the more common forms, in the struggle for survival, will tend to outcompete and replace the less common forms, which will be modified and improved at a slower rate. This same principle, I believe, explains why common species in each country, as shown in the second chapter, generally exhibit a greater number of well-defined varieties compared to rarer species. To illustrate my point, consider three varieties of sheep: one suited for a vast mountainous region, a second for a relatively narrow, hilly area, and a third for wide plains at the base. If all the farmers are trying equally hard and skillfully to improve their flocks through selection, the odds will strongly favor the larger farms on the mountains or plains improving their breeds more rapidly than the smaller farms in the narrow, hilly tract. Consequently, the improved mountain or plain breed will soon replace the less improved hill breed, and thus the two breeds that originally existed in greater numbers will come into close contact with each other, bypassing the replaced intermediate hill variety.

To sum up, I believe that species come to be tolerably well-defined objects, and do not at any one period present an inextricable chaos of varying and intermediate links: firstly, because new varieties are very slowly formed, for variation is a very slow process, and natural selection can do nothing until favourable variations chance to occur, and until a place in the natural polity of the country can be better filled by some modification of some one or more of its inhabitants. And such new places will depend on slow changes of climate, or on the occasional immigration of new inhabitants, and, probably, in a still more important degree, on some of the old inhabitants becoming slowly modified, with the new forms thus produced and the old ones acting and reacting on each other. So that, in any one region and at any one time, we ought only to see a few species presenting slight modifications of structure in some degree permanent; and this assuredly we do see.

In summary, I think species are generally well-defined entities and don't present a confusing mix of varying and intermediate forms at any given time. This is mainly because new varieties develop very slowly; variation is a gradual process, and natural selection can't act until favorable variations occur and until there's an opportunity for some modified form of an inhabitant to better fit a role in the ecosystem of the area. These new opportunities depend on slow climate changes, occasional arrivals of new species, and likely even more on gradual modifications of existing species, with the new and old forms influencing each other. So, in any specific region and at any moment, we should see only a few species with slight, somewhat permanent differences in structure, and that's certainly what we observe.

Secondly, areas now continuous must often have existed within the recent period in isolated portions, in which many forms, more especially amongst the classes which unite for each birth and wander much, may have separately been rendered sufficiently distinct to rank as representative species. In this case, intermediate varieties between the several representative species and their common parent, must formerly have existed in each broken portion of the land, but these links will have been supplanted and exterminated during the process of natural selection, so that they will no longer exist in a living state.

Secondly, areas that are now connected probably existed recently as separate parts, where many forms, especially among the groups that come together for each birth and travel a lot, may have become distinct enough to be considered separate species. In this situation, intermediate varieties between the different representative species and their common ancestor must have existed in each fragmented part of the land, but these links would have been replaced and wiped out during natural selection, so they no longer exist in a living form.

Thirdly, when two or more varieties have been formed in different portions of a strictly continuous area, intermediate varieties will, it is probable, at first have been formed in the intermediate zones, but they will generally have had a short duration. For these intermediate varieties will, from reasons already assigned (namely from what we know of the actual distribution of closely allied or representative species, and likewise of acknowledged varieties), exist in the intermediate zones in lesser numbers than the varieties which they tend to connect. From this cause alone the intermediate varieties will be liable to accidental extermination; and during the process of further modification through natural selection, they will almost certainly be beaten and supplanted by the forms which they connect; for these from existing in greater numbers will, in the aggregate, present more variation, and thus be further improved through natural selection and gain further advantages.

Thirdly, when two or more types have developed in different parts of a continuous area, it’s likely that intermediate types will first appear in the zones between them, but they will usually have a short lifespan. This is because, as previously mentioned (based on what we know about the actual distribution of closely related or representative species, and recognized varieties), these intermediate types will exist in smaller numbers than the varieties they aim to link. For this reason alone, the intermediate varieties will be at risk of accidental extinction; and as natural selection continues to modify them, they will almost certainly be outcompeted and replaced by the forms they connect to. The ones that exist in greater numbers will exhibit more variation overall, allowing them to be further improved by natural selection and gain additional advantages.

Lastly, looking not to any one time, but to all time, if my theory be true, numberless intermediate varieties, linking most closely all the species of the same group together, must assuredly have existed; but the very process of natural selection constantly tends, as has been so often remarked, to exterminate the parent forms and the intermediate links. Consequently evidence of their former existence could be found only amongst fossil remains, which are preserved, as we shall in a future chapter attempt to show, in an extremely imperfect and intermittent record.

Lastly, considering not just one moment, but all moments, if my theory is correct, countless intermediate varieties that closely connect all the species in the same group must have existed. However, the process of natural selection tends to eliminate the original forms and the intermediate links, as has been noted many times before. As a result, evidence of their past existence can only be found among fossil remains, which, as we will attempt to demonstrate in a future chapter, are preserved in a highly incomplete and sporadic record.

On the origin and transitions of organic beings with peculiar habits and structure.—It has been asked by the opponents of such views as I hold, how, for instance, a land carnivorous animal could have been converted into one with aquatic habits; for how could the animal in its transitional state have subsisted? It would be easy to show that within the same group carnivorous animals exist having every intermediate grade between truly aquatic and strictly terrestrial habits; and as each exists by a struggle for life, it is clear that each is well adapted in its habits to its place in nature. Look at the Mustela vison of North America, which has webbed feet and which resembles an otter in its fur, short legs, and form of tail; during summer this animal dives for and preys on fish, but during the long winter it leaves the frozen waters, and preys like other polecats on mice and land animals. If a different case had been taken, and it had been asked how an insectivorous quadruped could possibly have been converted into a flying bat, the question would have been far more difficult, and I could have given no answer. Yet I think such difficulties have very little weight.

On the origin and transitions of organic beings with peculiar habits and structure.—People who disagree with my views often ask how, for example, a land carnivore could become an aquatic animal; they wonder how the creature would survive during its transitional phase. It's easy to demonstrate that within the same group, there are carnivorous animals that show every intermediate stage between fully aquatic and entirely terrestrial behaviors. Each of these animals fights for survival, clearly indicating that they are well-suited to their role in nature. Take the Mustela vison of North America, which has webbed feet and resembles an otter with its fur, short legs, and tail shape; in the summer, this animal dives for and catches fish, but in the long winter it leaves the frozen waters and hunts like other weasels for mice and other land creatures. If we considered a different situation and asked how an insect-eating four-legged animal could turn into a flying bat, that question would be much harder to answer, and I wouldn't have an explanation. Still, I believe these challenges carry very little significance.

Here, as on other occasions, I lie under a heavy disadvantage, for out of the many striking cases which I have collected, I can give only one or two instances of transitional habits and structures in closely allied species of the same genus; and of diversified habits, either constant or occasional, in the same species. And it seems to me that nothing less than a long list of such cases is sufficient to lessen the difficulty in any particular case like that of the bat.

Here, as before, I’m at a significant disadvantage because out of the many striking examples I’ve gathered, I can only provide one or two cases of transitional habits and structures in closely related species within the same genus; and of varied habits, whether consistent or occasional, in the same species. It seems to me that nothing short of a lengthy list of such cases is enough to make the challenges in a specific situation like that of the bat easier to understand.

Look at the family of squirrels; here we have the finest gradation from animals with their tails only slightly flattened, and from others, as Sir J. Richardson has remarked, with the posterior part of their bodies rather wide and with the skin on their flanks rather full, to the so-called flying squirrels; and flying squirrels have their limbs and even the base of the tail united by a broad expanse of skin, which serves as a parachute and allows them to glide through the air to an astonishing distance from tree to tree. We cannot doubt that each structure is of use to each kind of squirrel in its own country, by enabling it to escape birds or beasts of prey, or to collect food more quickly, or, as there is reason to believe, by lessening the danger from occasional falls. But it does not follow from this fact that the structure of each squirrel is the best that it is possible to conceive under all natural conditions. Let the climate and vegetation change, let other competing rodents or new beasts of prey immigrate, or old ones become modified, and all analogy would lead us to believe that some at least of the squirrels would decrease in numbers or become exterminated, unless they also became modified and improved in structure in a corresponding manner. Therefore, I can see no difficulty, more especially under changing conditions of life, in the continued preservation of individuals with fuller and fuller flank-membranes, each modification being useful, each being propagated, until by the accumulated effects of this process of natural selection, a perfect so-called flying squirrel was produced.

Look at the family of squirrels; here we see the best range from animals with slightly flattened tails to others, as Sir J. Richardson pointed out, that have a wider back end and fuller skin on their sides, up to the so-called flying squirrels. Flying squirrels have their limbs and even the base of their tails connected by a wide stretch of skin that acts like a parachute, allowing them to glide impressively through the air from tree to tree. We can be sure that each adaptation helps each type of squirrel thrive in its environment, whether it's avoiding predators, gathering food faster, or, as some believe, reducing the risk of falls. However, this doesn't mean that each squirrel's structure is the absolute best under all natural conditions. If the climate and vegetation change, if new competing rodents or predators arrive, or if existing ones change, all evidence suggests that at least some squirrels would decline or go extinct unless they also adapted and improved their structure accordingly. Therefore, I see no problem, especially under shifting life conditions, in the ongoing survival of individuals with increasingly full flank membranes, each change being beneficial and passed on, until through the cumulative effects of this natural selection process, a perfect so-called flying squirrel emerges.

Now look at the Galeopithecus or flying lemur, which formerly was falsely ranked amongst bats. It has an extremely wide flank-membrane, stretching from the corners of the jaw to the tail, and including the limbs and the elongated fingers: the flank membrane is, also, furnished with an extensor muscle. Although no graduated links of structure, fitted for gliding through the air, now connect the Galeopithecus with the other Lemuridæ, yet I can see no difficulty in supposing that such links formerly existed, and that each had been formed by the same steps as in the case of the less perfectly gliding squirrels; and that each grade of structure had been useful to its possessor. Nor can I see any insuperable difficulty in further believing it possible that the membrane-connected fingers and fore-arm of the Galeopithecus might be greatly lengthened by natural selection; and this, as far as the organs of flight are concerned, would convert it into a bat. In bats which have the wing-membrane extended from the top of the shoulder to the tail, including the hind-legs, we perhaps see traces of an apparatus originally constructed for gliding through the air rather than for flight.

Now look at the Galeopithecus, or flying lemur, which used to be incorrectly classified as a bat. It has a very wide membrane that stretches from the corners of its jaw to its tail, including its limbs and long fingers; this membrane also has an extensor muscle. Although there are no clear gradual structural links that connect the Galeopithecus with other lemurs, I have no problem believing that such links once existed, formed through the same process as seen in squirrels that glide less perfectly, and that each structural variation was beneficial to its owner. I also don’t see any major obstacle in believing that the membrane-connected fingers and forearm of the Galeopithecus could be significantly lengthened through natural selection; this could ultimately turn it into a bat regarding its flight capabilities. In bats where the wing membrane extends from the shoulder to the tail, including the hind legs, we might be seeing remnants of a system originally designed for gliding rather than for sustained flight.

If about a dozen genera of birds had become extinct or were unknown, who would have ventured to have surmised that birds might have existed which used their wings solely as flappers, like the logger-headed duck (Micropterus of Eyton); as fins in the water and front legs on the land, like the penguin; as sails, like the ostrich; and functionally for no purpose, like the Apteryx. Yet the structure of each of these birds is good for it, under the conditions of life to which it is exposed, for each has to live by a struggle; but it is not necessarily the best possible under all possible conditions. It must not be inferred from these remarks that any of the grades of wing-structure here alluded to, which perhaps may all have resulted from disuse, indicate the natural steps by which birds have acquired their perfect power of flight; but they serve, at least, to show what diversified means of transition are possible.

If about a dozen bird genera had gone extinct or were unknown, who would have guessed that birds might have existed which used their wings solely for flapping, like the logger-headed duck (Micropterus of Eyton); as fins in the water and front legs on land, like the penguin; as sails, like the ostrich; and for no real purpose, like the Apteryx? Still, the structure of each of these birds is suited to its environment, as each has to survive through struggle; but it’s not necessarily the best setup for every condition. This doesn't mean that the various types of wing structures mentioned, which may have all stemmed from disuse, show the natural progression by which birds developed their perfect flight abilities; however, they at least illustrate the diverse ways of adaptation that are possible.

Seeing that a few members of such water-breathing classes as the Crustacea and Mollusca are adapted to live on the land, and seeing that we have flying birds and mammals, flying insects of the most diversified types, and formerly had flying reptiles, it is conceivable that flying-fish, which now glide far through the air, slightly rising and turning by the aid of their fluttering fins, might have been modified into perfectly winged animals. If this had been effected, who would have ever imagined that in an early transitional state they had been inhabitants of the open ocean, and had used their incipient organs of flight exclusively, as far as we know, to escape being devoured by other fish?

Noting that some members of water-dwelling groups like Crustacea and Mollusca have adapted to live on land, and considering that we have flying birds and mammals, various types of flying insects, and once had flying reptiles, it’s possible to imagine that flying fish, which currently glide through the air, slightly rising and turning with the help of their fluttering fins, could have evolved into fully winged animals. If this had happened, who would have thought that in an early transitional phase they lived in the open ocean and used their developing flight organs primarily, as far as we know, to escape being eaten by other fish?

When we see any structure highly perfected for any particular habit, as the wings of a bird for flight, we should bear in mind that animals displaying early transitional grades of the structure will seldom continue to exist to the present day, for they will have been supplanted by the very process of perfection through natural selection. Furthermore, we may conclude that transitional grades between structures fitted for very different habits of life will rarely have been developed at an early period in great numbers and under many subordinate forms. Thus, to return to our imaginary illustration of the flying-fish, it does not seem probable that fishes capable of true flight would have been developed under many subordinate forms, for taking prey of many kinds in many ways, on the land and in the water, until their organs of flight had come to a high stage of perfection, so as to have given them a decided advantage over other animals in the battle for life. Hence the chance of discovering species with transitional grades of structure in a fossil condition will always be less, from their having existed in lesser numbers, than in the case of species with fully developed structures.

When we observe any structure that is highly specialized for a specific function, like a bird's wings for flying, we should remember that animals showing early forms of that structure are unlikely to exist today because they would have been replaced by more advanced forms through natural selection. Additionally, we can conclude that early transitional grades between structures suited for very different lifestyles were rarely developed in large numbers or various subordinate forms. To return to our example of flying fish, it seems unlikely that true flying fish would have evolved in many forms that adapted to capturing different types of prey in various ways, both on land and in water, until their flying abilities were perfected enough to give them a notable advantage in survival. Therefore, the likelihood of finding species with transitional structures in the fossil record is always lower, due to their smaller numbers, than with species that have fully developed structures.

I will now give two or three instances of diversified and of changed habits in the individuals of the same species. When either case occurs, it would be easy for natural selection to fit the animal, by some modification of its structure, for its changed habits, or exclusively for one of its several different habits. But it is difficult to tell, and immaterial for us, whether habits generally change first and structure afterwards; or whether slight modifications of structure lead to changed habits; both probably often change almost simultaneously. Of cases of changed habits it will suffice merely to allude to that of the many British insects which now feed on exotic plants, or exclusively on artificial substances. Of diversified habits innumerable instances could be given: I have often watched a tyrant flycatcher (Saurophagus sulphuratus) in South America, hovering over one spot and then proceeding to another, like a kestrel, and at other times standing stationary on the margin of water, and then dashing like a kingfisher at a fish. In our own country the larger titmouse (Parus major) may be seen climbing branches, almost like a creeper; it often, like a shrike, kills small birds by blows on the head; and I have many times seen and heard it hammering the seeds of the yew on a branch, and thus breaking them like a nuthatch. In North America the black bear was seen by Hearne swimming for hours with widely open mouth, thus catching, like a whale, insects in the water. Even in so extreme a case as this, if the supply of insects were constant, and if better adapted competitors did not already exist in the country, I can see no difficulty in a race of bears being rendered, by natural selection, more and more aquatic in their structure and habits, with larger and larger mouths, till a creature was produced as monstrous as a whale.

I will now give a couple of examples of changed and varied habits in individuals of the same species. When either situation happens, it would be easy for natural selection to adjust the animal, through some modification of its structure, for its new habits, or specifically for one of its different habits. However, it's hard to determine, and not really important for us, whether habits generally change first and then structure follows, or if slight modifications in structure lead to new habits; both probably change almost at the same time. To mention a few examples of changed habits, we can look at the many British insects that now feed on exotic plants or solely on artificial substances. For varied habits, there are countless examples: I have often watched a tyrant flycatcher (Saurophagus sulphuratus) in South America hovering in one spot and then moving to another, like a kestrel, while at other times, it would stand still at the water's edge and then dive for a fish like a kingfisher. In our own country, the larger titmouse (Parus major) can be seen climbing branches, almost like a creeper; it often kills small birds by hitting them on the head, just like a shrike; and I have seen and heard it hammering the seeds of the yew on a branch, breaking them open like a nuthatch. In North America, Hearne observed a black bear swimming for hours with its mouth wide open, catching insects in the water like a whale. Even in such an extreme case, if the supply of insects were constant, and if there weren't already better-adapted competitors in the area, I can see no reason why a group of bears couldn't evolve, through natural selection, to become more and more aquatic in their structure and habits, with larger and larger mouths, until a creature as huge as a whale was produced.

As we sometimes see individuals of a species following habits widely different from those both of their own species and of the other species of the same genus, we might expect, on my theory, that such individuals would occasionally have given rise to new species, having anomalous habits, and with their structure either slightly or considerably modified from that of their proper type. And such instances do occur in nature. Can a more striking instance of adaptation be given than that of a woodpecker for climbing trees and for seizing insects in the chinks of the bark? Yet in North America there are woodpeckers which feed largely on fruit, and others with elongated wings which chase insects on the wing; and on the plains of La Plata, where not a tree grows, there is a woodpecker, which in every essential part of its organisation, even in its colouring, in the harsh tone of its voice, and undulatory flight, told me plainly of its close blood-relationship to our common species; yet it is a woodpecker which never climbs a tree!

As we sometimes observe individuals of a species adopting habits that are quite different from both their own kind and others within the same genus, we might expect, based on my theory, that such individuals could occasionally lead to the emergence of new species with unusual habits and slightly or significantly altered structures compared to their original type. And such cases do occur in nature. Can there be a more remarkable example of adaptation than that of a woodpecker that climbs trees to catch insects in the cracks of the bark? Yet in North America, there are woodpeckers that primarily eat fruit, as well as others with long wings that pursue insects in the air; and in the plains of La Plata, where not a single tree grows, there exists a woodpecker that, in every fundamental aspect of its structure—even in its coloration, the harsh tone of its call, and undulating flight—clearly shows its close genetic relationship to our common species; yet it is a woodpecker that never climbs a tree!

Petrels are the most aërial and oceanic of birds, yet in the quiet Sounds of Tierra del Fuego, the Puffinuria berardi, in its general habits, in its astonishing power of diving, its manner of swimming, and of flying when unwillingly it takes flight, would be mistaken by any one for an auk or grebe; nevertheless, it is essentially a petrel, but with many parts of its organisation profoundly modified. On the other hand, the acutest observer by examining the dead body of the water-ouzel would never have suspected its sub-aquatic habits; yet this anomalous member of the strictly terrestrial thrush family wholly subsists by diving,—grasping the stones with its feet and using its wings under water.

Petrels are the most aerial and oceanic of birds, yet in the calm waters of Tierra del Fuego, the Puffinuria berardi, in its overall behavior, remarkable diving ability, swimming style, and reluctant flying when disturbed, could easily be mistaken for an auk or a grebe. However, it is fundamentally a petrel, albeit with many parts of its anatomy significantly altered. On the flip side, the keenest observer, upon examining the dead body of the water-ouzel, would never guess its underwater habits; this unusual member of the strictly terrestrial thrush family survives entirely by diving—grabbing stones with its feet and using its wings underwater.

He who believes that each being has been created as we now see it, must occasionally have felt surprise when he has met with an animal having habits and structure not at all in agreement. What can be plainer than that the webbed feet of ducks and geese are formed for swimming? yet there are upland geese with webbed feet which rarely or never go near the water; and no one except Audubon has seen the frigate-bird, which has all its four toes webbed, alight on the surface of the sea. On the other hand, grebes and coots are eminently aquatic, although their toes are only bordered by membrane. What seems plainer than that the long toes of grallatores are formed for walking over swamps and floating plants, yet the water-hen is nearly as aquatic as the coot; and the landrail nearly as terrestrial as the quail or partridge. In such cases, and many others could be given, habits have changed without a corresponding change of structure. The webbed feet of the upland goose may be said to have become rudimentary in function, though not in structure. In the frigate-bird, the deeply-scooped membrane between the toes shows that structure has begun to change.

Anyone who thinks that every creature has been made exactly as we see it now must sometimes be surprised when encountering an animal with habits and physical features that don’t quite match. Isn’t it obvious that the webbed feet of ducks and geese are designed for swimming? Yet, there are upland geese with webbed feet that rarely, if ever, go near water; and only Audubon has seen the frigate-bird, which has webbed toes, land on the surface of the sea. Conversely, grebes and coots are definitely aquatic, even though their toes are only connected by a membrane. What seems more obvious than that the long toes of wading birds are meant for walking on swamps and floating plants, yet the water-hen is almost as aquatic as the coot, while the landrail is almost as terrestrial as the quail or partridge. In these and many other examples, behaviors have changed without a corresponding change in physical structure. The webbed feet of the upland goose might be considered functionally rudimentary, even though their structure hasn’t changed. In the case of the frigate-bird, the deeply scooped membrane between the toes indicates that its structure has begun to evolve.

He who believes in separate and innumerable acts of creation will say, that in these cases it has pleased the Creator to cause a being of one type to take the place of one of another type; but this seems to me only restating the fact in dignified language. He who believes in the struggle for existence and in the principle of natural selection, will acknowledge that every organic being is constantly endeavouring to increase in numbers; and that if any one being vary ever so little, either in habits or structure, and thus gain an advantage over some other inhabitant of the country, it will seize on the place of that inhabitant, however different it may be from its own place. Hence it will cause him no surprise that there should be geese and frigate-birds with webbed feet, either living on the dry land or most rarely alighting on the water; that there should be long-toed corncrakes living in meadows instead of in swamps; that there should be woodpeckers where not a tree grows; that there should be diving thrushes, and petrels with the habits of auks.

Those who believe in countless separate acts of creation would argue that in these situations, it has pleased the Creator to let one type of being replace another; but to me, that just sounds like a fancy way of restating the fact. Those who believe in the struggle for existence and the principle of natural selection will admit that every living organism is always trying to increase its numbers; and if any one organism changes even slightly, in habits or structure, and gains an advantage over another resident of the area, it will take that resident's place, regardless of how different it is from its own role. Therefore, it’s not surprising to see geese and frigate-birds with webbed feet living on land or rarely landing on water; to find long-toed corncrakes in meadows instead of swamps; to see woodpeckers where there are no trees; or to encounter diving thrushes and petrels behaving like auks.

Organs of extreme perfection and complication.—To suppose that the eye, with all its inimitable contrivances for adjusting the focus to different distances, for admitting different amounts of light, and for the correction of spherical and chromatic aberration, could have been formed by natural selection, seems, I freely confess, absurd in the highest possible degree. Yet reason tells me, that if numerous gradations from a perfect and complex eye to one very imperfect and simple, each grade being useful to its possessor, can be shown to exist; if further, the eye does vary ever so slightly, and the variations be inherited, which is certainly the case; and if any variation or modification in the organ be ever useful to an animal under changing conditions of life, then the difficulty of believing that a perfect and complex eye could be formed by natural selection, though insuperable by our imagination, can hardly be considered real. How a nerve comes to be sensitive to light, hardly concerns us more than how life itself first originated; but I may remark that several facts make me suspect that any sensitive nerve may be rendered sensitive to light, and likewise to those coarser vibrations of the air which produce sound.

Organs of extreme perfection and complication.—It seems incredibly absurd to think that the eye, with all its amazing features for adjusting focus at different distances, letting in varying amounts of light, and correcting distortions, could have come about through natural selection. However, I have to believe that if we can demonstrate that there are many gradations from a perfect and complex eye to a very basic and imperfect one, with each stage being useful to the organism, and if the eye does change even slightly, and those changes are inherited—which they definitely are—then the challenge of believing that a perfect and complex eye could develop through natural selection, though overwhelming for our imagination, isn't really insurmountable. How a nerve becomes sensitive to light is no more puzzling to us than how life itself first began; but I should note that a few facts lead me to think that any sensitive nerve could be made sensitive to light, as well as to those broader air vibrations that create sound.

In looking for the gradations by which an organ in any species has been perfected, we ought to look exclusively to its lineal ancestors; but this is scarcely ever possible, and we are forced in each case to look to species of the same group, that is to the collateral descendants from the same original parent-form, in order to see what gradations are possible, and for the chance of some gradations having been transmitted from the earlier stages of descent, in an unaltered or little altered condition. Amongst existing Vertebrata, we find but a small amount of gradation in the structure of the eye, and from fossil species we can learn nothing on this head. In this great class we should probably have to descend far beneath the lowest known fossiliferous stratum to discover the earlier stages, by which the eye has been perfected.

When searching for the gradual changes that lead to the improvement of an organ in any species, we should primarily look at its direct ancestors. However, this isn't usually possible, so we end up examining species from the same group—specifically, the side branches that come from the same original parent form—to understand what changes are possible and to consider the chance that some changes have been passed down from earlier stages of evolution, either unchanged or only slightly changed. Among living vertebrates, there's only a limited amount of variation in eye structure, and we can't gather much information from fossil species on this topic. In this large group, we might have to dig deep beneath the lowest known fossil layer to find the earlier stages that led to the development of the eye.

In the Articulata we can commence a series with an optic nerve merely coated with pigment, and without any other mechanism; and from this low stage, numerous gradations of structure, branching off in two fundamentally different lines, can be shown to exist, until we reach a moderately high stage of perfection. In certain crustaceans, for instance, there is a double cornea, the inner one divided into facets, within each of which there is a lens-shaped swelling. In other crustaceans the transparent cones which are coated by pigment, and which properly act only by excluding lateral pencils of light, are convex at their upper ends and must act by convergence; and at their lower ends there seems to be an imperfect vitreous substance. With these facts, here far too briefly and imperfectly given, which show that there is much graduated diversity in the eyes of living crustaceans, and bearing in mind how small the number of living animals is in proportion to those which have become extinct, I can see no very great difficulty (not more than in the case of many other structures) in believing that natural selection has converted the simple apparatus of an optic nerve merely coated with pigment and invested by transparent membrane, into an optical instrument as perfect as is possessed by any member of the great Articulate class.

In the Articulata, we can start with an optic nerve that's just covered in pigment, with no other mechanisms involved. From this basic level, we can see many different structural variations that branch off in two main directions, leading us to a fairly advanced level of complexity. For example, in some crustaceans, there’s a double cornea, with the inner one divided into facets, each containing a lens-shaped bulge. In other crustaceans, the transparent cones, which are covered in pigment and primarily function by blocking sideways light, are rounded at the top and must focus light; at their bottom ends, there seems to be an imperfect glassy substance. With these facts, which are presented here too briefly and incompletely, showing that there's a lot of diversity in the eyes of living crustaceans, and considering how few living animals there are compared to those that have gone extinct, I don't see any major difficulty (no more than with many other structures) in believing that natural selection has transformed the simple setup of an optic nerve just coated in pigment and covered by a clear membrane into a sophisticated optical instrument as advanced as any found in the large Articulate class.

He who will go thus far, if he find on finishing this treatise that large bodies of facts, otherwise inexplicable, can be explained by the theory of descent, ought not to hesitate to go further, and to admit that a structure even as perfect as the eye of an eagle might be formed by natural selection, although in this case he does not know any of the transitional grades. His reason ought to conquer his imagination; though I have felt the difficulty far too keenly to be surprised at any degree of hesitation in extending the principle of natural selection to such startling lengths.

Anyone who goes this far, if they find that the conclusion of this treatise reveals that many facts, which were previously hard to explain, can be clarified by the theory of descent, should not hesitate to take it a step further and accept that a structure as well-designed as an eagle's eye could be formed through natural selection, even if, in this case, they don't know any of the transitional stages. Reason should prevail over imagination; although I understand the difficulty clearly and can’t be surprised by any hesitation in applying the principle of natural selection to such surprising extremes.

It is scarcely possible to avoid comparing the eye to a telescope. We know that this instrument has been perfected by the long-continued efforts of the highest human intellects; and we naturally infer that the eye has been formed by a somewhat analogous process. But may not this inference be presumptuous? Have we any right to assume that the Creator works by intellectual powers like those of man? If we must compare the eye to an optical instrument, we ought in imagination to take a thick layer of transparent tissue, with a nerve sensitive to light beneath, and then suppose every part of this layer to be continually changing slowly in density, so as to separate into layers of different densities and thicknesses, placed at different distances from each other, and with the surfaces of each layer slowly changing in form. Further we must suppose that there is a power always intently watching each slight accidental alteration in the transparent layers; and carefully selecting each alteration which, under varied circumstances, may in any way, or in any degree, tend to produce a distincter image. We must suppose each new state of the instrument to be multiplied by the million; and each to be preserved till a better be produced, and then the old ones to be destroyed. In living bodies, variation will cause the slight alterations, generation will multiply them almost infinitely, and natural selection will pick out with unerring skill each improvement. Let this process go on for millions on millions of years; and during each year on millions of individuals of many kinds; and may we not believe that a living optical instrument might thus be formed as superior to one of glass, as the works of the Creator are to those of man?

It's hard not to compare the eye to a telescope. We know this tool has been refined through the long efforts of some of the greatest minds in humanity; it's only natural for us to think the eye was developed through a similar process. But could this assumption be arrogant? Do we have any right to believe that the Creator operates using intellectual powers similar to those of humans? If we must compare the eye to an optical device, we should imagine a thick layer of transparent tissue, with a light-sensitive nerve underneath, and then picture every part of this layer continually and slowly changing in density, so it separates into layers of various densities and thicknesses, placed at different distances from each other, with the surfaces of each layer gradually changing shape. Furthermore, we must imagine that there is a force always closely observing each minor accidental change in the transparent layers and carefully selecting every change that, under different circumstances, could help create a clearer image. We should envision each new state of the instrument being multiplied by millions, with each one preserved until a better version is created, at which point the older versions are discarded. In living beings, variation will lead to slight alterations, reproduction will amplify them nearly infinitely, and natural selection will expertly choose each improvement. Let this process continue for countless millions of years; and during each year, with millions of individuals across various species; can we not believe that a living optical device could be developed to be as superior to a glass one as the works of the Creator are to those of humans?

If it could be demonstrated that any complex organ existed, which could not possibly have been formed by numerous, successive, slight modifications, my theory would absolutely break down. But I can find out no such case. No doubt many organs exist of which we do not know the transitional grades, more especially if we look to much-isolated species, round which, according to my theory, there has been much extinction. Or again, if we look to an organ common to all the members of a large class, for in this latter case the organ must have been first formed at an extremely remote period, since which all the many members of the class have been developed; and in order to discover the early transitional grades through which the organ has passed, we should have to look to very ancient ancestral forms, long since become extinct.

If it could be shown that any complex organ exists, which could not possibly have developed through many small, gradual changes, my theory would completely fail. However, I can't find a single case like that. Sure, there are many organs for which we don’t know the transitional stages, especially when considering isolated species that, according to my theory, have experienced a lot of extinction. Conversely, if we examine an organ that is common to all members of a large class, it must have originally developed a very long time ago, from which point all the various members of the class have evolved; to identify the early transitional stages that the organ went through, we'd need to look at very ancient ancestral forms that have long since gone extinct.

We should be extremely cautious in concluding that an organ could not have been formed by transitional gradations of some kind. Numerous cases could be given amongst the lower animals of the same organ performing at the same time wholly distinct functions; thus the alimentary canal respires, digests, and excretes in the larva of the dragon-fly and in the fish Cobites. In the Hydra, the animal may be turned inside out, and the exterior surface will then digest and the stomach respire. In such cases natural selection might easily specialise, if any advantage were thus gained, a part or organ, which had performed two functions, for one function alone, and thus wholly change its nature by insensible steps. Two distinct organs sometimes perform simultaneously the same function in the same individual; to give one instance, there are fish with gills or branchiæ that breathe the air dissolved in the water, at the same time that they breathe free air in their swimbladders, this latter organ having a ductus pneumaticus for its supply, and being divided by highly vascular partitions. In these cases, one of the two organs might with ease be modified and perfected so as to perform all the work by itself, being aided during the process of modification by the other organ; and then this other organ might be modified for some other and quite distinct purpose, or be quite obliterated.

We should be very careful in concluding that an organ couldn't have developed through gradual transitions. There are many examples among simpler animals where the same organ performs completely different functions at the same time; for example, the digestive tract both breathes, digests, and excretes in the larva of a dragonfly and in the fish Cobites. In Hydra, the creature can be turned inside out, and the outer surface will then digest while the stomach breathes. In such cases, natural selection could easily specialize a part or organ that had served two functions into one function alone if it provided some advantage, thereby completely changing its nature through subtle changes. Sometimes, two different organs in the same individual can perform the same function simultaneously; for instance, there are fish with gills that breathe oxygen dissolved in water while also breathing air through their swim bladders, the latter having a duct for its supply and being separated by highly vascular partitions. In these situations, one of the two organs could easily be modified and enhanced to perform all the necessary work on its own, being assisted in the modification process by the other organ, after which the other organ might be adapted for a different purpose or completely disappear.

The illustration of the swimbladder in fishes is a good one, because it shows us clearly the highly important fact that an organ originally constructed for one purpose, namely flotation, may be converted into one for a wholly different purpose, namely respiration. The swimbladder has, also, been worked in as an accessory to the auditory organs of certain fish, or, for I do not know which view is now generally held, a part of the auditory apparatus has been worked in as a complement to the swimbladder. All physiologists admit that the swimbladder is homologous, or “ideally similar,” in position and structure with the lungs of the higher vertebrate animals: hence there seems to me to be no great difficulty in believing that natural selection has actually converted a swimbladder into a lung, or organ used exclusively for respiration.

The example of the swimbladder in fish is a great one because it clearly illustrates the important fact that an organ originally designed for one function, specifically buoyancy, can be adapted for a completely different function, namely breathing. The swimbladder has also been incorporated as an accessory to the hearing organs of some fish, or, depending on the current view which I’m not sure of, a part of the hearing system has been integrated as a supplement to the swimbladder. All physiologists agree that the swimbladder is analogous, or “ideally similar,” in position and structure to the lungs of higher vertebrates: therefore, it doesn’t seem unreasonable to believe that natural selection has actually transformed a swimbladder into a lung, or an organ used solely for breathing.

I can, indeed, hardly doubt that all vertebrate animals having true lungs have descended by ordinary generation from an ancient prototype, of which we know nothing, furnished with a floating apparatus or swimbladder. We can thus, as I infer from Professor Owen’s interesting description of these parts, understand the strange fact that every particle of food and drink which we swallow has to pass over the orifice of the trachea, with some risk of falling into the lungs, notwithstanding the beautiful contrivance by which the glottis is closed. In the higher Vertebrata the branchiæ have wholly disappeared—the slits on the sides of the neck and the loop-like course of the arteries still marking in the embryo their former position. But it is conceivable that the now utterly lost branchiæ might have been gradually worked in by natural selection for some quite distinct purpose: in the same manner as, on the view entertained by some naturalists that the branchiæ and dorsal scales of Annelids are homologous with the wings and wing-covers of insects, it is probable that organs which at a very ancient period served for respiration have been actually converted into organs of flight.

I can hardly doubt that all vertebrate animals with true lungs have evolved through ordinary reproduction from an ancient ancestor, which we know nothing about, that had a floating device or swim bladder. As I gather from Professor Owen’s intriguing description of these parts, we can understand the odd fact that every bit of food and drink we swallow has to pass over the opening of the trachea, risking going into the lungs, despite the clever mechanism that closes the glottis. In higher vertebrates, the gills have completely disappeared—the slits on the sides of the neck and the loop-like path of the arteries still indicate their previous position in the embryo. However, it's possible that the completely lost gills might have been gradually adapted through natural selection for a completely different purpose: similarly to the idea held by some naturalists that the gills and dorsal scales of annelids are related to the wings and wing covers of insects, it’s likely that organs that were once used for breathing have actually transformed into organs for flight.

In considering transitions of organs, it is so important to bear in mind the probability of conversion from one function to another, that I will give one more instance. Pedunculated cirripedes have two minute folds of skin, called by me the ovigerous frena, which serve, through the means of a sticky secretion, to retain the eggs until they are hatched within the sack. These cirripedes have no branchiæ, the whole surface of the body and sack, including the small frena, serving for respiration. The Balanidæ or sessile cirripedes, on the other hand, have no ovigerous frena, the eggs lying loose at the bottom of the sack, in the well-enclosed shell; but they have large folded branchiæ. Now I think no one will dispute that the ovigerous frena in the one family are strictly homologous with the branchiæ of the other family; indeed, they graduate into each other. Therefore I do not doubt that little folds of skin, which originally served as ovigerous frena, but which, likewise, very slightly aided the act of respiration, have been gradually converted by natural selection into branchiæ, simply through an increase in their size and the obliteration of their adhesive glands. If all pedunculated cirripedes had become extinct, and they have already suffered far more extinction than have sessile cirripedes, who would ever have imagined that the branchiæ in this latter family had originally existed as organs for preventing the ova from being washed out of the sack?

When thinking about how organs change over time, it's crucial to consider the chance of shifting from one function to another, so I’ll share another example. Pedunculated cirripedes have two tiny folds of skin, called the ovigerous frena, which use a sticky secretion to hold on to the eggs until they hatch in the sack. These cirripedes lack gills, so the entire surface of the body and sack, including the small frena, is used for breathing. On the other hand, Balanidæ, or sessile cirripedes, do not have ovigerous frena; their eggs are loose at the bottom of the sack within a well-protected shell, but they do have large folded gills. I think no one will argue that the ovigerous frena in one group are directly comparable to the gills in the other group; in fact, they transition into one another. So, I believe that the small folds of skin that originally functioned as ovigerous frena but also had a minor role in breathing have gradually been transformed by natural selection into gills, simply by increasing in size and losing their adhesive glands. If all pedunculated cirripedes had gone extinct—and they've already faced more extinction than sessile cirripedes—who would have ever thought that the gills in the latter group originally functioned to keep the eggs from being washed out of the sack?

Although we must be extremely cautious in concluding that any organ could not possibly have been produced by successive transitional gradations, yet, undoubtedly, grave cases of difficulty occur, some of which will be discussed in my future work.

Although we need to be very careful in concluding that any organ couldn't have been created through successive transitional gradations, it's clear that serious challenges do arise, some of which I will discuss in my future work.

One of the gravest is that of neuter insects, which are often very differently constructed from either the males or fertile females; but this case will be treated of in the next chapter. The electric organs of fishes offer another case of special difficulty; it is impossible to conceive by what steps these wondrous organs have been produced; but, as Owen and others have remarked, their intimate structure closely resembles that of common muscle; and as it has lately been shown that Rays have an organ closely analogous to the electric apparatus, and yet do not, as Matteuchi asserts, discharge any electricity, we must own that we are far too ignorant to argue that no transition of any kind is possible.

One of the biggest challenges is neuter insects, which are often built very differently from males or fertile females; however, this will be discussed in the next chapter. The electric organs of fish present another complex issue; it's hard to imagine how these amazing organs came to be. But, as Owen and others have pointed out, their detailed structure is very similar to that of regular muscle. And since it has recently been shown that rays have an organ similar to the electric apparatus, yet do not release any electricity as Matteucci suggests, we have to admit that we lack the knowledge to argue that any kind of transition is impossible.

The electric organs offer another and even more serious difficulty; for they occur in only about a dozen fishes, of which several are widely remote in their affinities. Generally when the same organ appears in several members of the same class, especially if in members having very different habits of life, we may attribute its presence to inheritance from a common ancestor; and its absence in some of the members to its loss through disuse or natural selection. But if the electric organs had been inherited from one ancient progenitor thus provided, we might have expected that all electric fishes would have been specially related to each other. Nor does geology at all lead to the belief that formerly most fishes had electric organs, which most of their modified descendants have lost. The presence of luminous organs in a few insects, belonging to different families and orders, offers a parallel case of difficulty. Other cases could be given; for instance in plants, the very curious contrivance of a mass of pollen-grains, borne on a foot-stalk with a sticky gland at the end, is the same in Orchis and Asclepias,—genera almost as remote as possible amongst flowering plants. In all these cases of two very distinct species furnished with apparently the same anomalous organ, it should be observed that, although the general appearance and function of the organ may be the same, yet some fundamental difference can generally be detected. I am inclined to believe that in nearly the same way as two men have sometimes independently hit on the very same invention, so natural selection, working for the good of each being and taking advantage of analogous variations, has sometimes modified in very nearly the same manner two parts in two organic beings, which owe but little of their structure in common to inheritance from the same ancestor.

The electric organs present another, even more significant challenge because they are found in only about a dozen fish species, many of which are quite different from each other. Usually, when the same organ appears in several members of the same group, especially if those members have very different lifestyles, we can attribute its presence to inheritance from a common ancestor, while the absence in some members can be attributed to loss through disuse or natural selection. However, if electric organs were inherited from a single ancient ancestor, we would expect all electric fish to be closely related. Additionally, geology does not support the idea that most fish once had electric organs that most of their modified descendants have since lost. The presence of light-producing organs in a few insects from different families and orders presents a similar challenge. There are other examples as well; for instance, the interesting arrangement of a bunch of pollen grains on a stalk with a sticky gland at the end is found in both Orchis and Asclepias—genera that are extremely distantly related among flowering plants. In all these instances of two very different species having apparently the same unusual organ, it should be noted that while the general appearance and function of the organ may be similar, some fundamental differences can usually be identified. I tend to think that just as two people have sometimes independently come up with the same invention, natural selection, working for the benefit of each organism and taking advantage of similar variations, has occasionally modified two parts in two organisms in nearly the same way, despite them sharing little of their structure due to inheritance from a common ancestor.

Although in many cases it is most difficult to conjecture by what transitions an organ could have arrived at its present state; yet, considering that the proportion of living and known forms to the extinct and unknown is very small, I have been astonished how rarely an organ can be named, towards which no transitional grade is known to lead. The truth of this remark is indeed shown by that old canon in natural history of “Natura non facit saltum.” We meet with this admission in the writings of almost every experienced naturalist; or, as Milne Edwards has well expressed it, nature is prodigal in variety, but niggard in innovation. Why, on the theory of Creation, should this be so? Why should all the parts and organs of many independent beings, each supposed to have been separately created for its proper place in nature, be so invariably linked together by graduated steps? Why should not Nature have taken a leap from structure to structure? On the theory of natural selection, we can clearly understand why she should not; for natural selection can act only by taking advantage of slight successive variations; she can never take a leap, but must advance by the shortest and slowest steps.

Although it’s often really hard to figure out how an organ reached its current form, I’m amazed at how rarely we can name an organ that doesn’t have some known transitional stages leading to it, especially considering how few living and known forms there are compared to extinct and unknown ones. This point is clearly illustrated by the old principle in natural history that “Natura non facit saltum.” Almost every experienced naturalist acknowledges this idea. As Milne Edwards put it well, nature is generous in variety but stingy in innovation. Why is this the case under the theory of Creation? Why are all the parts and organs of many independent beings—each thought to have been created separately for their specific role in nature—so consistently connected by gradual changes? Why didn’t Nature make sudden jumps from one structure to another? Under the theory of natural selection, it’s easier to see why this doesn’t happen; natural selection can only work by building on slight, successive changes and cannot make big leaps, but instead must progress in the shortest and slowest increments.

Organs of little apparent importance.—As natural selection acts by life and death,—by the preservation of individuals with any favourable variation, and by the destruction of those with any unfavourable deviation of structure,—I have sometimes felt much difficulty in understanding the origin of simple parts, of which the importance does not seem sufficient to cause the preservation of successively varying individuals. I have sometimes felt as much difficulty, though of a very different kind, on this head, as in the case of an organ as perfect and complex as the eye.

Organs of little apparent importance.—Since natural selection operates through life and death—favoring individuals with advantageous variations while eliminating those with unfavorable structural deviations—I've often struggled to understand how simple parts originated, particularly when their significance doesn't seem enough to ensure the survival of continuously varying individuals. I've also encountered a different kind of challenge regarding this issue, much like I do with a highly developed and intricate organ like the eye.

In the first place, we are much too ignorant in regard to the whole economy of any one organic being, to say what slight modifications would be of importance or not. In a former chapter I have given instances of most trifling characters, such as the down on fruit and the colour of the flesh, which, from determining the attacks of insects or from being correlated with constitutional differences, might assuredly be acted on by natural selection. The tail of the giraffe looks like an artificially constructed fly-flapper; and it seems at first incredible that this could have been adapted for its present purpose by successive slight modifications, each better and better, for so trifling an object as driving away flies; yet we should pause before being too positive even in this case, for we know that the distribution and existence of cattle and other animals in South America absolutely depends on their power of resisting the attacks of insects: so that individuals which could by any means defend themselves from these small enemies, would be able to range into new pastures and thus gain a great advantage. It is not that the larger quadrupeds are actually destroyed (except in some rare cases) by the flies, but they are incessantly harassed and their strength reduced, so that they are more subject to disease, or not so well enabled in a coming dearth to search for food, or to escape from beasts of prey.

First of all, we know way too little about the entire ecology of any single living organism to determine which minor changes might be significant or not. In a previous chapter, I provided examples of very minor traits, like the fuzz on fruit and the color of its flesh, which could definitely be influenced by natural selection because they determine how insects interact with them or are linked to other constitutional differences. The tail of a giraffe resembles a man-made fly swatter, and it initially seems unbelievable that such a feature could have evolved for its current role through a series of small changes, especially for something as minor as swatting away flies. However, we should think twice before being too certain in this instance, as we know that the distribution and survival of cattle and other animals in South America heavily rely on their ability to fend off insect attacks. Therefore, individuals that can somehow protect themselves from these tiny foes would be able to explore new grazing areas and gain a significant advantage. It's not that larger animals are genuinely killed (except in rare cases) by flies, but they are constantly bothered, which weakens them, making them more susceptible to diseases or less capable of finding food during a shortage or escaping from predators.

Organs now of trifling importance have probably in some cases been of high importance to an early progenitor, and, after having been slowly perfected at a former period, have been transmitted in nearly the same state, although now become of very slight use; and any actually injurious deviations in their structure will always have been checked by natural selection. Seeing how important an organ of locomotion the tail is in most aquatic animals, its general presence and use for many purposes in so many land animals, which in their lungs or modified swim-bladders betray their aquatic origin, may perhaps be thus accounted for. A well-developed tail having been formed in an aquatic animal, it might subsequently come to be worked in for all sorts of purposes, as a fly-flapper, an organ of prehension, or as an aid in turning, as with the dog, though the aid must be slight, for the hare, with hardly any tail, can double quickly enough.

Organs that seem unimportant now may have once been very important to an early ancestor. After evolving over time, they have been passed down in nearly the same condition, even though they are now of little use; any harmful changes in their structure would have been eliminated by natural selection. Given how crucial a tail is for movement in most aquatic animals, its widespread presence and use for various functions in many land animals, which show their aquatic origins through their lungs or modified swim bladders, can perhaps be explained this way. A well-developed tail that formed in an aquatic animal might later be adapted for several uses, like swatting flies, grasping objects, or aiding in turning, as seen with dogs, even if its assistance is minimal—after all, hares, with almost no tail, can still turn quickly.

In the second place, we may sometimes attribute importance to characters which are really of very little importance, and which have originated from quite secondary causes, independently of natural selection. We should remember that climate, food, etc., probably have some little direct influence on the organisation; that characters reappear from the law of reversion; that correlation of growth will have had a most important influence in modifying various structures; and finally, that sexual selection will often have largely modified the external characters of animals having a will, to give one male an advantage in fighting with another or in charming the females. Moreover when a modification of structure has primarily arisen from the above or other unknown causes, it may at first have been of no advantage to the species, but may subsequently have been taken advantage of by the descendants of the species under new conditions of life and with newly acquired habits.

In the second place, we sometimes give too much importance to traits that actually have very little significance and that come from secondary causes, not just natural selection. We should keep in mind that climate, food, and other factors probably influence the organization in some way; that traits can reappear due to the principle of reversion; that growth correlation has played a significant role in changing various structures; and that sexual selection often alters the external traits of animals to give one male an edge in competing with another or in attracting females. Additionally, when a change in structure originates from the factors mentioned above or other unknown reasons, it may not have initially benefited the species, but later descendants might take advantage of it under new living conditions and with new habits.

To give a few instances to illustrate these latter remarks. If green woodpeckers alone had existed, and we did not know that there were many black and pied kinds, I dare say that we should have thought that the green colour was a beautiful adaptation to hide this tree-frequenting bird from its enemies; and consequently that it was a character of importance and might have been acquired through natural selection; as it is, I have no doubt that the colour is due to some quite distinct cause, probably to sexual selection. A trailing bamboo in the Malay Archipelago climbs the loftiest trees by the aid of exquisitely constructed hooks clustered around the ends of the branches, and this contrivance, no doubt, is of the highest service to the plant; but as we see nearly similar hooks on many trees which are not climbers, the hooks on the bamboo may have arisen from unknown laws of growth, and have been subsequently taken advantage of by the plant undergoing further modification and becoming a climber. The naked skin on the head of a vulture is generally looked at as a direct adaptation for wallowing in putridity; and so it may be, or it may possibly be due to the direct action of putrid matter; but we should be very cautious in drawing any such inference, when we see that the skin on the head of the clean-feeding male turkey is likewise naked. The sutures in the skulls of young mammals have been advanced as a beautiful adaptation for aiding parturition, and no doubt they facilitate, or may be indispensable for this act; but as sutures occur in the skulls of young birds and reptiles, which have only to escape from a broken egg, we may infer that this structure has arisen from the laws of growth, and has been taken advantage of in the parturition of the higher animals.

Here are a few examples to illustrate these latter remarks. If only green woodpeckers existed, and we weren't aware that there were many black and pied types, I bet we would have thought that their green color was a beautiful adaptation to camouflage this tree-dwelling bird from its predators; and therefore, that it was an important trait that could have developed through natural selection. As it stands, I’m sure that the color is due to some entirely different reason, likely sexual selection. A trailing bamboo in the Malay Archipelago climbs the tallest trees using beautifully designed hooks clustered at the ends of its branches, and this feature is undoubtedly very beneficial for the plant. However, since we see similar hooks on many non-climbing trees, the hooks on the bamboo might have arisen from unknown growth patterns and were later utilized as the plant evolved to become a climber. The bare skin on a vulture's head is typically seen as a direct adaptation for wallowing in decaying matter; and while that could be true, it might also result from the direct effect of the decaying substances. We should be cautious in making such assumptions, especially when we see that the skin on the head of the clean-feeding male turkey is also bare. The sutures in the skulls of young mammals have been proposed as an elegant adaptation to help with childbirth, and no doubt they assist, or may even be essential for this process; but because sutures are also found in the skulls of young birds and reptiles, which only need to break out of an egg, we can infer that this structure developed from growth laws and was later taken advantage of for birthing in higher animals.

We are profoundly ignorant of the causes producing slight and unimportant variations; and we are immediately made conscious of this by reflecting on the differences in the breeds of our domesticated animals in different countries,—more especially in the less civilized countries where there has been but little artificial selection. Careful observers are convinced that a damp climate affects the growth of the hair, and that with the hair the horns are correlated. Mountain breeds always differ from lowland breeds; and a mountainous country would probably affect the hind limbs from exercising them more, and possibly even the form of the pelvis; and then by the law of homologous variation, the front limbs and even the head would probably be affected. The shape, also, of the pelvis might affect by pressure the shape of the head of the young in the womb. The laborious breathing necessary in high regions would, we have some reason to believe, increase the size of the chest; and again correlation would come into play. Animals kept by savages in different countries often have to struggle for their own subsistence, and would be exposed to a certain extent to natural selection, and individuals with slightly different constitutions would succeed best under different climates; and there is reason to believe that constitution and colour are correlated. A good observer, also, states that in cattle susceptibility to the attacks of flies is correlated with colour, as is the liability to be poisoned by certain plants; so that colour would be thus subjected to the action of natural selection. But we are far too ignorant to speculate on the relative importance of the several known and unknown laws of variation; and I have here alluded to them only to show that, if we are unable to account for the characteristic differences of our domestic breeds, which nevertheless we generally admit to have arisen through ordinary generation, we ought not to lay too much stress on our ignorance of the precise cause of the slight analogous differences between species. I might have adduced for this same purpose the differences between the races of man, which are so strongly marked; I may add that some little light can apparently be thrown on the origin of these differences, chiefly through sexual selection of a particular kind, but without here entering on copious details my reasoning would appear frivolous.

We know very little about the causes of minor and seemingly insignificant differences; and we become aware of this when we consider the variations in the breeds of our domesticated animals across different countries—especially in less developed countries where there hasn’t been much artificial selection. Observant experts believe that a damp climate influences hair growth, and that hair and horns are related. Mountain breeds always differ from lowland breeds; a mountainous region would likely affect the hind limbs due to more exercise, which could even alter the shape of the pelvis. Then, following the pattern of homologous variation, the front limbs and possibly the head would likely be impacted. The pelvis shape might also exert pressure that influences the head shape of the fetus in the womb. The heavy breathing required at high altitudes may, for reasons we have some evidence for, increase chest size; and once again, correlation would come into play. Animals kept by indigenous people in various countries often have to fend for themselves, exposing them to some extent to natural selection, where individuals with slightly different traits would thrive better in different climates, and there's reason to believe that traits like constitution and color are connected. A keen observer also notes that in cattle, vulnerability to flies corresponds with color, as does susceptibility to certain plants, meaning that color is subject to natural selection. However, we are far too uninformed to speculate about the relative significance of the many known and unknown laws of variation; and I've mentioned them here only to illustrate that if we can't explain the distinct differences in our domestic breeds—which we generally agree have come about through ordinary reproduction—we shouldn't place too much emphasis on our ignorance regarding the specific causes of similar minor differences between species. I could also point out the strong distinctions among human races for the same purpose; it seems that some understanding can be gained regarding these differences, primarily through a specific type of sexual selection, but without getting into extensive details, my reasoning would seem trivial.

The foregoing remarks lead me to say a few words on the protest lately made by some naturalists, against the utilitarian doctrine that every detail of structure has been produced for the good of its possessor. They believe that very many structures have been created for beauty in the eyes of man, or for mere variety. This doctrine, if true, would be absolutely fatal to my theory. Yet I fully admit that many structures are of no direct use to their possessors. Physical conditions probably have had some little effect on structure, quite independently of any good thus gained. Correlation of growth has no doubt played a most important part, and a useful modification of one part will often have entailed on other parts diversified changes of no direct use. So again characters which formerly were useful, or which formerly had arisen from correlation of growth, or from other unknown cause, may reappear from the law of reversion, though now of no direct use. The effects of sexual selection, when displayed in beauty to charm the females, can be called useful only in rather a forced sense. But by far the most important consideration is that the chief part of the organisation of every being is simply due to inheritance; and consequently, though each being assuredly is well fitted for its place in nature, many structures now have no direct relation to the habits of life of each species. Thus, we can hardly believe that the webbed feet of the upland goose or of the frigate-bird are of special use to these birds; we cannot believe that the same bones in the arm of the monkey, in the fore leg of the horse, in the wing of the bat, and in the flipper of the seal, are of special use to these animals. We may safely attribute these structures to inheritance. But to the progenitor of the upland goose and of the frigate-bird, webbed feet no doubt were as useful as they now are to the most aquatic of existing birds. So we may believe that the progenitor of the seal had not a flipper, but a foot with five toes fitted for walking or grasping; and we may further venture to believe that the several bones in the limbs of the monkey, horse, and bat, which have been inherited from a common progenitor, were formerly of more special use to that progenitor, or its progenitors, than they now are to these animals having such widely diversified habits. Therefore we may infer that these several bones might have been acquired through natural selection, subjected formerly, as now, to the several laws of inheritance, reversion, correlation of growth, etc. Hence every detail of structure in every living creature (making some little allowance for the direct action of physical conditions) may be viewed, either as having been of special use to some ancestral form, or as being now of special use to the descendants of this form—either directly, or indirectly through the complex laws of growth.

The previous comments prompt me to discuss the recent protest by some naturalists against the idea that every detail of structure has been developed for the benefit of its owner. They argue that many structures exist for the sake of beauty in the eyes of humans or simply for variety. If this idea is correct, it could be detrimental to my theory. Still, I accept that many structures offer no direct benefit to their owners. Physical conditions likely had some effect on structure without any specific advantage gained. The correlation of growth has surely played a significant role, and a beneficial change in one part can lead to different changes in other parts that aren't directly useful. Additionally, traits that were once useful, or arose from correlated growth or other unknown reasons, may reappear due to the law of reversion, even if they are now not beneficial. The effects of sexual selection, demonstrated through beauty to attract females, can only be considered useful in a somewhat stretched sense. The most crucial point is that much of the organization of every being comes from inheritance; thus, while each being is well-suited for its role in nature, many structures currently have no direct link to the life habits of each species. Therefore, we can hardly believe that the webbed feet of the upland goose or the frigate-bird are particularly beneficial to these birds; we can't accept that the same bones in the arm of a monkey, the foreleg of a horse, the wing of a bat, and the flipper of a seal have a special purpose for these animals. We can confidently attribute these structures to inheritance. However, for the ancestors of the upland goose and the frigate-bird, webbed feet were certainly as useful as they are to the most aquatic birds of today. We may also believe that the ancestor of the seal had a foot with five toes designed for walking or grasping, rather than a flipper; and we can further assume that the various bones in the limbs of monkeys, horses, and bats, inherited from a common ancestor, were likely more useful to that ancestor or its predecessors than they are now to these animals with very different habits. Therefore, we can conclude that these bones might have been developed through natural selection, which was once, as it is now, influenced by the various laws of inheritance, reversion, correlation of growth, etc. Thus, every detail of structure in every living creature (with some slight allowance for the immediate effect of physical conditions) can be seen as having been particularly useful to some ancestral form, or as being currently useful to the descendants of that form—either directly or indirectly through the complex laws of growth.

Natural selection cannot possibly produce any modification in any one species exclusively for the good of another species; though throughout nature one species incessantly takes advantage of, and profits by, the structure of another. But natural selection can and does often produce structures for the direct injury of other species, as we see in the fang of the adder, and in the ovipositor of the ichneumon, by which its eggs are deposited in the living bodies of other insects. If it could be proved that any part of the structure of any one species had been formed for the exclusive good of another species, it would annihilate my theory, for such could not have been produced through natural selection. Although many statements may be found in works on natural history to this effect, I cannot find even one which seems to me of any weight. It is admitted that the rattlesnake has a poison-fang for its own defence and for the destruction of its prey; but some authors suppose that at the same time this snake is furnished with a rattle for its own injury, namely, to warn its prey to escape. I would almost as soon believe that the cat curls the end of its tail when preparing to spring, in order to warn the doomed mouse. But I have not space here to enter on this and other such cases.

Natural selection cannot create changes in one species solely for the benefit of another species; however, in nature, one species constantly takes advantage of and benefits from the characteristics of another. But natural selection can and often does create features that directly harm other species, as we see with the fangs of the adder and the ovipositor of the ichneumon, which it uses to lay eggs in the living bodies of other insects. If it could be demonstrated that any part of a species' structure was developed solely for the benefit of another species, it would disprove my theory, as that could not arise through natural selection. Although many claims might be found in natural history texts to support this idea, I haven’t encountered any that seem convincing to me. It is acknowledged that the rattlesnake has a venomous fang for its own protection and to kill its prey; however, some authors suggest that the rattle serves to warn its prey to get away, which I find hard to believe. It’s almost as absurd as claiming that a cat curls its tail before pouncing to warn the unfortunate mouse. But I don’t have the space here to delve into this and similar examples.

Natural selection will never produce in a being anything injurious to itself, for natural selection acts solely by and for the good of each. No organ will be formed, as Paley has remarked, for the purpose of causing pain or for doing an injury to its possessor. If a fair balance be struck between the good and evil caused by each part, each will be found on the whole advantageous. After the lapse of time, under changing conditions of life, if any part comes to be injurious, it will be modified; or if it be not so, the being will become extinct, as myriads have become extinct.

Natural selection will never create anything harmful to a being because it only works for the benefit of each individual. As Paley noted, no organ will evolve to cause pain or harm to its owner. If you weigh the positive and negative effects of each part, you'll find that overall, each is beneficial. Over time, as conditions change, if any part becomes harmful, it will be modified; if it doesn't change, the organism will go extinct, just like countless others have.

Natural selection tends only to make each organic being as perfect as, or slightly more perfect than, the other inhabitants of the same country with which it has to struggle for existence. And we see that this is the degree of perfection attained under nature. The endemic productions of New Zealand, for instance, are perfect one compared with another; but they are now rapidly yielding before the advancing legions of plants and animals introduced from Europe. Natural selection will not produce absolute perfection, nor do we always meet, as far as we can judge, with this high standard under nature. The correction for the aberration of light is said, on high authority, not to be perfect even in that most perfect organ, the eye. If our reason leads us to admire with enthusiasm a multitude of inimitable contrivances in nature, this same reason tells us, though we may easily err on both sides, that some other contrivances are less perfect. Can we consider the sting of the wasp or of the bee as perfect, which, when used against many attacking animals, cannot be withdrawn, owing to the backward serratures, and so inevitably causes the death of the insect by tearing out its viscera?

Natural selection tends to make each living thing as perfect as, or just a bit more perfect than, the other species in the same area it competes with for survival. This is the level of perfection we observe in nature. For example, the unique species of New Zealand are perfect in relation to each other; however, they are quickly being outcompeted by the waves of plants and animals brought over from Europe. Natural selection won’t create absolute perfection, and based on our observations, we don’t always see this high standard in nature. The correction for the aberration of light is said, according to credible sources, not to be flawless even in the eye, which is considered the most perfect organ. Our reasoning might make us admire countless amazing designs in nature, but it also indicates, even if we can be mistaken in both directions, that some designs are less than perfect. Can we actually consider the sting of a wasp or a bee as perfect when, once it’s used against many attacking creatures, it can’t be retracted due to its backward barbs, inevitably leading to the insect’s death by ripping out its insides?

If we look at the sting of the bee, as having originally existed in a remote progenitor as a boring and serrated instrument, like that in so many members of the same great order, and which has been modified but not perfected for its present purpose, with the poison originally adapted to cause galls subsequently intensified, we can perhaps understand how it is that the use of the sting should so often cause the insect’s own death: for if on the whole the power of stinging be useful to the community, it will fulfil all the requirements of natural selection, though it may cause the death of some few members. If we admire the truly wonderful power of scent by which the males of many insects find their females, can we admire the production for this single purpose of thousands of drones, which are utterly useless to the community for any other end, and which are ultimately slaughtered by their industrious and sterile sisters? It may be difficult, but we ought to admire the savage instinctive hatred of the queen-bee, which urges her instantly to destroy the young queens her daughters as soon as born, or to perish herself in the combat; for undoubtedly this is for the good of the community; and maternal love or maternal hatred, though the latter fortunately is most rare, is all the same to the inexorable principle of natural selection. If we admire the several ingenious contrivances, by which the flowers of the orchis and of many other plants are fertilised through insect agency, can we consider as equally perfect the elaboration by our fir-trees of dense clouds of pollen, in order that a few granules may be wafted by a chance breeze on to the ovules?

If we think about the bee’s sting as having initially evolved from a basic, jagged tool, similar to what we see in many members of the same larger group, which has been changed but not perfected for its current use, and with the poison initially meant to induce galls becoming stronger over time, we might understand why using the sting often leads to the insect’s own death. The ability to sting is beneficial for the community overall, aligning with the principles of natural selection, even if it results in some individual deaths. If we appreciate the amazing sense of smell that helps many male insects locate their female counterparts, can we also justify the existence of thousands of drones, created solely for this purpose and ultimately killed off by their hard-working, sterile sisters? It might be challenging, but we should recognize the fierce instinctive drive of the queen bee, which compels her to destroy her young queens, her daughters, as soon as they are born, or to risk her own life in the battle; this is clearly for the benefit of the community. Maternal love or maternal hatred, though the latter is thankfully quite rare, is irrelevant to the ruthless principle of natural selection. If we admire the clever methods by which orchids and many other plants are pollinated by insects, can we equally appreciate how our fir trees produce vast amounts of pollen just so that a few grains might be carried by a random breeze to the ovules?

Summary of Chapter.—We have in this chapter discussed some of the difficulties and objections which may be urged against my theory. Many of them are very grave; but I think that in the discussion light has been thrown on several facts, which on the theory of independent acts of creation are utterly obscure. We have seen that species at any one period are not indefinitely variable, and are not linked together by a multitude of intermediate gradations, partly because the process of natural selection will always be very slow, and will act, at any one time, only on a very few forms; and partly because the very process of natural selection almost implies the continual supplanting and extinction of preceding and intermediate gradations. Closely allied species, now living on a continuous area, must often have been formed when the area was not continuous, and when the conditions of life did not insensibly graduate away from one part to another. When two varieties are formed in two districts of a continuous area, an intermediate variety will often be formed, fitted for an intermediate zone; but from reasons assigned, the intermediate variety will usually exist in lesser numbers than the two forms which it connects; consequently the two latter, during the course of further modification, from existing in greater numbers, will have a great advantage over the less numerous intermediate variety, and will thus generally succeed in supplanting and exterminating it.

Summary of Chapter.—In this chapter, we discussed some of the challenges and criticisms that can be made against my theory. Many of these concerns are quite serious, but I believe that our discussion has shed light on several facts that are completely unclear under the theory of independent acts of creation. We have observed that species at any given time are not infinitely variable and are not connected by a range of intermediate forms, partly because the process of natural selection is always slow and will only act on a small number of forms at any moment; and partly because the very nature of natural selection suggests that it continually replaces and drives out earlier and intermediate forms. Closely related species that live in a continuous area must often have originated when that area was not continuous and when environmental conditions did not gradually transition from one part to another. When two varieties emerge in different regions of a continuous area, an intermediate variety can often develop, suited for an intermediate zone; however, for the reasons mentioned, this intermediate variety will typically exist in smaller numbers than the two forms it connects. As a result, during further evolution, the latter two forms, because they exist in greater numbers, will have a significant advantage over the less numerous intermediate variety, and generally, they will succeed in replacing and eliminating it.

We have seen in this chapter how cautious we should be in concluding that the most different habits of life could not graduate into each other; that a bat, for instance, could not have been formed by natural selection from an animal which at first could only glide through the air.

We have seen in this chapter how careful we should be in concluding that the most different lifestyles couldn’t evolve into one another; that a bat, for example, couldn’t have developed through natural selection from an animal that initially could only glide through the air.

We have seen that a species may under new conditions of life change its habits, or have diversified habits, with some habits very unlike those of its nearest congeners. Hence we can understand, bearing in mind that each organic being is trying to live wherever it can live, how it has arisen that there are upland geese with webbed feet, ground woodpeckers, diving thrushes, and petrels with the habits of auks.

We've observed that a species can change its behaviors under new living conditions or develop different habits that are quite distinct from those of its closest relatives. Therefore, we can understand, keeping in mind that each living organism is striving to survive wherever it can, how we've come to have upland geese with webbed feet, ground woodpeckers, diving thrushes, and petrels that behave like auks.

Although the belief that an organ so perfect as the eye could have been formed by natural selection, is more than enough to stagger any one; yet in the case of any organ, if we know of a long series of gradations in complexity, each good for its possessor, then, under changing conditions of life, there is no logical impossibility in the acquirement of any conceivable degree of perfection through natural selection. In the cases in which we know of no intermediate or transitional states, we should be very cautious in concluding that none could have existed, for the homologies of many organs and their intermediate states show that wonderful metamorphoses in function are at least possible. For instance, a swim-bladder has apparently been converted into an air-breathing lung. The same organ having performed simultaneously very different functions, and then having been specialised for one function; and two very distinct organs having performed at the same time the same function, the one having been perfected whilst aided by the other, must often have largely facilitated transitions.

Although the idea that such a perfect organ as the eye could have evolved through natural selection might be hard to accept, if we can identify a long series of gradual changes in complexity—each beneficial for its possessor—then, under different life conditions, there's no logical reason why any imaginable level of perfection couldn't be achieved through natural selection. In situations where we don't have evidence of intermediate or transitional forms, we should proceed with caution before concluding that none ever existed, because the similarities and intermediate forms of many organs suggest that remarkable changes in function are at least possible. For example, a swim bladder seems to have evolved into an air-breathing lung. The same organ has simultaneously performed very different functions before being specialized for one, and two distinct organs have simultaneously carried out the same function, with one becoming refined while benefiting from the other, which must have significantly aided transitions.

We are far too ignorant, in almost every case, to be enabled to assert that any part or organ is so unimportant for the welfare of a species, that modifications in its structure could not have been slowly accumulated by means of natural selection. But we may confidently believe that many modifications, wholly due to the laws of growth, and at first in no way advantageous to a species, have been subsequently taken advantage of by the still further modified descendants of this species. We may, also, believe that a part formerly of high importance has often been retained (as the tail of an aquatic animal by its terrestrial descendants), though it has become of such small importance that it could not, in its present state, have been acquired by natural selection,—a power which acts solely by the preservation of profitable variations in the struggle for life.

We are often too uninformed to confidently claim that any part or organ is so unimportant for the survival of a species that changes in its structure couldn't have gradually occurred through natural selection. However, we can reasonably believe that many changes, initially caused solely by growth patterns and not beneficial to a species, have later been utilized by the further developed descendants of that species. We can also believe that a part that was once very important has frequently been kept (like the tail of an aquatic animal by its land-dwelling descendants), even though it has become so insignificant that it couldn't have been developed through natural selection, which works only by preserving beneficial variations in the struggle for survival.

Natural selection will produce nothing in one species for the exclusive good or injury of another; though it may well produce parts, organs, and excretions highly useful or even indispensable, or highly injurious to another species, but in all cases at the same time useful to the owner. Natural selection in each well-stocked country, must act chiefly through the competition of the inhabitants one with another, and consequently will produce perfection, or strength in the battle for life, only according to the standard of that country. Hence the inhabitants of one country, generally the smaller one, will often yield, as we see they do yield, to the inhabitants of another and generally larger country. For in the larger country there will have existed more individuals, and more diversified forms, and the competition will have been severer, and thus the standard of perfection will have been rendered higher. Natural selection will not necessarily produce absolute perfection; nor, as far as we can judge by our limited faculties, can absolute perfection be everywhere found.

Natural selection won't create anything in one species solely for the benefit or harm of another. However, it can produce parts, organs, and waste that are extremely useful or even essential, or highly harmful to another species, but in every case, they are beneficial to the owner. In each well-populated region, natural selection primarily operates through competition among the inhabitants, and as a result, it will lead to improvement or strength in the struggle for survival, according to that region's standards. Therefore, the inhabitants of one country, often the smaller one, will frequently give way, as we see they do, to those of another and usually larger country. In the larger country, there will have been more individuals, greater variety of forms, and more intense competition, which raises the standard of perfection. Natural selection doesn't guarantee absolute perfection; nor, as far as we can tell with our limited abilities, can we find absolute perfection everywhere.

On the theory of natural selection we can clearly understand the full meaning of that old canon in natural history, “Natura non facit saltum.” This canon, if we look only to the present inhabitants of the world, is not strictly correct, but if we include all those of past times, it must by my theory be strictly true.

On the theory of natural selection, we can clearly grasp the full meaning of that old principle in natural history, “Natura non facit saltum.” This principle, if we only consider the current inhabitants of the world, isn’t completely accurate, but if we include all those from the past, it must, according to my theory, be completely true.

It is generally acknowledged that all organic beings have been formed on two great laws—Unity of Type, and the Conditions of Existence. By unity of type is meant that fundamental agreement in structure, which we see in organic beings of the same class, and which is quite independent of their habits of life. On my theory, unity of type is explained by unity of descent. The expression of conditions of existence, so often insisted on by the illustrious Cuvier, is fully embraced by the principle of natural selection. For natural selection acts by either now adapting the varying parts of each being to its organic and inorganic conditions of life; or by having adapted them during long-past periods of time: the adaptations being aided in some cases by use and disuse, being slightly affected by the direct action of the external conditions of life, and being in all cases subjected to the several laws of growth. Hence, in fact, the law of the Conditions of Existence is the higher law; as it includes, through the inheritance of former adaptations, that of Unity of Type.

It is widely accepted that all living organisms have been shaped by two main principles—Unity of Type and the Conditions of Existence. Unity of Type refers to the fundamental similarity in structure that we observe in organisms of the same group, regardless of their lifestyles. According to my theory, Unity of Type can be explained through a shared ancestry. The concept of Conditions of Existence, which was heavily emphasized by the renowned Cuvier, is fully encompassed by the principle of natural selection. Natural selection operates by either currently adapting the varying parts of each organism to its environmental and biological conditions or by having done so over long periods of time in the past. These adaptations can be influenced in some cases by use and disuse, are slightly affected by the direct impact of external life conditions, and are always subject to the various laws of growth. Therefore, the law of Conditions of Existence is the more fundamental principle, as it encompasses, through the inheritance of past adaptations, the principle of Unity of Type.

CHAPTER VII.
INSTINCT.

Instincts comparable with habits, but different in their origin. Instincts graduated. Aphides and ants. Instincts variable. Domestic instincts, their origin. Natural instincts of the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees. Slave-making ants. Hive-bee, its cell-making instinct. Difficulties on the theory of the Natural Selection of instincts. Neuter or sterile insects. Summary.

Instincts are similar to habits, but they come from different origins. Instincts can vary in their development, like with aphids and ants. There are different types of instincts, including those that are domesticated and those that are natural, such as those of the cuckoo, ostrich, and parasitic bees. There are also slave-making ants and hive bees, which have instincts for building their cells. There are challenges to the theory of Natural Selection when it comes to instincts, especially concerning neuter or sterile insects. Summary.

The subject of instinct might have been worked into the previous chapters; but I have thought that it would be more convenient to treat the subject separately, especially as so wonderful an instinct as that of the hive-bee making its cells will probably have occurred to many readers, as a difficulty sufficient to overthrow my whole theory. I must premise, that I have nothing to do with the origin of the primary mental powers, any more than I have with that of life itself. We are concerned only with the diversities of instinct and of the other mental qualities of animals within the same class.

The topic of instinct could have been included in the previous chapters, but I thought it would be easier to discuss it on its own. This is especially relevant since the amazing instinct of the hive bee in constructing its cells might come to mind for many readers as a challenge to my entire theory. I want to clarify that I’m not addressing the origins of primary mental abilities, just like I’m not addressing the origins of life itself. We’re only focused on the variations in instinct and other mental traits of animals within the same class.

I will not attempt any definition of instinct. It would be easy to show that several distinct mental actions are commonly embraced by this term; but every one understands what is meant, when it is said that instinct impels the cuckoo to migrate and to lay her eggs in other birds’ nests. An action, which we ourselves should require experience to enable us to perform, when performed by an animal, more especially by a very young one, without any experience, and when performed by many individuals in the same way, without their knowing for what purpose it is performed, is usually said to be instinctive. But I could show that none of these characters of instinct are universal. A little dose, as Pierre Huber expresses it, of judgment or reason, often comes into play, even in animals very low in the scale of nature.

I won’t try to define instinct. It would be easy to point out that this term describes several different mental actions; but everyone knows what it means when we say that instinct drives a cuckoo to migrate and lay her eggs in other birds’ nests. An action that we would need experience to carry out—when done by an animal, especially a very young one, without any experience, and performed by many individuals in the same way, without them knowing why they do it—is usually considered instinctive. However, I could argue that not all of these characteristics of instinct are universal. A small amount, as Pierre Huber puts it, of judgment or reasoning often plays a role, even in animals that are low on the evolutionary ladder.

Frederick Cuvier and several of the older metaphysicians have compared instinct with habit. This comparison gives, I think, a remarkably accurate notion of the frame of mind under which an instinctive action is performed, but not of its origin. How unconsciously many habitual actions are performed, indeed not rarely in direct opposition to our conscious will! yet they may be modified by the will or reason. Habits easily become associated with other habits, and with certain periods of time and states of the body. When once acquired, they often remain constant throughout life. Several other points of resemblance between instincts and habits could be pointed out. As in repeating a well-known song, so in instincts, one action follows another by a sort of rhythm; if a person be interrupted in a song, or in repeating anything by rote, he is generally forced to go back to recover the habitual train of thought: so P. Huber found it was with a caterpillar, which makes a very complicated hammock; for if he took a caterpillar which had completed its hammock up to, say, the sixth stage of construction, and put it into a hammock completed up only to the third stage, the caterpillar simply re-performed the fourth, fifth, and sixth stages of construction. If, however, a caterpillar were taken out of a hammock made up, for instance, to the third stage, and were put into one finished up to the sixth stage, so that much of its work was already done for it, far from feeling the benefit of this, it was much embarrassed, and, in order to complete its hammock, seemed forced to start from the third stage, where it had left off, and thus tried to complete the already finished work.

Frederick Cuvier and several earlier philosophers have compared instinct to habit. This comparison provides a pretty accurate understanding of the mindset in which an instinctive action occurs, but not about where it comes from. It's interesting how many habitual actions are done unconsciously, often even against our conscious will! Yet, they can be influenced by our will or reasoning. Habits can easily become linked with other habits, as well as with certain times and bodily states. Once formed, they tend to persist throughout life. There are several other similarities between instincts and habits that could be mentioned. Just like when singing a familiar song, instinctive actions follow a sort of rhythm; if someone is interrupted while singing or reciting something by heart, they usually have to go back to regain the habitual flow of thought. P. Huber found a similar thing with a caterpillar that creates a complex hammock; if you take a caterpillar that has built its hammock up to, say, the sixth stage of construction, and place it in a hammock that's only completed to the third stage, the caterpillar simply resumes from the fourth, fifth, and sixth stages of construction. However, if a caterpillar is taken from a hammock that's finished to the third stage and put into one that's done up to the sixth stage, meaning a lot of the work is already completed for it, instead of finding this helpful, it becomes quite confused and seems forced to start from the third stage, trying to finish the work that's already been done.

If we suppose any habitual action to become inherited—and I think it can be shown that this does sometimes happen—then the resemblance between what originally was a habit and an instinct becomes so close as not to be distinguished. If Mozart, instead of playing the pianoforte at three years old with wonderfully little practice, had played a tune with no practice at all, he might truly be said to have done so instinctively. But it would be the most serious error to suppose that the greater number of instincts have been acquired by habit in one generation, and then transmitted by inheritance to succeeding generations. It can be clearly shown that the most wonderful instincts with which we are acquainted, namely, those of the hive-bee and of many ants, could not possibly have been thus acquired.

If we assume that any habitual action can be inherited—and I believe it's possible to demonstrate that this does occasionally occur—then the similarity between what began as a habit and an instinct becomes so close that it’s hard to tell them apart. If Mozart, instead of playing the piano at three years old with very little practice, had played a tune without any practice, we could say he did it instinctively. However, it would be a grave mistake to think that most instincts have been learned through habit in one generation and then passed down to future generations. It’s clear that the most remarkable instincts we know, like those of honeybees and many ants, could not have been acquired this way.

It will be universally admitted that instincts are as important as corporeal structure for the welfare of each species, under its present conditions of life. Under changed conditions of life, it is at least possible that slight modifications of instinct might be profitable to a species; and if it can be shown that instincts do vary ever so little, then I can see no difficulty in natural selection preserving and continually accumulating variations of instinct to any extent that may be profitable. It is thus, as I believe, that all the most complex and wonderful instincts have originated. As modifications of corporeal structure arise from, and are increased by, use or habit, and are diminished or lost by disuse, so I do not doubt it has been with instincts. But I believe that the effects of habit are of quite subordinate importance to the effects of the natural selection of what may be called accidental variations of instincts;—that is of variations produced by the same unknown causes which produce slight deviations of bodily structure.

It will be widely accepted that instincts are just as important as physical structure for the survival of each species in its current living conditions. If those conditions change, it’s possible that minor changes in instinct could benefit a species; and if we can show that instincts can vary even slightly, then I see no reason why natural selection couldn't preserve and build up variations of instinct to any extent that might be beneficial. I believe this is how all the most complex and amazing instincts have developed. Just as physical structure changes due to use or habit and decreases or disappears with disuse, I have no doubt that instincts have followed a similar pattern. However, I think the impact of habit is actually less significant than the effects of natural selection on what might be termed accidental variations of instincts—that is, variations caused by the same unknown factors that lead to slight changes in physical structure.

No complex instinct can possibly be produced through natural selection, except by the slow and gradual accumulation of numerous, slight, yet profitable, variations. Hence, as in the case of corporeal structures, we ought to find in nature, not the actual transitional gradations by which each complex instinct has been acquired—for these could be found only in the lineal ancestors of each species—but we ought to find in the collateral lines of descent some evidence of such gradations; or we ought at least to be able to show that gradations of some kind are possible; and this we certainly can do. I have been surprised to find, making allowance for the instincts of animals having been but little observed except in Europe and North America, and for no instinct being known amongst extinct species, how very generally gradations, leading to the most complex instincts, can be discovered. The canon of “Natura non facit saltum” applies with almost equal force to instincts as to bodily organs. Changes of instinct may sometimes be facilitated by the same species having different instincts at different periods of life, or at different seasons of the year, or when placed under different circumstances, etc.; in which case either one or the other instinct might be preserved by natural selection. And such instances of diversity of instinct in the same species can be shown to occur in nature.

No complex instinct can come about through natural selection, except by the slow and gradual accumulation of many slight but beneficial variations. Therefore, just like with physical structures, we should find in nature not the actual transitional stages through which each complex instinct has been developed—because those would only be found in the direct ancestors of each species—but we should find some evidence of such stages in the collateral lines of descent; or at the very least, we should be able to demonstrate that some kind of stages are possible; and we definitely can do that. I've been surprised to see, considering that animal instincts have mostly been observed only in Europe and North America, and that we know nothing about instincts from extinct species, how often we can find stages leading to the most complex instincts. The principle of "Natura non facit saltum" applies just as strongly to instincts as it does to physical organs. Changes in instinct can sometimes be facilitated by different instincts existing within the same species at different life stages, during different seasons, or under various circumstances, etc.; in these cases, either one or the other instinct might be favored by natural selection. We can indeed show examples of this diversity of instinct within the same species occurring in nature.

Again as in the case of corporeal structure, and conformably with my theory, the instinct of each species is good for itself, but has never, as far as we can judge, been produced for the exclusive good of others. One of the strongest instances of an animal apparently performing an action for the sole good of another, with which I am acquainted, is that of aphides voluntarily yielding their sweet excretion to ants: that they do so voluntarily, the following facts show. I removed all the ants from a group of about a dozen aphides on a dock-plant, and prevented their attendance during several hours. After this interval, I felt sure that the aphides would want to excrete. I watched them for some time through a lens, but not one excreted; I then tickled and stroked them with a hair in the same manner, as well as I could, as the ants do with their antennæ; but not one excreted. Afterwards I allowed an ant to visit them, and it immediately seemed, by its eager way of running about, to be well aware what a rich flock it had discovered; it then began to play with its antennæ on the abdomen first of one aphis and then of another; and each aphis, as soon as it felt the antennæ, immediately lifted up its abdomen and excreted a limpid drop of sweet juice, which was eagerly devoured by the ant. Even the quite young aphides behaved in this manner, showing that the action was instinctive, and not the result of experience. But as the excretion is extremely viscid, it is probably a convenience to the aphides to have it removed; and therefore probably the aphides do not instinctively excrete for the sole good of the ants. Although I do not believe that any animal in the world performs an action for the exclusive good of another of a distinct species, yet each species tries to take advantage of the instincts of others, as each takes advantage of the weaker bodily structure of others. So again, in some few cases, certain instincts cannot be considered as absolutely perfect; but as details on this and other such points are not indispensable, they may be here passed over.

Again, just like with physical structure, and consistent with my theory, the instinct of each species benefits itself, but it has never, as far as we can tell, been developed solely for the benefit of others. One of the strongest examples of an animal seemingly acting for the sole benefit of another that I'm familiar with is when aphids willingly release their sweet excretion for ants. That they do this voluntarily is demonstrated by the following facts. I removed all the ants from a group of about a dozen aphids on a dock plant, and kept them away for several hours. After this time, I was sure the aphids would want to excrete. I watched them for a while through a lens, but not a single one excreted. I then gently prodded and stroked them with a hair, similar to how ants use their antennae; but still, none excreted. Later, I let an ant approach them, and it immediately seemed to recognize the rich source it had found, eagerly running around. It then began to touch its antennae on the abdomen of each aphid, and as soon as each aphid felt the antennae, it lifted its abdomen and released a clear drop of sweet juice, which the ant quickly consumed. Even the very young aphids acted this way, indicating that this behavior was instinctive and not learned. However, since the excretion is extremely sticky, it likely benefits the aphids to have it removed, which suggests that they don't instinctively excrete solely for the ants' benefit. While I don’t believe any animal does something exclusively for the good of another distinct species, each species tends to take advantage of the instincts of others, just as they exploit the weaker physical structures of other animals. Therefore, in some cases, certain instincts may not be considered completely perfect; but since details on this and similar points aren't essential, we can skip over them here.

As some degree of variation in instincts under a state of nature, and the inheritance of such variations, are indispensable for the action of natural selection, as many instances as possible ought to have been here given; but want of space prevents me. I can only assert, that instincts certainly do vary—for instance, the migratory instinct, both in extent and direction, and in its total loss. So it is with the nests of birds, which vary partly in dependence on the situations chosen, and on the nature and temperature of the country inhabited, but often from causes wholly unknown to us: Audubon has given several remarkable cases of differences in nests of the same species in the northern and southern United States. Fear of any particular enemy is certainly an instinctive quality, as may be seen in nestling birds, though it is strengthened by experience, and by the sight of fear of the same enemy in other animals. But fear of man is slowly acquired, as I have elsewhere shown, by various animals inhabiting desert islands; and we may see an instance of this, even in England, in the greater wildness of all our large birds than of our small birds; for the large birds have been most persecuted by man. We may safely attribute the greater wildness of our large birds to this cause; for in uninhabited islands large birds are not more fearful than small; and the magpie, so wary in England, is tame in Norway, as is the hooded crow in Egypt.

Since some variation in instincts in a natural state and the inheritance of those variations are essential for natural selection, I wish I could provide more examples here, but space constraints prevent me. I can only confirm that instincts definitely vary—for example, the migratory instinct changes in both distance and direction and can even be completely lost. The same goes for bird nests, which differ partly based on the locations chosen and the climate of the area, but often for reasons we don’t fully understand: Audubon has documented several striking differences in the nests of the same species across the northern and southern United States. The instinct to be fearful of certain predators is evident in young birds, although this fear is enhanced by experience and by observing other animals' fear of the same threat. However, the fear of humans is gradually learned, as I've described in other works, by various animals living on deserted islands. A clear example of this can be seen in England, where our larger birds are generally wilder than our smaller ones, as the larger birds have faced more persecution from humans. We can reasonably attribute this increased wildness of our larger birds to that reason; for in uninhabited islands, large birds are not any more fearful than small ones; and the magpie, which is so cautious in England, is quite tame in Norway, just like the hooded crow is in Egypt.

That the general disposition of individuals of the same species, born in a state of nature, is extremely diversified, can be shown by a multitude of facts. Several cases also, could be given, of occasional and strange habits in certain species, which might, if advantageous to the species, give rise, through natural selection, to quite new instincts. But I am well aware that these general statements, without facts given in detail, can produce but a feeble effect on the reader’s mind. I can only repeat my assurance, that I do not speak without good evidence.

The general behavior of individuals of the same species, born in a natural environment, varies greatly, as demonstrated by numerous examples. There are also various instances of unusual habits in certain species that, if beneficial, could lead to entirely new instincts through natural selection. However, I understand that these broad statements, without detailed evidence, may not strongly impact the reader. I can only reiterate that I speak based on solid evidence.

The possibility, or even probability, of inherited variations of instinct in a state of nature will be strengthened by briefly considering a few cases under domestication. We shall thus also be enabled to see the respective parts which habit and the selection of so-called accidental variations have played in modifying the mental qualities of our domestic animals. A number of curious and authentic instances could be given of the inheritance of all shades of disposition and tastes, and likewise of the oddest tricks, associated with certain frames of mind or periods of time. But let us look to the familiar case of the several breeds of dogs: it cannot be doubted that young pointers (I have myself seen a striking instance) will sometimes point and even back other dogs the very first time that they are taken out; retrieving is certainly in some degree inherited by retrievers; and a tendency to run round, instead of at, a flock of sheep, by shepherd-dogs. I cannot see that these actions, performed without experience by the young, and in nearly the same manner by each individual, performed with eager delight by each breed, and without the end being known,—for the young pointer can no more know that he points to aid his master, than the white butterfly knows why she lays her eggs on the leaf of the cabbage,—I cannot see that these actions differ essentially from true instincts. If we were to see one kind of wolf, when young and without any training, as soon as it scented its prey, stand motionless like a statue, and then slowly crawl forward with a peculiar gait; and another kind of wolf rushing round, instead of at, a herd of deer, and driving them to a distant point, we should assuredly call these actions instinctive. Domestic instincts, as they may be called, are certainly far less fixed or invariable than natural instincts; but they have been acted on by far less rigorous selection, and have been transmitted for an incomparably shorter period, under less fixed conditions of life.

The possibility, or even likelihood, of inherited instincts in nature becomes clearer when we briefly look at some examples from domestication. This will also help us understand the roles that habit and the selection of accidental variations have played in changing the mental traits of our domestic animals. We could point to many intriguing and real examples of the inheritance of different personalities and preferences, as well as some unusual behaviors linked to specific moods or times. But let’s consider the well-known case of various dog breeds: it’s clear that young pointers (I’ve seen a striking example myself) can sometimes point and even back other dogs the very first time they go out; retrieving is certainly inherited to some extent in retrievers; and shepherd dogs show a tendency to run around a flock of sheep instead of directly at them. I don’t see how these actions, done without prior experience by the young dogs and nearly the same way by each individual, performed eagerly by each breed without knowing the outcome—since a young pointer doesn’t know he’s pointing to assist his owner any more than a white butterfly knows why it lays its eggs on a cabbage leaf—can be fundamentally different from true instincts. If we saw one type of young wolf, without any training, freeze like a statue upon sensing its prey and then slowly creep forward in a specific way, and another type of wolf running around a herd of deer instead of charging at them and driving them away, we would certainly label those actions as instinctive. Domestic instincts, as we might call them, are definitely less fixed or consistent than natural instincts; however, they have undergone much less intense selection and have been passed down for a significantly shorter time, under less stable living conditions.

How strongly these domestic instincts, habits, and dispositions are inherited, and how curiously they become mingled, is well shown when different breeds of dogs are crossed. Thus it is known that a cross with a bull-dog has affected for many generations the courage and obstinacy of greyhounds; and a cross with a greyhound has given to a whole family of shepherd-dogs a tendency to hunt hares. These domestic instincts, when thus tested by crossing, resemble natural instincts, which in a like manner become curiously blended together, and for a long period exhibit traces of the instincts of either parent: for example, Le Roy describes a dog, whose great-grandfather was a wolf, and this dog showed a trace of its wild parentage only in one way, by not coming in a straight line to his master when called.

How strongly these home instincts, habits, and traits are passed down, and how surprisingly they mix together, is clearly shown when different dog breeds are crossed. For instance, it's known that breeding with a bulldog has influenced the courage and stubbornness of greyhounds for many generations; and breeding with a greyhound has given a family of shepherd dogs a tendency to chase hares. These home instincts, when tested through crossbreeding, resemble natural instincts that similarly become intriguingly blended and for a long time show signs of either parent's instincts: for example, Le Roy describes a dog whose great-grandfather was a wolf, and this dog displayed a hint of its wild ancestry by not approaching its owner in a straight line when called.

Domestic instincts are sometimes spoken of as actions which have become inherited solely from long-continued and compulsory habit, but this, I think, is not true. No one would ever have thought of teaching, or probably could have taught, the tumbler-pigeon to tumble,—an action which, as I have witnessed, is performed by young birds, that have never seen a pigeon tumble. We may believe that some one pigeon showed a slight tendency to this strange habit, and that the long-continued selection of the best individuals in successive generations made tumblers what they now are; and near Glasgow there are house-tumblers, as I hear from Mr. Brent, which cannot fly eighteen inches high without going head over heels. It may be doubted whether any one would have thought of training a dog to point, had not some one dog naturally shown a tendency in this line; and this is known occasionally to happen, as I once saw in a pure terrier. When the first tendency was once displayed, methodical selection and the inherited effects of compulsory training in each successive generation would soon complete the work; and unconscious selection is still at work, as each man tries to procure, without intending to improve the breed, dogs which will stand and hunt best. On the other hand, habit alone in some cases has sufficed; no animal is more difficult to tame than the young of the wild rabbit; scarcely any animal is tamer than the young of the tame rabbit; but I do not suppose that domestic rabbits have ever been selected for tameness; and I presume that we must attribute the whole of the inherited change from extreme wildness to extreme tameness, simply to habit and long-continued close confinement.

Domestic instincts are sometimes described as behaviors that have been passed down solely from long-lasting and forced habits, but I think that’s not true. No one would have thought to teach, or probably could teach, a tumbler pigeon to tumble—a behavior I've seen young birds do, even those that have never witnessed a pigeon tumble. We might believe that one pigeon showed a slight inclination toward this unusual behavior, and that the ongoing selection of the best individuals over generations shaped tumblers into what they are now; near Glasgow, there are house-tumblers, as I’ve heard from Mr. Brent, that can’t fly higher than eighteen inches without flipping over. It’s doubtful anyone would have considered training a dog to point if no dog had intuitively shown an inclination in that direction; this is known to occur occasionally, as I once witnessed in a pure terrier. Once the initial tendency appeared, systematic selection and the inherited outcomes of enforced training in each successive generation would quickly complete the process; and unconscious selection still operates, as each person tries to obtain, without intending to improve the breed, dogs that will stand and hunt the best. Conversely, in some cases, habit alone has been enough; no animal is harder to tame than a young wild rabbit, while few animals are as tame as young tame rabbits. However, I don't think domestic rabbits have ever been selected for their tameness; I assume we must credit the entire inherited shift from extreme wildness to extreme tameness to habit and prolonged close confinement.

Natural instincts are lost under domestication: a remarkable instance of this is seen in those breeds of fowls which very rarely or never become “broody,” that is, never wish to sit on their eggs. Familiarity alone prevents our seeing how universally and largely the minds of our domestic animals have been modified by domestication. It is scarcely possible to doubt that the love of man has become instinctive in the dog. All wolves, foxes, jackals, and species of the cat genus, when kept tame, are most eager to attack poultry, sheep, and pigs; and this tendency has been found incurable in dogs which have been brought home as puppies from countries, such as Tierra del Fuego and Australia, where the savages do not keep these domestic animals. How rarely, on the other hand, do our civilised dogs, even when quite young, require to be taught not to attack poultry, sheep, and pigs! No doubt they occasionally do make an attack, and are then beaten; and if not cured, they are destroyed; so that habit, with some degree of selection, has probably concurred in civilising by inheritance our dogs. On the other hand, young chickens have lost, wholly by habit, that fear of the dog and cat which no doubt was originally instinctive in them, in the same way as it is so plainly instinctive in young pheasants, though reared under a hen. It is not that chickens have lost all fear, but fear only of dogs and cats, for if the hen gives the danger-chuckle, they will run (more especially young turkeys) from under her, and conceal themselves in the surrounding grass or thickets; and this is evidently done for the instinctive purpose of allowing, as we see in wild ground-birds, their mother to fly away. But this instinct retained by our chickens has become useless under domestication, for the mother-hen has almost lost by disuse the power of flight.

Natural instincts fade away with domestication: a clear example of this can be seen in certain breeds of chickens that rarely or never become "broody," meaning they don't want to sit on their eggs. Our familiarity blinds us to how much the minds of our domestic animals have been changed by living alongside humans. It's hard to argue against the idea that dogs have developed an instinctive love for people. In contrast, wolves, foxes, jackals, and cats, when kept as pets, are very quick to go after poultry, sheep, and pigs; this behavior has proven to be unchangeable in dogs that were raised as puppies in places like Tierra del Fuego and Australia, where people don’t keep these domestic animals. On the flip side, our domesticated dogs, even as pups, rarely need to be taught not to chase after poultry, sheep, and pigs! Sure, they sometimes do attack and get punished, and if they don’t change their ways, they are put down; this suggests that habits, combined with some selective breeding, have likely helped to civilize our dogs through inheritance. Meanwhile, young chickens have completely lost their instinctive fear of dogs and cats purely through habit, much like young pheasants that are raised by hens. It's not that chickens are fearless; they still fear other threats—if the hen gives a warning call, they will scurry away (especially young turkeys) and hide in the grass or bushes. This behavior seems to mimic wild ground-birds, allowing their mother to escape danger. However, this instinct in our chickens has become pointless under domestication, as the mother hen has nearly lost her ability to fly due to lack of use.

Hence, we may conclude, that domestic instincts have been acquired and natural instincts have been lost partly by habit, and partly by man selecting and accumulating during successive generations, peculiar mental habits and actions, which at first appeared from what we must in our ignorance call an accident. In some cases compulsory habit alone has sufficed to produce such inherited mental changes; in other cases compulsory habit has done nothing, and all has been the result of selection, pursued both methodically and unconsciously; but in most cases, probably, habit and selection have acted together.

Therefore, we can conclude that domestic instincts have been developed and natural instincts have been lost, partly due to habit and partly because humans have selectively chosen and accumulated certain mental habits and behaviors over generations, which initially seemed to us, in our ignorance, like random occurrences. In some instances, just the imposition of habit has been enough to create these inherited mental changes; in others, habit hasn't made any difference, and everything has come from selection, both deliberately and unconsciously pursued; but in most cases, it's likely that habit and selection have worked together.

We shall, perhaps, best understand how instincts in a state of nature have become modified by selection, by considering a few cases. I will select only three, out of the several which I shall have to discuss in my future work,—namely, the instinct which leads the cuckoo to lay her eggs in other birds’ nests; the slave-making instinct of certain ants; and the comb-making power of the hive-bee: these two latter instincts have generally, and most justly, been ranked by naturalists as the most wonderful of all known instincts.

We can best understand how instincts in the wild have changed through selection by looking at a few examples. I'll choose just three of the many I plan to discuss in my upcoming work: the instinct that drives the cuckoo to lay her eggs in other birds' nests; the slave-making instinct of certain ants; and the honeycomb-building ability of the hive bee. Naturalists have generally considered these two latter instincts to be among the most remarkable of all known instincts.

It is now commonly admitted that the more immediate and final cause of the cuckoo’s instinct is, that she lays her eggs, not daily, but at intervals of two or three days; so that, if she were to make her own nest and sit on her own eggs, those first laid would have to be left for some time unincubated, or there would be eggs and young birds of different ages in the same nest. If this were the case, the process of laying and hatching might be inconveniently long, more especially as she has to migrate at a very early period; and the first hatched young would probably have to be fed by the male alone. But the American cuckoo is in this predicament; for she makes her own nest and has eggs and young successively hatched, all at the same time. It has been asserted that the American cuckoo occasionally lays her eggs in other birds’ nests; but I hear on the high authority of Dr. Brewer, that this is a mistake. Nevertheless, I could give several instances of various birds which have been known occasionally to lay their eggs in other birds’ nests. Now let us suppose that the ancient progenitor of our European cuckoo had the habits of the American cuckoo; but that occasionally she laid an egg in another bird’s nest. If the old bird profited by this occasional habit, or if the young were made more vigorous by advantage having been taken of the mistaken maternal instinct of another bird, than by their own mother’s care, encumbered as she can hardly fail to be by having eggs and young of different ages at the same time; then the old birds or the fostered young would gain an advantage. And analogy would lead me to believe, that the young thus reared would be apt to follow by inheritance the occasional and aberrant habit of their mother, and in their turn would be apt to lay their eggs in other birds’ nests, and thus be successful in rearing their young. By a continued process of this nature, I believe that the strange instinct of our cuckoo could be, and has been, generated. I may add that, according to Dr. Gray and to some other observers, the European cuckoo has not utterly lost all maternal love and care for her own offspring.

It’s widely accepted now that the main reason for the cuckoo’s behavior is that she doesn’t lay her eggs daily, but instead every two or three days. This means that if she built her own nest and sat on her eggs, the first ones laid would be left unincubated for a while, leading to a mix of eggs and young birds of different ages in the same nest. If that happened, the time from laying to hatching could be inconveniently long, especially since she has to migrate early. Plus, the first chicks that hatch would likely be fed only by the male. However, this is the situation for the American cuckoo, which builds her own nest and has eggs and young ones hatching at different times. Some claim that the American cuckoo sometimes lays her eggs in other birds’ nests, but according to the esteemed Dr. Brewer, that’s a misconception. Still, I can provide several examples of different birds known to occasionally lay their eggs in others' nests. Now, let’s imagine that the ancient ancestor of our European cuckoo behaved like the American cuckoo but sometimes laid an egg in another bird’s nest. If the older bird benefited from this habit, or if the young ones thrived more due to the mistaken nurturing by another bird rather than their mother’s care—who would inevitably be overwhelmed by having eggs and chicks of different ages at once—then either the adults or the fostered young would gain an edge. And I would think that these young birds raised this way would be likely to inherit their mother’s unusual behavior, eventually laying their eggs in other birds’ nests, thereby successfully raising their own young. Through this ongoing process, I believe that the cuckoo’s strange instinct could be developed over time. Additionally, as noted by Dr. Gray and other observers, the European cuckoo hasn’t completely lost all maternal love and care for her own chicks.

The occasional habit of birds laying their eggs in other birds’ nests, either of the same or of a distinct species, is not very uncommon with the Gallinaceæ; and this perhaps explains the origin of a singular instinct in the allied group of ostriches. For several hen ostriches, at least in the case of the American species, unite and lay first a few eggs in one nest and then in another; and these are hatched by the males. This instinct may probably be accounted for by the fact of the hens laying a large number of eggs; but, as in the case of the cuckoo, at intervals of two or three days. This instinct, however, of the American ostrich has not as yet been perfected; for a surprising number of eggs lie strewed over the plains, so that in one day’s hunting I picked up no less than twenty lost and wasted eggs.

The occasional behavior of birds laying their eggs in the nests of other birds, whether they're the same species or different, isn't unusual among the Gallinaceæ. This might explain a unique instinct observed in related species like ostriches. For several female ostriches, particularly in the American species, they group together and initially lay a few eggs in one nest before moving on to another; these eggs are then incubated by the males. This behavior likely arises because the hens produce a large number of eggs, but similar to the cuckoo, they do this at intervals of two or three days. However, this instinct in American ostriches hasn't been fully developed yet; an astonishing number of eggs are scattered across the plains, and during one day's hunting, I came across no fewer than twenty lost and discarded eggs.

Many bees are parasitic, and always lay their eggs in the nests of bees of other kinds. This case is more remarkable than that of the cuckoo; for these bees have not only their instincts but their structure modified in accordance with their parasitic habits; for they do not possess the pollen-collecting apparatus which would be necessary if they had to store food for their own young. Some species, likewise, of Sphegidæ (wasp-like insects) are parasitic on other species; and M. Fabre has lately shown good reason for believing that although the Tachytes nigra generally makes its own burrow and stores it with paralysed prey for its own larvæ to feed on, yet that when this insect finds a burrow already made and stored by another sphex, it takes advantage of the prize, and becomes for the occasion parasitic. In this case, as with the supposed case of the cuckoo, I can see no difficulty in natural selection making an occasional habit permanent, if of advantage to the species, and if the insect whose nest and stored food are thus feloniously appropriated, be not thus exterminated.

Many bees are parasitic and always lay their eggs in the nests of different bee species. This situation is even more remarkable than that of the cuckoo because these bees have not only changed their instincts but also their physical structure to fit their parasitic lifestyle; they lack the pollen-collecting tools necessary to store food for their own young. Some species, also from the Sphegidæ family (wasp-like insects), are parasitic on other species as well. M. Fabre recently provided strong evidence suggesting that while the Tachytes nigra usually builds its own burrow and fills it with paralyzed prey for its larvae to eat, when it finds a burrow already made and filled by another sphex, it takes advantage of the opportunity and becomes parasitic for that occasion. In this case, as with the supposed behavior of the cuckoo, I can see no reason why natural selection couldn't turn an occasional habit into a permanent one if it benefits the species, as long as the insect whose nest and stored food are being stolen is not completely wiped out.

Slave-making instinct.—This remarkable instinct was first discovered in the Formica (Polyerges) rufescens by Pierre Huber, a better observer even than his celebrated father. This ant is absolutely dependent on its slaves; without their aid, the species would certainly become extinct in a single year. The males and fertile females do no work. The workers or sterile females, though most energetic and courageous in capturing slaves, do no other work. They are incapable of making their own nests, or of feeding their own larvæ. When the old nest is found inconvenient, and they have to migrate, it is the slaves which determine the migration, and actually carry their masters in their jaws. So utterly helpless are the masters, that when Huber shut up thirty of them without a slave, but with plenty of the food which they like best, and with their larvæ and pupæ to stimulate them to work, they did nothing; they could not even feed themselves, and many perished of hunger. Huber then introduced a single slave (F. fusca), and she instantly set to work, fed and saved the survivors; made some cells and tended the larvæ, and put all to rights. What can be more extraordinary than these well-ascertained facts? If we had not known of any other slave-making ant, it would have been hopeless to have speculated how so wonderful an instinct could have been perfected.

Slave-making instinct.—This amazing instinct was first discovered in the Formica (Polyerges) rufescens by Pierre Huber, an even better observer than his famous father. This ant is completely reliant on its slaves; without their help, the species would definitely go extinct within a year. The males and fertile females don’t do any work. The workers or sterile females, while incredibly bold and energetic in capturing slaves, do no other tasks. They can't make their own nests or feed their own larvae. When the old nest becomes unsuitable and they need to migrate, it’s the slaves that lead the migration and actually carry their masters in their jaws. The masters are so helpless that when Huber confined thirty of them without a slave, but with plenty of their favorite food and their larvae and pupae to motivate them, they did nothing; they couldn’t even feed themselves, and many died of hunger. Huber then introduced a single slave (F. fusca), and she immediately got to work, fed and saved the survivors, built some cells, took care of the larvae, and got everything sorted out. What could be more extraordinary than these well-documented facts? If we hadn’t known about any other slave-making ant, it would have been impossible to speculate on how such an incredible instinct could have developed.

Formica sanguinea was likewise first discovered by P. Huber to be a slave-making ant. This species is found in the southern parts of England, and its habits have been attended to by Mr. F. Smith, of the British Museum, to whom I am much indebted for information on this and other subjects. Although fully trusting to the statements of Huber and Mr. Smith, I tried to approach the subject in a sceptical frame of mind, as any one may well be excused for doubting the truth of so extraordinary and odious an instinct as that of making slaves. Hence I will give the observations which I have myself made, in some little detail. I opened fourteen nests of F. sanguinea, and found a few slaves in all. Males and fertile females of the slave-species are found only in their own proper communities, and have never been observed in the nests of F. sanguinea. The slaves are black and not above half the size of their red masters, so that the contrast in their appearance is very great. When the nest is slightly disturbed, the slaves occasionally come out, and like their masters are much agitated and defend the nest: when the nest is much disturbed and the larvæ and pupæ are exposed, the slaves work energetically with their masters in carrying them away to a place of safety. Hence, it is clear, that the slaves feel quite at home. During the months of June and July, on three successive years, I have watched for many hours several nests in Surrey and Sussex, and never saw a slave either leave or enter a nest. As, during these months, the slaves are very few in number, I thought that they might behave differently when more numerous; but Mr. Smith informs me that he has watched the nests at various hours during May, June and August, both in Surrey and Hampshire, and has never seen the slaves, though present in large numbers in August, either leave or enter the nest. Hence he considers them as strictly household slaves. The masters, on the other hand, may be constantly seen bringing in materials for the nest, and food of all kinds. During the present year, however, in the month of July, I came across a community with an unusually large stock of slaves, and I observed a few slaves mingled with their masters leaving the nest, and marching along the same road to a tall Scotch-fir-tree, twenty-five yards distant, which they ascended together, probably in search of aphides or cocci. According to Huber, who had ample opportunities for observation, in Switzerland the slaves habitually work with their masters in making the nest, and they alone open and close the doors in the morning and evening; and, as Huber expressly states, their principal office is to search for aphides. This difference in the usual habits of the masters and slaves in the two countries, probably depends merely on the slaves being captured in greater numbers in Switzerland than in England.

Formica sanguinea was also first identified by P. Huber as a slave-making ant. This species is found in southern England, and its behavior has been studied by Mr. F. Smith from the British Museum, to whom I am very grateful for information on this and other topics. While I fully trust the statements of Huber and Mr. Smith, I approached the subject with some skepticism, as anyone might be excused for doubting the existence of such an extraordinary and unpleasant instinct as slave-making. Therefore, I will detail my own observations. I opened fourteen nests of F. sanguinea and found a few slaves in each. Males and fertile females of the slave species are found only in their own communities and have never been seen in the nests of F. sanguinea. The slaves are black and no more than half the size of their red masters, creating a significant contrast in their appearance. When the nest is slightly disturbed, the slaves often come out and, like their masters, become very agitated and defend the nest. When the nest is heavily disturbed and the larvae and pupae are exposed, the slaves energetically work alongside their masters to carry them to safety. This clearly shows that the slaves feel at home. During June and July over three consecutive years, I spent many hours observing several nests in Surrey and Sussex, and I never saw a slave leave or enter a nest. Since the slaves are quite few during these months, I thought they might behave differently when in greater numbers; however, Mr. Smith informed me that he has observed the nests at various times in May, June, and August, both in Surrey and Hampshire, and has never seen slaves, even when they were present in large numbers in August, leave or enter the nest. Thus, he regards them as strictly household slaves. In contrast, the masters are constantly seen bringing in materials for the nest and various kinds of food. However, this year, in July, I came across a community with an unusually large number of slaves, and I observed a few slaves mingling with their masters leaving the nest and walking together along the same path to a tall Scotch pine tree, twenty-five yards away, which they climbed together, probably in search of aphids or scale insects. According to Huber, who had ample opportunities for observation, in Switzerland the slaves regularly work with their masters in building the nest, and they alone open and close the doors in the morning and evening; as Huber specifically states, their main job is to search for aphids. This difference in the behavior of the masters and slaves between the two countries likely depends solely on the fact that slaves are captured in greater numbers in Switzerland than in England.

One day I fortunately chanced to witness a migration from one nest to another, and it was a most interesting spectacle to behold the masters carefully carrying, as Huber has described, their slaves in their jaws. Another day my attention was struck by about a score of the slave-makers haunting the same spot, and evidently not in search of food; they approached and were vigorously repulsed by an independent community of the slave species (F. fusca); sometimes as many as three of these ants clinging to the legs of the slave-making F. sanguinea. The latter ruthlessly killed their small opponents, and carried their dead bodies as food to their nest, twenty-nine yards distant; but they were prevented from getting any pupæ to rear as slaves. I then dug up a small parcel of the pupæ of F. fusca from another nest, and put them down on a bare spot near the place of combat; they were eagerly seized, and carried off by the tyrants, who perhaps fancied that, after all, they had been victorious in their late combat.

One day, I was lucky enough to see a migration from one nest to another, and it was really interesting to watch the masters carefully carrying their slaves in their jaws, just like Huber described. Another day, I noticed about twenty slave-makers hanging around the same spot, clearly not looking for food; they approached and were forcefully driven back by an independent community of the slave species (F. fusca). Sometimes, up to three of these ants would cling to the legs of the slave-making F. sanguinea. The latter ruthlessly killed their smaller opponents and took their dead bodies back to their nest, which was twenty-nine yards away; however, they were unable to take any pupae to raise as slaves. I then dug up a small handful of F. fusca pupae from another nest and placed them in a clear area near the battlefield; the tyrants eagerly grabbed them and carried them off, perhaps thinking they had been victorious in their recent battle.

At the same time I laid on the same place a small parcel of the pupæ of another species, F. flava, with a few of these little yellow ants still clinging to the fragments of the nest. This species is sometimes, though rarely, made into slaves, as has been described by Mr. Smith. Although so small a species, it is very courageous, and I have seen it ferociously attack other ants. In one instance I found to my surprise an independent community of F. flava under a stone beneath a nest of the slave-making F. sanguinea; and when I had accidentally disturbed both nests, the little ants attacked their big neighbours with surprising courage. Now I was curious to ascertain whether F. sanguinea could distinguish the pupæ of F. fusca, which they habitually make into slaves, from those of the little and furious F. flava, which they rarely capture, and it was evident that they did at once distinguish them: for we have seen that they eagerly and instantly seized the pupæ of F. fusca, whereas they were much terrified when they came across the pupæ, or even the earth from the nest of F. flava, and quickly ran away; but in about a quarter of an hour, shortly after all the little yellow ants had crawled away, they took heart and carried off the pupæ.

At the same time, I placed a small parcel of the pupae of another species, F. flava, with a few of these little yellow ants still clinging to pieces of the nest. This species is sometimes, though rarely, turned into slaves, as Mr. Smith has described. Although it's such a small species, it is very brave, and I've seen it fiercely attack other ants. In one instance, I was surprised to find an independent colony of F. flava under a stone beneath a nest of the slave-making F. sanguinea; and when I accidentally disturbed both nests, the little ants bravely attacked their larger neighbors. Now, I was curious to find out whether F. sanguinea could tell the pupae of F. fusca, which they usually turn into slaves, apart from those of the small and aggressive F. flava, which they rarely capture, and it was clear that they could distinguish them right away: they eagerly and quickly grabbed the pupae of F. fusca, while they were much frightened when they encountered the pupae, or even the soil from the nest of F. flava, and quickly ran away. However, after about fifteen minutes, shortly after all the little yellow ants had crawled away, they gathered their courage and carried off the pupae.

One evening I visited another community of F. sanguinea, and found a number of these ants entering their nest, carrying the dead bodies of F. fusca (showing that it was not a migration) and numerous pupæ. I traced the returning file burthened with booty, for about forty yards, to a very thick clump of heath, whence I saw the last individual of F. sanguinea emerge, carrying a pupa; but I was not able to find the desolated nest in the thick heath. The nest, however, must have been close at hand, for two or three individuals of F. fusca were rushing about in the greatest agitation, and one was perched motionless with its own pupa in its mouth on the top of a spray of heath over its ravaged home.

One evening, I visited another colony of F. sanguinea and saw a bunch of these ants going into their nest, carrying the dead bodies of F. fusca (which showed it wasn't a migration) and a lot of pupae. I followed the line of ants loaded with their haul for about forty yards to a thick patch of heather, where I saw the last F. sanguinea come out, carrying a pupa. However, I couldn't find the destroyed nest in the dense heather. The nest must have been nearby, because two or three F. fusca were running around in a panic, and one was perched motionless with its own pupa in its mouth on top of a heather sprig over its ruined home.

Such are the facts, though they did not need confirmation by me, in regard to the wonderful instinct of making slaves. Let it be observed what a contrast the instinctive habits of F. sanguinea present with those of the F. rufescens. The latter does not build its own nest, does not determine its own migrations, does not collect food for itself or its young, and cannot even feed itself: it is absolutely dependent on its numerous slaves. Formica sanguinea, on the other hand, possesses much fewer slaves, and in the early part of the summer extremely few. The masters determine when and where a new nest shall be formed, and when they migrate, the masters carry the slaves. Both in Switzerland and England the slaves seem to have the exclusive care of the larvæ, and the masters alone go on slave-making expeditions. In Switzerland the slaves and masters work together, making and bringing materials for the nest: both, but chiefly the slaves, tend, and milk as it may be called, their aphides; and thus both collect food for the community. In England the masters alone usually leave the nest to collect building materials and food for themselves, their slaves and larvæ. So that the masters in this country receive much less service from their slaves than they do in Switzerland.

These are the facts, which didn't need my confirmation, about the amazing instinct for creating slaves. Notice the contrast between the instinctive behaviors of F. sanguinea and F. rufescens. The latter doesn’t build its own nest, doesn’t decide its own migrations, doesn’t gather food for itself or its young, and can’t even feed itself: it relies entirely on its many slaves. On the other hand, Formica sanguinea has far fewer slaves, especially early in the summer, when they have very few. The masters decide when and where a new nest will be built, and when they migrate, the masters carry the slaves. In both Switzerland and England, the slaves seem to be solely responsible for caring for the larvae, while the masters go on expeditions to create more slaves. In Switzerland, the slaves and masters work together to gather and provide materials for the nest: both, especially the slaves, tend to and "milk" their aphids, thereby collecting food for the community. In England, the masters usually leave the nest by themselves to collect building materials and food for themselves, their slaves, and the larvae. This means the masters in England get much less assistance from their slaves compared to those in Switzerland.

By what steps the instinct of F. sanguinea originated I will not pretend to conjecture. But as ants, which are not slave-makers, will, as I have seen, carry off pupæ of other species, if scattered near their nests, it is possible that pupæ originally stored as food might become developed; and the ants thus unintentionally reared would then follow their proper instincts, and do what work they could. If their presence proved useful to the species which had seized them—if it were more advantageous to this species to capture workers than to procreate them—the habit of collecting pupæ originally for food might by natural selection be strengthened and rendered permanent for the very different purpose of raising slaves. When the instinct was once acquired, if carried out to a much less extent even than in our British F. sanguinea, which, as we have seen, is less aided by its slaves than the same species in Switzerland, I can see no difficulty in natural selection increasing and modifying the instinct—always supposing each modification to be of use to the species—until an ant was formed as abjectly dependent on its slaves as is the Formica rufescens.

I won’t guess how the instinct of F. sanguinea came to be. But I've observed that ants that don't make slaves will carry off the pupae of other species if they’re scattered near their nests. It's possible that pupae originally stored for food could develop, and the ants would accidentally raise them, leading these ants to follow their natural instincts and do whatever work they could. If having these ants around was beneficial for the species that took them—if it was more advantageous for this species to capture workers instead of producing them—the habit of collecting pupae for food might become enhanced through natural selection, eventually leading to the very different goal of raising slaves. Once the instinct was established, even if it was initially less pronounced than in our British F. sanguinea, which relies less on its slaves than the same species in Switzerland, I see no reason why natural selection couldn’t refine and enhance the instinct—provided each change is beneficial to the species—until an ant became as dependent on its slaves as the Formica rufescens.

Cell-making instinct of the Hive-Bee.—I will not here enter on minute details on this subject, but will merely give an outline of the conclusions at which I have arrived. He must be a dull man who can examine the exquisite structure of a comb, so beautifully adapted to its end, without enthusiastic admiration. We hear from mathematicians that bees have practically solved a recondite problem, and have made their cells of the proper shape to hold the greatest possible amount of honey, with the least possible consumption of precious wax in their construction. It has been remarked that a skilful workman, with fitting tools and measures, would find it very difficult to make cells of wax of the true form, though this is perfectly effected by a crowd of bees working in a dark hive. Grant whatever instincts you please, and it seems at first quite inconceivable how they can make all the necessary angles and planes, or even perceive when they are correctly made. But the difficulty is not nearly so great as it at first appears: all this beautiful work can be shown, I think, to follow from a few very simple instincts.

Cell-making instinct of the Hive-Bee.—I won't go into detailed explanations on this topic, but I will simply outline the conclusions I've reached. One must be quite dull not to feel enthusiastic admiration when observing the intricate structure of a comb, so perfectly designed for its purpose. Mathematicians tell us that bees have effectively solved a complex problem, constructing their cells in a shape that maximizes honey storage while minimizing the use of valuable wax. It's been noted that a skilled worker, even with the right tools and measurements, would find it quite challenging to make wax cells with the correct shape, something that a swarm of bees accomplishes effortlessly in a dark hive. No matter the instincts you attribute to them, it initially seems unimaginable how they can create all the necessary angles and planes, or even recognize when they are accurately formed. However, the challenge is not nearly as daunting as it seems at first: I believe all this remarkable work can be traced back to a few very simple instincts.

I was led to investigate this subject by Mr. Waterhouse, who has shown that the form of the cell stands in close relation to the presence of adjoining cells; and the following view may, perhaps, be considered only as a modification of his theory. Let us look to the great principle of gradation, and see whether Nature does not reveal to us her method of work. At one end of a short series we have humble-bees, which use their old cocoons to hold honey, sometimes adding to them short tubes of wax, and likewise making separate and very irregular rounded cells of wax. At the other end of the series we have the cells of the hive-bee, placed in a double layer: each cell, as is well known, is an hexagonal prism, with the basal edges of its six sides bevelled so as to join on to a pyramid, formed of three rhombs. These rhombs have certain angles, and the three which form the pyramidal base of a single cell on one side of the comb, enter into the composition of the bases of three adjoining cells on the opposite side. In the series between the extreme perfection of the cells of the hive-bee and the simplicity of those of the humble-bee, we have the cells of the Mexican Melipona domestica, carefully described and figured by Pierre Huber. The Melipona itself is intermediate in structure between the hive and humble bee, but more nearly related to the latter: it forms a nearly regular waxen comb of cylindrical cells, in which the young are hatched, and, in addition, some large cells of wax for holding honey. These latter cells are nearly spherical and of nearly equal sizes, and are aggregated into an irregular mass. But the important point to notice, is that these cells are always made at that degree of nearness to each other, that they would have intersected or broken into each other, if the spheres had been completed; but this is never permitted, the bees building perfectly flat walls of wax between the spheres which thus tend to intersect. Hence each cell consists of an outer spherical portion and of two, three, or more perfectly flat surfaces, according as the cell adjoins two, three or more other cells. When one cell comes into contact with three other cells, which, from the spheres being nearly of the same size, is very frequently and necessarily the case, the three flat surfaces are united into a pyramid; and this pyramid, as Huber has remarked, is manifestly a gross imitation of the three-sided pyramidal basis of the cell of the hive-bee. As in the cells of the hive-bee, so here, the three plane surfaces in any one cell necessarily enter into the construction of three adjoining cells. It is obvious that the Melipona saves wax by this manner of building; for the flat walls between the adjoining cells are not double, but are of the same thickness as the outer spherical portions, and yet each flat portion forms a part of two cells.

I started exploring this topic because of Mr. Waterhouse, who demonstrated that the shape of a cell is closely related to the neighboring cells. The following perspective may only be a variation of his theory. Let's consider the important principle of gradation and see if Nature reveals her method of operation. At one end of a short spectrum, we have humble-bees, which use their old cocoons to store honey, sometimes adding short tubes of wax and also creating separate and irregular rounded wax cells. At the opposite end, we find the cells of the hive-bee, organized in a double layer: each cell, as we know, is a hexagonal prism, with the edges of its six sides angled to form a pyramid made up of three rhombs. These rhombs have specific angles, and the three that create the base of a single cell on one side of the comb are part of the bases of three neighboring cells on the other side. Between the highly perfected cells of the hive-bee and the simpler ones of the humble-bee, we have the cells of the Mexican Melipona domestica, carefully described and illustrated by Pierre Huber. The Melipona itself has a structure that falls between the hive and humble bee but is more similar to the latter: it constructs a nearly regular wax comb with cylindrical cells for hatching young, as well as some larger wax cells for storing honey. These larger cells are almost spherical and of similar sizes, clustered into an irregular mass. However, a key point is that these cells are built so close together that they would intersect if the spheres were finished; but this never happens, as the bees create perfectly flat wax walls between the spheres. This proximity causes each cell to have an outer spherical part and two, three, or more perfectly flat surfaces, depending on how many other cells it is next to. When a cell touches three others, which is often and necessarily the case due to the nearly identical size of the spheres, these three flat surfaces come together to form a pyramid. As Huber noted, this pyramid is clearly a rough imitation of the three-sided pyramidal base of a hive-bee cell. Just like in the hive-bee's cells, the three flat surfaces in any one cell also contribute to the structure of three adjacent cells. It’s evident that the Melipona conserves wax by building this way; the flat walls between neighboring cells are single, not double, and they are the same thickness as the outer spherical parts, yet each flat section serves as part of two cells.

Reflecting on this case, it occurred to me that if the Melipona had made its spheres at some given distance from each other, and had made them of equal sizes and had arranged them symmetrically in a double layer, the resulting structure would probably have been as perfect as the comb of the hive-bee. Accordingly I wrote to Professor Miller, of Cambridge, and this geometer has kindly read over the following statement, drawn up from his information, and tells me that it is strictly correct:—

Reflecting on this case, I realized that if the Melipona had created its spheres at a specific distance from each other, made them the same size, and arranged them symmetrically in a double layer, the resulting structure would likely have been as perfect as a beekeeper’s comb. Therefore, I wrote to Professor Miller at Cambridge, and this geometer generously reviewed the following statement, based on his insights, and confirmed that it is completely accurate:—

If a number of equal spheres be described with their centres placed in two parallel layers; with the centre of each sphere at the distance of radius x the square root of 2 or radius x 1.41421 (or at some lesser distance), from the centres of the six surrounding spheres in the same layer; and at the same distance from the centres of the adjoining spheres in the other and parallel layer; then, if planes of intersection between the several spheres in both layers be formed, there will result a double layer of hexagonal prisms united together by pyramidal bases formed of three rhombs; and the rhombs and the sides of the hexagonal prisms will have every angle identically the same with the best measurements which have been made of the cells of the hive-bee.

If multiple equal spheres are arranged with their centers in two parallel layers, where the center of each sphere is a distance of radius x times the square root of 2 or radius x 1.41421 (or a shorter distance) from the centers of the six surrounding spheres in the same layer, and at the same distance from the centers of the adjacent spheres in the other parallel layer; then, if planes of intersection are created between the several spheres in both layers, it will result in a double layer of hexagonal prisms connected by pyramidal bases made of three rhombs; and the rhombs and the sides of the hexagonal prisms will have every angle identical to the best measurements that have been taken of the cells of a honeybee hive.

Hence we may safely conclude that if we could slightly modify the instincts already possessed by the Melipona, and in themselves not very wonderful, this bee would make a structure as wonderfully perfect as that of the hive-bee. We must suppose the Melipona to make her cells truly spherical, and of equal sizes; and this would not be very surprising, seeing that she already does so to a certain extent, and seeing what perfectly cylindrical burrows in wood many insects can make, apparently by turning round on a fixed point. We must suppose the Melipona to arrange her cells in level layers, as she already does her cylindrical cells; and we must further suppose, and this is the greatest difficulty, that she can somehow judge accurately at what distance to stand from her fellow-labourers when several are making their spheres; but she is already so far enabled to judge of distance, that she always describes her spheres so as to intersect largely; and then she unites the points of intersection by perfectly flat surfaces. We have further to suppose, but this is no difficulty, that after hexagonal prisms have been formed by the intersection of adjoining spheres in the same layer, she can prolong the hexagon to any length requisite to hold the stock of honey; in the same way as the rude humble-bee adds cylinders of wax to the circular mouths of her old cocoons. By such modifications of instincts in themselves not very wonderful,—hardly more wonderful than those which guide a bird to make its nest,—I believe that the hive-bee has acquired, through natural selection, her inimitable architectural powers.

Therefore, we can confidently say that if we could slightly change the instincts that the Melipona already has, which aren’t particularly astonishing, this bee could create a structure as impressively perfect as that of the hive bee. We should assume the Melipona makes her cells completely spherical and of equal sizes; this wouldn’t be very surprising, considering she already does this to some extent, and given how many insects can craft perfectly cylindrical burrows in wood by rotating around a fixed point. We should also assume the Melipona arranges her cells in level layers, just like she currently does with her cylindrical cells; and we need to further assume, which is the biggest challenge, that she can somehow accurately gauge how far to stand from her fellow workers while several of them are creating their spheres. However, she has already shown an ability to judge distance well enough that she always constructs her spheres in a way that they intersect significantly, and then she connects the intersection points with perfectly flat surfaces. Furthermore, we must assume, but this is not a problem, that after hexagonal prisms have been formed by the intersection of adjacent spheres in the same layer, she can extend the hexagon to any length necessary to store honey, similar to how the basic humble bee adds wax cylinders to the circular openings of her old cocoons. Through such modifications of instincts that aren’t really that extraordinary—barely more remarkable than those that direct a bird while building its nest—I believe that the hive bee has developed, through natural selection, her unmatched architectural abilities.

But this theory can be tested by experiment. Following the example of Mr. Tegetmeier, I separated two combs, and put between them a long, thick, square strip of wax: the bees instantly began to excavate minute circular pits in it; and as they deepened these little pits, they made them wider and wider until they were converted into shallow basins, appearing to the eye perfectly true or parts of a sphere, and of about the diameter of a cell. It was most interesting to me to observe that wherever several bees had begun to excavate these basins near together, they had begun their work at such a distance from each other, that by the time the basins had acquired the above stated width (i.e. about the width of an ordinary cell), and were in depth about one sixth of the diameter of the sphere of which they formed a part, the rims of the basins intersected or broke into each other. As soon as this occurred, the bees ceased to excavate, and began to build up flat walls of wax on the lines of intersection between the basins, so that each hexagonal prism was built upon the festooned edge of a smooth basin, instead of on the straight edges of a three-sided pyramid as in the case of ordinary cells.

But this theory can be tested through experimentation. Following Mr. Tegetmeier's example, I separated two combs and placed a long, thick, square strip of wax between them. The bees immediately started to dig tiny circular pits in it, and as they deepened these pits, they widened them until they became shallow basins, appearing perfectly round and about the diameter of a cell. I found it fascinating to see that when multiple bees began excavating these basins close to one another, they started their work at such a distance apart that by the time the basins reached the width mentioned earlier (about the width of a regular cell) and were about one-sixth the depth of the sphere they formed a part of, the rims of the basins intersected or merged with each other. Once this happened, the bees stopped digging and began to build flat walls of wax along the lines where the basins intersected, so that each hexagonal prism was constructed on the curved edge of a smooth basin rather than on the straight edges of a three-sided pyramid, as is the case with standard cells.

I then put into the hive, instead of a thick, square piece of wax, a thin and narrow, knife-edged ridge, coloured with vermilion. The bees instantly began on both sides to excavate little basins near to each other, in the same way as before; but the ridge of wax was so thin, that the bottoms of the basins, if they had been excavated to the same depth as in the former experiment, would have broken into each other from the opposite sides. The bees, however, did not suffer this to happen, and they stopped their excavations in due time; so that the basins, as soon as they had been a little deepened, came to have flat bottoms; and these flat bottoms, formed by thin little plates of the vermilion wax having been left ungnawed, were situated, as far as the eye could judge, exactly along the planes of imaginary intersection between the basins on the opposite sides of the ridge of wax. In parts, only little bits, in other parts, large portions of a rhombic plate had been left between the opposed basins, but the work, from the unnatural state of things, had not been neatly performed. The bees must have worked at very nearly the same rate on the opposite sides of the ridge of vermilion wax, as they circularly gnawed away and deepened the basins on both sides, in order to have succeeded in thus leaving flat plates between the basins, by stopping work along the intermediate planes or planes of intersection.

I then placed a thin, narrow, knife-edged ridge of vermilion-colored wax into the hive instead of a thick, square piece. The bees immediately started digging small basins on both sides, just like before, but the ridge of wax was so thin that if they dug as deep as in the previous experiment, the bottoms of the basins would have broken into each other from opposite sides. However, the bees prevented this from happening and stopped their digging at the right time. As a result, once the basins were slightly deepened, they ended up with flat bottoms. These flat bottoms, formed by thin plates of the vermilion wax that had not been chewed away, were positioned, at least from what could be seen, perfectly along the imaginary lines of intersection between the basins on either side of the wax ridge. In some areas, only small pieces, while in others, larger sections of a rhombic plate were left between the opposing basins, but the work, due to the unusual situation, wasn’t done neatly. The bees must have worked at nearly the same pace on both sides of the vermilion wax ridge, as they gnawed and deepened the basins on either side, successfully leaving flat plates between them by stopping work along the intermediate planes or lines of intersection.

Considering how flexible thin wax is, I do not see that there is any difficulty in the bees, whilst at work on the two sides of a strip of wax, perceiving when they have gnawed the wax away to the proper thinness, and then stopping their work. In ordinary combs it has appeared to me that the bees do not always succeed in working at exactly the same rate from the opposite sides; for I have noticed half-completed rhombs at the base of a just-commenced cell, which were slightly concave on one side, where I suppose that the bees had excavated too quickly, and convex on the opposed side, where the bees had worked less quickly. In one well-marked instance, I put the comb back into the hive, and allowed the bees to go on working for a short time, and again examined the cell, and I found that the rhombic plate had been completed, and had become perfectly flat: it was absolutely impossible, from the extreme thinness of the little rhombic plate, that they could have effected this by gnawing away the convex side; and I suspect that the bees in such cases stand in the opposed cells and push and bend the ductile and warm wax (which as I have tried is easily done) into its proper intermediate plane, and thus flatten it.

Considering how flexible thin wax is, I don’t see any reason why the bees, while working on both sides of a strip of wax, wouldn’t notice when they’ve chewed the wax down to the right thinness and then stop their work. In regular combs, it seems to me that the bees don’t always work at the same speed from the opposite sides; I’ve noticed half-finished rhombuses at the base of a newly started cell that were slightly concave on one side, where I think the bees dug too quickly, and convex on the opposite side, where they worked more slowly. In one clear case, I put the comb back in the hive and let the bees continue working for a bit, then checked the cell again, and I found that the rhombic plate had been finished and had become perfectly flat: it was completely impossible, given the extreme thinness of the little rhombic plate, that they could have flattened it by chewing away the convex side; I suspect that in such cases, the bees stand in the opposing cells and push and bend the soft and warm wax (which I’ve found can be done easily) into its proper flat shape, and thus flatten it.

From the experiment of the ridge of vermilion wax, we can clearly see that if the bees were to build for themselves a thin wall of wax, they could make their cells of the proper shape, by standing at the proper distance from each other, by excavating at the same rate, and by endeavouring to make equal spherical hollows, but never allowing the spheres to break into each other. Now bees, as may be clearly seen by examining the edge of a growing comb, do make a rough, circumferential wall or rim all round the comb; and they gnaw into this from the opposite sides, always working circularly as they deepen each cell. They do not make the whole three-sided pyramidal base of any one cell at the same time, but only the one rhombic plate which stands on the extreme growing margin, or the two plates, as the case may be; and they never complete the upper edges of the rhombic plates, until the hexagonal walls are commenced. Some of these statements differ from those made by the justly celebrated elder Huber, but I am convinced of their accuracy; and if I had space, I could show that they are conformable with my theory.

From the experiment with the ridge of red wax, we can clearly see that if the bees were to create a thin wall of wax for themselves, they could shape their cells properly by maintaining the right distance from each other, excavating at the same speed, and trying to create equal spherical hollows without letting the spheres merge into each other. Now, as can be clearly seen by examining the edge of a growing comb, bees do form a rough, circular wall or rim around the comb; and they chew into this from opposite sides, always working in a circular motion as they deepen each cell. They don’t build the entire three-sided pyramidal base of a cell at once, but only the one rhombic plate at the very edge of the growing margin, or two plates, depending on the situation; and they never finish the upper edges of the rhombic plates until they start the hexagonal walls. Some of these points differ from what the well-respected elder Huber stated, but I am confident in their accuracy; and if I had more space, I could demonstrate that they align with my theory.

Huber’s statement that the very first cell is excavated out of a little parallel-sided wall of wax, is not, as far as I have seen, strictly correct; the first commencement having always been a little hood of wax; but I will not here enter on these details. We see how important a part excavation plays in the construction of the cells; but it would be a great error to suppose that the bees cannot build up a rough wall of wax in the proper position—that is, along the plane of intersection between two adjoining spheres. I have several specimens showing clearly that they can do this. Even in the rude circumferential rim or wall of wax round a growing comb, flexures may sometimes be observed, corresponding in position to the planes of the rhombic basal plates of future cells. But the rough wall of wax has in every case to be finished off, by being largely gnawed away on both sides. The manner in which the bees build is curious; they always make the first rough wall from ten to twenty times thicker than the excessively thin finished wall of the cell, which will ultimately be left. We shall understand how they work, by supposing masons first to pile up a broad ridge of cement, and then to begin cutting it away equally on both sides near the ground, till a smooth, very thin wall is left in the middle; the masons always piling up the cut-away cement, and adding fresh cement, on the summit of the ridge. We shall thus have a thin wall steadily growing upward; but always crowned by a gigantic coping. From all the cells, both those just commenced and those completed, being thus crowned by a strong coping of wax, the bees can cluster and crawl over the comb without injuring the delicate hexagonal walls, which are only about one four-hundredth of an inch in thickness; the plates of the pyramidal basis being about twice as thick. By this singular manner of building, strength is continually given to the comb, with the utmost ultimate economy of wax.

Huber's claim that the very first cell is carved out of a small, straight wall of wax is not, from what I've seen, entirely accurate; the initial structure has always been a small hood of wax. However, I won’t go into those details here. It’s clear how crucial excavation is in building the cells, but it would be incorrect to think that bees can't create a rough wall of wax in the right position—that is, along the intersection of two adjacent spheres. I have several examples that clearly show they can do this. Even in the rough outer rim or wall of wax around a growing comb, you can sometimes see bends that align with where the rhombic base plates of future cells will be. But in every case, this rough wax wall must be refined by being gnawed away on both sides. The way bees build is interesting; they always start by making the initial rough wall ten to twenty times thicker than the very thin finished wall that will eventually remain. We can visualize their process like masons who first create a wide mound of cement, then begin to trim it down evenly on both sides near the bottom, until a smooth, thin wall is left in the center. The masons continuously pile up the cement they cut away and add more cement to the top of the mound. This results in a thin wall gradually rising while still topped by a large coping. Because all of the cells, both those just started and those completed, are topped with a strong wax coping, bees can gather and move over the comb without damaging the delicate hexagonal walls, which are only about one four-hundredth of an inch thick; the plates of the pyramidal base are about twice that thickness. This unique way of building ensures the comb is consistently reinforced while using the least amount of wax possible.

It seems at first to add to the difficulty of understanding how the cells are made, that a multitude of bees all work together; one bee after working a short time at one cell going to another, so that, as Huber has stated, a score of individuals work even at the commencement of the first cell. I was able practically to show this fact, by covering the edges of the hexagonal walls of a single cell, or the extreme margin of the circumferential rim of a growing comb, with an extremely thin layer of melted vermilion wax; and I invariably found that the colour was most delicately diffused by the bees—as delicately as a painter could have done with his brush—by atoms of the coloured wax having been taken from the spot on which it had been placed, and worked into the growing edges of the cells all round. The work of construction seems to be a sort of balance struck between many bees, all instinctively standing at the same relative distance from each other, all trying to sweep equal spheres, and then building up, or leaving ungnawed, the planes of intersection between these spheres. It was really curious to note in cases of difficulty, as when two pieces of comb met at an angle, how often the bees would entirely pull down and rebuild in different ways the same cell, sometimes recurring to a shape which they had at first rejected.

At first, it seems to complicate understanding how the cells are made because many bees collaborate; one bee works on a cell for a short while before moving to another. As Huber pointed out, a group of bees begins working on the first cell right from the start. I was able to demonstrate this by covering the edges of the hexagonal walls of a single cell, or the very edge of the outer rim of a growing comb, with a thin layer of melted red wax. I consistently observed that the color was spread out by the bees as delicately as an artist would use a brush—by tiny bits of the colored wax being taken from where it was placed and worked into the growing edges of the cells all around. The construction process seems to be a balance between many bees, all instinctively keeping the same distance from each other, all trying to create equal spaces, and then either building or leaving untouched the boundaries between these spaces. It was fascinating to observe that when encountering problems, such as when two pieces of comb met at an angle, the bees often completely tore down and rebuilt the same cell in different ways, sometimes reverting to a shape they had initially discarded.

When bees have a place on which they can stand in their proper positions for working,—for instance, on a slip of wood, placed directly under the middle of a comb growing downwards so that the comb has to be built over one face of the slip—in this case the bees can lay the foundations of one wall of a new hexagon, in its strictly proper place, projecting beyond the other completed cells. It suffices that the bees should be enabled to stand at their proper relative distances from each other and from the walls of the last completed cells, and then, by striking imaginary spheres, they can build up a wall intermediate between two adjoining spheres; but, as far as I have seen, they never gnaw away and finish off the angles of a cell till a large part both of that cell and of the adjoining cells has been built. This capacity in bees of laying down under certain circumstances a rough wall in its proper place between two just-commenced cells, is important, as it bears on a fact, which seems at first quite subversive of the foregoing theory; namely, that the cells on the extreme margin of wasp-combs are sometimes strictly hexagonal; but I have not space here to enter on this subject. Nor does there seem to me any great difficulty in a single insect (as in the case of a queen-wasp) making hexagonal cells, if she work alternately on the inside and outside of two or three cells commenced at the same time, always standing at the proper relative distance from the parts of the cells just begun, sweeping spheres or cylinders, and building up intermediate planes. It is even conceivable that an insect might, by fixing on a point at which to commence a cell, and then moving outside, first to one point, and then to five other points, at the proper relative distances from the central point and from each other, strike the planes of intersection, and so make an isolated hexagon: but I am not aware that any such case has been observed; nor would any good be derived from a single hexagon being built, as in its construction more materials would be required than for a cylinder.

When bees have a stable spot to stand in their right positions for working—like a piece of wood placed directly under the middle of a downward-growing comb, so that the comb has to be built over one side of the wood—in this scenario, the bees can start building one wall of a new hexagon in its exact spot, sticking out from the other finished cells. It’s enough that the bees can stand at the correct distances from each other and from the walls of the recently completed cells. Then, by imagining spheres, they can create a wall between two neighboring spheres. However, from what I’ve seen, they usually don’t trim and finish the corners of a cell until a significant part of that cell and the adjacent ones is already built. This ability of bees to lay down a rough wall in its correct position between two newly started cells is significant, as it relates to a fact that initially seems to contradict the previous theory: the cells on the edge of wasp combs can sometimes be perfectly hexagonal, but I don’t have enough space to discuss this further. I also don’t think it’s particularly challenging for a single insect (like a queen wasp) to create hexagonal cells if she alternates between working on the inside and outside of two or three cells started at the same time, always maintaining the correct distance from the parts of the cells that have just begun, forming spheres or cylinders, and building up connecting planes. It’s even possible that an insect could start a cell from a specific point and then move outward to one point, then to five other points, keeping the proper distances from the starting point and from each other, strike the planes of intersection, and create an isolated hexagon. However, I’m not aware of any instances of this occurring, and constructing a single hexagon would not be beneficial since it would require more materials than a cylinder.

As natural selection acts only by the accumulation of slight modifications of structure or instinct, each profitable to the individual under its conditions of life, it may reasonably be asked, how a long and graduated succession of modified architectural instincts, all tending towards the present perfect plan of construction, could have profited the progenitors of the hive-bee? I think the answer is not difficult: it is known that bees are often hard pressed to get sufficient nectar; and I am informed by Mr. Tegetmeier that it has been experimentally found that no less than from twelve to fifteen pounds of dry sugar are consumed by a hive of bees for the secretion of each pound of wax; so that a prodigious quantity of fluid nectar must be collected and consumed by the bees in a hive for the secretion of the wax necessary for the construction of their combs. Moreover, many bees have to remain idle for many days during the process of secretion. A large store of honey is indispensable to support a large stock of bees during the winter; and the security of the hive is known mainly to depend on a large number of bees being supported. Hence the saving of wax by largely saving honey must be a most important element of success in any family of bees. Of course the success of any species of bee may be dependent on the number of its parasites or other enemies, or on quite distinct causes, and so be altogether independent of the quantity of honey which the bees could collect. But let us suppose that this latter circumstance determined, as it probably often does determine, the numbers of a humble-bee which could exist in a country; and let us further suppose that the community lived throughout the winter, and consequently required a store of honey: there can in this case be no doubt that it would be an advantage to our humble-bee, if a slight modification of her instinct led her to make her waxen cells near together, so as to intersect a little; for a wall in common even to two adjoining cells, would save some little wax. Hence it would continually be more and more advantageous to our humble-bee, if she were to make her cells more and more regular, nearer together, and aggregated into a mass, like the cells of the Melipona; for in this case a large part of the bounding surface of each cell would serve to bound other cells, and much wax would be saved. Again, from the same cause, it would be advantageous to the Melipona, if she were to make her cells closer together, and more regular in every way than at present; for then, as we have seen, the spherical surfaces would wholly disappear, and would all be replaced by plane surfaces; and the Melipona would make a comb as perfect as that of the hive-bee. Beyond this stage of perfection in architecture, natural selection could not lead; for the comb of the hive-bee, as far as we can see, is absolutely perfect in economising wax.

As natural selection works through the gradual accumulation of small changes in structure or behavior that benefit individuals in their environments, it's reasonable to ask how a long series of modified building instincts, all leading to the current ideal construction plan, could have helped the ancestors of the hive bee. I think the answer is straightforward: it's known that bees often struggle to gather enough nectar; and Mr. Tegetmeier informed me that experiments show a hive of bees consumes between twelve to fifteen pounds of dry sugar to produce just one pound of wax. This means bees in a hive must collect and use a huge amount of liquid nectar to produce the wax needed for their combs. Additionally, many bees have to stay inactive for days while making wax. A substantial store of honey is crucial to support a large population of bees during winter, and the safety of the hive primarily relies on having many bees supported. Therefore, saving wax by conserving honey must be a key factor in the success of any bee colony. Of course, the success of any bee species might rely on the number of parasites or other threats, or on totally different factors, making it completely independent of the amount of honey the bees can gather. But let's assume that the availability of honey does dictate, as it likely often does, how many humble bees can survive in an area; and let's further suppose that the colony survives through the winter and therefore needs a honey supply: in this case, it’s clear that if a slight change in her instinct led our humble bee to build her wax cells closer together—intersecting a bit—it would be beneficial since a shared wall between two adjacent cells would save some wax. Thus, it would increasingly benefit our humble bee to construct her cells in a more regular arrangement, packed together like Melipona cells; since this way, a significant portion of each cell's outer surface would also form the boundaries for other cells, conserving a lot of wax. Similarly, for the Melipona, it would be advantageous if she built her cells even closer together and more uniformly than she does now; because, as we observed, this would eliminate the rounded surfaces entirely, replacing them with flat surfaces, enabling the Melipona to create a comb just as efficient as that of the hive bee. Beyond this level of architectural perfection, natural selection couldn't go any further; because, as far as we can tell, the hive bee's comb is truly perfect in terms of wax economy.

Thus, as I believe, the most wonderful of all known instincts, that of the hive-bee, can be explained by natural selection having taken advantage of numerous, successive, slight modifications of simpler instincts; natural selection having by slow degrees, more and more perfectly, led the bees to sweep equal spheres at a given distance from each other in a double layer, and to build up and excavate the wax along the planes of intersection. The bees, of course, no more knowing that they swept their spheres at one particular distance from each other, than they know what are the several angles of the hexagonal prisms and of the basal rhombic plates. The motive power of the process of natural selection having been economy of wax; that individual swarm which wasted least honey in the secretion of wax, having succeeded best, and having transmitted by inheritance its newly acquired economical instinct to new swarms, which in their turn will have had the best chance of succeeding in the struggle for existence.

Therefore, I believe that the greatest of all known instincts, that of the hive-bee, can be explained by natural selection making use of numerous, gradual, small modifications of simpler instincts. Over time, natural selection has more effectively guided the bees to create equal-sized spheres at a consistent distance from each other in a double layer, and to build and excavate the wax along the lines where they intersect. The bees, of course, are not aware that they are maintaining their spheres at a specific distance from one another, just as they don’t know the exact angles of the hexagonal prisms and the base rhombic plates. The driving force behind natural selection was the efficiency of wax use; those swarms that wasted the least honey in producing wax did the best. They passed down their newly developed economical instinct to future swarms, which in turn had the best chance of surviving in the struggle for existence.

No doubt many instincts of very difficult explanation could be opposed to the theory of natural selection,—cases, in which we cannot see how an instinct could possibly have originated; cases, in which no intermediate gradations are known to exist; cases of instinct of apparently such trifling importance, that they could hardly have been acted on by natural selection; cases of instincts almost identically the same in animals so remote in the scale of nature, that we cannot account for their similarity by inheritance from a common parent, and must therefore believe that they have been acquired by independent acts of natural selection. I will not here enter on these several cases, but will confine myself to one special difficulty, which at first appeared to me insuperable, and actually fatal to my whole theory. I allude to the neuters or sterile females in insect-communities: for these neuters often differ widely in instinct and in structure from both the males and fertile females, and yet, from being sterile, they cannot propagate their kind.

No doubt there are many instincts that are really hard to explain when it comes to the theory of natural selection—situations where we can't figure out how an instinct could have possibly come about; situations where we don't know of any intermediate steps; situations involving instincts that seem so minor that it's hard to believe they could have been influenced by natural selection; and situations where instincts are almost identical in animals that are so distant in the natural world that we can't explain their similarity through inheritance from a common ancestor, leading us to think they must have developed independently through natural selection. I won't go into all these different cases here but will focus on one particular challenge that initially seemed insurmountable and actually threatening to my entire theory. I'm talking about the neuters or sterile females in insect communities: because these neuters often differ significantly in instinct and structure from both the males and fertile females, and yet, since they are sterile, they can't reproduce.

The subject well deserves to be discussed at great length, but I will here take only a single case, that of working or sterile ants. How the workers have been rendered sterile is a difficulty; but not much greater than that of any other striking modification of structure; for it can be shown that some insects and other articulate animals in a state of nature occasionally become sterile; and if such insects had been social, and it had been profitable to the community that a number should have been annually born capable of work, but incapable of procreation, I can see no very great difficulty in this being effected by natural selection. But I must pass over this preliminary difficulty. The great difficulty lies in the working ants differing widely from both the males and the fertile females in structure, as in the shape of the thorax and in being destitute of wings and sometimes of eyes, and in instinct. As far as instinct alone is concerned, the prodigious difference in this respect between the workers and the perfect females, would have been far better exemplified by the hive-bee. If a working ant or other neuter insect had been an animal in the ordinary state, I should have unhesitatingly assumed that all its characters had been slowly acquired through natural selection; namely, by an individual having been born with some slight profitable modification of structure, this being inherited by its offspring, which again varied and were again selected, and so onwards. But with the working ant we have an insect differing greatly from its parents, yet absolutely sterile; so that it could never have transmitted successively acquired modifications of structure or instinct to its progeny. It may well be asked how is it possible to reconcile this case with the theory of natural selection?

The topic deserves a thorough discussion, but I’ll focus on just one example: working or sterile ants. It’s complicated to understand how the workers became sterile, but it’s not much more challenging than explaining other significant structural changes. Some insects and other articulated animals in nature can become sterile. If these insects were social and it was beneficial for the community to have a number of workers born who couldn’t reproduce, I think it’s quite plausible that natural selection could lead to this outcome. However, I’ll skip over this initial complication. The main issue is that working ants differ greatly in structure from both males and fertile females, particularly in the shape of their thorax and the fact that they lack wings and sometimes eyes, as well as their instincts. Regarding instinct alone, the vast difference between workers and fully developed females would be better illustrated by the hive bee. If a working ant or other neuter insect existed in a typical state, I would have no doubt that all its traits were slowly developed through natural selection; that is, an individual would be born with a slight beneficial structural modification that was inherited by its offspring, which would then vary and be selected again, and so on. But with the working ant, we have an insect that is very different from its parents and also completely sterile, meaning it could never pass on any acquired structural or instinctual modifications to its offspring. One might reasonably wonder how this situation aligns with the theory of natural selection.

First, let it be remembered that we have innumerable instances, both in our domestic productions and in those in a state of nature, of all sorts of differences of structure which have become correlated to certain ages, and to either sex. We have differences correlated not only to one sex, but to that short period alone when the reproductive system is active, as in the nuptial plumage of many birds, and in the hooked jaws of the male salmon. We have even slight differences in the horns of different breeds of cattle in relation to an artificially imperfect state of the male sex; for oxen of certain breeds have longer horns than in other breeds, in comparison with the horns of the bulls or cows of these same breeds. Hence I can see no real difficulty in any character having become correlated with the sterile condition of certain members of insect-communities: the difficulty lies in understanding how such correlated modifications of structure could have been slowly accumulated by natural selection.

First, let's remember that we have countless examples, both in our domestic creations and in those found in nature, of various structural differences that are linked to certain ages and to either sex. We see differences not only related to one sex, but also to the brief period when the reproductive system is active, like the mating plumage of many birds and the hooked jaws of male salmon. We even notice minor differences in the horns of different cattle breeds related to an artificially imperfect condition of the male sex; for example, oxen of certain breeds have longer horns than those of other breeds when compared to the horns of bulls or cows from the same breeds. Therefore, I don't see any real challenge in any trait being linked to the sterile condition of certain members of insect communities; the challenge lies in understanding how such related structural changes could have gradually accrued through natural selection.

This difficulty, though appearing insuperable, is lessened, or, as I believe, disappears, when it is remembered that selection may be applied to the family, as well as to the individual, and may thus gain the desired end. Thus, a well-flavoured vegetable is cooked, and the individual is destroyed; but the horticulturist sows seeds of the same stock, and confidently expects to get nearly the same variety; breeders of cattle wish the flesh and fat to be well marbled together; the animal has been slaughtered, but the breeder goes with confidence to the same family. I have such faith in the powers of selection, that I do not doubt that a breed of cattle, always yielding oxen with extraordinarily long horns, could be slowly formed by carefully watching which individual bulls and cows, when matched, produced oxen with the longest horns; and yet no one ox could ever have propagated its kind. Thus I believe it has been with social insects: a slight modification of structure, or instinct, correlated with the sterile condition of certain members of the community, has been advantageous to the community: consequently the fertile males and females of the same community flourished, and transmitted to their fertile offspring a tendency to produce sterile members having the same modification. And I believe that this process has been repeated, until that prodigious amount of difference between the fertile and sterile females of the same species has been produced, which we see in many social insects.

This challenge, although it seems impossible, becomes less daunting—or, as I think, disappears—when we remember that selection can be applied to the family as well as to the individual, thus achieving the desired outcome. For example, a tasty vegetable can be cooked, leading to the destruction of the individual, but the gardener plants seeds from the same variety and confidently expects to get nearly the same type. Cattle breeders want the meat and fat to be nicely marbled; even though the animal has been slaughtered, the breeder confidently goes back to the same lineage. I have such faith in the power of selection that I believe it's possible to slowly create a breed of cattle that consistently produces oxen with unusually long horns by carefully observing which bulls and cows, when paired, produce the longest-horned offspring, even if no single ox could ever pass on its traits. I think this is how it has worked with social insects: a slight change in structure or instinct, linked to the sterile condition of certain members of the group, has benefited the community. As a result, the fertile males and females of the same group thrived, passing on to their fertile offspring a tendency to produce sterile members with the same change. I believe this process has been repeated until we've seen the significant differences between the fertile and sterile females of the same species, as noted in many social insects.

But we have not as yet touched on the climax of the difficulty; namely, the fact that the neuters of several ants differ, not only from the fertile females and males, but from each other, sometimes to an almost incredible degree, and are thus divided into two or even three castes. The castes, moreover, do not generally graduate into each other, but are perfectly well defined; being as distinct from each other, as are any two species of the same genus, or rather as any two genera of the same family. Thus in Eciton, there are working and soldier neuters, with jaws and instincts extraordinarily different: in Cryptocerus, the workers of one caste alone carry a wonderful sort of shield on their heads, the use of which is quite unknown: in the Mexican Myrmecocystus, the workers of one caste never leave the nest; they are fed by the workers of another caste, and they have an enormously developed abdomen which secretes a sort of honey, supplying the place of that excreted by the aphides, or the domestic cattle as they may be called, which our European ants guard or imprison.

But we haven't yet addressed the peak of the challenge; specifically, the fact that the neuters of several ant species vary not only from fertile females and males but also from one another, sometimes to an astonishing degree, leading to their division into two or even three castes. Additionally, these castes typically do not blend into one another but are clearly defined; they are as different from each other as any two species within the same genus or even as any two genera in the same family. For instance, in Eciton, there are worker and soldier neuters with extremely different jaws and instincts: in Cryptocerus, only the workers of one caste carry a remarkable type of shield on their heads, the purpose of which is completely unknown: in the Mexican Myrmecocystus, the workers of one caste never leave the nest; they are fed by the workers of another caste, and they possess an greatly enlarged abdomen that secretes a kind of honey, replacing that produced by the aphids, or the domestic livestock as they might be called, which our European ants protect or confine.

It will indeed be thought that I have an overweening confidence in the principle of natural selection, when I do not admit that such wonderful and well-established facts at once annihilate my theory. In the simpler case of neuter insects all of one caste or of the same kind, which have been rendered by natural selection, as I believe to be quite possible, different from the fertile males and females,—in this case, we may safely conclude from the analogy of ordinary variations, that each successive, slight, profitable modification did not probably at first appear in all the individual neuters in the same nest, but in a few alone; and that by the long-continued selection of the fertile parents which produced most neuters with the profitable modification, all the neuters ultimately came to have the desired character. On this view we ought occasionally to find neuter-insects of the same species, in the same nest, presenting gradations of structure; and this we do find, even often, considering how few neuter-insects out of Europe have been carefully examined. Mr. F. Smith has shown how surprisingly the neuters of several British ants differ from each other in size and sometimes in colour; and that the extreme forms can sometimes be perfectly linked together by individuals taken out of the same nest: I have myself compared perfect gradations of this kind. It often happens that the larger or the smaller sized workers are the most numerous; or that both large and small are numerous, with those of an intermediate size scanty in numbers. Formica flava has larger and smaller workers, with some of intermediate size; and, in this species, as Mr. F. Smith has observed, the larger workers have simple eyes (ocelli), which though small can be plainly distinguished, whereas the smaller workers have their ocelli rudimentary. Having carefully dissected several specimens of these workers, I can affirm that the eyes are far more rudimentary in the smaller workers than can be accounted for merely by their proportionally lesser size; and I fully believe, though I dare not assert so positively, that the workers of intermediate size have their ocelli in an exactly intermediate condition. So that we here have two bodies of sterile workers in the same nest, differing not only in size, but in their organs of vision, yet connected by some few members in an intermediate condition. I may digress by adding, that if the smaller workers had been the most useful to the community, and those males and females had been continually selected, which produced more and more of the smaller workers, until all the workers had come to be in this condition; we should then have had a species of ant with neuters very nearly in the same condition with those of Myrmica. For the workers of Myrmica have not even rudiments of ocelli, though the male and female ants of this genus have well-developed ocelli.

People might think I have too much confidence in natural selection when I don't agree that such amazing and well-established facts completely disprove my theory. In the simpler case of neuter insects all belonging to one caste or type, which I believe could be shaped by natural selection, different from the fertile males and females—here, we can safely conclude by comparing with ordinary variations that each small, beneficial change likely didn't first show up in all the individual neuters in the same nest but in just a few. Over time, by continuously selecting fertile parents that produced the most neuters with the advantageous modification, all neuters eventually developed the desired traits. According to this perspective, we should occasionally find neuter insects of the same species in the same nest displaying variations in structure; and we do see this, often, considering how few neuter insects outside Europe have been carefully studied. Mr. F. Smith has demonstrated how remarkably different the neuters of several British ants are in size and sometimes in color; and that the extreme forms can sometimes be perfectly connected by individuals from the same nest: I have personally compared clear gradations of this kind. It often happens that either the larger or smaller workers are the most numerous; or both large and small are abundant, while those of intermediate size are few. Formica flava has larger and smaller workers, along with some of intermediate size; and, as Mr. F. Smith has noted, the larger workers have simple eyes (ocelli), which, although small, can be easily identified, while the smaller workers have rudimentary ocelli. After carefully dissecting several specimens of these workers, I can confirm that the eyes are far more rudimentary in the smaller workers than can be explained just by their relatively smaller size; and I genuinely believe, although I can't state it with absolute certainty, that the intermediate-sized workers have their ocelli in a perfectly intermediate state. So here we have two groups of sterile workers in the same nest, differing not only in size but also in their visual organs, yet connected by a few members in a middle condition. I might digress by noting that if the smaller workers were the most beneficial to the community, and if those males and females that produced more of the smaller workers were continuously selected until all workers ended up in this condition, we would then have an ant species with neuters very similar to those of Myrmica. Because the workers of Myrmica don’t have even rudimentary ocelli, even though the male and female ants of this genus do have well-developed ocelli.

I may give one other case: so confidently did I expect to find gradations in important points of structure between the different castes of neuters in the same species, that I gladly availed myself of Mr. F. Smith’s offer of numerous specimens from the same nest of the driver ant (Anomma) of West Africa. The reader will perhaps best appreciate the amount of difference in these workers, by my giving not the actual measurements, but a strictly accurate illustration: the difference was the same as if we were to see a set of workmen building a house of whom many were five feet four inches high, and many sixteen feet high; but we must suppose that the larger workmen had heads four instead of three times as big as those of the smaller men, and jaws nearly five times as big. The jaws, moreover, of the working ants of the several sizes differed wonderfully in shape, and in the form and number of the teeth. But the important fact for us is, that though the workers can be grouped into castes of different sizes, yet they graduate insensibly into each other, as does the widely-different structure of their jaws. I speak confidently on this latter point, as Mr. Lubbock made drawings for me with the camera lucida of the jaws which I had dissected from the workers of the several sizes.

I can mention one more case: I was so sure I would find variations in key structural features among the different castes of neuters in the same species that I eagerly took Mr. F. Smith up on his offer of several specimens from the same nest of the driver ant (Anomma) in West Africa. The reader might better grasp the extent of the differences among these workers through a precise illustration rather than by actual measurements: it’s like watching a group of construction workers building a house, where some are five feet four inches tall and others are sixteen feet tall; but we have to imagine that the larger workers have heads that are four times bigger and jaws nearly five times larger than those of the smaller workers. Additionally, the jaws of the working ants in different sizes were remarkably varied in shape, as well as in the form and number of their teeth. However, the key takeaway is that while the workers can be categorized into castes of differing sizes, they gradually blend into one another, just like the vastly differing structure of their jaws. I speak confidently about this because Mr. Lubbock made drawings for me using the camera lucida of the jaws I dissected from workers of various sizes.

With these facts before me, I believe that natural selection, by acting on the fertile parents, could form a species which should regularly produce neuters, either all of large size with one form of jaw, or all of small size with jaws having a widely different structure; or lastly, and this is our climax of difficulty, one set of workers of one size and structure, and simultaneously another set of workers of a different size and structure;—a graduated series having been first formed, as in the case of the driver ant, and then the extreme forms, from being the most useful to the community, having been produced in greater and greater numbers through the natural selection of the parents which generated them; until none with an intermediate structure were produced.

With these facts in mind, I believe that natural selection, by acting on fertile parents, could create a species that consistently produces neuters, either all large with one type of jaw or all small with jaws of a completely different structure. Alternatively, and this is our biggest challenge, there could be one group of workers with one size and structure, and at the same time another group of workers of a different size and structure—a graduated series first formed, as seen in the case of the driver ant, and then the extreme forms, being the most beneficial to the community, produced in increasing numbers through the natural selection of the parents that created them; until none with an intermediate structure were produced.

Thus, as I believe, the wonderful fact of two distinctly defined castes of sterile workers existing in the same nest, both widely different from each other and from their parents, has originated. We can see how useful their production may have been to a social community of insects, on the same principle that the division of labour is useful to civilised man. As ants work by inherited instincts and by inherited tools or weapons, and not by acquired knowledge and manufactured instruments, a perfect division of labour could be effected with them only by the workers being sterile; for had they been fertile, they would have intercrossed, and their instincts and structure would have become blended. And nature has, as I believe, effected this admirable division of labour in the communities of ants, by the means of natural selection. But I am bound to confess, that, with all my faith in this principle, I should never have anticipated that natural selection could have been efficient in so high a degree, had not the case of these neuter insects convinced me of the fact. I have, therefore, discussed this case, at some little but wholly insufficient length, in order to show the power of natural selection, and likewise because this is by far the most serious special difficulty, which my theory has encountered. The case, also, is very interesting, as it proves that with animals, as with plants, any amount of modification in structure can be effected by the accumulation of numerous, slight, and as we must call them accidental, variations, which are in any manner profitable, without exercise or habit having come into play. For no amount of exercise, or habit, or volition, in the utterly sterile members of a community could possibly have affected the structure or instincts of the fertile members, which alone leave descendants. I am surprised that no one has advanced this demonstrative case of neuter insects, against the well-known doctrine of Lamarck.

So, I believe that the amazing fact of two clearly defined castes of sterile workers existing in the same colony, both very different from each other and from their parents, has come about. We can see how beneficial their existence has been to an insect social community, similar to how the division of labor helps civilized humans. Since ants work based on inherited instincts and inherited tools or weapons, rather than learned knowledge and manufactured instruments, a perfect division of labor could only happen if the workers were sterile; if they had been fertile, they would have interbred, mixing their instincts and traits. Nature has, I believe, achieved this remarkable division of labor in ant communities through natural selection. However, I must admit that, despite my strong belief in this principle, I never would have thought natural selection could be so effective if I hadn't been convinced by the case of these neuter insects. Therefore, I've discussed this situation, though not enough, to demonstrate the power of natural selection, and also because this presents the most significant unique challenge that my theory has faced. This case is also very interesting, as it shows that in animals, just like in plants, significant changes in structure can occur through the accumulation of many small, what we might call accidental, variations that are advantageous, without the influence of exercise or habit. For no amount of exercise, habit, or intent in the completely sterile members of a community could have affected the structure or instincts of the fertile members, who are the only ones that produce offspring. I'm surprised that no one has used this clear example of neuter insects to challenge the well-known doctrine of Lamarck.

Summary.—I have endeavoured briefly in this chapter to show that the mental qualities of our domestic animals vary, and that the variations are inherited. Still more briefly I have attempted to show that instincts vary slightly in a state of nature. No one will dispute that instincts are of the highest importance to each animal. Therefore I can see no difficulty, under changing conditions of life, in natural selection accumulating slight modifications of instinct to any extent, in any useful direction. In some cases habit or use and disuse have probably come into play. I do not pretend that the facts given in this chapter strengthen in any great degree my theory; but none of the cases of difficulty, to the best of my judgment, annihilate it. On the other hand, the fact that instincts are not always absolutely perfect and are liable to mistakes;—that no instinct has been produced for the exclusive good of other animals, but that each animal takes advantage of the instincts of others;—that the canon in natural history, of “natura non facit saltum” is applicable to instincts as well as to corporeal structure, and is plainly explicable on the foregoing views, but is otherwise inexplicable,—all tend to corroborate the theory of natural selection.

Summary.—In this chapter, I have briefly tried to show that the mental traits of our domestic animals differ, and these differences can be inherited. Even more briefly, I have attempted to demonstrate that instincts vary slightly in the wild. No one can deny that instincts are extremely important to each animal. Therefore, I see no issue with natural selection gradually building up slight changes in instinct in response to different life conditions and in any beneficial direction. In some cases, habits or the concepts of use and disuse likely play a role. I don’t claim that the facts presented in this chapter significantly support my theory, but I believe that none of the issues raised, to the best of my judgment, disprove it. Additionally, the reality that instincts are not always perfectly executed and can lead to mistakes—that no instinct has developed solely for the benefit of other animals, but rather that each animal benefits from the instincts of others—that the principle in natural history, “natura non facit saltum,” applies to instincts just as much as to physical structures, and can be clearly explained by the previously mentioned views, yet is otherwise hard to explain— all of these factors support the theory of natural selection.

This theory is, also, strengthened by some few other facts in regard to instincts; as by that common case of closely allied, but certainly distinct, species, when inhabiting distant parts of the world and living under considerably different conditions of life, yet often retaining nearly the same instincts. For instance, we can understand on the principle of inheritance, how it is that the thrush of South America lines its nest with mud, in the same peculiar manner as does our British thrush: how it is that the male wrens (Troglodytes) of North America, build “cock-nests,” to roost in, like the males of our distinct Kitty-wrens,—a habit wholly unlike that of any other known bird. Finally, it may not be a logical deduction, but to my imagination it is far more satisfactory to look at such instincts as the young cuckoo ejecting its foster-brothers,—ants making slaves,—the larvæ of ichneumonidæ feeding within the live bodies of caterpillars,—not as specially endowed or created instincts, but as small consequences of one general law, leading to the advancement of all organic beings, namely, multiply, vary, let the strongest live and the weakest die.

This theory is also supported by a few other facts about instincts. For example, closely related but definitely distinct species, when living in different parts of the world and under very different conditions, often retain almost the same instincts. We can understand, based on inheritance, why the thrush in South America lines its nest with mud in the same unique way as our British thrush does. We can also see how the male wrens (Troglodytes) in North America build "cock-nests" to roost in, just like the males of our own Kitty-wrens—this behavior is completely different from that of any other bird known. Finally, while it may not be a logical conclusion, I find it much more satisfying to view instincts like the young cuckoo pushing out its foster siblings, ants creating slaves, or the larvae of ichneumonidae feeding inside the live bodies of caterpillars—not as specially designed or created instincts, but as minor outcomes of one overarching law that drives the progress of all living things: to reproduce, to vary, and to let the strongest survive while the weakest perish.

CHAPTER VIII.
HYBRIDISM.

Distinction between the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. Sterility various in degree, not universal, affected by close interbreeding, removed by domestication. Laws governing the sterility of hybrids. Sterility not a special endowment, but incidental on other differences. Causes of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. Parallelism between the effects of changed conditions of life and crossing. Fertility of varieties when crossed and of their mongrel offspring not universal. Hybrids and mongrels compared independently of their fertility. Summary.

Distinction between the sterility of first crosses and hybrids. Sterility varies in degree, is not universal, is influenced by close inbreeding, and can be alleviated through domestication. The rules governing hybrid sterility. Sterility isn't a specific trait but rather a result of other differences. Reasons for the sterility of first crosses and hybrids. Similarities between the effects of different living conditions and crossing. The fertility of varieties when crossed and their mixed offspring is not universal. Hybrids and mixed breeds are compared regardless of their fertility. Summary.

The view generally entertained by naturalists is that species, when intercrossed, have been specially endowed with the quality of sterility, in order to prevent the confusion of all organic forms. This view certainly seems at first probable, for species within the same country could hardly have kept distinct had they been capable of crossing freely. The importance of the fact that hybrids are very generally sterile, has, I think, been much underrated by some late writers. On the theory of natural selection the case is especially important, inasmuch as the sterility of hybrids could not possibly be of any advantage to them, and therefore could not have been acquired by the continued preservation of successive profitable degrees of sterility. I hope, however, to be able to show that sterility is not a specially acquired or endowed quality, but is incidental on other acquired differences.

Naturalists typically believe that when different species interbreed, they have been specifically given the trait of sterility to prevent confusion among all living forms. At first glance, this idea seems reasonable, as species in the same area would likely struggle to remain distinct if they could breed freely. I think the significance of the fact that hybrids are often sterile has been underestimated by some recent writers. In the context of natural selection, this situation is particularly crucial, because the sterility of hybrids offers no benefit to them and therefore could not have developed through the gradual preservation of increasingly beneficial levels of sterility. However, I hope to demonstrate that sterility is not a consciously developed trait but rather a result of other differences that have been acquired.

In treating this subject, two classes of facts, to a large extent fundamentally different, have generally been confounded together; namely, the sterility of two species when first crossed, and the sterility of the hybrids produced from them.

In discussing this topic, two types of facts, which are largely and fundamentally different, have often been mixed up; that is, the infertility of two species when they are first crossed, and the infertility of the hybrids that result from them.

Pure species have of course their organs of reproduction in a perfect condition, yet when intercrossed they produce either few or no offspring. Hybrids, on the other hand, have their reproductive organs functionally impotent, as may be clearly seen in the state of the male element in both plants and animals; though the organs themselves are perfect in structure, as far as the microscope reveals. In the first case the two sexual elements which go to form the embryo are perfect; in the second case they are either not at all developed, or are imperfectly developed. This distinction is important, when the cause of the sterility, which is common to the two cases, has to be considered. The distinction has probably been slurred over, owing to the sterility in both cases being looked on as a special endowment, beyond the province of our reasoning powers.

Pure species have their reproductive organs fully developed, but when they interbreed, they produce few or no offspring. Hybrids, on the other hand, have reproductive organs that don't function properly, especially noticeable in the male components of both plants and animals; although the organs are structurally sound as far as microscopes can show. In the first case, the two sexual elements that create the embryo are fully developed; in the second case, they are either underdeveloped or not developed at all. This distinction is important when considering the cause of the sterility, which is present in both cases. This difference has likely been overlooked because the sterility in both situations is often seen as a special trait, beyond our ability to understand.

The fertility of varieties, that is of the forms known or believed to have descended from common parents, when intercrossed, and likewise the fertility of their mongrel offspring, is, on my theory, of equal importance with the sterility of species; for it seems to make a broad and clear distinction between varieties and species.

The fertility of varieties, which are forms known or thought to have come from common ancestors, when crossed with each other, along with the fertility of their mixed offspring, is, according to my theory, just as significant as the sterility of species; because it appears to create a clear and definite distinction between varieties and species.

First, for the sterility of species when crossed and of their hybrid offspring. It is impossible to study the several memoirs and works of those two conscientious and admirable observers, Kölreuter and Gärtner, who almost devoted their lives to this subject, without being deeply impressed with the high generality of some degree of sterility. Kölreuter makes the rule universal; but then he cuts the knot, for in ten cases in which he found two forms, considered by most authors as distinct species, quite fertile together, he unhesitatingly ranks them as varieties. Gärtner, also, makes the rule equally universal; and he disputes the entire fertility of Kölreuter’s ten cases. But in these and in many other cases, Gärtner is obliged carefully to count the seeds, in order to show that there is any degree of sterility. He always compares the maximum number of seeds produced by two species when crossed and by their hybrid offspring, with the average number produced by both pure parent-species in a state of nature. But a serious cause of error seems to me to be here introduced: a plant to be hybridised must be castrated, and, what is often more important, must be secluded in order to prevent pollen being brought to it by insects from other plants. Nearly all the plants experimentised on by Gärtner were potted, and apparently were kept in a chamber in his house. That these processes are often injurious to the fertility of a plant cannot be doubted; for Gärtner gives in his table about a score of cases of plants which he castrated, and artificially fertilised with their own pollen, and (excluding all cases such as the Leguminosæ, in which there is an acknowledged difficulty in the manipulation) half of these twenty plants had their fertility in some degree impaired. Moreover, as Gärtner during several years repeatedly crossed the primrose and cowslip, which we have such good reason to believe to be varieties, and only once or twice succeeded in getting fertile seed; as he found the common red and blue pimpernels (Anagallis arvensis and coerulea), which the best botanists rank as varieties, absolutely sterile together; and as he came to the same conclusion in several other analogous cases; it seems to me that we may well be permitted to doubt whether many other species are really so sterile, when intercrossed, as Gärtner believes.

First, let's talk about the sterility of species when bred together and of their hybrid offspring. It's impossible to read the various papers and works of those two diligent and impressive researchers, Kölreuter and Gärtner, who nearly dedicated their lives to this topic, without being struck by the common occurrence of some level of sterility. Kölreuter proposes that the rule is universal; however, he simplifies things by categorizing ten cases where two forms, considered distinct species by most, are quite fertile together as mere varieties. Gärtner also claims the rule applies universally, but he disagrees with Kölreuter's ten cases of full fertility. In many other cases, Gärtner has to meticulously count the seeds to prove any sterility exists. He always compares the highest number of seeds produced by two species when crossed and their hybrid offspring with the average number produced by both pure parent species in their natural state. However, I believe there's a serious source of error introduced here: to create hybrids, plants must be castrated and often, more importantly, isolated to prevent insects from bringing pollen from other plants. Nearly all the plants Gärtner experimented on were potted and seemingly kept in a room in his house. There's no doubt that these processes can negatively impact a plant's fertility; Gärtner lists about twenty cases of plants he castrated and artificially fertilized with their own pollen, and, except for cases like the Leguminosæ where manipulation is known to be problematic, half of those twenty plants showed some level of reduced fertility. Furthermore, as Gärtner crossed the primrose and cowslip multiple times, which we have good reason to believe are varieties, he succeeded in producing fertile seeds only once or twice. He also found the common red and blue pimpernels (Anagallis arvensis and coerulea), which top botanists classify as varieties, to be completely sterile together, and he reached the same conclusion in several other similar cases. It seems reasonable to me to question whether many other species are as sterile when interbred as Gärtner suggests.

It is certain, on the one hand, that the sterility of various species when crossed is so different in degree and graduates away so insensibly, and, on the other hand, that the fertility of pure species is so easily affected by various circumstances, that for all practical purposes it is most difficult to say where perfect fertility ends and sterility begins. I think no better evidence of this can be required than that the two most experienced observers who have ever lived, namely, Kölreuter and Gärtner, should have arrived at diametrically opposite conclusions in regard to the very same species. It is also most instructive to compare—but I have not space here to enter on details—the evidence advanced by our best botanists on the question whether certain doubtful forms should be ranked as species or varieties, with the evidence from fertility adduced by different hybridisers, or by the same author, from experiments made during different years. It can thus be shown that neither sterility nor fertility affords any clear distinction between species and varieties; but that the evidence from this source graduates away, and is doubtful in the same degree as is the evidence derived from other constitutional and structural differences.

It's clear that the sterility of different species when crossed varies widely and blends so smoothly, and at the same time, the fertility of pure species can be easily influenced by various factors. For all practical purposes, it's really tough to determine where complete fertility stops and sterility starts. The best proof of this is that the two most experienced observers in history, Kölreuter and Gärtner, reached completely opposite conclusions about the same species. It’s also very enlightening to compare—though I don't have the space to discuss it in detail—the evidence put forth by our top botanists on whether certain ambiguous forms should be classified as species or varieties, alongside the fertility evidence from different hybridizers, or even from the same author across different years. This shows that neither sterility nor fertility provides a clear distinction between species and varieties; instead, the evidence from this angle is nuanced and uncertain, just like evidence from other constitutional and structural differences.

In regard to the sterility of hybrids in successive generations; though Gärtner was enabled to rear some hybrids, carefully guarding them from a cross with either pure parent, for six or seven, and in one case for ten generations, yet he asserts positively that their fertility never increased, but generally greatly decreased. I do not doubt that this is usually the case, and that the fertility often suddenly decreases in the first few generations. Nevertheless I believe that in all these experiments the fertility has been diminished by an independent cause, namely, from close interbreeding. I have collected so large a body of facts, showing that close interbreeding lessens fertility, and, on the other hand, that an occasional cross with a distinct individual or variety increases fertility, that I cannot doubt the correctness of this almost universal belief amongst breeders. Hybrids are seldom raised by experimentalists in great numbers; and as the parent-species, or other allied hybrids, generally grow in the same garden, the visits of insects must be carefully prevented during the flowering season: hence hybrids will generally be fertilised during each generation by their own individual pollen; and I am convinced that this would be injurious to their fertility, already lessened by their hybrid origin. I am strengthened in this conviction by a remarkable statement repeatedly made by Gärtner, namely, that if even the less fertile hybrids be artificially fertilised with hybrid pollen of the same kind, their fertility, notwithstanding the frequent ill effects of manipulation, sometimes decidedly increases, and goes on increasing. Now, in artificial fertilisation pollen is as often taken by chance (as I know from my own experience) from the anthers of another flower, as from the anthers of the flower itself which is to be fertilised; so that a cross between two flowers, though probably on the same plant, would be thus effected. Moreover, whenever complicated experiments are in progress, so careful an observer as Gärtner would have castrated his hybrids, and this would have insured in each generation a cross with the pollen from a distinct flower, either from the same plant or from another plant of the same hybrid nature. And thus, the strange fact of the increase of fertility in the successive generations of artificially fertilised hybrids may, I believe, be accounted for by close interbreeding having been avoided.

Regarding the sterility of hybrids in successive generations, although Gärtner managed to raise some hybrids while carefully preventing them from crossing with either pure parent for six or seven, and in one case for ten generations, he firmly claims that their fertility never improved; instead, it generally decreased significantly. I don’t doubt that this is usually true and that fertility often sharply declines in the first few generations. However, I believe that in all these experiments, fertility has been reduced by an independent factor, specifically close interbreeding. I have gathered a substantial amount of evidence showing that close interbreeding reduces fertility, while the occasional crossing with a distinct individual or variety enhances fertility, leading me to have confidence in this almost universally held belief among breeders. Hybrids are rarely raised in large numbers by researchers, and since parent species or other related hybrids typically grow in the same garden, it’s essential to prevent insects from visiting during the flowering season; therefore, hybrids will usually be fertilized in each generation by their own pollen. I’m convinced that this would be detrimental to their fertility, which is already diminished due to their hybrid origin. This belief is reinforced by a notable observation repeatedly made by Gärtner, that even less fertile hybrids, when artificially fertilized with hybrid pollen of the same type, sometimes show a significant increase in fertility, even despite the frequent negative effects of manipulation. In artificial fertilization, pollen is often randomly taken (as I know from my own experience) from the anthers of another flower just as much as from the anthers of the flower intended for fertilization; thus, crossing two flowers, though likely from the same plant, can occur. Furthermore, whenever complex experiments are being conducted, a meticulous observer like Gärtner would have castrated his hybrids, ensuring that each generation would cross with pollen from a distinct flower, either from the same plant or another plant of the same hybrid type. Hence, I believe we can explain the curious phenomenon of increased fertility in successive generations of artificially fertilized hybrids by the avoidance of close interbreeding.

Now let us turn to the results arrived at by the third most experienced hybridiser, namely, the Honourable and Reverend W. Herbert. He is as emphatic in his conclusion that some hybrids are perfectly fertile—as fertile as the pure parent-species—as are Kölreuter and Gärtner that some degree of sterility between distinct species is a universal law of nature. He experimentised on some of the very same species as did Gärtner. The difference in their results may, I think, be in part accounted for by Herbert’s great horticultural skill, and by his having hothouses at his command. Of his many important statements I will here give only a single one as an example, namely, that “every ovule in a pod of Crinum capense fertilised by C. revolutum produced a plant, which (he says) I never saw to occur in a case of its natural fecundation.” So that we here have perfect, or even more than commonly perfect, fertility in a first cross between two distinct species.

Now let's look at the results from the third most experienced hybridizer, the Honorable and Reverend W. Herbert. He strongly concludes that some hybrids are completely fertile—just as fertile as the pure parent species—similar to Kölreuter and Gärtner’s belief that some level of sterility between different species is a universal law of nature. He experimented on some of the same species as Gärtner. The difference in their results might be partly due to Herbert’s exceptional horticultural skills and his access to hothouses. Among his many important claims, I will mention just one example: “every ovule in a pod of Crinum capense fertilized by C. revolutum produced a plant, which (he says) I never observed to happen in a case of its natural fertilization.” So here we see perfect, or even more than typically perfect, fertility in a first cross between two different species.

This case of the Crinum leads me to refer to a most singular fact, namely, that there are individual plants, as with certain species of Lobelia, and with all the species of the genus Hippeastrum, which can be far more easily fertilised by the pollen of another and distinct species, than by their own pollen. For these plants have been found to yield seed to the pollen of a distinct species, though quite sterile with their own pollen, notwithstanding that their own pollen was found to be perfectly good, for it fertilised distinct species. So that certain individual plants and all the individuals of certain species can actually be hybridised much more readily than they can be self-fertilised! For instance, a bulb of Hippeastrum aulicum produced four flowers; three were fertilised by Herbert with their own pollen, and the fourth was subsequently fertilised by the pollen of a compound hybrid descended from three other and distinct species: the result was that “the ovaries of the three first flowers soon ceased to grow, and after a few days perished entirely, whereas the pod impregnated by the pollen of the hybrid made vigorous growth and rapid progress to maturity, and bore good seed, which vegetated freely.” In a letter to me, in 1839, Mr. Herbert told me that he had then tried the experiment during five years, and he continued to try it during several subsequent years, and always with the same result. This result has, also, been confirmed by other observers in the case of Hippeastrum with its sub-genera, and in the case of some other genera, as Lobelia, Passiflora and Verbascum. Although the plants in these experiments appeared perfectly healthy, and although both the ovules and pollen of the same flower were perfectly good with respect to other species, yet as they were functionally imperfect in their mutual self-action, we must infer that the plants were in an unnatural state. Nevertheless these facts show on what slight and mysterious causes the lesser or greater fertility of species when crossed, in comparison with the same species when self-fertilised, sometimes depends.

This case of the Crinum reminds me of a very interesting fact: some individual plants, like certain species of Lobelia and all species of the genus Hippeastrum, can be fertilized much more easily by the pollen of a different species than by their own. It has been observed that these plants can produce seeds when using pollen from a distinct species, but they remain sterile with their own pollen, even though their own pollen is perfectly viable for fertilizing other species. This means that certain individual plants and entire species can actually be hybridized more easily than they can self-fertilize! For example, a Hippeastrum aulicum bulb produced four flowers; three were fertilized by Herbert using their own pollen, while the fourth was later fertilized with pollen from a complex hybrid made from three other distinct species. The result was that “the ovaries of the first three flowers quickly stopped growing, and after a few days, they completely perished, while the pod fertilized by the hybrid pollen grew vigorously and matured quickly, producing healthy seeds that germinated easily.” In a letter to me in 1839, Mr. Herbert informed me that he had been conducting this experiment for five years, and he continued to do so for several additional years, always with the same outcome. Other observers have also confirmed this result in the case of Hippeastrum and its sub-genera, as well as some other genera like Lobelia, Passiflora, and Verbascum. Although the plants in these experiments appeared to be perfectly healthy, and both the ovules and pollen from the same flower were viable with other species, they were functionally ineffective in self-fertilization, leading us to conclude that the plants were in an unnatural state. Nonetheless, these facts highlight how the lesser or greater fertility of species when crossed, compared to when they self-fertilize, can depend on very subtle and mysterious factors.

The practical experiments of horticulturists, though not made with scientific precision, deserve some notice. It is notorious in how complicated a manner the species of Pelargonium, Fuchsia, Calceolaria, Petunia, Rhododendron, etc., have been crossed, yet many of these hybrids seed freely. For instance, Herbert asserts that a hybrid from Calceolaria integrifolia and plantaginea, species most widely dissimilar in general habit, “reproduced itself as perfectly as if it had been a natural species from the mountains of Chile.” I have taken some pains to ascertain the degree of fertility of some of the complex crosses of Rhododendrons, and I am assured that many of them are perfectly fertile. Mr. C. Noble, for instance, informs me that he raises stocks for grafting from a hybrid between Rhododendron Ponticum and Catawbiense, and that this hybrid “seeds as freely as it is possible to imagine.” Had hybrids, when fairly treated, gone on decreasing in fertility in each successive generation, as Gärtner believes to be the case, the fact would have been notorious to nurserymen. Horticulturists raise large beds of the same hybrids, and such alone are fairly treated, for by insect agency the several individuals of the same hybrid variety are allowed to freely cross with each other, and the injurious influence of close interbreeding is thus prevented. Any one may readily convince himself of the efficiency of insect-agency by examining the flowers of the more sterile kinds of hybrid rhododendrons, which produce no pollen, for he will find on their stigmas plenty of pollen brought from other flowers.

The practical experiments of gardeners, while not conducted with scientific precision, are worth noting. It's well-known how complexly species like Pelargonium, Fuchsia, Calceolaria, Petunia, and Rhododendron have been hybridized, yet many of these hybrids produce seeds easily. For example, Herbert claims that a hybrid between Calceolaria integrifolia and plantaginea, which are very different in general appearance, "reproduced itself perfectly as if it had been a natural species from the mountains of Chile." I've taken some time to determine the fertility levels of some complex Rhododendron hybrids, and I've been told that many of them are completely fertile. Mr. C. Noble, for instance, says he grows rootstocks for grafting from a hybrid between Rhododendron Ponticum and Catawbiense, and that this hybrid "seeds as freely as one could imagine." If hybrids, when treated properly, had consistently shown decreasing fertility with each generation, as Gärtner suggests, this would be well-known among nurserymen. Gardeners cultivate large beds of the same hybrids, and these are treated fairly, as the various individuals of the same hybrid variety are allowed to cross freely with each other through insect activity, thus avoiding the negative effects of close inbreeding. Anyone can easily see the effectiveness of insect activity by looking at the flowers of the more sterile types of hybrid rhododendrons, which produce no pollen; they'll find plenty of pollen from other flowers on their stigmas.

In regard to animals, much fewer experiments have been carefully tried than with plants. If our systematic arrangements can be trusted, that is if the genera of animals are as distinct from each other, as are the genera of plants, then we may infer that animals more widely separated in the scale of nature can be more easily crossed than in the case of plants; but the hybrids themselves are, I think, more sterile. I doubt whether any case of a perfectly fertile hybrid animal can be considered as thoroughly well authenticated. It should, however, be borne in mind that, owing to few animals breeding freely under confinement, few experiments have been fairly tried: for instance, the canary-bird has been crossed with nine other finches, but as not one of these nine species breeds freely in confinement, we have no right to expect that the first crosses between them and the canary, or that their hybrids, should be perfectly fertile. Again, with respect to the fertility in successive generations of the more fertile hybrid animals, I hardly know of an instance in which two families of the same hybrid have been raised at the same time from different parents, so as to avoid the ill effects of close interbreeding. On the contrary, brothers and sisters have usually been crossed in each successive generation, in opposition to the constantly repeated admonition of every breeder. And in this case, it is not at all surprising that the inherent sterility in the hybrids should have gone on increasing. If we were to act thus, and pair brothers and sisters in the case of any pure animal, which from any cause had the least tendency to sterility, the breed would assuredly be lost in a very few generations.

When it comes to animals, far fewer experiments have been thoroughly conducted compared to plants. If we can trust our systematic classifications—meaning if the different genera of animals are as distinct from one another as the genera of plants—we can conclude that animals that are more distantly related in the natural hierarchy can be crossed more easily than plants. However, I believe that the hybrids themselves are more likely to be sterile. I question whether any totally fertile hybrid animal can be considered genuinely verified. It's important to remember that, since few animals breed freely in captivity, there have been limited fair experiments: for instance, the canary has been crossed with nine other finches, but since none of those nine species breed freely in confinement, we shouldn't expect the first crosses with the canary or their hybrids to be completely fertile. Additionally, regarding the fertility in successive generations of the more fertile hybrid animals, I hardly know of any situation where two families of the same hybrid have been raised simultaneously from different parents to avoid the negative effects of inbreeding. Instead, brothers and sisters have typically been crossed in each successive generation, despite the constant warnings from breeders. This practice understandably results in increasing sterility among the hybrids. If we were to do the same and pair siblings of any pure animal that had even a slight tendency toward sterility, the breed would undoubtedly be lost within just a few generations.

Although I do not know of any thoroughly well-authenticated cases of perfectly fertile hybrid animals, I have some reason to believe that the hybrids from Cervulus vaginalis and Reevesii, and from Phasianus colchicus with P. torquatus and with P. versicolor are perfectly fertile. The hybrids from the common and Chinese geese (A. cygnoides), species which are so different that they are generally ranked in distinct genera, have often bred in this country with either pure parent, and in one single instance they have bred inter se. This was effected by Mr. Eyton, who raised two hybrids from the same parents but from different hatches; and from these two birds he raised no less than eight hybrids (grandchildren of the pure geese) from one nest. In India, however, these cross-bred geese must be far more fertile; for I am assured by two eminently capable judges, namely Mr. Blyth and Capt. Hutton, that whole flocks of these crossed geese are kept in various parts of the country; and as they are kept for profit, where neither pure parent-species exists, they must certainly be highly fertile.

Although I'm not aware of any thoroughly verified cases of perfectly fertile hybrid animals, I have some reason to think that hybrids from Cervulus vaginalis and Reevesii, as well as from Phasianus colchicus with P. torquatus and P. versicolor, are fully fertile. The hybrids from common and Chinese geese (A. cygnoides), which are so different that they are usually categorized in separate genera, have often bred in this country with either pure parent, and in one instance, they have bred inter se. This was achieved by Mr. Eyton, who raised two hybrids from the same parents but from different hatches; from these two birds, he produced no less than eight hybrids (grandchildren of the pure geese) from one nest. In India, however, these cross-bred geese must be much more fertile; two respected judges, Mr. Blyth and Capt. Hutton, assure me that whole flocks of these crossed geese are kept in various parts of the country, and since they are raised for profit where neither pure parent species exists, they must certainly be very fertile.

A doctrine which originated with Pallas, has been largely accepted by modern naturalists; namely, that most of our domestic animals have descended from two or more aboriginal species, since commingled by intercrossing. On this view, the aboriginal species must either at first have produced quite fertile hybrids, or the hybrids must have become in subsequent generations quite fertile under domestication. This latter alternative seems to me the most probable, and I am inclined to believe in its truth, although it rests on no direct evidence. I believe, for instance, that our dogs have descended from several wild stocks; yet, with perhaps the exception of certain indigenous domestic dogs of South America, all are quite fertile together; and analogy makes me greatly doubt, whether the several aboriginal species would at first have freely bred together and have produced quite fertile hybrids. So again there is reason to believe that our European and the humped Indian cattle are quite fertile together; but from facts communicated to me by Mr. Blyth, I think they must be considered as distinct species. On this view of the origin of many of our domestic animals, we must either give up the belief of the almost universal sterility of distinct species of animals when crossed; or we must look at sterility, not as an indelible characteristic, but as one capable of being removed by domestication.

A theory that started with Pallas has been widely accepted by modern naturalists: that most of our domesticated animals have evolved from two or more original species that have mixed through interbreeding. According to this idea, the original species must have either produced very fertile hybrids from the start, or the hybrids must have become quite fertile over generations of domestication. I find the second option more likely and am inclined to believe it, even though there’s no direct evidence for it. For example, I believe our dogs have descended from several wild ancestors; however, except for some native domestic dogs from South America, all dogs can breed successfully with each other. Analogy makes me question whether those original species would have freely interbred and produced very fertile hybrids at first. Similarly, there is reason to believe that our European cattle and the humped Indian cattle can interbreed successfully, but based on information shared with me by Mr. Blyth, I think we should consider them distinct species. This perspective on the origins of many of our domestic animals leads us to either discard the belief that distinct species of animals are generally sterile when crossed, or to view sterility not as a permanent trait but as one that can be overcome through domestication.

Finally, looking to all the ascertained facts on the intercrossing of plants and animals, it may be concluded that some degree of sterility, both in first crosses and in hybrids,is an extremely general result; but that it cannot, under our present state of knowledge, be considered as absolutely universal.

Finally, based on all the established facts about the crossbreeding of plants and animals, we can conclude that some level of sterility, both in first crosses and in hybrids, is a very common outcome; however, it cannot, given what we know now, be seen as completely universal.

Laws governing the Sterility of first Crosses and of Hybrids.—We will now consider a little more in detail the circumstances and rules governing the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. Our chief object will be to see whether or not the rules indicate that species have specially been endowed with this quality, in order to prevent their crossing and blending together in utter confusion. The following rules and conclusions are chiefly drawn up from Gärtner’s admirable work on the hybridisation of plants. I have taken much pains to ascertain how far the rules apply to animals, and considering how scanty our knowledge is in regard to hybrid animals, I have been surprised to find how generally the same rules apply to both kingdoms.

Laws governing the Sterility of first Crosses and of Hybrids.—We will now take a closer look at the circumstances and rules surrounding the sterility of first crosses and hybrids. Our main goal is to determine whether these rules suggest that species have been specifically given this trait to prevent them from crossing and mixing together chaotically. The following rules and conclusions are primarily based on Gärtner’s excellent work on the hybridization of plants. I've put in considerable effort to see how these rules pertain to animals, and given how limited our knowledge is about hybrid animals, I was surprised to find that the same rules generally apply to both groups.

It has been already remarked, that the degree of fertility, both of first crosses and of hybrids, graduates from zero to perfect fertility. It is surprising in how many curious ways this gradation can be shown to exist; but only the barest outline of the facts can here be given. When pollen from a plant of one family is placed on the stigma of a plant of a distinct family, it exerts no more influence than so much inorganic dust. From this absolute zero of fertility, the pollen of different species of the same genus applied to the stigma of some one species, yields a perfect gradation in the number of seeds produced, up to nearly complete or even quite complete fertility; and, as we have seen, in certain abnormal cases, even to an excess of fertility, beyond that which the plant’s own pollen will produce. So in hybrids themselves, there are some which never have produced, and probably never would produce, even with the pollen of either pure parent, a single fertile seed: but in some of these cases a first trace of fertility may be detected, by the pollen of one of the pure parent-species causing the flower of the hybrid to wither earlier than it otherwise would have done; and the early withering of the flower is well known to be a sign of incipient fertilisation. From this extreme degree of sterility we have self-fertilised hybrids producing a greater and greater number of seeds up to perfect fertility.

It has already been noted that the level of fertility, both for first crosses and hybrids, ranges from zero to perfect fertility. It's surprising how many interesting ways this gradation can be demonstrated; however, only a brief overview of the facts can be presented here. When pollen from a plant of one family is placed on the stigma of a plant from a different family, it has no more effect than inorganic dust. From this complete lack of fertility, the pollen of different species within the same genus applied to the stigma of a specific species shows a continuous range in the number of seeds produced, reaching nearly complete or even total fertility; and, as we've seen, in certain unusual cases, even an excess of fertility beyond what the plant's own pollen would produce. Similarly, among hybrids, some never produce, and likely never would produce, even with the pollen of either pure parent, a single fertile seed. However, in some cases, an initial sign of fertility may be detected if the pollen from one of the pure parent species causes the hybrid's flower to wither sooner than it normally would; and the early wilting of the flower is well recognized as a sign of early fertilization. From this extreme level of sterility, we observe self-fertilized hybrids producing an increasing number of seeds up to perfect fertility.

Hybrids from two species which are very difficult to cross, and which rarely produce any offspring, are generally very sterile; but the parallelism between the difficulty of making a first cross, and the sterility of the hybrids thus produced—two classes of facts which are generally confounded together—is by no means strict. There are many cases, in which two pure species can be united with unusual facility, and produce numerous hybrid-offspring, yet these hybrids are remarkably sterile. On the other hand, there are species which can be crossed very rarely, or with extreme difficulty, but the hybrids, when at last produced, are very fertile. Even within the limits of the same genus, for instance in Dianthus, these two opposite cases occur.

Hybrids from two species that are really hard to cross and rarely produce any offspring are generally quite sterile. However, the connection between how difficult it is to create the initial cross and the sterility of the resulting hybrids—two sets of facts that people usually mix up—is not as clear-cut as it seems. There are plenty of cases where two pure species can be combined easily and produce lots of hybrid offspring, yet those hybrids are surprisingly sterile. On the flip side, there are species that can be crossed only very rarely or with a lot of effort, but when hybrids do appear, they are very fertile. Even within the same genus, like in Dianthus, these two opposite situations can happen.

The fertility, both of first crosses and of hybrids, is more easily affected by unfavourable conditions, than is the fertility of pure species. But the degree of fertility is likewise innately variable; for it is not always the same when the same two species are crossed under the same circumstances, but depends in part upon the constitution of the individuals which happen to have been chosen for the experiment. So it is with hybrids, for their degree of fertility is often found to differ greatly in the several individuals raised from seed out of the same capsule and exposed to exactly the same conditions.

The fertility of first crosses and hybrids is more easily influenced by unfavorable conditions than the fertility of pure species. However, the level of fertility can also vary naturally; it’s not always consistent when the same two species are crossed under the same conditions, as it partly depends on the genetic makeup of the individuals chosen for the experiment. The same goes for hybrids, whose level of fertility often varies significantly among different individuals that come from seeds of the same capsule and are subjected to the exact same conditions.

By the term systematic affinity is meant, the resemblance between species in structure and in constitution, more especially in the structure of parts which are of high physiological importance and which differ little in the allied species. Now the fertility of first crosses between species, and of the hybrids produced from them, is largely governed by their systematic affinity. This is clearly shown by hybrids never having been raised between species ranked by systematists in distinct families; and on the other hand, by very closely allied species generally uniting with facility. But the correspondence between systematic affinity and the facility of crossing is by no means strict. A multitude of cases could be given of very closely allied species which will not unite, or only with extreme difficulty; and on the other hand of very distinct species which unite with the utmost facility. In the same family there may be a genus, as Dianthus, in which very many species can most readily be crossed; and another genus, as Silene, in which the most persevering efforts have failed to produce between extremely close species a single hybrid. Even within the limits of the same genus, we meet with this same difference; for instance, the many species of Nicotiana have been more largely crossed than the species of almost any other genus; but Gärtner found that N. acuminata, which is not a particularly distinct species, obstinately failed to fertilise, or to be fertilised by, no less than eight other species of Nicotiana. Very many analogous facts could be given.

By "systematic affinity," we mean the similarity between species in their structure and makeup, especially in parts that are crucial for their functions and that show little difference in closely related species. The fertility of initial crosses between species and the hybrids produced from them is largely influenced by their systematic affinity. This is clearly demonstrated by the fact that hybrids have never been created between species categorized by scientists into different families; on the other hand, very closely related species usually cross with ease. However, the link between systematic affinity and ease of crossing isn't always clear-cut. There are many examples of very closely related species that either won’t cross or will do so only with great difficulty, while there are distinct species that can unite very easily. Within the same family, there could be a genus, like Dianthus, where many species can be easily crossed, while in another genus, like Silene, exhaustive attempts have failed to produce even one hybrid between very closely related species. Even within one genus, we see this same variety; for example, many species of Nicotiana have been crossed more frequently than those of almost any other genus, yet Gärtner found that N. acuminata, which isn't particularly distinct, stubbornly wouldn’t fertilize or be fertilized by eight other species of Nicotiana. Many similar facts could be mentioned.

No one has been able to point out what kind, or what amount, of difference in any recognisable character is sufficient to prevent two species crossing. It can be shown that plants most widely different in habit and general appearance, and having strongly marked differences in every part of the flower, even in the pollen, in the fruit, and in the cotyledons, can be crossed. Annual and perennial plants, deciduous and evergreen trees, plants inhabiting different stations and fitted for extremely different climates, can often be crossed with ease.

No one has been able to identify what kind or how much difference in any recognizable trait is enough to stop two species from interbreeding. It can be demonstrated that plants that are very different in growth and overall look, and that have distinct differences in every part of the flower, including the pollen, fruit, and seed leaves, can still be crossed. Annual and perennial plants, deciduous and evergreen trees, plants that live in different environments and are adapted to very different climates, can often be crossed easily.

By a reciprocal cross between two species, I mean the case, for instance, of a stallion-horse being first crossed with a female-ass, and then a male-ass with a mare: these two species may then be said to have been reciprocally crossed. There is often the widest possible difference in the facility of making reciprocal crosses. Such cases are highly important, for they prove that the capacity in any two species to cross is often completely independent of their systematic affinity, or of any recognisable difference in their whole organisation. On the other hand, these cases clearly show that the capacity for crossing is connected with constitutional differences imperceptible by us, and confined to the reproductive system. This difference in the result of reciprocal crosses between the same two species was long ago observed by Kölreuter. To give an instance: Mirabilis jalappa can easily be fertilised by the pollen of M. longiflora, and the hybrids thus produced are sufficiently fertile; but Kölreuter tried more than two hundred times, during eight following years, to fertilise reciprocally M. longiflora with the pollen of M. jalappa, and utterly failed. Several other equally striking cases could be given. Thuret has observed the same fact with certain sea-weeds or Fuci. Gärtner, moreover, found that this difference of facility in making reciprocal crosses is extremely common in a lesser degree. He has observed it even between forms so closely related (as Matthiola annua and glabra) that many botanists rank them only as varieties. It is also a remarkable fact, that hybrids raised from reciprocal crosses, though of course compounded of the very same two species, the one species having first been used as the father and then as the mother, generally differ in fertility in a small, and occasionally in a high degree.

When I refer to a reciprocal cross between two species, I mean a situation where, for example, a male horse is first crossed with a female donkey, and then a male donkey is crossed with a mare: these two species can then be considered to have been reciprocally crossed. There can often be a significant difference in how easy it is to make reciprocal crosses. These instances are very important because they demonstrate that the ability of two species to cross is often completely independent of their systematic relationship or any noticeable differences in their overall structure. On the flip side, these cases clearly indicate that the capacity for crossing is linked to constitutional differences that are not visible to us, which are specific to the reproductive system. This difference in the outcomes of reciprocal crosses between the same two species was noted long ago by Kölreuter. For example, Mirabilis jalappa can easily be fertilized with the pollen from M. longiflora, and the hybrids produced are quite fertile; however, Kölreuter attempted more than two hundred times over the span of eight years to reciprocally fertilize M. longiflora with the pollen of M. jalappa and completely failed. Several other equally notable cases could be mentioned. Thuret observed the same phenomenon with certain seaweeds or Fuci. Additionally, Gärtner found that this variation in how easily reciprocal crosses can be made is quite common, though usually to a lesser extent. He observed it even among forms that are so closely related (like Matthiola annua and glabra) that many botanists classify them merely as varieties. It is also noteworthy that hybrids produced from reciprocal crosses, although made from the same two species with one species serving as the father and then the mother, generally differ in fertility to some extent, and occasionally significantly.

Several other singular rules could be given from Gärtner: for instance, some species have a remarkable power of crossing with other species; other species of the same genus have a remarkable power of impressing their likeness on their hybrid offspring; but these two powers do not at all necessarily go together. There are certain hybrids which instead of having, as is usual, an intermediate character between their two parents, always closely resemble one of them; and such hybrids, though externally so like one of their pure parent-species, are with rare exceptions extremely sterile. So again amongst hybrids which are usually intermediate in structure between their parents, exceptional and abnormal individuals sometimes are born, which closely resemble one of their pure parents; and these hybrids are almost always utterly sterile, even when the other hybrids raised from seed from the same capsule have a considerable degree of fertility. These facts show how completely fertility in the hybrid is independent of its external resemblance to either pure parent.

Several other unique rules could be outlined from Gärtner: for example, some species have an impressive ability to crossbreed with other species; other species within the same genus can significantly influence the traits of their hybrid offspring. However, these two abilities don’t necessarily go hand in hand. There are certain hybrids that, instead of showing an intermediate trait between their two parents, closely resemble one of them. Even though these hybrids might look very much like one of their pure parent species, they are often highly sterile. Similarly, among hybrids that typically show intermediate characteristics between their parents, there are cases of exceptional and unusual individuals that closely resemble one of their pure parents; these hybrids are nearly always completely sterile, even when other hybrids from the same seed capsule exhibit a considerable level of fertility. These observations demonstrate how completely the fertility of a hybrid is independent of its outward resemblance to either pure parent.

Considering the several rules now given, which govern the fertility of first crosses and of hybrids, we see that when forms, which must be considered as good and distinct species, are united, their fertility graduates from zero to perfect fertility, or even to fertility under certain conditions in excess. That their fertility, besides being eminently susceptible to favourable and unfavourable conditions, is innately variable. That it is by no means always the same in degree in the first cross and in the hybrids produced from this cross. That the fertility of hybrids is not related to the degree in which they resemble in external appearance either parent. And lastly, that the facility of making a first cross between any two species is not always governed by their systematic affinity or degree of resemblance to each other. This latter statement is clearly proved by reciprocal crosses between the same two species, for according as the one species or the other is used as the father or the mother, there is generally some difference, and occasionally the widest possible difference, in the facility of effecting an union. The hybrids, moreover, produced from reciprocal crosses often differ in fertility.

Given the various rules that now apply to the fertility of first crosses and hybrids, we find that when forms considered to be distinct species are combined, their fertility ranges from zero to complete fertility, or even to fertility that can exceed under certain conditions. Their fertility is not only highly influenced by favorable and unfavorable conditions but is also inherently variable. It is by no means consistent in degree between the first cross and the hybrids that emerge from this cross. Additionally, the fertility of hybrids does not correlate with how similar they look to either parent. Finally, the ease of creating a first cross between any two species isn’t always determined by their systematic affinity or degree of resemblance. This latter point is clearly demonstrated by reciprocal crosses between the same two species; depending on whether one species or the other serves as the father or mother, there is usually some difference, and sometimes a significant difference, in how easy it is to achieve a combination. Furthermore, hybrids produced from reciprocal crosses often vary in fertility.

Now do these complex and singular rules indicate that species have been endowed with sterility simply to prevent their becoming confounded in nature? I think not. For why should the sterility be so extremely different in degree, when various species are crossed, all of which we must suppose it would be equally important to keep from blending together? Why should the degree of sterility be innately variable in the individuals of the same species? Why should some species cross with facility, and yet produce very sterile hybrids; and other species cross with extreme difficulty, and yet produce fairly fertile hybrids? Why should there often be so great a difference in the result of a reciprocal cross between the same two species? Why, it may even be asked, has the production of hybrids been permitted? to grant to species the special power of producing hybrids, and then to stop their further propagation by different degrees of sterility, not strictly related to the facility of the first union between their parents, seems to be a strange arrangement.

Do these complex and unique rules suggest that species have been given sterility just to keep them from mixing in nature? I don't think so. Why would the level of sterility vary so greatly when different species are crossed, especially considering that it should be equally important to prevent them from blending? Why should individuals within the same species show such varied levels of sterility? Why do some species easily cross and produce very sterile hybrids, while others cross with great difficulty and still create fairly fertile hybrids? Why can there be such a significant difference in the outcomes of reciprocal crosses between the same two species? And why has the ability to produce hybrids even been allowed? Allowing species to produce hybrids and then restricting their further reproduction with varying levels of sterility—levels that aren't directly related to how easily their parents can unite—seems like a strange arrangement.

The foregoing rules and facts, on the other hand, appear to me clearly to indicate that the sterility both of first crosses and of hybrids is simply incidental or dependent on unknown differences, chiefly in the reproductive systems, of the species which are crossed. The differences being of so peculiar and limited a nature, that, in reciprocal crosses between two species the male sexual element of the one will often freely act on the female sexual element of the other, but not in a reversed direction. It will be advisable to explain a little more fully by an example what I mean by sterility being incidental on other differences, and not a specially endowed quality. As the capacity of one plant to be grafted or budded on another is so entirely unimportant for its welfare in a state of nature, I presume that no one will suppose that this capacity is a specially endowed quality, but will admit that it is incidental on differences in the laws of growth of the two plants. We can sometimes see the reason why one tree will not take on another, from differences in their rate of growth, in the hardness of their wood, in the period of the flow or nature of their sap, etc.; but in a multitude of cases we can assign no reason whatever. Great diversity in the size of two plants, one being woody and the other herbaceous, one being evergreen and the other deciduous, and adaptation to widely different climates, does not always prevent the two grafting together. As in hybridisation, so with grafting, the capacity is limited by systematic affinity, for no one has been able to graft trees together belonging to quite distinct families; and, on the other hand, closely allied species, and varieties of the same species, can usually, but not invariably, be grafted with ease. But this capacity, as in hybridisation, is by no means absolutely governed by systematic affinity. Although many distinct genera within the same family have been grafted together, in other cases species of the same genus will not take on each other. The pear can be grafted far more readily on the quince, which is ranked as a distinct genus, than on the apple, which is a member of the same genus. Even different varieties of the pear take with different degrees of facility on the quince; so do different varieties of the apricot and peach on certain varieties of the plum.

The rules and facts mentioned earlier clearly indicate to me that the sterility of both first crosses and hybrids is just a result of unknown differences, primarily in the reproductive systems of the species involved. These differences are quite specific and limited in nature, so that in reciprocal crosses between two species, the male reproductive element of one often interacts effectively with the female reproductive element of the other, but not the other way around. It would be helpful to give an example to explain what I mean by sterility being incidental to other differences, rather than a special trait. The ability of one plant to be grafted or budded onto another is relatively unimportant for its survival in nature, so I assume no one would think this ability is a special trait but would agree that it's due to differences in how the two plants grow. Sometimes, we can understand why one tree won't accept grafting from another due to differences in their growth rates, wood hardness, sap flow, etc., but often we can't find any explanation at all. Significant differences in the size of two plants, such as one being woody and the other herbaceous, one being evergreen and the other deciduous, and their adaptation to very different climates, do not always stop them from being grafted together. Just like with hybridization, grafting ability is limited by systematic affinities, as nobody has been able to graft trees that belong to completely different families. Conversely, closely related species and varieties of the same species can usually, though not always, be grafted easily. However, this ability, like with hybridization, isn't strictly governed by systematic affinity. While many distinct genera within the same family have been successfully grafted, there are instances where species of the same genus cannot take on each other. For example, the pear can be grafted much more easily onto the quince, which is classified as a different genus, than onto the apple, which belongs to the same genus. Moreover, different varieties of the pear can have varying levels of success when grafting onto the quince, and the same goes for different varieties of apricot and peach when grafted onto certain varieties of plum.

As Gärtner found that there was sometimes an innate difference in different individuals of the same two species in crossing; so Sagaret believes this to be the case with different individuals of the same two species in being grafted together. As in reciprocal crosses, the facility of effecting an union is often very far from equal, so it sometimes is in grafting; the common gooseberry, for instance, cannot be grafted on the currant, whereas the currant will take, though with difficulty, on the gooseberry.

As Gärtner found that there are sometimes natural differences among individuals of the same two species when they are crossed, Sagaret believes this also applies to different individuals of the same two species when they are grafted together. Just like in reciprocal crosses, the ease of achieving a union is often not equal, and the same can happen in grafting. For example, the common gooseberry cannot be grafted onto the currant, while the currant can be grafted onto the gooseberry, although it’s challenging.

We have seen that the sterility of hybrids, which have their reproductive organs in an imperfect condition, is a very different case from the difficulty of uniting two pure species, which have their reproductive organs perfect; yet these two distinct cases run to a certain extent parallel. Something analogous occurs in grafting; for Thouin found that three species of Robinia, which seeded freely on their own roots, and which could be grafted with no great difficulty on another species, when thus grafted were rendered barren. On the other hand, certain species of Sorbus, when grafted on other species, yielded twice as much fruit as when on their own roots. We are reminded by this latter fact of the extraordinary case of Hippeastrum, Lobelia, etc., which seeded much more freely when fertilised with the pollen of distinct species, than when self-fertilised with their own pollen.

We've seen that the sterility of hybrids, which have their reproductive organs not fully developed, is very different from the challenge of combining two pure species that have fully developed reproductive organs; yet these two distinct situations are somewhat similar. A parallel can be found in grafting; for Thouin discovered that three species of Robinia, which produced seeds easily on their own roots and could be grafted onto another species without much trouble, became barren when grafted. In contrast, certain species of Sorbus, when grafted onto other species, produced twice as much fruit as when they were on their own roots. This latter observation reminds us of the remarkable case of Hippeastrum, Lobelia, and others, which seeded much more easily when fertilized with the pollen from different species than when self-fertilized with their own pollen.

We thus see, that although there is a clear and fundamental difference between the mere adhesion of grafted stocks, and the union of the male and female elements in the act of reproduction, yet that there is a rude degree of parallelism in the results of grafting and of crossing distinct species. And as we must look at the curious and complex laws governing the facility with which trees can be grafted on each other as incidental on unknown differences in their vegetative systems, so I believe that the still more complex laws governing the facility of first crosses, are incidental on unknown differences, chiefly in their reproductive systems. These differences, in both cases, follow to a certain extent, as might have been expected, systematic affinity, by which every kind of resemblance and dissimilarity between organic beings is attempted to be expressed. The facts by no means seem to me to indicate that the greater or lesser difficulty of either grafting or crossing together various species has been a special endowment; although in the case of crossing, the difficulty is as important for the endurance and stability of specific forms, as in the case of grafting it is unimportant for their welfare.

We can see that, although there’s a clear and fundamental difference between just attaching grafted plants and the joining of male and female elements during reproduction, there’s still a rough parallel between the outcomes of grafting and crossing different species. We need to consider the interesting and complex rules that dictate how easily trees can be grafted onto one another as resulting from unknown differences in their growth systems. Similarly, I believe that the even more complex rules governing the ease of initial crosses arise from unknown differences, mainly in their reproductive systems. These differences, in both situations, tend to align with systematic relationships, which aim to represent all kinds of similarities and differences between living organisms. The facts do not suggest to me that the varying difficulty of either grafting or crossing different species is a specific trait; however, in the case of crossing, this difficulty is essential for the survival and stability of distinct forms, while in grafting, it's not crucial for their health.

Causes of the Sterility of first Crosses and of Hybrids.—We may now look a little closer at the probable causes of the sterility of first crosses and of hybrids. These two cases are fundamentally different, for, as just remarked, in the union of two pure species the male and female sexual elements are perfect, whereas in hybrids they are imperfect. Even in first crosses, the greater or lesser difficulty in effecting a union apparently depends on several distinct causes. There must sometimes be a physical impossibility in the male element reaching the ovule, as would be the case with a plant having a pistil too long for the pollen-tubes to reach the ovarium. It has also been observed that when pollen of one species is placed on the stigma of a distantly allied species, though the pollen-tubes protrude, they do not penetrate the stigmatic surface. Again, the male element may reach the female element, but be incapable of causing an embryo to be developed, as seems to have been the case with some of Thuret’s experiments on Fuci. No explanation can be given of these facts, any more than why certain trees cannot be grafted on others. Lastly, an embryo may be developed, and then perish at an early period. This latter alternative has not been sufficiently attended to; but I believe, from observations communicated to me by Mr. Hewitt, who has had great experience in hybridising gallinaceous birds, that the early death of the embryo is a very frequent cause of sterility in first crosses. I was at first very unwilling to believe in this view; as hybrids, when once born, are generally healthy and long-lived, as we see in the case of the common mule. Hybrids, however, are differently circumstanced before and after birth: when born and living in a country where their two parents can live, they are generally placed under suitable conditions of life. But a hybrid partakes of only half of the nature and constitution of its mother, and therefore before birth, as long as it is nourished within its mother’s womb or within the egg or seed produced by the mother, it may be exposed to conditions in some degree unsuitable, and consequently be liable to perish at an early period; more especially as all very young beings seem eminently sensitive to injurious or unnatural conditions of life.

Causes of the Sterility of first Crosses and of Hybrids.—Now, let's take a closer look at the likely reasons behind the sterility of first crosses and hybrids. These two scenarios are fundamentally different because, as mentioned earlier, when two pure species combine, the male and female reproductive parts are perfect, while in hybrids, they're not. Even in first crosses, the difficulty in achieving a union seems to depend on several distinct factors. Sometimes, there can be a physical impossibility preventing the male element from reaching the ovule, as would happen with a plant that has a pistil too long for the pollen tubes to reach the ovary. It's also been observed that when pollen from one species is placed on the stigma of a distantly related species, the pollen tubes may emerge but fail to penetrate the stigmatic surface. Additionally, the male element might reach the female element but could be unable to lead to embryo development, as seen in some of Thuret’s experiments on Fuci. There’s no clear explanation for these observations, similar to why some trees cannot be grafted onto others. Lastly, an embryo might develop and then perish at an early stage. This possibility hasn't received enough attention; however, based on observations shared with me by Mr. Hewitt, who has extensive experience in hybridizing gallinaceous birds, I believe that the early death of the embryo is a frequent cause of sterility in first crosses. Initially, I was hesitant to accept this idea because hybrids, once born, are usually healthy and long-lived, as evidenced by the common mule. However, hybrids face different conditions before and after birth: when they’re born and living in an environment where both parents thrive, they usually find suitable living conditions. But a hybrid only inherits half of the nature and constitution of its mother, so before birth, while being nourished inside the mother's womb or within the egg or seed, it may be subjected to somewhat unsuitable conditions, making it more likely to perish at an early stage—especially since very young beings tend to be particularly sensitive to harmful or unnatural living conditions.

In regard to the sterility of hybrids, in which the sexual elements are imperfectly developed, the case is very different. I have more than once alluded to a large body of facts, which I have collected, showing that when animals and plants are removed from their natural conditions, they are extremely liable to have their reproductive systems seriously affected. This, in fact, is the great bar to the domestication of animals. Between the sterility thus superinduced and that of hybrids, there are many points of similarity. In both cases the sterility is independent of general health, and is often accompanied by excess of size or great luxuriance. In both cases, the sterility occurs in various degrees; in both, the male element is the most liable to be affected; but sometimes the female more than the male. In both, the tendency goes to a certain extent with systematic affinity, for whole groups of animals and plants are rendered impotent by the same unnatural conditions; and whole groups of species tend to produce sterile hybrids. On the other hand, one species in a group will sometimes resist great changes of conditions with unimpaired fertility; and certain species in a group will produce unusually fertile hybrids. No one can tell, till he tries, whether any particular animal will breed under confinement or any plant seed freely under culture; nor can he tell, till he tries, whether any two species of a genus will produce more or less sterile hybrids. Lastly, when organic beings are placed during several generations under conditions not natural to them, they are extremely liable to vary, which is due, as I believe, to their reproductive systems having been specially affected, though in a lesser degree than when sterility ensues. So it is with hybrids, for hybrids in successive generations are eminently liable to vary, as every experimentalist has observed.

When it comes to the sterility of hybrids, where the reproductive parts are not fully developed, the situation is quite different. I've mentioned several times a wealth of evidence I've gathered, showing that when animals and plants are taken out of their natural environments, their reproductive systems are often significantly impacted. This is, in fact, the main obstacle to domesticating animals. The sterility caused by these unnatural conditions and that of hybrids share many similarities. In both scenarios, sterility is not linked to overall health and is often associated with excessive size or lushness. Sterility appears in various degrees in both cases; in both instances, the male factor is the most likely to be affected, though sometimes the female is more impacted than the male. Additionally, there’s a tendency for certain systematic relationships, as entire groups of animals and plants can become infertile under similar unnatural circumstances, and whole groups of species often produce sterile hybrids. On the flip side, a single species within a group can sometimes maintain full fertility despite significant changes in conditions; and specific species within a group can yield unusually fertile hybrids. You can only find out if a specific animal will breed in captivity or if any plant will produce seeds in cultivated settings by trying it out. Similarly, you won't know if any two species of a genus will create more or less sterile hybrids until you experiment. Lastly, when living beings are kept in non-natural conditions for several generations, they are highly likely to change, which, I believe, happens because their reproductive systems have been specifically affected, though to a lesser extent than what causes sterility. The same goes for hybrids, as they are particularly prone to variation in successive generations, as every researcher has noted.

Thus we see that when organic beings are placed under new and unnatural conditions, and when hybrids are produced by the unnatural crossing of two species, the reproductive system, independently of the general state of health, is affected by sterility in a very similar manner. In the one case, the conditions of life have been disturbed, though often in so slight a degree as to be inappreciable by us; in the other case, or that of hybrids, the external conditions have remained the same, but the organisation has been disturbed by two different structures and constitutions having been blended into one. For it is scarcely possible that two organisations should be compounded into one, without some disturbance occurring in the development, or periodical action, or mutual relation of the different parts and organs one to another, or to the conditions of life. When hybrids are able to breed inter se, they transmit to their offspring from generation to generation the same compounded organisation, and hence we need not be surprised that their sterility, though in some degree variable, rarely diminishes.

So, we see that when living organisms are put in new and unnatural conditions, and when hybrids are created by the unnatural crossing of two species, the reproductive system, regardless of overall health, is similarly affected by sterility. In one case, life conditions have been disrupted, although often to such a small degree that it’s imperceptible to us; in the other case, which involves hybrids, the external conditions have stayed the same, but the organism has been affected by the blending of two different structures and systems into one. It’s almost impossible for two different organizations to combine without causing some disturbance in how the different parts and organs develop, function, or relate to one another and to their life conditions. When hybrids can breed with each other, they pass on the same combined organization to their offspring generation after generation, so it’s not surprising that their sterility, although somewhat variable, rarely lessens.

It must, however, be confessed that we cannot understand, excepting on vague hypotheses, several facts with respect to the sterility of hybrids; for instance, the unequal fertility of hybrids produced from reciprocal crosses; or the increased sterility in those hybrids which occasionally and exceptionally resemble closely either pure parent. Nor do I pretend that the foregoing remarks go to the root of the matter: no explanation is offered why an organism, when placed under unnatural conditions, is rendered sterile. All that I have attempted to show, is that in two cases, in some respects allied, sterility is the common result,—in the one case from the conditions of life having been disturbed, in the other case from the organisation having been disturbed by two organisations having been compounded into one.

However, we have to admit that we can only make vague guesses about several facts regarding the sterility of hybrids. For example, there's the inconsistent fertility of hybrids created from reciprocal crosses, or the increased sterility in certain hybrids that closely resemble one of the pure parent species. I don't claim that what I've mentioned here gets to the core of the issue; I don't provide an explanation for why an organism becomes sterile under unnatural conditions. All I've tried to indicate is that in two similar cases, sterility is a common outcome—one case is due to disrupted life conditions, while the other is due to the organization being disturbed when two organisms combine into one.

It may seem fanciful, but I suspect that a similar parallelism extends to an allied yet very different class of facts. It is an old and almost universal belief, founded, I think, on a considerable body of evidence, that slight changes in the conditions of life are beneficial to all living things. We see this acted on by farmers and gardeners in their frequent exchanges of seed, tubers, etc., from one soil or climate to another, and back again. During the convalescence of animals, we plainly see that great benefit is derived from almost any change in the habits of life. Again, both with plants and animals, there is abundant evidence, that a cross between very distinct individuals of the same species, that is between members of different strains or sub-breeds, gives vigour and fertility to the offspring. I believe, indeed, from the facts alluded to in our fourth chapter, that a certain amount of crossing is indispensable even with hermaphrodites; and that close interbreeding continued during several generations between the nearest relations, especially if these be kept under the same conditions of life, always induces weakness and sterility in the progeny.

It might sound far-fetched, but I think there's a similar pattern that applies to a related but different set of facts. There's an old and almost universal belief, which I believe is supported by a significant amount of evidence, that small changes in living conditions benefit all living things. We can see this practiced by farmers and gardeners who often swap seeds, tubers, and so on from one soil or climate to another and back again. During the recovery of animals, it's clear that even a small change in their routine brings great benefits. Additionally, there's plenty of evidence that breeding between very different individuals of the same species, which means mixing different strains or sub-breeds, results in stronger and more fertile offspring. I believe, based on the information mentioned in our fourth chapter, that a certain degree of crossbreeding is essential even for hermaphrodites; and that continued close interbreeding over several generations between closely related individuals, especially if they're kept under the same living conditions, always leads to weakness and infertility in the offspring.

Hence it seems that, on the one hand, slight changes in the conditions of life benefit all organic beings, and on the other hand, that slight crosses, that is crosses between the males and females of the same species which have varied and become slightly different, give vigour and fertility to the offspring. But we have seen that greater changes, or changes of a particular nature, often render organic beings in some degree sterile; and that greater crosses, that is crosses between males and females which have become widely or specifically different, produce hybrids which are generally sterile in some degree. I cannot persuade myself that this parallelism is an accident or an illusion. Both series of facts seem to be connected together by some common but unknown bond, which is essentially related to the principle of life.

It seems that, on one hand, small changes in living conditions benefit all living things, and on the other hand, slight variations from mixing males and females of the same species—who have changed just a bit—lead to stronger and more fertile offspring. However, we’ve observed that larger changes, or specific types of changes, often make living beings somewhat sterile; and significant crossbreeding between males and females that have developed into different species usually results in hybrids that are generally somewhat sterile. I can't convince myself that this similarity is mere coincidence or an illusion. Both sets of facts appear to be linked by some common but unknown connection, which is fundamentally related to the essence of life.

Fertility of Varieties when crossed, and of their Mongrel offspring.—It may be urged, as a most forcible argument, that there must be some essential distinction between species and varieties, and that there must be some error in all the foregoing remarks, inasmuch as varieties, however much they may differ from each other in external appearance, cross with perfect facility, and yield perfectly fertile offspring. I fully admit that this is almost invariably the case. But if we look to varieties produced under nature, we are immediately involved in hopeless difficulties; for if two hitherto reputed varieties be found in any degree sterile together, they are at once ranked by most naturalists as species. For instance, the blue and red pimpernel, the primrose and cowslip, which are considered by many of our best botanists as varieties, are said by Gärtner not to be quite fertile when crossed, and he consequently ranks them as undoubted species. If we thus argue in a circle, the fertility of all varieties produced under nature will assuredly have to be granted.

Fertility of Varieties when crossed, and of their Mongrel offspring.—It can be argued as a strong point, that there must be a real difference between species and varieties, and that there must be some mistake in everything said so far, since varieties, no matter how much they vary in appearance, can cross easily and produce fully fertile offspring. I completely acknowledge that this is almost always true. However, when we consider varieties that arise in nature, we quickly run into insurmountable issues; if two previously recognized varieties are found to be somewhat sterile when crossed, most naturalists immediately categorize them as species. For example, many of our leading botanists view the blue and red pimpernel, as well as the primrose and cowslip, as varieties, yet Gärtner claims that they are not entirely fertile when crossed, and therefore classifies them as distinct species. If we continue to reason this way, we must certainly accept the fertility of all varieties that occur in nature.

If we turn to varieties, produced, or supposed to have been produced, under domestication, we are still involved in doubt. For when it is stated, for instance, that the German Spitz dog unites more easily than other dogs with foxes, or that certain South American indigenous domestic dogs do not readily cross with European dogs, the explanation which will occur to everyone, and probably the true one, is that these dogs have descended from several aboriginally distinct species. Nevertheless the perfect fertility of so many domestic varieties, differing widely from each other in appearance, for instance of the pigeon or of the cabbage, is a remarkable fact; more especially when we reflect how many species there are, which, though resembling each other most closely, are utterly sterile when intercrossed. Several considerations, however, render the fertility of domestic varieties less remarkable than at first appears. It can, in the first place, be clearly shown that mere external dissimilarity between two species does not determine their greater or lesser degree of sterility when crossed; and we may apply the same rule to domestic varieties. In the second place, some eminent naturalists believe that a long course of domestication tends to eliminate sterility in the successive generations of hybrids, which were at first only slightly sterile; and if this be so, we surely ought not to expect to find sterility both appearing and disappearing under nearly the same conditions of life. Lastly, and this seems to me by far the most important consideration, new races of animals and plants are produced under domestication by man’s methodical and unconscious power of selection, for his own use and pleasure: he neither wishes to select, nor could select, slight differences in the reproductive system, or other constitutional differences correlated with the reproductive system. He supplies his several varieties with the same food; treats them in nearly the same manner, and does not wish to alter their general habits of life. Nature acts uniformly and slowly during vast periods of time on the whole organisation, in any way which may be for each creature’s own good; and thus she may, either directly, or more probably indirectly, through correlation, modify the reproductive system in the several descendants from any one species. Seeing this difference in the process of selection, as carried on by man and nature, we need not be surprised at some difference in the result.

If we look at varieties that have been produced, or are thought to have been produced, through domestication, we still face uncertainty. For example, when we say that the German Spitz dog mixes more easily with foxes than other dogs do, or that certain indigenous South American domestic dogs don't easily crossbreed with European dogs, the explanation that comes to mind—and likely the true one—is that these dogs come from several distinct ancestral species. However, the high fertility of so many domestic varieties, which look quite different from one another, such as pigeons or cabbages, is indeed remarkable, especially when we consider how many species, despite looking very similar, are completely sterile when crossed. Several factors, however, make the fertility of domestic varieties less surprising than it first seems. First, it's clear that just because two species look different does not determine how fertile they will be when crossed, and we can apply the same idea to domestic varieties. Second, some prominent naturalists believe that a long period of domestication reduces sterility in successive generations of hybrids that were only slightly sterile at first; if this is true, we shouldn't expect to see sterility appearing and disappearing under almost the same living conditions. Lastly—and this seems to me the most crucial point—new breeds of animals and plants are created through man's systematic and unconscious ability to select for his own use and enjoyment. He doesn't aim to choose, nor could he choose, minor differences in the reproductive system or other constitutional differences related to reproduction. He provides his various breeds with the same food, treats them similarly, and doesn't want to change their general living habits. In contrast, nature operates uniformly and slowly over long periods, working on the entire organism in ways that benefit each creature. As a result, it may directly or, more likely, indirectly modify the reproductive system in various descendants of a single species. Recognizing the differences in how man and nature select for traits, we shouldn’t be surprised to see some differences in the outcomes.

I have as yet spoken as if the varieties of the same species were invariably fertile when intercrossed. But it seems to me impossible to resist the evidence of the existence of a certain amount of sterility in the few following cases, which I will briefly abstract. The evidence is at least as good as that from which we believe in the sterility of a multitude of species. The evidence is, also, derived from hostile witnesses, who in all other cases consider fertility and sterility as safe criterions of specific distinction. Gärtner kept during several years a dwarf kind of maize with yellow seeds, and a tall variety with red seeds, growing near each other in his garden; and although these plants have separated sexes, they never naturally crossed. He then fertilised thirteen flowers of the one with the pollen of the other; but only a single head produced any seed, and this one head produced only five grains. Manipulation in this case could not have been injurious, as the plants have separated sexes. No one, I believe, has suspected that these varieties of maize are distinct species; and it is important to notice that the hybrid plants thus raised were themselves perfectly fertile; so that even Gärtner did not venture to consider the two varieties as specifically distinct.

I have so far talked as if the different varieties within the same species were always fertile when crossed. However, I believe it's impossible to ignore the evidence of some degree of sterility in the few cases I'll summarize briefly. The evidence is at least as strong as what supports our belief in the sterility of many species. Additionally, this evidence comes from unbiased sources who usually view fertility and sterility as reliable indicators of species differences. Gärtner kept a dwarf variety of maize with yellow seeds and a tall variety with red seeds growing side by side in his garden for several years; even though these plants have different sexes, they never naturally crossed. He then pollinated thirteen flowers of one variety with the pollen from the other, but only one ear produced any seeds, and that single ear yielded just five grains. Given that the plants have separate sexes, it's unlikely that the crossing was harmful. I don't think anyone has suggested that these maize varieties are distinct species; importantly, the hybrid plants that resulted were fully fertile themselves, indicating that even Gärtner did not dare to classify the two varieties as separate species.

Girou de Buzareingues crossed three varieties of gourd, which like the maize has separated sexes, and he asserts that their mutual fertilisation is by so much the less easy as their differences are greater. How far these experiments may be trusted, I know not; but the forms experimentised on, are ranked by Sagaret, who mainly founds his classification by the test of infertility, as varieties.

Girou de Buzareingues crossed three types of gourd, which, like corn, have distinct male and female plants. He claims that their successful fertilization becomes less likely as the differences between them increase. I'm not sure how reliable these experiments are, but Sagaret classifies the plants tested as varieties, mainly based on their infertility.

The following case is far more remarkable, and seems at first quite incredible; but it is the result of an astonishing number of experiments made during many years on nine species of Verbascum, by so good an observer and so hostile a witness, as Gärtner: namely, that yellow and white varieties of the same species of Verbascum when intercrossed produce less seed, than do either coloured varieties when fertilised with pollen from their own coloured flowers. Moreover, he asserts that when yellow and white varieties of one species are crossed with yellow and white varieties of a distinct species, more seed is produced by the crosses between the same coloured flowers, than between those which are differently coloured. Yet these varieties of Verbascum present no other difference besides the mere colour of the flower; and one variety can sometimes be raised from the seed of the other.

The following case is even more remarkable and seems quite unbelievable at first; however, it comes from a significant number of experiments conducted over many years on nine species of Verbascum by a skilled observer and a very critical witness, Gärtner. He found that when yellow and white varieties of the same species of Verbascum are crossbred, they produce less seed than either colored variety would when fertilized with pollen from their own colored flowers. Furthermore, he claims that when yellow and white varieties of one species are crossed with yellow and white varieties of a distinct species, the crosses between the same colored flowers yield more seed than those between differently colored ones. Yet, these varieties of Verbascum show no other differences apart from the color of the flower, and one variety can sometimes be grown from the seed of the other.

From observations which I have made on certain varieties of hollyhock, I am inclined to suspect that they present analogous facts.

From my observations of certain types of hollyhock, I suspect they show similar patterns.

Kölreuter, whose accuracy has been confirmed by every subsequent observer, has proved the remarkable fact, that one variety of the common tobacco is more fertile, when crossed with a widely distinct species, than are the other varieties. He experimentised on five forms, which are commonly reputed to be varieties, and which he tested by the severest trial, namely, by reciprocal crosses, and he found their mongrel offspring perfectly fertile. But one of these five varieties, when used either as father or mother, and crossed with the Nicotiana glutinosa, always yielded hybrids not so sterile as those which were produced from the four other varieties when crossed with N. glutinosa. Hence the reproductive system of this one variety must have been in some manner and in some degree modified.

Kölreuter, whose accuracy has been confirmed by every observer since, demonstrated the remarkable fact that one variety of common tobacco is more fertile when crossed with a very different species than the other varieties. He experimented on five forms that are typically considered varieties and put them to the toughest test, which was reciprocal crosses. He found that their hybrid offspring were completely fertile. However, one of these five varieties, whether used as the father or mother and crossed with Nicotiana glutinosa, consistently produced hybrids that were less sterile than those from the other four varieties when crossed with N. glutinosa. This suggests that the reproductive system of this one variety must have been somehow and to some extent modified.

From these facts; from the great difficulty of ascertaining the infertility of varieties in a state of nature, for a supposed variety if infertile in any degree would generally be ranked as species; from man selecting only external characters in the production of the most distinct domestic varieties, and from not wishing or being able to produce recondite and functional differences in the reproductive system; from these several considerations and facts, I do not think that the very general fertility of varieties can be proved to be of universal occurrence, or to form a fundamental distinction between varieties and species. The general fertility of varieties does not seem to me sufficient to overthrow the view which I have taken with respect to the very general, but not invariable, sterility of first crosses and of hybrids, namely, that it is not a special endowment, but is incidental on slowly acquired modifications, more especially in the reproductive systems of the forms which are crossed.

From these facts; from the significant difficulty in determining the infertility of varieties in their natural state, since any supposedly infertile variety would usually be classified as a species; from the fact that humans only select external traits when creating distinct domestic varieties and do not wish or are unable to evoke hidden and functional differences in the reproductive system; from these various considerations and facts, I do not believe that the widespread fertility of varieties can be demonstrated to occur universally or to create a fundamental distinction between varieties and species. The overall fertility of varieties does not seem to me to be enough to refute my perspective regarding the generally, but not consistently, sterile first crosses and hybrids, which is that it is not a special trait but rather incidental to slowly acquired changes, particularly in the reproductive systems of the forms being crossed.

Hybrids and Mongrels compared, independently of their fertility.—Independently of the question of fertility, the offspring of species when crossed and of varieties when crossed may be compared in several other respects. Gärtner, whose strong wish was to draw a marked line of distinction between species and varieties, could find very few and, as it seems to me, quite unimportant differences between the so-called hybrid offspring of species, and the so-called mongrel offspring of varieties. And, on the other hand, they agree most closely in very many important respects.

Hybrids and Mongrels compared, independently of their fertility.—Apart from the issue of fertility, the offspring of species when crossed and the offspring of varieties when crossed can be compared in various other ways. Gärtner, who strongly wanted to establish a clear distinction between species and varieties, found very few, and what seems to me to be rather insignificant differences between the so-called hybrid offspring of species and the so-called mongrel offspring of varieties. Conversely, they have a lot in common in many important aspects.

I shall here discuss this subject with extreme brevity. The most important distinction is, that in the first generation mongrels are more variable than hybrids; but Gärtner admits that hybrids from species which have long been cultivated are often variable in the first generation; and I have myself seen striking instances of this fact. Gärtner further admits that hybrids between very closely allied species are more variable than those from very distinct species; and this shows that the difference in the degree of variability graduates away. When mongrels and the more fertile hybrids are propagated for several generations an extreme amount of variability in their offspring is notorious; but some few cases both of hybrids and mongrels long retaining uniformity of character could be given. The variability, however, in the successive generations of mongrels is, perhaps, greater than in hybrids.

I will discuss this topic briefly. The key difference is that in the first generation, mongrels are more variable than hybrids; however, Gärtner acknowledges that hybrids from well-cultivated species can also be quite variable in the first generation, and I’ve personally observed clear examples of this. Gärtner also agrees that hybrids between closely related species are more variable than those from very different species, indicating that variability decreases gradually. When mongrels and the more fertile hybrids are bred for several generations, their offspring show a significant amount of variability; but there are a few cases where both hybrids and mongrels maintain uniformity over time. That said, the variability in the successive generations of mongrels is likely greater than in hybrids.

This greater variability of mongrels than of hybrids does not seem to me at all surprising. For the parents of mongrels are varieties, and mostly domestic varieties (very few experiments having been tried on natural varieties), and this implies in most cases that there has been recent variability; and therefore we might expect that such variability would often continue and be super-added to that arising from the mere act of crossing. The slight degree of variability in hybrids from the first cross or in the first generation, in contrast with their extreme variability in the succeeding generations, is a curious fact and deserves attention. For it bears on and corroborates the view which I have taken on the cause of ordinary variability; namely, that it is due to the reproductive system being eminently sensitive to any change in the conditions of life, being thus often rendered either impotent or at least incapable of its proper function of producing offspring identical with the parent-form. Now hybrids in the first generation are descended from species (excluding those long cultivated) which have not had their reproductive systems in any way affected, and they are not variable; but hybrids themselves have their reproductive systems seriously affected, and their descendants are highly variable.

The greater variability of mixed breeds compared to hybrids isn’t surprising to me at all. The parents of mixed breeds are different varieties, mainly domestic ones (very few experiments have been conducted on natural varieties), which usually means there has been recent variability. Therefore, we can expect that this variability would often continue and be added to the variability that comes from simply crossing them. The small amount of variability in hybrids from the first cross or in the first generation, compared to their extreme variability in the following generations, is an interesting observation that deserves attention. This supports my idea about the cause of ordinary variability: it’s due to the reproductive system being highly sensitive to any changes in life conditions, often making it either ineffective or at least unable to produce offspring that are identical to the parent form. Hybrids in the first generation come from species (excluding those that have been cultivated for a long time) that haven't had their reproductive systems affected, and they don’t show variability; however, hybrids themselves do have their reproductive systems significantly affected, leading to highly variable descendants.

But to return to our comparison of mongrels and hybrids: Gärtner states that mongrels are more liable than hybrids to revert to either parent-form; but this, if it be true, is certainly only a difference in degree. Gärtner further insists that when any two species, although most closely allied to each other, are crossed with a third species, the hybrids are widely different from each other; whereas if two very distinct varieties of one species are crossed with another species, the hybrids do not differ much. But this conclusion, as far as I can make out, is founded on a single experiment; and seems directly opposed to the results of several experiments made by Kölreuter.

But to get back to our comparison of mixed breeds and hybrids: Gärtner says that mixed breeds are more likely than hybrids to revert to one of the parent forms; but if that's true, it's really just a difference in degree. Gärtner also argues that when any two species, even if they are very closely related, are crossed with a third species, the hybrids end up being quite different from each other; however, if two very distinct varieties of the same species are crossed with another species, the hybrids don’t differ much. But this conclusion, as far as I can tell, is based on just one experiment and seems to go against the findings from several experiments conducted by Kölreuter.

These alone are the unimportant differences, which Gärtner is able to point out, between hybrid and mongrel plants. On the other hand, the resemblance in mongrels and in hybrids to their respective parents, more especially in hybrids produced from nearly related species, follows according to Gärtner the same laws. When two species are crossed, one has sometimes a prepotent power of impressing its likeness on the hybrid; and so I believe it to be with varieties of plants. With animals one variety certainly often has this prepotent power over another variety. Hybrid plants produced from a reciprocal cross, generally resemble each other closely; and so it is with mongrels from a reciprocal cross. Both hybrids and mongrels can be reduced to either pure parent-form, by repeated crosses in successive generations with either parent.

These are the insignificant differences that Gärtner points out between hybrid and mongrel plants. However, the similarities in mongrels and hybrids to their respective parents, especially in hybrids created from closely related species, follow the same rules according to Gärtner. When two species are crossed, one sometimes has a dominant ability to imprint its characteristics on the hybrid; I believe this also applies to plant varieties. In animals, one variety often has this dominant power over another variety. Hybrid plants created from a reciprocal cross usually look very similar to each other; the same is true for mongrels from a reciprocal cross. Both hybrids and mongrels can revert to either pure parent form by making repeated crosses in successive generations with either parent.

These several remarks are apparently applicable to animals; but the subject is here excessively complicated, partly owing to the existence of secondary sexual characters; but more especially owing to prepotency in transmitting likeness running more strongly in one sex than in the other, both when one species is crossed with another, and when one variety is crossed with another variety. For instance, I think those authors are right, who maintain that the ass has a prepotent power over the horse, so that both the mule and the hinny more resemble the ass than the horse; but that the prepotency runs more strongly in the male-ass than in the female, so that the mule, which is the offspring of the male-ass and mare, is more like an ass, than is the hinny, which is the offspring of the female-ass and stallion.

These various observations seem to apply to animals; however, the topic is quite complex due to the presence of secondary sexual traits and especially because of the stronger ability in one sex to pass on traits compared to the other, both when one species is crossed with another and when one variety is crossed with another variety. For example, I think those authors are correct who argue that the donkey has a stronger influence over the horse, so that both the mule and the hinny resemble the donkey more than the horse; however, this influence is stronger in the male donkey than in the female, meaning that the mule, which is the offspring of the male donkey and mare, looks more like a donkey than the hinny, which is the offspring of the female donkey and stallion.

Much stress has been laid by some authors on the supposed fact, that mongrel animals alone are born closely like one of their parents; but it can be shown that this does sometimes occur with hybrids; yet I grant much less frequently with hybrids than with mongrels. Looking to the cases which I have collected of cross-bred animals closely resembling one parent, the resemblances seem chiefly confined to characters almost monstrous in their nature, and which have suddenly appeared—such as albinism, melanism, deficiency of tail or horns, or additional fingers and toes; and do not relate to characters which have been slowly acquired by selection. Consequently, sudden reversions to the perfect character of either parent would be more likely to occur with mongrels, which are descended from varieties often suddenly produced and semi-monstrous in character, than with hybrids, which are descended from species slowly and naturally produced. On the whole I entirely agree with Dr. Prosper Lucas, who, after arranging an enormous body of facts with respect to animals, comes to the conclusion, that the laws of resemblance of the child to its parents are the same, whether the two parents differ much or little from each other, namely in the union of individuals of the same variety, or of different varieties, or of distinct species.

Many authors emphasize the supposed fact that only mixed-breed animals closely resemble one of their parents; however, it can be shown that this sometimes happens with hybrids too, although it occurs much less frequently in hybrids than in mixed breeds. Looking at the cases I have gathered of crossbred animals that closely resemble one parent, the similarities mainly relate to traits that are almost monstrous in nature and have appeared suddenly—like albinism, melanism, lack of tails or horns, or extra fingers and toes; these traits do not pertain to characteristics that have been gradually developed through selection. As a result, sudden reversion to the ideal traits of either parent would be more likely to happen with mixed breeds, which come from varieties that are often produced suddenly and are semi-monstrous in nature, than with hybrids, which descend from species that have evolved slowly and naturally. Overall, I completely agree with Dr. Prosper Lucas, who, after analyzing a vast amount of information regarding animals, concludes that the laws of resemblance between offspring and parents are the same, regardless of whether the parents are greatly different or only slightly so, whether they are individuals of the same variety, different varieties, or distinct species.

Laying aside the question of fertility and sterility, in all other respects there seems to be a general and close similarity in the offspring of crossed species, and of crossed varieties. If we look at species as having been specially created, and at varieties as having been produced by secondary laws, this similarity would be an astonishing fact. But it harmonises perfectly with the view that there is no essential distinction between species and varieties.

Laying aside the issue of fertility and sterility, in every other way there appears to be a strong and clear similarity in the offspring of crossed species and crossed varieties. If we consider species as being specially created and varieties as having come from secondary laws, this similarity would be an astonishing fact. But it fits perfectly with the idea that there is no fundamental difference between species and varieties.

Summary of Chapter.—First crosses between forms sufficiently distinct to be ranked as species, and their hybrids, are very generally, but not universally, sterile. The sterility is of all degrees, and is often so slight that the two most careful experimentalists who have ever lived, have come to diametrically opposite conclusions in ranking forms by this test. The sterility is innately variable in individuals of the same species, and is eminently susceptible of favourable and unfavourable conditions. The degree of sterility does not strictly follow systematic affinity, but is governed by several curious and complex laws. It is generally different, and sometimes widely different, in reciprocal crosses between the same two species. It is not always equal in degree in a first cross and in the hybrid produced from this cross.

Summary of Chapter.—The first crosses between forms that are distinct enough to be considered separate species, along with their hybrids, are mostly, but not always, sterile. The sterility varies in degree, and often is so slight that the two most careful researchers who have ever existed have drawn completely opposite conclusions about categorizing forms based on this criterion. The sterility fluctuates among individuals of the same species and is highly influenced by both positive and negative conditions. The degree of sterility doesn’t strictly align with systematic relationships but is determined by several interesting and complex laws. It often differs, and sometimes varies significantly, in reciprocal crosses between the same two species. Additionally, it isn’t always the same in degree between a first cross and the hybrid resulting from that cross.

In the same manner as in grafting trees, the capacity of one species or variety to take on another, is incidental on generally unknown differences in their vegetative systems, so in crossing, the greater or less facility of one species to unite with another, is incidental on unknown differences in their reproductive systems. There is no more reason to think that species have been specially endowed with various degrees of sterility to prevent them crossing and blending in nature, than to think that trees have been specially endowed with various and somewhat analogous degrees of difficulty in being grafted together in order to prevent them becoming inarched in our forests.

Just like when grafting trees, one species or variety's ability to take on another depends on generally unknown differences in their vegetative systems. Similarly, when it comes to crossing, the degree to which one species can unite with another relies on unknown differences in their reproductive systems. There’s no more reason to believe that species have been specifically designed with different levels of sterility to stop them from crossing and blending in nature than to think that trees have been specially designed with various and somewhat similar levels of difficulty in being grafted together to prevent them from becoming intermingled in our forests.

The sterility of first crosses between pure species, which have their reproductive systems perfect, seems to depend on several circumstances; in some cases largely on the early death of the embryo. The sterility of hybrids, which have their reproductive systems imperfect, and which have had this system and their whole organisation disturbed by being compounded of two distinct species, seems closely allied to that sterility which so frequently affects pure species, when their natural conditions of life have been disturbed. This view is supported by a parallelism of another kind;—namely, that the crossing of forms only slightly different is favourable to the vigour and fertility of their offspring; and that slight changes in the conditions of life are apparently favourable to the vigour and fertility of all organic beings. It is not surprising that the degree of difficulty in uniting two species, and the degree of sterility of their hybrid-offspring should generally correspond, though due to distinct causes; for both depend on the amount of difference of some kind between the species which are crossed. Nor is it surprising that the facility of effecting a first cross, the fertility of the hybrids produced, and the capacity of being grafted together—though this latter capacity evidently depends on widely different circumstances—should all run, to a certain extent, parallel with the systematic affinity of the forms which are subjected to experiment; for systematic affinity attempts to express all kinds of resemblance between all species.

The infertility of first-generation hybrids between pure species, which have fully developed reproductive systems, seems to depend on several factors; in some situations, it is largely due to the premature death of the embryo. The infertility of hybrids, which have underdeveloped reproductive systems and whose entire organization has been disrupted by the combination of two different species, appears to be closely related to the infertility that often affects pure species when their natural living conditions have been changed. This idea is supported by another kind of parallel; namely, that crossing forms that are only slightly different enhances the vigor and fertility of their offspring, and that minor changes in living conditions seem to benefit the vigor and fertility of all living things. It's not surprising that the difficulty of mating two species and the sterility of their hybrid offspring generally correspond, even though they result from different causes; both depend on the extent of differences between the species being crossed. Likewise, it's understandable that the ease of achieving a first cross, the fertility of the resulting hybrids, and the ability to graft them together—despite the fact that this ability relies on very different factors—should all be somewhat aligned with the systematic relationships of the species involved in the experiment; because systematic relationships aim to represent the various kinds of similarities between all species.

First crosses between forms known to be varieties, or sufficiently alike to be considered as varieties, and their mongrel offspring, are very generally, but not quite universally, fertile. Nor is this nearly general and perfect fertility surprising, when we remember how liable we are to argue in a circle with respect to varieties in a state of nature; and when we remember that the greater number of varieties have been produced under domestication by the selection of mere external differences, and not of differences in the reproductive system. In all other respects, excluding fertility, there is a close general resemblance between hybrids and mongrels. Finally, then, the facts briefly given in this chapter do not seem to me opposed to, but even rather to support the view, that there is no fundamental distinction between species and varieties.

First crosses between forms recognized as varieties, or similar enough to be seen as varieties, and their mixed offspring are generally, though not completely, fertile. This widespread and almost perfect fertility isn't too surprising when we consider how easy it is to fall into circular arguments about varieties in nature; and when we remember that most varieties have come about through domestication by selecting only external differences, rather than differences in the reproductive system. In all other respects, aside from fertility, there is a strong general similarity between hybrids and mixed breeds. In conclusion, the facts briefly presented in this chapter don't seem to contradict but rather support the idea that there is no essential difference between species and varieties.

CHAPTER IX.
ON THE IMPERFECTION OF THE GEOLOGICAL RECORD.

On the absence of intermediate varieties at the present day. On the nature of extinct intermediate varieties; on their number. On the vast lapse of time, as inferred from the rate of deposition and of denudation. On the poorness of our palæontological collections. On the intermittence of geological formations. On the absence of intermediate varieties in any one formation. On the sudden appearance of groups of species. On their sudden appearance in the lowest known fossiliferous strata.

On the lack of intermediate varieties today. On the nature of extinct intermediate varieties and how many there were. On the long span of time, as indicated by the rate of deposition and erosion. On the scarcity of our paleontological collections. On the irregularity of geological formations. On the absence of intermediate varieties within any single formation. On the sudden emergence of groups of species. On their abrupt appearance in the lowest known fossil-bearing layers.

In the sixth chapter I enumerated the chief objections which might be justly urged against the views maintained in this volume. Most of them have now been discussed. One, namely the distinctness of specific forms, and their not being blended together by innumerable transitional links, is a very obvious difficulty. I assigned reasons why such links do not commonly occur at the present day, under the circumstances apparently most favourable for their presence, namely on an extensive and continuous area with graduated physical conditions. I endeavoured to show, that the life of each species depends in a more important manner on the presence of other already defined organic forms, than on climate; and, therefore, that the really governing conditions of life do not graduate away quite insensibly like heat or moisture. I endeavoured, also, to show that intermediate varieties, from existing in lesser numbers than the forms which they connect, will generally be beaten out and exterminated during the course of further modification and improvement. The main cause, however, of innumerable intermediate links not now occurring everywhere throughout nature depends on the very process of natural selection, through which new varieties continually take the places of and exterminate their parent-forms. But just in proportion as this process of extermination has acted on an enormous scale, so must the number of intermediate varieties, which have formerly existed on the earth, be truly enormous. Why then is not every geological formation and every stratum full of such intermediate links? Geology assuredly does not reveal any such finely graduated organic chain; and this, perhaps, is the most obvious and gravest objection which can be urged against my theory. The explanation lies, as I believe, in the extreme imperfection of the geological record.

In the sixth chapter, I listed the main objections that could be reasonably raised against the views presented in this book. Most of them have now been addressed. One objection, which is the distinctness of specific forms and the absence of numerous transitional links connecting them, is quite evident. I provided reasons why such links are not commonly found today, even in conditions that seem ideal for their existence, specifically in a wide and continuous area with varying physical conditions. I tried to show that the survival of each species is more significantly influenced by the presence of other already established organic forms than by climate; therefore, the key factors affecting life do not gradually fade away like temperature or moisture. I also pointed out that because intermediate varieties exist in smaller numbers than the forms they connect, they are likely to be outcompeted and eliminated during further changes and improvements. However, the main reason we don't see countless intermediate links throughout nature today is due to the very process of natural selection, where new varieties continuously replace and eliminate their parent forms. Yet, the larger this process of elimination has occurred, the more intermediate varieties that must have existed on Earth. So why isn't every geological formation and stratum filled with such intermediate links? Geology certainly does not reveal any finely graduated organic chain; this is probably the most apparent and serious objection to my theory. I believe the explanation lies in the significant limitations of the geological record.

In the first place it should always be borne in mind what sort of intermediate forms must, on my theory, have formerly existed. I have found it difficult, when looking at any two species, to avoid picturing to myself, forms directly intermediate between them. But this is a wholly false view; we should always look for forms intermediate between each species and a common but unknown progenitor; and the progenitor will generally have differed in some respects from all its modified descendants. To give a simple illustration: the fantail and pouter pigeons have both descended from the rock-pigeon; if we possessed all the intermediate varieties which have ever existed, we should have an extremely close series between both and the rock-pigeon; but we should have no varieties directly intermediate between the fantail and pouter; none, for instance, combining a tail somewhat expanded with a crop somewhat enlarged, the characteristic features of these two breeds. These two breeds, moreover, have become so much modified, that if we had no historical or indirect evidence regarding their origin, it would not have been possible to have determined from a mere comparison of their structure with that of the rock-pigeon, whether they had descended from this species or from some other allied species, such as C. oenas.

In the first place, it should always be kept in mind what kind of intermediate forms must have existed in the past according to my theory. I've found it hard, when looking at any two species, to avoid imagining forms that are directly in between them. But this is completely incorrect; we should always look for forms that are intermediate between each species and a common but unknown ancestor. This ancestor would usually have differed in some ways from all its modified descendants. To give a simple example: the fantail and pouter pigeons both come from the rock-pigeon. If we had all the intermediate varieties that have ever existed, we would have a very close series between both and the rock-pigeon. However, we would not have any varieties directly intermediate between the fantail and pouter; none, for instance, would combine a somewhat expanded tail with a somewhat enlarged crop, which are the defining features of these two breeds. Additionally, these two breeds have changed so much that without any historical or indirect evidence about their origin, it would be impossible to determine from just comparing their structure with that of the rock-pigeon whether they came from this species or from some other related species, like C. oenas.

So with natural species, if we look to forms very distinct, for instance to the horse and tapir, we have no reason to suppose that links ever existed directly intermediate between them, but between each and an unknown common parent. The common parent will have had in its whole organisation much general resemblance to the tapir and to the horse; but in some points of structure may have differed considerably from both, even perhaps more than they differ from each other. Hence in all such cases, we should be unable to recognise the parent-form of any two or more species, even if we closely compared the structure of the parent with that of its modified descendants, unless at the same time we had a nearly perfect chain of the intermediate links.

So with natural species, if we look at very distinct forms, for example, the horse and the tapir, we have no reason to think that direct links ever existed between them, but rather between each and an unknown common ancestor. The common ancestor likely shared many general features with both the tapir and the horse, but in certain structural aspects, it may have differed quite a bit from both, possibly even more than they differ from each other. Therefore, in all such cases, we would be unable to identify the parent form of any two or more species, even if we closely compared the structure of the parent with that of its modified descendants, unless we also had a nearly complete chain of the intermediate links.

It is just possible by my theory, that one of two living forms might have descended from the other; for instance, a horse from a tapir; and in this case direct intermediate links will have existed between them. But such a case would imply that one form had remained for a very long period unaltered, whilst its descendants had undergone a vast amount of change; and the principle of competition between organism and organism, between child and parent, will render this a very rare event; for in all cases the new and improved forms of life will tend to supplant the old and unimproved forms.

It's possible according to my theory that one living form might have evolved from another; for example, a horse could have come from a tapir. In this case, there would have been direct intermediate links between them. However, this would suggest that one form stayed the same for a very long time while its descendants underwent significant changes. The competition between organisms and between parent and offspring would make this a very rare occurrence because, in general, the new and improved forms of life tend to replace the old and less advanced forms.

By the theory of natural selection all living species have been connected with the parent-species of each genus, by differences not greater than we see between the varieties of the same species at the present day; and these parent-species, now generally extinct, have in their turn been similarly connected with more ancient species; and so on backwards, always converging to the common ancestor of each great class. So that the number of intermediate and transitional links, between all living and extinct species, must have been inconceivably great. But assuredly, if this theory be true, such have lived upon this earth.

By the theory of natural selection, all living species are linked to the parent species of each genus by differences no greater than those we see among the varieties of the same species today; and these parent species, now mostly extinct, have also been similarly connected to more ancient species, and so on back, always converging to the common ancestor of each major class. Therefore, the number of intermediate and transitional links between all living and extinct species must have been unimaginably vast. But if this theory is true, such connections have existed on this earth.

On the lapse of Time.—Independently of our not finding fossil remains of such infinitely numerous connecting links, it may be objected, that time will not have sufficed for so great an amount of organic change, all changes having been effected very slowly through natural selection. It is hardly possible for me even to recall to the reader, who may not be a practical geologist, the facts leading the mind feebly to comprehend the lapse of time. He who can read Sir Charles Lyell’s grand work on the Principles of Geology, which the future historian will recognise as having produced a revolution in natural science, yet does not admit how incomprehensibly vast have been the past periods of time, may at once close this volume. Not that it suffices to study the Principles of Geology, or to read special treatises by different observers on separate formations, and to mark how each author attempts to give an inadequate idea of the duration of each formation or even each stratum. A man must for years examine for himself great piles of superimposed strata, and watch the sea at work grinding down old rocks and making fresh sediment, before he can hope to comprehend anything of the lapse of time, the monuments of which we see around us.

On the passage of Time.—Aside from the fact that we don’t find fossil remains of so many countless connecting links, it can also be argued that there hasn’t been enough time for such a massive amount of organic change, as all changes occur very slowly through natural selection. It’s tough for me to help the reader, who may not be a practical geologist, grasp the facts that lead us to vaguely understand the passage of time. Anyone who can read Sir Charles Lyell’s significant work on the Principles of Geology, which future historians will recognize as having caused a revolution in natural science, yet still doesn’t acknowledge how unimaginably vast past time periods have been, might as well close this book. It’s not enough to just study the Principles of Geology, or to read various treatises by different observers on distinct formations, and to note how each author tries to convey an insufficient idea of the duration of each formation or even each layer. A person needs to spend years examining massive piles of stacked layers and observing how the sea erodes old rocks and creates new sediment before they can hope to understand anything about the passage of time, the evidence of which we see around us.

It is good to wander along lines of sea-coast, when formed of moderately hard rocks, and mark the process of degradation. The tides in most cases reach the cliffs only for a short time twice a day, and the waves eat into them only when they are charged with sand or pebbles; for there is reason to believe that pure water can effect little or nothing in wearing away rock. At last the base of the cliff is undermined, huge fragments fall down, and these remaining fixed, have to be worn away, atom by atom, until reduced in size they can be rolled about by the waves, and then are more quickly ground into pebbles, sand, or mud. But how often do we see along the bases of retreating cliffs rounded boulders, all thickly clothed by marine productions, showing how little they are abraded and how seldom they are rolled about! Moreover, if we follow for a few miles any line of rocky cliff, which is undergoing degradation, we find that it is only here and there, along a short length or round a promontory, that the cliffs are at the present time suffering. The appearance of the surface and the vegetation show that elsewhere years have elapsed since the waters washed their base.

It's nice to stroll along the coastline when it’s made up of moderately hard rocks and observe the process of erosion. The tides usually reach the cliffs only briefly twice a day, and the waves only wear them down when they carry sand or pebbles; evidence suggests that clean water does very little to erode rock. Eventually, the base of the cliff gets undercut, causing large sections to collapse, and those that remain are worn down bit by bit until they’re small enough to be moved by the waves, which then grind them into pebbles, sand, or mud more quickly. Yet, how often do we find, at the bottom of crumbling cliffs, smooth boulders heavily covered with marine life, indicating they hardly get worn down and are rarely moved? Furthermore, if we follow any rocky cliffs that are eroding for a few miles, we notice that only in certain spots, like around a bend or headland, are the cliffs currently being affected. The state of the surface and the plant life demonstrate that in other areas, years have passed since the water last reached their base.

He who most closely studies the action of the sea on our shores, will, I believe, be most deeply impressed with the slowness with which rocky coasts are worn away. The observations on this head by Hugh Miller, and by that excellent observer Mr. Smith of Jordan Hill, are most impressive. With the mind thus impressed, let any one examine beds of conglomerate many thousand feet in thickness, which, though probably formed at a quicker rate than many other deposits, yet, from being formed of worn and rounded pebbles, each of which bears the stamp of time, are good to show how slowly the mass has been accumulated. Let him remember Lyell’s profound remark, that the thickness and extent of sedimentary formations are the result and measure of the degradation which the earth’s crust has elsewhere suffered. And what an amount of degradation is implied by the sedimentary deposits of many countries! Professor Ramsay has given me the maximum thickness, in most cases from actual measurement, in a few cases from estimate, of each formation in different parts of Great Britain; and this is the result:—

The person who studies how the sea acts on our shores will, I believe, be most struck by how slowly rocky coastlines wear down. The observations on this matter by Hugh Miller and that great observer Mr. Smith of Jordan Hill are especially compelling. With this impression in mind, anyone can look at beds of conglomerate that are thousands of feet thick, which, although likely formed more quickly than many other deposits, are made up of worn and rounded pebbles, each showing signs of age, demonstrating how slowly the material has been built up. It's important to remember Lyell’s insightful remark that the thickness and extent of sedimentary formations are the result and indicator of the erosion the earth's crust has experienced elsewhere. And just think of the level of erosion suggested by the sedimentary deposits found in many places! Professor Ramsay provided me with the maximum thickness, based on actual measurements for most cases and estimates for a few, of each formation in different regions of Great Britain; and this is the outcome:—

                                                      Feet

     Palæozoic strata (not including igneous beds)...57,154.
     Secondary strata................................13,190.
     Tertiary strata..................................2,240.
                                                      Feet

     Paleozoic strata (not including igneous beds)...57,154.  
     Secondary strata................................13,190.  
     Tertiary strata..................................2,240.  

—making altogether 72,584 feet; that is, very nearly thirteen and three-quarters British miles. Some of these formations, which are represented in England by thin beds, are thousands of feet in thickness on the Continent. Moreover, between each successive formation, we have, in the opinion of most geologists, enormously long blank periods. So that the lofty pile of sedimentary rocks in Britain, gives but an inadequate idea of the time which has elapsed during their accumulation; yet what time this must have consumed! Good observers have estimated that sediment is deposited by the great Mississippi river at the rate of only 600 feet in a hundred thousand years. This estimate may be quite erroneous; yet, considering over what wide spaces very fine sediment is transported by the currents of the sea, the process of accumulation in any one area must be extremely slow.

—making a total of 72,584 feet; that is, almost thirteen and three-quarters British miles. Some of these formations, which in England are represented by thin layers, can be thousands of feet thick on the Continent. Additionally, between each successive formation, most geologists believe there are incredibly long blank periods. Therefore, the high stack of sedimentary rocks in Britain only gives a limited idea of the time that has passed during their accumulation; just imagine how much time that took! Observers have estimated that sediment is deposited by the great Mississippi River at a rate of only 600 feet in a hundred thousand years. This estimate could be quite off; however, considering how fine sediment is transported across such wide areas by ocean currents, the accumulation process in any single area must be extremely slow.

But the amount of denudation which the strata have in many places suffered, independently of the rate of accumulation of the degraded matter, probably offers the best evidence of the lapse of time. I remember having been much struck with the evidence of denudation, when viewing volcanic islands, which have been worn by the waves and pared all round into perpendicular cliffs of one or two thousand feet in height; for the gentle slope of the lava-streams, due to their formerly liquid state, showed at a glance how far the hard, rocky beds had once extended into the open ocean. The same story is still more plainly told by faults,—those great cracks along which the strata have been upheaved on one side, or thrown down on the other, to the height or depth of thousands of feet; for since the crust cracked, the surface of the land has been so completely planed down by the action of the sea, that no trace of these vast dislocations is externally visible.

But the amount of erosion that the layers of rock have experienced in many places, regardless of how quickly the worn-down material accumulates, probably provides the best evidence of how much time has passed. I remember being really struck by the evidence of erosion when I looked at volcanic islands, which have been worn down by the waves and shaped all around into vertical cliffs that are one or two thousand feet high; the gentle slope of the lava flows, from when they were once liquid, clearly showed how far the hard, rocky layers used to extend out into the open ocean. This same story is even more clearly shown by faults—those large cracks where the layers have been pushed up on one side or dropped down on the other by thousands of feet; since the crust cracked, the surface of the land has been so thoroughly flattened by the action of the sea that there's no visible trace of these massive shifts.

The Craven fault, for instance, extends for upwards of 30 miles, and along this line the vertical displacement of the strata has varied from 600 to 3000 feet. Professor Ramsay has published an account of a downthrow in Anglesea of 2300 feet; and he informs me that he fully believes there is one in Merionethshire of 12,000 feet; yet in these cases there is nothing on the surface to show such prodigious movements; the pile of rocks on the one or other side having been smoothly swept away. The consideration of these facts impresses my mind almost in the same manner as does the vain endeavour to grapple with the idea of eternity.

The Craven fault, for example, stretches over 30 miles, and along this line, the vertical movement of the layers has changed from 600 to 3,000 feet. Professor Ramsay has published an account of a downward shift in Anglesey of 2,300 feet; and he tells me that he truly believes there’s one in Merionethshire of 12,000 feet. Yet in these cases, there’s nothing on the surface to indicate such enormous movements; the pile of rocks on either side has been smoothly eroded away. Considering these facts strikes me almost the same way as trying to grasp the concept of eternity.

I am tempted to give one other case, the well-known one of the denudation of the Weald. Though it must be admitted that the denudation of the Weald has been a mere trifle, in comparison with that which has removed masses of our palæozoic strata, in parts ten thousand feet in thickness, as shown in Professor Ramsay’s masterly memoir on this subject. Yet it is an admirable lesson to stand on the North Downs and to look at the distant South Downs; for, remembering that at no great distance to the west the northern and southern escarpments meet and close, one can safely picture to oneself the great dome of rocks which must have covered up the Weald within so limited a period as since the latter part of the Chalk formation. The distance from the northern to the southern Downs is about 22 miles, and the thickness of the several formations is on an average about 1100 feet, as I am informed by Professor Ramsay. But if, as some geologists suppose, a range of older rocks underlies the Weald, on the flanks of which the overlying sedimentary deposits might have accumulated in thinner masses than elsewhere, the above estimate would be erroneous; but this source of doubt probably would not greatly affect the estimate as applied to the western extremity of the district. If, then, we knew the rate at which the sea commonly wears away a line of cliff of any given height, we could measure the time requisite to have denuded the Weald. This, of course, cannot be done; but we may, in order to form some crude notion on the subject, assume that the sea would eat into cliffs 500 feet in height at the rate of one inch in a century. This will at first appear much too small an allowance; but it is the same as if we were to assume a cliff one yard in height to be eaten back along a whole line of coast at the rate of one yard in nearly every twenty-two years. I doubt whether any rock, even as soft as chalk, would yield at this rate excepting on the most exposed coasts; though no doubt the degradation of a lofty cliff would be more rapid from the breakage of the fallen fragments. On the other hand, I do not believe that any line of coast, ten or twenty miles in length, ever suffers degradation at the same time along its whole indented length; and we must remember that almost all strata contain harder layers or nodules, which from long resisting attrition form a breakwater at the base. Hence, under ordinary circumstances, I conclude that for a cliff 500 feet in height, a denudation of one inch per century for the whole length would be an ample allowance. At this rate, on the above data, the denudation of the Weald must have required 306,662,400 years; or say three hundred million years.

I'm tempted to mention another case, the well-known one of the erasure of the Weald. Although it's true that the erosion of the Weald is trivial compared to that which has removed large amounts of our Paleozoic layers, some of which are up to ten thousand feet thick, as shown in Professor Ramsay’s excellent paper on this topic. Still, it’s a valuable lesson to stand on the North Downs and gaze at the distant South Downs; because, considering that not far to the west the northern and southern slopes converge, you can easily imagine the massive dome of rocks that must have covered the Weald within the relatively short period since the latter part of the Chalk formation. The distance from the northern to the southern Downs is about 22 miles, and the average thickness of the various layers is about 1100 feet, as informed by Professor Ramsay. However, if, as some geologists believe, a range of older rocks lies beneath the Weald, on which the overlying sedimentary deposits might have formed in thinner layers than usual, then the above estimate would be incorrect; but this uncertainty probably wouldn’t significantly impact the estimate for the western end of the area. If we knew how quickly the sea usually erodes a cliff of any given height, we could estimate the time it took to wear down the Weald. This, of course, isn’t possible; but to get a rough idea, we can assume that the sea would erode a cliff of 500 feet in height at a rate of one inch every century. Initially, this might seem like a very small amount; however, it's like assuming a one-yard-high cliff would erode along an entire coast at a rate of one yard roughly every twenty-two years. I doubt that any rock, even as soft as chalk, would erode at this rate except on the most exposed coasts; though the deterioration of a tall cliff would indeed be quicker due to the breaking off of fallen pieces. On the other hand, I don’t believe that any stretch of coast, ten or twenty miles long, ever experiences erosion uniformly along its entire length; and we have to remember that nearly all layers contain harder sections or nodules, which, due to their resistance to erosion, form a breakwater at the base. Therefore, under normal circumstances, I conclude that for a cliff 500 feet high, an erosion rate of one inch per century along the entire length would be quite sufficient. At this rate, based on the data above, the erosion of the Weald must have taken 306,662,400 years; or roughly three hundred million years.

The action of fresh water on the gently inclined Wealden district, when upraised, could hardly have been great, but it would somewhat reduce the above estimate. On the other hand, during oscillations of level, which we know this area has undergone, the surface may have existed for millions of years as land, and thus have escaped the action of the sea: when deeply submerged for perhaps equally long periods, it would, likewise, have escaped the action of the coast-waves. So that in all probability a far longer period than 300 million years has elapsed since the latter part of the Secondary period.

The impact of freshwater on the gently sloped Wealden area, when it was raised, probably wasn’t significant, but it would slightly lower the above estimate. However, during the fluctuations in sea level that we know this region experienced, the surface may have remained land for millions of years, allowing it to avoid the influence of the sea. When it was deeply submerged for possibly similar long stretches, it would also have avoided the effect of coastal waves. Therefore, it’s likely that much more than 300 million years have passed since the later part of the Secondary period.

I have made these few remarks because it is highly important for us to gain some notion, however imperfect, of the lapse of years. During each of these years, over the whole world, the land and the water has been peopled by hosts of living forms. What an infinite number of generations, which the mind cannot grasp, must have succeeded each other in the long roll of years! Now turn to our richest geological museums, and what a paltry display we behold!

I made these few comments because it’s really important for us to have some understanding, even if it’s not perfect, of how the years have passed. Throughout all these years, all over the world, both the land and the water have been filled with countless living beings. Just think of the vast number of generations that have come and gone over those many years, something our minds can hardly comprehend! Now, look at our best geological museums, and what a small collection we see!

On the poorness of our Palæontological collections.—That our palæontological collections are very imperfect, is admitted by every one. The remark of that admirable palæontologist, the late Edward Forbes, should not be forgotten, namely, that numbers of our fossil species are known and named from single and often broken specimens, or from a few specimens collected on some one spot. Only a small portion of the surface of the earth has been geologically explored, and no part with sufficient care, as the important discoveries made every year in Europe prove. No organism wholly soft can be preserved. Shells and bones will decay and disappear when left on the bottom of the sea, where sediment is not accumulating. I believe we are continually taking a most erroneous view, when we tacitly admit to ourselves that sediment is being deposited over nearly the whole bed of the sea, at a rate sufficiently quick to embed and preserve fossil remains. Throughout an enormously large proportion of the ocean, the bright blue tint of the water bespeaks its purity. The many cases on record of a formation conformably covered, after an enormous interval of time, by another and later formation, without the underlying bed having suffered in the interval any wear and tear, seem explicable only on the view of the bottom of the sea not rarely lying for ages in an unaltered condition. The remains which do become embedded, if in sand or gravel, will when the beds are upraised generally be dissolved by the percolation of rain-water. I suspect that but few of the very many animals which live on the beach between high and low watermark are preserved. For instance, the several species of the Chthamalinæ (a sub-family of sessile cirripedes) coat the rocks all over the world in infinite numbers: they are all strictly littoral, with the exception of a single Mediterranean species, which inhabits deep water and has been found fossil in Sicily, whereas not one other species has hitherto been found in any tertiary formation: yet it is now known that the genus Chthamalus existed during the chalk period. The molluscan genus Chiton offers a partially analogous case.

On the poor quality of our paleontological collections.—It's universally accepted that our paleontological collections are quite lacking. We should remember the insightful comment made by the late Edward Forbes, a remarkable paleontologist, who pointed out that many of our fossil species are identified and named from single, often damaged specimens, or from just a handful gathered from a single location. Only a small fraction of the Earth's surface has been explored geologically, and no area has been examined with sufficient thoroughness, as evidenced by the significant discoveries made every year in Europe. Organisms that are completely soft cannot be preserved. Shells and bones will perish and vanish when left on the sea floor where sediment isn't accumulating. I believe we often hold a mistaken belief when we quietly convince ourselves that sediment is being deposited over nearly the entire ocean floor at a rate fast enough to embed and preserve fossil remains. In a vast portion of the ocean, the clear blue color of the water indicates its cleanliness. Numerous documented instances of a geological formation being later covered conformably by another, entirely separate formation—as a result of a significant gap in time—without the underlying layer undergoing any degradation in the meantime, can only be explained by the idea that the sea floor can remain unchanged for ages. The remains that do get embedded, if they are in sand or gravel, will typically dissolve when the layers are raised and subjected to rainwater percolation. I suspect that only a few of the numerous animals living on the beach between high and low tide are actually preserved. For instance, the various species of Chthamalinæ (a sub-family of sessile barnacles) cover rocks worldwide in staggering numbers: they are all strictly coastal, except for one species in the Mediterranean, which lives in deep water and has been found fossilized in Sicily. Not a single other species has been discovered in any tertiary formation, yet it's now recognized that the genus Chthamalus existed during the chalk period. The molluscan genus Chiton presents a somewhat similar case.

With respect to the terrestrial productions which lived during the Secondary and Palæozoic periods, it is superfluous to state that our evidence from fossil remains is fragmentary in an extreme degree. For instance, not a land shell is known belonging to either of these vast periods, with one exception discovered by Sir C. Lyell in the carboniferous strata of North America. In regard to mammiferous remains, a single glance at the historical table published in the Supplement to Lyell’s Manual, will bring home the truth, how accidental and rare is their preservation, far better than pages of detail. Nor is their rarity surprising, when we remember how large a proportion of the bones of tertiary mammals have been discovered either in caves or in lacustrine deposits; and that not a cave or true lacustrine bed is known belonging to the age of our secondary or palæozoic formations.

Regarding the land species that existed during the Secondary and Paleozoic periods, it’s unnecessary to mention that our fossil evidence is extremely incomplete. For example, there are no known land shells from these vast periods, except for one found by Sir C. Lyell in the Carboniferous layers of North America. Looking at the historical table published in the Supplement to Lyell’s Manual quickly illustrates how accidental and uncommon the preservation of mammal remains is, much better than pages of explanation. Their rarity isn’t surprising when we consider that a large number of Tertiary mammal bones have been found either in caves or in lake deposits; and that no cave or true lake bed from the Secondary or Paleozoic eras has been discovered.

But the imperfection in the geological record mainly results from another and more important cause than any of the foregoing; namely, from the several formations being separated from each other by wide intervals of time. When we see the formations tabulated in written works, or when we follow them in nature, it is difficult to avoid believing that they are closely consecutive. But we know, for instance, from Sir R. Murchison’s great work on Russia, what wide gaps there are in that country between the superimposed formations; so it is in North America, and in many other parts of the world. The most skilful geologist, if his attention had been exclusively confined to these large territories, would never have suspected that during the periods which were blank and barren in his own country, great piles of sediment, charged with new and peculiar forms of life, had elsewhere been accumulated. And if in each separate territory, hardly any idea can be formed of the length of time which has elapsed between the consecutive formations, we may infer that this could nowhere be ascertained. The frequent and great changes in the mineralogical composition of consecutive formations, generally implying great changes in the geography of the surrounding lands, whence the sediment has been derived, accords with the belief of vast intervals of time having elapsed between each formation.

But the imperfections in the geological record mainly come from a more significant reason than any previously mentioned: the various formations are separated by long gaps of time. When we see the formations listed in written works or observe them in nature, it's hard not to think that they follow one another closely. However, as shown in Sir R. Murchison’s extensive research on Russia, there are significant gaps between the overlapping formations in that country. The same is true in North America and many other places around the globe. Even the most skilled geologist, if their focus was limited to these large areas, would never guess that during the periods that seem blank and lifeless in their own region, vast amounts of sediment filled with new and unique forms of life were being built up elsewhere. And since, in each individual territory, it's almost impossible to grasp how much time has passed between the successive formations, we can conclude that this could never be precisely determined anywhere. The frequent and significant changes in the mineral makeup of successive formations, which generally suggest major changes in the surrounding land from which the sediment originated, supports the idea that long intervals of time have passed between each formation.

But we can, I think, see why the geological formations of each region are almost invariably intermittent; that is, have not followed each other in close sequence. Scarcely any fact struck me more when examining many hundred miles of the South American coasts, which have been upraised several hundred feet within the recent period, than the absence of any recent deposits sufficiently extensive to last for even a short geological period. Along the whole west coast, which is inhabited by a peculiar marine fauna, tertiary beds are so scantily developed, that no record of several successive and peculiar marine faunas will probably be preserved to a distant age. A little reflection will explain why along the rising coast of the western side of South America, no extensive formations with recent or tertiary remains can anywhere be found, though the supply of sediment must for ages have been great, from the enormous degradation of the coast-rocks and from muddy streams entering the sea. The explanation, no doubt, is, that the littoral and sub-littoral deposits are continually worn away, as soon as they are brought up by the slow and gradual rising of the land within the grinding action of the coast-waves.

But I think we can understand why the geological formations in each region are almost always intermittent, meaning they haven't followed one after the other in a close sequence. One fact that struck me while looking at the hundreds of miles of South American coasts, which have risen several hundred feet in recent times, is the lack of any recent deposits that are extensive enough to last for even a short geological period. Along the entire west coast, which is home to a unique marine life, tertiary beds are so poorly developed that it's unlikely any record of several successive and distinct marine faunas will be preserved for future ages. A bit of thought will clarify why, along the rising coast of western South America, we can't find any extensive formations with recent or tertiary remains, even though a large amount of sediment must have been produced over time from the significant degradation of coastal rocks and muddy rivers flowing into the sea. The reason is likely that the nearshore and shallow water deposits are continuously eroded as soon as they are exposed by the slow and gradual rising of the land due to the erosive action of coastal waves.

We may, I think, safely conclude that sediment must be accumulated in extremely thick, solid, or extensive masses, in order to withstand the incessant action of the waves, when first upraised and during subsequent oscillations of level. Such thick and extensive accumulations of sediment may be formed in two ways; either, in profound depths of the sea, in which case, judging from the researches of E. Forbes, we may conclude that the bottom will be inhabited by extremely few animals, and the mass when upraised will give a most imperfect record of the forms of life which then existed; or, sediment may be accumulated to any thickness and extent over a shallow bottom, if it continue slowly to subside. In this latter case, as long as the rate of subsidence and supply of sediment nearly balance each other, the sea will remain shallow and favourable for life, and thus a fossiliferous formation thick enough, when upraised, to resist any amount of degradation, may be formed.

I think we can safely say that sediment needs to build up in very thick, solid, or large masses to endure the constant action of waves when it's first raised and during later changes in sea level. Such thick and extensive layers of sediment can form in two ways; either, in the deep sea, where, based on E. Forbes's research, we can conclude that the seafloor will have very few animals, and when this sediment is raised, it will provide a very incomplete record of the life forms that existed at that time; or, sediment can accumulate to any thickness and extent over a shallow seafloor if it continues to slowly sink. In this second scenario, as long as the rate of sinking and the supply of sediment are roughly balanced, the sea will stay shallow and suitable for life, allowing for the formation of a fossil-rich layer thick enough to resist any degradation once it's raised.

I am convinced that all our ancient formations, which are rich in fossils, have thus been formed during subsidence. Since publishing my views on this subject in 1845, I have watched the progress of Geology, and have been surprised to note how author after author, in treating of this or that great formation, has come to the conclusion that it was accumulated during subsidence. I may add, that the only ancient tertiary formation on the west coast of South America, which has been bulky enough to resist such degradation as it has as yet suffered, but which will hardly last to a distant geological age, was certainly deposited during a downward oscillation of level, and thus gained considerable thickness.

I’m convinced that all our ancient formations, which are full of fossils, were created during subsidence. Since I shared my views on this topic in 1845, I’ve followed the development of Geology and have been surprised to see how one author after another, when discussing various major formations, has concluded that they accumulated during subsidence. I should add that the only ancient tertiary formation on the west coast of South America, which has been large enough to withstand the degradation it has experienced so far, but which likely won’t survive to a distant geological age, was definitely deposited during a downward shift in levels, which allowed it to gain significant thickness.

All geological facts tell us plainly that each area has undergone numerous slow oscillations of level, and apparently these oscillations have affected wide spaces. Consequently formations rich in fossils and sufficiently thick and extensive to resist subsequent degradation, may have been formed over wide spaces during periods of subsidence, but only where the supply of sediment was sufficient to keep the sea shallow and to embed and preserve the remains before they had time to decay. On the other hand, as long as the bed of the sea remained stationary, thick deposits could not have been accumulated in the shallow parts, which are the most favourable to life. Still less could this have happened during the alternate periods of elevation; or, to speak more accurately, the beds which were then accumulated will have been destroyed by being upraised and brought within the limits of the coast-action.

All geological evidence clearly shows that each region has experienced many gradual changes in elevation, and it seems these changes have impacted large areas. As a result, rock formations rich in fossils that are thick and extensive enough to withstand later erosion could have formed over vast regions during times of sinking, but only where there was enough sediment to keep the sea shallow and to bury and preserve the remains before they could decay. On the flip side, as long as the ocean floor remained stable, thick deposits couldn’t accumulate in the shallow areas, which are the most conducive to life. Even less could this happen during the alternating periods of rising; more accurately, the layers that formed then would have been destroyed when they were lifted and exposed to coastal erosion.

Thus the geological record will almost necessarily be rendered intermittent. I feel much confidence in the truth of these views, for they are in strict accordance with the general principles inculcated by Sir C. Lyell; and E. Forbes independently arrived at a similar conclusion.

Thus, the geological record will almost certainly be patchy. I have a lot of confidence in the accuracy of these views, as they align closely with the fundamental principles taught by Sir C. Lyell; and E. Forbes reached a similar conclusion independently.

One remark is here worth a passing notice. During periods of elevation the area of the land and of the adjoining shoal parts of the sea will be increased, and new stations will often be formed;—all circumstances most favourable, as previously explained, for the formation of new varieties and species; but during such periods there will generally be a blank in the geological record. On the other hand, during subsidence, the inhabited area and number of inhabitants will decrease (excepting the productions on the shores of a continent when first broken up into an archipelago), and consequently during subsidence, though there will be much extinction, fewer new varieties or species will be formed; and it is during these very periods of subsidence, that our great deposits rich in fossils have been accumulated. Nature may almost be said to have guarded against the frequent discovery of her transitional or linking forms.

One comment is worth mentioning. During times when land is elevated, the area of the land and the nearby shallow parts of the sea will increase, and new habitats will often be created—these are all factors that are very favorable, as previously explained, for the development of new varieties and species. However, during these times, there is usually a gap in the geological record. On the flip side, during periods of subsidence, the amount of land and the number of inhabitants will decrease (except for the resources along the shores of a continent when it is first broken up into an archipelago), and because of this, although there will be many extinctions, fewer new varieties or species will emerge. It is during these periods of subsidence that our significant fossil-rich deposits have formed. Nature seems to have almost ensured that her transitional or linking forms are rarely discovered.

From the foregoing considerations it cannot be doubted that the geological record, viewed as a whole, is extremely imperfect; but if we confine our attention to any one formation, it becomes more difficult to understand, why we do not therein find closely graduated varieties between the allied species which lived at its commencement and at its close. Some cases are on record of the same species presenting distinct varieties in the upper and lower parts of the same formation, but, as they are rare, they may be here passed over. Although each formation has indisputably required a vast number of years for its deposition, I can see several reasons why each should not include a graduated series of links between the species which then lived; but I can by no means pretend to assign due proportional weight to the following considerations.

From the earlier arguments, it's clear that the geological record, when viewed as a whole, is very incomplete; however, if we focus on just one formation, it becomes harder to understand why we don't find closely related varieties between the species that lived at the beginning and those at the end of that formation. There are some instances recorded where the same species shows different varieties in the upper and lower parts of the same formation, but since these cases are rare, we can overlook them here. Even though each formation undeniably took a vast number of years to form, I see several reasons why each might not include a graduated series of connections between the species that lived at that time; however, I can't claim to weigh the following considerations accurately.

Although each formation may mark a very long lapse of years, each perhaps is short compared with the period requisite to change one species into another. I am aware that two palæontologists, whose opinions are worthy of much deference, namely Bronn and Woodward, have concluded that the average duration of each formation is twice or thrice as long as the average duration of specific forms. But insuperable difficulties, as it seems to me, prevent us coming to any just conclusion on this head. When we see a species first appearing in the middle of any formation, it would be rash in the extreme to infer that it had not elsewhere previously existed. So again when we find a species disappearing before the uppermost layers have been deposited, it would be equally rash to suppose that it then became wholly extinct. We forget how small the area of Europe is compared with the rest of the world; nor have the several stages of the same formation throughout Europe been correlated with perfect accuracy.

Although each geological formation may represent a very long span of years, it may still be short compared to the time needed for one species to evolve into another. I'm aware that two paleontologists, Bronn and Woodward, whose opinions are highly respected, have concluded that the average duration of each formation is two to three times longer than the average duration of specific species. However, I believe there are major challenges that prevent us from reaching a reasonable conclusion about this. When we see a species first appearing in the middle of a formation, it would be extremely unwise to assume it had not previously existed elsewhere. Similarly, when we find a species disappearing before the top layers have formed, it would be just as unwise to think it became completely extinct at that point. We often forget how small Europe is compared to the rest of the world, and the different stages of the same formation across Europe have not been perfectly correlated.

With marine animals of all kinds, we may safely infer a large amount of migration during climatal and other changes; and when we see a species first appearing in any formation, the probability is that it only then first immigrated into that area. It is well known, for instance, that several species appeared somewhat earlier in the palæozoic beds of North America than in those of Europe; time having apparently been required for their migration from the American to the European seas. In examining the latest deposits of various quarters of the world, it has everywhere been noted, that some few still existing species are common in the deposit, but have become extinct in the immediately surrounding sea; or, conversely, that some are now abundant in the neighbouring sea, but are rare or absent in this particular deposit. It is an excellent lesson to reflect on the ascertained amount of migration of the inhabitants of Europe during the Glacial period, which forms only a part of one whole geological period; and likewise to reflect on the great changes of level, on the inordinately great change of climate, on the prodigious lapse of time, all included within this same glacial period. Yet it may be doubted whether in any quarter of the world, sedimentary deposits, including fossil remains, have gone on accumulating within the same area during the whole of this period. It is not, for instance, probable that sediment was deposited during the whole of the glacial period near the mouth of the Mississippi, within that limit of depth at which marine animals can flourish; for we know what vast geographical changes occurred in other parts of America during this space of time. When such beds as were deposited in shallow water near the mouth of the Mississippi during some part of the glacial period shall have been upraised, organic remains will probably first appear and disappear at different levels, owing to the migration of species and to geographical changes. And in the distant future, a geologist examining these beds, might be tempted to conclude that the average duration of life of the embedded fossils had been less than that of the glacial period, instead of having been really far greater, that is extending from before the glacial epoch to the present day.

With marine animals of all kinds, we can reasonably assume there was a significant amount of migration during climate changes and other shifts; and when we observe a species first appearing in any formation, it's likely that it only then migrated into that area. For example, several species showed up somewhat earlier in the Paleozoic layers of North America than in those of Europe, suggesting time was needed for their migration from the American to the European seas. In studying the most recent deposits from different parts of the world, it has been consistently noted that a few existing species are common in the deposit but have gone extinct in the nearby sea; or conversely, some species are now abundant in the neighboring sea but are rare or absent in this specific deposit. It's enlightening to consider the established extent of migration by the inhabitants of Europe during the Glacial period, which represents only a part of an entire geological period; and to reflect on the significant changes in sea level, the extremely significant climatic shifts, and the enormous time span all captured within this same glacial period. However, one might question whether sedimentary deposits, including fossil remains, have consistently accumulated in the same area throughout this time frame. For example, it's unlikely that sediment was deposited near the mouth of the Mississippi during the entire glacial period, within the depth range where marine animals can thrive; because we know there were significant geographical changes in other parts of America during this period. When the layers deposited in shallow water near the mouth of the Mississippi during some part of the glacial period have been uplifted, organic remains are likely to first appear and disappear at various levels, due to species migration and geographical changes. In the far future, a geologist analyzing these layers might be inclined to conclude that the average lifespan of the embedded fossils was shorter than that of the glacial period, rather than being much greater, extending from before the glacial epoch to the present day.

In order to get a perfect gradation between two forms in the upper and lower parts of the same formation, the deposit must have gone on accumulating for a very long period, in order to have given sufficient time for the slow process of variation; hence the deposit will generally have to be a very thick one; and the species undergoing modification will have had to live on the same area throughout this whole time. But we have seen that a thick fossiliferous formation can only be accumulated during a period of subsidence; and to keep the depth approximately the same, which is necessary in order to enable the same species to live on the same space, the supply of sediment must nearly have counterbalanced the amount of subsidence. But this same movement of subsidence will often tend to sink the area whence the sediment is derived, and thus diminish the supply whilst the downward movement continues. In fact, this nearly exact balancing between the supply of sediment and the amount of subsidence is probably a rare contingency; for it has been observed by more than one palæontologist, that very thick deposits are usually barren of organic remains, except near their upper or lower limits.

To achieve a smooth transition between two forms in the upper and lower parts of the same geological formation, the deposit needs to have built up over a very long time to allow for a gradual process of change. Therefore, the deposit usually has to be quite thick, and the species being modified would have had to live in the same area throughout this entire period. However, we've noted that a thick fossil-rich formation can only accumulate during a time of subsidence; to maintain a consistent depth, which is necessary for the same species to exist in the same area, the sediment supply must roughly equal the rate of subsidence. Yet, this same subsidence can often cause the source area of the sediment to sink as well, reducing the sediment supply while the downward movement continues. In fact, this precise balance between sediment supply and subsidence is likely a rare occurrence; several paleontologists have observed that very thick deposits typically lack organic remains, except near their upper or lower ends.

It would seem that each separate formation, like the whole pile of formations in any country, has generally been intermittent in its accumulation. When we see, as is so often the case, a formation composed of beds of different mineralogical composition, we may reasonably suspect that the process of deposition has been much interrupted, as a change in the currents of the sea and a supply of sediment of a different nature will generally have been due to geographical changes requiring much time. Nor will the closest inspection of a formation give any idea of the time which its deposition has consumed. Many instances could be given of beds only a few feet in thickness, representing formations, elsewhere thousands of feet in thickness, and which must have required an enormous period for their accumulation; yet no one ignorant of this fact would have suspected the vast lapse of time represented by the thinner formation. Many cases could be given of the lower beds of a formation having been upraised, denuded, submerged, and then re-covered by the upper beds of the same formation,—facts, showing what wide, yet easily overlooked, intervals have occurred in its accumulation. In other cases we have the plainest evidence in great fossilised trees, still standing upright as they grew, of many long intervals of time and changes of level during the process of deposition, which would never even have been suspected, had not the trees chanced to have been preserved: thus, Messrs. Lyell and Dawson found carboniferous beds 1400 feet thick in Nova Scotia, with ancient root-bearing strata, one above the other, at no less than sixty-eight different levels. Hence, when the same species occur at the bottom, middle, and top of a formation, the probability is that they have not lived on the same spot during the whole period of deposition, but have disappeared and reappeared, perhaps many times, during the same geological period. So that if such species were to undergo a considerable amount of modification during any one geological period, a section would not probably include all the fine intermediate gradations which must on my theory have existed between them, but abrupt, though perhaps very slight, changes of form.

It seems that each individual formation, just like all formations in any country, has generally built up in fits and starts. When we see, as is often the case, a formation made up of layers with different mineral compositions, we can reasonably assume that the deposition process was frequently interrupted. Changes in ocean currents and the influx of sediment with different characteristics are typically due to geographical changes that take a long time. Moreover, closely examining a formation doesn’t reveal how much time it took to form. There are many examples of layers just a few feet thick representing formations that are thousands of feet thick elsewhere, which must have required a massive amount of time to accumulate; yet no one unfamiliar with this fact would suspect the lengthy period represented by the thinner layer. There are also instances where the lower layers of a formation have been lifted, eroded, submerged, and then covered again by the upper layers of the same formation—demonstrating the significant but easily overlooked gaps in its accumulation. In other examples, we have clear evidence from large fossilized trees still standing upright as they grew, indicating many long intervals and changes in level during deposition that would never have been suspected if the trees hadn’t happened to be preserved. For instance, Lyell and Dawson discovered carboniferous layers 1,400 feet thick in Nova Scotia, containing ancient root-bearing layers at no less than sixty-eight different levels. Therefore, when the same species are found at the bottom, middle, and top of a formation, it's likely they didn’t live in the same place throughout the entire deposition period but rather disappeared and reappeared several times during that geological period. If such species underwent significant changes during any geological period, a section wouldn’t likely include all the subtle intermediate variations that must have existed between them, but instead present sudden, though perhaps slight, changes in form.

It is all-important to remember that naturalists have no golden rule by which to distinguish species and varieties; they grant some little variability to each species, but when they meet with a somewhat greater amount of difference between any two forms, they rank both as species, unless they are enabled to connect them together by close intermediate gradations. And this from the reasons just assigned we can seldom hope to effect in any one geological section. Supposing B and C to be two species, and a third, A, to be found in an underlying bed; even if A were strictly intermediate between B and C, it would simply be ranked as a third and distinct species, unless at the same time it could be most closely connected with either one or both forms by intermediate varieties. Nor should it be forgotten, as before explained, that A might be the actual progenitor of B and C, and yet might not at all necessarily be strictly intermediate between them in all points of structure. So that we might obtain the parent-species and its several modified descendants from the lower and upper beds of a formation, and unless we obtained numerous transitional gradations, we should not recognise their relationship, and should consequently be compelled to rank them all as distinct species.

It's essential to remember that naturalists have no definitive rule to distinguish between species and varieties. They allow for some variability within each species, but when they encounter a significant difference between two forms, they classify both as separate species unless they can connect them with close intermediate forms. Due to the reasons mentioned, we can rarely accomplish this within a single geological section. For example, if B and C are two species and a third, A, is found in an older layer, even if A is strictly intermediate between B and C, it will simply be classified as a distinct third species unless it can be closely connected to one or both forms through intermediate varieties. Additionally, it's important to remember, as explained earlier, that A could actually be the ancestor of B and C, yet it wouldn't necessarily exhibit all the structural traits linking them. Thus, we might find the parent species along with its various modified descendants in the lower and upper layers of a geological formation, and unless we find many transitional forms, we may not recognize their relationships and will be forced to classify them all as different species.

It is notorious on what excessively slight differences many palæontologists have founded their species; and they do this the more readily if the specimens come from different sub-stages of the same formation. Some experienced conchologists are now sinking many of the very fine species of D’Orbigny and others into the rank of varieties; and on this view we do find the kind of evidence of change which on my theory we ought to find. Moreover, if we look to rather wider intervals, namely, to distinct but consecutive stages of the same great formation, we find that the embedded fossils, though almost universally ranked as specifically different, yet are far more closely allied to each other than are the species found in more widely separated formations; but to this subject I shall have to return in the following chapter.

It’s well-known that many paleontologists base their species classifications on very minor differences; they tend to do this more easily when the samples come from different sub-stages of the same formation. Some experienced shell collectors are now merging many of the very fine species identified by D’Orbigny and others into the category of varieties; and this perspective does provide the kind of evidence of change that my theory predicts we should find. Furthermore, if we look at broader intervals—specifically, distinct but consecutive stages of the same major formation—we see that the embedded fossils, although generally classified as different species, are actually much more closely related to each other than the species found in more widely separated formations; but I’ll revisit this topic in the following chapter.

One other consideration is worth notice: with animals and plants that can propagate rapidly and are not highly locomotive, there is reason to suspect, as we have formerly seen, that their varieties are generally at first local; and that such local varieties do not spread widely and supplant their parent-forms until they have been modified and perfected in some considerable degree. According to this view, the chance of discovering in a formation in any one country all the early stages of transition between any two forms, is small, for the successive changes are supposed to have been local or confined to some one spot. Most marine animals have a wide range; and we have seen that with plants it is those which have the widest range, that oftenest present varieties; so that with shells and other marine animals, it is probably those which have had the widest range, far exceeding the limits of the known geological formations of Europe, which have oftenest given rise, first to local varieties and ultimately to new species; and this again would greatly lessen the chance of our being able to trace the stages of transition in any one geological formation.

One more thing to consider is this: with animals and plants that can reproduce quickly and are not very mobile, it's reasonable to think, as we've noted before, that their varieties usually start off localized; and these local varieties don't spread far and replace their original forms until they've been modified and improved to a significant extent. From this perspective, the likelihood of finding in a formation in any single country all the early stages of transition between any two forms is low, because the successive changes are believed to have been local or confined to a specific area. Most marine animals have a broad distribution; and we've observed that with plants, those that have the widest distribution often show the most varieties. So, for shells and other marine animals, it's likely that those with the broadest range, extending far beyond the known geological formations of Europe, have often led to the emergence of local varieties and eventually new species. This would further reduce the chance of us being able to trace the transitional stages in any one geological formation.

It should not be forgotten, that at the present day, with perfect specimens for examination, two forms can seldom be connected by intermediate varieties and thus proved to be the same species, until many specimens have been collected from many places; and in the case of fossil species this could rarely be effected by palæontologists. We shall, perhaps, best perceive the improbability of our being enabled to connect species by numerous, fine, intermediate, fossil links, by asking ourselves whether, for instance, geologists at some future period will be able to prove, that our different breeds of cattle, sheep, horses, and dogs have descended from a single stock or from several aboriginal stocks; or, again, whether certain sea-shells inhabiting the shores of North America, which are ranked by some conchologists as distinct species from their European representatives, and by other conchologists as only varieties, are really varieties or are, as it is called, specifically distinct. This could be effected only by the future geologist discovering in a fossil state numerous intermediate gradations; and such success seems to me improbable in the highest degree.

It shouldn’t be overlooked that today, with perfect specimens available for study, it’s rare to connect two forms through intermediate varieties to prove they’re the same species until many specimens have been gathered from various locations. In the case of fossil species, paleontologists rarely achieve this. We might better understand how unlikely it is to connect species through numerous fine, intermediate, fossil links by asking ourselves, for example, whether geologists in the future will be able to show that our different breeds of cattle, sheep, horses, and dogs all came from a single stock or several original stocks. Or, will they determine whether certain sea-shells found on the shores of North America, which some conchologists classify as separate species from their European counterparts, and others consider just varieties, are actually varieties or, as it’s termed, specifically distinct. This can only happen if future geologists find numerous intermediate gradations in a fossil state, and such a success appears to me to be very unlikely.

Geological research, though it has added numerous species to existing and extinct genera, and has made the intervals between some few groups less wide than they otherwise would have been, yet has done scarcely anything in breaking down the distinction between species, by connecting them together by numerous, fine, intermediate varieties; and this not having been effected, is probably the gravest and most obvious of all the many objections which may be urged against my views. Hence it will be worth while to sum up the foregoing remarks, under an imaginary illustration. The Malay Archipelago is of about the size of Europe from the North Cape to the Mediterranean, and from Britain to Russia; and therefore equals all the geological formations which have been examined with any accuracy, excepting those of the United States of America. I fully agree with Mr. Godwin-Austen, that the present condition of the Malay Archipelago, with its numerous large islands separated by wide and shallow seas, probably represents the former state of Europe, when most of our formations were accumulating. The Malay Archipelago is one of the richest regions of the whole world in organic beings; yet if all the species were to be collected which have ever lived there, how imperfectly would they represent the natural history of the world!

Geological research has added many species to both living and extinct genera, and it has narrowed the gaps between some groups more than they would have been otherwise. However, it has done little to break down the distinction between species by linking them through numerous fine intermediate varieties. Because this hasn’t been achieved, it might be one of the strongest and most obvious objections against my views. Therefore, it’s worth summarizing the preceding remarks with a hypothetical example. The Malay Archipelago is roughly the size of Europe, from the North Cape to the Mediterranean and from Britain to Russia. This means it encompasses all the geological formations that have been studied in detail, except for those in the United States. I completely agree with Mr. Godwin-Austen that the current state of the Malay Archipelago, with its many large islands separated by wide and shallow seas, probably reflects what Europe looked like when most of our geological formations were being formed. The Malay Archipelago is one of the richest regions in the world in terms of living organisms; yet, if we were to gather all the species that have ever existed there, how poorly would they represent the natural history of the world!

But we have every reason to believe that the terrestrial productions of the archipelago would be preserved in an excessively imperfect manner in the formations which we suppose to be there accumulating. I suspect that not many of the strictly littoral animals, or of those which lived on naked submarine rocks, would be embedded; and those embedded in gravel or sand, would not endure to a distant epoch. Wherever sediment did not accumulate on the bed of the sea, or where it did not accumulate at a sufficient rate to protect organic bodies from decay, no remains could be preserved.

But we have every reason to believe that the land products of the archipelago would be preserved in a very incomplete way in the formations we think are accumulating there. I doubt that many of the strictly coastal animals, or those living on bare underwater rocks, would be preserved; and those that are embedded in gravel or sand wouldn’t last to a distant time. Wherever sediment didn’t build up on the ocean floor, or where it didn’t build up quickly enough to protect organic materials from decaying, no remains could be preserved.

In our archipelago, I believe that fossiliferous formations could be formed of sufficient thickness to last to an age, as distant in futurity as the secondary formations lie in the past, only during periods of subsidence. These periods of subsidence would be separated from each other by enormous intervals, during which the area would be either stationary or rising; whilst rising, each fossiliferous formation would be destroyed, almost as soon as accumulated, by the incessant coast-action, as we now see on the shores of South America. During the periods of subsidence there would probably be much extinction of life; during the periods of elevation, there would be much variation, but the geological record would then be least perfect.

In our island chain, I think that fossil-rich layers could be created thick enough to last as long into the future as the secondary formations have lasted in the past, but only during times of sinking. These sinking periods would be separated by long intervals when the area would either stay put or rise; while rising, each fossil-rich layer would be quickly worn away by constant coastal action, like what we see on the shores of South America today. During the sinking periods, a lot of life would likely go extinct; during the rising periods, there would be considerable variation, but the geological record would be the least complete.

It may be doubted whether the duration of any one great period of subsidence over the whole or part of the archipelago, together with a contemporaneous accumulation of sediment, would exceed the average duration of the same specific forms; and these contingencies are indispensable for the preservation of all the transitional gradations between any two or more species. If such gradations were not fully preserved, transitional varieties would merely appear as so many distinct species. It is, also, probable that each great period of subsidence would be interrupted by oscillations of level, and that slight climatal changes would intervene during such lengthy periods; and in these cases the inhabitants of the archipelago would have to migrate, and no closely consecutive record of their modifications could be preserved in any one formation.

It’s uncertain whether any single major period of sinking across the entire or part of the archipelago, along with a simultaneous buildup of sediment, would exceed the average duration of the same specific forms; and these situations are essential for maintaining all the transitional differences between any two or more species. If those differences weren’t fully preserved, transitional varieties would simply show up as several distinct species. It’s also likely that each major period of sinking would be interrupted by fluctuations in level and that minor climate changes would occur during such lengthy periods; in these cases, the inhabitants of the archipelago would need to migrate, and no closely consecutive record of their changes could be kept in any one formation.

Very many of the marine inhabitants of the archipelago now range thousands of miles beyond its confines; and analogy leads me to believe that it would be chiefly these far-ranging species which would oftenest produce new varieties; and the varieties would at first generally be local or confined to one place, but if possessed of any decided advantage, or when further modified and improved, they would slowly spread and supplant their parent-forms. When such varieties returned to their ancient homes, as they would differ from their former state, in a nearly uniform, though perhaps extremely slight degree, they would, according to the principles followed by many palæontologists, be ranked as new and distinct species.

Many marine creatures from the archipelago now inhabit areas thousands of miles away; and I believe that it would mostly be these widely-ranging species that would most frequently create new varieties. Initially, these varieties would typically be local or limited to one area, but if they had any significant advantages or were further modified and improved, they would gradually spread and replace their parent forms. When such varieties returned to their original locations, they would differ from their former state in a nearly uniform, though possibly very slight, way, and according to the principles followed by many paleontologists, they would be considered new and distinct species.

If then, there be some degree of truth in these remarks, we have no right to expect to find in our geological formations, an infinite number of those fine transitional forms, which on my theory assuredly have connected all the past and present species of the same group into one long and branching chain of life. We ought only to look for a few links, some more closely, some more distantly related to each other; and these links, let them be ever so close, if found in different stages of the same formation, would, by most palæontologists, be ranked as distinct species. But I do not pretend that I should ever have suspected how poor a record of the mutations of life, the best preserved geological section presented, had not the difficulty of our not discovering innumerable transitional links between the species which appeared at the commencement and close of each formation, pressed so hardly on my theory.

If there's some truth to these comments, we shouldn't expect to find an endless number of those nice transitional forms in our geological layers, which, according to my theory, definitely have connected all past and present species of the same group into one long and branching chain of life. We should only look for a few links—some more closely related, some more distantly related to each other; and these links, no matter how close, if found in different stages of the same layer, would, by most paleontologists, be classified as distinct species. However, I don’t claim I would have ever realized how poor a record of life's changes the best-preserved geological section actually presented if the challenge of not finding countless transitional links between the species that appeared at the beginning and end of each layer hadn't weighed so heavily on my theory.

On the sudden appearance of whole groups of Allied Species.—The abrupt manner in which whole groups of species suddenly appear in certain formations, has been urged by several palæontologists, for instance, by Agassiz, Pictet, and by none more forcibly than by Professor Sedgwick, as a fatal objection to the belief in the transmutation of species. If numerous species, belonging to the same genera or families, have really started into life all at once, the fact would be fatal to the theory of descent with slow modification through natural selection. For the development of a group of forms, all of which have descended from some one progenitor, must have been an extremely slow process; and the progenitors must have lived long ages before their modified descendants. But we continually over-rate the perfection of the geological record, and falsely infer, because certain genera or families have not been found beneath a certain stage, that they did not exist before that stage. We continually forget how large the world is, compared with the area over which our geological formations have been carefully examined; we forget that groups of species may elsewhere have long existed and have slowly multiplied before they invaded the ancient archipelagoes of Europe and of the United States. We do not make due allowance for the enormous intervals of time, which have probably elapsed between our consecutive formations,—longer perhaps in some cases than the time required for the accumulation of each formation. These intervals will have given time for the multiplication of species from some one or some few parent-forms; and in the succeeding formation such species will appear as if suddenly created.

On the sudden appearance of whole groups of Allied Species.—The abrupt way in which entire groups of species seem to suddenly emerge in certain formations has been pointed out by several paleontologists, like Agassiz, Pictet, and particularly by Professor Sedgwick, as a major argument against the idea of species changing over time. If many species within the same genera or families really came into existence at once, it would contradict the theory of gradual evolution through natural selection. The development of a group of forms, all derived from a single ancestor, must have been an incredibly slow process, and those ancestors would have existed for vast ages before their modified descendants. However, we often overestimate the completeness of the geological record and mistakenly conclude that, since certain genera or families are not found below a certain level, they didn't exist before that level. We frequently overlook how vast the world is compared to the limited areas where our geological formations have been thoroughly studied; we forget that groups of species may have existed elsewhere for a long time and have slowly multiplied before migrating to the ancient archipelagos of Europe and the United States. We do not take into account the enormous gaps in time that have likely passed between our successive formations—gaps that might be longer in some instances than the time needed to form each layer. These gaps would have allowed for the multiplication of species from one or a few parent forms, and in the following formation, these species would appear as if they had suddenly been created.

I may here recall a remark formerly made, namely that it might require a long succession of ages to adapt an organism to some new and peculiar line of life, for instance to fly through the air; but that when this had been effected, and a few species had thus acquired a great advantage over other organisms, a comparatively short time would be necessary to produce many divergent forms, which would be able to spread rapidly and widely throughout the world.

I can bring up a comment I made before, which is that it might take many ages to adapt an organism to a completely new way of life, like flying through the air. However, once that adaptation happens, and a few species gain a significant advantage over others, it would take a comparatively short time to create many different forms that could spread quickly and broadly around the world.

I will now give a few examples to illustrate these remarks; and to show how liable we are to error in supposing that whole groups of species have suddenly been produced. I may recall the well-known fact that in geological treatises, published not many years ago, the great class of mammals was always spoken of as having abruptly come in at the commencement of the tertiary series. And now one of the richest known accumulations of fossil mammals belongs to the middle of the secondary series; and one true mammal has been discovered in the new red sandstone at nearly the commencement of this great series. Cuvier used to urge that no monkey occurred in any tertiary stratum; but now extinct species have been discovered in India, South America, and in Europe even as far back as the eocene stage. The most striking case, however, is that of the Whale family; as these animals have huge bones, are marine, and range over the world, the fact of not a single bone of a whale having been discovered in any secondary formation, seemed fully to justify the belief that this great and distinct order had been suddenly produced in the interval between the latest secondary and earliest tertiary formation. But now we may read in the Supplement to Lyell’s ‘Manual,’ published in 1858, clear evidence of the existence of whales in the upper greensand, some time before the close of the secondary period.

I’m going to provide a few examples to illustrate these points and show how prone we are to mistakes in thinking that entire groups of species suddenly appeared. I can point out the well-known fact that in geological writings published just a few years ago, the large class of mammals was always described as having suddenly emerged at the start of the tertiary period. Now, one of the richest known fossil mammal deposits dates back to the middle of the secondary period, and one true mammal has been found in the new red sandstone nearly at the beginning of this extensive series. Cuvier used to argue that no monkeys were found in any tertiary layer; however, now extinct species have been discovered in India, South America, and even across Europe dating back to the Eocene stage. The most notable example is the whale family; since these animals have large bones, are marine, and can be found worldwide, the fact that not a single whale bone had been discovered in any secondary formation seemed to support the belief that this major and distinct order had suddenly appeared in the gap between the latest secondary and earliest tertiary formations. But now we can reference the Supplement to Lyell’s ‘Manual,’ published in 1858, which provides clear evidence of whales existing in the upper greensand well before the end of the secondary period.

I may give another instance, which from having passed under my own eyes has much struck me. In a memoir on Fossil Sessile Cirripedes, I have stated that, from the number of existing and extinct tertiary species; from the extraordinary abundance of the individuals of many species all over the world, from the Arctic regions to the equator, inhabiting various zones of depths from the upper tidal limits to 50 fathoms; from the perfect manner in which specimens are preserved in the oldest tertiary beds; from the ease with which even a fragment of a valve can be recognised; from all these circumstances, I inferred that had sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary periods, they would certainly have been preserved and discovered; and as not one species had been discovered in beds of this age, I concluded that this great group had been suddenly developed at the commencement of the tertiary series. This was a sore trouble to me, adding as I thought one more instance of the abrupt appearance of a great group of species. But my work had hardly been published, when a skilful palæontologist, M. Bosquet, sent me a drawing of a perfect specimen of an unmistakeable sessile cirripede, which he had himself extracted from the chalk of Belgium. And, as if to make the case as striking as possible, this sessile cirripede was a Chthamalus, a very common, large, and ubiquitous genus, of which not one specimen has as yet been found even in any tertiary stratum. Hence we now positively know that sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary period; and these cirripedes might have been the progenitors of our many tertiary and existing species.

I can give another example, which has really struck me since I witnessed it myself. In a paper on Fossil Sessile Cirripedes, I pointed out that, considering the number of existing and extinct tertiary species; the extraordinary abundance of many species found all around the world, from the Arctic to the equator, living in various depths from the upper tidal limits to 50 fathoms; the excellent preservation of specimens in the oldest tertiary layers; and the ease with which even a fragment of a valve can be identified; I concluded that if sessile cirripedes had existed during the secondary periods, they would surely have been preserved and found; and since not a single species has been discovered in those age layers, I concluded that this major group suddenly appeared at the start of the tertiary series. This was quite troubling for me, as I thought it was yet another example of the sudden emergence of a large group of species. However, soon after my work was published, a skilled paleontologist, M. Bosquet, sent me a drawing of a perfect specimen of an unmistakable sessile cirripede, which he had extracted from the chalk in Belgium. And, to make the case even more striking, this sessile cirripede was a Chthamalus, a very common, large, and widespread genus, of which not a single specimen has been found even in any tertiary stratum. Therefore, we now know for certain that sessile cirripedes existed during the secondary period; and these cirripedes could have been the ancestors of many of our tertiary and existing species.

The case most frequently insisted on by palæontologists of the apparently sudden appearance of a whole group of species, is that of the teleostean fishes, low down in the Chalk period. This group includes the large majority of existing species. Lately, Professor Pictet has carried their existence one sub-stage further back; and some palæontologists believe that certain much older fishes, of which the affinities are as yet imperfectly known, are really teleostean. Assuming, however, that the whole of them did appear, as Agassiz believes, at the commencement of the chalk formation, the fact would certainly be highly remarkable; but I cannot see that it would be an insuperable difficulty on my theory, unless it could likewise be shown that the species of this group appeared suddenly and simultaneously throughout the world at this same period. It is almost superfluous to remark that hardly any fossil-fish are known from south of the equator; and by running through Pictet’s Palæontology it will be seen that very few species are known from several formations in Europe. Some few families of fish now have a confined range; the teleostean fish might formerly have had a similarly confined range, and after having been largely developed in some one sea, might have spread widely. Nor have we any right to suppose that the seas of the world have always been so freely open from south to north as they are at present. Even at this day, if the Malay Archipelago were converted into land, the tropical parts of the Indian Ocean would form a large and perfectly enclosed basin, in which any great group of marine animals might be multiplied; and here they would remain confined, until some of the species became adapted to a cooler climate, and were enabled to double the southern capes of Africa or Australia, and thus reach other and distant seas.

The case most often highlighted by paleontologists regarding the seemingly sudden appearance of an entire group of species is that of the teleost fish, which emerged early in the Chalk period. This group includes the vast majority of species we see today. Recently, Professor Pictet has pushed their existence back one sub-stage further, and some paleontologists believe that certain much older fish, whose relationships are still not fully understood, may actually be teleosts. However, if we assume, like Agassiz, that all of them appeared at the beginning of the chalk formation, it would indeed be quite remarkable; but I don’t think it would pose an insurmountable problem for my theory, unless it can also be demonstrated that the species of this group appeared suddenly and simultaneously all around the world at that same time. It's almost unnecessary to point out that very few fossil fish are known from south of the equator; and a look through Pictet’s Paleontology reveals that only a handful of species are known from various formations in Europe. A few fish families currently have a limited range; teleost fish might have once had a similarly restricted distribution and, after developing significantly in one particular sea, could have spread widely. We also can’t assume that the seas of the world have always been as open from south to north as they are today. Even now, if the Malay Archipelago were turned into land, the tropical areas of the Indian Ocean would create a large, completely enclosed basin where any major group of marine animals could thrive; and they would remain confined there until some of the species adapted to a cooler climate, allowing them to navigate around the southern tips of Africa or Australia to reach other distant seas.

From these and similar considerations, but chiefly from our ignorance of the geology of other countries beyond the confines of Europe and the United States; and from the revolution in our palæontological ideas on many points, which the discoveries of even the last dozen years have effected, it seems to me to be about as rash in us to dogmatize on the succession of organic beings throughout the world, as it would be for a naturalist to land for five minutes on some one barren point in Australia, and then to discuss the number and range of its productions.

Considering these factors, especially our lack of knowledge about the geology of places outside of Europe and the United States, along with the shifts in our understanding of paleontology caused by discoveries made in the last dozen years, it seems just as reckless for us to make firm statements about the succession of living organisms worldwide as it would be for a naturalist to spend just five minutes on a barren spot in Australia and then debate the variety and distribution of its species.

On the sudden appearance of groups of Allied Species in the lowest known fossiliferous strata.—There is another and allied difficulty, which is much graver. I allude to the manner in which numbers of species of the same group, suddenly appear in the lowest known fossiliferous rocks. Most of the arguments which have convinced me that all the existing species of the same group have descended from one progenitor, apply with nearly equal force to the earliest known species. For instance, I cannot doubt that all the Silurian trilobites have descended from some one crustacean, which must have lived long before the Silurian age, and which probably differed greatly from any known animal. Some of the most ancient Silurian animals, as the Nautilus, Lingula, etc., do not differ much from living species; and it cannot on my theory be supposed, that these old species were the progenitors of all the species of the orders to which they belong, for they do not present characters in any degree intermediate between them. If, moreover, they had been the progenitors of these orders, they would almost certainly have been long ago supplanted and exterminated by their numerous and improved descendants.

On the sudden appearance of groups of Allied Species in the lowest known fossil-rich layers.—There’s another related issue that’s even more serious. I’m referring to how many species from the same group suddenly appear in the lowest known fossil-rich rocks. Most of the reasoning that leads me to believe that all current species in the same group have descended from a single ancestor applies almost equally to the earliest known species. For example, I have no doubt that all the Silurian trilobites came from some single crustacean that must have existed long before the Silurian period and likely was very different from any known animal. Some of the oldest Silurian animals, like the Nautilus and Lingula, don’t differ much from species that are alive today; and according to my theory, it can’t be assumed that these ancient species were the ancestors of all the species in their respective orders, as they don’t show any intermediate characteristics between them. Furthermore, if they had been the ancestors of these orders, they would most likely have been replaced and wiped out long ago by their many improved descendants.

Consequently, if my theory be true, it is indisputable that before the lowest Silurian stratum was deposited, long periods elapsed, as long as, or probably far longer than, the whole interval from the Silurian age to the present day; and that during these vast, yet quite unknown, periods of time, the world swarmed with living creatures.

Consequently, if my theory is correct, it’s clear that before the lowest Silurian layer was formed, a significant amount of time passed—possibly as long as, or even much longer than, the entire period from the Silurian age to now. During these immense and largely unknown periods, the world was filled with living creatures.

To the question why we do not find records of these vast primordial periods, I can give no satisfactory answer. Several of the most eminent geologists, with Sir R. Murchison at their head, are convinced that we see in the organic remains of the lowest Silurian stratum the dawn of life on this planet. Other highly competent judges, as Lyell and the late E. Forbes, dispute this conclusion. We should not forget that only a small portion of the world is known with accuracy. M. Barrande has lately added another and lower stage to the Silurian system, abounding with new and peculiar species. Traces of life have been detected in the Longmynd beds beneath Barrande’s so-called primordial zone. The presence of phosphatic nodules and bituminous matter in some of the lowest azoic rocks, probably indicates the former existence of life at these periods. But the difficulty of understanding the absence of vast piles of fossiliferous strata, which on my theory no doubt were somewhere accumulated before the Silurian epoch, is very great. If these most ancient beds had been wholly worn away by denudation, or obliterated by metamorphic action, we ought to find only small remnants of the formations next succeeding them in age, and these ought to be very generally in a metamorphosed condition. But the descriptions which we now possess of the Silurian deposits over immense territories in Russia and in North America, do not support the view, that the older a formation is, the more it has suffered the extremity of denudation and metamorphism.

To the question of why we don’t have records of these vast primordial periods, I can’t provide a satisfactory answer. Several prominent geologists, led by Sir R. Murchison, believe that the organic remains found in the lowest Silurian layer indicate the beginning of life on our planet. However, other highly qualified experts, like Lyell and the late E. Forbes, disagree with this conclusion. We should keep in mind that only a small part of the world is accurately known. M. Barrande has recently added another lower stage to the Silurian system, filled with new and unique species. Signs of life have been found in the Longmynd beds beneath Barrande’s so-called primordial zone. The presence of phosphatic nodules and bituminous matter in some of the lowest azoic rocks probably suggests that life existed during these periods. But the challenge of explaining the absence of large amounts of fossiliferous layers, which I believe were likely accumulated somewhere before the Silurian epoch, is significant. If these ancient layers had been completely worn away by erosion or destroyed by metamorphic processes, we would expect to find only small remnants of the formations that came next in age, and those would generally be in a metamorphosed state. However, the descriptions we currently have of the Silurian deposits across vast areas in Russia and North America do not support the idea that the older a formation is, the more it has experienced severe erosion and metamorphism.

The case at present must remain inexplicable; and may be truly urged as a valid argument against the views here entertained. To show that it may hereafter receive some explanation, I will give the following hypothesis. From the nature of the organic remains, which do not appear to have inhabited profound depths, in the several formations of Europe and of the United States; and from the amount of sediment, miles in thickness, of which the formations are composed, we may infer that from first to last large islands or tracts of land, whence the sediment was derived, occurred in the neighbourhood of the existing continents of Europe and North America. But we do not know what was the state of things in the intervals between the successive formations; whether Europe and the United States during these intervals existed as dry land, or as a submarine surface near land, on which sediment was not deposited, or again as the bed of an open and unfathomable sea.

The current situation must remain a mystery and can genuinely be argued as a valid point against the ideas presented here. To suggest that it might eventually be explained, I will propose the following hypothesis. Based on the type of organic remains, which don’t seem to have lived in deep waters, found in several formations in Europe and the United States, and considering the enormous thickness of sediment the formations are made up of, we can infer that, from beginning to end, there were large islands or land areas nearby, from which the sediment originated, around the existing continents of Europe and North America. However, we don’t know what conditions were like during the periods between these successive formations; whether Europe and the United States existed as dry land, as a submerged surface near land where sediment was not deposited, or once again as the bottom of a vast, unfathomable sea.

Looking to the existing oceans, which are thrice as extensive as the land, we see them studded with many islands; but not one oceanic island is as yet known to afford even a remnant of any palæozoic or secondary formation. Hence we may perhaps infer, that during the palæozoic and secondary periods, neither continents nor continental islands existed where our oceans now extend; for had they existed there, palæozoic and secondary formations would in all probability have been accumulated from sediment derived from their wear and tear; and would have been at least partially upheaved by the oscillations of level, which we may fairly conclude must have intervened during these enormously long periods. If then we may infer anything from these facts, we may infer that where our oceans now extend, oceans have extended from the remotest period of which we have any record; and on the other hand, that where continents now exist, large tracts of land have existed, subjected no doubt to great oscillations of level, since the earliest silurian period. The coloured map appended to my volume on Coral Reefs, led me to conclude that the great oceans are still mainly areas of subsidence, the great archipelagoes still areas of oscillations of level, and the continents areas of elevation. But have we any right to assume that things have thus remained from eternity? Our continents seem to have been formed by a preponderance, during many oscillations of level, of the force of elevation; but may not the areas of preponderant movement have changed in the lapse of ages? At a period immeasurably antecedent to the silurian epoch, continents may have existed where oceans are now spread out; and clear and open oceans may have existed where our continents now stand. Nor should we be justified in assuming that if, for instance, the bed of the Pacific Ocean were now converted into a continent, we should there find formations older than the silurian strata, supposing such to have been formerly deposited; for it might well happen that strata which had subsided some miles nearer to the centre of the earth, and which had been pressed on by an enormous weight of superincumbent water, might have undergone far more metamorphic action than strata which have always remained nearer to the surface. The immense areas in some parts of the world, for instance in South America, of bare metamorphic rocks, which must have been heated under great pressure, have always seemed to me to require some special explanation; and we may perhaps believe that we see in these large areas, the many formations long anterior to the silurian epoch in a completely metamorphosed condition.

Looking at the current oceans, which are three times larger than the land, we see they're filled with many islands; however, no oceanic island has been found to have any trace of ancient paleozoic or secondary formations. Therefore, we might conclude that during the paleozoic and secondary periods, there were neither continents nor continental islands where our oceans are now; because if they had existed, paleozoic and secondary formations would likely have formed from the sediment caused by their erosion. These formations would have at least partially been uplifted by the changes in sea level that surely occurred during these extremely long periods. If we can infer anything from these observations, it’s that where our oceans currently are, oceans have existed since the earliest records we have; and conversely, where continents now exist, large landmasses must have been present, undoubtedly affected by major changes in sea level since the earliest Silurian period. The colored map attached to my book on Coral Reefs made me think that the great oceans are still primarily areas of sinking, the large archipelagos are areas of fluctuating sea levels, and the continents are regions of rising land. But can we assume that this has always been the case? Our continents seem to have formed due to a dominance of uplift during various changes in sea level; but what if the areas of dominant movement have shifted over ages? Long before the Silurian epoch, continents might have been located where oceans now are; and clear, open oceans could have existed where our continents currently stand. We shouldn't assume that if, for instance, the bed of the Pacific Ocean were transformed into a continent, we would find formations older than the Silurian strata there if they were once deposited, because it's possible that layers which had sunk several miles closer to the Earth's center and been compressed by the weight of immense water might have undergone far more metamorphic changes than layers that have always remained closer to the surface. The vast regions in some parts of the world, like South America, where there are exposed metamorphic rocks, which must have been intensely heated under high pressure, have always seemed to me to need some special explanation; and we might believe that these extensive areas reflect many formations from long before the Silurian epoch in a fully metamorphosed state.

The several difficulties here discussed, namely our not finding in the successive formations infinitely numerous transitional links between the many species which now exist or have existed; the sudden manner in which whole groups of species appear in our European formations; the almost entire absence, as at present known, of fossiliferous formations beneath the Silurian strata, are all undoubtedly of the gravest nature. We see this in the plainest manner by the fact that all the most eminent palæontologists, namely Cuvier, Owen, Agassiz, Barrande, Falconer, E. Forbes, etc., and all our greatest geologists, as Lyell, Murchison, Sedgwick, etc., have unanimously, often vehemently, maintained the immutability of species. But I have reason to believe that one great authority, Sir Charles Lyell, from further reflexion entertains grave doubts on this subject. I feel how rash it is to differ from these great authorities, to whom, with others, we owe all our knowledge. Those who think the natural geological record in any degree perfect, and who do not attach much weight to the facts and arguments of other kinds given in this volume, will undoubtedly at once reject my theory. For my part, following out Lyell’s metaphor, I look at the natural geological record, as a history of the world imperfectly kept, and written in a changing dialect; of this history we possess the last volume alone, relating only to two or three countries. Of this volume, only here and there a short chapter has been preserved; and of each page, only here and there a few lines. Each word of the slowly-changing language, in which the history is supposed to be written, being more or less different in the interrupted succession of chapters, may represent the apparently abruptly changed forms of life, entombed in our consecutive, but widely separated formations. On this view, the difficulties above discussed are greatly diminished, or even disappear.

The various challenges we've talked about, like not finding countless transitional links between the many species that currently exist or have existed, the abrupt way in which entire groups of species show up in our European formations, and the almost complete lack, as we currently know, of fossil-rich formations below the Silurian layers, are definitely serious. This is clearly seen in the fact that all the leading paleontologists, like Cuvier, Owen, Agassiz, Barrande, Falconer, E. Forbes, and many top geologists, including Lyell, Murchison, and Sedgwick, have consistently, often passionately, argued for the unchanging nature of species. However, I believe one major figure, Sir Charles Lyell, has some significant doubts about this issue after further reflection. I recognize how bold it is to disagree with these esteemed authorities, to whom we owe our understanding. Those who think the natural geological record is at all complete and who don't give much weight to the facts and arguments presented in this volume will likely dismiss my theory right away. Personally, following Lyell's analogy, I view the natural geological record as a history of the world that has been poorly documented and written in a changing language; we only have the last volume of this history, which pertains to just a couple of countries. In that volume, only a few short chapters have been preserved, and from each page, only a handful of lines remain. Each word of the gradually evolving language, in which the history is supposedly written, varies somewhat in the broken sequence of chapters, potentially representing the seemingly sudden changes in life forms found in our sequential yet widely separated formations. With this perspective, the challenges we discussed earlier are significantly lessened, or might even vanish.

CHAPTER X.
ON THE GEOLOGICAL SUCCESSION OF ORGANIC BEINGS.

On the slow and successive appearance of new species. On their different rates of change. Species once lost do not reappear. Groups of species follow the same general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single species. On Extinction. On simultaneous changes in the forms of life throughout the world. On the affinities of extinct species to each other and to living species. On the state of development of ancient forms. On the succession of the same types within the same areas. Summary of preceding and present chapters.

On the gradual and ongoing emergence of new species. On their varying rates of evolution. Once species are gone, they don’t come back. Groups of species follow the same general patterns in their appearance and extinction as individual species. On extinction. On simultaneous shifts in life forms around the globe. On the connections between extinct species and living ones. On the level of development of ancient forms. On the succession of similar types in the same regions. Summary of the previous and current chapters.

Let us now see whether the several facts and rules relating to the geological succession of organic beings, better accord with the common view of the immutability of species, or with that of their slow and gradual modification, through descent and natural selection.

Let’s now determine whether the various facts and principles regarding the geological succession of living organisms align more with the traditional belief in the unchanging nature of species, or with the idea of their slow and gradual change through descent and natural selection.

New species have appeared very slowly, one after another, both on the land and in the waters. Lyell has shown that it is hardly possible to resist the evidence on this head in the case of the several tertiary stages; and every year tends to fill up the blanks between them, and to make the percentage system of lost and new forms more gradual. In some of the most recent beds, though undoubtedly of high antiquity if measured by years, only one or two species are lost forms, and only one or two are new forms, having here appeared for the first time, either locally, or, as far as we know, on the face of the earth. If we may trust the observations of Philippi in Sicily, the successive changes in the marine inhabitants of that island have been many and most gradual. The secondary formations are more broken; but, as Bronn has remarked, neither the appearance nor disappearance of their many now extinct species has been simultaneous in each separate formation.

New species have emerged very slowly, one after another, both on land and in the water. Lyell has demonstrated that it's nearly impossible to ignore the evidence regarding this in the various tertiary stages; and each year helps to fill in the gaps between them, making the system of lost and new forms more gradual. In some of the most recent layers, although they are certainly quite old in terms of years, only one or two species are lost forms, and only one or two are new forms that have appeared here for the first time, either locally or, as far as we know, anywhere on earth. If we can trust Philippi's observations in Sicily, the changes in the marine life of that island have been numerous and very gradual. The secondary formations are more fragmented; but, as Bronn pointed out, neither the appearance nor the disappearance of the many now-extinct species has occurred at the same time in each separate formation.

Species of different genera and classes have not changed at the same rate, or in the same degree. In the oldest tertiary beds a few living shells may still be found in the midst of a multitude of extinct forms. Falconer has given a striking instance of a similar fact, in an existing crocodile associated with many strange and lost mammals and reptiles in the sub-Himalayan deposits. The Silurian Lingula differs but little from the living species of this genus; whereas most of the other Silurian Molluscs and all the Crustaceans have changed greatly. The productions of the land seem to change at a quicker rate than those of the sea, of which a striking instance has lately been observed in Switzerland. There is some reason to believe that organisms, considered high in the scale of nature, change more quickly than those that are low: though there are exceptions to this rule. The amount of organic change, as Pictet has remarked, does not strictly correspond with the succession of our geological formations; so that between each two consecutive formations, the forms of life have seldom changed in exactly the same degree. Yet if we compare any but the most closely related formations, all the species will be found to have undergone some change. When a species has once disappeared from the face of the earth, we have reason to believe that the same identical form never reappears. The strongest apparent exception to this latter rule, is that of the so-called “colonies” of M. Barrande, which intrude for a period in the midst of an older formation, and then allow the pre-existing fauna to reappear; but Lyell’s explanation, namely, that it is a case of temporary migration from a distinct geographical province, seems to me satisfactory.

Species from different genera and classes haven't changed at the same speed or to the same extent. In the oldest tertiary layers, you can still find a few living shells among a multitude of extinct forms. Falconer pointed out a striking example of this, where a living crocodile is found alongside many strange and extinct mammals and reptiles in the sub-Himalayan deposits. The Silurian Lingula is quite similar to the living species of this genus; however, most of the other Silurian Mollusks and all the Crustaceans have undergone significant changes. Land species seem to evolve faster than those from the sea, as recently observed in Switzerland. There’s some reason to think that organisms considered to be higher on the evolutionary scale change more quickly than those lower down, although there are exceptions to this. The amount of organic change, as Pictet noted, doesn’t strictly match the order of our geological formations; so, the forms of life between any two consecutive formations usually haven’t changed to exactly the same degree. Yet if we compare any formations that aren’t extremely closely related, we’ll find that all species have gone through some change. Once a species disappears from Earth, it’s reasonable to believe that the exact same form never reappears. The most notable exception to this rule is what M. Barrande calls “colonies,” which appear for a time within an older formation and then allow the existing fauna to return; however, Lyell’s explanation—that this is a case of temporary migration from a different geographical area—seems satisfying to me.

These several facts accord well with my theory. I believe in no fixed law of development, causing all the inhabitants of a country to change abruptly, or simultaneously, or to an equal degree. The process of modification must be extremely slow. The variability of each species is quite independent of that of all others. Whether such variability be taken advantage of by natural selection, and whether the variations be accumulated to a greater or lesser amount, thus causing a greater or lesser amount of modification in the varying species, depends on many complex contingencies,—on the variability being of a beneficial nature, on the power of intercrossing, on the rate of breeding, on the slowly changing physical conditions of the country, and more especially on the nature of the other inhabitants with which the varying species comes into competition. Hence it is by no means surprising that one species should retain the same identical form much longer than others; or, if changing, that it should change less. We see the same fact in geographical distribution; for instance, in the land-shells and coleopterous insects of Madeira having come to differ considerably from their nearest allies on the continent of Europe, whereas the marine shells and birds have remained unaltered. We can perhaps understand the apparently quicker rate of change in terrestrial and in more highly organised productions compared with marine and lower productions, by the more complex relations of the higher beings to their organic and inorganic conditions of life, as explained in a former chapter. When many of the inhabitants of a country have become modified and improved, we can understand, on the principle of competition, and on that of the many all-important relations of organism to organism, that any form which does not become in some degree modified and improved, will be liable to be exterminated. Hence we can see why all the species in the same region do at last, if we look to wide enough intervals of time, become modified; for those which do not change will become extinct.

These various facts align well with my theory. I don't believe in a fixed law of development that causes all the inhabitants of a country to change suddenly, at the same time, or to the same extent. The process of modification must be very gradual. The variability of each species is quite independent of that of all others. Whether this variability is harnessed by natural selection, and whether the variations accumulate to a greater or lesser extent—leading to more or less modification in the changing species—depends on many complex factors: whether the variability is beneficial, the ability to interbreed, the breeding rate, the slowly changing physical conditions of the country, and especially the nature of the other species with which the changing species competes. Therefore, it's not surprising that one species can maintain the same form much longer than others; or if it does change, that it changes less. We see this same phenomenon in geographical distribution; for example, the land-shells and beetles of Madeira have evolved significantly from their closest relatives in mainland Europe, while marine shells and birds have remained unchanged. We might understand the seemingly faster rate of change in terrestrial and more complex organisms compared to marine and simpler ones, due to the more intricate relationships of higher organisms to their organic and inorganic life conditions, as discussed in a previous chapter. When many inhabitants of a country have been modified and improved, we can see, based on competition and the vital relationships among organisms, that any form that doesn't become somewhat modified and improved, will be at risk of extinction. Thus, we can understand why all species in the same region eventually become modified if we consider long enough timeframes; those that don’t change will become extinct.

In members of the same class the average amount of change, during long and equal periods of time, may, perhaps, be nearly the same; but as the accumulation of long-enduring fossiliferous formations depends on great masses of sediment having been deposited on areas whilst subsiding, our formations have been almost necessarily accumulated at wide and irregularly intermittent intervals; consequently the amount of organic change exhibited by the fossils embedded in consecutive formations is not equal. Each formation, on this view, does not mark a new and complete act of creation, but only an occasional scene, taken almost at hazard, in a slowly changing drama.

In members of the same class, the average amount of change over long and equal periods might be nearly the same. However, because the buildup of long-lasting fossil-rich formations relies on large amounts of sediment being deposited in areas that are sinking, our formations have been formed at wide and irregular intervals. As a result, the amount of organic change shown by the fossils found in successive formations is not equal. Each formation, from this perspective, doesn't represent a new and complete act of creation, but rather just an occasional moment, captured almost randomly, in a slowly evolving story.

We can clearly understand why a species when once lost should never reappear, even if the very same conditions of life, organic and inorganic, should recur. For though the offspring of one species might be adapted (and no doubt this has occurred in innumerable instances) to fill the exact place of another species in the economy of nature, and thus supplant it; yet the two forms—the old and the new—would not be identically the same; for both would almost certainly inherit different characters from their distinct progenitors. For instance, it is just possible, if our fantail-pigeons were all destroyed, that fanciers, by striving during long ages for the same object, might make a new breed hardly distinguishable from our present fantail; but if the parent rock-pigeon were also destroyed, and in nature we have every reason to believe that the parent-form will generally be supplanted and exterminated by its improved offspring, it is quite incredible that a fantail, identical with the existing breed, could be raised from any other species of pigeon, or even from the other well-established races of the domestic pigeon, for the newly-formed fantail would be almost sure to inherit from its new progenitor some slight characteristic differences.

We can clearly see why a species, once gone, should never come back, even if the same living conditions, both organic and inorganic, happen again. Although the offspring of one species might be suited (and this has probably happened countless times) to take the exact place of another species in the natural ecosystem and replace it, the two forms—the old and the new—would not be exactly the same, as they would likely inherit different traits from their distinct ancestors. For example, it’s possible that if all our fantail pigeons were wiped out, breeders, by working for many years towards the same goal, could create a new breed that’s barely distinguishable from our current fantails. However, if the parent rock pigeon were also gone, and in nature, we have every reason to think the original form would typically be replaced and eliminated by its enhanced offspring, it’s hard to believe that a fantail exactly like the existing breed could arise from any other pigeon species, or even from other well-established domestic pigeon breeds, because the new fantails would almost certainly inherit some slight differences from their new ancestors.

Groups of species, that is, genera and families, follow the same general rules in their appearance and disappearance as do single species, changing more or less quickly, and in a greater or lesser degree. A group does not reappear after it has once disappeared; or its existence, as long as it lasts, is continuous. I am aware that there are some apparent exceptions to this rule, but the exceptions are surprisingly few, so few, that E. Forbes, Pictet, and Woodward (though all strongly opposed to such views as I maintain) admit its truth; and the rule strictly accords with my theory. For as all the species of the same group have descended from some one species, it is clear that as long as any species of the group have appeared in the long succession of ages, so long must its members have continuously existed, in order to have generated either new and modified or the same old and unmodified forms. Species of the genus Lingula, for instance, must have continuously existed by an unbroken succession of generations, from the lowest Silurian stratum to the present day.

Groups of species, like genera and families, follow the same general patterns in their appearance and disappearance as individual species, changing at different rates and to varying extents. Once a group disappears, it doesn't return; or if it does exist, it does so continuously. I know there are some apparent exceptions to this, but they are surprisingly rare—so rare that E. Forbes, Pictet, and Woodward (all of whom strongly disagree with my views) acknowledge this truth; and the rule aligns perfectly with my theory. Since all species in a group have descended from a single species, it’s clear that as long as any species in the group have appeared over ages, its members must have continually existed to create either new and modified forms or the same old unmodified ones. For example, species of the genus Lingula must have continuously existed through an unbroken succession of generations, from the earliest Silurian layer to the present day.

We have seen in the last chapter that the species of a group sometimes falsely appear to have come in abruptly; and I have attempted to give an explanation of this fact, which if true would have been fatal to my views. But such cases are certainly exceptional; the general rule being a gradual increase in number, till the group reaches its maximum, and then, sooner or later, it gradually decreases. If the number of the species of a genus, or the number of the genera of a family, be represented by a vertical line of varying thickness, crossing the successive geological formations in which the species are found, the line will sometimes falsely appear to begin at its lower end, not in a sharp point, but abruptly; it then gradually thickens upwards, sometimes keeping for a space of equal thickness, and ultimately thins out in the upper beds, marking the decrease and final extinction of the species. This gradual increase in number of the species of a group is strictly conformable with my theory; as the species of the same genus, and the genera of the same family, can increase only slowly and progressively; for the process of modification and the production of a number of allied forms must be slow and gradual,—one species giving rise first to two or three varieties, these being slowly converted into species, which in their turn produce by equally slow steps other species, and so on, like the branching of a great tree from a single stem, till the group becomes large.

In the last chapter, we saw that the types of a group can sometimes seem to appear suddenly; I tried to explain this phenomenon, which, if accurate, would be detrimental to my theories. However, such instances are definitely unusual; the general pattern is a gradual increase in numbers until the group hits its peak, followed by a slow decrease. If the number of species in a genus or the number of genera in a family is depicted by a vertical line of varying thickness that crosses the different geological layers where the species are found, the line may sometimes misleadingly seem to start at the bottom not with a sharp point, but rather abruptly; it then thickens gradually, sometimes remaining at a uniform thickness for a period, and eventually tapers off in the upper layers, indicating the decline and eventual extinction of the species. This gradual increase in the number of species within a group aligns perfectly with my theory, as species within the same genus and genera within the same family can only expand slowly and progressively; for the processes of change and the emergence of several related forms must be slow and steady—one species first producing two or three varieties, which are then gradually transformed into species, which in turn generate other species through equally slow processes, similar to the way a large tree branches out from a single trunk, until the group becomes extensive.

On Extinction.—We have as yet spoken only incidentally of the disappearance of species and of groups of species. On the theory of natural selection the extinction of old forms and the production of new and improved forms are intimately connected together. The old notion of all the inhabitants of the earth having been swept away at successive periods by catastrophes, is very generally given up, even by those geologists, as Elie de Beaumont, Murchison, Barrande, etc., whose general views would naturally lead them to this conclusion. On the contrary, we have every reason to believe, from the study of the tertiary formations, that species and groups of species gradually disappear, one after another, first from one spot, then from another, and finally from the world. Both single species and whole groups of species last for very unequal periods; some groups, as we have seen, having endured from the earliest known dawn of life to the present day; some having disappeared before the close of the palæozoic period. No fixed law seems to determine the length of time during which any single species or any single genus endures. There is reason to believe that the complete extinction of the species of a group is generally a slower process than their production: if the appearance and disappearance of a group of species be represented, as before, by a vertical line of varying thickness, the line is found to taper more gradually at its upper end, which marks the progress of extermination, than at its lower end, which marks the first appearance and increase in numbers of the species. In some cases, however, the extermination of whole groups of beings, as of ammonites towards the close of the secondary period, has been wonderfully sudden.

On Extinction.—So far, we've only briefly mentioned the disappearance of species and groups of species. According to the theory of natural selection, the extinction of older forms and the emergence of new and better forms are closely linked. The old idea that all the creatures on Earth were wiped out at different times by disasters is largely abandoned, even by geologists like Elie de Beaumont, Murchison, Barrande, and others, whose views might suggest such conclusions. Instead, we have strong evidence from studying the tertiary formations that species and groups of species gradually fade away, one after another, first from one area, then from another, and finally from the planet. Both individual species and entire groups have very different lifespans; some groups, as we've seen, have existed from the earliest known origins of life to the present, while others disappeared before the end of the Paleozoic era. There seems to be no set rule that determines how long any single species or genus lasts. It seems that the complete extinction of a group of species usually takes longer than their emergence: if we represent the appearance and disappearance of a group of species with a vertical line of varying thickness, the line tapers more gradually at the top, indicating the process of extinction, than at the bottom, which marks the initial appearance and growth in numbers of the species. However, in some cases, complete extermination of whole groups, like ammonites at the end of the secondary period, has happened quite suddenly.

The whole subject of the extinction of species has been involved in the most gratuitous mystery. Some authors have even supposed that as the individual has a definite length of life, so have species a definite duration. No one I think can have marvelled more at the extinction of species, than I have done. When I found in La Plata the tooth of a horse embedded with the remains of Mastodon, Megatherium, Toxodon, and other extinct monsters, which all co-existed with still living shells at a very late geological period, I was filled with astonishment; for seeing that the horse, since its introduction by the Spaniards into South America, has run wild over the whole country and has increased in numbers at an unparalleled rate, I asked myself what could so recently have exterminated the former horse under conditions of life apparently so favourable. But how utterly groundless was my astonishment! Professor Owen soon perceived that the tooth, though so like that of the existing horse, belonged to an extinct species. Had this horse been still living, but in some degree rare, no naturalist would have felt the least surprise at its rarity; for rarity is the attribute of a vast number of species of all classes, in all countries. If we ask ourselves why this or that species is rare, we answer that something is unfavourable in its conditions of life; but what that something is, we can hardly ever tell. On the supposition of the fossil horse still existing as a rare species, we might have felt certain from the analogy of all other mammals, even of the slow-breeding elephant, and from the history of the naturalisation of the domestic horse in South America, that under more favourable conditions it would in a very few years have stocked the whole continent. But we could not have told what the unfavourable conditions were which checked its increase, whether some one or several contingencies, and at what period of the horse’s life, and in what degree, they severally acted. If the conditions had gone on, however slowly, becoming less and less favourable, we assuredly should not have perceived the fact, yet the fossil horse would certainly have become rarer and rarer, and finally extinct;—its place being seized on by some more successful competitor.

The whole topic of species extinction has been surrounded by unnecessary mystery. Some writers even believe that just as individual organisms have a set lifespan, species have a specific duration too. No one, in my opinion, has been more surprised by species extinction than I have. When I discovered a horse's tooth embedded with the remains of Mastodon, Megatherium, Toxodon, and other extinct creatures—all of which co-existed with still-living shells during a relatively recent geological period—I was amazed. Considering that the horse, since its introduction by the Spaniards to South America, has run wild across the entire region and has multiplied rapidly, I wondered what could have so recently wiped out the earlier horse under seemingly favorable conditions. But how completely unfounded my astonishment was! Professor Owen quickly realized that the tooth, while resembling that of the modern horse, belonged to an extinct species. Had this horse still been alive, albeit somewhat rare, no naturalist would have been surprised by its rarity; rarity is a common characteristic of many species across all categories and countries. If we ponder why a particular species is rare, we typically conclude that there’s something unfavorable in its living conditions; yet we can hardly pinpoint what that might be. Assuming the fossil horse was still alive as a rare species, we could reasonably expect, based on the behavior of all other mammals—even the slow-breeding elephant—and the history of how domestic horses have adapted in South America, that under better conditions it would have populated the continent in just a few years. However, we would have struggled to identify the unfavorable conditions that limited its growth, whether they were singular or multiple factors, and how they influenced the horse at different stages of its life. If the conditions had gradually become less favorable, we certainly wouldn’t have noticed, but the fossil horse would definitely have become increasingly rare and eventually extinct, as its role would have been taken over by a more successful competitor.

It is most difficult always to remember that the increase of every living being is constantly being checked by unperceived injurious agencies; and that these same unperceived agencies are amply sufficient to cause rarity, and finally extinction. We see in many cases in the more recent tertiary formations, that rarity precedes extinction; and we know that this has been the progress of events with those animals which have been exterminated, either locally or wholly, through man’s agency. I may repeat what I published in 1845, namely, that to admit that species generally become rare before they become extinct—to feel no surprise at the rarity of a species, and yet to marvel greatly when it ceases to exist, is much the same as to admit that sickness in the individual is the forerunner of death—to feel no surprise at sickness, but when the sick man dies, to wonder and to suspect that he died by some unknown deed of violence.

It's always challenging to remember that the growth of every living being is constantly being hampered by unnoticed harmful factors; and that these same unnoticed factors are more than enough to lead to scarcity, and ultimately extinction. In many recent tertiary formations, we see that scarcity comes before extinction; and we know that this has been the trend for those animals that have been wiped out, either locally or entirely, due to human actions. I can repeat what I stated in 1845, which is that acknowledging that species generally become scarce before they go extinct—feeling no surprise at a species’ rarity, but then being greatly astonished when it disappears—is much like admitting that illness in an individual is a precursor to death—feeling no surprise at the illness, but when the sick person dies, wondering and suspecting that they died from some unknown act of violence.

The theory of natural selection is grounded on the belief that each new variety, and ultimately each new species, is produced and maintained by having some advantage over those with which it comes into competition; and the consequent extinction of less-favoured forms almost inevitably follows. It is the same with our domestic productions: when a new and slightly improved variety has been raised, it at first supplants the less improved varieties in the same neighbourhood; when much improved it is transported far and near, like our short-horn cattle, and takes the place of other breeds in other countries. Thus the appearance of new forms and the disappearance of old forms, both natural and artificial, are bound together. In certain flourishing groups, the number of new specific forms which have been produced within a given time is probably greater than that of the old forms which have been exterminated; but we know that the number of species has not gone on indefinitely increasing, at least during the later geological periods, so that looking to later times we may believe that the production of new forms has caused the extinction of about the same number of old forms.

The theory of natural selection is based on the idea that each new variety, and eventually every new species, is created and sustained by having some advantage over its competitors; consequently, the extinction of less favored forms almost inevitably follows. The same applies to our domestic products: when a new and slightly improved variety is developed, it initially replaces the less improved varieties in the same area. When it is significantly improved, it can be transported far and wide, like our short-horn cattle, and it replaces other breeds in different countries. Thus, the emergence of new forms and the disappearance of old forms, both natural and artificial, are interconnected. In certain thriving groups, the number of new specific forms produced over a given time is likely greater than the number of old forms that have gone extinct; however, we know that the number of species has not continued to increase indefinitely, at least not during the later geological periods. Therefore, looking to more recent times, we can believe that the emergence of new forms has led to the extinction of roughly the same number of old forms.

The competition will generally be most severe, as formerly explained and illustrated by examples, between the forms which are most like each other in all respects. Hence the improved and modified descendants of a species will generally cause the extermination of the parent-species; and if many new forms have been developed from any one species, the nearest allies of that species, i.e. the species of the same genus, will be the most liable to extermination. Thus, as I believe, a number of new species descended from one species, that is a new genus, comes to supplant an old genus, belonging to the same family. But it must often have happened that a new species belonging to some one group will have seized on the place occupied by a species belonging to a distinct group, and thus caused its extermination; and if many allied forms be developed from the successful intruder, many will have to yield their places; and it will generally be allied forms, which will suffer from some inherited inferiority in common. But whether it be species belonging to the same or to a distinct class, which yield their places to other species which have been modified and improved, a few of the sufferers may often long be preserved, from being fitted to some peculiar line of life, or from inhabiting some distant and isolated station, where they have escaped severe competition. For instance, a single species of Trigonia, a great genus of shells in the secondary formations, survives in the Australian seas; and a few members of the great and almost extinct group of Ganoid fishes still inhabit our fresh waters. Therefore the utter extinction of a group is generally, as we have seen, a slower process than its production.

The competition will usually be the fiercest between forms that are most similar to each other in every way. As a result, the improved and adapted descendants of a species will typically drive out the original species. If many new forms arise from a single species, the closest relatives of that species, meaning those in the same genus, will be the most likely to face extinction. Thus, I believe that a number of new species that branch off from one species, forming a new genus, can replace an old genus within the same family. However, it often happens that a new species from one group will take over the role held by a species from a different group, leading to its extinction. If many related forms develop from this successful newcomer, several will have to give up their spots, and it will usually be the related forms that suffer due to some shared disadvantage. Regardless of whether the species giving way belong to the same or a different class, some of those affected may be able to survive for a long time because they are adapted to a specific way of life or because they live in a unique and isolated environment where they avoid intense competition. For example, a single species of Trigonia, a large genus of shells from the secondary formations, continues to exist in the Australian seas; and a few members of the nearly extinct group of Ganoid fishes are still found in our freshwater. Therefore, as we've observed, the complete extinction of a group is generally a slower process than its emergence.

With respect to the apparently sudden extermination of whole families or orders, as of Trilobites at the close of the palæozoic period and of Ammonites at the close of the secondary period, we must remember what has been already said on the probable wide intervals of time between our consecutive formations; and in these intervals there may have been much slow extermination. Moreover, when by sudden immigration or by unusually rapid development, many species of a new group have taken possession of a new area, they will have exterminated in a correspondingly rapid manner many of the old inhabitants; and the forms which thus yield their places will commonly be allied, for they will partake of some inferiority in common.

Regarding the seemingly sudden extinction of entire families or groups, like Trilobites at the end of the Paleozoic era and Ammonites at the end of the Mesozoic era, we should consider what has already been mentioned about the likely long gaps of time between our successive formations; during these gaps, there could have been a lot of slow extinction. Additionally, when a new group of species suddenly moves in or develops unusually quickly, they can rapidly wipe out many of the old inhabitants in that area; the forms that are replaced will generally be closely related because they share some common inferiority.

Thus, as it seems to me, the manner in which single species and whole groups of species become extinct, accords well with the theory of natural selection. We need not marvel at extinction; if we must marvel, let it be at our presumption in imagining for a moment that we understand the many complex contingencies, on which the existence of each species depends. If we forget for an instant, that each species tends to increase inordinately, and that some check is always in action, yet seldom perceived by us, the whole economy of nature will be utterly obscured. Whenever we can precisely say why this species is more abundant in individuals than that; why this species and not another can be naturalised in a given country; then, and not till then, we may justly feel surprise why we cannot account for the extinction of this particular species or group of species.

So, it seems to me that the way individual species and entire groups of species go extinct aligns well with the theory of natural selection. We shouldn't be surprised by extinction; if we must be surprised, let it be at our arrogance in thinking for even a moment that we understand the many complex factors that each species relies on for survival. If we forget for a moment that every species tends to increase significantly and that there are always checks in place—though we rarely notice them—the entire balance of nature will be completely misunderstood. Whenever we can clearly explain why one species has more individuals than another, or why one species can thrive in a particular country while another cannot, then, and only then, can we rightfully be surprised that we can't explain the extinction of a specific species or group of species.

On the Forms of Life changing almost simultaneously throughout the World.—Scarcely any palæontological discovery is more striking than the fact, that the forms of life change almost simultaneously throughout the world. Thus our European Chalk formation can be recognised in many distant parts of the world, under the most different climates, where not a fragment of the mineral chalk itself can be found; namely, in North America, in equatorial South America, in Tierra del Fuego, at the Cape of Good Hope, and in the peninsula of India. For at these distant points, the organic remains in certain beds present an unmistakeable degree of resemblance to those of the Chalk. It is not that the same species are met with; for in some cases not one species is identically the same, but they belong to the same families, genera, and sections of genera, and sometimes are similarly characterised in such trifling points as mere superficial sculpture. Moreover other forms, which are not found in the Chalk of Europe, but which occur in the formations either above or below, are similarly absent at these distant points of the world. In the several successive palæozoic formations of Russia, Western Europe and North America, a similar parallelism in the forms of life has been observed by several authors: so it is, according to Lyell, with the several European and North American tertiary deposits. Even if the few fossil species which are common to the Old and New Worlds be kept wholly out of view, the general parallelism in the successive forms of life, in the stages of the widely separated palæozoic and tertiary periods, would still be manifest, and the several formations could be easily correlated.

On the Forms of Life Changing Almost Simultaneously Throughout the World.—Few paleontological discoveries are as striking as the fact that forms of life change almost simultaneously around the globe. Our European Chalk formation can be identified in many distant areas, in vastly different climates, where not a single piece of mineral chalk can be found; specifically, in North America, equatorial South America, Tierra del Fuego, at the Cape of Good Hope, and in the Indian peninsula. At these distant locations, the organic remains in certain layers show a clear resemblance to those of the Chalk. It’s not that the same species are found; in some instances, not one species is exactly the same, but they belong to similar families, genera, and sections of genera, and sometimes share minor differences, like slight variations in surface texture. Furthermore, other forms that are not seen in the Chalk of Europe but appear in formations either above or below it are also notably absent at these distant points around the world. Various authors have noted a similar parallelism in the forms of life across the successive Paleozoic formations in Russia, Western Europe, and North America: the same applies, according to Lyell, to the different European and North American tertiary deposits. Even if we completely disregard the few fossil species common to the Old and New Worlds, the overall parallelism in the successive forms of life during the widely separated Paleozoic and tertiary periods is still apparent, and the various formations can be easily matched up.

These observations, however, relate to the marine inhabitants of distant parts of the world: we have not sufficient data to judge whether the productions of the land and of fresh water change at distant points in the same parallel manner. We may doubt whether they have thus changed: if the Megatherium, Mylodon, Macrauchenia, and Toxodon had been brought to Europe from La Plata, without any information in regard to their geological position, no one would have suspected that they had coexisted with still living sea-shells; but as these anomalous monsters coexisted with the Mastodon and Horse, it might at least have been inferred that they had lived during one of the latter tertiary stages.

These observations, however, pertain to the marine life from far-off places around the world: we lack enough information to determine whether the land and freshwater species change in a similar way at different locations along the same latitude. We might question whether they have changed in this way: if the Megatherium, Mylodon, Macrauchenia, and Toxodon were brought to Europe from La Plata, without any knowledge of their geological context, no one would have guessed they coexisted with still-living sea shells; but since these unusual creatures lived alongside the Mastodon and Horse, it could at least be inferred that they existed during one of the later tertiary periods.

When the marine forms of life are spoken of as having changed simultaneously throughout the world, it must not be supposed that this expression relates to the same thousandth or hundred-thousandth year, or even that it has a very strict geological sense; for if all the marine animals which live at the present day in Europe, and all those that lived in Europe during the pleistocene period (an enormously remote period as measured by years, including the whole glacial epoch), were to be compared with those now living in South America or in Australia, the most skilful naturalist would hardly be able to say whether the existing or the pleistocene inhabitants of Europe resembled most closely those of the southern hemisphere. So, again, several highly competent observers believe that the existing productions of the United States are more closely related to those which lived in Europe during certain later tertiary stages, than to those which now live here; and if this be so, it is evident that fossiliferous beds deposited at the present day on the shores of North America would hereafter be liable to be classed with somewhat older European beds. Nevertheless, looking to a remotely future epoch, there can, I think, be little doubt that all the more modern marine formations, namely, the upper pliocene, the pleistocene and strictly modern beds, of Europe, North and South America, and Australia, from containing fossil remains in some degree allied, and from not including those forms which are only found in the older underlying deposits, would be correctly ranked as simultaneous in a geological sense.

When we talk about marine life changing across the globe, we shouldn’t assume it happened at the exact same moment—whether that’s a thousand years or a hundred thousand years ago—or that it has a precise geological meaning. If we compare all the marine animals currently in Europe with those that lived in Europe during the Pleistocene period—an incredibly distant time that includes the entire glacial epoch—it would be nearly impossible for even the most skilled naturalist to determine whether today’s or the Pleistocene European species more closely resemble those in South America or Australia. Similarly, several knowledgeable observers believe that the current species in the United States are more closely related to those that existed in Europe during certain later tertiary periods than those that are here now. If that’s the case, it’s clear that fossil beds forming today along the shores of North America could eventually be categorized with somewhat older European beds. However, looking into a distant future, I believe there’s little doubt that all the more modern marine formations—specifically, the upper Pliocene, the Pleistocene, and recent layers from Europe, North and South America, and Australia—will contain fossil remains that are somewhat related and won’t include the species found only in the older underlying deposits, thus being correctly classified as simultaneous in a geological context.

The fact of the forms of life changing simultaneously, in the above large sense, at distant parts of the world, has greatly struck those admirable observers, MM. de Verneuil and d’Archiac. After referring to the parallelism of the palæozoic forms of life in various parts of Europe, they add, “If struck by this strange sequence, we turn our attention to North America, and there discover a series of analogous phenomena, it will appear certain that all these modifications of species, their extinction, and the introduction of new ones, cannot be owing to mere changes in marine currents or other causes more or less local and temporary, but depend on general laws which govern the whole animal kingdom.” M. Barrande has made forcible remarks to precisely the same effect. It is, indeed, quite futile to look to changes of currents, climate, or other physical conditions, as the cause of these great mutations in the forms of life throughout the world, under the most different climates. We must, as Barrande has remarked, look to some special law. We shall see this more clearly when we treat of the present distribution of organic beings, and find how slight is the relation between the physical conditions of various countries, and the nature of their inhabitants.

The fact that life forms change at the same time in different parts of the world has really impressed those remarkable observers, MM. de Verneuil and d’Archiac. After pointing out the similarities in Paleozoic life forms across Europe, they state, “If we notice this strange pattern and then look at North America, where we find similar phenomena, it becomes clear that all these changes in species – their extinction and the emergence of new ones – aren’t just due to temporary changes in ocean currents or other local factors. Instead, they are influenced by broader laws that affect the entire animal kingdom.” M. Barrande has made strong points that echo this sentiment. It is, in fact, pointless to attribute these significant changes in life forms around the world to shifts in currents, climate, or other physical conditions, regardless of how varied they are. As Barrande noted, we need to consider some specific law. We will understand this better when we examine the current distribution of living beings and see how little connection there is between the physical conditions in different countries and the nature of their inhabitants.

This great fact of the parallel succession of the forms of life throughout the world, is explicable on the theory of natural selection. New species are formed by new varieties arising, which have some advantage over older forms; and those forms, which are already dominant, or have some advantage over the other forms in their own country, would naturally oftenest give rise to new varieties or incipient species; for these latter must be victorious in a still higher degree in order to be preserved and to survive. We have distinct evidence on this head, in the plants which are dominant, that is, which are commonest in their own homes, and are most widely diffused, having produced the greatest number of new varieties. It is also natural that the dominant, varying, and far-spreading species, which already have invaded to a certain extent the territories of other species, should be those which would have the best chance of spreading still further, and of giving rise in new countries to new varieties and species. The process of diffusion may often be very slow, being dependent on climatal and geographical changes, or on strange accidents, but in the long run the dominant forms will generally succeed in spreading. The diffusion would, it is probable, be slower with the terrestrial inhabitants of distinct continents than with the marine inhabitants of the continuous sea. We might therefore expect to find, as we apparently do find, a less strict degree of parallel succession in the productions of the land than of the sea.

The clear pattern of similar life forms appearing around the world can be explained by the theory of natural selection. New species emerge from new varieties that have advantages over older ones. The species that are already dominant or have an edge over others in their region are likely to produce more new varieties or early species. These new varieties must be even more successful to survive and thrive. We see clear evidence of this in dominant plants, which are the most common in their areas and widely spread, leading to the creation of numerous new varieties. It makes sense that the dominant, adaptable, and widespread species that have already encroached on other species’ territories would have the best chance to expand further and develop new varieties and species in new locations. The spread of species may often be slow, influenced by climate and geography or unexpected events, but over time, dominant forms usually manage to spread. It's likely that this diffusion happens more slowly among land species on different continents than among sea creatures in the vast ocean. Therefore, we might expect to see, as we seem to, a less consistent parallel succession of land species compared to marine species.

Dominant species spreading from any region might encounter still more dominant species, and then their triumphant course, or even their existence, would cease. We know not at all precisely what are all the conditions most favourable for the multiplication of new and dominant species; but we can, I think, clearly see that a number of individuals, from giving a better chance of the appearance of favourable variations, and that severe competition with many already existing forms, would be highly favourable, as would be the power of spreading into new territories. A certain amount of isolation, recurring at long intervals of time, would probably be also favourable, as before explained. One quarter of the world may have been most favourable for the production of new and dominant species on the land, and another for those in the waters of the sea. If two great regions had been for a long period favourably circumstanced in an equal degree, whenever their inhabitants met, the battle would be prolonged and severe; and some from one birthplace and some from the other might be victorious. But in the course of time, the forms dominant in the highest degree, wherever produced, would tend everywhere to prevail. As they prevailed, they would cause the extinction of other and inferior forms; and as these inferior forms would be allied in groups by inheritance, whole groups would tend slowly to disappear; though here and there a single member might long be enabled to survive.

Dominant species spreading from any region might come across even more dominant species, which could end their successful journey or even their existence. We don’t exactly know all the conditions that are most favorable for the growth of new and dominant species; however, it seems clear that having a larger number of individuals increases the chances for favorable variations to appear, and that intense competition with many existing forms would also be highly beneficial, along with the ability to expand into new areas. A certain degree of isolation, occurring at long intervals, would likely also be advantageous, as previously explained. One part of the world may have been especially favorable for the emergence of new and dominant species on land, while another may have been better for those in the ocean. If two major regions had been in similarly favorable conditions for a long time, whenever their inhabitants interacted, the conflict would be prolonged and intense; some from one area and some from the other might come out on top. Over time, though, the dominant forms, regardless of where they originated, would likely tend to dominate everywhere. As they gained dominance, they would lead to the extinction of other, weaker forms; and since these weaker forms were connected in groups through inheritance, entire groups would gradually disappear, although occasionally a single individual might manage to survive for a long time.

Thus, as it seems to me, the parallel, and, taken in a large sense, simultaneous, succession of the same forms of life throughout the world, accords well with the principle of new species having been formed by dominant species spreading widely and varying; the new species thus produced being themselves dominant owing to inheritance, and to having already had some advantage over their parents or over other species; these again spreading, varying, and producing new species. The forms which are beaten and which yield their places to the new and victorious forms, will generally be allied in groups, from inheriting some inferiority in common; and therefore as new and improved groups spread throughout the world, old groups will disappear from the world; and the succession of forms in both ways will everywhere tend to correspond.

So, it seems to me that the parallel and, in a broader sense, simultaneous succession of the same forms of life around the world aligns well with the idea that new species are formed by dominant species spreading out and changing. The new species that arise become dominant themselves due to inheritance and having already had some advantages over their parents or other species. These new species also spread, change, and produce more new species. The forms that are outcompeted and give way to the new, successful forms will usually be related in groups, having inherited some common disadvantages. Therefore, as new and improved groups spread across the world, older groups will fade away; and the succession of forms in both cases will tend to correspond everywhere.

There is one other remark connected with this subject worth making. I have given my reasons for believing that all our greater fossiliferous formations were deposited during periods of subsidence; and that blank intervals of vast duration occurred during the periods when the bed of the sea was either stationary or rising, and likewise when sediment was not thrown down quickly enough to embed and preserve organic remains. During these long and blank intervals I suppose that the inhabitants of each region underwent a considerable amount of modification and extinction, and that there was much migration from other parts of the world. As we have reason to believe that large areas are affected by the same movement, it is probable that strictly contemporaneous formations have often been accumulated over very wide spaces in the same quarter of the world; but we are far from having any right to conclude that this has invariably been the case, and that large areas have invariably been affected by the same movements. When two formations have been deposited in two regions during nearly, but not exactly the same period, we should find in both, from the causes explained in the foregoing paragraphs, the same general succession in the forms of life; but the species would not exactly correspond; for there will have been a little more time in the one region than in the other for modification, extinction, and immigration.

There’s one more point related to this topic that’s worth mentioning. I’ve shared my reasons for thinking that all our major fossil-rich layers were formed during times of sinking; and that there were long gaps of immense duration when the seabed was either stable or rising, and also when sediment couldn’t be deposited quickly enough to encase and preserve organic remains. During these lengthy and empty intervals, I believe that the species in each area experienced significant changes and extinctions, and there was a lot of migration from other parts of the world. Since we have reason to think that large areas are influenced by the same geological movements, it’s likely that similarly-aged formations have often been built up across very broad regions in the same part of the world; however, we cannot definitively say that this has always been the case, nor that large areas have consistently been affected by the same movements. When two formations are created in two areas during nearly the same time but not quite, we should find in both, due to the reasons mentioned earlier, a similar order of life forms; yet the species wouldn’t match exactly, because one region would have had a bit more time than the other for changes, extinctions, and arrivals of new species.

I suspect that cases of this nature have occurred in Europe. Mr. Prestwich, in his admirable Memoirs on the eocene deposits of England and France, is able to draw a close general parallelism between the successive stages in the two countries; but when he compares certain stages in England with those in France, although he finds in both a curious accordance in the numbers of the species belonging to the same genera, yet the species themselves differ in a manner very difficult to account for, considering the proximity of the two areas,—unless, indeed, it be assumed that an isthmus separated two seas inhabited by distinct, but contemporaneous, faunas. Lyell has made similar observations on some of the later tertiary formations. Barrande, also, shows that there is a striking general parallelism in the successive Silurian deposits of Bohemia and Scandinavia; nevertheless he finds a surprising amount of difference in the species. If the several formations in these regions have not been deposited during the same exact periods,—a formation in one region often corresponding with a blank interval in the other,—and if in both regions the species have gone on slowly changing during the accumulation of the several formations and during the long intervals of time between them; in this case, the several formations in the two regions could be arranged in the same order, in accordance with the general succession of the form of life, and the order would falsely appear to be strictly parallel; nevertheless the species would not all be the same in the apparently corresponding stages in the two regions.

I suspect that similar cases have happened in Europe. Mr. Prestwich, in his excellent Memoirs on the Eocene deposits of England and France, is able to draw a strong general parallel between the successive stages in the two countries. However, when he compares certain stages in England with those in France, he finds a curious similarity in the numbers of species within the same genera, yet the species themselves differ in ways that are hard to explain, given how close the two areas are—unless we assume that an isthmus separated two seas populated by distinct, but contemporary, faunas. Lyell has made similar observations on some of the later tertiary formations. Barrande also shows that there is a noticeable general parallel in the successive Silurian deposits of Bohemia and Scandinavia; nevertheless, he finds a surprising amount of difference in the species. If the various formations in these regions were not deposited during the exact same periods—a formation in one region often matching a blank period in another—and if species in both regions slowly changed during the accumulation of the different formations and the long intervals between them; then the various formations in the two regions could be arranged in the same order according to the general succession of life forms, and the order would mistakenly seem to be strictly parallel; however, the species would not all be the same in the apparently corresponding stages of the two regions.

On the Affinities of extinct Species to each other, and to living forms.—Let us now look to the mutual affinities of extinct and living species. They all fall into one grand natural system; and this fact is at once explained on the principle of descent. The more ancient any form is, the more, as a general rule, it differs from living forms. But, as Buckland long ago remarked, all fossils can be classed either in still existing groups, or between them. That the extinct forms of life help to fill up the wide intervals between existing genera, families, and orders, cannot be disputed. For if we confine our attention either to the living or to the extinct alone, the series is far less perfect than if we combine both into one general system. With respect to the Vertebrata, whole pages could be filled with striking illustrations from our great palæontologist, Owen, showing how extinct animals fall in between existing groups. Cuvier ranked the Ruminants and Pachyderms, as the two most distinct orders of mammals; but Owen has discovered so many fossil links, that he has had to alter the whole classification of these two orders; and has placed certain pachyderms in the same sub-order with ruminants: for example, he dissolves by fine gradations the apparently wide difference between the pig and the camel. In regard to the Invertebrata, Barrande, and a higher authority could not be named, asserts that he is every day taught that palæozoic animals, though belonging to the same orders, families, or genera with those living at the present day, were not at this early epoch limited in such distinct groups as they now are.

On the Affinities of Extinct Species to Each Other, and to Living Forms.—Let's now examine the connections between extinct and living species. They all belong to one huge natural system, and this is clearly explained through the principle of descent. Generally speaking, the older a form is, the more it tends to differ from living forms. However, as Buckland noted long ago, all fossils can be categorized either in existing groups or somewhere between them. It's undeniable that extinct life forms help to bridge the significant gaps between current genera, families, and orders. If we focus only on living or only on extinct species, the series is much less complete compared to combining both into one comprehensive system. Regarding the Vertebrates, entire pages could be filled with striking examples from our great paleontologist Owen, illustrating how extinct animals fit between existing groups. Cuvier classified Ruminants and Pachyderms as the two most distinct orders of mammals, but Owen has identified so many fossil links that he had to revise the entire classification of these two orders, placing certain pachyderms in the same sub-order as ruminants. For instance, he gradually blurs the apparently significant difference between pigs and camels. As for the Invertebrates, Barrande, and a greater authority could not be named, claims that he learns every day that Paleozoic animals, even though they belong to the same orders, families, or genera as those living today, were not as distinctly grouped during that early period as they are now.

Some writers have objected to any extinct species or group of species being considered as intermediate between living species or groups. If by this term it is meant that an extinct form is directly intermediate in all its characters between two living forms, the objection is probably valid. But I apprehend that in a perfectly natural classification many fossil species would have to stand between living species, and some extinct genera between living genera, even between genera belonging to distinct families. The most common case, especially with respect to very distinct groups, such as fish and reptiles, seems to be, that supposing them to be distinguished at the present day from each other by a dozen characters, the ancient members of the same two groups would be distinguished by a somewhat lesser number of characters, so that the two groups, though formerly quite distinct, at that period made some small approach to each other.

Some writers have argued against considering any extinct species or group of species as being intermediate between living ones. If by "intermediate" we mean that an extinct form directly connects in all its traits between two living forms, then that argument is likely valid. However, I believe that in a truly natural classification, many fossil species would need to fit between living species, and some extinct genera would fit between living genera, even if they belong to different families. The most common scenario, especially with very distinct groups like fish and reptiles, appears to be that if we distinguish them today by a dozen traits, the ancient members of the same two groups would be distinguished by slightly fewer traits, indicating that although they were once quite separate, they had begun to converge a bit at that time.

It is a common belief that the more ancient a form is, by so much the more it tends to connect by some of its characters groups now widely separated from each other. This remark no doubt must be restricted to those groups which have undergone much change in the course of geological ages; and it would be difficult to prove the truth of the proposition, for every now and then even a living animal, as the Lepidosiren, is discovered having affinities directed towards very distinct groups. Yet if we compare the older Reptiles and Batrachians, the older Fish, the older Cephalopods, and the eocene Mammals, with the more recent members of the same classes, we must admit that there is some truth in the remark.

It's a common belief that the older a form is, the more it tends to connect some of its characteristics with groups that are now quite separated from each other. This observation probably applies mostly to those groups that have changed significantly over geological time; and it would be hard to prove this idea, as every so often a living animal, like the Lepidosiren, is found that has connections to very different groups. However, if we compare the older reptiles and Batrachians, the older fish, the older cephalopods, and the Eocene mammals with the more recent members of the same classes, we have to acknowledge that there is some truth to this observation.

Let us see how far these several facts and inferences accord with the theory of descent with modification. As the subject is somewhat complex, I must request the reader to turn to the diagram in the fourth chapter. We may suppose that the numbered letters represent genera, and the dotted lines diverging from them the species in each genus. The diagram is much too simple, too few genera and too few species being given, but this is unimportant for us. The horizontal lines may represent successive geological formations, and all the forms beneath the uppermost line may be considered as extinct. The three existing genera, a14, q14, p14, will form a small family; b14 and f14 a closely allied family or sub-family; and o14, e14, m14, a third family. These three families, together with the many extinct genera on the several lines of descent diverging from the parent-form A, will form an order; for all will have inherited something in common from their ancient and common progenitor. On the principle of the continued tendency to divergence of character, which was formerly illustrated by this diagram, the more recent any form is, the more it will generally differ from its ancient progenitor. Hence we can understand the rule that the most ancient fossils differ most from existing forms. We must not, however, assume that divergence of character is a necessary contingency; it depends solely on the descendants from a species being thus enabled to seize on many and different places in the economy of nature. Therefore it is quite possible, as we have seen in the case of some Silurian forms, that a species might go on being slightly modified in relation to its slightly altered conditions of life, and yet retain throughout a vast period the same general characteristics. This is represented in the diagram by the letter F14.

Let’s see how these various facts and conclusions match up with the theory of evolution through modification. Since this topic is a bit complicated, I’d like to ask the reader to refer to the diagram in the fourth chapter. We can assume that the numbered letters represent genera, and the dotted lines branching out from them show the species within each genus. The diagram is overly simplistic, with too few genera and species, but that’s not really a big deal for our purposes. The horizontal lines might represent successive geological formations, and all forms below the top line can be considered extinct. The three existing genera, a14, q14, p14, will form a small family; b14 and f14 will form a closely related family or sub-family; and o14, e14, m14, will form a third family. Together, these three families, along with the numerous extinct genera on the different lines of descent from the parent form A, will make up an order, since they all inherited something in common from their ancient shared ancestor. Based on the principle that there’s a continuous tendency for character divergence, which was previously illustrated by this diagram, the more recent a form is, the more it generally deviates from its ancient ancestor. This helps us understand why the oldest fossils tend to be more different from existing forms. However, we shouldn’t assume that character divergence is something that has to happen; it relies entirely on the descendants of a species being able to occupy many different roles in nature. Therefore, it’s entirely possible, as we’ve seen with some Silurian forms, that a species could be slightly modified in response to changing living conditions while still keeping the same general characteristics for a long time. This is represented in the diagram by the letter F14.

All the many forms, extinct and recent, descended from A, make, as before remarked, one order; and this order, from the continued effects of extinction and divergence of character, has become divided into several sub-families and families, some of which are supposed to have perished at different periods, and some to have endured to the present day.

All the various forms, both extinct and recent, that descended from A, make up one order, as mentioned earlier. This order, due to ongoing extinction and differences in characteristics, has been split into several sub-families and families. Some of these are believed to have gone extinct at different times, while others have survived to the present day.

By looking at the diagram we can see that if many of the extinct forms, supposed to be embedded in the successive formations, were discovered at several points low down in the series, the three existing families on the uppermost line would be rendered less distinct from each other. If, for instance, the genera a1, a5, a10, f8, m3, m6, m9 were disinterred, these three families would be so closely linked together that they probably would have to be united into one great family, in nearly the same manner as has occurred with ruminants and pachyderms. Yet he who objected to call the extinct genera, which thus linked the living genera of three families together, intermediate in character, would be justified, as they are intermediate, not directly, but only by a long and circuitous course through many widely different forms. If many extinct forms were to be discovered above one of the middle horizontal lines or geological formations—for instance, above Number VI.—but none from beneath this line, then only the two families on the left hand (namely, a14, etc., and b14, etc.) would have to be united into one family; and the two other families (namely, a14 to f14 now including five genera, and o14 to m14) would yet remain distinct. These two families, however, would be less distinct from each other than they were before the discovery of the fossils. If, for instance, we suppose the existing genera of the two families to differ from each other by a dozen characters, in this case the genera, at the early period marked VI., would differ by a lesser number of characters; for at this early stage of descent they have not diverged in character from the common progenitor of the order, nearly so much as they subsequently diverged. Thus it comes that ancient and extinct genera are often in some slight degree intermediate in character between their modified descendants, or between their collateral relations.

By looking at the diagram, we can see that if many of the extinct forms, believed to be found in the successive layers, were discovered at several points lower down in the series, the three existing families at the top line would be less distinct from each other. If, for example, the genera a1, a5, a10, f8, m3, m6, m9 were unearthed, these three families would be so closely connected that they'd likely need to be combined into one large family, similar to what has happened with ruminants and pachyderms. However, someone who objected to calling the extinct genera that linked the living genera of these three families “intermediate” would be justified, as they are intermediate, not directly, but only through a long and complicated journey through many very different forms. If many extinct forms were found above one of the middle horizontal lines or geological layers—for instance, above Number VI.—but none from below this line, then only the two families on the left (that is, a14, etc., and b14, etc.) would need to merge into one family; and the other two families (that is, a14 to f14, now including five genera, and o14 to m14) would still remain distinct. These two families, however, would be less different from each other than they were before the discovery of the fossils. For instance, if we assume that the existing genera of the two families differ from each other by a dozen characteristics, in this case, the genera at the early period marked VI. would differ by fewer characteristics; at this early stage of descent, they haven’t diverged in characteristics from the common ancestor of the order nearly as much as they eventually did. This explains why ancient and extinct genera are often somewhat intermediate in characteristics between their modified descendants or between their related forms.

In nature the case will be far more complicated than is represented in the diagram; for the groups will have been more numerous, they will have endured for extremely unequal lengths of time, and will have been modified in various degrees. As we possess only the last volume of the geological record, and that in a very broken condition, we have no right to expect, except in very rare cases, to fill up wide intervals in the natural system, and thus unite distinct families or orders. All that we have a right to expect, is that those groups, which have within known geological periods undergone much modification, should in the older formations make some slight approach to each other; so that the older members should differ less from each other in some of their characters than do the existing members of the same groups; and this by the concurrent evidence of our best palæontologists seems frequently to be the case.

In nature, the situation is much more complex than what's shown in the diagram; the groups will have been more numerous, will have lasted for very unequal amounts of time, and will have been modified to varying degrees. Since we only have the last part of the geological record, and it's in a very fragmented state, we can't expect, except in very rare cases, to bridge significant gaps in the natural system and connect distinct families or orders. What we can expect is that those groups that have undergone considerable changes within known geological periods should show some slight similarities in older formations; this means that the older members should differ less from each other in certain traits than the current members of the same groups do. According to the combined evidence from our best paleontologists, this often seems to be the case.

Thus, on the theory of descent with modification, the main facts with respect to the mutual affinities of the extinct forms of life to each other and to living forms, seem to me explained in a satisfactory manner. And they are wholly inexplicable on any other view.

Thus, according to the theory of evolution through modification, the key facts regarding the connections between extinct life forms and their relationships to each other and to living species are, in my opinion, satisfactorily explained. They are completely unexplainable from any other perspective.

On this same theory, it is evident that the fauna of any great period in the earth’s history will be intermediate in general character between that which preceded and that which succeeded it. Thus, the species which lived at the sixth great stage of descent in the diagram are the modified offspring of those which lived at the fifth stage, and are the parents of those which became still more modified at the seventh stage; hence they could hardly fail to be nearly intermediate in character between the forms of life above and below. We must, however, allow for the entire extinction of some preceding forms, and for the coming in of quite new forms by immigration, and for a large amount of modification, during the long and blank intervals between the successive formations. Subject to these allowances, the fauna of each geological period undoubtedly is intermediate in character, between the preceding and succeeding faunas. I need give only one instance, namely, the manner in which the fossils of the Devonian system, when this system was first discovered, were at once recognised by palæontologists as intermediate in character between those of the overlying carboniferous, and underlying Silurian system. But each fauna is not necessarily exactly intermediate, as unequal intervals of time have elapsed between consecutive formations.

According to this same theory, it's clear that the wildlife from any significant period in the Earth's history will generally be a blend of the species that came before and those that came after it. So, the species that existed at the sixth major stage of evolution in the diagram are the adapted descendants of those from the fifth stage, and they are the ancestors of the species that became even more adapted at the seventh stage; therefore, they’re likely to be quite similar to the forms of life above and below them. However, we must consider the complete extinction of some earlier forms, the introduction of new forms through migration, and significant modifications that occurred during the long gaps between successive formations. With these considerations in mind, it's clear that the wildlife of each geological period is indeed a blend of the preceding and succeeding wildlife. I only need to mention one example: when the fossils of the Devonian system were first discovered, paleontologists immediately recognized them as intermediate between those of the overlying Carboniferous system and the underlying Silurian system. However, not every fauna is necessarily exactly intermediate, as an uneven amount of time has passed between consecutive formations.

It is no real objection to the truth of the statement, that the fauna of each period as a whole is nearly intermediate in character between the preceding and succeeding faunas, that certain genera offer exceptions to the rule. For instance, mastodons and elephants, when arranged by Dr. Falconer in two series, first according to their mutual affinities and then according to their periods of existence, do not accord in arrangement. The species extreme in character are not the oldest, or the most recent; nor are those which are intermediate in character, intermediate in age. But supposing for an instant, in this and other such cases, that the record of the first appearance and disappearance of the species was perfect, we have no reason to believe that forms successively produced necessarily endure for corresponding lengths of time: a very ancient form might occasionally last much longer than a form elsewhere subsequently produced, especially in the case of terrestrial productions inhabiting separated districts. To compare small things with great: if the principal living and extinct races of the domestic pigeon were arranged as well as they could be in serial affinity, this arrangement would not closely accord with the order in time of their production, and still less with the order of their disappearance; for the parent rock-pigeon now lives; and many varieties between the rock-pigeon and the carrier have become extinct; and carriers which are extreme in the important character of length of beak originated earlier than short-beaked tumblers, which are at the opposite end of the series in this same respect.

It doesn't really challenge the truth of the statement that the overall fauna of each period is mostly intermediate between the earlier and later faunas that some genera are exceptions to this pattern. For example, when Dr. Falconer arranged mastodons and elephants in two series, first by their relationships to each other and then by the periods they lived in, they didn't match up in order. The species that are most extreme in characteristics aren’t necessarily the oldest or the newest; nor are those that are intermediate in characteristics, intermediate in age. But if we assume for a moment that the records of when species first appeared and disappeared were flawless, we have no reason to think that forms produced one after another necessarily exist for equal lengths of time: an ancient form might sometimes survive much longer than a form that appeared later in a different location, especially when it comes to terrestrial species in isolated areas. To draw a comparison: if we were to arrange the main living and extinct varieties of domestic pigeons based on their relationships, this arrangement wouldn't closely match the timeline of when they were created, and even less so the timeline of their extinction; for the common rock-pigeon still exists today, and many varieties between it and the carrier have gone extinct; furthermore, carriers, which are extreme in having long beaks, originated before short-beaked tumblers, which are at the other end of the spectrum in this characteristic.

Closely connected with the statement, that the organic remains from an intermediate formation are in some degree intermediate in character, is the fact, insisted on by all palæontologists, that fossils from two consecutive formations are far more closely related to each other, than are the fossils from two remote formations. Pictet gives as a well-known instance, the general resemblance of the organic remains from the several stages of the chalk formation, though the species are distinct in each stage. This fact alone, from its generality, seems to have shaken Professor Pictet in his firm belief in the immutability of species. He who is acquainted with the distribution of existing species over the globe, will not attempt to account for the close resemblance of the distinct species in closely consecutive formations, by the physical conditions of the ancient areas having remained nearly the same. Let it be remembered that the forms of life, at least those inhabiting the sea, have changed almost simultaneously throughout the world, and therefore under the most different climates and conditions. Consider the prodigious vicissitudes of climate during the pleistocene period, which includes the whole glacial period, and note how little the specific forms of the inhabitants of the sea have been affected.

Closely connected to the idea that the organic remains from an intermediate formation are somewhat intermediate in character is the fact, emphasized by all paleontologists, that fossils from two consecutive formations are much more closely related to each other than those from two distant formations. Pictet points out a well-known example: the overall similarity of the organic remains from various stages of the chalk formation, even though the species are distinct at each stage. This generality seems to have shaken Professor Pictet's strong belief in the unchanging nature of species. Anyone familiar with the distribution of current species around the globe won’t try to explain the close resemblance of distinct species in closely consecutive formations by suggesting the physical conditions of ancient areas remained nearly the same. It's important to remember that life forms, at least those living in the sea, have changed almost simultaneously across the world, despite varying climates and conditions. Consider the huge changes in climate during the Pleistocene era, which includes the entire glacial period, and note how little the specific forms of marine life have been affected.

On the theory of descent, the full meaning of the fact of fossil remains from closely consecutive formations, though ranked as distinct species, being closely related, is obvious. As the accumulation of each formation has often been interrupted, and as long blank intervals have intervened between successive formations, we ought not to expect to find, as I attempted to show in the last chapter, in any one or two formations all the intermediate varieties between the species which appeared at the commencement and close of these periods; but we ought to find after intervals, very long as measured by years, but only moderately long as measured geologically, closely allied forms, or, as they have been called by some authors, representative species; and these we assuredly do find. We find, in short, such evidence of the slow and scarcely sensible mutation of specific forms, as we have a just right to expect to find.

The theory of descent makes it clear that fossil remains from closely linked formations, although classified as different species, are actually closely related. Since the formation of each layer has often been interrupted and there have been long gaps between successive formations, we shouldn’t expect to find all the intermediate varieties between the species that appeared at the start and end of these periods in just one or two formations, as I pointed out in the last chapter. Instead, we should expect to find closely related forms after these long intervals, which, while extensive in years, are only moderately long from a geological perspective. Some authors refer to these as representative species, and we definitely do find them. In summary, we see clear evidence of the slow and minor changes in specific forms, which is exactly what we should expect.

On the state of Development of Ancient Forms.—There has been much discussion whether recent forms are more highly developed than ancient. I will not here enter on this subject, for naturalists have not as yet defined to each other’s satisfaction what is meant by high and low forms. But in one particular sense the more recent forms must, on my theory, be higher than the more ancient; for each new species is formed by having had some advantage in the struggle for life over other and preceding forms. If under a nearly similar climate, the eocene inhabitants of one quarter of the world were put into competition with the existing inhabitants of the same or some other quarter, the eocene fauna or flora would certainly be beaten and exterminated; as would a secondary fauna by an eocene, and a palæozoic fauna by a secondary fauna. I do not doubt that this process of improvement has affected in a marked and sensible manner the organisation of the more recent and victorious forms of life, in comparison with the ancient and beaten forms; but I can see no way of testing this sort of progress. Crustaceans, for instance, not the highest in their own class, may have beaten the highest molluscs. From the extraordinary manner in which European productions have recently spread over New Zealand, and have seized on places which must have been previously occupied, we may believe, if all the animals and plants of Great Britain were set free in New Zealand, that in the course of time a multitude of British forms would become thoroughly naturalized there, and would exterminate many of the natives. On the other hand, from what we see now occurring in New Zealand, and from hardly a single inhabitant of the southern hemisphere having become wild in any part of Europe, we may doubt, if all the productions of New Zealand were set free in Great Britain, whether any considerable number would be enabled to seize on places now occupied by our native plants and animals. Under this point of view, the productions of Great Britain may be said to be higher than those of New Zealand. Yet the most skilful naturalist from an examination of the species of the two countries could not have foreseen this result.

On the Development of Ancient Forms.—There's been a lot of debate about whether modern forms are more advanced than ancient ones. I won't dive into that here, as biologists haven't reached a clear understanding of what high and low forms actually mean. However, in one specific way, modern forms must be considered more advanced than ancient ones according to my theory; each new species develops because it has had some advantage in the struggle for survival compared to others that came before it. If, under similar climates, the Eocene creatures from one part of the world were to compete with the current inhabitants of the same or a different area, the Eocene fauna or flora would definitely be outmatched and wiped out—similar to how a secondary fauna would be beaten by an Eocene one, and a Paleozoic fauna by a secondary fauna. I have no doubt that this process of improvement has significantly influenced the organization of more recent and successful forms of life compared to the ancient and defeated ones; however, I can't see a way to measure this kind of progress. Crustaceans, for example, which aren't the highest in their own group, might have outcompeted the top mollusks. Given the remarkable way European species have recently spread across New Zealand and taken over areas that must have been previously occupied, we might conclude that if all the animals and plants from Great Britain were released in New Zealand, many British species would become well-established over time and would drive out many native species. Conversely, considering what we currently observe in New Zealand, and the fact that hardly any inhabitants from the southern hemisphere have become wild in Europe, we can question whether a significant number of plants and animals from New Zealand would be able to take over areas in Great Britain that are now occupied by our native species. From this perspective, the species of Great Britain could be seen as more advanced than those of New Zealand. Yet, even the most skilled biologist, after examining the species from the two countries, wouldn't have been able to predict this outcome.

Agassiz insists that ancient animals resemble to a certain extent the embryos of recent animals of the same classes; or that the geological succession of extinct forms is in some degree parallel to the embryological development of recent forms. I must follow Pictet and Huxley in thinking that the truth of this doctrine is very far from proved. Yet I fully expect to see it hereafter confirmed, at least in regard to subordinate groups, which have branched off from each other within comparatively recent times. For this doctrine of Agassiz accords well with the theory of natural selection. In a future chapter I shall attempt to show that the adult differs from its embryo, owing to variations supervening at a not early age, and being inherited at a corresponding age. This process, whilst it leaves the embryo almost unaltered, continually adds, in the course of successive generations, more and more difference to the adult.

Agassiz argues that ancient animals somewhat resemble the embryos of currently existing animals in the same classes; or that the geological timeline of extinct species is somewhat parallel to the embryological development of current species. I have to agree with Pictet and Huxley in believing that the validity of this idea is far from proven. However, I fully expect it to be confirmed in the future, at least concerning subordinate groups that have diverged from each other relatively recently. This idea from Agassiz aligns well with the theory of natural selection. In a later chapter, I will try to demonstrate that the adult differs from its embryo because variations occur at a later stage and are passed down at a corresponding age. This process, while leaving the embryo nearly unchanged, gradually introduces more differences to the adult over successive generations.

Thus the embryo comes to be left as a sort of picture, preserved by nature, of the ancient and less modified condition of each animal. This view may be true, and yet it may never be capable of full proof. Seeing, for instance, that the oldest known mammals, reptiles, and fish strictly belong to their own proper classes, though some of these old forms are in a slight degree less distinct from each other than are the typical members of the same groups at the present day, it would be vain to look for animals having the common embryological character of the Vertebrata, until beds far beneath the lowest Silurian strata are discovered—a discovery of which the chance is very small.

Thus the embryo serves as a sort of snapshot, preserved by nature, of the ancient and less evolved state of each animal. This perspective might be accurate, but it may never be completely proven. For instance, the oldest known mammals, reptiles, and fish belong strictly to their respective classes, even though some of these ancient forms are somewhat less distinct from each other than typical members of the same groups today. It would be pointless to search for animals that share the common embryological traits of the Vertebrata until layers far below the lowest Silurian strata are found—a discovery that is very unlikely.

On the Succession of the same Types within the same areas, during the later tertiary periods.—Mr. Clift many years ago showed that the fossil mammals from the Australian caves were closely allied to the living marsupials of that continent. In South America, a similar relationship is manifest, even to an uneducated eye, in the gigantic pieces of armour like those of the armadillo, found in several parts of La Plata; and Professor Owen has shown in the most striking manner that most of the fossil mammals, buried there in such numbers, are related to South American types. This relationship is even more clearly seen in the wonderful collection of fossil bones made by MM. Lund and Clausen in the caves of Brazil. I was so much impressed with these facts that I strongly insisted, in 1839 and 1845, on this “law of the succession of types,”—on “this wonderful relationship in the same continent between the dead and the living.” Professor Owen has subsequently extended the same generalisation to the mammals of the Old World. We see the same law in this author’s restorations of the extinct and gigantic birds of New Zealand. We see it also in the birds of the caves of Brazil. Mr. Woodward has shown that the same law holds good with sea-shells, but from the wide distribution of most genera of molluscs, it is not well displayed by them. Other cases could be added, as the relation between the extinct and living land-shells of Madeira; and between the extinct and living brackish-water shells of the Aralo-Caspian Sea.

On the Succession of the same Types within the same areas, during the later tertiary periods.—Many years ago, Mr. Clift demonstrated that the fossil mammals found in Australian caves are closely related to the living marsupials of that continent. In South America, a similar connection is obvious, even to an untrained eye, in the enormous armor pieces like those of the armadillo, discovered in various locations in La Plata. Professor Owen has clearly shown that most of the fossil mammals buried there in such large quantities are linked to South American types. This connection is even more evident in the impressive collection of fossil bones gathered by MM. Lund and Clausen in the caves of Brazil. I was so struck by these facts that I strongly argued, in 1839 and 1845, for this “law of the succession of types”—for “this remarkable relationship in the same continent between the dead and the living.” Professor Owen later expanded this idea to include the mammals of the Old World. We see the same principle in his restorations of the extinct and massive birds of New Zealand. It is also apparent in the birds found in the caves of Brazil. Mr. Woodward has shown that this law applies to sea shells as well, but due to the widespread distribution of many mollusk genera, it's not as clearly represented by them. Other examples could be cited, such as the relationship between the extinct and living land shells of Madeira and between the extinct and living brackish-water shells of the Aralo-Caspian Sea.

Now what does this remarkable law of the succession of the same types within the same areas mean? He would be a bold man, who after comparing the present climate of Australia and of parts of South America under the same latitude, would attempt to account, on the one hand, by dissimilar physical conditions for the dissimilarity of the inhabitants of these two continents, and, on the other hand, by similarity of conditions, for the uniformity of the same types in each during the later tertiary periods. Nor can it be pretended that it is an immutable law that marsupials should have been chiefly or solely produced in Australia; or that Edentata and other American types should have been solely produced in South America. For we know that Europe in ancient times was peopled by numerous marsupials; and I have shown in the publications above alluded to, that in America the law of distribution of terrestrial mammals was formerly different from what it now is. North America formerly partook strongly of the present character of the southern half of the continent; and the southern half was formerly more closely allied, than it is at present, to the northern half. In a similar manner we know from Falconer and Cautley’s discoveries, that northern India was formerly more closely related in its mammals to Africa than it is at the present time. Analogous facts could be given in relation to the distribution of marine animals.

What does this incredible law of the succession of the same types in the same areas actually mean? It would take a lot of nerve for someone, after comparing the current climate of Australia and some parts of South America at the same latitude, to explain, on one hand, how different physical conditions account for the differences in the inhabitants of these two continents, and, on the other hand, how similar conditions account for the uniformity of the same types in each during the later tertiary periods. It’s also not reasonable to claim that it’s a fixed law that marsupials should have primarily or exclusively evolved in Australia or that Edentata and other American types should have only evolved in South America. We know that Europe was once home to many marsupials, and I have demonstrated in the publications mentioned earlier that the distribution of terrestrial mammals in America used to be different from how it is now. North America used to share a lot of characteristics with the southern part of the continent, and the southern part was once more closely related to the northern part than it is today. Similarly, we know from the findings of Falconer and Cautley that northern India used to be more closely related in its mammals to Africa than it is now. We could provide similar examples regarding the distribution of marine animals.

On the theory of descent with modification, the great law of the long enduring, but not immutable, succession of the same types within the same areas, is at once explained; for the inhabitants of each quarter of the world will obviously tend to leave in that quarter, during the next succeeding period of time, closely allied though in some degree modified descendants. If the inhabitants of one continent formerly differed greatly from those of another continent, so will their modified descendants still differ in nearly the same manner and degree. But after very long intervals of time and after great geographical changes, permitting much inter-migration, the feebler will yield to the more dominant forms, and there will be nothing immutable in the laws of past and present distribution.

On the theory of descent with modification, the essential principle of the long-lasting, yet not unchanging, succession of the same types in the same areas is clearly explained. The inhabitants of each region of the world will likely leave behind closely related, albeit somewhat modified, descendants in that region over the next period of time. If the inhabitants of one continent once differed significantly from those of another, their modified descendants will still differ in similar ways and amounts. However, after very long periods and significant geographical changes that allow for extensive migration, the weaker forms will give way to the more dominant ones, and there will be nothing fixed about the patterns of past and present distribution.

It may be asked in ridicule, whether I suppose that the megatherium and other allied huge monsters have left behind them in South America the sloth, armadillo, and anteater, as their degenerate descendants. This cannot for an instant be admitted. These huge animals have become wholly extinct, and have left no progeny. But in the caves of Brazil, there are many extinct species which are closely allied in size and in other characters to the species still living in South America; and some of these fossils may be the actual progenitors of living species. It must not be forgotten that, on my theory, all the species of the same genus have descended from some one species; so that if six genera, each having eight species, be found in one geological formation, and in the next succeeding formation there be six other allied or representative genera with the same number of species, then we may conclude that only one species of each of the six older genera has left modified descendants, constituting the six new genera. The other seven species of the old genera have all died out and have left no progeny. Or, which would probably be a far commoner case, two or three species of two or three alone of the six older genera will have been the parents of the six new genera; the other old species and the other whole genera having become utterly extinct. In failing orders, with the genera and species decreasing in numbers, as apparently is the case of the Edentata of South America, still fewer genera and species will have left modified blood-descendants.

Some might mockingly ask if I really think that the megatherium and other giant creatures left behind the sloth, armadillo, and anteater as their lesser descendants. This is something that I cannot accept for a moment. These massive animals are completely extinct and have left no offspring. However, in the caves of Brazil, there are many extinct species that are closely related in size and other traits to the species still found in South America; and some of these fossils might actually be the ancestors of living species. It's important to remember that, according to my theory, all species in the same genus have descended from a single species; so if we find six genera, each with eight species, in one geological layer, and then in the next layer we find six other related or representative genera with the same number of species, we can conclude that only one species from each of the six older genera has left modified descendants that form the six new genera. The other seven species from the old genera have all gone extinct and left no descendants. Or, in a more common scenario, only two or three species from two or three of the six older genera may have been the parents of the six new genera; the other older species and genera have become completely extinct. In declining groups, where the number of genera and species is decreasing, as seems to be the case with the Edentata of South America, even fewer genera and species will have left modified descendants.

Summary of the preceding and present Chapters.—I have attempted to show that the geological record is extremely imperfect; that only a small portion of the globe has been geologically explored with care; that only certain classes of organic beings have been largely preserved in a fossil state; that the number both of specimens and of species, preserved in our museums, is absolutely as nothing compared with the incalculable number of generations which must have passed away even during a single formation; that, owing to subsidence being necessary for the accumulation of fossiliferous deposits thick enough to resist future degradation, enormous intervals of time have elapsed between the successive formations; that there has probably been more extinction during the periods of subsidence, and more variation during the periods of elevation, and during the latter the record will have been least perfectly kept; that each single formation has not been continuously deposited; that the duration of each formation is, perhaps, short compared with the average duration of specific forms; that migration has played an important part in the first appearance of new forms in any one area and formation; that widely ranging species are those which have varied most, and have oftenest given rise to new species; and that varieties have at first often been local. All these causes taken conjointly, must have tended to make the geological record extremely imperfect, and will to a large extent explain why we do not find interminable varieties, connecting together all the extinct and existing forms of life by the finest graduated steps.

Summary of the preceding and present Chapters.—I have tried to show that the geological record is very incomplete; that only a small part of the Earth has been carefully explored geologically; that only certain types of living organisms have mostly been preserved as fossils; that the number of specimens and species kept in our museums is nothing compared to the countless generations that must have disappeared even during a single geological formation; that, because subsidence is necessary for the accumulation of thick fossil-bearing deposits that can withstand future erosion, long periods of time have passed between successive formations; that there has likely been more extinction during the subsidence periods, and more variation during the elevation periods, and during the latter, the record will have been the least well preserved; that each formation has not been deposited continuously; that the duration of each formation is probably short compared to the average lifespan of specific forms; that migration has played a significant role in the emergence of new forms in any given area and formation; that species that range widely are those that have varied the most and have frequently given rise to new species; and that variations have often started out as local. All these factors combined must have contributed to making the geological record extremely flawed, which largely explains why we do not find endless varieties connecting all the extinct and living forms of life with the finest gradual steps.

He who rejects these views on the nature of the geological record, will rightly reject my whole theory. For he may ask in vain where are the numberless transitional links which must formerly have connected the closely allied or representative species, found in the several stages of the same great formation. He may disbelieve in the enormous intervals of time which have elapsed between our consecutive formations; he may overlook how important a part migration must have played, when the formations of any one great region alone, as that of Europe, are considered; he may urge the apparent, but often falsely apparent, sudden coming in of whole groups of species. He may ask where are the remains of those infinitely numerous organisms which must have existed long before the first bed of the Silurian system was deposited: I can answer this latter question only hypothetically, by saying that as far as we can see, where our oceans now extend they have for an enormous period extended, and where our oscillating continents now stand they have stood ever since the Silurian epoch; but that long before that period, the world may have presented a wholly different aspect; and that the older continents, formed of formations older than any known to us, may now all be in a metamorphosed condition, or may lie buried under the ocean.

Anyone who dismisses these ideas about the geological record will justifiably reject my entire theory. They might wonder, in vain, where the countless transitional links must have existed that connected closely related species found in different stages of the same major formation. They may not believe in the vast spans of time that have passed between our successive formations; they may overlook how significant migration must have been, especially when considering just one major region like Europe. They might point out the seemingly sudden appearance of whole groups of species, which can often be misleading. They could ask where the remains of the countless organisms that must have existed long before the first Silurian layer were deposited are. I can only respond to that question hypothetically by suggesting that, as far as we can tell, our current oceans have existed for an extremely long time, and our shifting continents have remained in place since the Silurian period; however, the world may have looked entirely different long before that, and the older continents, made up of formations older than any we know, might now be transformed or buried beneath the ocean.

Passing from these difficulties, all the other great leading facts in palæontology seem to me simply to follow on the theory of descent with modification through natural selection. We can thus understand how it is that new species come in slowly and successively; how species of different classes do not necessarily change together, or at the same rate, or in the same degree; yet in the long run that all undergo modification to some extent. The extinction of old forms is the almost inevitable consequence of the production of new forms. We can understand why when a species has once disappeared it never reappears. Groups of species increase in numbers slowly, and endure for unequal periods of time; for the process of modification is necessarily slow, and depends on many complex contingencies. The dominant species of the larger dominant groups tend to leave many modified descendants, and thus new sub-groups and groups are formed. As these are formed, the species of the less vigorous groups, from their inferiority inherited from a common progenitor, tend to become extinct together, and to leave no modified offspring on the face of the earth. But the utter extinction of a whole group of species may often be a very slow process, from the survival of a few descendants, lingering in protected and isolated situations. When a group has once wholly disappeared, it does not reappear; for the link of generation has been broken.

Moving past these challenges, all the other major points in paleontology seem to support the theory of evolution through natural selection. This helps us understand how new species emerge gradually and one after another; how different species don’t necessarily evolve together, or at the same pace, or to the same extent; yet in the long run, all of them undergo some degree of change. The extinction of older forms is nearly always a direct result of the emergence of new forms. We can see why a species, once it has vanished, doesn’t come back. Groups of species grow in number slowly and last for varying amounts of time; the process of evolution is inherently slow and relies on many complex factors. The dominant species in larger groups tend to produce many modified descendants, leading to the formation of new sub-groups and groups. As these sub-groups form, species from weaker groups, due to their inferiority inherited from a common ancestor, tend to go extinct together and leave no modified descendants on the planet. However, the complete extinction of an entire group of species can often take a long time, due to a few descendants surviving in protected and isolated areas. Once a group has completely disappeared, it does not come back; the chain of generation has been broken.

We can understand how the spreading of the dominant forms of life, which are those that oftenest vary, will in the long run tend to people the world with allied, but modified, descendants; and these will generally succeed in taking the places of those groups of species which are their inferiors in the struggle for existence. Hence, after long intervals of time, the productions of the world will appear to have changed simultaneously.

We can see how the expansion of the most common forms of life, which are the ones that change the most, will eventually fill the world with related but modified descendants; these will usually manage to replace the groups of species that are less successful in the fight for survival. Therefore, after long periods of time, it will seem that the world’s creations have changed all at once.

We can understand how it is that all the forms of life, ancient and recent, make together one grand system; for all are connected by generation. We can understand, from the continued tendency to divergence of character, why the more ancient a form is, the more it generally differs from those now living. Why ancient and extinct forms often tend to fill up gaps between existing forms, sometimes blending two groups previously classed as distinct into one; but more commonly only bringing them a little closer together. The more ancient a form is, the more often, apparently, it displays characters in some degree intermediate between groups now distinct; for the more ancient a form is, the more nearly it will be related to, and consequently resemble, the common progenitor of groups, since become widely divergent. Extinct forms are seldom directly intermediate between existing forms; but are intermediate only by a long and circuitous course through many extinct and very different forms. We can clearly see why the organic remains of closely consecutive formations are more closely allied to each other, than are those of remote formations; for the forms are more closely linked together by generation: we can clearly see why the remains of an intermediate formation are intermediate in character.

We can see how all forms of life, both ancient and recent, work together as one huge system; they’re all connected by their lineage. We can understand, because of the ongoing tendency for differences to grow, why the older a form is, the more it usually differs from current forms. Ancient and extinct forms often help bridge gaps between existing forms, sometimes merging two groups that were once classified as separate into one; but more often, they just bring them a bit closer together. The older a form is, the more it tends to show characteristics that are somewhat in between groups that are now distinct; this is because the older a form is, the more closely it’s related to, and therefore resembles, the common ancestor of those groups that have since become widely different. Extinct forms are rarely directly in between existing forms; instead, they are only intermediate through a long and winding path involving many extinct and very different forms. We can clearly see why the organic remains of closely consecutive layers are more closely related to each other than those from distant layers; the forms are more closely linked through their lineage: we can clearly see why the remains of an intermediate layer have characteristics that are intermediate.

The inhabitants of each successive period in the world’s history have beaten their predecessors in the race for life, and are, in so far, higher in the scale of nature; and this may account for that vague yet ill-defined sentiment, felt by many palæontologists, that organisation on the whole has progressed. If it should hereafter be proved that ancient animals resemble to a certain extent the embryos of more recent animals of the same class, the fact will be intelligible. The succession of the same types of structure within the same areas during the later geological periods ceases to be mysterious, and is simply explained by inheritance.

The people of each new era in history have outperformed those before them in the struggle for survival, and in that sense, they are seen as higher on the scale of life; this might explain the vague but strong feeling among many paleontologists that overall, life has progressed. If it’s later proven that ancient animals somewhat resemble the embryos of more modern animals in the same class, it will make sense. The continuation of the same types of structure in the same regions during later geological periods stops being a mystery and can be easily explained by inherited traits.

If then the geological record be as imperfect as I believe it to be, and it may at least be asserted that the record cannot be proved to be much more perfect, the main objections to the theory of natural selection are greatly diminished or disappear. On the other hand, all the chief laws of palæontology plainly proclaim, as it seems to me, that species have been produced by ordinary generation: old forms having been supplanted by new and improved forms of life, produced by the laws of variation still acting round us, and preserved by Natural Selection.

If the geological record is as incomplete as I think it is, and we can at least say that we can’t prove it to be significantly more complete, then the main objections to the theory of natural selection are greatly reduced or vanish entirely. On the flip side, all the key principles of paleontology clearly indicate, in my view, that species have come about through regular reproduction: older forms have been replaced by newer and better forms of life, created by the laws of variation that are still at work around us, and preserved through Natural Selection.

CHAPTER XI.
GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION.

Present distribution cannot be accounted for by differences in physical conditions. Importance of barriers. Affinity of the productions of the same continent. Centres of creation. Means of dispersal, by changes of climate and of the level of the land, and by occasional means. Dispersal during the Glacial period co-extensive with the world.

Present distribution can't be explained solely by differences in physical conditions. The significance of barriers is crucial. There’s a connection between the species found on the same continent. Creation centers play a key role. Ways of dispersal include changes in climate and land level, along with occasional methods. Dispersal during the Ice Age was global.

In considering the distribution of organic beings over the face of the globe, the first great fact which strikes us is, that neither the similarity nor the dissimilarity of the inhabitants of various regions can be accounted for by their climatal and other physical conditions. Of late, almost every author who has studied the subject has come to this conclusion. The case of America alone would almost suffice to prove its truth: for if we exclude the northern parts where the circumpolar land is almost continuous, all authors agree that one of the most fundamental divisions in geographical distribution is that between the New and Old Worlds; yet if we travel over the vast American continent, from the central parts of the United States to its extreme southern point, we meet with the most diversified conditions; the most humid districts, arid deserts, lofty mountains, grassy plains, forests, marshes, lakes, and great rivers, under almost every temperature. There is hardly a climate or condition in the Old World which cannot be paralleled in the New—at least as closely as the same species generally require; for it is a most rare case to find a group of organisms confined to any small spot, having conditions peculiar in only a slight degree; for instance, small areas in the Old World could be pointed out hotter than any in the New World, yet these are not inhabited by a peculiar fauna or flora. Notwithstanding this parallelism in the conditions of the Old and New Worlds, how widely different are their living productions!

When we look at how living organisms are spread across the globe, the first significant fact that strikes us is that we can't explain the similarities or differences among the inhabitants of various regions simply by their climate and other physical conditions. Recently, almost every author who has examined the topic has reached this conclusion. The case of America alone would be enough to support this truth: if we ignore the northern areas where the circumpolar land is largely continuous, all authors agree that one of the key divisions in geographical distribution is between the New and Old Worlds. However, if we travel throughout the vast American continent, from the central United States to its southernmost point, we encounter an incredible variety of conditions: the most humid areas, dry deserts, tall mountains, grassy plains, forests, marshes, lakes, and major rivers, all existing in nearly every temperature. There’s hardly a climate or condition in the Old World that can’t be found in the New—at least as closely as the same species typically require; it’s quite rare to find a group of organisms limited to a small area with conditions that are only slightly different. For example, there are small regions in the Old World that are hotter than any in the New, yet these areas are not home to unique animals or plants. Despite these similarities in conditions between the Old and New Worlds, how vastly different their living organisms are!

In the southern hemisphere, if we compare large tracts of land in Australia, South Africa, and western South America, between latitudes 25° and 35°, we shall find parts extremely similar in all their conditions, yet it would not be possible to point out three faunas and floras more utterly dissimilar. Or again we may compare the productions of South America south of lat. 35° with those north of 25°, which consequently inhabit a considerably different climate, and they will be found incomparably more closely related to each other, than they are to the productions of Australia or Africa under nearly the same climate. Analogous facts could be given with respect to the inhabitants of the sea.

In the southern hemisphere, if we look at large areas of land in Australia, South Africa, and western South America, between latitudes 25° and 35°, we’ll find parts that are extremely similar in all their conditions, yet it wouldn't be possible to identify three faunas and floras that are more completely different. Alternatively, we can compare the species of South America south of lat. 35° with those north of 25°, which live in a significantly different climate, and they will be found to be much more closely related to each other than they are to the species of Australia or Africa in nearly the same climate. We could provide similar examples regarding the inhabitants of the sea.

A second great fact which strikes us in our general review is, that barriers of any kind, or obstacles to free migration, are related in a close and important manner to the differences between the productions of various regions. We see this in the great difference of nearly all the terrestrial productions of the New and Old Worlds, excepting in the northern parts, where the land almost joins, and where, under a slightly different climate, there might have been free migration for the northern temperate forms, as there now is for the strictly arctic productions. We see the same fact in the great difference between the inhabitants of Australia, Africa, and South America under the same latitude: for these countries are almost as much isolated from each other as is possible. On each continent, also, we see the same fact; for on the opposite sides of lofty and continuous mountain-ranges, and of great deserts, and sometimes even of large rivers, we find different productions; though as mountain chains, deserts, etc., are not as impassable, or likely to have endured so long as the oceans separating continents, the differences are very inferior in degree to those characteristic of distinct continents.

A second significant point that stands out in our overall review is that barriers of any kind or obstacles to free migration are closely and importantly linked to the differences in production across various regions. This is evident in the stark contrast of nearly all the natural products of the New and Old Worlds, except in the northern areas where the land almost connects, and where, under a slightly different climate, there might have been free migration for the northern temperate species, just as there currently is for the strictly arctic products. We observe the same issue in the significant differences among the inhabitants of Australia, Africa, and South America at the same latitude, as these countries are nearly as isolated from each other as possible. We also see this on each continent; on opposite sides of lofty and continuous mountain ranges, vast deserts, and sometimes even large rivers, we find different productions. However, since mountain ranges, deserts, etc., are not as impassable or likely to have lasted as long as the oceans that separate continents, the differences are much less pronounced compared to those typical of distinct continents.

Turning to the sea, we find the same law. No two marine faunas are more distinct, with hardly a fish, shell, or crab in common, than those of the eastern and western shores of South and Central America; yet these great faunas are separated only by the narrow, but impassable, isthmus of Panama. Westward of the shores of America, a wide space of open ocean extends, with not an island as a halting-place for emigrants; here we have a barrier of another kind, and as soon as this is passed we meet in the eastern islands of the Pacific, with another and totally distinct fauna. So that here three marine faunas range far northward and southward, in parallel lines not far from each other, under corresponding climates; but from being separated from each other by impassable barriers, either of land or open sea, they are wholly distinct. On the other hand, proceeding still further westward from the eastern islands of the tropical parts of the Pacific, we encounter no impassable barriers, and we have innumerable islands as halting-places, until after travelling over a hemisphere we come to the shores of Africa; and over this vast space we meet with no well-defined and distinct marine faunas. Although hardly one shell, crab or fish is common to the above-named three approximate faunas of Eastern and Western America and the eastern Pacific islands, yet many fish range from the Pacific into the Indian Ocean, and many shells are common to the eastern islands of the Pacific and the eastern shores of Africa, on almost exactly opposite meridians of longitude.

Turning to the ocean, we see the same principle. The marine life on the eastern and western coasts of South and Central America is incredibly distinct, with hardly any fish, shell, or crab shared between them; yet these vast ecosystems are only divided by the narrow, but impassable, isthmus of Panama. West of the American coasts, there’s a wide expanse of open ocean, with no islands providing stopovers for migrating species; this creates a different kind of barrier, and once crossed, we encounter a completely different set of marine life in the eastern islands of the Pacific. As a result, three distinct marine ecosystems extend far north and south, running parallel to each other in similar climates; but due to the impassable barriers of land or open sea, they remain entirely separate. On the other hand, as we travel even further west from the eastern islands in the tropical Pacific, we find no insurmountable barriers and countless islands providing stopovers until we eventually reach the shores of Africa; throughout this vast region, we do not encounter clearly defined and distinct marine ecosystems. While hardly any shell, crab, or fish is shared between the aforementioned three closely related ecosystems of Eastern and Western America and the eastern Pacific islands, many fish migrate from the Pacific to the Indian Ocean, and numerous shells are common to the eastern islands of the Pacific and the eastern coasts of Africa, located on nearly exactly opposite lines of longitude.

A third great fact, partly included in the foregoing statements, is the affinity of the productions of the same continent or sea, though the species themselves are distinct at different points and stations. It is a law of the widest generality, and every continent offers innumerable instances. Nevertheless the naturalist in travelling, for instance, from north to south never fails to be struck by the manner in which successive groups of beings, specifically distinct, yet clearly related, replace each other. He hears from closely allied, yet distinct kinds of birds, notes nearly similar, and sees their nests similarly constructed, but not quite alike, with eggs coloured in nearly the same manner. The plains near the Straits of Magellan are inhabited by one species of Rhea (American ostrich), and northward the plains of La Plata by another species of the same genus; and not by a true ostrich or emeu, like those found in Africa and Australia under the same latitude. On these same plains of La Plata, we see the agouti and bizcacha, animals having nearly the same habits as our hares and rabbits and belonging to the same order of Rodents, but they plainly display an American type of structure. We ascend the lofty peaks of the Cordillera and we find an alpine species of bizcacha; we look to the waters, and we do not find the beaver or musk-rat, but the coypu and capybara, rodents of the American type. Innumerable other instances could be given. If we look to the islands off the American shore, however much they may differ in geological structure, the inhabitants, though they may be all peculiar species, are essentially American. We may look back to past ages, as shown in the last chapter, and we find American types then prevalent on the American continent and in the American seas. We see in these facts some deep organic bond, prevailing throughout space and time, over the same areas of land and water, and independent of their physical conditions. The naturalist must feel little curiosity, who is not led to inquire what this bond is.

A third important fact, which is partly included in the earlier statements, is the similarity of the species found on the same continent or in the same sea, even though the species themselves are different at various locations. This is a broad principle, and every continent provides countless examples. However, a naturalist traveling from north to south is often struck by how groups of organisms that are distinct yet clearly related take the place of one another. He hears similar calls from closely related, yet different, types of birds and observes their nests, which have similar structures but are not exactly alike, with eggs that have nearly the same coloration. In the plains near the Straits of Magellan, one species of Rhea (American ostrich) lives, while further north, the plains of La Plata are home to another species from the same genus; neither is a true ostrich or emu like those found in Africa and Australia at the same latitude. On these same plains of La Plata, we see the agouti and bizcacha, animals that have nearly the same habits as our hares and rabbits and belong to the same order of Rodents, but they clearly show an American structural type. As we ascend the towering peaks of the Cordillera, we find an alpine species of bizcacha; when we look to the waters, we don't find beavers or musk-rats but the coypu and capybara, which are American rodents. Countless other examples could be given. If we examine the islands off the American coast, regardless of their geological differences, the inhabitants, while all unique species, are fundamentally American. Looking back at past ages, as discussed in the last chapter, we find American types were prevalent on the American continent and in the American seas. In these facts, we observe a deep organic connection that spans across space and time, affecting the same areas of land and water, regardless of their physical conditions. Any naturalist who isn't curious about what this connection is must be somewhat lacking in interest.

This bond, on my theory, is simply inheritance, that cause which alone, as far as we positively know, produces organisms quite like, or, as we see in the case of varieties nearly like each other. The dissimilarity of the inhabitants of different regions may be attributed to modification through natural selection, and in a quite subordinate degree to the direct influence of different physical conditions. The degree of dissimilarity will depend on the migration of the more dominant forms of life from one region into another having been effected with more or less ease, at periods more or less remote;—on the nature and number of the former immigrants;—and on their action and reaction, in their mutual struggles for life;—the relation of organism to organism being, as I have already often remarked, the most important of all relations. Thus the high importance of barriers comes into play by checking migration; as does time for the slow process of modification through natural selection. Widely-ranging species, abounding in individuals, which have already triumphed over many competitors in their own widely-extended homes will have the best chance of seizing on new places, when they spread into new countries. In their new homes they will be exposed to new conditions, and will frequently undergo further modification and improvement; and thus they will become still further victorious, and will produce groups of modified descendants. On this principle of inheritance with modification, we can understand how it is that sections of genera, whole genera, and even families are confined to the same areas, as is so commonly and notoriously the case.

This connection, in my view, is simply inheritance, the cause that, as far as we know, creates organisms that are very similar, or, as we observe in the case of varieties that are nearly alike. The differences among the inhabitants of various regions can be attributed to changes through natural selection, and to a lesser extent, to the direct impact of different physical conditions. The extent of these differences will depend on how easily the dominant forms of life move from one area to another at various times; on the type and number of previous migrants; and on their interactions in their struggles for survival—the relationships between organisms being, as I have often pointed out, the most crucial of all relationships. Thus, the significant role of barriers is evident as they hinder migration, just as time is essential for the slow process of change through natural selection. Species that are widely spread and abundant, having already overcome many competitors in their extensive habitats, will have the best chance to take over new areas when they expand into new countries. In these new environments, they will face different conditions and will often experience further changes and improvements; consequently, they will become even more successful, producing groups of modified descendants. Based on this principle of inheritance with modification, we can grasp why sections of genera, entire genera, and even families are often confined to the same areas, as is commonly and well-known.

I believe, as was remarked in the last chapter, in no law of necessary development. As the variability of each species is an independent property, and will be taken advantage of by natural selection, only so far as it profits the individual in its complex struggle for life, so the degree of modification in different species will be no uniform quantity. If, for instance, a number of species, which stand in direct competition with each other, migrate in a body into a new and afterwards isolated country, they will be little liable to modification; for neither migration nor isolation in themselves can do anything. These principles come into play only by bringing organisms into new relations with each other, and in a lesser degree with the surrounding physical conditions. As we have seen in the last chapter that some forms have retained nearly the same character from an enormously remote geological period, so certain species have migrated over vast spaces, and have not become greatly modified.

I believe, as mentioned in the last chapter, that there’s no law of necessary development. The variability of each species is an independent trait, and natural selection will only take advantage of it if it benefits the individual in its complex struggle for survival. Therefore, the level of change in different species won't be the same across the board. For example, if several species that directly compete with each other move together into a new and later isolated area, they are unlikely to undergo much change; migration or isolation alone don’t really have an effect. These processes only matter when they place organisms in new relationships with each other and, to a lesser extent, with their physical surroundings. As we observed in the last chapter, some forms have maintained nearly the same characteristics since a very distant geological period, just as certain species have traveled vast distances without undergoing significant changes.

On these views, it is obvious, that the several species of the same genus, though inhabiting the most distant quarters of the world, must originally have proceeded from the same source, as they have descended from the same progenitor. In the case of those species, which have undergone during whole geological periods but little modification, there is not much difficulty in believing that they may have migrated from the same region; for during the vast geographical and climatal changes which will have supervened since ancient times, almost any amount of migration is possible. But in many other cases, in which we have reason to believe that the species of a genus have been produced within comparatively recent times, there is great difficulty on this head. It is also obvious that the individuals of the same species, though now inhabiting distant and isolated regions, must have proceeded from one spot, where their parents were first produced: for, as explained in the last chapter, it is incredible that individuals identically the same should ever have been produced through natural selection from parents specifically distinct.

It's clear that various species of the same genus, even if they live in the most far-flung parts of the world, must have originally come from the same source since they have a common ancestor. In cases where species have changed very little over long geological periods, it's not hard to believe that they may have migrated from the same area; after all, given the enormous geographical and climate changes that have occurred over time, practically any level of migration is conceivable. However, in many other instances, where we have reason to think that the species of a genus emerged relatively recently, this becomes quite challenging to accept. It is also clear that individuals of the same species, even though they currently inhabit far-away and isolated areas, must have originated from one location where their ancestors first appeared: as discussed in the last chapter, it's hard to believe that identical individuals could have evolved through natural selection from parents that are distinctly different.

We are thus brought to the question which has been largely discussed by naturalists, namely, whether species have been created at one or more points of the earth’s surface. Undoubtedly there are very many cases of extreme difficulty, in understanding how the same species could possibly have migrated from some one point to the several distant and isolated points, where now found. Nevertheless the simplicity of the view that each species was first produced within a single region captivates the mind. He who rejects it, rejects the vera causa of ordinary generation with subsequent migration, and calls in the agency of a miracle. It is universally admitted, that in most cases the area inhabited by a species is continuous; and when a plant or animal inhabits two points so distant from each other, or with an interval of such a nature, that the space could not be easily passed over by migration, the fact is given as something remarkable and exceptional. The capacity of migrating across the sea is more distinctly limited in terrestrial mammals, than perhaps in any other organic beings; and, accordingly, we find no inexplicable cases of the same mammal inhabiting distant points of the world. No geologist will feel any difficulty in such cases as Great Britain having been formerly united to Europe, and consequently possessing the same quadrupeds. But if the same species can be produced at two separate points, why do we not find a single mammal common to Europe and Australia or South America? The conditions of life are nearly the same, so that a multitude of European animals and plants have become naturalised in America and Australia; and some of the aboriginal plants are identically the same at these distant points of the northern and southern hemispheres? The answer, as I believe, is, that mammals have not been able to migrate, whereas some plants, from their varied means of dispersal, have migrated across the vast and broken interspace. The great and striking influence which barriers of every kind have had on distribution, is intelligible only on the view that the great majority of species have been produced on one side alone, and have not been able to migrate to the other side. Some few families, many sub-families, very many genera, and a still greater number of sections of genera are confined to a single region; and it has been observed by several naturalists, that the most natural genera, or those genera in which the species are most closely related to each other, are generally local, or confined to one area. What a strange anomaly it would be, if, when coming one step lower in the series, to the individuals of the same species, a directly opposite rule prevailed; and species were not local, but had been produced in two or more distinct areas!

We are led to the question that has been widely debated by naturalists: whether species were created at one or multiple places on Earth. There are definitely many challenging cases when trying to understand how the same species could have migrated from a single location to various distant and isolated places where they are now found. Still, the straightforward idea that each species originated in a single area is appealing. Those who dismiss it reject the common explanation of ordinary generation followed by migration and instead invoke a miraculous intervention. It is generally accepted that in most cases, the range occupied by a species is continuous. When a plant or animal exists at two locations that are far apart, or there’s a gap that would make migration difficult, it’s regarded as remarkable and unusual. Terrestrial mammals tend to have more limited abilities to cross the sea compared to other organisms, which is why we don’t see puzzling cases of the same mammal living in distant parts of the world. No geologist would struggle with the idea that Great Britain was once connected to Europe, and therefore had the same quadrupeds. But if the same species can originate in two separate locations, why don’t we find a single mammal common to Europe and Australia or South America? The living conditions are nearly identical, which is why many European animals and plants have adapted to America and Australia; some native plants are exactly the same in these far-apart regions of the northern and southern hemispheres. I believe the reason is that mammals have not been able to migrate, while some plants, with their various means of dispersal, have crossed the vast and fragmented spaces. The significant impact that barriers of all kinds have had on distribution can only be understood if we accept that the vast majority of species originated on one side and could not migrate to the other. A few families, many sub-families, numerous genera, and an even greater number of genus sections are limited to a single area. Several naturalists have noted that the most natural genera, or those in which the species are closely related, are typically local, or restricted to one region. How strange it would be if, when considering the individuals of the same species, a completely opposite rule applied, and species were not local but had originated in two or more distinct areas!

Hence it seems to me, as it has to many other naturalists, that the view of each species having been produced in one area alone, and having subsequently migrated from that area as far as its powers of migration and subsistence under past and present conditions permitted, is the most probable. Undoubtedly many cases occur, in which we cannot explain how the same species could have passed from one point to the other. But the geographical and climatal changes, which have certainly occurred within recent geological times, must have interrupted or rendered discontinuous the formerly continuous range of many species. So that we are reduced to consider whether the exceptions to continuity of range are so numerous and of so grave a nature, that we ought to give up the belief, rendered probable by general considerations, that each species has been produced within one area, and has migrated thence as far as it could. It would be hopelessly tedious to discuss all the exceptional cases of the same species, now living at distant and separated points; nor do I for a moment pretend that any explanation could be offered of many such cases. But after some preliminary remarks, I will discuss a few of the most striking classes of facts; namely, the existence of the same species on the summits of distant mountain-ranges, and at distant points in the arctic and antarctic regions; and secondly (in the following chapter), the wide distribution of freshwater productions; and thirdly, the occurrence of the same terrestrial species on islands and on the mainland, though separated by hundreds of miles of open sea. If the existence of the same species at distant and isolated points of the earth’s surface, can in many instances be explained on the view of each species having migrated from a single birthplace; then, considering our ignorance with respect to former climatal and geographical changes and various occasional means of transport, the belief that this has been the universal law, seems to me incomparably the safest.

It seems to me, as it does to many other naturalists, that the idea of each species originating in one specific area and then migrating from there as far as its ability to move and survive under past and present conditions allows is the most likely scenario. Surely there are many instances where we can't explain how the same species ended up in different places. However, the geographical and climatic changes that have definitely occurred in recent geological history must have interrupted or broken up the once continuous range of many species. This leads us to consider whether the exceptions to the continuity of range are so numerous and significant that we should abandon the belief, supported by general reasoning, that each species originated in one area and migrated from there as far as it could. It would be incredibly tedious to discuss all the unusual cases of the same species now living in distant and separate locations; nor do I claim that any explanation could be given for many of these cases. But after some initial comments, I will discuss a few of the most notable categories of facts; specifically, the existence of the same species on the peaks of far-off mountain ranges and in distant points in the Arctic and Antarctic regions; and secondly (in the following chapter), the wide distribution of freshwater species; and thirdly, the occurrence of the same land species both on islands and on the mainland, despite being separated by hundreds of miles of open sea. If the presence of the same species at distant and isolated locations on Earth can often be explained by the idea that each species migrated from a single birthplace, then, considering our lack of knowledge about past climatic and geographical changes and various means of transport, the belief that this has been a universal principle seems to me to be much the safest.

In discussing this subject, we shall be enabled at the same time to consider a point equally important for us, namely, whether the several distinct species of a genus, which on my theory have all descended from a common progenitor, can have migrated (undergoing modification during some part of their migration) from the area inhabited by their progenitor. If it can be shown to be almost invariably the case, that a region, of which most of its inhabitants are closely related to, or belong to the same genera with the species of a second region, has probably received at some former period immigrants from this other region, my theory will be strengthened; for we can clearly understand, on the principle of modification, why the inhabitants of a region should be related to those of another region, whence it has been stocked. A volcanic island, for instance, upheaved and formed at the distance of a few hundreds of miles from a continent, would probably receive from it in the course of time a few colonists, and their descendants, though modified, would still be plainly related by inheritance to the inhabitants of the continent. Cases of this nature are common, and are, as we shall hereafter more fully see, inexplicable on the theory of independent creation. This view of the relation of species in one region to those in another, does not differ much (by substituting the word variety for species) from that lately advanced in an ingenious paper by Mr. Wallace, in which he concludes, that “every species has come into existence coincident both in space and time with a pre-existing closely allied species.” And I now know from correspondence, that this coincidence he attributes to generation with modification.

In discussing this topic, we will also be able to look at another important point for us, which is whether the different species within a genus, all of which I believe descended from a common ancestor, could have migrated (and changed during some part of their migration) from the area where their ancestor lived. If it can be demonstrated that it is almost always the case that a region, whose inhabitants are closely related to or belong to the same genera as the species from another region, probably received immigrants from that other region at some point in the past, my theory will be supported. We can clearly understand, based on the principle of modification, why the inhabitants of one region would be related to those of another region from which it has been populated. For example, a volcanic island that rises up a few hundred miles from a continent would likely receive a few colonizers from it over time, and their descendants, though changed, would still be clearly related by inheritance to the inhabitants of the continent. Cases like this are common and, as we will see later, cannot be explained by the theory of independent creation. This perspective on the relationship between species in one region and those in another is not very different (if you replace the word variety with species) from what Mr. Wallace recently proposed in a clever paper, in which he concludes that “every species has come into existence simultaneously both in space and time with a pre-existing closely related species.” I now know from correspondence that he attributes this coincidence to generation with modification.

The previous remarks on “single and multiple centres of creation” do not directly bear on another allied question,—namely whether all the individuals of the same species have descended from a single pair, or single hermaphrodite, or whether, as some authors suppose, from many individuals simultaneously created. With those organic beings which never intercross (if such exist), the species, on my theory, must have descended from a succession of improved varieties, which will never have blended with other individuals or varieties, but will have supplanted each other; so that, at each successive stage of modification and improvement, all the individuals of each variety will have descended from a single parent. But in the majority of cases, namely, with all organisms which habitually unite for each birth, or which often intercross, I believe that during the slow process of modification the individuals of the species will have been kept nearly uniform by intercrossing; so that many individuals will have gone on simultaneously changing, and the whole amount of modification will not have been due, at each stage, to descent from a single parent. To illustrate what I mean: our English racehorses differ slightly from the horses of every other breed; but they do not owe their difference and superiority to descent from any single pair, but to continued care in selecting and training many individuals during many generations.

The earlier comments about “single and multiple centers of creation” don’t directly address another related question—whether all individuals of the same species have descended from a single pair or a single hermaphrodite, or, as some authors suggest, from many individuals created at the same time. For those organisms that never intercross (if such exist), according to my theory, the species must have descended from a series of improved varieties that have never mixed with other individuals or varieties but have replaced one another. Therefore, at each stage of modification and improvement, all individuals in each variety will have descended from a single parent. However, in most cases—specifically, with all organisms that typically come together for reproduction or frequently intercross—I believe that throughout the gradual process of modification, the individuals of that species will have remained fairly uniform due to intercrossing. This means that many individuals have likely changed at the same time, and the total amount of modification at each stage hasn’t come solely from descent from a single parent. To clarify, our English racehorses differ slightly from horses of every other breed; however, their differences and superiority don’t stem from descent from any single pair but from the careful selection and training of many individuals over many generations.

Before discussing the three classes of facts, which I have selected as presenting the greatest amount of difficulty on the theory of “single centres of creation,” I must say a few words on the means of dispersal.

Before discussing the three types of facts that I’ve chosen because they pose the greatest challenges to the theory of “single centers of creation,” I need to say a few words about how dispersal occurs.

Means of Dispersal.—Sir C. Lyell and other authors have ably treated this subject. I can give here only the briefest abstract of the more important facts. Change of climate must have had a powerful influence on migration: a region when its climate was different may have been a high road for migration, but now be impassable; I shall, however, presently have to discuss this branch of the subject in some detail. Changes of level in the land must also have been highly influential: a narrow isthmus now separates two marine faunas; submerge it, or let it formerly have been submerged, and the two faunas will now blend or may formerly have blended: where the sea now extends, land may at a former period have connected islands or possibly even continents together, and thus have allowed terrestrial productions to pass from one to the other. No geologist will dispute that great mutations of level have occurred within the period of existing organisms. Edward Forbes insisted that all the islands in the Atlantic must recently have been connected with Europe or Africa, and Europe likewise with America. Other authors have thus hypothetically bridged over every ocean, and have united almost every island to some mainland. If indeed the arguments used by Forbes are to be trusted, it must be admitted that scarcely a single island exists which has not recently been united to some continent. This view cuts the Gordian knot of the dispersal of the same species to the most distant points, and removes many a difficulty: but to the best of my judgment we are not authorized in admitting such enormous geographical changes within the period of existing species. It seems to me that we have abundant evidence of great oscillations of level in our continents; but not of such vast changes in their position and extension, as to have united them within the recent period to each other and to the several intervening oceanic islands. I freely admit the former existence of many islands, now buried beneath the sea, which may have served as halting places for plants and for many animals during their migration. In the coral-producing oceans such sunken islands are now marked, as I believe, by rings of coral or atolls standing over them. Whenever it is fully admitted, as I believe it will some day be, that each species has proceeded from a single birthplace, and when in the course of time we know something definite about the means of distribution, we shall be enabled to speculate with security on the former extension of the land. But I do not believe that it will ever be proved that within the recent period continents which are now quite separate, have been continuously, or almost continuously, united with each other, and with the many existing oceanic islands. Several facts in distribution,—such as the great difference in the marine faunas on the opposite sides of almost every continent,—the close relation of the tertiary inhabitants of several lands and even seas to their present inhabitants,—a certain degree of relation (as we shall hereafter see) between the distribution of mammals and the depth of the sea,—these and other such facts seem to me opposed to the admission of such prodigious geographical revolutions within the recent period, as are necessitated on the view advanced by Forbes and admitted by his many followers. The nature and relative proportions of the inhabitants of oceanic islands likewise seem to me opposed to the belief of their former continuity with continents. Nor does their almost universally volcanic composition favour the admission that they are the wrecks of sunken continents;—if they had originally existed as mountain-ranges on the land, some at least of the islands would have been formed, like other mountain-summits, of granite, metamorphic schists, old fossiliferous or other such rocks, instead of consisting of mere piles of volcanic matter.

Means of Dispersal.—Sir C. Lyell and other writers have skillfully addressed this topic. Here, I can only provide a brief overview of the key points. Changes in climate must have significantly impacted migration: a region that once had a different climate might have served as a migration route, but is now impassable; however, I will discuss this aspect in more detail shortly. Changes in land elevation must also have played a major role: a narrow isthmus currently separates two marine ecosystems; if it were submerged or had been submerged in the past, those ecosystems could have blended or may have blended previously. Where the sea now covers land, there might have been connections between islands or even continents in the past, allowing terrestrial species to move from one to the other. No geologist would argue against the fact that significant changes in land levels have occurred during the time of existing organisms. Edward Forbes argued that all the islands in the Atlantic must have recently been linked to Europe or Africa, and Europe to America as well. Other authors have hypothesized connections to bridge every ocean and unite almost every island to a nearby mainland. If Forbes's arguments are to be believed, it's hard to find an island that hasn't recently been connected to some continent. This perspective resolves the issue of how the same species spread to distant locations and clears up many challenges: however, I believe we shouldn't accept such massive geographical changes within the timeframe of existing species. We have plenty of evidence for significant changes in level across our continents, but not such drastically different positions and extents that they were continuously connected within recent time, or to the many intervening oceanic islands. I openly acknowledge the past existence of many islands now submerged, which may have served as rest stops for plants and animals during their migrations. In coral-rich oceans, I believe these submerged islands are now indicated by rings of coral or atolls above them. Once we fully accept, as I believe we will someday, that each species originated from a single location, and once we gather enough solid information about their means of distribution, we’ll be able to speculate more accurately about the previous extent of land. But I don't think it will ever be proven that, in recent times, currently separated continents have been consistently, or nearly consistently, connected to each other and to various existing oceanic islands. Several distribution facts—like the significant difference in marine ecosystems on opposite sides of nearly every continent—the strong connection between the tertiary inhabitants of various lands and seas and their current inhabitants—a certain degree of connection (as we will see later) between the distribution of mammals and the depth of the sea—these and other similar facts seem to contradict the notion of such enormous geographical upheavals in recent times, as suggested by Forbes and accepted by many of his followers. The characteristics and proportions of the inhabitants of oceanic islands also appear to contradict the idea of their previous connectivity with continents. Furthermore, their almost entirely volcanic structure does not support the theory that they are remnants of submerged continents; if they had originally been mountain ranges on land, at least some of the islands would have been made up, like other mountain peaks, of granite, metamorphic schists, ancient fossil-bearing, or similar rocks, rather than just layers of volcanic material.

I must now say a few words on what are called accidental means, but which more properly might be called occasional means of distribution. I shall here confine myself to plants. In botanical works, this or that plant is stated to be ill adapted for wide dissemination; but for transport across the sea, the greater or less facilities may be said to be almost wholly unknown. Until I tried, with Mr. Berkeley’s aid, a few experiments, it was not even known how far seeds could resist the injurious action of sea-water. To my surprise I found that out of 87 kinds, 64 germinated after an immersion of 28 days, and a few survived an immersion of 137 days. For convenience sake I chiefly tried small seeds, without the capsule or fruit; and as all of these sank in a few days, they could not be floated across wide spaces of the sea, whether or not they were injured by the salt-water. Afterwards I tried some larger fruits, capsules, etc., and some of these floated for a long time. It is well known what a difference there is in the buoyancy of green and seasoned timber; and it occurred to me that floods might wash down plants or branches, and that these might be dried on the banks, and then by a fresh rise in the stream be washed into the sea. Hence I was led to dry stems and branches of 94 plants with ripe fruit, and to place them on sea water. The majority sank quickly, but some which whilst green floated for a very short time, when dried floated much longer; for instance, ripe hazel-nuts sank immediately, but when dried, they floated for 90 days and afterwards when planted they germinated; an asparagus plant with ripe berries floated for 23 days, when dried it floated for 85 days, and the seeds afterwards germinated: the ripe seeds of Helosciadium sank in two days, when dried they floated for above 90 days, and afterwards germinated. Altogether out of the 94 dried plants, 18 floated for above 28 days, and some of the 18 floated for a very much longer period. So that as 64/87 seeds germinated after an immersion of 28 days; and as 18/94 plants with ripe fruit (but not all the same species as in the foregoing experiment) floated, after being dried, for above 28 days, as far as we may infer anything from these scanty facts, we may conclude that the seeds of 14/100 plants of any country might be floated by sea-currents during 28 days, and would retain their power of germination. In Johnston’s Physical Atlas, the average rate of the several Atlantic currents is 33 miles per diem (some currents running at the rate of 60 miles per diem); on this average, the seeds of 14/100 plants belonging to one country might be floated across 924 miles of sea to another country; and when stranded, if blown to a favourable spot by an inland gale, they would germinate.

I want to share some thoughts on what's known as accidental means, but it might be more accurately described as occasional means of distribution. For now, I'll focus on plants. In botanical literature, certain plants are said to be poorly suited for wide distribution; however, the varying conditions for transport across the sea are largely unknown. Until I conducted some experiments with Mr. Berkeley's help, it was unclear how long seeds could resist the harmful effects of seawater. To my surprise, out of 87 types, 64 germinated after being submerged for 28 days, and a few survived being submerged for 137 days. For convenience, I mainly tested small seeds without their capsules or fruits, and since all of these sank within a few days, they couldn't be floated across large stretches of the sea, regardless of whether the saltwater harmed them. Later, I tried some larger fruits and capsules, and some of these floated for a long time. It's well known that there’s a big difference in the buoyancy of fresh and seasoned wood, and I thought floods could wash away plants or branches, which might dry out on riverbanks, only to be washed back into the sea when the water level rose again. This led me to dry the stems and branches of 94 plants with ripe fruits and place them in seawater. Most sank quickly, but some that floated for a very short time while fresh stayed afloat much longer when dried; for example, ripe hazelnuts sank right away, but when dried, they floated for 90 days and later germinated; an asparagus plant with ripe berries floated for 23 days, but when dried, it floated for 85 days, and its seeds eventually germinated. The ripe seeds of Helosciadium sank in two days, but when dried, they floated for over 90 days and later germinated as well. Overall, out of the 94 dried plants, 18 floated for more than 28 days, and some of these 18 floated for significantly longer. So, as 64 out of 87 seeds germinated after 28 days of immersion, and 18 out of 94 plants with ripe fruits (not all the same species as in the previous experiment) floated for over 28 days after being dried, we can deduce from these limited observations that the seeds of about 14 out of 100 plants from any given area might be able to float on ocean currents for 28 days and still retain their ability to germinate. In Johnston’s Physical Atlas, the average speed of various Atlantic currents is 33 miles per day (with some currents moving at 60 miles per day); based on this average, the seeds of 14 out of 100 plants from one country could potentially be carried across 924 miles of sea to another country, and if they wash ashore, they could germinate if blown to a suitable spot by an inland wind.

Subsequently to my experiments, M. Martens tried similar ones, but in a much better manner, for he placed the seeds in a box in the actual sea, so that they were alternately wet and exposed to the air like really floating plants. He tried 98 seeds, mostly different from mine; but he chose many large fruits and likewise seeds from plants which live near the sea; and this would have favoured the average length of their flotation and of their resistance to the injurious action of the salt-water. On the other hand he did not previously dry the plants or branches with the fruit; and this, as we have seen, would have caused some of them to have floated much longer. The result was that 18/98 of his seeds floated for 42 days, and were then capable of germination. But I do not doubt that plants exposed to the waves would float for a less time than those protected from violent movement as in our experiments. Therefore it would perhaps be safer to assume that the seeds of about 10/100 plants of a flora, after having been dried, could be floated across a space of sea 900 miles in width, and would then germinate. The fact of the larger fruits often floating longer than the small, is interesting; as plants with large seeds or fruit could hardly be transported by any other means; and Alph. de Candolle has shown that such plants generally have restricted ranges.

After my experiments, M. Martens conducted similar ones, but in a much better way. He placed the seeds in a box in the actual sea, allowing them to be alternately wet and exposed to the air like real floating plants. He tested 98 seeds, mostly different from mine, selecting many large fruits and seeds from plants that grow near the sea. This would have helped their average float time and resistance to the harmful effects of saltwater. However, he didn't dry the plants or branches with the fruit beforehand, which, as we noted, would have allowed some of them to float much longer. As a result, 18 out of 98 of his seeds floated for 42 days and were still able to germinate. But I believe that plants exposed to the waves would float for less time than those protected from strong movement, like in our experiments. Therefore, it might be safer to estimate that about 10 out of 100 plants from a particular flora, after being dried, could float across a 900-mile stretch of sea and still germinate afterward. It's interesting that larger fruits often float longer than smaller ones; plants with large seeds or fruits could hardly be transported by any other means, and Alph. de Candolle has shown that such plants generally have limited ranges.

But seeds may be occasionally transported in another manner. Drift timber is thrown up on most islands, even on those in the midst of the widest oceans; and the natives of the coral-islands in the Pacific, procure stones for their tools, solely from the roots of drifted trees, these stones being a valuable royal tax. I find on examination, that when irregularly shaped stones are embedded in the roots of trees, small parcels of earth are very frequently enclosed in their interstices and behind them,—so perfectly that not a particle could be washed away in the longest transport: out of one small portion of earth thus completely enclosed by wood in an oak about 50 years old, three dicotyledonous plants germinated: I am certain of the accuracy of this observation. Again, I can show that the carcasses of birds, when floating on the sea, sometimes escape being immediately devoured; and seeds of many kinds in the crops of floating birds long retain their vitality: peas and vetches, for instance, are killed by even a few days’ immersion in sea-water; but some taken out of the crop of a pigeon, which had floated on artificial salt-water for 30 days, to my surprise nearly all germinated.

But seeds can sometimes be transported in other ways. Driftwood washes up on most islands, even those in the middle of the vast oceans; and the natives of the coral islands in the Pacific get stones for their tools solely from the roots of drifted trees, which are a valuable royal tax. Upon examining this, I found that when irregularly shaped stones are embedded in the roots of trees, small clumps of earth are often trapped in their gaps and behind them—so well that not a single particle could be washed away during long transport: out of one small clump of earth completely enclosed by wood in an oak around 50 years old, three dicotyledonous plants sprouted: I am confident in the accuracy of this observation. Also, I can show that the carcasses of birds, when floating in the sea, sometimes manage to avoid being immediately eaten; and seeds of various kinds in the crops of these floating birds can retain their vitality for a long time: for example, peas and vetches are killed by just a few days of immersion in seawater; but some taken from the crop of a pigeon that had floated in artificial saltwater for 30 days surprisingly all germinated.

Living birds can hardly fail to be highly effective agents in the transportation of seeds. I could give many facts showing how frequently birds of many kinds are blown by gales to vast distances across the ocean. We may I think safely assume that under such circumstances their rate of flight would often be 35 miles an hour; and some authors have given a far higher estimate. I have never seen an instance of nutritious seeds passing through the intestines of a bird; but hard seeds of fruit will pass uninjured through even the digestive organs of a turkey. In the course of two months, I picked up in my garden 12 kinds of seeds, out of the excrement of small birds, and these seemed perfect, and some of them, which I tried, germinated. But the following fact is more important: the crops of birds do not secrete gastric juice, and do not in the least injure, as I know by trial, the germination of seeds; now after a bird has found and devoured a large supply of food, it is positively asserted that all the grains do not pass into the gizzard for 12 or even 18 hours. A bird in this interval might easily be blown to the distance of 500 miles, and hawks are known to look out for tired birds, and the contents of their torn crops might thus readily get scattered. Mr. Brent informs me that a friend of his had to give up flying carrier-pigeons from France to England, as the hawks on the English coast destroyed so many on their arrival. Some hawks and owls bolt their prey whole, and after an interval of from twelve to twenty hours, disgorge pellets, which, as I know from experiments made in the Zoological Gardens, include seeds capable of germination. Some seeds of the oat, wheat, millet, canary, hemp, clover, and beet germinated after having been from twelve to twenty-one hours in the stomachs of different birds of prey; and two seeds of beet grew after having been thus retained for two days and fourteen hours. Freshwater fish, I find, eat seeds of many land and water plants: fish are frequently devoured by birds, and thus the seeds might be transported from place to place. I forced many kinds of seeds into the stomachs of dead fish, and then gave their bodies to fishing-eagles, storks, and pelicans; these birds after an interval of many hours, either rejected the seeds in pellets or passed them in their excrement; and several of these seeds retained their power of germination. Certain seeds, however, were always killed by this process.

Living birds are very effective at transporting seeds. I could share many facts about how often various birds are blown long distances across the ocean by strong winds. I think we can safely assume that during such events, their flying speed would often be around 35 miles an hour; some writers have even suggested much higher speeds. I’ve never seen nutritious seeds survive passing through a bird's intestines, but tough fruit seeds can pass through even a turkey’s digestive system unharmed. Over two months, I collected 12 types of seeds from the droppings of small birds in my garden, and they appeared intact, with some even germinating when I tested them. However, the more significant fact is that a bird’s crop doesn’t produce gastric juice, which I know from experience doesn’t harm the germination of seeds; after a bird has eaten a lot of food, it's said that all the grains don’t enter the gizzard for 12 to 18 hours. During this time, a bird could easily be blown 500 miles away, and hawks are known to hunt tired birds, meaning the contents of their damaged crops could get scattered easily. Mr. Brent told me that a friend of his had to stop flying carrier pigeons from France to England because too many were eaten by hawks upon arrival. Some hawks and owls swallow their prey whole and then, after 12 to 20 hours, regurgitate pellets, which, as I've seen in experiments at the Zoological Gardens, contain seeds that can germinate. Some seeds, like oat, wheat, millet, canary, hemp, clover, and beet, germinated after being in the stomachs of different birds of prey for 12 to 21 hours, and two beet seeds grew after being retained for two days and 14 hours. I found that freshwater fish eat seeds from many land and water plants: birds often eat fish, which could help transport the seeds. I forced various seeds into the stomachs of dead fish and then fed the fish to eagles, storks, and pelicans; these birds, after several hours, either regurgitated the seeds in pellets or passed them in their droppings, and several of these seeds remained viable. However, some seeds were always destroyed by this process.

Although the beaks and feet of birds are generally quite clean, I can show that earth sometimes adheres to them: in one instance I removed twenty-two grains of dry argillaceous earth from one foot of a partridge, and in this earth there was a pebble quite as large as the seed of a vetch. Thus seeds might occasionally be transported to great distances; for many facts could be given showing that soil almost everywhere is charged with seeds. Reflect for a moment on the millions of quails which annually cross the Mediterranean; and can we doubt that the earth adhering to their feet would sometimes include a few minute seeds? But I shall presently have to recur to this subject.

Although birds' beaks and feet are usually pretty clean, I can show that dirt sometimes sticks to them: for example, I once found twenty-two bits of dry clay stuck to one foot of a partridge, and in that dirt, there was a pebble as big as the seed of a vetch. This means that seeds might occasionally be carried over long distances; there are many facts that show soil almost everywhere is filled with seeds. Think for a moment about the millions of quails that cross the Mediterranean every year; can we really doubt that the dirt on their feet would sometimes include a few tiny seeds? But I'll come back to this topic soon.

As icebergs are known to be sometimes loaded with earth and stones, and have even carried brushwood, bones, and the nest of a land-bird, I can hardly doubt that they must occasionally have transported seeds from one part to another of the arctic and antarctic regions, as suggested by Lyell; and during the Glacial period from one part of the now temperate regions to another. In the Azores, from the large number of the species of plants common to Europe, in comparison with the plants of other oceanic islands nearer to the mainland, and (as remarked by Mr. H. C. Watson) from the somewhat northern character of the flora in comparison with the latitude, I suspected that these islands had been partly stocked by ice-borne seeds, during the Glacial epoch. At my request Sir C. Lyell wrote to M. Hartung to inquire whether he had observed erratic boulders on these islands, and he answered that he had found large fragments of granite and other rocks, which do not occur in the archipelago. Hence we may safely infer that icebergs formerly landed their rocky burthens on the shores of these mid-ocean islands, and it is at least possible that they may have brought thither the seeds of northern plants.

As icebergs are known to sometimes carry dirt and stones, and have even transported wood, bones, and the nests of land birds, I can hardly doubt that they must occasionally have moved seeds from one part of the Arctic and Antarctic regions to another, as Lyell suggested; and during the Glacial period from one area of what is now temperate regions to another. In the Azores, the large number of plant species common to Europe, compared to the plants found on other oceanic islands closer to the mainland, and (as noted by Mr. H. C. Watson) the somewhat northern character of the flora in relation to the latitude, makes me suspect that these islands were partly populated by seeds carried by ice during the Glacial epoch. At my request, Sir C. Lyell wrote to M. Hartung to ask if he had seen erratic boulders on these islands, and he replied that he had found large pieces of granite and other rocks that don’t occur in the archipelago. Therefore, we can safely conclude that icebergs previously deposited their rocky loads on the shores of these mid-ocean islands, and it is at least possible that they may have also brought the seeds of northern plants there.

Considering that the several above means of transport, and that several other means, which without doubt remain to be discovered, have been in action year after year, for centuries and tens of thousands of years, it would I think be a marvellous fact if many plants had not thus become widely transported. These means of transport are sometimes called accidental, but this is not strictly correct: the currents of the sea are not accidental, nor is the direction of prevalent gales of wind. It should be observed that scarcely any means of transport would carry seeds for very great distances; for seeds do not retain their vitality when exposed for a great length of time to the action of seawater; nor could they be long carried in the crops or intestines of birds. These means, however, would suffice for occasional transport across tracts of sea some hundred miles in breadth, or from island to island, or from a continent to a neighbouring island, but not from one distant continent to another. The floras of distant continents would not by such means become mingled in any great degree; but would remain as distinct as we now see them to be. The currents, from their course, would never bring seeds from North America to Britain, though they might and do bring seeds from the West Indies to our western shores, where, if not killed by so long an immersion in salt-water, they could not endure our climate. Almost every year, one or two land-birds are blown across the whole Atlantic Ocean, from North America to the western shores of Ireland and England; but seeds could be transported by these wanderers only by one means, namely, in dirt sticking to their feet, which is in itself a rare accident. Even in this case, how small would the chance be of a seed falling on favourable soil, and coming to maturity! But it would be a great error to argue that because a well-stocked island, like Great Britain, has not, as far as is known (and it would be very difficult to prove this), received within the last few centuries, through occasional means of transport, immigrants from Europe or any other continent, that a poorly-stocked island, though standing more remote from the mainland, would not receive colonists by similar means. I do not doubt that out of twenty seeds or animals transported to an island, even if far less well-stocked than Britain, scarcely more than one would be so well fitted to its new home, as to become naturalised. But this, as it seems to me, is no valid argument against what would be effected by occasional means of transport, during the long lapse of geological time, whilst an island was being upheaved and formed, and before it had become fully stocked with inhabitants. On almost bare land, with few or no destructive insects or birds living there, nearly every seed, which chanced to arrive, would be sure to germinate and survive.

Considering that various means of transport, along with many others that are likely still to be discovered, have been used year after year for centuries and tens of thousands of years, it would be quite remarkable if many plants had not become widely spread. These transport methods are sometimes referred to as accidental, but that's not entirely accurate: ocean currents aren't accidental, and neither is the direction of strong winds. It's important to note that hardly any means of transport could carry seeds over very long distances; seeds don’t remain viable when exposed to seawater for too long, nor can they be carried for extended periods in the crops or intestines of birds. However, these methods could allow for occasional transport across stretches of ocean a few hundred miles wide or between islands or from a continent to a nearby island, but not from one distant continent to another. The plant life of far-off continents wouldn’t mix significantly through these means, remaining as distinct as we currently see them. The currents would not bring seeds from North America to Britain, even though they might carry seeds from the West Indies to our western shores, where, if they aren’t killed by long exposure to saltwater, they wouldn’t survive our climate. Almost every year, one or two land birds get blown across the entire Atlantic Ocean, from North America to the western shores of Ireland and England; however, seeds could only be carried by these birds in dirt stuck to their feet, which is itself a rare occurrence. Even then, the chances of a seed landing in suitable soil and thriving would be extremely low! But it would be a mistake to argue that because a well-populated island like Great Britain hasn’t, as far as we know (and proving this would be quite difficult), received immigrants from Europe or any other continent through occasional means of transport in the past few centuries, a poorly populated island farther from the mainland wouldn’t receive colonists in a similar manner. I believe that out of twenty seeds or animals transported to an island, even one that is less populated than Britain, hardly more than one would be well-suited to its new environment and become established. However, this, in my view, doesn’t weaken the argument about what could happen through occasional means of transport over the long spans of geological time, while an island was being formed and before it was fully populated. On almost barren land, with few or no destructive insects or birds, nearly every seed that happened to arrive would likely germinate and thrive.

Dispersal during the Glacial period.—The identity of many plants and animals, on mountain-summits, separated from each other by hundreds of miles of lowlands, where the Alpine species could not possibly exist, is one of the most striking cases known of the same species living at distant points, without the apparent possibility of their having migrated from one to the other. It is indeed a remarkable fact to see so many of the same plants living on the snowy regions of the Alps or Pyrenees, and in the extreme northern parts of Europe; but it is far more remarkable, that the plants on the White Mountains, in the United States of America, are all the same with those of Labrador, and nearly all the same, as we hear from Asa Gray, with those on the loftiest mountains of Europe. Even as long ago as 1747, such facts led Gmelin to conclude that the same species must have been independently created at several distinct points; and we might have remained in this same belief, had not Agassiz and others called vivid attention to the Glacial period, which, as we shall immediately see, affords a simple explanation of these facts. We have evidence of almost every conceivable kind, organic and inorganic, that within a very recent geological period, central Europe and North America suffered under an Arctic climate. The ruins of a house burnt by fire do not tell their tale more plainly, than do the mountains of Scotland and Wales, with their scored flanks, polished surfaces, and perched boulders, of the icy streams with which their valleys were lately filled. So greatly has the climate of Europe changed, that in Northern Italy, gigantic moraines, left by old glaciers, are now clothed by the vine and maize. Throughout a large part of the United States, erratic boulders, and rocks scored by drifted icebergs and coast-ice, plainly reveal a former cold period.

Dispersal during the Glacial period.—The presence of many plants and animals on mountain summits, separated by hundreds of miles of lowlands where Alpine species couldn’t possibly survive, is one of the most striking examples of the same species living far apart, without any clear way they could have migrated between these locations. It’s quite remarkable to see so many of the same plants growing in the snowy regions of the Alps or the Pyrenees and in the extreme northern parts of Europe. However, it’s even more astonishing that the plants on the White Mountains in the United States all match those in Labrador and are almost identical, as noted by Asa Gray, to those on Europe’s highest mountains. As far back as 1747, these observations led Gmelin to suggest that the same species must have been created independently at several different locations. We might still have held onto this belief if Agassiz and others hadn’t drawn attention to the Glacial period, which, as we will soon explore, provides a straightforward explanation for these observations. There’s evidence of almost every imaginable type, both organic and inorganic, that during a very recent geological period, central Europe and North America experienced an Arctic climate. The remnants of a house destroyed by fire tell their story no more clearly than the mountains of Scotland and Wales, with their scratched sides, polished surfaces, and isolated boulders, show the icy streams that once filled their valleys. The climate in Europe has altered so much that in Northern Italy, enormous moraines left by ancient glaciers are now covered with vines and corn. Across a large part of the United States, erratic boulders and rocks marked by drifted icebergs and coastal ice clearly indicate a past cold period.

The former influence of the glacial climate on the distribution of the inhabitants of Europe, as explained with remarkable clearness by Edward Forbes, is substantially as follows. But we shall follow the changes more readily, by supposing a new glacial period to come slowly on, and then pass away, as formerly occurred. As the cold came on, and as each more southern zone became fitted for arctic beings and ill-fitted for their former more temperate inhabitants, the latter would be supplanted and arctic productions would take their places. The inhabitants of the more temperate regions would at the same time travel southward, unless they were stopped by barriers, in which case they would perish. The mountains would become covered with snow and ice, and their former Alpine inhabitants would descend to the plains. By the time that the cold had reached its maximum, we should have a uniform arctic fauna and flora, covering the central parts of Europe, as far south as the Alps and Pyrenees, and even stretching into Spain. The now temperate regions of the United States would likewise be covered by arctic plants and animals, and these would be nearly the same with those of Europe; for the present circumpolar inhabitants, which we suppose to have everywhere travelled southward, are remarkably uniform round the world. We may suppose that the Glacial period came on a little earlier or later in North America than in Europe, so will the southern migration there have been a little earlier or later; but this will make no difference in the final result.

The earlier impact of the glacial climate on how people lived in Europe, as clearly explained by Edward Forbes, can be summarized like this. To understand the changes more easily, let's imagine a new glacial period gradually setting in and then fading away, similar to what happened before. As the cold arrived and each southern region became suitable for arctic species while becoming unsuitable for their earlier temperate inhabitants, the latter would be replaced by arctic life. The people in the more temperate areas would move south unless stopped by obstacles, in which case they would die out. The mountains would be blanketed in snow and ice, forcing their original Alpine residents to descend to the plains. By the time the cold peaked, we would see a consistent arctic fauna and flora across the central parts of Europe, extending as far south as the Alps and Pyrenees, and even reaching into Spain. The currently temperate regions of the United States would similarly be covered with arctic plants and animals, closely resembling those in Europe; the existing circumpolar species, which we assume migrated south everywhere, are strikingly similar worldwide. We can assume the Glacial period began slightly earlier or later in North America than in Europe, so the southern migration there might have been a little earlier or later too; however, this won't affect the overall outcome.

As the warmth returned, the arctic forms would retreat northward, closely followed up in their retreat by the productions of the more temperate regions. And as the snow melted from the bases of the mountains, the arctic forms would seize on the cleared and thawed ground, always ascending higher and higher, as the warmth increased, whilst their brethren were pursuing their northern journey. Hence, when the warmth had fully returned, the same arctic species, which had lately lived in a body together on the lowlands of the Old and New Worlds, would be left isolated on distant mountain-summits (having been exterminated on all lesser heights) and in the arctic regions of both hemispheres.

As the warmth came back, the arctic species would move northward, closely followed by plants and animals from warmer regions. When the snow melted from the mountain bases, the arctic species would take advantage of the cleared and thawed ground, climbing higher and higher as the temperature rose, while their counterparts continued their journey north. So, when the warmth fully returned, the same arctic species that had recently lived together in large groups on the lowlands of both the Old and New Worlds would find themselves isolated on distant mountain peaks (having been wiped out on lower elevations) and in the arctic areas of both hemispheres.

Thus we can understand the identity of many plants at points so immensely remote as on the mountains of the United States and of Europe. We can thus also understand the fact that the Alpine plants of each mountain-range are more especially related to the arctic forms living due north or nearly due north of them: for the migration as the cold came on, and the re-migration on the returning warmth, will generally have been due south and north. The Alpine plants, for example, of Scotland, as remarked by Mr. H. C. Watson, and those of the Pyrenees, as remarked by Ramond, are more especially allied to the plants of northern Scandinavia; those of the United States to Labrador; those of the mountains of Siberia to the arctic regions of that country. These views, grounded as they are on the perfectly well-ascertained occurrence of a former Glacial period, seem to me to explain in so satisfactory a manner the present distribution of the Alpine and Arctic productions of Europe and America, that when in other regions we find the same species on distant mountain-summits, we may almost conclude without other evidence, that a colder climate permitted their former migration across the low intervening tracts, since become too warm for their existence.

So, we can understand the identity of many plants even in places as far away as the mountains of the United States and Europe. This also helps us see that the Alpine plants of each mountain range are particularly related to the arctic species found directly to the north of them. The migration caused by the onset of cold, and then the return migration when temperatures warmed up again, generally happened from south to north. For instance, the Alpine plants in Scotland, as noted by Mr. H. C. Watson, and those in the Pyrenees, as observed by Ramond, are especially connected to the plants of northern Scandinavia; those in the United States are related to Labrador; and those in the mountains of Siberia connect to the arctic regions of that country. These ideas, based on the well-established evidence of a past Glacial period, I believe clearly explain the current distribution of the Alpine and Arctic plants in Europe and America. Therefore, when we find the same species on distant mountain peaks in other areas, we can almost conclude without further evidence that a colder climate once allowed their migration across the lower regions that have since become too warm for them to survive.

If the climate, since the Glacial period, has ever been in any degree warmer than at present (as some geologists in the United States believe to have been the case, chiefly from the distribution of the fossil Gnathodon), then the arctic and temperate productions will at a very late period have marched a little further north, and subsequently have retreated to their present homes; but I have met with no satisfactory evidence with respect to this intercalated slightly warmer period, since the Glacial period.

If the climate has ever been even slightly warmer than it is now since the Ice Age (as some geologists in the United States believe, mainly due to the distribution of the fossil Gnathodon), then the arctic and temperate species may have moved a bit further north at some point, only to later retreat to their current locations. However, I haven't found any convincing evidence regarding this somewhat warmer period that occurred after the Ice Age.

The arctic forms, during their long southern migration and re-migration northward, will have been exposed to nearly the same climate, and, as is especially to be noticed, they will have kept in a body together; consequently their mutual relations will not have been much disturbed, and, in accordance with the principles inculcated in this volume, they will not have been liable to much modification. But with our Alpine productions, left isolated from the moment of the returning warmth, first at the bases and ultimately on the summits of the mountains, the case will have been somewhat different; for it is not likely that all the same arctic species will have been left on mountain ranges distant from each other, and have survived there ever since; they will, also, in all probability have become mingled with ancient Alpine species, which must have existed on the mountains before the commencement of the Glacial epoch, and which during its coldest period will have been temporarily driven down to the plains; they will, also, have been exposed to somewhat different climatal influences. Their mutual relations will thus have been in some degree disturbed; consequently they will have been liable to modification; and this we find has been the case; for if we compare the present Alpine plants and animals of the several great European mountain-ranges, though very many of the species are identically the same, some present varieties, some are ranked as doubtful forms, and some few are distinct yet closely allied or representative species.

The arctic species, during their long migration south and then back north, will have experienced almost the same climate. Notably, they will have stayed together as a group; therefore, their relationships won’t have been significantly disrupted, and, in line with the principles discussed in this book, they won’t have undergone much change. However, with our Alpine species, which were isolated from the moment the warmth returned—first at the bases and ultimately on the mountain tops—the situation will have been somewhat different; for it’s unlikely that all the same arctic species have been left on separate mountain ranges and survived there ever since. They will, in all likelihood, have mixed with ancient Alpine species that must have existed on the mountains before the start of the Glacial period and which, during its coldest time, were temporarily pushed down to the plains; they will also have been exposed to somewhat different climate influences. Their relationships will thus have been somewhat disturbed; therefore, they will have been subject to change. We see this to be true, as when we compare the current Alpine plants and animals of the major European mountain ranges, although many of the species are exactly the same, some present variations, some are classified as doubtful forms, and a few are distinct yet closely related or representative species.

In illustrating what, as I believe, actually took place during the Glacial period, I assumed that at its commencement the arctic productions were as uniform round the polar regions as they are at the present day. But the foregoing remarks on distribution apply not only to strictly arctic forms, but also to many sub-arctic and to some few northern temperate forms, for some of these are the same on the lower mountains and on the plains of North America and Europe; and it may be reasonably asked how I account for the necessary degree of uniformity of the sub-arctic and northern temperate forms round the world, at the commencement of the Glacial period. At the present day, the sub-arctic and northern temperate productions of the Old and New Worlds are separated from each other by the Atlantic Ocean and by the extreme northern part of the Pacific. During the Glacial period, when the inhabitants of the Old and New Worlds lived further southwards than at present, they must have been still more completely separated by wider spaces of ocean. I believe the above difficulty may be surmounted by looking to still earlier changes of climate of an opposite nature. We have good reason to believe that during the newer Pliocene period, before the Glacial epoch, and whilst the majority of the inhabitants of the world were specifically the same as now, the climate was warmer than at the present day. Hence we may suppose that the organisms now living under the climate of latitude 60°, during the Pliocene period lived further north under the Polar Circle, in latitude 66°-67°; and that the strictly arctic productions then lived on the broken land still nearer to the pole. Now if we look at a globe, we shall see that under the Polar Circle there is almost continuous land from western Europe, through Siberia, to eastern America. And to this continuity of the circumpolar land, and to the consequent freedom for intermigration under a more favourable climate, I attribute the necessary amount of uniformity in the sub-arctic and northern temperate productions of the Old and New Worlds, at a period anterior to the Glacial epoch.

In explaining what I believe actually happened during the Glacial period, I assume that at its beginning, the arctic flora and fauna were as uniform around the polar regions as they are today. However, the comments on distribution apply not just to strictly arctic species, but also to many sub-arctic and a few northern temperate species, since some of these are found in the lower mountains and plains of North America and Europe. It can be reasonably asked how I explain the necessary degree of uniformity of the sub-arctic and northern temperate species around the world at the start of the Glacial period. Today, the sub-arctic and northern temperate species of the Old and New Worlds are separated by the Atlantic Ocean and the far northern part of the Pacific. During the Glacial period, when the inhabitants of the Old and New Worlds lived further south than they do now, they must have been even more completely separated by larger oceanic expanses. I believe this challenge can be addressed by considering earlier climatic changes of an opposite nature. We have solid evidence to suggest that during the newer Pliocene period, before the Glacial epoch, while most inhabitants of the world were specifically the same as they are now, the climate was warmer than it is today. Hence, we might assume that the organisms currently living at latitude 60° during the Pliocene period were found further north, within the Polar Circle, at latitudes 66°-67°; and that the strictly arctic species then occupied the fragmented land even closer to the pole. If we look at a globe, we can see that there is nearly continuous land under the Polar Circle extending from western Europe, through Siberia, to eastern America. I attribute the necessary degree of uniformity in the sub-arctic and northern temperate species of the Old and New Worlds during a period before the Glacial epoch to this continuity of circumpolar land and the resulting freedom for migration under a more favorable climate.

Believing, from reasons before alluded to, that our continents have long remained in nearly the same relative position, though subjected to large, but partial oscillations of level, I am strongly inclined to extend the above view, and to infer that during some earlier and still warmer period, such as the older Pliocene period, a large number of the same plants and animals inhabited the almost continuous circumpolar land; and that these plants and animals, both in the Old and New Worlds, began slowly to migrate southwards as the climate became less warm, long before the commencement of the Glacial period. We now see, as I believe, their descendants, mostly in a modified condition, in the central parts of Europe and the United States. On this view we can understand the relationship, with very little identity, between the productions of North America and Europe,—a relationship which is most remarkable, considering the distance of the two areas, and their separation by the Atlantic Ocean. We can further understand the singular fact remarked on by several observers, that the productions of Europe and America during the later tertiary stages were more closely related to each other than they are at the present time; for during these warmer periods the northern parts of the Old and New Worlds will have been almost continuously united by land, serving as a bridge, since rendered impassable by cold, for the inter-migration of their inhabitants.

Believing, for the reasons mentioned earlier, that our continents have largely stayed in the same relative position, despite undergoing significant but partial changes in sea level, I am inclined to extend this perspective. I suggest that during a previous and warmer time, like the older Pliocene period, many of the same plants and animals lived on the nearly continuous circumpolar land; these plants and animals, in both the Old and New Worlds, began to migrate southward as the climate cooled, long before the start of the Glacial period. We can now see their descendants, mostly in a modified form, in central Europe and the United States. This perspective helps us understand the relationship, although not identical, between the species in North America and Europe—a connection that is particularly surprising given the distance and the separation by the Atlantic Ocean. We can also comprehend the interesting observation made by several scientists that the species in Europe and America during the later tertiary periods were more closely related to each other than they are today. During those warmer times, the northern parts of the Old and New Worlds would have been almost continuously connected by land, which acted as a bridge, now made impassable by cold, allowing for the migration of their species.

During the slowly decreasing warmth of the Pliocene period, as soon as the species in common, which inhabited the New and Old Worlds, migrated south of the Polar Circle, they must have been completely cut off from each other. This separation, as far as the more temperate productions are concerned, took place long ages ago. And as the plants and animals migrated southward, they will have become mingled in the one great region with the native American productions, and have had to compete with them; and in the other great region, with those of the Old World. Consequently we have here everything favourable for much modification,—for far more modification than with the Alpine productions, left isolated, within a much more recent period, on the several mountain-ranges and on the arctic lands of the two Worlds. Hence it has come, that when we compare the now living productions of the temperate regions of the New and Old Worlds, we find very few identical species (though Asa Gray has lately shown that more plants are identical than was formerly supposed), but we find in every great class many forms, which some naturalists rank as geographical races, and others as distinct species; and a host of closely allied or representative forms which are ranked by all naturalists as specifically distinct.

During the gradually cooling temperatures of the Pliocene period, once the species common to both the New and Old Worlds moved south of the Polar Circle, they must have become completely isolated from each other. This separation, in terms of the more temperate plants and animals, happened a long time ago. As these species migrated south, they likely mixed with the native American species and had to compete with them; in the other significant region, they competed with those from the Old World. As a result, there were many opportunities for significant modification—much more so than with the Alpine species, which have been isolated on various mountain ranges and in the arctic regions of both Worlds, but for a much shorter time. Consequently, when we compare the living species of the temperate regions in the New and Old Worlds, we find very few identical species (though Asa Gray has recently shown that more plants are identical than previously thought). However, we do see many forms within each major category, which some naturalists classify as geographical races and others as distinct species, along with a plethora of closely related or representative forms that are universally recognized by all naturalists as different species.

As on the land, so in the waters of the sea, a slow southern migration of a marine fauna, which during the Pliocene or even a somewhat earlier period, was nearly uniform along the continuous shores of the Polar Circle, will account, on the theory of modification, for many closely allied forms now living in areas completely sundered. Thus, I think, we can understand the presence of many existing and tertiary representative forms on the eastern and western shores of temperate North America; and the still more striking case of many closely allied crustaceans (as described in Dana’s admirable work), of some fish and other marine animals, in the Mediterranean and in the seas of Japan,—areas now separated by a continent and by nearly a hemisphere of equatorial ocean.

Just like on land, the sea has experienced a slow migration of marine life from the south. During the Pliocene or even a bit earlier, this marine fauna was quite similar along the continuous shores of the Polar Circle. This idea of change helps explain why many closely related species are now found in completely separated areas. For instance, it sheds light on why we see many existing and tertiary species along the eastern and western shores of temperate North America. There's also the striking example of many related crustaceans, as described in Dana’s excellent work, along with some fish and other marine creatures found in the Mediterranean and the seas of Japan—regions that are now divided by a continent and nearly half a hemisphere of warm ocean.

These cases of relationship, without identity, of the inhabitants of seas now disjoined, and likewise of the past and present inhabitants of the temperate lands of North America and Europe, are inexplicable on the theory of creation. We cannot say that they have been created alike, in correspondence with the nearly similar physical conditions of the areas; for if we compare, for instance, certain parts of South America with the southern continents of the Old World, we see countries closely corresponding in all their physical conditions, but with their inhabitants utterly dissimilar.

These cases of relationships, without any similarity, among the people of seas that are now separated, along with the past and present inhabitants of temperate regions in North America and Europe, cannot be explained by the theory of creation. We can't claim that they were created similarly because of the almost identical physical conditions in these areas. For example, if we compare certain regions of South America with the southern continents of the Old World, we find countries that closely match in all their physical conditions, yet their inhabitants are completely different.

But we must return to our more immediate subject, the Glacial period. I am convinced that Forbes’s view may be largely extended. In Europe we have the plainest evidence of the cold period, from the western shores of Britain to the Oural range, and southward to the Pyrenees. We may infer, from the frozen mammals and nature of the mountain vegetation, that Siberia was similarly affected. Along the Himalaya, at points 900 miles apart, glaciers have left the marks of their former low descent; and in Sikkim, Dr. Hooker saw maize growing on gigantic ancient moraines. South of the equator, we have some direct evidence of former glacial action in New Zealand; and the same plants, found on widely separated mountains in this island, tell the same story. If one account which has been published can be trusted, we have direct evidence of glacial action in the south-eastern corner of Australia.

But we need to get back to our main topic, the Glacial period. I believe that Forbes’s perspective can be significantly broadened. In Europe, we have clear evidence of the cold period, from the western shores of Britain to the Ural Mountains, and southward to the Pyrenees. We can deduce, from the frozen mammals and types of mountain vegetation, that Siberia was similarly impacted. Along the Himalayas, at points 900 miles apart, glaciers have left marks from their previous lower positions; and in Sikkim, Dr. Hooker observed corn growing on massive ancient moraines. South of the equator, we have some direct evidence of past glacial activity in New Zealand; and the same plants found on widely separated mountains in this island tell the same story. If we can trust one published account, we have direct evidence of glacial activity in the southeastern corner of Australia.

Looking to America; in the northern half, ice-borne fragments of rock have been observed on the eastern side as far south as lat. 36°-37°, and on the shores of the Pacific, where the climate is now so different, as far south as lat. 46 deg; erratic boulders have, also, been noticed on the Rocky Mountains. In the Cordillera of Equatorial South America, glaciers once extended far below their present level. In central Chile I was astonished at the structure of a vast mound of detritus, about 800 feet in height, crossing a valley of the Andes; and this I now feel convinced was a gigantic moraine, left far below any existing glacier. Further south on both sides of the continent, from lat. 41° to the southernmost extremity, we have the clearest evidence of former glacial action, in huge boulders transported far from their parent source.

Looking at America, in the northern half, we've seen ice-carried chunks of rock on the eastern side as far south as latitude 36°-37°. On the Pacific coast, where the climate is now so different, erratic boulders have been spotted as far south as latitude 46°. These boulders have also been found in the Rocky Mountains. In the Andes of Equatorial South America, glaciers used to reach much lower than they do today. In central Chile, I was amazed by the structure of a huge mound of debris, around 800 feet high, crossing an Andean valley; I'm now convinced this was a gigantic moraine left far below any current glacier. Further south, on both sides of the continent, from latitude 41° to the southern tip, there’s clear evidence of past glacial activity, with massive boulders moved far from their original source.

We do not know that the Glacial epoch was strictly simultaneous at these several far distant points on opposite sides of the world. But we have good evidence in almost every case, that the epoch was included within the latest geological period. We have, also, excellent evidence, that it endured for an enormous time, as measured by years, at each point. The cold may have come on, or have ceased, earlier at one point of the globe than at another, but seeing that it endured for long at each, and that it was contemporaneous in a geological sense, it seems to me probable that it was, during a part at least of the period, actually simultaneous throughout the world. Without some distinct evidence to the contrary, we may at least admit as probable that the glacial action was simultaneous on the eastern and western sides of North America, in the Cordillera under the equator and under the warmer temperate zones, and on both sides of the southern extremity of the continent. If this be admitted, it is difficult to avoid believing that the temperature of the whole world was at this period simultaneously cooler. But it would suffice for my purpose, if the temperature was at the same time lower along certain broad belts of longitude.

We don't know for sure if the Glacial epoch was happening at the same time in these distant places on opposite sides of the world. However, we have good evidence in almost every case that this epoch fell within the most recent geological period. We also have strong evidence that it lasted for a very long time, in terms of years, at each location. The cold might have arrived or ended sooner in one part of the globe than in another, but considering it lasted a long time in each place and was contemporaneous in a geological sense, it seems likely that, at least during part of that time, it was actually simultaneous across the world. Without clear evidence to the contrary, we can at least assume it’s likely that the glacial activity was happening at the same time on both the eastern and western sides of North America, in the Cordillera near the equator, and in the warmer temperate zones, as well as on both sides of the southern end of the continent. If we accept this, it’s hard to ignore the possibility that the temperature of the entire world was cooler at that time. However, for my purpose, it's enough if the temperature was lower at the same time along specific broad lines of longitude.

On this view of the whole world, or at least of broad longitudinal belts, having been simultaneously colder from pole to pole, much light can be thrown on the present distribution of identical and allied species. In America, Dr. Hooker has shown that between forty and fifty of the flowering plants of Tierra del Fuego, forming no inconsiderable part of its scanty flora, are common to Europe, enormously remote as these two points are; and there are many closely allied species. On the lofty mountains of equatorial America a host of peculiar species belonging to European genera occur. On the highest mountains of Brazil, some few European genera were found by Gardner, which do not exist in the wide intervening hot countries. So on the Silla of Caraccas the illustrious Humboldt long ago found species belonging to genera characteristic of the Cordillera. On the mountains of Abyssinia, several European forms and some few representatives of the peculiar flora of the Cape of Good Hope occur. At the Cape of Good Hope a very few European species, believed not to have been introduced by man, and on the mountains, some few representative European forms are found, which have not been discovered in the intertropical parts of Africa. On the Himalaya, and on the isolated mountain-ranges of the peninsula of India, on the heights of Ceylon, and on the volcanic cones of Java, many plants occur, either identically the same or representing each other, and at the same time representing plants of Europe, not found in the intervening hot lowlands. A list of the genera collected on the loftier peaks of Java raises a picture of a collection made on a hill in Europe! Still more striking is the fact that southern Australian forms are clearly represented by plants growing on the summits of the mountains of Borneo. Some of these Australian forms, as I hear from Dr. Hooker, extend along the heights of the peninsula of Malacca, and are thinly scattered, on the one hand over India and on the other as far north as Japan.

In this view of the entire world, or at least of broad longitudinal bands, having been uniformly colder from pole to pole, we can gain much insight into the current distribution of similar and related species. In America, Dr. Hooker has pointed out that between forty and fifty of the flowering plants from Tierra del Fuego, which make up a significant part of its limited flora, are also found in Europe, despite the vast distance between these two locations; and there are many closely related species. On the high mountains of equatorial America, there are many unique species belonging to European genera. On the highest mountains in Brazil, Gardner discovered a few European genera that are absent in the hot regions in between. Similarly, on the Silla of Caraccas, the renowned Humboldt found species that belong to genera typical of the Cordillera long ago. On the mountains of Abyssinia, several European forms and a few representatives of the unique flora from the Cape of Good Hope can be found. At the Cape of Good Hope, a small number of European species, believed to have arrived without human introduction, along with some representative European forms on the mountains, are present, which haven’t been found in the tropical regions of Africa. In the Himalayas, on the isolated mountain ranges of the Indian peninsula, on the heights of Ceylon, and on the volcanic peaks of Java, many plants either are identical or closely resemble each other and also represent plants from Europe that aren’t found in the surrounding lowlands. A list of the genera collected on the higher peaks of Java paints a picture similar to a collection made on a hill in Europe! Even more remarkable is that forms from southern Australia are clearly represented by plants growing on the mountain tops of Borneo. Some of these Australian forms, as reported by Dr. Hooker, extend along the heights of the Malacca peninsula and are sparsely distributed, on one hand over India and on the other, as far north as Japan.

On the southern mountains of Australia, Dr. F. Müller has discovered several European species; other species, not introduced by man, occur on the lowlands; and a long list can be given, as I am informed by Dr. Hooker, of European genera, found in Australia, but not in the intermediate torrid regions. In the admirable ‘Introduction to the Flora of New Zealand,’ by Dr. Hooker, analogous and striking facts are given in regard to the plants of that large island. Hence we see that throughout the world, the plants growing on the more lofty mountains, and on the temperate lowlands of the northern and southern hemispheres, are sometimes identically the same; but they are much oftener specifically distinct, though related to each other in a most remarkable manner.

In the southern mountains of Australia, Dr. F. Müller has found several European species; other species, not introduced by humans, exist in the lowlands; and there is a long list, as Dr. Hooker informs me, of European genera found in Australia, but not in the intermediate tropical regions. In the excellent ‘Introduction to the Flora of New Zealand’ by Dr. Hooker, similar and striking facts are presented regarding the plants of that large island. Thus, we see that around the world, the plants growing on higher mountains and in the temperate lowlands of the northern and southern hemispheres are sometimes identically the same; but they are more often specifically distinct, while still related to each other in a very notable way.

This brief abstract applies to plants alone: some strictly analogous facts could be given on the distribution of terrestrial animals. In marine productions, similar cases occur; as an example, I may quote a remark by the highest authority, Professor Dana, that “it is certainly a wonderful fact that New Zealand should have a closer resemblance in its crustacea to Great Britain, its antipode, than to any other part of the world.” Sir J. Richardson, also, speaks of the reappearance on the shores of New Zealand, Tasmania, etc., of northern forms of fish. Dr. Hooker informs me that twenty-five species of Algæ are common to New Zealand and to Europe, but have not been found in the intermediate tropical seas.

This brief summary focuses on plants only: similar findings can be made about the distribution of land animals. In oceanic environments, there are comparable instances; for example, Professor Dana, a top expert, noted that “it’s truly remarkable that New Zealand’s crustaceans are more similar to those of Great Britain, its exact opposite, than to any other part of the globe.” Sir J. Richardson also mentions that northern types of fish reappear along the coasts of New Zealand, Tasmania, etc. Dr. Hooker tells me that twenty-five species of algae are shared between New Zealand and Europe but haven’t been found in the tropical waters in between.

It should be observed that the northern species and forms found in the southern parts of the southern hemisphere, and on the mountain-ranges of the intertropical regions, are not arctic, but belong to the northern temperate zones. As Mr. H. C. Watson has recently remarked, “In receding from polar towards equatorial latitudes, the Alpine or mountain floras really become less and less arctic.” Many of the forms living on the mountains of the warmer regions of the earth and in the southern hemisphere are of doubtful value, being ranked by some naturalists as specifically distinct, by others as varieties; but some are certainly identical, and many, though closely related to northern forms, must be ranked as distinct species.

It’s important to note that the northern species and variations found in the southern parts of the Southern Hemisphere, as well as in the mountain ranges of tropical regions, aren’t arctic but belong to the northern temperate zones. As Mr. H. C. Watson recently pointed out, “As you move from polar to equatorial latitudes, the Alpine or mountain floras become increasingly less arctic.” Many of the species living in the mountains of warmer regions and in the Southern Hemisphere are considered questionable, with some naturalists classifying them as separate species while others see them as varieties; however, some are definitely the same, and many, although closely related to northern species, should be classified as distinct species.

Now let us see what light can be thrown on the foregoing facts, on the belief, supported as it is by a large body of geological evidence, that the whole world, or a large part of it, was during the Glacial period simultaneously much colder than at present. The Glacial period, as measured by years, must have been very long; and when we remember over what vast spaces some naturalised plants and animals have spread within a few centuries, this period will have been ample for any amount of migration. As the cold came slowly on, all the tropical plants and other productions will have retreated from both sides towards the equator, followed in the rear by the temperate productions, and these by the arctic; but with the latter we are not now concerned. The tropical plants probably suffered much extinction; how much no one can say; perhaps formerly the tropics supported as many species as we see at the present day crowded together at the Cape of Good Hope, and in parts of temperate Australia. As we know that many tropical plants and animals can withstand a considerable amount of cold, many might have escaped extermination during a moderate fall of temperature, more especially by escaping into the warmest spots. But the great fact to bear in mind is, that all tropical productions will have suffered to a certain extent. On the other hand, the temperate productions, after migrating nearer to the equator, though they will have been placed under somewhat new conditions, will have suffered less. And it is certain that many temperate plants, if protected from the inroads of competitors, can withstand a much warmer climate than their own. Hence, it seems to me possible, bearing in mind that the tropical productions were in a suffering state and could not have presented a firm front against intruders, that a certain number of the more vigorous and dominant temperate forms might have penetrated the native ranks and have reached or even crossed the equator. The invasion would, of course, have been greatly favoured by high land, and perhaps by a dry climate; for Dr. Falconer informs me that it is the damp with the heat of the tropics which is so destructive to perennial plants from a temperate climate. On the other hand, the most humid and hottest districts will have afforded an asylum to the tropical natives. The mountain-ranges north-west of the Himalaya, and the long line of the Cordillera, seem to have afforded two great lines of invasion: and it is a striking fact, lately communicated to me by Dr. Hooker, that all the flowering plants, about forty-six in number, common to Tierra del Fuego and to Europe still exist in North America, which must have lain on the line of march. But I do not doubt that some temperate productions entered and crossed even the lowlands of the tropics at the period when the cold was most intense,—when arctic forms had migrated some twenty-five degrees of latitude from their native country and covered the land at the foot of the Pyrenees. At this period of extreme cold, I believe that the climate under the equator at the level of the sea was about the same with that now felt there at the height of six or seven thousand feet. During this the coldest period, I suppose that large spaces of the tropical lowlands were clothed with a mingled tropical and temperate vegetation, like that now growing with strange luxuriance at the base of the Himalaya, as graphically described by Hooker.

Now let's explore what insights can be gained from the facts we've discussed, particularly the belief — backed by substantial geological evidence — that the entire world, or at least a significant part of it, was much colder during the Glacial period than it is today. The Glacial period must have lasted a very long time, and considering how quickly some naturalized plants and animals have spread over vast areas in just a few centuries, this period provided plenty of opportunity for migration. As the cold gradually set in, all tropical plants and other species likely retreated towards the equator, followed by temperate species, and then arctic ones, though we're not focusing on the latter right now. Tropical plants probably faced significant extinction; we can't say how much, but it's possible that the tropics once supported as many species as we see today crowded around the Cape of Good Hope and in parts of temperate Australia. Since many tropical plants and animals can tolerate a fair amount of cold, it’s likely that some survived a moderate drop in temperature, especially by finding refuge in warmer areas. However, the key point is that all tropical species would have endured some level of hardship. On the flip side, temperate species that migrated closer to the equator, while facing somewhat new conditions, likely suffered less. It's clear that many temperate plants, if shielded from competition, can tolerate a much warmer climate than their own. Therefore, it seems plausible that, given the struggling state of tropical species that couldn’t effectively defend themselves against intruders, some stronger and more dominant temperate varieties managed to penetrate the native ecosystems and even cross the equator. This invasion would have been facilitated by high land and possibly a dry climate; Dr. Falconer has pointed out that the heat and humidity of the tropics are particularly harmful to perennial plants from temperate climates. Conversely, the most humid and hottest regions offered shelter to the tropical natives. The mountain ranges northwest of the Himalayas and the extended Cordillera seem to have provided significant invasion routes. It’s a remarkable fact, shared with me by Dr. Hooker, that all the flowering plants — about forty-six in total — common to both Tierra del Fuego and Europe still exist in North America, which must have been on the migration path. However, I have no doubt that some temperate species made their way into and crossed even the lowlands of the tropics during the most intense cold, when arctic species had migrated around twenty-five degrees of latitude from their original habitats and blanketed the land at the foot of the Pyrenees. During this period of extreme cold, I believe that the climate at sea level near the equator was similar to what is currently experienced there at elevations of six or seven thousand feet. During this coldest period, I suspect large areas of the tropical lowlands were covered with a mix of tropical and temperate vegetation, similar to the lush growth seen at the base of the Himalayas, as vividly described by Hooker.

Thus, as I believe, a considerable number of plants, a few terrestrial animals, and some marine productions, migrated during the Glacial period from the northern and southern temperate zones into the intertropical regions, and some even crossed the equator. As the warmth returned, these temperate forms would naturally ascend the higher mountains, being exterminated on the lowlands; those which had not reached the equator, would re-migrate northward or southward towards their former homes; but the forms, chiefly northern, which had crossed the equator, would travel still further from their homes into the more temperate latitudes of the opposite hemisphere. Although we have reason to believe from geological evidence that the whole body of arctic shells underwent scarcely any modification during their long southern migration and re-migration northward, the case may have been wholly different with those intruding forms which settled themselves on the intertropical mountains, and in the southern hemisphere. These being surrounded by strangers will have had to compete with many new forms of life; and it is probable that selected modifications in their structure, habits, and constitutions will have profited them. Thus many of these wanderers, though still plainly related by inheritance to their brethren of the northern or southern hemispheres, now exist in their new homes as well-marked varieties or as distinct species.

So, I believe that a significant number of plants, some land animals, and certain marine species moved during the Ice Age from the northern and southern temperate zones into the tropical regions, and some even crossed the equator. As the climate warmed up, these temperate species would naturally move up to higher mountains, being wiped out in the lowlands; those that didn’t reach the equator would migrate back north or south to their previous homes; however, the species, mainly from the north, that crossed the equator would travel even further from their original habitats into the more temperate regions of the opposite hemisphere. Although we have good reason to believe, based on geological evidence, that the entire group of arctic shells underwent little change during their long migration south and back north, the situation might have been entirely different for those species that settled on the tropical mountains and in the southern hemisphere. These newcomers, surrounded by unfamiliar species, would have had to compete with many new forms of life; it’s likely that some changes in their structure, habits, and biology would have benefited them. Thus, many of these migrants, although still clearly related by ancestry to their relatives from the northern or southern hemispheres, now exist in their new environments as well-defined varieties or as separate species.

It is a remarkable fact, strongly insisted on by Hooker in regard to America, and by Alph. de Candolle in regard to Australia, that many more identical plants and allied forms have apparently migrated from the north to the south, than in a reversed direction. We see, however, a few southern vegetable forms on the mountains of Borneo and Abyssinia. I suspect that this preponderant migration from north to south is due to the greater extent of land in the north, and to the northern forms having existed in their own homes in greater numbers, and having consequently been advanced through natural selection and competition to a higher stage of perfection or dominating power, than the southern forms. And thus, when they became commingled during the Glacial period, the northern forms were enabled to beat the less powerful southern forms. Just in the same manner as we see at the present day, that very many European productions cover the ground in La Plata, and in a lesser degree in Australia, and have to a certain extent beaten the natives; whereas extremely few southern forms have become naturalised in any part of Europe, though hides, wool, and other objects likely to carry seeds have been largely imported into Europe during the last two or three centuries from La Plata, and during the last thirty or forty years from Australia. Something of the same kind must have occurred on the intertropical mountains: no doubt before the Glacial period they were stocked with endemic Alpine forms; but these have almost everywhere largely yielded to the more dominant forms, generated in the larger areas and more efficient workshops of the north. In many islands the native productions are nearly equalled or even outnumbered by the naturalised; and if the natives have not been actually exterminated, their numbers have been greatly reduced, and this is the first stage towards extinction. A mountain is an island on the land; and the intertropical mountains before the Glacial period must have been completely isolated; and I believe that the productions of these islands on the land yielded to those produced within the larger areas of the north, just in the same way as the productions of real islands have everywhere lately yielded to continental forms, naturalised by man’s agency.

It's a striking fact, emphasized by Hooker regarding America and by Alph. de Candolle concerning Australia, that a lot more identical plants and similar species seem to have moved from the north to the south than the other way around. However, we do see a few southern plant species on the mountains of Borneo and Abyssinia. I suspect this dominant migration from north to south is because there’s more land in the north and the northern species have existed in greater numbers in their own habitats, allowing them to evolve through natural selection and competition into more advanced or dominant forms than those in the south. Thus, when they mixed during the Glacial period, the northern forms were able to outcompete the less powerful southern forms. We see this today, where many European species thrive in La Plata, and to a lesser extent in Australia, having partially outperformed the local species; whereas very few southern species have become established in Europe, despite hides, wool, and other items that could carry seeds being imported into Europe quite a bit over the last two or three centuries from La Plata, and over the past thirty or forty years from Australia. A similar situation must have happened in the intertropical mountains: undoubtedly before the Glacial period they were filled with local Alpine species, but these have largely given way to the more dominant forms originating from the larger areas and more effective environments in the north. In many islands, the native species are nearly matched or even surpassed by the naturalized ones; and if the natives haven't been completely wiped out, their numbers have significantly decreased, which is the first step toward extinction. A mountain is like an island on land; and the intertropical mountains before the Glacial period must have been completely isolated; I believe that the species on these land islands succumbed to those produced in the larger northern areas, just like species on actual islands have recently been overtaken by continental forms that have been naturalized through human activity.

I am far from supposing that all difficulties are removed on the view here given in regard to the range and affinities of the allied species which live in the northern and southern temperate zones and on the mountains of the intertropical regions. Very many difficulties remain to be solved. I do not pretend to indicate the exact lines and means of migration, or the reason why certain species and not others have migrated; why certain species have been modified and have given rise to new groups of forms, and others have remained unaltered. We cannot hope to explain such facts, until we can say why one species and not another becomes naturalised by man’s agency in a foreign land; why one ranges twice or thrice as far, and is twice or thrice as common, as another species within their own homes.

I don’t think all the challenges have been solved regarding the range and relationships of the related species living in the northern and southern temperate zones and in the mountains of the tropical regions. Many problems still need to be addressed. I’m not claiming to pinpoint the exact paths and methods of migration, or to explain why some species migrated while others did not; why some species have changed and led to new groups of forms while others have stayed the same. We can't expect to explain these facts until we understand why one species, and not another, becomes established through human intervention in a different land; why one species spreads two or three times farther and is two or three times more common than another species in their own habitats.

I have said that many difficulties remain to be solved: some of the most remarkable are stated with admirable clearness by Dr. Hooker in his botanical works on the antarctic regions. These cannot be here discussed. I will only say that as far as regards the occurrence of identical species at points so enormously remote as Kerguelen Land, New Zealand, and Fuegia, I believe that towards the close of the Glacial period, icebergs, as suggested by Lyell, have been largely concerned in their dispersal. But the existence of several quite distinct species, belonging to genera exclusively confined to the south, at these and other distant points of the southern hemisphere, is, on my theory of descent with modification, a far more remarkable case of difficulty. For some of these species are so distinct, that we cannot suppose that there has been time since the commencement of the Glacial period for their migration, and for their subsequent modification to the necessary degree. The facts seem to me to indicate that peculiar and very distinct species have migrated in radiating lines from some common centre; and I am inclined to look in the southern, as in the northern hemisphere, to a former and warmer period, before the commencement of the Glacial period, when the antarctic lands, now covered with ice, supported a highly peculiar and isolated flora. I suspect that before this flora was exterminated by the Glacial epoch, a few forms were widely dispersed to various points of the southern hemisphere by occasional means of transport, and by the aid, as halting-places, of existing and now sunken islands, and perhaps at the commencement of the Glacial period, by icebergs. By these means, as I believe, the southern shores of America, Australia, New Zealand have become slightly tinted by the same peculiar forms of vegetable life.

I’ve mentioned that many challenges still need solving: some of the most notable are expressed with impressive clarity by Dr. Hooker in his botanical works on the Antarctic regions. I won't discuss them here. I will only say that regarding the presence of identical species at locations as far apart as Kerguelen Land, New Zealand, and Fuegia, I believe that towards the end of the Glacial period, icebergs, as suggested by Lyell, played a major role in their spread. However, the existence of several distinct species, belonging to genera that are solely found in the south, at these and other remote areas in the southern hemisphere is, according to my theory of descent with modification, a much more interesting dilemma. Some of these species are so unique that we can't assume enough time has passed since the start of the Glacial period for them to migrate and subsequently change enough. The evidence suggests to me that unique and very different species have spread out from a common center; and I tend to think, like in the northern hemisphere, there was a previous and warmer period before the Glacial period, when the Antarctic lands, now covered in ice, supported a very peculiar and isolated flora. I suspect that before this flora was wiped out by the Glacial epoch, a few species were widely spread to different parts of the southern hemisphere by occasional transport, using existing and now-submerged islands as stopovers, and possibly by icebergs at the beginning of the Glacial period. I believe that through these methods, the southern coasts of America, Australia, and New Zealand have been slightly influenced by the same unique forms of plant life.

Sir C. Lyell in a striking passage has speculated, in language almost identical with mine, on the effects of great alternations of climate on geographical distribution. I believe that the world has recently felt one of his great cycles of change; and that on this view, combined with modification through natural selection, a multitude of facts in the present distribution both of the same and of allied forms of life can be explained. The living waters may be said to have flowed during one short period from the north and from the south, and to have crossed at the equator; but to have flowed with greater force from the north so as to have freely inundated the south. As the tide leaves its drift in horizontal lines, though rising higher on the shores where the tide rises highest, so have the living waters left their living drift on our mountain-summits, in a line gently rising from the arctic lowlands to a great height under the equator. The various beings thus left stranded may be compared with savage races of man, driven up and surviving in the mountain-fastnesses of almost every land, which serve as a record, full of interest to us, of the former inhabitants of the surrounding lowlands.

Sir C. Lyell, in a notable passage, has speculated—using nearly the same language as I have—about the impact of significant climate changes on geographical distribution. I believe that the world has recently experienced one of these major cycles of change; from this perspective, combined with natural selection, we can explain a multitude of facts regarding the current distribution of both the same and related forms of life. It can be said that the living waters flowed during a brief period from the north and south, crossing at the equator, but with greater force from the north, effectively flooding the south. Just as tides leave their mark in horizontal lines, while rising higher on shores where the tide is strongest, the living waters have left their mark on our mountain peaks, in a gradual rise from the Arctic lowlands to significant heights near the equator. The various beings left behind can be likened to primitive human races, pushed into and surviving in the mountain strongholds of nearly every region, which serve as a fascinating record of the former inhabitants of the surrounding lowlands.

CHAPTER XII.
GEOGRAPHICAL DISTRIBUTION—continued.

Distribution of fresh-water productions. On the inhabitants of oceanic islands. Absence of Batrachians and of terrestrial Mammals. On the relation of the inhabitants of islands to those of the nearest mainland. On colonisation from the nearest source with subsequent modification. Summary of the last and present chapters.

Distribution of fresh-water resources. About the people living on oceanic islands. Lack of amphibians and land mammals. On how island inhabitants relate to those on the closest mainland. On colonization from the nearest source followed by changes. Summary of the previous and current chapters.

As lakes and river-systems are separated from each other by barriers of land, it might have been thought that fresh-water productions would not have ranged widely within the same country, and as the sea is apparently a still more impassable barrier, that they never would have extended to distant countries. But the case is exactly the reverse. Not only have many fresh-water species, belonging to quite different classes, an enormous range, but allied species prevail in a remarkable manner throughout the world. I well remember, when first collecting in the fresh waters of Brazil, feeling much surprise at the similarity of the fresh-water insects, shells, etc., and at the dissimilarity of the surrounding terrestrial beings, compared with those of Britain.

As lakes and river systems are separated by land barriers, one might think that fresh-water life wouldn't spread widely across the same country, and that the sea, being an even tougher barrier, would prevent it from reaching distant countries. But it's actually the opposite. Many fresh-water species from completely different groups have a surprisingly wide range, and similar species can be found throughout the world. I remember when I first started collecting fresh-water specimens in Brazil; I was really struck by how similar the fresh-water insects, shells, and so on were, especially when compared to the very different land animals around me in Brazil versus those in Britain.

But this power in fresh-water productions of ranging widely, though so unexpected, can, I think, in most cases be explained by their having become fitted, in a manner highly useful to them, for short and frequent migrations from pond to pond, or from stream to stream; and liability to wide dispersal would follow from this capacity as an almost necessary consequence. We can here consider only a few cases. In regard to fish, I believe that the same species never occur in the fresh waters of distant continents. But on the same continent the species often range widely and almost capriciously; for two river-systems will have some fish in common and some different. A few facts seem to favour the possibility of their occasional transport by accidental means; like that of the live fish not rarely dropped by whirlwinds in India, and the vitality of their ova when removed from the water. But I am inclined to attribute the dispersal of fresh-water fish mainly to slight changes within the recent period in the level of the land, having caused rivers to flow into each other. Instances, also, could be given of this having occurred during floods, without any change of level. We have evidence in the loess of the Rhine of considerable changes of level in the land within a very recent geological period, and when the surface was peopled by existing land and fresh-water shells. The wide difference of the fish on opposite sides of continuous mountain-ranges, which from an early period must have parted river-systems and completely prevented their inosculation, seems to lead to this same conclusion. With respect to allied fresh-water fish occurring at very distant points of the world, no doubt there are many cases which cannot at present be explained: but some fresh-water fish belong to very ancient forms, and in such cases there will have been ample time for great geographical changes, and consequently time and means for much migration. In the second place, salt-water fish can with care be slowly accustomed to live in fresh water; and, according to Valenciennes, there is hardly a single group of fishes confined exclusively to fresh water, so that we may imagine that a marine member of a fresh-water group might travel far along the shores of the sea, and subsequently become modified and adapted to the fresh waters of a distant land.

But this ability in freshwater species to spread out widely, though surprising, can usually be explained by their adaptation to short and frequent migrations from one pond or stream to another. This capacity would naturally lead to their widespread dispersal. We can only look at a few examples here. Regarding fish, I believe the same species never appear in the freshwaters of distant continents. However, within the same continent, species often have a wide and almost random range; for instance, two river systems may share some fish species while having others that are different. A few facts suggest they might occasionally be transported by chance, such as living fish that are sometimes dropped by whirlwinds in India, and the resilience of their eggs when taken out of water. Still, I tend to think that the spread of freshwater fish is mainly due to slight, recent changes in land elevation causing rivers to merge. There are also examples of this happening during floods without any change in elevation. We have evidence from the loess of the Rhine of significant land-level changes in a very recent geological period, at a time when the surface was inhabited by existing land and freshwater shells. The stark differences in fish on opposite sides of continuous mountain ranges, which must have historically separated river systems and completely prevented their mixing, seem to support this conclusion. In terms of related freshwater fish found at very distant locations around the world, there are certainly many cases that cannot currently be explained. However, some freshwater fish belong to very ancient forms, and in those cases, there has been plenty of time for significant geographical changes and consequently for extensive migration. Additionally, saltwater fish can, with careful training, be slowly adapted to live in freshwater. According to Valenciennes, there is hardly a single group of fish that is exclusively freshwater, which suggests that a marine member of a freshwater group might travel far along the coast and later become modified and adapted to the freshwater of a distant region.

Some species of fresh-water shells have a very wide range, and allied species, which, on my theory, are descended from a common parent and must have proceeded from a single source, prevail throughout the world. Their distribution at first perplexed me much, as their ova are not likely to be transported by birds, and they are immediately killed by sea water, as are the adults. I could not even understand how some naturalised species have rapidly spread throughout the same country. But two facts, which I have observed—and no doubt many others remain to be observed—throw some light on this subject. When a duck suddenly emerges from a pond covered with duck-weed, I have twice seen these little plants adhering to its back; and it has happened to me, in removing a little duck-weed from one aquarium to another, that I have quite unintentionally stocked the one with fresh-water shells from the other. But another agency is perhaps more effectual: I suspended a duck’s feet, which might represent those of a bird sleeping in a natural pond, in an aquarium, where many ova of fresh-water shells were hatching; and I found that numbers of the extremely minute and just hatched shells crawled on the feet, and clung to them so firmly that when taken out of the water they could not be jarred off, though at a somewhat more advanced age they would voluntarily drop off. These just hatched molluscs, though aquatic in their nature, survived on the duck’s feet, in damp air, from twelve to twenty hours; and in this length of time a duck or heron might fly at least six or seven hundred miles, and would be sure to alight on a pool or rivulet, if blown across sea to an oceanic island or to any other distant point. Sir Charles Lyell also informs me that a Dyticus has been caught with an Ancylus (a fresh-water shell like a limpet) firmly adhering to it; and a water-beetle of the same family, a Colymbetes, once flew on board the ‘Beagle,’ when forty-five miles distant from the nearest land: how much farther it might have flown with a favouring gale no one can tell.

Some species of freshwater shells have a very wide distribution, and related species, which I believe are descended from a common ancestor and originated from a single source, are found all over the world. Their distribution initially puzzled me since their eggs are unlikely to be carried by birds, and they are immediately killed by seawater, just like the adults. I couldn't figure out how some naturalized species have spread so quickly throughout the same country. However, two observations I've made—and I’m sure there are many more to be found—provide some insight into this issue. When a duck suddenly comes out of a pond covered with duckweed, I've seen these little plants stuck to its back on two occasions. And it has happened to me, when transferring a bit of duckweed from one aquarium to another, that I unknowingly introduced freshwater shells into the new tank. But another method might be even more effective: I suspended a duck’s feet, which could represent those of a bird resting in a natural pond, in an aquarium while many freshwater shell eggs were hatching; and I noticed that a number of the tiny, newly-hatched shells crawled onto the feet and clung on so tightly that, when removed from the water, they couldn't be shaken off, although they would drop off voluntarily when a bit older. These newly hatched mollusks, despite being aquatic, survived on the duck’s feet, in humid air, for twelve to twenty hours; in that time, a duck or heron could fly at least six or seven hundred miles and would likely land in a pond or stream if blown across the sea to an oceanic island or another distant location. Sir Charles Lyell also informs me that a Dyticus was caught with an Ancylus (a freshwater shell like a limpet) firmly attached to it; and a water beetle of the same family, a Colymbetes, once flew aboard the ‘Beagle’ when it was forty-five miles from the nearest land: how much farther it could have flown with a favorable wind is unknown.

With respect to plants, it has long been known what enormous ranges many fresh-water and even marsh-species have, both over continents and to the most remote oceanic islands. This is strikingly shown, as remarked by Alph. de Candolle, in large groups of terrestrial plants, which have only a very few aquatic members; for these latter seem immediately to acquire, as if in consequence, a very wide range. I think favourable means of dispersal explain this fact. I have before mentioned that earth occasionally, though rarely, adheres in some quantity to the feet and beaks of birds. Wading birds, which frequent the muddy edges of ponds, if suddenly flushed, would be the most likely to have muddy feet. Birds of this order I can show are the greatest wanderers, and are occasionally found on the most remote and barren islands in the open ocean; they would not be likely to alight on the surface of the sea, so that the dirt would not be washed off their feet; when making land, they would be sure to fly to their natural fresh-water haunts. I do not believe that botanists are aware how charged the mud of ponds is with seeds: I have tried several little experiments, but will here give only the most striking case: I took in February three table-spoonfuls of mud from three different points, beneath water, on the edge of a little pond; this mud when dry weighed only 6 3/4 ounces; I kept it covered up in my study for six months, pulling up and counting each plant as it grew; the plants were of many kinds, and were altogether 537 in number; and yet the viscid mud was all contained in a breakfast cup! Considering these facts, I think it would be an inexplicable circumstance if water-birds did not transport the seeds of fresh-water plants to vast distances, and if consequently the range of these plants was not very great. The same agency may have come into play with the eggs of some of the smaller fresh-water animals.

Regarding plants, it's been known for a long time that many freshwater and even marsh species have extensive ranges, spanning continents and reaching remote oceanic islands. This is clearly illustrated, as noted by Alph. de Candolle, in large groups of terrestrial plants that have only a few aquatic members; the aquatic ones seem to quickly develop a wide range as a result. I believe that effective means of dispersal account for this observation. I've previously mentioned that soil can sometimes, though rarely, stick to the feet and beaks of birds. Wading birds, which are often found along the muddy edges of ponds, would be the most likely to have muddy feet if they were startled. I can demonstrate that these birds are the most extensive wanderers, occasionally turning up on the most remote and desolate islands in the open ocean; they would not typically land on the water's surface, which means the mud wouldn't wash off their feet; upon reaching land, they would naturally head back to their freshwater habitats. I don’t think botanists realize how full pond mud is with seeds: I've conducted several small experiments, but I will share only the most impressive case: in February, I took three tablespoons of mud from three different spots underwater at the edge of a small pond; this mud, when dry, weighed only 6 3/4 ounces. I kept it covered in my study for six months, counting each plant as it sprouted; the total number of plants was 537, representing many different kinds, and all this came from a breakfast cup of sticky mud! Given these facts, I find it hard to believe that water birds don't transport the seeds of freshwater plants over long distances, and therefore that these plants don’t have a very broad range. The same process might also apply to the eggs of some smaller freshwater animals.

Other and unknown agencies probably have also played a part. I have stated that fresh-water fish eat some kinds of seeds, though they reject many other kinds after having swallowed them; even small fish swallow seeds of moderate size, as of the yellow water-lily and Potamogeton. Herons and other birds, century after century, have gone on daily devouring fish; they then take flight and go to other waters, or are blown across the sea; and we have seen that seeds retain their power of germination, when rejected in pellets or in excrement, many hours afterwards. When I saw the great size of the seeds of that fine water-lily, the Nelumbium, and remembered Alph. de Candolle’s remarks on this plant, I thought that its distribution must remain quite inexplicable; but Audubon states that he found the seeds of the great southern water-lily (probably, according to Dr. Hooker, the Nelumbium luteum) in a heron’s stomach; although I do not know the fact, yet analogy makes me believe that a heron flying to another pond and getting a hearty meal of fish, would probably reject from its stomach a pellet containing the seeds of the Nelumbium undigested; or the seeds might be dropped by the bird whilst feeding its young, in the same way as fish are known sometimes to be dropped.

Other and unknown factors probably also played a role. I've mentioned that fresh-water fish consume certain types of seeds, although they reject many others after swallowing them; even smaller fish eat moderate-sized seeds, like those from the yellow water-lily and Potamogeton. Herons and other birds have been eating fish day after day, year after year; they then fly off to other waters or are carried across the sea by the wind. We know that seeds can still germinate for many hours after being rejected in pellets or through droppings. When I saw the large seeds of that beautiful water-lily, the Nelumbium, and recalled Alph. de Candolle’s comments on this plant, I thought its distribution must remain a mystery. However, Audubon notes that he found the seeds of the great southern water-lily (probably the Nelumbium luteum, according to Dr. Hooker) in a heron’s stomach; while I can't confirm this, I assume that a heron flying to another pond after a good meal of fish would likely expel an undigested pellet containing the seeds of the Nelumbium. Or the seeds might be dropped by the bird while it's feeding its young, similar to how fish are sometimes dropped.

In considering these several means of distribution, it should be remembered that when a pond or stream is first formed, for instance, on a rising islet, it will be unoccupied; and a single seed or egg will have a good chance of succeeding. Although there will always be a struggle for life between the individuals of the species, however few, already occupying any pond, yet as the number of kinds is small, compared with those on the land, the competition will probably be less severe between aquatic than between terrestrial species; consequently an intruder from the waters of a foreign country, would have a better chance of seizing on a place, than in the case of terrestrial colonists. We should, also, remember that some, perhaps many, fresh-water productions are low in the scale of nature, and that we have reason to believe that such low beings change or become modified less quickly than the high; and this will give longer time than the average for the migration of the same aquatic species. We should not forget the probability of many species having formerly ranged as continuously as fresh-water productions ever can range, over immense areas, and having subsequently become extinct in intermediate regions. But the wide distribution of fresh-water plants and of the lower animals, whether retaining the same identical form or in some degree modified, I believe mainly depends on the wide dispersal of their seeds and eggs by animals, more especially by fresh-water birds, which have large powers of flight, and naturally travel from one to another and often distant piece of water. Nature, like a careful gardener, thus takes her seeds from a bed of a particular nature, and drops them in another equally well fitted for them.

When thinking about these different ways of distribution, it's important to remember that when a pond or stream first forms, like on a rising islet, it will be empty; and a single seed or egg has a good chance of thriving. Even though there will always be competition for survival among the individuals of the species, no matter how few are already in a pond, the number of species is small compared to those on land, so the competition is likely to be less intense among aquatic species than among terrestrial ones. This means that an invader from the waters of another country will have a better chance of claiming a spot than terrestrial colonizers would. We should also keep in mind that some—maybe many—freshwater organisms are lower on the scale of nature, and we have reason to believe that these simpler beings change or evolve more slowly than the more complex ones. This could allow more time for the same aquatic species to migrate. We shouldn't forget that many species likely used to exist continuously over large areas, much like freshwater organisms can today, and have since gone extinct in areas in between. However, the widespread distribution of freshwater plants and lower animals, whether they remain in the same form or change somewhat, mainly results from animals, especially freshwater birds, spreading their seeds and eggs. These birds have strong flying abilities and naturally move from one body of water to another, often distant one. Nature, like a careful gardener, takes her seeds from a specific environment and plants them in another equally suitable one.

On the Inhabitants of Oceanic Islands.—We now come to the last of the three classes of facts, which I have selected as presenting the greatest amount of difficulty, on the view that all the individuals both of the same and of allied species have descended from a single parent; and therefore have all proceeded from a common birthplace, notwithstanding that in the course of time they have come to inhabit distant points of the globe. I have already stated that I cannot honestly admit Forbes’s view on continental extensions, which, if legitimately followed out, would lead to the belief that within the recent period all existing islands have been nearly or quite joined to some continent. This view would remove many difficulties, but it would not, I think, explain all the facts in regard to insular productions. In the following remarks I shall not confine myself to the mere question of dispersal; but shall consider some other facts, which bear on the truth of the two theories of independent creation and of descent with modification.

On the Inhabitants of Oceanic Islands.—We're now looking at the last of the three classes of facts, which I have picked as the most challenging, based on the idea that all individuals of the same and related species have come from a single ancestor; thus, they all originated from a common birthplace, even though over time they have ended up in different parts of the world. I've already mentioned that I can't genuinely accept Forbes's view on continental extensions, which, if taken seriously, would suggest that in recent times, all existing islands were almost or completely connected to some continent. This perspective could solve many issues, but I don't believe it would explain all the facts regarding insular productions. In the following comments, I won't just focus on the question of dispersal; I'll also consider some other facts that relate to the validity of the two theories of independent creation and descent with modification.

The species of all kinds which inhabit oceanic islands are few in number compared with those on equal continental areas: Alph. de Candolle admits this for plants, and Wollaston for insects. If we look to the large size and varied stations of New Zealand, extending over 780 miles of latitude, and compare its flowering plants, only 750 in number, with those on an equal area at the Cape of Good Hope or in Australia, we must, I think, admit that something quite independently of any difference in physical conditions has caused so great a difference in number. Even the uniform county of Cambridge has 847 plants, and the little island of Anglesea 764, but a few ferns and a few introduced plants are included in these numbers, and the comparison in some other respects is not quite fair. We have evidence that the barren island of Ascension aboriginally possessed under half-a-dozen flowering plants; yet many have become naturalised on it, as they have on New Zealand and on every other oceanic island which can be named. In St. Helena there is reason to believe that the naturalised plants and animals have nearly or quite exterminated many native productions. He who admits the doctrine of the creation of each separate species, will have to admit, that a sufficient number of the best adapted plants and animals have not been created on oceanic islands; for man has unintentionally stocked them from various sources far more fully and perfectly than has nature.

The variety of species that live on oceanic islands is much lower compared to those on similar-sized continental areas: Alph. de Candolle acknowledges this for plants, and Wollaston for insects. If we consider the large size and diverse environments of New Zealand, which spans over 780 miles of latitude, and compare its flowering plants, which only number 750, to those in equivalent areas like the Cape of Good Hope or Australia, it’s evident that some factor beyond just physical conditions has led to this significant difference in numbers. Even the relatively uniform county of Cambridge has 847 plant species, and the small island of Anglesea has 764. However, a few of these are ferns and some are introduced species, making the comparison in some aspects not entirely fair. There is evidence that the barren island of Ascension originally had fewer than six native flowering plants; yet many species have since become naturalized there, just like in New Zealand and other oceanic islands. In St. Helena, there is reason to believe that naturalized plants and animals have almost entirely wiped out many native species. Anyone who supports the idea of each separate species being created will have to acknowledge that a sufficient number of well-adapted plants and animals haven’t been created on oceanic islands; because humans have unintentionally introduced them from various sources more thoroughly and effectively than nature has.

Although in oceanic islands the number of kinds of inhabitants is scanty, the proportion of endemic species (i.e. those found nowhere else in the world) is often extremely large. If we compare, for instance, the number of the endemic land-shells in Madeira, or of the endemic birds in the Galapagos Archipelago, with the number found on any continent, and then compare the area of the islands with that of the continent, we shall see that this is true. This fact might have been expected on my theory, for, as already explained, species occasionally arriving after long intervals in a new and isolated district, and having to compete with new associates, will be eminently liable to modification, and will often produce groups of modified descendants. But it by no means follows, that, because in an island nearly all the species of one class are peculiar, those of another class, or of another section of the same class, are peculiar; and this difference seems to depend on the species which do not become modified having immigrated with facility and in a body, so that their mutual relations have not been much disturbed. Thus in the Galapagos Islands nearly every land-bird, but only two out of the eleven marine birds, are peculiar; and it is obvious that marine birds could arrive at these islands more easily than land-birds. Bermuda, on the other hand, which lies at about the same distance from North America as the Galapagos Islands do from South America, and which has a very peculiar soil, does not possess one endemic land bird; and we know from Mr. J. M. Jones’s admirable account of Bermuda, that very many North American birds, during their great annual migrations, visit either periodically or occasionally this island. Madeira does not possess one peculiar bird, and many European and African birds are almost every year blown there, as I am informed by Mr. E. V. Harcourt. So that these two islands of Bermuda and Madeira have been stocked by birds, which for long ages have struggled together in their former homes, and have become mutually adapted to each other; and when settled in their new homes, each kind will have been kept by the others to their proper places and habits, and will consequently have been little liable to modification. Madeira, again, is inhabited by a wonderful number of peculiar land-shells, whereas not one species of sea-shell is confined to its shores: now, though we do not know how seashells are dispersed, yet we can see that their eggs or larvæ, perhaps attached to seaweed or floating timber, or to the feet of wading-birds, might be transported far more easily than land-shells, across three or four hundred miles of open sea. The different orders of insects in Madeira apparently present analogous facts.

Although oceanic islands have a limited variety of inhabitants, they often have a surprisingly high number of unique species (i.e., those found nowhere else in the world). For example, if we look at the endemic land snails in Madeira or the unique birds in the Galapagos Islands compared to those on any continent, and then consider the size of these islands relative to the continent, we'll find this to be true. This outcome aligns with my theory, as I previously explained that species arriving in a new, isolated area after long periods, and needing to compete with new neighbors, are likely to change significantly and often give rise to groups of modified descendants. However, it doesn't necessarily mean that if nearly all species of one group on an island are unique, those of another group, or section of the same group, will be unique too. This variation seems to depend on the species that manage to settle without much modification, which likely arrived en masse, keeping their relationships largely undisturbed. For instance, in the Galapagos Islands, almost every land bird is unique, while only two out of eleven marine birds are; it's clear that marine birds could reach these islands more easily than land birds. In contrast, Bermuda, which is about the same distance from North America as the Galapagos Islands are from South America, has a very unusual soil but no endemic land birds at all. According to Mr. J. M. Jones’s excellent account of Bermuda, many North American birds visit this island regularly during their annual migrations. Madeira also lacks a single unique bird, and many European and African birds are often blown there, as noted by Mr. E. V. Harcourt. This indicates that both Bermuda and Madeira have been populated by birds that have long adapted to each other in their previous habitats, which helps keep them in their proper roles and behaviors in their new environments, making them less prone to change. On the other hand, Madeira has a remarkable number of unique land snails, while it has no exclusive species of sea snails: although we don't fully understand how sea snails are distributed, it's evident that their eggs or larvae, possibly attached to seaweed or floating debris, or the legs of wading birds, could travel much more easily across several hundred miles of open ocean than land snails. Similar patterns can be observed with the various types of insects in Madeira.

Oceanic islands are sometimes deficient in certain classes, and their places are apparently occupied by the other inhabitants; in the Galapagos Islands reptiles, and in New Zealand gigantic wingless birds, take the place of mammals. In the plants of the Galapagos Islands, Dr. Hooker has shown that the proportional numbers of the different orders are very different from what they are elsewhere. Such cases are generally accounted for by the physical conditions of the islands; but this explanation seems to me not a little doubtful. Facility of immigration, I believe, has been at least as important as the nature of the conditions.

Oceanic islands sometimes lack certain groups of species, and these gaps are often filled by other inhabitants; for example, in the Galapagos Islands, reptiles take the place of mammals, while in New Zealand, there are giant flightless birds. Dr. Hooker has demonstrated that the proportional representation of different plant orders in the Galapagos Islands is very different from what is found elsewhere. These situations are usually explained by the islands' physical conditions; however, I find this explanation somewhat questionable. I believe that the ease of immigration has been at least as significant as the nature of these conditions.

Many remarkable little facts could be given with respect to the inhabitants of remote islands. For instance, in certain islands not tenanted by mammals, some of the endemic plants have beautifully hooked seeds; yet few relations are more striking than the adaptation of hooked seeds for transportal by the wool and fur of quadrupeds. This case presents no difficulty on my view, for a hooked seed might be transported to an island by some other means; and the plant then becoming slightly modified, but still retaining its hooked seeds, would form an endemic species, having as useless an appendage as any rudimentary organ,—for instance, as the shrivelled wings under the soldered elytra of many insular beetles. Again, islands often possess trees or bushes belonging to orders which elsewhere include only herbaceous species; now trees, as Alph. de Candolle has shown, generally have, whatever the cause may be, confined ranges. Hence trees would be little likely to reach distant oceanic islands; and an herbaceous plant, though it would have no chance of successfully competing in stature with a fully developed tree, when established on an island and having to compete with herbaceous plants alone, might readily gain an advantage by growing taller and taller and overtopping the other plants. If so, natural selection would often tend to add to the stature of herbaceous plants when growing on an island, to whatever order they belonged, and thus convert them first into bushes and ultimately into trees.

Many fascinating little facts could be shared about the people living on remote islands. For example, in certain islands that aren't inhabited by mammals, some of the native plants have stunning hooked seeds; yet, few examples are more striking than the way hooked seeds are adapted for transport on the wool and fur of animals. This situation isn't difficult to explain in my opinion, because a hooked seed could be brought to an island in other ways; then the plant could change slightly, while still keeping its hooked seeds, forming a species that is unique to the island, with as unnecessary an feature as any rudimentary organ—like the shriveled wings under the fused elytra of many island beetles. Additionally, islands often have trees or bushes from plant groups that, elsewhere, only include herbaceous species; as Alph. de Candolle has demonstrated, trees typically have, for whatever reason, limited ranges. Therefore, trees would be unlikely to reach distant oceanic islands; and a herbaceous plant, though it wouldn’t stand a chance competing in height with a fully grown tree, when settling on an island and competing only with other herbaceous plants, might easily gain an advantage by growing taller and taller, overshadowing the other plants. If that’s the case, natural selection would often encourage an increase in the height of herbaceous plants when growing on an island, regardless of their plant group, ultimately transforming them into first bushes and then trees.

With respect to the absence of whole orders on oceanic islands, Bory St. Vincent long ago remarked that Batrachians (frogs, toads, newts) have never been found on any of the many islands with which the great oceans are studded. I have taken pains to verify this assertion, and I have found it strictly true. I have, however, been assured that a frog exists on the mountains of the great island of New Zealand; but I suspect that this exception (if the information be correct) may be explained through glacial agency. This general absence of frogs, toads, and newts on so many oceanic islands cannot be accounted for by their physical conditions; indeed it seems that islands are peculiarly well fitted for these animals; for frogs have been introduced into Madeira, the Azores, and Mauritius, and have multiplied so as to become a nuisance. But as these animals and their spawn are known to be immediately killed by sea-water, on my view we can see that there would be great difficulty in their transportal across the sea, and therefore why they do not exist on any oceanic island. But why, on the theory of creation, they should not have been created there, it would be very difficult to explain.

Regarding the lack of entire groups on oceanic islands, Bory St. Vincent noted long ago that amphibians (frogs, toads, newts) have never been found on any of the numerous islands scattered across the vast oceans. I have taken the time to verify this claim, and I have found it to be completely accurate. However, I've been told that a frog does exist in the mountains of the large island of New Zealand; but I suspect that this exception (if the information is correct) could be explained by glacial activity. This overall absence of frogs, toads, and newts on so many oceanic islands can't be explained by their physical conditions; in fact, islands seem particularly well-suited for these animals. Frogs have been introduced to Madeira, the Azores, and Mauritius, and they have multiplied to the point of becoming a nuisance. Yet, since these animals and their eggs are known to be instantly killed by seawater, it seems that there would be significant challenges in transporting them across the ocean, explaining their absence on any oceanic island. However, it would be quite difficult to clarify why, based on the theory of creation, they weren’t created there in the first place.

Mammals offer another and similar case. I have carefully searched the oldest voyages, but have not finished my search; as yet I have not found a single instance, free from doubt, of a terrestrial mammal (excluding domesticated animals kept by the natives) inhabiting an island situated above 300 miles from a continent or great continental island; and many islands situated at a much less distance are equally barren. The Falkland Islands, which are inhabited by a wolf-like fox, come nearest to an exception; but this group cannot be considered as oceanic, as it lies on a bank connected with the mainland; moreover, icebergs formerly brought boulders to its western shores, and they may have formerly transported foxes, as so frequently now happens in the arctic regions. Yet it cannot be said that small islands will not support small mammals, for they occur in many parts of the world on very small islands, if close to a continent; and hardly an island can be named on which our smaller quadrupeds have not become naturalised and greatly multiplied. It cannot be said, on the ordinary view of creation, that there has not been time for the creation of mammals; many volcanic islands are sufficiently ancient, as shown by the stupendous degradation which they have suffered and by their tertiary strata: there has also been time for the production of endemic species belonging to other classes; and on continents it is thought that mammals appear and disappear at a quicker rate than other and lower animals. Though terrestrial mammals do not occur on oceanic islands, ærial mammals do occur on almost every island. New Zealand possesses two bats found nowhere else in the world: Norfolk Island, the Viti Archipelago, the Bonin Islands, the Caroline and Marianne Archipelagoes, and Mauritius, all possess their peculiar bats. Why, it may be asked, has the supposed creative force produced bats and no other mammals on remote islands? On my view this question can easily be answered; for no terrestrial mammal can be transported across a wide space of sea, but bats can fly across. Bats have been seen wandering by day far over the Atlantic Ocean; and two North American species either regularly or occasionally visit Bermuda, at the distance of 600 miles from the mainland. I hear from Mr. Tomes, who has specially studied this family, that many of the same species have enormous ranges, and are found on continents and on far distant islands. Hence we have only to suppose that such wandering species have been modified through natural selection in their new homes in relation to their new position, and we can understand the presence of endemic bats on islands, with the absence of all terrestrial mammals.

Mammals provide another similar example. I have thoroughly researched the oldest voyages, but I’m still ongoing with my search; so far, I have not found a single clear case of a land mammal (excluding domesticated animals kept by locals) living on an island that is over 300 miles from a continent or large continental island. Additionally, many islands that are much closer are just as barren. The Falkland Islands, which are home to a wolf-like fox, come closest to an exception; however, this group can't be regarded as truly oceanic since it sits on a bank linked to the mainland. Furthermore, icebergs used to carry boulders to its western shores, and they may have previously transported foxes, as often happens in Arctic regions today. Still, we can't say that small islands can’t support small mammals, since small mammals do exist in many places worldwide on tiny islands, provided they are near a continent; and hardly any island can be named where our smaller quadrupeds haven’t adapted and multiplied significantly. On the traditional view of creation, we can't argue that there hasn't been enough time for the emergence of mammals; many volcanic islands are old enough, as evidenced by the significant erosion they've experienced and their tertiary layers. There has also been enough time for unique species from other groups to develop; and on continents, it's believed that mammals appear and disappear faster than other, less complex animals. While land mammals are absent on oceanic islands, flying mammals are found on almost every island. New Zealand has two bat species that aren’t found anywhere else. Norfolk Island, the Viti Archipelago, the Bonin Islands, the Caroline and Marianne Archipelagos, and Mauritius all have their own unique bats. One might wonder why the supposed creative force produced bats and no other mammals on remote islands. In my opinion, this question has an easy answer: no land mammal can be carried across vast stretches of ocean, but bats can fly over them. Bats have been observed wandering during the day far over the Atlantic Ocean; and two North American species either regularly or occasionally visit Bermuda, which is 600 miles from the mainland. I hear from Mr. Tomes, who has specifically studied this family, that many of the same species have huge ranges and are found on both continents and far-off islands. Thus, we just need to assume that these wandering species have been modified through natural selection in their new environments based on their new locations, which helps explain the presence of unique bats on islands and the lack of all land mammals.

Besides the absence of terrestrial mammals in relation to the remoteness of islands from continents, there is also a relation, to a certain extent independent of distance, between the depth of the sea separating an island from the neighbouring mainland, and the presence in both of the same mammiferous species or of allied species in a more or less modified condition. Mr. Windsor Earl has made some striking observations on this head in regard to the great Malay Archipelago, which is traversed near Celebes by a space of deep ocean; and this space separates two widely distinct mammalian faunas. On either side the islands are situated on moderately deep submarine banks, and they are inhabited by closely allied or identical quadrupeds. No doubt some few anomalies occur in this great archipelago, and there is much difficulty in forming a judgment in some cases owing to the probable naturalisation of certain mammals through man’s agency; but we shall soon have much light thrown on the natural history of this archipelago by the admirable zeal and researches of Mr. Wallace. I have not as yet had time to follow up this subject in all other quarters of the world; but as far as I have gone, the relation generally holds good. We see Britain separated by a shallow channel from Europe, and the mammals are the same on both sides; we meet with analogous facts on many islands separated by similar channels from Australia. The West Indian Islands stand on a deeply submerged bank, nearly 1000 fathoms in depth, and here we find American forms, but the species and even the genera are distinct. As the amount of modification in all cases depends to a certain degree on the lapse of time, and as during changes of level it is obvious that islands separated by shallow channels are more likely to have been continuously united within a recent period to the mainland than islands separated by deeper channels, we can understand the frequent relation between the depth of the sea and the degree of affinity of the mammalian inhabitants of islands with those of a neighbouring continent,—an inexplicable relation on the view of independent acts of creation.

Besides the lack of land mammals in relation to how far islands are from continents, there is also a connection—somewhat independent of distance—between the depth of the sea separating an island from the nearby mainland and the presence of the same mammal species or similar species in varying degrees of adaptation on both sides. Mr. Windsor Earl has made some notable observations on this regarding the vast Malay Archipelago, which is cut through by a deep ocean near Celebes; this gap separates two very different mammal populations. The islands on either side are located on moderately deep underwater banks, and they are home to similar or identical four-legged animals. There are certainly a few exceptions in this large archipelago, and it’s difficult to form a clear judgment in some cases due to the possible introduction of certain mammals by humans; however, we will soon gain considerable insights into the natural history of this archipelago thanks to the excellent dedication and research of Mr. Wallace. I haven't yet had the opportunity to study this topic in other parts of the world, but as far as I've explored, the relationship generally holds true. We see Britain separated by a shallow channel from Europe, and the mammals are the same on both sides; we observe similar facts on many islands separated by comparable channels from Australia. The West Indian Islands sit on a deeply submerged bank, nearly 1000 fathoms deep, and here we encounter American forms, but the species and even the genera are different. Since the extent of modification in all cases depends to a certain degree on the passage of time, and since during changes in sea level it’s clear that islands separated by shallow channels are more likely to have been recently connected to the mainland than those separated by deeper channels, we can understand the frequent connection between sea depth and the degree of relatedness of the mammalian inhabitants of islands with those of a neighboring continent—an inexplicable connection if considered purely as independent acts of creation.

All the foregoing remarks on the inhabitants of oceanic islands,—namely, the scarcity of kinds—the richness in endemic forms in particular classes or sections of classes,—the absence of whole groups, as of batrachians, and of terrestrial mammals notwithstanding the presence of ærial bats,—the singular proportions of certain orders of plants,—herbaceous forms having been developed into trees, etc.,—seem to me to accord better with the view of occasional means of transport having been largely efficient in the long course of time, than with the view of all our oceanic islands having been formerly connected by continuous land with the nearest continent; for on this latter view the migration would probably have been more complete; and if modification be admitted, all the forms of life would have been more equally modified, in accordance with the paramount importance of the relation of organism to organism.

All the previous comments about the inhabitants of oceanic islands—specifically, the limited variety of species, the abundance of unique forms in certain classes or sections, the absence of entire groups like amphibians and land mammals despite the presence of flying bats, the unusual proportions of certain plant orders, and the evolution of herbaceous plants into trees—seem to support the idea that occasional means of transport have played a significant role over a long period of time. This perspective is more plausible than the idea that all our oceanic islands were once connected by continuous land to the nearest continent. If that were the case, migration would likely have been more complete, and if we accept the idea of modification, all forms of life would have been more uniformly modified, reflecting the crucial relationship between different organisms.

I do not deny that there are many and grave difficulties in understanding how several of the inhabitants of the more remote islands, whether still retaining the same specific form or modified since their arrival, could have reached their present homes. But the probability of many islands having existed as halting-places, of which not a wreck now remains, must not be overlooked. I will here give a single instance of one of the cases of difficulty. Almost all oceanic islands, even the most isolated and smallest, are inhabited by land-shells, generally by endemic species, but sometimes by species found elsewhere. Dr. Aug. A. Gould has given several interesting cases in regard to the land-shells of the islands of the Pacific. Now it is notorious that land-shells are very easily killed by salt; their eggs, at least such as I have tried, sink in sea-water and are killed by it. Yet there must be, on my view, some unknown, but highly efficient means for their transportal. Would the just-hatched young occasionally crawl on and adhere to the feet of birds roosting on the ground, and thus get transported? It occurred to me that land-shells, when hybernating and having a membranous diaphragm over the mouth of the shell, might be floated in chinks of drifted timber across moderately wide arms of the sea. And I found that several species did in this state withstand uninjured an immersion in sea-water during seven days: one of these shells was the Helix pomatia, and after it had again hybernated I put it in sea-water for twenty days, and it perfectly recovered. As this species has a thick calcareous operculum, I removed it, and when it had formed a new membranous one, I immersed it for fourteen days in sea-water, and it recovered and crawled away: but more experiments are wanted on this head.

I don't deny that there are many significant challenges in understanding how some of the inhabitants of the more remote islands, whether they still maintain the same specific form or have changed since arriving, could have reached their current homes. However, we shouldn't overlook the possibility that many islands served as stopovers, of which no traces remain today. Let me provide just one example of a difficult case. Almost all oceanic islands, even the most isolated and smallest, are home to land snails, usually endemic species, but sometimes species found elsewhere. Dr. Aug. A. Gould has presented several interesting cases regarding the land snails of the Pacific islands. It's well known that land snails are easily harmed by salt; the eggs I’ve tested sink in seawater and perish. Still, in my view, there must be some unknown but effective means of transport for them. Could it be that the newly hatched young occasionally crawl onto the feet of birds resting on the ground and get carried away? I considered that land snails, while hibernating and having a membranous cover over the shell opening, could be carried in cracks of driftwood across moderately wide stretches of sea. I found that several species in this state could survive being immersed in seawater for seven days: one of these was the Helix pomatia, and after it hibernated again, I placed it in seawater for twenty days, and it recovered fully. Since this species has a thick calcareous lid, I removed it, and when it formed a new membranous lid, I soaked it in seawater for fourteen days, and it recovered and crawled away: but more experiments are needed on this topic.

The most striking and important fact for us in regard to the inhabitants of islands, is their affinity to those of the nearest mainland, without being actually the same species. Numerous instances could be given of this fact. I will give only one, that of the Galapagos Archipelago, situated under the equator, between 500 and 600 miles from the shores of South America. Here almost every product of the land and water bears the unmistakeable stamp of the American continent. There are twenty-six land birds, and twenty-five of these are ranked by Mr. Gould as distinct species, supposed to have been created here; yet the close affinity of most of these birds to American species in every character, in their habits, gestures, and tones of voice, was manifest. So it is with the other animals, and with nearly all the plants, as shown by Dr. Hooker in his admirable memoir on the Flora of this archipelago. The naturalist, looking at the inhabitants of these volcanic islands in the Pacific, distant several hundred miles from the continent, yet feels that he is standing on American land. Why should this be so? why should the species which are supposed to have been created in the Galapagos Archipelago, and nowhere else, bear so plain a stamp of affinity to those created in America? There is nothing in the conditions of life, in the geological nature of the islands, in their height or climate, or in the proportions in which the several classes are associated together, which resembles closely the conditions of the South American coast: in fact there is a considerable dissimilarity in all these respects. On the other hand, there is a considerable degree of resemblance in the volcanic nature of the soil, in climate, height, and size of the islands, between the Galapagos and Cape de Verde Archipelagos: but what an entire and absolute difference in their inhabitants! The inhabitants of the Cape de Verde Islands are related to those of Africa, like those of the Galapagos to America. I believe this grand fact can receive no sort of explanation on the ordinary view of independent creation; whereas on the view here maintained, it is obvious that the Galapagos Islands would be likely to receive colonists, whether by occasional means of transport or by formerly continuous land, from America; and the Cape de Verde Islands from Africa; and that such colonists would be liable to modification;—the principle of inheritance still betraying their original birthplace.

The most striking and significant fact for us regarding the inhabitants of islands is their connection to those of the nearest mainland, even though they're not exactly the same species. Many examples could illustrate this point. I’ll mention just one, the Galapagos Archipelago, located at the equator, about 500 to 600 miles from the shores of South America. Here, almost every land and water product clearly reflects the characteristics of the American continent. There are twenty-six land birds, and twenty-five of these are categorized by Mr. Gould as distinct species, thought to have originated here; however, the close relationship of most of these birds to American species in their behaviors, postures, and calls is evident. The same is true for other animals and nearly all plants, as shown by Dr. Hooker in his excellent memoir on the Flora of this archipelago. The naturalist, observing the residents of these volcanic islands in the Pacific, hundreds of miles away from the continent, still feels like he is standing on American soil. Why is this the case? Why do the species thought to have emerged in the Galapagos Archipelago, and nowhere else, show such a clear resemblance to those from America? There’s nothing about the living conditions, the geological makeup of the islands, their elevation, climate, or the proportions of the various classes that closely resemble the conditions of the South American coast: in fact, there is a significant dissimilarity in all these aspects. Conversely, there is a notable similarity in the volcanic nature of the soil, as well as in climate, elevation, and size of the islands, between the Galapagos and Cape Verde Archipelagos. But there is a complete and absolute difference in their inhabitants! The residents of the Cape Verde Islands are related to those of Africa, just as those of the Galapagos are to America. I believe this fundamental fact cannot be explained by the conventional view of independent creation; whereas, from the perspective I’m presenting, it’s clear that the Galapagos Islands would likely have received colonists, either through occasional means of transport or by previously continuous land, from America; while the Cape Verde Islands would have received theirs from Africa. These colonists would be subject to change, with the principle of inheritance still revealing their original homeland.

Many analogous facts could be given: indeed it is an almost universal rule that the endemic productions of islands are related to those of the nearest continent, or of other near islands. The exceptions are few, and most of them can be explained. Thus the plants of Kerguelen Land, though standing nearer to Africa than to America, are related, and that very closely, as we know from Dr. Hooker’s account, to those of America: but on the view that this island has been mainly stocked by seeds brought with earth and stones on icebergs, drifted by the prevailing currents, this anomaly disappears. New Zealand in its endemic plants is much more closely related to Australia, the nearest mainland, than to any other region: and this is what might have been expected; but it is also plainly related to South America, which, although the next nearest continent, is so enormously remote, that the fact becomes an anomaly. But this difficulty almost disappears on the view that both New Zealand, South America, and other southern lands were long ago partially stocked from a nearly intermediate though distant point, namely from the antarctic islands, when they were clothed with vegetation, before the commencement of the Glacial period. The affinity, which, though feeble, I am assured by Dr. Hooker is real, between the flora of the south-western corner of Australia and of the Cape of Good Hope, is a far more remarkable case, and is at present inexplicable: but this affinity is confined to the plants, and will, I do not doubt, be some day explained.

Many similar facts could be mentioned: in fact, it's almost a universal rule that the native species of islands are connected to those of the nearest continent or other nearby islands. The exceptions are rare, and most can be explained. For instance, the plants of Kerguelen Land, although closer to Africa than to America, are very closely related to those of America, as noted in Dr. Hooker’s account. This oddity makes sense if we consider that this island was mainly populated by seeds transported with earth and stones on icebergs carried by the prevailing currents. New Zealand's native plants are much more closely related to Australia, the nearest mainland, than to any other region, which aligns with expectations. However, it also shows a clear connection to South America, which, despite being the next nearest continent, is so far away that it seems unusual. This issue mostly fades away if we think that both New Zealand, South America, and other southern lands were partially populated long ago from a nearly intermediate but distant point, namely the Antarctic islands, when they were covered in vegetation before the onset of the Glacial period. The connection, though weak, is something Dr. Hooker assures me is real between the flora of the southwestern corner of Australia and that of the Cape of Good Hope. This is a much more remarkable case and is currently unexplained, but this connection is limited to the plants, and I have no doubt it will eventually be understood.

The law which causes the inhabitants of an archipelago, though specifically distinct, to be closely allied to those of the nearest continent, we sometimes see displayed on a small scale, yet in a most interesting manner, within the limits of the same archipelago. Thus the several islands of the Galapagos Archipelago are tenanted, as I have elsewhere shown, in a quite marvellous manner, by very closely related species; so that the inhabitants of each separate island, though mostly distinct, are related in an incomparably closer degree to each other than to the inhabitants of any other part of the world. And this is just what might have been expected on my view, for the islands are situated so near each other that they would almost certainly receive immigrants from the same original source, or from each other. But this dissimilarity between the endemic inhabitants of the islands may be used as an argument against my views; for it may be asked, how has it happened in the several islands situated within sight of each other, having the same geological nature, the same height, climate, etc., that many of the immigrants should have been differently modified, though only in a small degree. This long appeared to me a great difficulty: but it arises in chief part from the deeply-seated error of considering the physical conditions of a country as the most important for its inhabitants; whereas it cannot, I think, be disputed that the nature of the other inhabitants, with which each has to compete, is at least as important, and generally a far more important element of success. Now if we look to those inhabitants of the Galapagos Archipelago which are found in other parts of the world (laying on one side for the moment the endemic species, which cannot be here fairly included, as we are considering how they have come to be modified since their arrival), we find a considerable amount of difference in the several islands. This difference might indeed have been expected on the view of the islands having been stocked by occasional means of transport—a seed, for instance, of one plant having been brought to one island, and that of another plant to another island. Hence when in former times an immigrant settled on any one or more of the islands, or when it subsequently spread from one island to another, it would undoubtedly be exposed to different conditions of life in the different islands, for it would have to compete with different sets of organisms: a plant, for instance, would find the best-fitted ground more perfectly occupied by distinct plants in one island than in another, and it would be exposed to the attacks of somewhat different enemies. If then it varied, natural selection would probably favour different varieties in the different islands. Some species, however, might spread and yet retain the same character throughout the group, just as we see on continents some species spreading widely and remaining the same.

The law that connects the inhabitants of an archipelago, despite their specific differences, to those of the nearest continent can sometimes be observed on a smaller scale within the same archipelago in a fascinating way. For example, the various islands of the Galapagos Archipelago are inhabited, as I have previously shown, by very closely related species. This means that the inhabitants of each island, while mostly unique, are much more closely related to each other than to those from anywhere else in the world. This is exactly what I would expect, because the islands are so close together that they likely receive immigrants from the same original source or from one another. However, the differences among the unique inhabitants of the islands can be used to challenge my views. One might wonder why, on islands that are visible to each other and have the same geological features, height, climate, etc., many of the immigrants have been modified differently, even if only slightly. This has long seemed like a significant issue to me, but it mainly stems from the flawed belief that the physical conditions of a place are the most important factors for its inhabitants. I believe it’s clear that the nature of the other inhabitants they compete with is at least equally important and often a much more critical factor for success. If we consider those inhabitants of the Galapagos Archipelago that can also be found in other parts of the world (setting aside the unique species for now, as they cannot be fairly included since we're looking at how they've changed since arriving), we notice a considerable amount of variation among the islands. This variation might be anticipated given that the islands were populated through occasional means of transport—like a seed of one plant reaching one island while a different seed reaches another. So, when an immigrant settled on one or more of the islands or later spread from one island to another, it would certainly face different life conditions on each island, competing with different groups of organisms. For instance, a plant might find that the most suitable land is fully occupied by different plants on one island compared to another, and it would face somewhat varied threats. If it then adapted, natural selection would likely favor different varieties on different islands. Nonetheless, some species might spread while still maintaining the same characteristics throughout the group, just as we see with some species on continents that spread widely and remain unchanged.

The really surprising fact in this case of the Galapagos Archipelago, and in a lesser degree in some analogous instances, is that the new species formed in the separate islands have not quickly spread to the other islands. But the islands, though in sight of each other, are separated by deep arms of the sea, in most cases wider than the British Channel, and there is no reason to suppose that they have at any former period been continuously united. The currents of the sea are rapid and sweep across the archipelago, and gales of wind are extraordinarily rare; so that the islands are far more effectually separated from each other than they appear to be on a map. Nevertheless a good many species, both those found in other parts of the world and those confined to the archipelago, are common to the several islands, and we may infer from certain facts that these have probably spread from some one island to the others. But we often take, I think, an erroneous view of the probability of closely allied species invading each other’s territory, when put into free intercommunication. Undoubtedly if one species has any advantage whatever over another, it will in a very brief time wholly or in part supplant it; but if both are equally well fitted for their own places in nature, both probably will hold their own places and keep separate for almost any length of time. Being familiar with the fact that many species, naturalised through man’s agency, have spread with astonishing rapidity over new countries, we are apt to infer that most species would thus spread; but we should remember that the forms which become naturalised in new countries are not generally closely allied to the aboriginal inhabitants, but are very distinct species, belonging in a large proportion of cases, as shown by Alph. de Candolle, to distinct genera. In the Galapagos Archipelago, many even of the birds, though so well adapted for flying from island to island, are distinct on each; thus there are three closely-allied species of mocking-thrush, each confined to its own island. Now let us suppose the mocking-thrush of Chatham Island to be blown to Charles Island, which has its own mocking-thrush: why should it succeed in establishing itself there? We may safely infer that Charles Island is well stocked with its own species, for annually more eggs are laid there than can possibly be reared; and we may infer that the mocking-thrush peculiar to Charles Island is at least as well fitted for its home as is the species peculiar to Chatham Island. Sir C. Lyell and Mr. Wollaston have communicated to me a remarkable fact bearing on this subject; namely, that Madeira and the adjoining islet of Porto Santo possess many distinct but representative land-shells, some of which live in crevices of stone; and although large quantities of stone are annually transported from Porto Santo to Madeira, yet this latter island has not become colonised by the Porto Santo species: nevertheless both islands have been colonised by some European land-shells, which no doubt had some advantage over the indigenous species. From these considerations I think we need not greatly marvel at the endemic and representative species, which inhabit the several islands of the Galapagos Archipelago, not having universally spread from island to island. In many other instances, as in the several districts of the same continent, pre-occupation has probably played an important part in checking the commingling of species under the same conditions of life. Thus, the south-east and south-west corners of Australia have nearly the same physical conditions, and are united by continuous land, yet they are inhabited by a vast number of distinct mammals, birds, and plants.

The surprising thing about the Galapagos Archipelago, and to a lesser extent in some similar cases, is that new species formed on different islands haven’t spread quickly to the other islands. Although the islands are visible to each other, they are separated by deep stretches of ocean, often wider than the English Channel, and there’s no reason to believe they were ever continuously connected. The ocean currents are swift and sweep across the archipelago, and strong winds are incredibly rare; therefore, the islands are actually much more isolated from each other than they seem on a map. Still, quite a few species, both those found elsewhere and those that are unique to the archipelago, are common across the different islands, and we can infer from certain facts that these species probably spread from one island to another. However, I think we often misjudge the likelihood of closely related species invading each other’s territories when they’re connected. If one species has any advantage over another, it will almost immediately take over; but if both are equally suited to their environments, they will likely maintain their distinct territories for a long time. Knowing that many species introduced by humans have spread remarkably fast in new countries, we tend to assume that most species would do the same; but we must remember that the species that become established in new regions are usually not closely related to the original inhabitants and are often quite different species, many times belonging to entirely different genera, as demonstrated by Alph. de Candolle. In the Galapagos Archipelago, many birds, even though they’re well adapted for flying between islands, are distinct on each one; for instance, there are three closely related species of mocking-thrush, each found only on its own island. Now, let’s say the mocking-thrush from Chatham Island gets blown to Charles Island, which has its own mocking-thrush: why would it succeed in settling there? We can reasonably guess that Charles Island is well populated with its own species, as it lays more eggs each year than can possibly survive; and we can assume that the mocking-thrush native to Charles Island is just as well adapted to its environment as the species unique to Chatham Island. Sir C. Lyell and Mr. Wollaston shared a fascinating fact with me regarding this topic: Madeira and the nearby island of Porto Santo have many distinct yet representative land snails, some of which live in stone crevices; and although large amounts of stone are shipped annually from Porto Santo to Madeira, the latter has not been colonized by Porto Santo species. Still, both islands have been populated by some European land snails, which likely had some advantages over the native species. From these insights, I think we don’t need to be overly surprised that the endemic and representative species residing on the different islands of the Galapagos Archipelago haven't universally spread from one island to another. In many other cases, such as various regions of the same continent, prior occupation has probably played a significant role in preventing the mingling of species under similar living conditions. For example, the southeast and southwest corners of Australia have nearly identical physical conditions and are connected by land, yet they are home to a vast number of distinct mammals, birds, and plants.

The principle which determines the general character of the fauna and flora of oceanic islands, namely, that the inhabitants, when not identically the same, yet are plainly related to the inhabitants of that region whence colonists could most readily have been derived,—the colonists having been subsequently modified and better fitted to their new homes,—is of the widest application throughout nature. We see this on every mountain, in every lake and marsh. For Alpine species, excepting in so far as the same forms, chiefly of plants, have spread widely throughout the world during the recent Glacial epoch, are related to those of the surrounding lowlands;—thus we have in South America, Alpine humming-birds, Alpine rodents, Alpine plants, etc., all of strictly American forms, and it is obvious that a mountain, as it became slowly upheaved, would naturally be colonised from the surrounding lowlands. So it is with the inhabitants of lakes and marshes, excepting in so far as great facility of transport has given the same general forms to the whole world. We see this same principle in the blind animals inhabiting the caves of America and of Europe. Other analogous facts could be given. And it will, I believe, be universally found to be true, that wherever in two regions, let them be ever so distant, many closely allied or representative species occur, there will likewise be found some identical species, showing, in accordance with the foregoing view, that at some former period there has been intercommunication or migration between the two regions. And wherever many closely-allied species occur, there will be found many forms which some naturalists rank as distinct species, and some as varieties; these doubtful forms showing us the steps in the process of modification.

The principle that shapes the overall character of the plants and animals on oceanic islands is that, while the inhabitants might not be exactly the same, they are clearly related to the species from the areas where colonists could have easily originated. These colonists were later adapted and improved for their new environments. This principle applies widely throughout nature. We see it on every mountain and in every lake and wetland. Alpine species, except for those plants that have spread broadly around the world during the recent Ice Age, are related to those found in the surrounding lowlands. For example, in South America, we have Alpine hummingbirds, Alpine rodents, Alpine plants, etc., all of which are distinctly American species. It's clear that as a mountain slowly rose, it would naturally be colonized by species from the nearby lowlands. The same goes for the creatures in lakes and marshes, except where ease of transport has given similar forms to species globally. We observe this principle in the blind animals that live in caves in America and Europe. There are many similar examples. I believe it will generally be found true that wherever two regions, even if they are far apart, have many closely related or representative species, there will also be some identical species. This supports the idea that at some point, there was communication or migration between the two regions. Furthermore, wherever there are many closely related species, there will be many forms that some naturalists classify as distinct species and others as varieties. These uncertain forms illustrate the steps involved in the process of adaptation.

This relation between the power and extent of migration of a species, either at the present time or at some former period under different physical conditions, and the existence at remote points of the world of other species allied to it, is shown in another and more general way. Mr. Gould remarked to me long ago, that in those genera of birds which range over the world, many of the species have very wide ranges. I can hardly doubt that this rule is generally true, though it would be difficult to prove it. Amongst mammals, we see it strikingly displayed in Bats, and in a lesser degree in the Felidæ and Canidæ. We see it, if we compare the distribution of butterflies and beetles. So it is with most fresh-water productions, in which so many genera range over the world, and many individual species have enormous ranges. It is not meant that in world-ranging genera all the species have a wide range, or even that they have on an average a wide range; but only that some of the species range very widely; for the facility with which widely-ranging species vary and give rise to new forms will largely determine their average range. For instance, two varieties of the same species inhabit America and Europe, and the species thus has an immense range; but, if the variation had been a little greater, the two varieties would have been ranked as distinct species, and the common range would have been greatly reduced. Still less is it meant, that a species which apparently has the capacity of crossing barriers and ranging widely, as in the case of certain powerfully-winged birds, will necessarily range widely; for we should never forget that to range widely implies not only the power of crossing barriers, but the more important power of being victorious in distant lands in the struggle for life with foreign associates. But on the view of all the species of a genus having descended from a single parent, though now distributed to the most remote points of the world, we ought to find, and I believe as a general rule we do find, that some at least of the species range very widely; for it is necessary that the unmodified parent should range widely, undergoing modification during its diffusion, and should place itself under diverse conditions favourable for the conversion of its offspring, firstly into new varieties and ultimately into new species.

The connection between the power and extent of a species' migration, whether in the present or at some earlier time under different physical conditions, and the existence of related species in distant parts of the world is demonstrated in another, more general way. Mr. Gould mentioned to me a while back that in those bird genera that span the globe, many species have very wide ranges. I can hardly doubt that this rule generally holds true, though it would be tough to prove. Among mammals, we see this particularly in bats, and to a lesser extent in the Felidae and Canidae families. This is evident when we compare the distribution of butterflies and beetles. The same applies to most freshwater organisms, where many genera are found worldwide, and several individual species have huge ranges. It's not to say that in all globally-ranging genera all species have a wide range, or even that they have a wide range on average; it just means that some species cover significant distances; the ease with which widely-ranging species can vary and create new forms largely influences their average range. For example, two variations of the same species inhabit both America and Europe, giving that species a vast range; however, if the variation had been slightly greater, the two varieties might have been classified as distinct species, significantly shrinking their common range. Even less is it to imply that a species that seems capable of crossing barriers and ranging widely, like certain strong-flying birds, will definitely have a wide range; we must remember that ranging widely means not just the ability to cross barriers, but more crucially, the ability to succeed in distant lands amid competition with other species. Following the idea that all species within a genus have descended from a single ancestor, even though these species are now found in the most remote areas of the world, we should find—and I believe, as a general rule, we do find—that at least some of the species have very wide ranges; this is essential because the unmodified parent must have a wide range, experiencing modifications as it spreads, and must place itself in diverse conditions that favor the development of its offspring, first into new varieties and ultimately into new species.

In considering the wide distribution of certain genera, we should bear in mind that some are extremely ancient, and must have branched off from a common parent at a remote epoch; so that in such cases there will have been ample time for great climatal and geographical changes and for accidents of transport; and consequently for the migration of some of the species into all quarters of the world, where they may have become slightly modified in relation to their new conditions. There is, also, some reason to believe from geological evidence that organisms low in the scale within each great class, generally change at a slower rate than the higher forms; and consequently the lower forms will have had a better chance of ranging widely and of still retaining the same specific character. This fact, together with the seeds and eggs of many low forms being very minute and better fitted for distant transportation, probably accounts for a law which has long been observed, and which has lately been admirably discussed by Alph. de Candolle in regard to plants, namely, that the lower any group of organisms is, the more widely it is apt to range.

When we think about the wide distribution of certain genera, we should remember that some are really ancient and must have split from a common ancestor a long time ago. This means there has been plenty of time for significant climate and geographical changes, as well as transportation accidents, which would allow some species to migrate to all parts of the world, where they may have slightly adapted to their new environments. There's also some geological evidence suggesting that organisms lower in the classification tend to change at a slower pace than the higher forms; therefore, the lower forms have had a better chance to spread widely while still keeping their specific characteristics. This observation, along with the fact that many low forms have small seeds and eggs better suited for long-distance transport, likely explains a long-noted law that has recently been well examined by Alph. de Candolle regarding plants: that the lower a group of organisms is, the more widely it tends to spread.

The relations just discussed,—namely, low and slowly-changing organisms ranging more widely than the high,—some of the species of widely-ranging genera themselves ranging widely,—such facts, as alpine, lacustrine, and marsh productions being related (with the exceptions before specified) to those on the surrounding low lands and dry lands, though these stations are so different—the very close relation of the distinct species which inhabit the islets of the same archipelago,—and especially the striking relation of the inhabitants of each whole archipelago or island to those of the nearest mainland,—are, I think, utterly inexplicable on the ordinary view of the independent creation of each species, but are explicable on the view of colonisation from the nearest and readiest source, together with the subsequent modification and better adaptation of the colonists to their new homes.

The relationships just mentioned—that low and slowly-changing organisms tend to cover a wider area than the more complex ones, and that some species from these widely-ranging genera also extend broadly—such facts as alpine, lake, and marsh species being related (with the exceptions noted earlier) to those in the surrounding lowlands and dry areas, despite these environments being so different; the very close connection between distinct species that inhabit the islets of the same archipelago; and especially the notable relationship between the inhabitants of each archipelago or island and those of the nearest mainland—are, I believe, completely unexplainable using the usual idea of each species being created independently, but they make sense when viewed as colonization from the closest and most accessible source, along with the subsequent modifications and adaptations of the colonists to their new environments.

Summary of last and present Chapters.—In these chapters I have endeavoured to show, that if we make due allowance for our ignorance of the full effects of all the changes of climate and of the level of the land, which have certainly occurred within the recent period, and of other similar changes which may have occurred within the same period; if we remember how profoundly ignorant we are with respect to the many and curious means of occasional transport,—a subject which has hardly ever been properly experimentised on; if we bear in mind how often a species may have ranged continuously over a wide area, and then have become extinct in the intermediate tracts, I think the difficulties in believing that all the individuals of the same species, wherever located, have descended from the same parents, are not insuperable. And we are led to this conclusion, which has been arrived at by many naturalists under the designation of single centres of creation, by some general considerations, more especially from the importance of barriers and from the analogical distribution of sub-genera, genera, and families.

Summary of Last and Present Chapters.—In these chapters, I have tried to show that if we take into account our lack of understanding regarding the full effects of all the changes in climate and land levels that have definitely happened recently, as well as other similar changes that might have occurred in the same timeframe; if we remember how little we truly know about the various and fascinating means of occasional transport—a topic that has hardly been properly tested; and if we keep in mind how frequently a species could have spread continuously over a large area and then gone extinct in the areas in between, I think the challenges in believing that all individuals of the same species, wherever they are found, have descended from the same parents are not insurmountable. This leads us to a conclusion that many naturalists have reached, under the term single centres of creation, based on some general considerations, especially the importance of barriers and the analogous distribution of sub-genera, genera, and families.

With respect to the distinct species of the same genus, which on my theory must have spread from one parent-source; if we make the same allowances as before for our ignorance, and remember that some forms of life change most slowly, enormous periods of time being thus granted for their migration, I do not think that the difficulties are insuperable; though they often are in this case, and in that of the individuals of the same species, extremely grave.

Regarding the different species of the same genus, which, according to my theory, must have originated from a single source; if we consider our lack of knowledge and remember that some life forms evolve very slowly, allowing for vast amounts of time for their migration, I don’t believe the challenges are impossible to overcome. However, they often are in this situation, as well as with individuals of the same species, which can be quite serious.

As exemplifying the effects of climatal changes on distribution, I have attempted to show how important has been the influence of the modern Glacial period, which I am fully convinced simultaneously affected the whole world, or at least great meridional belts. As showing how diversified are the means of occasional transport, I have discussed at some little length the means of dispersal of fresh-water productions.

As an example of how climate change affects distribution, I’ve tried to demonstrate the significant impact of the current Ice Age, which I strongly believe has influenced the entire world, or at least large geographic areas. To illustrate the diverse methods of occasional transport, I’ve discussed at some length the ways freshwater species spread.

If the difficulties be not insuperable in admitting that in the long course of time the individuals of the same species, and likewise of allied species, have proceeded from some one source; then I think all the grand leading facts of geographical distribution are explicable on the theory of migration (generally of the more dominant forms of life), together with subsequent modification and the multiplication of new forms. We can thus understand the high importance of barriers, whether of land or water, which separate our several zoological and botanical provinces. We can thus understand the localisation of sub-genera, genera, and families; and how it is that under different latitudes, for instance in South America, the inhabitants of the plains and mountains, of the forests, marshes, and deserts, are in so mysterious a manner linked together by affinity, and are likewise linked to the extinct beings which formerly inhabited the same continent. Bearing in mind that the mutual relations of organism to organism are of the highest importance, we can see why two areas having nearly the same physical conditions should often be inhabited by very different forms of life; for according to the length of time which has elapsed since new inhabitants entered one region; according to the nature of the communication which allowed certain forms and not others to enter, either in greater or lesser numbers; according or not, as those which entered happened to come in more or less direct competition with each other and with the aborigines; and according as the immigrants were capable of varying more or less rapidly, there would ensue in different regions, independently of their physical conditions, infinitely diversified conditions of life,—there would be an almost endless amount of organic action and reaction,—and we should find, as we do find, some groups of beings greatly, and some only slightly modified,—some developed in great force, some existing in scanty numbers—in the different great geographical provinces of the world.

If we can accept that, over a long period of time, individuals of the same species and related species have originated from a single source, then I believe that all the major facts of geographical distribution can be explained by the theory of migration (usually of the more dominant life forms), along with subsequent changes and the creation of new forms. This allows us to appreciate the significant role of barriers, whether land or water, that separate our various zoological and botanical regions. It also helps us understand the organization of sub-genera, genera, and families; and how, in different latitudes—like in South America—the inhabitants of plains, mountains, forests, marshes, and deserts are curiously connected by similarities, and are also linked to the extinct species that once lived on the same continent. Considering that the relationships among different organisms are extremely important, we can see why two areas with nearly identical physical conditions can often be home to very different life forms. This difference depends on the length of time since new inhabitants arrived in one region, the nature of the connections that allowed certain species in but not others, whether those that entered were in direct competition with each other and the native species, and how quickly the newcomers were able to adapt. As a result, different regions would develop highly varied living conditions regardless of their physical environments. There would be endless organic interactions, leading us to observe, as we do, that some groups of organisms are significantly altered while others remain only slightly changed—some thrive in large numbers, while others exist in small populations—in the various major geographical areas of the world.

On these same principles, we can understand, as I have endeavoured to show, why oceanic islands should have few inhabitants, but of these a great number should be endemic or peculiar; and why, in relation to the means of migration, one group of beings, even within the same class, should have all its species endemic, and another group should have all its species common to other quarters of the world. We can see why whole groups of organisms, as batrachians and terrestrial mammals, should be absent from oceanic islands, whilst the most isolated islands possess their own peculiar species of ærial mammals or bats. We can see why there should be some relation between the presence of mammals, in a more or less modified condition, and the depth of the sea between an island and the mainland. We can clearly see why all the inhabitants of an archipelago, though specifically distinct on the several islets, should be closely related to each other, and likewise be related, but less closely, to those of the nearest continent or other source whence immigrants were probably derived. We can see why in two areas, however distant from each other, there should be a correlation, in the presence of identical species, of varieties, of doubtful species, and of distinct but representative species.

Based on these same principles, we can understand, as I've tried to explain, why oceanic islands tend to have few inhabitants, but a significant number of them are unique or endemic; and why, concerning the means of migration, one group of organisms, even within the same category, might have all its species endemic, while another group has all its species common to other parts of the world. We can see why entire groups of organisms, like amphibians and land mammals, are missing from oceanic islands, while the most isolated islands have their own unique species of flying mammals or bats. We can see the connection between the presence of mammals, in a more or less altered form, and the depth of the sea separating an island from the mainland. It’s clear why all the inhabitants of an archipelago, while specifically different on each separate island, should be closely related to one another, and also related, but less so, to those from the nearest continent or other sources where immigrants likely originated. We can understand why, in two regions, no matter how far apart they are, there should be a link in the presence of the same species, varieties, questionable species, and different but representative species.

As the late Edward Forbes often insisted, there is a striking parallelism in the laws of life throughout time and space: the laws governing the succession of forms in past times being nearly the same with those governing at the present time the differences in different areas. We see this in many facts. The endurance of each species and group of species is continuous in time; for the exceptions to the rule are so few, that they may fairly be attributed to our not having as yet discovered in an intermediate deposit the forms which are therein absent, but which occur above and below: so in space, it certainly is the general rule that the area inhabited by a single species, or by a group of species, is continuous; and the exceptions, which are not rare, may, as I have attempted to show, be accounted for by migration at some former period under different conditions or by occasional means of transport, and by the species having become extinct in the intermediate tracts. Both in time and space, species and groups of species have their points of maximum development. Groups of species, belonging either to a certain period of time, or to a certain area, are often characterised by trifling characters in common, as of sculpture or colour. In looking to the long succession of ages, as in now looking to distant provinces throughout the world, we find that some organisms differ little, whilst others belonging to a different class, or to a different order, or even only to a different family of the same order, differ greatly. In both time and space the lower members of each class generally change less than the higher; but there are in both cases marked exceptions to the rule. On my theory these several relations throughout time and space are intelligible; for whether we look to the forms of life which have changed during successive ages within the same quarter of the world, or to those which have changed after having migrated into distant quarters, in both cases the forms within each class have been connected by the same bond of ordinary generation; and the more nearly any two forms are related in blood, the nearer they will generally stand to each other in time and space; in both cases the laws of variation have been the same, and modifications have been accumulated by the same power of natural selection.

As the late Edward Forbes often emphasized, there’s a noticeable similarity in the laws of life across different times and places: the rules that governed the succession of species in the past are almost the same as those that govern the present, despite variations in different regions. This is evident in many instances. The existence of each species and group of species continues over time; the few exceptions to this rule can rightly be attributed to our lack of discovery of intermediate forms that are absent in a given layer but appear above and below it. Likewise, in terms of geography, it’s generally true that the area occupied by a single species or a group of species remains continuous, and the exceptions, though not uncommon, can usually be explained by migration in the past under different circumstances or by occasional means of movement, along with the extinction of species in areas in between. Throughout both time and space, species and groups of species show points of maximum development. Groups of species, either from a specific time period or an area, are often marked by subtle common features, like ornamentation or color. When considering the lengthy succession of ages, as well as looking at far-off regions across the globe, we find that some organisms barely differ, while others from a different class, order, or even a different family within the same order, can vary significantly. Generally, the lower members of each class tend to change less than the higher members, but there are notable exceptions in both instances. According to my theory, these various relationships across time and space make sense; whether we observe the life forms that have changed over successive ages within the same geographical area, or those that have evolved after migrating to distant regions, the forms within each class are linked through the same process of ordinary reproduction. The more closely related any two forms are genetically, the closer they tend to stand to each other in time and space; in both scenarios, the laws of variation remain consistent, and changes accumulate through the same force of natural selection.

CHAPTER XIII.
MUTUAL AFFINITIES OF ORGANIC BEINGS: MORPHOLOGY: EMBRYOLOGY: RUDIMENTARY ORGANS.

CLASSIFICATION, groups subordinate to groups. Natural system. Rules and difficulties in classification, explained on the theory of descent with modification. Classification of varieties. Descent always used in classification. Analogical or adaptive characters. Affinities, general, complex and radiating. Extinction separates and defines groups. MORPHOLOGY, between members of the same class, between parts of the same individual. EMBRYOLOGY, laws of, explained by variations not supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a corresponding age. RUDIMENTARY ORGANS; their origin explained. Summary.

CLASSIFICATION, groups that are subordinate to other groups. A natural system. Rules and challenges in classification are based on the theory of descent with modification. Classification of varieties. Descent is always a factor in classification. Analogical or adaptive traits. Affinities, both general and complex, and radiating. Extinction separates and defines groups. MORPHOLOGY, the relationships between members of the same class and between parts of the same individual. EMBRYOLOGY, the principles of which are explained by variations that do not occur at a young age but are inherited at a corresponding age. RUDIMENTARY ORGANS; their origins are explained. Summary.

From the first dawn of life, all organic beings are found to resemble each other in descending degrees, so that they can be classed in groups under groups. This classification is evidently not arbitrary like the grouping of the stars in constellations. The existence of groups would have been of simple signification, if one group had been exclusively fitted to inhabit the land, and another the water; one to feed on flesh, another on vegetable matter, and so on; but the case is widely different in nature; for it is notorious how commonly members of even the same subgroup have different habits. In our second and fourth chapters, on Variation and on Natural Selection, I have attempted to show that it is the widely ranging, the much diffused and common, that is the dominant species belonging to the larger genera, which vary most. The varieties, or incipient species, thus produced ultimately become converted, as I believe, into new and distinct species; and these, on the principle of inheritance, tend to produce other new and dominant species. Consequently the groups which are now large, and which generally include many dominant species, tend to go on increasing indefinitely in size. I further attempted to show that from the varying descendants of each species trying to occupy as many and as different places as possible in the economy of nature, there is a constant tendency in their characters to diverge. This conclusion was supported by looking at the great diversity of the forms of life which, in any small area, come into the closest competition, and by looking to certain facts in naturalisation.

From the very beginning of life, all living beings are seen to resemble each other in varying degrees, allowing them to be categorized into groups within groups. This classification is clearly not random like the way stars are grouped into constellations. The existence of groups would have a straightforward meaning if one group were strictly suited to live on land, and another in water; one to eat meat, another to eat plants, and so on; but the reality in nature is quite different. It is well-known that even members of the same subgroup often have different habits. In our second and fourth chapters, on Variation and Natural Selection, I have tried to show that it’s the widely distributed, common species, belonging to larger genera, that vary the most. The variations, or early forms of species, that result ultimately evolve, as I believe, into new and distinct species; and these, based on the principle of inheritance, tend to produce other new and dominant species. As a result, groups that are currently large and typically include many dominant species tend to continue increasing indefinitely in size. I also aimed to demonstrate that from the varying descendants of each species attempting to occupy as many different roles as possible in the natural world, there is a constant tendency for their characteristics to diverge. This conclusion was backed by observing the great diversity of life forms that compete closely in any small area and by examining certain facts in naturalization.

I attempted also to show that there is a constant tendency in the forms which are increasing in number and diverging in character, to supplant and exterminate the less divergent, the less improved, and preceding forms. I request the reader to turn to the diagram illustrating the action, as formerly explained, of these several principles; and he will see that the inevitable result is that the modified descendants proceeding from one progenitor become broken up into groups subordinate to groups. In the diagram each letter on the uppermost line may represent a genus including several species; and all the genera on this line form together one class, for all have descended from one ancient but unseen parent, and, consequently, have inherited something in common. But the three genera on the left hand have, on this same principle, much in common, and form a sub-family, distinct from that including the next two genera on the right hand, which diverged from a common parent at the fifth stage of descent. These five genera have also much, though less, in common; and they form a family distinct from that including the three genera still further to the right hand, which diverged at a still earlier period. And all these genera, descended from (A), form an order distinct from the genera descended from (I). So that we here have many species descended from a single progenitor grouped into genera; and the genera are included in, or subordinate to, sub-families, families, and orders, all united into one class. Thus, the grand fact in natural history of the subordination of group under group, which, from its familiarity, does not always sufficiently strike us, is in my judgment fully explained.

I also tried to show that there's a consistent trend where forms that are increasing in number and differing more tend to replace and eliminate those that are less diverse, less developed, and older. I ask the reader to look at the diagram that illustrates how these principles work, as explained earlier. They'll see that the inevitable outcome is that the modified descendants from one ancestor become divided into groups that are subordinate to other groups. In the diagram, each letter on the top line can represent a genus that includes several species; all the genera on this line together make one class, as they all descended from one ancient, unseen parent and have inherited something in common. The three genera on the left share a lot in common and make up a sub-family, which is distinct from the next two genera on the right that diverged from a common ancestor at the fifth stage of descent. These five genera also share much, though to a lesser extent, forming a family distinct from the three genera further to the right that diverged earlier. All these genera, descended from (A), form an order that is separate from the genera descended from (I). Therefore, we have many species that came from a single ancestor grouped into genera, and these genera are organized into sub-families, families, and orders, all part of one class. Thus, the significant fact in natural history about how groups are subordinate to one another, which we might overlook due to its familiarity, is fully explained in my view.

Naturalists try to arrange the species, genera, and families in each class, on what is called the Natural System. But what is meant by this system? Some authors look at it merely as a scheme for arranging together those living objects which are most alike, and for separating those which are most unlike; or as an artificial means for enunciating, as briefly as possible, general propositions,—that is, by one sentence to give the characters common, for instance, to all mammals, by another those common to all carnivora, by another those common to the dog-genus, and then by adding a single sentence, a full description is given of each kind of dog. The ingenuity and utility of this system are indisputable. But many naturalists think that something more is meant by the Natural System; they believe that it reveals the plan of the Creator; but unless it be specified whether order in time or space, or what else is meant by the plan of the Creator, it seems to me that nothing is thus added to our knowledge. Such expressions as that famous one of Linnæus, and which we often meet with in a more or less concealed form, that the characters do not make the genus, but that the genus gives the characters, seem to imply that something more is included in our classification, than mere resemblance. I believe that something more is included; and that propinquity of descent,—the only known cause of the similarity of organic beings,—is the bond, hidden as it is by various degrees of modification, which is partially revealed to us by our classifications.

Naturalists try to categorize species, genera, and families within each class using what is known as the Natural System. But what does this system really mean? Some authors see it simply as a way to group similar living things together and to distinguish those that are different; or as an artificial method to summarize general ideas in the briefest way possible—using one sentence to describe the common traits of all mammals, another for all carnivores, another for the dog genus, and then, with one more sentence, providing a complete description of each type of dog. The creativity and usefulness of this system are undeniable. However, many naturalists believe that the Natural System represents something deeper; they think it reveals the Creator's plan. But unless we clarify whether this plan refers to order in time, space, or something else, it seems to me that it doesn’t really add to our understanding. Phrases like the well-known saying from Linnæus, which we often encounter in various forms, that the characters do not define the genus, but that the genus defines the characters, suggest that our classification includes something beyond simple resemblance. I believe that there is indeed more involved; that the closeness of descent—the only known reason for the similarity of living beings—is the underlying connection, obscured by different levels of modification, which is partially revealed to us through our classifications.

Let us now consider the rules followed in classification, and the difficulties which are encountered on the view that classification either gives some unknown plan of creation, or is simply a scheme for enunciating general propositions and of placing together the forms most like each other. It might have been thought (and was in ancient times thought) that those parts of the structure which determined the habits of life, and the general place of each being in the economy of nature, would be of very high importance in classification. Nothing can be more false. No one regards the external similarity of a mouse to a shrew, of a dugong to a whale, of a whale to a fish, as of any importance. These resemblances, though so intimately connected with the whole life of the being, are ranked as merely “adaptive or analogical characters;” but to the consideration of these resemblances we shall have to recur. It may even be given as a general rule, that the less any part of the organisation is concerned with special habits, the more important it becomes for classification. As an instance: Owen, in speaking of the dugong, says, “The generative organs being those which are most remotely related to the habits and food of an animal, I have always regarded as affording very clear indications of its true affinities. We are least likely in the modifications of these organs to mistake a merely adaptive for an essential character.” So with plants, how remarkable it is that the organs of vegetation, on which their whole life depends, are of little signification, excepting in the first main divisions; whereas the organs of reproduction, with their product the seed, are of paramount importance!

Let’s now look at the rules used in classification and the challenges that arise from the idea that classification either reveals some unknown plan of creation or is just a way of stating general principles and grouping similar forms together. It might have been believed (and was thought in ancient times) that the structural features determining the habits of life and the overall role of each organism in nature would be very important for classification. Nothing could be further from the truth. No one thinks the external similarities between a mouse and a shrew, a dugong and a whale, or a whale and a fish are significant. These similarities, even though closely related to the entire life of the organism, are seen merely as "adaptive or analogical characters"; however, we will have to revisit these similarities. A general rule can even be stated: the less a part of the organism is related to specific habits, the more important it becomes for classification. For example, Owen, discussing the dugong, notes, "The generative organs, being those most indirectly connected to an animal's habits and diet, have always been regarded by me as providing very clear signs of its true relationships. We are least likely to confuse mere adaptive traits with essential characteristics in the changes of these organs." Similarly, with plants, it's striking that the vegetative organs, which are vital for their entire existence, hold little significance except in the primary divisions; while the organs of reproduction, and their product the seed, are extremely important!

We must not, therefore, in classifying, trust to resemblances in parts of the organisation, however important they may be for the welfare of the being in relation to the outer world. Perhaps from this cause it has partly arisen, that almost all naturalists lay the greatest stress on resemblances in organs of high vital or physiological importance. No doubt this view of the classificatory importance of organs which are important is generally, but by no means always, true. But their importance for classification, I believe, depends on their greater constancy throughout large groups of species; and this constancy depends on such organs having generally been subjected to less change in the adaptation of the species to their conditions of life. That the mere physiological importance of an organ does not determine its classificatory value, is almost shown by the one fact, that in allied groups, in which the same organ, as we have every reason to suppose, has nearly the same physiological value, its classificatory value is widely different. No naturalist can have worked at any group without being struck with this fact; and it has been most fully acknowledged in the writings of almost every author. It will suffice to quote the highest authority, Robert Brown, who in speaking of certain organs in the Proteaceæ, says their generic importance, “like that of all their parts, not only in this but, as I apprehend, in every natural family, is very unequal, and in some cases seems to be entirely lost.” Again in another work he says, the genera of the Connaraceæ “differ in having one or more ovaria, in the existence or absence of albumen, in the imbricate or valvular æstivation. Any one of these characters singly is frequently of more than generic importance, though here even when all taken together they appear insufficient to separate Cnestis from Connarus.” To give an example amongst insects, in one great division of the Hymenoptera, the antennæ, as Westwood has remarked, are most constant in structure; in another division they differ much, and the differences are of quite subordinate value in classification; yet no one probably will say that the antennæ in these two divisions of the same order are of unequal physiological importance. Any number of instances could be given of the varying importance for classification of the same important organ within the same group of beings.

We shouldn’t rely solely on similarities in the parts of an organism when classifying them, no matter how important they are for the organism’s interaction with the outside world. This might explain why many naturalists emphasize similarities in organs that are vital for survival. While it’s generally true that important organs are significant in classification, it is not always the case. Their classification significance seems to come from their greater stability across many species, which in turn relates to those organs generally undergoing less change as species adapt to their environments. The idea that an organ's physiological significance does not dictate its classification value is almost proven by the fact that in related groups, where we believe the same organ has similar physiological functions, its classification value can vary greatly. Any naturalist studying a group will notice this, and it's widely recognized in the writings of many authors. To illustrate, Robert Brown, a leading authority, noted that the importance of certain organs in the Proteaceae family is very unequal and can sometimes appear completely lost. In another work, he mentioned that the genera of the Connaraceae differ in having one or more ovaries, the presence or absence of albumen, and whether the arrangement is imbricate or valvular. Any one of these features can be more than just genera-level significant, yet even when considered together, they may not be enough to distinguish Cnestis from Connarus. For an example in insects, in one major group of Hymenoptera, as Westwood noted, the antennae are very consistent in structure; in another group, they show much variation, and those differences have less classification value. Still, it’s unlikely anyone would argue that the antennae in these two groups belong to the same order and are of unequal physiological importance. Numerous examples could be provided showing the varying classification value of the same important organ within one group of organisms.

Again, no one will say that rudimentary or atrophied organs are of high physiological or vital importance; yet, undoubtedly, organs in this condition are often of high value in classification. No one will dispute that the rudimentary teeth in the upper jaws of young ruminants, and certain rudimentary bones of the leg, are highly serviceable in exhibiting the close affinity between Ruminants and Pachyderms. Robert Brown has strongly insisted on the fact that the rudimentary florets are of the highest importance in the classification of the Grasses.

Again, no one would argue that basic or underdeveloped organs are of great physiological or vital significance; however, it's clear that organs in this state are often very useful for classification. No one will contest that the undeveloped teeth in the upper jaws of young ruminants, and certain rudimentary leg bones, play an important role in showing the close relationship between Ruminants and Pachyderms. Robert Brown has strongly emphasized that the rudimentary florets are crucial for classifying Grasses.

Numerous instances could be given of characters derived from parts which must be considered of very trifling physiological importance, but which are universally admitted as highly serviceable in the definition of whole groups. For instance, whether or not there is an open passage from the nostrils to the mouth, the only character, according to Owen, which absolutely distinguishes fishes and reptiles—the inflection of the angle of the jaws in Marsupials—the manner in which the wings of insects are folded—mere colour in certain Algæ—mere pubescence on parts of the flower in grasses—the nature of the dermal covering, as hair or feathers, in the Vertebrata. If the Ornithorhynchus had been covered with feathers instead of hair, this external and trifling character would, I think, have been considered by naturalists as important an aid in determining the degree of affinity of this strange creature to birds and reptiles, as an approach in structure in any one internal and important organ.

Many examples can be provided of features that come from areas considered to have very little physiological significance but are widely recognized as very useful in defining entire groups. For example, whether there is an open passage from the nostrils to the mouth, which is the only feature, according to Owen, that definitely separates fish and reptiles—the bending of the jaws in marsupials—the way insect wings are folded—just color in some algae—just hair on parts of flowers in grasses—the type of skin covering, whether hair or feathers, in vertebrates. If the platypus had been covered in feathers instead of hair, I believe this minor and trivial feature would have been seen by naturalists as a significant help in determining how closely related this unusual creature is to birds and reptiles, just as a similarity in structure of any major internal organ would be.

The importance, for classification, of trifling characters, mainly depends on their being correlated with several other characters of more or less importance. The value indeed of an aggregate of characters is very evident in natural history. Hence, as has often been remarked, a species may depart from its allies in several characters, both of high physiological importance and of almost universal prevalence, and yet leave us in no doubt where it should be ranked. Hence, also, it has been found, that a classification founded on any single character, however important that may be, has always failed; for no part of the organisation is universally constant. The importance of an aggregate of characters, even when none are important, alone explains, I think, that saying of Linnæus, that the characters do not give the genus, but the genus gives the characters; for this saying seems founded on an appreciation of many trifling points of resemblance, too slight to be defined. Certain plants, belonging to the Malpighiaceæ, bear perfect and degraded flowers; in the latter, as A. de Jussieu has remarked, “the greater number of the characters proper to the species, to the genus, to the family, to the class, disappear, and thus laugh at our classification.” But when Aspicarpa produced in France, during several years, only degraded flowers, departing so wonderfully in a number of the most important points of structure from the proper type of the order, yet M. Richard sagaciously saw, as Jussieu observes, that this genus should still be retained amongst the Malpighiaceæ. This case seems to me well to illustrate the spirit with which our classifications are sometimes necessarily founded.

The significance of minor characteristics for classification mainly relies on how they relate to various other traits of differing importance. The value of a collection of traits is quite clear in natural history. Thus, as has often been pointed out, a species can differ from its relatives in several traits, both of great physiological importance and of almost universal presence, and still leave us certain about where it belongs. Moreover, it has been found that a classification based on any single trait, no matter how significant, has always failed; no part of an organism is consistently constant. The importance of a collection of traits, even when none are particularly important on their own, explains the saying by Linnaeus that traits do not define the genus, but the genus defines the traits; this saying reflects an understanding of numerous minor similarities that are too subtle to be explicitly defined. Certain plants in the Malpighiaceae family have both perfect and degraded flowers; in the latter, as A. de Jussieu pointed out, “the majority of the traits specific to the species, genus, family, and class vanish, thus mocking our classification.” However, when Aspicarpa in France produced only degraded flowers for several years, deviating significantly in various crucial structural aspects from the true type of the order, M. Richard wisely noted, as Jussieu observed, that this genus should still be classified among the Malpighiaceae. This example, to me, clearly illustrates the spirit with which our classifications are sometimes necessarily established.

Practically when naturalists are at work, they do not trouble themselves about the physiological value of the characters which they use in defining a group, or in allocating any particular species. If they find a character nearly uniform, and common to a great number of forms, and not common to others, they use it as one of high value; if common to some lesser number, they use it as of subordinate value. This principle has been broadly confessed by some naturalists to be the true one; and by none more clearly than by that excellent botanist, Aug. St. Hilaire. If certain characters are always found correlated with others, though no apparent bond of connexion can be discovered between them, especial value is set on them. As in most groups of animals, important organs, such as those for propelling the blood, or for ærating it, or those for propagating the race, are found nearly uniform, they are considered as highly serviceable in classification; but in some groups of animals all these, the most important vital organs, are found to offer characters of quite subordinate value.

When naturalists are working, they usually don’t concern themselves with the physiological significance of the traits they use to define a group or classify a specific species. If they notice a trait that is almost uniform and found in many forms, but not in others, they consider it to be highly valuable; if it’s common to a smaller number of forms, it’s seen as less significant. Some naturalists have openly acknowledged this as the right approach, especially the skilled botanist, Aug. St. Hilaire. If certain traits consistently appear alongside others, even without a clear connection between them, they are given particular importance. In most animal groups, essential organs like those for circulating blood, oxygenating it, or reproducing are almost uniform, and thus they are deemed very useful for classification. However, in some animal groups, all these vital organs show traits that are considered much less important.

We can see why characters derived from the embryo should be of equal importance with those derived from the adult, for our classifications of course include all ages of each species. But it is by no means obvious, on the ordinary view, why the structure of the embryo should be more important for this purpose than that of the adult, which alone plays its full part in the economy of nature. Yet it has been strongly urged by those great naturalists, Milne Edwards and Agassiz, that embryonic characters are the most important of any in the classification of animals; and this doctrine has very generally been admitted as true. The same fact holds good with flowering plants, of which the two main divisions have been founded on characters derived from the embryo,—on the number and position of the embryonic leaves or cotyledons, and on the mode of development of the plumule and radicle. In our discussion on embryology, we shall see why such characters are so valuable, on the view of classification tacitly including the idea of descent.

We can see why traits that come from the embryo should be just as important as those from adults, since our classifications naturally include all ages of each species. However, it’s not immediately clear, based on the usual perspective, why the structure of the embryo should matter more than that of the adult, which fully contributes to the balance of nature. Still, prominent naturalists like Milne Edwards and Agassiz have strongly argued that embryonic traits are the most crucial for classifying animals; this idea has been widely accepted as true. The same is true for flowering plants, where the two main groups are based on characteristics derived from the embryo—specifically, the number and position of the embryonic leaves or cotyledons, and the way the plumule and radicle develop. In our discussion on embryology, we will explore why such traits are so significant, considering that classification inherently includes the concept of descent.

Our classifications are often plainly influenced by chains of affinities. Nothing can be easier than to define a number of characters common to all birds; but in the case of crustaceans, such definition has hitherto been found impossible. There are crustaceans at the opposite ends of the series, which have hardly a character in common; yet the species at both ends, from being plainly allied to others, and these to others, and so onwards, can be recognised as unequivocally belonging to this, and to no other class of the Articulata.

Our classifications are often clearly influenced by connections between similarities. It’s pretty easy to define a number of traits that all birds share; however, when it comes to crustaceans, such a definition has so far been impossible. There are crustaceans at opposite ends of the spectrum that hardly have anything in common; yet, the species at both ends can be recognized as clearly belonging to this class of the Articulata because they are obviously related to others, and those to more, and so on.

Geographical distribution has often been used, though perhaps not quite logically, in classification, more especially in very large groups of closely allied forms. Temminck insists on the utility or even necessity of this practice in certain groups of birds; and it has been followed by several entomologists and botanists.

Geographical distribution has often been used, although not always logically, in classification, especially in very large groups of closely related forms. Temminck emphasizes the usefulness or even necessity of this practice in certain groups of birds, and it has been adopted by various entomologists and botanists.

Finally, with respect to the comparative value of the various groups of species, such as orders, sub-orders, families, sub-families, and genera, they seem to be, at least at present, almost arbitrary. Several of the best botanists, such as Mr. Bentham and others, have strongly insisted on their arbitrary value. Instances could be given amongst plants and insects, of a group of forms, first ranked by practised naturalists as only a genus, and then raised to the rank of a sub-family or family; and this has been done, not because further research has detected important structural differences, at first overlooked, but because numerous allied species, with slightly different grades of difference, have been subsequently discovered.

Finally, regarding the comparative value of different groups of species, such as orders, sub-orders, families, sub-families, and genera, they seem to be, at least for now, mostly arbitrary. Several leading botanists, like Mr. Bentham and others, have strongly pointed out their arbitrary nature. There are examples among plants and insects where a group of forms was initially classified by experienced naturalists as just a genus, and later elevated to the status of a sub-family or family. This happened not because further research found significant structural differences that were missed before, but because many related species with slightly different variations were later discovered.

All the foregoing rules and aids and difficulties in classification are explained, if I do not greatly deceive myself, on the view that the natural system is founded on descent with modification; that the characters which naturalists consider as showing true affinity between any two or more species, are those which have been inherited from a common parent, and, in so far, all true classification is genealogical; that community of descent is the hidden bond which naturalists have been unconsciously seeking, and not some unknown plan of creation, or the enunciation of general propositions, and the mere putting together and separating objects more or less alike.

All the previous rules, tools, and challenges in classification are explained, if I'm not mistaken, based on the idea that the natural system is built on descent with modification. The traits that naturalists believe show a true connection between any two or more species are those inherited from a common ancestor. In this sense, all true classification is genealogical; the shared lineage is the unseen link that naturalists have been unknowingly searching for, rather than some mysterious design of creation or the expression of broad principles, along with simply grouping and separating objects that are somewhat similar.

But I must explain my meaning more fully. I believe that the arrangement of the groups within each class, in due subordination and relation to the other groups, must be strictly genealogical in order to be natural; but that the amount of difference in the several branches or groups, though allied in the same degree in blood to their common progenitor, may differ greatly, being due to the different degrees of modification which they have undergone; and this is expressed by the forms being ranked under different genera, families, sections, or orders. The reader will best understand what is meant, if he will take the trouble of referring to the diagram in the fourth chapter. We will suppose the letters A to L to represent allied genera, which lived during the Silurian epoch, and these have descended from a species which existed at an unknown anterior period. Species of three of these genera (A, F, and I) have transmitted modified descendants to the present day, represented by the fifteen genera (a14 to z14) on the uppermost horizontal line. Now all these modified descendants from a single species, are represented as related in blood or descent to the same degree; they may metaphorically be called cousins to the same millionth degree; yet they differ widely and in different degrees from each other. The forms descended from A, now broken up into two or three families, constitute a distinct order from those descended from I, also broken up into two families. Nor can the existing species, descended from A, be ranked in the same genus with the parent A; or those from I, with the parent I. But the existing genus F14 may be supposed to have been but slightly modified; and it will then rank with the parent-genus F; just as some few still living organic beings belong to Silurian genera. So that the amount or value of the differences between organic beings all related to each other in the same degree in blood, has come to be widely different. Nevertheless their genealogical arrangement remains strictly true, not only at the present time, but at each successive period of descent. All the modified descendants from A will have inherited something in common from their common parent, as will all the descendants from I; so will it be with each subordinate branch of descendants, at each successive period. If, however, we choose to suppose that any of the descendants of A or of I have been so much modified as to have more or less completely lost traces of their parentage, in this case, their places in a natural classification will have been more or less completely lost,—as sometimes seems to have occurred with existing organisms. All the descendants of the genus F, along its whole line of descent, are supposed to have been but little modified, and they yet form a single genus. But this genus, though much isolated, will still occupy its proper intermediate position; for F originally was intermediate in character between A and I, and the several genera descended from these two genera will have inherited to a certain extent their characters. This natural arrangement is shown, as far as is possible on paper, in the diagram, but in much too simple a manner. If a branching diagram had not been used, and only the names of the groups had been written in a linear series, it would have been still less possible to have given a natural arrangement; and it is notoriously not possible to represent in a series, on a flat surface, the affinities which we discover in nature amongst the beings of the same group. Thus, on the view which I hold, the natural system is genealogical in its arrangement, like a pedigree; but the degrees of modification which the different groups have undergone, have to be expressed by ranking them under different so-called genera, sub-families, families, sections, orders, and classes.

But I need to clarify my point further. I believe that the organization of the groups within each class, in proper hierarchy and relationship to the other groups, must be strictly based on genealogy to be natural; however, the extent of the differences among the various branches or groups, even though they share the same blood relation to their common ancestor, can vary significantly due to the different degrees of change they have undergone. This is reflected in their classification under different genera, families, sections, or orders. The reader will understand this better by looking at the diagram in the fourth chapter. Let's assume that letters A to L represent related genera that existed during the Silurian epoch, which descended from a species that lived at an unknown earlier time. Species from three of these genera (A, F, and I) have passed on modified descendants to the present day, represented by the fifteen genera (a14 to z14) on the top horizontal line. All these modified descendants from a single species are shown as related by blood or descent to the same degree; they can metaphorically be referred to as cousins to the same millionth degree; yet they differ widely and to varying degrees from each other. The forms descended from A, now split into two or three families, represent a distinct order compared to those from I, which have also split into two families. Moreover, the current species descended from A cannot be classified in the same genus as the parent A; nor can those from I be regarded in the same genus as parent I. However, the existing genus F14 may be seen as having undergone only slight modifications; thus, it could be classified with the parent genus F, just as some living organisms belong to Silurian genera. Therefore, the extent or significance of the differences between living organisms that are all related to each other in the same blood relation has become quite diverse. Still, their genealogical organization remains entirely accurate, not just at present but throughout each successive generation. All modified descendants from A will have inherited something in common from their shared ancestor, as will all descendants from I; this applies to every subordinate branch of descendants at every successive stage. However, if we imagine that any of the descendants of A or I have changed so much that they have largely lost any evidence of their ancestry, then their positions in a natural classification will have also been more or less entirely lost—as sometimes appears to have happened with current organisms. All descendants of genus F, throughout its lineage, are thought to have undergone little change, and they still form a single genus. But this genus, despite being quite isolated, will still occupy its rightful place in the classification; for F was originally positioned between A and I in terms of characteristics, and the various genera descended from these two will have inherited to some extent their traits. This natural classification is illustrated as much as possible on paper in the diagram, but it is overly simplistic. If a branching diagram hadn’t been used and only the names of the groups were written in a straight line, it would have been even less possible to illustrate a natural arrangement; it is famously difficult to represent the relationships we observe in nature among beings of the same group on a flat surface. Thus, in my view, the natural system is genealogical in its structure, similar to a family tree; but the levels of change that different groups have experienced need to be shown by placing them under various so-called genera, sub-families, families, sections, orders, and classes.

It may be worth while to illustrate this view of classification, by taking the case of languages. If we possessed a perfect pedigree of mankind, a genealogical arrangement of the races of man would afford the best classification of the various languages now spoken throughout the world; and if all extinct languages, and all intermediate and slowly changing dialects, had to be included, such an arrangement would, I think, be the only possible one. Yet it might be that some very ancient language had altered little, and had given rise to few new languages, whilst others (owing to the spreading and subsequent isolation and states of civilisation of the several races, descended from a common race) had altered much, and had given rise to many new languages and dialects. The various degrees of difference in the languages from the same stock, would have to be expressed by groups subordinate to groups; but the proper or even only possible arrangement would still be genealogical; and this would be strictly natural, as it would connect together all languages, extinct and modern, by the closest affinities, and would give the filiation and origin of each tongue.

It might be helpful to illustrate this perspective on classification by looking at languages. If we had a complete family tree of humanity, a genealogical arrangement of human races would provide the best classification for the different languages spoken around the world today. If we had to include all extinct languages, along with all the intermediate and slowly changing dialects, such an arrangement would likely be the only viable one. However, it’s possible that some very ancient language changed very little and led to only a few new languages, while others (due to the spread, isolation, and varying civilizations of the races that descended from a common ancestry) underwent significant changes and resulted in many new languages and dialects. The varying degrees of difference among the languages from the same source would need to be shown through subordinate groups; but the most appropriate—or perhaps the only feasible—arrangement would still be genealogical. This would be entirely natural, as it would connect all languages, both extinct and modern, through the closest relationships and would reveal the lineage and origins of each language.

In confirmation of this view, let us glance at the classification of varieties, which are believed or known to have descended from one species. These are grouped under species, with sub-varieties under varieties; and with our domestic productions, several other grades of difference are requisite, as we have seen with pigeons. The origin of the existence of groups subordinate to groups, is the same with varieties as with species, namely, closeness of descent with various degrees of modification. Nearly the same rules are followed in classifying varieties, as with species. Authors have insisted on the necessity of classing varieties on a natural instead of an artificial system; we are cautioned, for instance, not to class two varieties of the pine-apple together, merely because their fruit, though the most important part, happens to be nearly identical; no one puts the swedish and common turnips together, though the esculent and thickened stems are so similar. Whatever part is found to be most constant, is used in classing varieties: thus the great agriculturist Marshall says the horns are very useful for this purpose with cattle, because they are less variable than the shape or colour of the body, etc.; whereas with sheep the horns are much less serviceable, because less constant. In classing varieties, I apprehend if we had a real pedigree, a genealogical classification would be universally preferred; and it has been attempted by some authors. For we might feel sure, whether there had been more or less modification, the principle of inheritance would keep the forms together which were allied in the greatest number of points. In tumbler pigeons, though some sub-varieties differ from the others in the important character of having a longer beak, yet all are kept together from having the common habit of tumbling; but the short-faced breed has nearly or quite lost this habit; nevertheless, without any reasoning or thinking on the subject, these tumblers are kept in the same group, because allied in blood and alike in some other respects. If it could be proved that the Hottentot had descended from the Negro, I think he would be classed under the Negro group, however much he might differ in colour and other important characters from negroes.

To support this perspective, let's take a look at the classification of varieties that are thought to have originated from a single species. These are categorized under species, with sub-varieties falling under varieties. Alongside our domestic products, various other differences are necessary, as we've observed with pigeons. The existence of groups within groups is similar for varieties as it is for species, meaning they share close ancestry with varying degrees of modification. The classification rules for varieties are nearly the same as those for species. Authors have emphasized the need to classify varieties using a natural rather than an artificial system; for example, we shouldn't categorize two varieties of pineapple together just because their fruit—despite being the most significant part—looks nearly identical. Nobody combines Swedish and common turnips, even though their edible and thickened stems are very similar. The most consistent feature is used for classifying varieties: for instance, the prominent agriculturalist Marshall notes that horns are very useful for this purpose with cattle, since they are less variable than the body shape or color. However, with sheep, horns are much less helpful for classification due to their variability. In classifying varieties, I believe if we had actual pedigrees, a genealogical classification would be widely preferred, and some authors have attempted this. We could be confident that regardless of the level of modification, the principle of inheritance would group forms that are related in the most ways. In tumbler pigeons, although some sub-varieties differ in the key characteristic of having a longer beak, they are all grouped together due to the common tumbling behavior. Meanwhile, the short-faced breed has nearly lost this behavior; nonetheless, these tumblers are still kept in the same category simply because they are related by blood and share other similarities. If it could be shown that the Hottentot descended from the Negro, I think he would be classified under the Negro group, regardless of how much he might differ in color and other significant traits from blacks.

With species in a state of nature, every naturalist has in fact brought descent into his classification; for he includes in his lowest grade, or that of a species, the two sexes; and how enormously these sometimes differ in the most important characters, is known to every naturalist: scarcely a single fact can be predicated in common of the males and hermaphrodites of certain cirripedes, when adult, and yet no one dreams of separating them. The naturalist includes as one species the several larval stages of the same individual, however much they may differ from each other and from the adult; as he likewise includes the so-called alternate generations of Steenstrup, which can only in a technical sense be considered as the same individual. He includes monsters; he includes varieties, not solely because they closely resemble the parent-form, but because they are descended from it. He who believes that the cowslip is descended from the primrose, or conversely, ranks them together as a single species, and gives a single definition. As soon as three Orchidean forms (Monochanthus, Myanthus, and Catasetum), which had previously been ranked as three distinct genera, were known to be sometimes produced on the same spike, they were immediately included as a single species. But it may be asked, what ought we to do, if it could be proved that one species of kangaroo had been produced, by a long course of modification, from a bear? Ought we to rank this one species with bears, and what should we do with the other species? The supposition is of course preposterous; and I might answer by the argumentum ad hominem, and ask what should be done if a perfect kangaroo were seen to come out of the womb of a bear? According to all analogy, it would be ranked with bears; but then assuredly all the other species of the kangaroo family would have to be classed under the bear genus. The whole case is preposterous; for where there has been close descent in common, there will certainly be close resemblance or affinity.

With species in a natural state, every naturalist has actually incorporated descent into their classification; they include both sexes in their lowest classification, or that of a species, and it’s well known how vastly these can differ in key characteristics. It’s hardly a single fact can be shared between the males and hermaphrodites of certain barnacles when they're fully grown, yet no one thinks to separate them. The naturalist considers the various larval stages of the same individual as one species, no matter how different they are from one another and the adult form; this also applies to what Steenstrup called alternate generations, which can only be technically considered the same individual. They also include abnormalities; they account for varieties not just because they closely resemble the parent form, but because they are descended from it. Whoever believes the cowslip came from the primrose, or the other way around, groups them together as a single species and gives a single definition. Once three forms of orchids (Monochanthus, Myanthus, and Catasetum), which were previously classified as three separate genera, were found to sometimes grow on the same spike, they were immediately classified as one species. But the question remains, what should we do if it could be proven that one species of kangaroo had evolved, through a long process of change, from a bear? Should we classify this one species with bears, and what would happen to the other species? The idea is obviously absurd; and I could respond with a hypothetical and ask what should happen if a perfect kangaroo were seen to be born from a bear? By all analogy, it would be categorized with bears; yet, certainly all other species in the kangaroo family would have to be classified under the bear genus. The entire scenario is absurd; because where there has been close descent in common, there will definitely be close resemblance or connection.

As descent has universally been used in classing together the individuals of the same species, though the males and females and larvæ are sometimes extremely different; and as it has been used in classing varieties which have undergone a certain, and sometimes a considerable amount of modification, may not this same element of descent have been unconsciously used in grouping species under genera, and genera under higher groups, though in these cases the modification has been greater in degree, and has taken a longer time to complete? I believe it has thus been unconsciously used; and only thus can I understand the several rules and guides which have been followed by our best systematists. We have no written pedigrees; we have to make out community of descent by resemblances of any kind. Therefore we choose those characters which, as far as we can judge, are the least likely to have been modified in relation to the conditions of life to which each species has been recently exposed. Rudimentary structures on this view are as good as, or even sometimes better than, other parts of the organisation. We care not how trifling a character may be—let it be the mere inflection of the angle of the jaw, the manner in which an insect’s wing is folded, whether the skin be covered by hair or feathers—if it prevail throughout many and different species, especially those having very different habits of life, it assumes high value; for we can account for its presence in so many forms with such different habits, only by its inheritance from a common parent. We may err in this respect in regard to single points of structure, but when several characters, let them be ever so trifling, occur together throughout a large group of beings having different habits, we may feel almost sure, on the theory of descent, that these characters have been inherited from a common ancestor. And we know that such correlated or aggregated characters have especial value in classification.

As descent has been consistently used to classify individuals of the same species, even when males, females, and larvae can be very different, and as it has also been applied to categorize varieties that have experienced some degree of modification, could it be that the concept of descent has also been unconsciously utilized in grouping species into genera and genera into broader categories, even if the modifications in these cases are more significant and take longer to develop? I believe this unconscious use has occurred; only this way can I grasp the various rules and guidelines that our best systematists have followed. We don’t have written family trees; we have to determine common descent through any observable similarities. Therefore, we choose the characteristics that, as far as we can tell, are least likely to have been affected by the specific living conditions each species has recently faced. From this perspective, rudimentary structures are just as valuable as, or sometimes even more so than, other parts of the organism. We don’t mind how trivial a character may seem—whether it’s the slight angle of the jaw, how an insect’s wing is folded, or if the skin is covered in hair or feathers—if it is present across many different species, especially those with very different lifestyles, it gains significant importance; we can only explain its presence in so many forms with varied habits through inheritance from a common ancestor. We might make mistakes regarding individual structural traits, but when multiple characteristics, no matter how slight, appear together across a large group of organisms with different lifestyles, we can be fairly confident, according to the theory of descent, that these traits have been inherited from a shared ancestor. And we know that such related or grouped traits are particularly valuable for classification.

We can understand why a species or a group of species may depart, in several of its most important characteristics, from its allies, and yet be safely classed with them. This may be safely done, and is often done, as long as a sufficient number of characters, let them be ever so unimportant, betrays the hidden bond of community of descent. Let two forms have not a single character in common, yet if these extreme forms are connected together by a chain of intermediate groups, we may at once infer their community of descent, and we put them all into the same class. As we find organs of high physiological importance—those which serve to preserve life under the most diverse conditions of existence—are generally the most constant, we attach especial value to them; but if these same organs, in another group or section of a group, are found to differ much, we at once value them less in our classification. We shall hereafter, I think, clearly see why embryological characters are of such high classificatory importance. Geographical distribution may sometimes be brought usefully into play in classing large and widely-distributed genera, because all the species of the same genus, inhabiting any distinct and isolated region, have in all probability descended from the same parents.

We can see why a species or a group of species might differ in key characteristics from its relatives, yet still be grouped with them. This is possible and often happens as long as a sufficient number of traits, no matter how minor, indicate a shared ancestry. Even if two forms share no traits in common, if they are connected by a series of intermediate groups, we can conclude they have a common ancestry and classify them together. Organs that are critically important for survival in various conditions tend to be the most stable, so we place special significance on them; however, if those same organs vary greatly in another group or section, we consider them less important for classification. Later, I believe we will understand why embryological traits are so significant for classification. Geographical distribution can sometimes be useful in classifying large, widely-distributed genera, because all species within the same genus that live in a distinct and isolated area likely share a common ancestry.

We can understand, on these views, the very important distinction between real affinities and analogical or adaptive resemblances. Lamarck first called attention to this distinction, and he has been ably followed by Macleay and others. The resemblance, in the shape of the body and in the fin-like anterior limbs, between the dugong, which is a pachydermatous animal, and the whale, and between both these mammals and fishes, is analogical. Amongst insects there are innumerable instances: thus Linnæus, misled by external appearances, actually classed an homopterous insect as a moth. We see something of the same kind even in our domestic varieties, as in the thickened stems of the common and swedish turnip. The resemblance of the greyhound and racehorse is hardly more fanciful than the analogies which have been drawn by some authors between very distinct animals. On my view of characters being of real importance for classification, only in so far as they reveal descent, we can clearly understand why analogical or adaptive character, although of the utmost importance to the welfare of the being, are almost valueless to the systematist. For animals, belonging to two most distinct lines of descent, may readily become adapted to similar conditions, and thus assume a close external resemblance; but such resemblances will not reveal—will rather tend to conceal their blood-relationship to their proper lines of descent. We can also understand the apparent paradox, that the very same characters are analogical when one class or order is compared with another, but give true affinities when the members of the same class or order are compared one with another: thus the shape of the body and fin-like limbs are only analogical when whales are compared with fishes, being adaptations in both classes for swimming through the water; but the shape of the body and fin-like limbs serve as characters exhibiting true affinity between the several members of the whale family; for these cetaceans agree in so many characters, great and small, that we cannot doubt that they have inherited their general shape of body and structure of limbs from a common ancestor. So it is with fishes.

We can understand, based on these views, the important difference between real connections and analogical or adaptive similarities. Lamarck was the first to point out this distinction, and he has been well-followed by Macleay and others. The similarity in body shape and fin-like front limbs between the dugong, which is a thick-skinned animal, and the whale, as well as between both of these mammals and fish, is analogical. Among insects, there are countless examples: for instance, Linnæus, misled by appearances, mistakenly classified a homopterous insect as a moth. We observe something similar even in our domestic varieties, like the thickened stems of the common and Swedish turnip. The resemblance between the greyhound and racehorse is hardly more far-fetched than the analogies some authors have drawn between very different animals. From my perspective, since characteristics are only significant for classification to the extent that they reveal descent, we can understand why analogical or adaptive traits, despite their importance for the organism's survival, are nearly useless to systematists. Animals from two very distinct lines of descent can easily adapt to similar conditions, thereby appearing externally alike; however, such resemblances do not reveal—rather, they conceal—their true ancestral relationships. We can also grasp the apparent contradiction that the same traits can be analogical when comparing one class or order to another, but show true connections when comparing members of the same class or order: for example, the body shape and fin-like limbs are only analogical when we compare whales with fish, as they are adaptations in both groups for swimming through water; but the shape of the body and fin-like limbs serve as traits demonstrating true connections among the members of the whale family. These cetaceans share so many characteristics, both large and small, that we cannot doubt they have inherited their overall body shape and limb structure from a common ancestor. The same goes for fish.

As members of distinct classes have often been adapted by successive slight modifications to live under nearly similar circumstances,—to inhabit for instance the three elements of land, air, and water,—we can perhaps understand how it is that a numerical parallelism has sometimes been observed between the sub-groups in distinct classes. A naturalist, struck by a parallelism of this nature in any one class, by arbitrarily raising or sinking the value of the groups in other classes (and all our experience shows that this valuation has hitherto been arbitrary), could easily extend the parallelism over a wide range; and thus the septenary, quinary, quaternary, and ternary classifications have probably arisen.

As different classes have often been slightly modified over time to live in similar environments—like on land, in the air, and in water—we can maybe understand why we've sometimes noticed a numerical similarity between the sub-groups in different classes. A naturalist, noticing this kind of similarity in one class, could easily extend it to a broader range by arbitrarily adjusting the values of the groups in other classes (and all our experience shows that this valuation has been arbitrary so far). This is likely how the seven-part, five-part, four-part, and three-part classifications came to be.

As the modified descendants of dominant species, belonging to the larger genera, tend to inherit the advantages, which made the groups to which they belong large and their parents dominant, they are almost sure to spread widely, and to seize on more and more places in the economy of nature. The larger and more dominant groups thus tend to go on increasing in size; and they consequently supplant many smaller and feebler groups. Thus we can account for the fact that all organisms, recent and extinct, are included under a few great orders, under still fewer classes, and all in one great natural system. As showing how few the higher groups are in number, and how widely spread they are throughout the world, the fact is striking, that the discovery of Australia has not added a single insect belonging to a new order; and that in the vegetable kingdom, as I learn from Dr. Hooker, it has added only two or three orders of small size.

As the modified descendants of dominant species, part of larger groups, tend to inherit the benefits that made their groups large and their parents dominant, they are almost guaranteed to spread widely and take over more and more roles in the ecosystem. The larger and more dominant groups generally continue to grow in size, which allows them to replace many smaller and weaker groups. This explains why all organisms, both recent and extinct, fall under a few major orders, under even fewer classes, and all within one large natural system. To illustrate how few the higher groups are in number and how widely distributed they are around the world, it's noteworthy that the discovery of Australia hasn't added a single insect from a new order, and in the plant kingdom, as I've learned from Dr. Hooker, it has introduced only two or three small orders.

In the chapter on geological succession I attempted to show, on the principle of each group having generally diverged much in character during the long-continued process of modification, how it is that the more ancient forms of life often present characters in some slight degree intermediate between existing groups. A few old and intermediate parent-forms having occasionally transmitted to the present day descendants but little modified, will give to us our so-called osculant or aberrant groups. The more aberrant any form is, the greater must be the number of connecting forms which on my theory have been exterminated and utterly lost. And we have some evidence of aberrant forms having suffered severely from extinction, for they are generally represented by extremely few species; and such species as do occur are generally very distinct from each other, which again implies extinction. The genera Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren, for example, would not have been less aberrant had each been represented by a dozen species instead of by a single one; but such richness in species, as I find after some investigation, does not commonly fall to the lot of aberrant genera. We can, I think, account for this fact only by looking at aberrant forms as failing groups conquered by more successful competitors, with a few members preserved by some unusual coincidence of favourable circumstances.

In the chapter about geological succession, I tried to demonstrate, based on the idea that each group has generally evolved quite differently over a long period, how more ancient life forms often have features that are slightly intermediate between current groups. A few old and somewhat intermediate parent forms that have occasionally passed on descendants that are not very modified give us what we call osculant or aberrant groups. The more unusual a form is, the more connecting forms, according to my theory, must have been wiped out and completely lost. We have some evidence that aberrant forms have been hit hard by extinction, as they are usually represented by very few species; the species that do exist are often quite distinct from one another, which again suggests extinction. For instance, the genera Ornithorhynchus and Lepidosiren would not be any less aberrant if each had been represented by a dozen species instead of just one; however, as I found after some investigation, this kind of diversity in species typically does not happen with aberrant genera. I believe we can only explain this fact by viewing aberrant forms as struggling groups that have been overcome by more successful competitors, with a few members surviving due to some strange combination of favorable circumstances.

Mr. Waterhouse has remarked that, when a member belonging to one group of animals exhibits an affinity to a quite distinct group, this affinity in most cases is general and not special: thus, according to Mr. Waterhouse, of all Rodents, the bizcacha is most nearly related to Marsupials; but in the points in which it approaches this order, its relations are general, and not to any one marsupial species more than to another. As the points of affinity of the bizcacha to Marsupials are believed to be real and not merely adaptive, they are due on my theory to inheritance in common. Therefore we must suppose either that all Rodents, including the bizcacha, branched off from some very ancient Marsupial, which will have had a character in some degree intermediate with respect to all existing Marsupials; or that both Rodents and Marsupials branched off from a common progenitor, and that both groups have since undergone much modification in divergent directions. On either view we may suppose that the bizcacha has retained, by inheritance, more of the character of its ancient progenitor than have other Rodents; and therefore it will not be specially related to any one existing Marsupial, but indirectly to all or nearly all Marsupials, from having partially retained the character of their common progenitor, or of an early member of the group. On the other hand, of all Marsupials, as Mr. Waterhouse has remarked, the phascolomys resembles most nearly, not any one species, but the general order of Rodents. In this case, however, it may be strongly suspected that the resemblance is only analogical, owing to the phascolomys having become adapted to habits like those of a Rodent. The elder De Candolle has made nearly similar observations on the general nature of the affinities of distinct orders of plants.

Mr. Waterhouse has noted that when a member of one group of animals shows a connection to a completely different group, this connection is usually broad rather than specific. According to Mr. Waterhouse, among all Rodents, the bizcacha is closest to Marsupials; however, its similarities to this order are general and not tied to any particular marsupial species more than another. Since the similarities between the bizcacha and Marsupials are thought to be genuine rather than just adaptive, I believe they stem from common inheritance. Therefore, we must consider that either all Rodents, including the bizcacha, evolved from an ancient Marsupial that had characteristics somewhat intermediate between all current Marsupials, or that both Rodents and Marsupials came from a common ancestor and that each group has since evolved significantly in different directions. In either case, we can assume that the bizcacha has retained more traits of its ancient ancestor compared to other Rodents. Hence, it isn’t specifically related to any one existing Marsupial, but rather indirectly to all or nearly all Marsupials, since it has partially kept the characteristics of their common ancestor or an early member of their group. On the other hand, Mr. Waterhouse has also pointed out that among all Marsupials, the phascolomys is most similar not to any single species, but to the overall order of Rodents. In this instance, however, it is quite possible that the resemblance is merely analogical, as the phascolomys has adapted to behaviors similar to those of a Rodent. The elder De Candolle has made nearly identical observations regarding the general nature of the affinities among different plant orders.

On the principle of the multiplication and gradual divergence in character of the species descended from a common parent, together with their retention by inheritance of some characters in common, we can understand the excessively complex and radiating affinities by which all the members of the same family or higher group are connected together. For the common parent of a whole family of species, now broken up by extinction into distinct groups and sub-groups, will have transmitted some of its characters, modified in various ways and degrees, to all; and the several species will consequently be related to each other by circuitous lines of affinity of various lengths (as may be seen in the diagram so often referred to), mounting up through many predecessors. As it is difficult to show the blood-relationship between the numerous kindred of any ancient and noble family, even by the aid of a genealogical tree, and almost impossible to do this without this aid, we can understand the extraordinary difficulty which naturalists have experienced in describing, without the aid of a diagram, the various affinities which they perceive between the many living and extinct members of the same great natural class.

Based on the principle of the multiplication and gradual divergence in characteristics of species that come from a common ancestor, along with their inheritance of some shared traits, we can grasp the incredibly complex and expansive connections linking all members of the same family or higher group. The common ancestor of an entire family of species, which has now been separated by extinction into distinct groups and sub-groups, will have passed on some of its traits, changed in various ways and to different extents, to all of them. As a result, the different species will be related to one another through indirect lines of affinity of varying lengths (as illustrated in the diagram frequently referenced), tracing back through numerous ancestors. Just as it is hard to demonstrate the familial relationships between the many relatives of an ancient and distinguished family, even with a genealogical tree, and nearly impossible to do so without it, we can understand the significant challenges that naturalists have faced in describing, without a diagram, the various connections they observe among the many living and extinct members of the same broad natural class.

Extinction, as we have seen in the fourth chapter, has played an important part in defining and widening the intervals between the several groups in each class. We may thus account even for the distinctness of whole classes from each other—for instance, of birds from all other vertebrate animals—by the belief that many ancient forms of life have been utterly lost, through which the early progenitors of birds were formerly connected with the early progenitors of the other vertebrate classes. There has been less entire extinction of the forms of life which once connected fishes with batrachians. There has been still less in some other classes, as in that of the Crustacea, for here the most wonderfully diverse forms are still tied together by a long, but broken, chain of affinities. Extinction has only separated groups: it has by no means made them; for if every form which has ever lived on this earth were suddenly to reappear, though it would be quite impossible to give definitions by which each group could be distinguished from other groups, as all would blend together by steps as fine as those between the finest existing varieties, nevertheless a natural classification, or at least a natural arrangement, would be possible. We shall see this by turning to the diagram: the letters, A to L, may represent eleven Silurian genera, some of which have produced large groups of modified descendants. Every intermediate link between these eleven genera and their primordial parent, and every intermediate link in each branch and sub-branch of their descendants, may be supposed to be still alive; and the links to be as fine as those between the finest varieties. In this case it would be quite impossible to give any definition by which the several members of the several groups could be distinguished from their more immediate parents; or these parents from their ancient and unknown progenitor. Yet the natural arrangement in the diagram would still hold good; and, on the principle of inheritance, all the forms descended from A, or from I, would have something in common. In a tree we can specify this or that branch, though at the actual fork the two unite and blend together. We could not, as I have said, define the several groups; but we could pick out types, or forms, representing most of the characters of each group, whether large or small, and thus give a general idea of the value of the differences between them. This is what we should be driven to, if we were ever to succeed in collecting all the forms in any class which have lived throughout all time and space. We shall certainly never succeed in making so perfect a collection: nevertheless, in certain classes, we are tending in this direction; and Milne Edwards has lately insisted, in an able paper, on the high importance of looking to types, whether or not we can separate and define the groups to which such types belong.

Extinction, as we discussed in the fourth chapter, has been crucial in shaping and increasing the gaps between the different groups within each class. We can even explain how entire classes can be distinct from one another—for example, how birds are separate from all other vertebrate animals—by the idea that many ancient life forms have completely disappeared, which used to connect the early ancestors of birds with the early ancestors of other vertebrate classes. There has been less complete extinction of the life forms that once linked fish with amphibians. Even less so in some other classes, like the Crustacea, where the most incredibly diverse forms are still connected by a long, but broken, chain of similarities. Extinction has only broken apart groups; it hasn’t created them. If every life form that has ever existed on this planet were to suddenly appear again, it would be impossible to define each group clearly since they would all blend together with subtle distinctions, similar to the finest existing varieties. However, a natural classification, or at least a natural arrangement, would still be achievable. We can see this in the diagram: the letters, A to L, could represent eleven Silurian genera, some of which have produced large groups of modified descendants. If we imagine every intermediate link between these eleven genera and their original parent, and every intermediate link in each branch and sub-branch of their descendants, as still living, those links would be as delicate as those between the finest varieties. In this scenario, it would be nearly impossible to provide definitions that distinguish the various members of the groups from their closer ancestors, or these ancestors from their ancient and unknown progenitor. Yet the natural arrangement in the diagram would still be valid; and based on the principle of inheritance, all forms descended from A, or from I, would share some common traits. In a tree, we can identify this or that branch, even though at the point where they split, the two mingle together. As I mentioned, we couldn't define the various groups, but we could identify types or forms that represent most characteristics of each group, whether broad or narrow, giving a general sense of the value of the differences among them. This is what we would have to do if we ever managed to gather all forms in any class that have existed throughout all time and space. While we will likely never succeed in creating such a perfect collection, we are making progress in certain classes toward this goal; and Milne Edwards recently emphasized, in a compelling paper, the significance of focusing on types, regardless of whether we can delineate and define the groups to which these types belong.

Finally, we have seen that natural selection, which results from the struggle for existence, and which almost inevitably induces extinction and divergence of character in the many descendants from one dominant parent-species, explains that great and universal feature in the affinities of all organic beings, namely, their subordination in group under group. We use the element of descent in classing the individuals of both sexes and of all ages, although having few characters in common, under one species; we use descent in classing acknowledged varieties, however different they may be from their parent; and I believe this element of descent is the hidden bond of connexion which naturalists have sought under the term of the Natural System. On this idea of the natural system being, in so far as it has been perfected, genealogical in its arrangement, with the grades of difference between the descendants from a common parent, expressed by the terms genera, families, orders, etc., we can understand the rules which we are compelled to follow in our classification. We can understand why we value certain resemblances far more than others; why we are permitted to use rudimentary and useless organs, or others of trifling physiological importance; why, in comparing one group with a distinct group, we summarily reject analogical or adaptive characters, and yet use these same characters within the limits of the same group. We can clearly see how it is that all living and extinct forms can be grouped together in one great system; and how the several members of each class are connected together by the most complex and radiating lines of affinities. We shall never, probably, disentangle the inextricable web of affinities between the members of any one class; but when we have a distinct object in view, and do not look to some unknown plan of creation, we may hope to make sure but slow progress.

Finally, we’ve seen that natural selection, which comes from the struggle for survival, almost inevitably leads to extinction and the variation of traits among many descendants from one dominant parent species. This explains the significant and universal characteristic in the connections among all living organisms, specifically their hierarchy in groups. We classify individuals of both sexes and all ages under one species using the concept of descent, even if they share few traits in common; we apply descent in classifying recognized varieties, regardless of how different they may be from their parent; and I believe this idea of descent is the underlying connection that naturalists have searched for under the term "Natural System." Based on the notion that the natural system, as much as it has been refined, is organized genealogically, with the differences among descendants from a shared parent represented by terms like genera, families, orders, etc., we can grasp the rules we must follow in our classifications. We can understand why we value certain similarities more than others; why we can use rudimentary and non-functional organs, or those of minimal physiological significance; why, when comparing one group to a different group, we quickly dismiss analogical or adaptive traits but still apply these same traits within the same group. We can clearly see how all living and extinct forms can be categorized into one vast system; and how the various members of each class are linked by the most complex and branching connections of affinities. We may never fully unravel the tangled web of affinities among the members of any single class; however, when we have a specific goal in mind and do not seek some unknown design of creation, we can hope to make steady albeit slow progress.

Morphology.—We have seen that the members of the same class, independently of their habits of life, resemble each other in the general plan of their organisation. This resemblance is often expressed by the term “unity of type;” or by saying that the several parts and organs in the different species of the class are homologous. The whole subject is included under the general name of Morphology. This is the most interesting department of natural history, and may be said to be its very soul. What can be more curious than that the hand of a man, formed for grasping, that of a mole for digging, the leg of the horse, the paddle of the porpoise, and the wing of the bat, should all be constructed on the same pattern, and should include the same bones, in the same relative positions? Geoffroy St. Hilaire has insisted strongly on the high importance of relative connexion in homologous organs: the parts may change to almost any extent in form and size, and yet they always remain connected together in the same order. We never find, for instance, the bones of the arm and forearm, or of the thigh and leg, transposed. Hence the same names can be given to the homologous bones in widely different animals. We see the same great law in the construction of the mouths of insects: what can be more different than the immensely long spiral proboscis of a sphinx-moth, the curious folded one of a bee or bug, and the great jaws of a beetle?—yet all these organs, serving for such different purposes, are formed by infinitely numerous modifications of an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillæ. Analogous laws govern the construction of the mouths and limbs of crustaceans. So it is with the flowers of plants.

Morphology.—We've seen that members of the same class, regardless of their lifestyles, share a similar overall structure. This similarity is often described as "unity of type," or by stating that the various parts and organs in different species of the class are homologous. This entire topic falls under the umbrella of Morphology. This is the most fascinating area of natural history and can be considered its very essence. What could be more intriguing than the fact that the human hand, designed for grasping, the mole's paw for digging, the horse's leg, the porpoise's paddle, and the bat's wing all follow the same basic design and contain the same bones in the same relative positions? Geoffroy St. Hilaire strongly emphasized the importance of relative connections in homologous organs: the parts may change greatly in shape and size, but they always remain linked in the same order. For instance, we never see the bones of the arm and forearm, or the thigh and leg, switched around. As a result, the same names can be applied to homologous bones in very different animals. We observe the same significant principle in the structure of insect mouths: what could be more varied than the extremely long spiral proboscis of a sphinx moth, the unique folded mouth of a bee or bug, and the large jaws of a beetle? — yet all these organs, which serve such different purposes, are formed through countless modifications of an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillae. Similar laws also apply to the structure of the mouths and limbs of crustaceans. The same goes for the flowers of plants.

Nothing can be more hopeless than to attempt to explain this similarity of pattern in members of the same class, by utility or by the doctrine of final causes. The hopelessness of the attempt has been expressly admitted by Owen in his most interesting work on the ‘Nature of Limbs.’ On the ordinary view of the independent creation of each being, we can only say that so it is;—that it has so pleased the Creator to construct each animal and plant.

Nothing is more pointless than trying to explain this pattern similarity among members of the same class through usefulness or the idea of final causes. Owen himself acknowledged the futility of this effort in his fascinating work on the 'Nature of Limbs.' According to the standard belief in the independent creation of each being, we can only say that it simply is the way it is—that it has pleased the Creator to design each animal and plant this way.

The explanation is manifest on the theory of the natural selection of successive slight modifications,—each modification being profitable in some way to the modified form, but often affecting by correlation of growth other parts of the organisation. In changes of this nature, there will be little or no tendency to modify the original pattern, or to transpose parts. The bones of a limb might be shortened and widened to any extent, and become gradually enveloped in thick membrane, so as to serve as a fin; or a webbed foot might have all its bones, or certain bones, lengthened to any extent, and the membrane connecting them increased to any extent, so as to serve as a wing: yet in all this great amount of modification there will be no tendency to alter the framework of bones or the relative connexion of the several parts. If we suppose that the ancient progenitor, the archetype as it may be called, of all mammals, had its limbs constructed on the existing general pattern, for whatever purpose they served, we can at once perceive the plain signification of the homologous construction of the limbs throughout the whole class. So with the mouths of insects, we have only to suppose that their common progenitor had an upper lip, mandibles, and two pair of maxillæ, these parts being perhaps very simple in form; and then natural selection will account for the infinite diversity in structure and function of the mouths of insects. Nevertheless, it is conceivable that the general pattern of an organ might become so much obscured as to be finally lost, by the atrophy and ultimately by the complete abortion of certain parts, by the soldering together of other parts, and by the doubling or multiplication of others,—variations which we know to be within the limits of possibility. In the paddles of the extinct gigantic sea-lizards, and in the mouths of certain suctorial crustaceans, the general pattern seems to have been thus to a certain extent obscured.

The explanation lies in the theory of natural selection through gradual, slight modifications—each change benefiting the modified form in some way, but often affecting other parts of the organism due to correlated growth. With changes like these, there’s little to no tendency to alter the original design or rearrange parts. The bones of a limb could be shortened and widened extensively, becoming gradually covered in thick membrane to function as a fin; or a webbed foot might have all its bones, or certain ones, elongated, with the membrane connecting them increased to serve as a wing. However, throughout this considerable modification, there’s no inclination to change the bone structure or the relative connections between parts. If we assume that the ancient ancestor, which we could call the archetype, of all mammals had limbs built on the current general pattern, regardless of their purpose, we can easily understand the clear significance of the homologous structure of limbs across the entire class. Similarly, for insect mouths, we only need to assume that their common ancestor had an upper lip, mandibles, and two pairs of maxillae, possibly very simple in design; and then natural selection would explain the vast diversity in structure and function of insect mouths. Nonetheless, it’s possible for the general design of an organ to become so obscured that it’s eventually lost due to atrophy and ultimately complete reduction of certain parts, the fusion of others, and the doubling or multiplication of yet others—variations that we know can occur. In the flippers of the extinct gigantic sea lizards and in the mouths of certain suction-feeding crustaceans, the general structure seems to have been obscured to some extent.

There is another and equally curious branch of the present subject; namely, the comparison not of the same part in different members of a class, but of the different parts or organs in the same individual. Most physiologists believe that the bones of the skull are homologous with—that is correspond in number and in relative connexion with—the elemental parts of a certain number of vertebræ. The anterior and posterior limbs in each member of the vertebrate and articulate classes are plainly homologous. We see the same law in comparing the wonderfully complex jaws and legs in crustaceans. It is familiar to almost every one, that in a flower the relative position of the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils, as well as their intimate structure, are intelligible on the view that they consist of metamorphosed leaves, arranged in a spire. In monstrous plants, we often get direct evidence of the possibility of one organ being transformed into another; and we can actually see in embryonic crustaceans and in many other animals, and in flowers, that organs, which when mature become extremely different, are at an early stage of growth exactly alike.

There’s another interesting aspect of this topic: the comparison, not of the same part in different members of a group, but of the different parts or organs within the same individual. Most physiologists think that the bones of the skull are homologous with—that is, correspond in number and relative connection with—the basic parts of a certain number of vertebrae. The front and back limbs in each member of the vertebrate and arthropod classes are clearly homologous. We also see this same principle when looking at the complex jaws and legs in crustaceans. Almost everyone knows that in a flower, the relative positions of the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils, along with their internal structure, make sense if we consider them to be transformed leaves arranged in a spiral. In unusual plants, we often see direct evidence that one organ can change into another; and we can actually observe in embryonic crustaceans, as well as many other animals and flowers, that organs which become very different when mature are identical at an early stage of development.

How inexplicable are these facts on the ordinary view of creation! Why should the brain be enclosed in a box composed of such numerous and such extraordinarily shaped pieces of bone? As Owen has remarked, the benefit derived from the yielding of the separate pieces in the act of parturition of mammals, will by no means explain the same construction in the skulls of birds. Why should similar bones have been created in the formation of the wing and leg of a bat, used as they are for such totally different purposes? Why should one crustacean, which has an extremely complex mouth formed of many parts, consequently always have fewer legs; or conversely, those with many legs have simpler mouths? Why should the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils in any individual flower, though fitted for such widely different purposes, be all constructed on the same pattern?

How puzzling are these facts about the usual view of creation! Why is the brain surrounded by a box made up of so many oddly shaped pieces of bone? As Owen pointed out, the benefit of the separate pieces moving during the birth process in mammals doesn’t explain why this same setup exists in bird skulls. Why were similar bones created in the wings and legs of a bat when they serve such completely different functions? Why does one crustacean, which has a very complex mouth made of many parts, always have fewer legs, while those with many legs have simpler mouths? Why are the sepals, petals, stamens, and pistils in a single flower, despite being used for such different purposes, all built on the same design?

On the theory of natural selection, we can satisfactorily answer these questions. In the vertebrata, we see a series of internal vertebræ bearing certain processes and appendages; in the articulata, we see the body divided into a series of segments, bearing external appendages; and in flowering plants, we see a series of successive spiral whorls of leaves. An indefinite repetition of the same part or organ is the common characteristic (as Owen has observed) of all low or little-modified forms; therefore we may readily believe that the unknown progenitor of the vertebrata possessed many vertebræ; the unknown progenitor of the articulata, many segments; and the unknown progenitor of flowering plants, many spiral whorls of leaves. We have formerly seen that parts many times repeated are eminently liable to vary in number and structure; consequently it is quite probable that natural selection, during a long-continued course of modification, should have seized on a certain number of the primordially similar elements, many times repeated, and have adapted them to the most diverse purposes. And as the whole amount of modification will have been effected by slight successive steps, we need not wonder at discovering in such parts or organs, a certain degree of fundamental resemblance, retained by the strong principle of inheritance.

Based on the theory of natural selection, we can effectively address these questions. In vertebrates, we observe a series of internal vertebrae with specific processes and appendages; in arthropods, we notice the body divided into a series of segments with external appendages; and in flowering plants, we observe a series of successive spiral whorls of leaves. The common feature (as Owen has pointed out) of all simpler or less modified forms is the repeated presence of the same part or organ; therefore, it's reasonable to think that the unknown ancestor of vertebrates had many vertebrae, the unknown ancestor of arthropods had many segments, and the unknown ancestor of flowering plants had many spiral whorls of leaves. We have previously noted that parts that are repeated many times are particularly prone to variation in number and structure; thus, it is quite likely that through natural selection, over a prolonged period of modification, a certain number of the originally similar elements, frequently repeated, were adapted for a wide range of functions. Since the overall process of modification would have occurred through small, successive steps, we should not be surprised to find in such parts or organs a certain degree of fundamental similarity, maintained by the strong principle of inheritance.

In the great class of molluscs, though we can homologise the parts of one species with those of another and distinct species, we can indicate but few serial homologies; that is, we are seldom enabled to say that one part or organ is homologous with another in the same individual. And we can understand this fact; for in molluscs, even in the lowest members of the class, we do not find nearly so much indefinite repetition of any one part, as we find in the other great classes of the animal and vegetable kingdoms.

In the large group of mollusks, while we can compare the parts of one species with those of another different species, we can identify only a few instances of serial homology; that is, we rarely find that one part or organ is homologous with another within the same individual. This makes sense because in mollusks, even in the simplest members of the group, we don't see nearly as much variation or repetition of any one part compared to what we find in the other major groups of animals and plants.

Naturalists frequently speak of the skull as formed of metamorphosed vertebræ: the jaws of crabs as metamorphosed legs; the stamens and pistils of flowers as metamorphosed leaves; but it would in these cases probably be more correct, as Professor Huxley has remarked, to speak of both skull and vertebræ, both jaws and legs, etc.,—as having been metamorphosed, not one from the other, but from some common element. Naturalists, however, use such language only in a metaphorical sense: they are far from meaning that during a long course of descent, primordial organs of any kind—vertebræ in the one case and legs in the other—have actually been modified into skulls or jaws. Yet so strong is the appearance of a modification of this nature having occurred, that naturalists can hardly avoid employing language having this plain signification. On my view these terms may be used literally; and the wonderful fact of the jaws, for instance, of a crab retaining numerous characters, which they would probably have retained through inheritance, if they had really been metamorphosed during a long course of descent from true legs, or from some simple appendage, is explained.

Naturalists often say that the skull is made up of changed vertebrae; that the jaws of crabs are changed legs; and that the stamens and pistils of flowers are changed leaves. However, it would probably be more accurate, as Professor Huxley noted, to say that both skulls and vertebrae, as well as jaws and legs, etc., have been transformed, not one into the other, but from some shared origin. Naturalists use this kind of language metaphorically, and they're not suggesting that, over a long period of evolution, basic organs—like vertebrae in one case or legs in another—have actually changed into skulls or jaws. Still, the appearance that such a transformation has taken place is so strong that naturalists often cannot help but use terms that imply this clear meaning. In my opinion, these terms can be taken literally, and the amazing fact that the jaws of a crab, for example, retain many traits—which they would likely have kept through inheritance if they truly had evolved over time from actual legs or from some simple appendage—can be explained.

Embryology.—It has already been casually remarked that certain organs in the individual, which when mature become widely different and serve for different purposes, are in the embryo exactly alike. The embryos, also, of distinct animals within the same class are often strikingly similar: a better proof of this cannot be given, than a circumstance mentioned by Agassiz, namely, that having forgotten to ticket the embryo of some vertebrate animal, he cannot now tell whether it be that of a mammal, bird, or reptile. The vermiform larvæ of moths, flies, beetles, etc., resemble each other much more closely than do the mature insects; but in the case of larvæ, the embryos are active, and have been adapted for special lines of life. A trace of the law of embryonic resemblance, sometimes lasts till a rather late age: thus birds of the same genus, and of closely allied genera, often resemble each other in their first and second plumage; as we see in the spotted feathers in the thrush group. In the cat tribe, most of the species are striped or spotted in lines; and stripes can be plainly distinguished in the whelp of the lion. We occasionally though rarely see something of this kind in plants: thus the embryonic leaves of the ulex or furze, and the first leaves of the phyllodineous acaceas, are pinnate or divided like the ordinary leaves of the leguminosæ.

Embryology.—It has already been casually noted that certain organs in an individual, which when fully developed become very different and serve different purposes, are identical in the embryo. Additionally, the embryos of different animals within the same class are often remarkably similar: one clear example of this is mentioned by Agassiz, who noted that after forgetting to label the embryo of some vertebrate animal, he couldn't tell if it was a mammal, bird, or reptile. The larval forms of moths, flies, beetles, and so on are much more alike than the mature insects; however, in the case of larvae, the embryos are active and have adapted for specific life paths. A trace of the law of embryonic similarity can sometimes last until later stages: for instance, birds of the same genus and closely related genera often look alike in their first and second feathers, as seen in the spotted feathers in the thrush family. In the cat family, most species have stripes or spots; stripes can clearly be seen in a lion cub. We occasionally, though rarely, observe something similar in plants: for example, the embryonic leaves of the ulex or furze, and the first leaves of the phyllodinous acacias, are pinnate or divided like the regular leaves of the leguminous plants.

The points of structure, in which the embryos of widely different animals of the same class resemble each other, often have no direct relation to their conditions of existence. We cannot, for instance, suppose that in the embryos of the vertebrata the peculiar loop-like course of the arteries near the branchial slits are related to similar conditions,—in the young mammal which is nourished in the womb of its mother, in the egg of the bird which is hatched in a nest, and in the spawn of a frog under water. We have no more reason to believe in such a relation, than we have to believe that the same bones in the hand of a man, wing of a bat, and fin of a porpoise, are related to similar conditions of life. No one will suppose that the stripes on the whelp of a lion, or the spots on the young blackbird, are of any use to these animals, or are related to the conditions to which they are exposed.

The structural features where embryos of very different animals within the same class look alike often have no direct connection to their living conditions. We cannot assume, for example, that in the embryos of vertebrates, the unique loop-like paths of the arteries near the gill slits relate to similar conditions—like a young mammal being nurtured in its mother's womb, a bird embryo developing in an egg in a nest, or frog spawn underwater. We have just as little reason to believe in such a connection as we do in thinking that the same bones found in a human hand, a bat's wing, and a porpoise's fin relate to similar life situations. No one would think that the stripes on a lion cub or the spots on a young blackbird serve any purpose for these animals or are connected to the conditions they face.

The case, however, is different when an animal during any part of its embryonic career is active, and has to provide for itself. The period of activity may come on earlier or later in life; but whenever it comes on, the adaptation of the larva to its conditions of life is just as perfect and as beautiful as in the adult animal. From such special adaptations, the similarity of the larvæ or active embryos of allied animals is sometimes much obscured; and cases could be given of the larvæ of two species, or of two groups of species, differing quite as much, or even more, from each other than do their adult parents. In most cases, however, the larvæ, though active, still obey more or less closely the law of common embryonic resemblance. Cirripedes afford a good instance of this: even the illustrious Cuvier did not perceive that a barnacle was, as it certainly is, a crustacean; but a glance at the larva shows this to be the case in an unmistakeable manner. So again the two main divisions of cirripedes, the pedunculated and sessile, which differ widely in external appearance, have larvæ in all their several stages barely distinguishable.

The situation is different when an animal is active at any stage of its embryonic development and needs to take care of itself. This active phase can start earlier or later in life, but whenever it does begin, the way the larva adapts to its environment is just as impressive and beautiful as in the adult animal. Because of these specific adaptations, the similarities between the larvae or active embryos of related animals can sometimes be greatly obscured; there are instances where the larvae of two species, or two groups of species, can differ as much, or even more, from each other than their adult counterparts do. However, in most cases, the larvae, even though active, still mostly follow the general rule of common embryonic resemblance. Cirripedes are a good example of this: even the famous Cuvier didn’t realize that a barnacle is, as it definitely is, a crustacean; but a quick look at the larva makes it unmistakably clear. Similarly, the two main categories of cirripedes, the stalked and non-stalked types, which look very different on the outside, have larvae in all their various stages that are hardly distinguishable from each other.

The embryo in the course of development generally rises in organisation: I use this expression, though I am aware that it is hardly possible to define clearly what is meant by the organisation being higher or lower. But no one probably will dispute that the butterfly is higher than the caterpillar. In some cases, however, the mature animal is generally considered as lower in the scale than the larva, as with certain parasitic crustaceans. To refer once again to cirripedes: the larvæ in the first stage have three pairs of legs, a very simple single eye, and a probosciformed mouth, with which they feed largely, for they increase much in size. In the second stage, answering to the chrysalis stage of butterflies, they have six pairs of beautifully constructed natatory legs, a pair of magnificent compound eyes, and extremely complex antennæ; but they have a closed and imperfect mouth, and cannot feed: their function at this stage is, to search by their well-developed organs of sense, and to reach by their active powers of swimming, a proper place on which to become attached and to undergo their final metamorphosis. When this is completed they are fixed for life: their legs are now converted into prehensile organs; they again obtain a well-constructed mouth; but they have no antennæ, and their two eyes are now reconverted into a minute, single, and very simple eye-spot. In this last and complete state, cirripedes may be considered as either more highly or more lowly organised than they were in the larval condition. But in some genera the larvæ become developed either into hermaphrodites having the ordinary structure, or into what I have called complemental males: and in the latter, the development has assuredly been retrograde; for the male is a mere sack, which lives for a short time, and is destitute of mouth, stomach, or other organ of importance, excepting for reproduction.

The embryo, as it develops, generally becomes more organized. I use this term knowing it's difficult to precisely define what makes organization higher or lower. However, few would argue that a butterfly is more advanced than a caterpillar. In some cases, though, the adult animal is seen as less advanced than its larva, like with some parasitic crustaceans. Referring again to barnacles: the larvae in their first stage have three pairs of legs, a basic single eye, and a tube-like mouth that they use to feed a lot, as they grow significantly in size. In the second stage, which is similar to the chrysalis stage of butterflies, they develop six pairs of beautifully formed swimming legs, a pair of impressive compound eyes, and very complex antennae; however, they have a closed and undeveloped mouth and cannot feed. Their purpose at this stage is to use their well-developed sensory organs and swimming abilities to find a suitable place to attach themselves and complete their final transformation. Once this is done, they are fixed for life: their legs turn into grasping organs; they gain a well-formed mouth; but they lose their antennae, and their two eyes become a tiny, simple eye-spot. In this final and complete stage, barnacles can be seen as either more or less organized than when they were in the larval stage. However, in some genera, the larvae develop into either hermaphrodites with a typical structure or what I've referred to as complemental males; in the latter case, their development has definitely regressed because the male is simply a sack that lives for a short time and lacks mouth, stomach, or any important organ other than for reproduction.

We are so much accustomed to see differences in structure between the embryo and the adult, and likewise a close similarity in the embryos of widely different animals within the same class, that we might be led to look at these facts as necessarily contingent in some manner on growth. But there is no obvious reason why, for instance, the wing of a bat, or the fin of a porpoise, should not have been sketched out with all the parts in proper proportion, as soon as any structure became visible in the embryo. And in some whole groups of animals and in certain members of other groups, the embryo does not at any period differ widely from the adult: thus Owen has remarked in regard to cuttle-fish, “there is no metamorphosis; the cephalopodic character is manifested long before the parts of the embryo are completed;” and again in spiders, “there is nothing worthy to be called a metamorphosis.” The larvæ of insects, whether adapted to the most diverse and active habits, or quite inactive, being fed by their parents or placed in the midst of proper nutriment, yet nearly all pass through a similar worm-like stage of development; but in some few cases, as in that of Aphis, if we look to the admirable drawings by Professor Huxley of the development of this insect, we see no trace of the vermiform stage.

We are so used to seeing differences in structure between embryos and adults, and also a close similarity in the embryos of very different animals within the same class, that we might think these facts are somehow connected to growth. However, there’s no clear reason why, for example, the wing of a bat or the fin of a porpoise couldn't have been outlined with all the parts in proper proportion as soon as any structure became visible in the embryo. In fact, in entire groups of animals and certain members of other groups, the embryo doesn’t differ much from the adult at any stage: Owen noted about cuttlefish, “there is no metamorphosis; the cephalopodic character is evident long before the embryo's parts are fully formed;” and again regarding spiders, “there is nothing worth calling a metamorphosis.” The larvae of insects, regardless of their diverse and active habits or being quite inactive, whether nourished by their parents or provided with appropriate food, nearly all go through a similar worm-like stage of development; yet in a few cases, such as Aphis, if we look at the excellent drawings by Professor Huxley of this insect's development, we find no trace of the worm-like stage.

How, then, can we explain these several facts in embryology,—namely the very general, but not universal difference in structure between the embryo and the adult;—of parts in the same individual embryo, which ultimately become very unlike and serve for diverse purposes, being at this early period of growth alike;—of embryos of different species within the same class, generally, but not universally, resembling each other;—of the structure of the embryo not being closely related to its conditions of existence, except when the embryo becomes at any period of life active and has to provide for itself;—of the embryo apparently having sometimes a higher organisation than the mature animal, into which it is developed. I believe that all these facts can be explained, as follows, on the view of descent with modification.

How, then, can we explain these various facts in embryology—specifically, the common but not universal differences in structure between embryos and adults; the parts of the same individual embryo that eventually become very different and serve various functions, yet are similar during this early growth stage; the embryos of different species within the same class that generally, but not always, resemble each other; the structure of the embryo not being closely related to its living conditions, except when the embryo becomes active at any point in its life and needs to take care of itself; and the embryo sometimes appearing to have a more advanced organization than the mature animal it develops into? I believe all these facts can be explained by the idea of descent with modification.

It is commonly assumed, perhaps from monstrosities often affecting the embryo at a very early period, that slight variations necessarily appear at an equally early period. But we have little evidence on this head—indeed the evidence rather points the other way; for it is notorious that breeders of cattle, horses, and various fancy animals, cannot positively tell, until some time after the animal has been born, what its merits or form will ultimately turn out. We see this plainly in our own children; we cannot always tell whether the child will be tall or short, or what its precise features will be. The question is not, at what period of life any variation has been caused, but at what period it is fully displayed. The cause may have acted, and I believe generally has acted, even before the embryo is formed; and the variation may be due to the male and female sexual elements having been affected by the conditions to which either parent, or their ancestors, have been exposed. Nevertheless an effect thus caused at a very early period, even before the formation of the embryo, may appear late in life; as when an hereditary disease, which appears in old age alone, has been communicated to the offspring from the reproductive element of one parent. Or again, as when the horns of cross-bred cattle have been affected by the shape of the horns of either parent. For the welfare of a very young animal, as long as it remains in its mother’s womb, or in the egg, or as long as it is nourished and protected by its parent, it must be quite unimportant whether most of its characters are fully acquired a little earlier or later in life. It would not signify, for instance, to a bird which obtained its food best by having a long beak, whether or not it assumed a beak of this particular length, as long as it was fed by its parents. Hence, I conclude, that it is quite possible, that each of the many successive modifications, by which each species has acquired its present structure, may have supervened at a not very early period of life; and some direct evidence from our domestic animals supports this view. But in other cases it is quite possible that each successive modification, or most of them, may have appeared at an extremely early period.

It’s commonly thought, probably because of the abnormal changes that can happen to embryos early on, that minor variations also occur at a similar early stage. However, we have limited evidence to support this—actually, the evidence suggests the opposite; it’s well known that breeders of cattle, horses, and various exotic animals can’t accurately predict the animal's traits or appearance until some time after it’s been born. We can see this clearly in our own children; we can’t always determine whether a child will be tall or short, or what their specific features will be. The key question isn’t when any variation happens in life, but when it becomes fully noticeable. The cause may have occurred, and I believe usually does, even before the embryo forms; and variations might result from the male and female reproductive cells being influenced by the conditions faced by either parent or their ancestors. Still, an effect caused at an early stage, even before the embryo forms, can manifest later in life; for example, an inherited disease that only shows up in old age might have been passed on to offspring from one parent’s reproductive cells. Alternatively, the shape of the horns in crossbred cattle could have been influenced by the horn shape of either parent. For the well-being of a very young animal, while it’s still in its mother’s womb, in an egg, or while it’s being nourished and cared for by a parent, it doesn’t really matter if most of its traits are fully developed a bit earlier or later in life. It wouldn’t matter, for instance, to a bird that benefits from having a long beak for finding food whether it develops that beak length early or late, as long as its parents are feeding it. Therefore, I conclude that it's entirely possible that each of the many gradual changes that have helped each species achieve its current structure could have occurred later in life; and some direct evidence from our domestic animals supports this idea. But in other instances, it’s also quite possible that most of these successive changes could have appeared very early on.

I have stated in the first chapter, that there is some evidence to render it probable, that at whatever age any variation first appears in the parent, it tends to reappear at a corresponding age in the offspring. Certain variations can only appear at corresponding ages, for instance, peculiarities in the caterpillar, cocoon, or imago states of the silk-moth; or, again, in the horns of almost full-grown cattle. But further than this, variations which, for all that we can see, might have appeared earlier or later in life, tend to appear at a corresponding age in the offspring and parent. I am far from meaning that this is invariably the case; and I could give a good many cases of variations (taking the word in the largest sense) which have supervened at an earlier age in the child than in the parent.

I mentioned in the first chapter that there's some evidence suggesting that whenever any variation first appears in the parent, it tends to show up at a similar age in the offspring. Certain variations can only occur at specific ages, like the characteristics of the caterpillar, cocoon, or adult stages of the silk moth, or the horns of nearly full-grown cattle. Beyond that, variations that could potentially appear earlier or later in life often tend to occur at a similar age in both the offspring and the parent. I don't mean to say that this happens all the time; I could provide several examples of variations (using the term in its broadest sense) that have appeared at an earlier age in the child than in the parent.

These two principles, if their truth be admitted, will, I believe, explain all the above specified leading facts in embryology. But first let us look at a few analogous cases in domestic varieties. Some authors who have written on Dogs, maintain that the greyhound and bulldog, though appearing so different, are really varieties most closely allied, and have probably descended from the same wild stock; hence I was curious to see how far their puppies differed from each other: I was told by breeders that they differed just as much as their parents, and this, judging by the eye, seemed almost to be the case; but on actually measuring the old dogs and their six-days old puppies, I found that the puppies had not nearly acquired their full amount of proportional difference. So, again, I was told that the foals of cart and race-horses differed as much as the full-grown animals; and this surprised me greatly, as I think it probable that the difference between these two breeds has been wholly caused by selection under domestication; but having had careful measurements made of the dam and of a three-days old colt of a race and heavy cart-horse, I find that the colts have by no means acquired their full amount of proportional difference.

These two principles, if their truth is accepted, will, I believe, explain all the main facts mentioned above in embryology. But first, let’s look at a few similar cases in domestic breeds. Some authors who have written about dogs argue that the greyhound and bulldog, despite looking so different, are actually closely related varieties and probably descended from the same wild ancestor; this made me curious to see how much their puppies differed from each other. I was told by breeders that the puppies differed just as much as their parents, which, judging by appearance, seemed almost true. However, after measuring the adult dogs and their six-day-old puppies, I found that the puppies had not yet developed their full proportional differences. Similarly, I was told that the foals of cart horses and racehorses differed as much as the fully grown animals, which surprised me because I believe that the difference between these two breeds is likely entirely due to breeding under domestication. But after taking careful measurements of the mare and a three-day-old colt from a racehorse and a heavy cart horse, I discovered that the colts had by no means developed their full proportional differences.

As the evidence appears to me conclusive, that the several domestic breeds of Pigeon have descended from one wild species, I compared young pigeons of various breeds, within twelve hours after being hatched; I carefully measured the proportions (but will not here give details) of the beak, width of mouth, length of nostril and of eyelid, size of feet and length of leg, in the wild stock, in pouters, fantails, runts, barbs, dragons, carriers, and tumblers. Now some of these birds, when mature, differ so extraordinarily in length and form of beak, that they would, I cannot doubt, be ranked in distinct genera, had they been natural productions. But when the nestling birds of these several breeds were placed in a row, though most of them could be distinguished from each other, yet their proportional differences in the above specified several points were incomparably less than in the full-grown birds. Some characteristic points of difference—for instance, that of the width of mouth—could hardly be detected in the young. But there was one remarkable exception to this rule, for the young of the short-faced tumbler differed from the young of the wild rock-pigeon and of the other breeds, in all its proportions, almost exactly as much as in the adult state.

As the evidence seems conclusive to me that the different domestic breeds of pigeons have come from one wild species, I compared young pigeons of various breeds within twelve hours after they hatched. I carefully measured their features (but won’t go into details here) including the size of the beak, width of the mouth, length of the nostril and eyelid, size of the feet, and length of the legs, in the wild stock, along with pouters, fantails, runts, barbs, dragons, carriers, and tumblers. Some of these birds, when fully grown, vary so much in the length and shape of their beaks that I have no doubt they would be classified as different genera if they were naturally occurring species. However, when the young birds from these various breeds were lined up, even though most of them could be distinguished from one another, their proportional differences in the features I mentioned were incomparably smaller than in the fully grown birds. Some distinguishing features—like the width of the mouth—were hardly noticeable in the young ones. But there was one notable exception to this rule: the young of the short-faced tumbler differed from the young of the wild rock-pigeon and the other breeds in all its proportions, almost exactly as much as in the adult state.

The two principles above given seem to me to explain these facts in regard to the later embryonic stages of our domestic varieties. Fanciers select their horses, dogs, and pigeons, for breeding, when they are nearly grown up: they are indifferent whether the desired qualities and structures have been acquired earlier or later in life, if the full-grown animal possesses them. And the cases just given, more especially that of pigeons, seem to show that the characteristic differences which give value to each breed, and which have been accumulated by man’s selection, have not generally first appeared at an early period of life, and have been inherited by the offspring at a corresponding not early period. But the case of the short-faced tumbler, which when twelve hours old had acquired its proper proportions, proves that this is not the universal rule; for here the characteristic differences must either have appeared at an earlier period than usual, or, if not so, the differences must have been inherited, not at the corresponding, but at an earlier age.

The two principles mentioned above seem to explain these facts regarding the later stages of development in our domestic varieties. Breeders select their horses, dogs, and pigeons for breeding when they are nearly fully grown: they don't mind whether the desired traits and features developed earlier or later in life, as long as the adult animal has them. The examples provided, especially that of pigeons, suggest that the distinctive traits that make each breed valuable, which have been accumulated through human selection, typically do not appear at an early age and are inherited by offspring at a similarly later stage. However, the case of the short-faced tumbler, which had already developed its proper proportions just twelve hours after birth, shows that this is not a universal rule; in this instance, the distinctive traits must have either emerged earlier than usual, or if not, the traits must have been inherited at an earlier age instead of the usual timeframe.

Now let us apply these facts and the above two principles—which latter, though not proved true, can be shown to be in some degree probable—to species in a state of nature. Let us take a genus of birds, descended on my theory from some one parent-species, and of which the several new species have become modified through natural selection in accordance with their diverse habits. Then, from the many slight successive steps of variation having supervened at a rather late age, and having been inherited at a corresponding age, the young of the new species of our supposed genus will manifestly tend to resemble each other much more closely than do the adults, just as we have seen in the case of pigeons. We may extend this view to whole families or even classes. The fore-limbs, for instance, which served as legs in the parent-species, may become, by a long course of modification, adapted in one descendant to act as hands, in another as paddles, in another as wings; and on the above two principles—namely of each successive modification supervening at a rather late age, and being inherited at a corresponding late age—the fore-limbs in the embryos of the several descendants of the parent-species will still resemble each other closely, for they will not have been modified. But in each individual new species, the embryonic fore-limbs will differ greatly from the fore-limbs in the mature animal; the limbs in the latter having undergone much modification at a rather late period of life, and having thus been converted into hands, or paddles, or wings. Whatever influence long-continued exercise or use on the one hand, and disuse on the other, may have in modifying an organ, such influence will mainly affect the mature animal, which has come to its full powers of activity and has to gain its own living; and the effects thus produced will be inherited at a corresponding mature age. Whereas the young will remain unmodified, or be modified in a lesser degree, by the effects of use and disuse.

Now let’s apply these facts and the two principles mentioned above—which, while not definitively proven, can be shown to be somewhat likely—to species in their natural environment. Let’s consider a genus of birds, which according to my theory comes from a single parent species, and from which the various new species have been adapted through natural selection based on their different habits. Due to the many small changes that have taken place later in life and been inherited accordingly, the young of our imagined genus will obviously tend to look much more alike than the adults, much like we have observed in pigeons. We can expand this idea to entire families or even classes. For example, the forelimbs that functioned as legs in the parent species may, after a long process of change, evolve in one descendant to become hands, in another to become paddles, and in yet another to become wings. Based on the two principles—that each successive change occurs relatively late in life and is inherited at a corresponding late age—the forelimbs in the embryos of the various descendants of the parent species will still closely resemble each other, as they won’t have undergone modifications. However, in each new species, the embryonic forelimbs will be quite different from the limbs of the mature animal; the limbs of the latter will have been significantly changed later in life to become hands, paddles, or wings. Any effects of prolonged use or disuse on the one hand will mainly impact the mature animal, which has developed its full capabilities and needs to provide for itself; and the resulting changes will be passed down at a similar mature age. Meanwhile, the young will remain largely unchanged or will show only minor modifications from the impacts of use and disuse.

In certain cases the successive steps of variation might supervene, from causes of which we are wholly ignorant, at a very early period of life, or each step might be inherited at an earlier period than that at which it first appeared. In either case (as with the short-faced tumbler) the young or embryo would closely resemble the mature parent-form. We have seen that this is the rule of development in certain whole groups of animals, as with cuttle-fish and spiders, and with a few members of the great class of insects, as with Aphis. With respect to the final cause of the young in these cases not undergoing any metamorphosis, or closely resembling their parents from their earliest age, we can see that this would result from the two following contingencies; firstly, from the young, during a course of modification carried on for many generations, having to provide for their own wants at a very early stage of development, and secondly, from their following exactly the same habits of life with their parents; for in this case, it would be indispensable for the existence of the species, that the child should be modified at a very early age in the same manner with its parents, in accordance with their similar habits. Some further explanation, however, of the embryo not undergoing any metamorphosis is perhaps requisite. If, on the other hand, it profited the young to follow habits of life in any degree different from those of their parent, and consequently to be constructed in a slightly different manner, then, on the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages, the active young or larvæ might easily be rendered by natural selection different to any conceivable extent from their parents. Such differences might, also, become correlated with successive stages of development; so that the larvæ, in the first stage, might differ greatly from the larvæ in the second stage, as we have seen to be the case with cirripedes. The adult might become fitted for sites or habits, in which organs of locomotion or of the senses, etc., would be useless; and in this case the final metamorphosis would be said to be retrograde.

In some cases, the gradual steps of change might occur due to reasons we completely don't understand, at a very young age, or each step might be passed down earlier than when it first occurred. In either situation (like with the short-faced tumbler), the young or embryo would closely resemble the adult form of the parent. We have observed that this is the pattern of development in certain entire groups of animals, such as cuttlefish and spiders, and with some members of the large class of insects, like aphids. Regarding why the young in these cases do not undergo any transformation, or look very much like their parents from an early age, we can see that this might be due to two factors: first, the young having to meet their own needs at a very early stage of growth during a long process of change, and second, because they follow the same lifestyle habits as their parents. In this case, for the species to survive, it would be essential for the offspring to develop in a way similar to their parents due to their shared habits. However, we might need to explain further why the embryo doesn’t undergo any transformation. If it benefited the young to adopt habits that were somewhat different from those of their parents, and therefore be built in a slightly different way, then, based on the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages, the active young or larvae could, through natural selection, end up quite different from their parents. These differences could also align with different stages of development; for example, the larvae in the first stage might be significantly different from those in the second stage, as we observed with barnacles. The adult could become suited for environments or lifestyles where limbs for movement or senses would be unnecessary; in this case, the final change would be described as retrogressive.

As all the organic beings, extinct and recent, which have ever lived on this earth have to be classed together, and as all have been connected by the finest gradations, the best, or indeed, if our collections were nearly perfect, the only possible arrangement, would be genealogical. Descent being on my view the hidden bond of connexion which naturalists have been seeking under the term of the natural system. On this view we can understand how it is that, in the eyes of most naturalists, the structure of the embryo is even more important for classification than that of the adult. For the embryo is the animal in its less modified state; and in so far it reveals the structure of its progenitor. In two groups of animal, however much they may at present differ from each other in structure and habits, if they pass through the same or similar embryonic stages, we may feel assured that they have both descended from the same or nearly similar parents, and are therefore in that degree closely related. Thus, community in embryonic structure reveals community of descent. It will reveal this community of descent, however much the structure of the adult may have been modified and obscured; we have seen, for instance, that cirripedes can at once be recognised by their larvæ as belonging to the great class of crustaceans. As the embryonic state of each species and group of species partially shows us the structure of their less modified ancient progenitors, we can clearly see why ancient and extinct forms of life should resemble the embryos of their descendants,—our existing species. Agassiz believes this to be a law of nature; but I am bound to confess that I only hope to see the law hereafter proved true. It can be proved true in those cases alone in which the ancient state, now supposed to be represented in many embryos, has not been obliterated, either by the successive variations in a long course of modification having supervened at a very early age, or by the variations having been inherited at an earlier period than that at which they first appeared. It should also be borne in mind, that the supposed law of resemblance of ancient forms of life to the embryonic stages of recent forms, may be true, but yet, owing to the geological record not extending far enough back in time, may remain for a long period, or for ever, incapable of demonstration.

As all living things, both extinct and current, that have ever existed on this planet need to be classified together—and since all have been connected by the smallest distinctions—the best arrangement, or really, if our collections were nearly perfect, the only sensible arrangement, would be genealogical. In my opinion, descent is the hidden connection that naturalists have been trying to identify as the natural system. This perspective helps explain why, for most naturalists, the structure of the embryo is considered even more crucial for classification than that of the adult. The embryo represents the animal in its less altered state, revealing the structure of its ancestor. In two groups of animals, no matter how much they may differ in structure and behavior today, if they go through the same or similar embryonic stages, we can be confident that they both descended from the same or closely related parents, making them closely related in that respect. Therefore, similarities in embryonic structure indicate shared ancestry. It will show this shared ancestry, regardless of how much the adult structure has been changed and obscured; for example, we have observed that barnacles can be immediately recognized by their larvae as part of the large class of crustaceans. As the embryonic state of each species and groups of species partially reveals the structure of their less altered ancient ancestors, we can clearly understand why ancient and extinct life forms should resemble the embryos of their descendant species—our existing species. Agassiz believes this to be a natural law; however, I must admit that I can only hope to see this law proven true in the future. It can only be proved true in those cases where the ancient state, now thought to be reflected in many embryos, hasn’t been erased, either due to successive changes occurring over a long period of modification starting at a very early age, or because variations were inherited earlier than when they first appeared. It's also important to remember that while the hypothesized resemblance of ancient life forms to the embryonic stages of modern forms may be accurate, the geological record might not go back far enough in time to demonstrate this for a long time, or possibly ever.

Thus, as it seems to me, the leading facts in embryology, which are second in importance to none in natural history, are explained on the principle of slight modifications not appearing, in the many descendants from some one ancient progenitor, at a very early period in the life of each, though perhaps caused at the earliest, and being inherited at a corresponding not early period. Embryology rises greatly in interest, when we thus look at the embryo as a picture, more or less obscured, of the common parent-form of each great class of animals.

So, it seems to me that the key facts in embryology, which are just as important as anything else in natural history, can be explained by the idea that minor changes don’t show up in the many descendants of a single ancient ancestor very early in their lives, even though these changes might have started at the earliest stages. These changes get passed down, but only appear at a later time. Embryology becomes much more interesting when we see the embryo as a somewhat unclear representation of the common ancestor for each major class of animals.

Rudimentary, atrophied, or aborted organs.—Organs or parts in this strange condition, bearing the stamp of inutility, are extremely common throughout nature. For instance, rudimentary mammæ are very general in the males of mammals: I presume that the “bastard-wing” in birds may be safely considered as a digit in a rudimentary state: in very many snakes one lobe of the lungs is rudimentary; in other snakes there are rudiments of the pelvis and hind limbs. Some of the cases of rudimentary organs are extremely curious; for instance, the presence of teeth in foetal whales, which when grown up have not a tooth in their heads; and the presence of teeth, which never cut through the gums, in the upper jaws of our unborn calves. It has even been stated on good authority that rudiments of teeth can be detected in the beaks of certain embryonic birds. Nothing can be plainer than that wings are formed for flight, yet in how many insects do we see wings so reduced in size as to be utterly incapable of flight, and not rarely lying under wing-cases, firmly soldered together!

Rudimentary, atrophied, or aborted organs.—Organs or body parts in this unusual state, showing clear signs of uselessness, are very common in nature. For example, rudimentary mammary glands are quite common in male mammals; I believe that the “bastard-wing” in birds can be considered a digit in a rudimentary form. In many snakes, one lobe of the lungs is underdeveloped; in other snakes, there are remnants of the pelvis and hind limbs. Some examples of rudimentary organs are very interesting, like the presence of teeth in fetal whales, which have no teeth when they grow up, and the presence of teeth that never break through the gums in the upper jaws of unborn calves. It has even been reported by credible sources that remnants of teeth can be found in the beaks of certain embryonic birds. It is clear that wings are designed for flying, yet how many insects have wings that are so small they can't fly at all, often found lying under wing cases, tightly stuck together!

The meaning of rudimentary organs is often quite unmistakeable: for instance there are beetles of the same genus (and even of the same species) resembling each other most closely in all respects, one of which will have full-sized wings, and another mere rudiments of membrane; and here it is impossible to doubt, that the rudiments represent wings. Rudimentary organs sometimes retain their potentiality, and are merely not developed: this seems to be the case with the mammæ of male mammals, for many instances are on record of these organs having become well developed in full-grown males, and having secreted milk. So again there are normally four developed and two rudimentary teats in the udders of the genus Bos, but in our domestic cows the two sometimes become developed and give milk. In individual plants of the same species the petals sometimes occur as mere rudiments, and sometimes in a well-developed state. In plants with separated sexes, the male flowers often have a rudiment of a pistil; and Kölreuter found that by crossing such male plants with an hermaphrodite species, the rudiment of the pistil in the hybrid offspring was much increased in size; and this shows that the rudiment and the perfect pistil are essentially alike in nature.

The meaning of rudimentary organs is often quite clear: for example, there are beetles of the same genus (and even the same species) that look almost identical in every way, but one will have fully developed wings while the other has only small remnants of wings; in this case, it’s obvious that the remnants represent wings. Sometimes, rudimentary organs still have the potential to develop but just aren't fully formed: this seems to apply to the mammary glands of male mammals, as there are many documented cases where these organs have fully developed in adult males and produced milk. Similarly, there are typically four developed and two rudimentary teats in the udders of the genus Bos, but in our domestic cows, the two rudimentary teats can sometimes develop and produce milk. In individual plants of the same species, the petals can sometimes appear as mere remnants or sometimes be well-developed. In plants with separate sexes, male flowers often have a rudiment of a pistil; and Kölreuter found that when he crossed such male plants with a hermaphrodite species, the rudiment of the pistil in the hybrid offspring grew much larger; this indicates that the rudiment and the fully developed pistil are essentially alike in nature.

An organ serving for two purposes, may become rudimentary or utterly aborted for one, even the more important purpose; and remain perfectly efficient for the other. Thus in plants, the office of the pistil is to allow the pollen-tubes to reach the ovules protected in the ovarium at its base. The pistil consists of a stigma supported on the style; but in some Compositæ, the male florets, which of course cannot be fecundated, have a pistil, which is in a rudimentary state, for it is not crowned with a stigma; but the style remains well developed, and is clothed with hairs as in other compositæ, for the purpose of brushing the pollen out of the surrounding anthers. Again, an organ may become rudimentary for its proper purpose, and be used for a distinct object: in certain fish the swim-bladder seems to be rudimentary for its proper function of giving buoyancy, but has become converted into a nascent breathing organ or lung. Other similar instances could be given.

An organ that serves two purposes might become less developed or completely useless for one, even the more important one, while still working perfectly for the other. For example, in plants, the pistil's role is to let pollen tubes reach the ovules protected in the ovary at its base. The pistil has a stigma supported by the style; however, in some Compositæ, the male florets, which obviously can't be fertilized, have a pistil that is only partly developed, as it lacks a stigma. But the style is well-formed and covered with hairs like in other Compositæ, serving the purpose of brushing pollen out of the surrounding anthers. Similarly, an organ might be reduced for its intended purpose and instead serve another function: in some fish, the swim bladder appears to be underdeveloped for its primary function of providing buoyancy, but has transformed into an early version of a breathing organ or lung. There are more similar examples to mention.

Rudimentary organs in the individuals of the same species are very liable to vary in degree of development and in other respects. Moreover, in closely allied species, the degree to which the same organ has been rendered rudimentary occasionally differs much. This latter fact is well exemplified in the state of the wings of the female moths in certain groups. Rudimentary organs may be utterly aborted; and this implies, that we find in an animal or plant no trace of an organ, which analogy would lead us to expect to find, and which is occasionally found in monstrous individuals of the species. Thus in the snapdragon (antirrhinum) we generally do not find a rudiment of a fifth stamen; but this may sometimes be seen. In tracing the homologies of the same part in different members of a class, nothing is more common, or more necessary, than the use and discovery of rudiments. This is well shown in the drawings given by Owen of the bones of the leg of the horse, ox, and rhinoceros.

Rudimentary organs in individuals of the same species can vary greatly in how developed they are and in other ways. Additionally, in closely related species, the extent to which the same organ has become rudimentary can differ significantly. This is clearly seen in the wings of female moths in certain groups. Rudimentary organs can be completely absent, indicating that we find no trace of an organ that we would expect to see based on analogy, and which may sometimes appear in abnormal individuals of the species. For instance, in the snapdragon (antirrhinum), we usually don't find a rudiment of a fifth stamen, but it can sometimes be observed. When looking at the similarities of the same part in different members of a class, nothing is more common or essential than the identification and study of rudiments. This is well illustrated in the drawings by Owen of the leg bones of the horse, ox, and rhinoceros.

It is an important fact that rudimentary organs, such as teeth in the upper jaws of whales and ruminants, can often be detected in the embryo, but afterwards wholly disappear. It is also, I believe, a universal rule, that a rudimentary part or organ is of greater size relatively to the adjoining parts in the embryo, than in the adult; so that the organ at this early age is less rudimentary, or even cannot be said to be in any degree rudimentary. Hence, also, a rudimentary organ in the adult, is often said to have retained its embryonic condition.

It’s an important fact that basic organs, like the teeth in the upper jaws of whales and certain animals that chew cud, can often be found in embryos but completely disappear later on. I also believe it’s a general rule that a rudimentary part or organ is relatively larger compared to the surrounding parts in the embryo than it is in the adult. Therefore, at this early stage, the organ is less rudimentary or might not even be considered rudimentary at all. As a result, a rudimentary organ in an adult is often said to have kept its embryonic form.

I have now given the leading facts with respect to rudimentary organs. In reflecting on them, every one must be struck with astonishment: for the same reasoning power which tells us plainly that most parts and organs are exquisitely adapted for certain purposes, tells us with equal plainness that these rudimentary or atrophied organs, are imperfect and useless. In works on natural history rudimentary organs are generally said to have been created “for the sake of symmetry,” or in order “to complete the scheme of nature;” but this seems to me no explanation, merely a restatement of the fact. Would it be thought sufficient to say that because planets revolve in elliptic courses round the sun, satellites follow the same course round the planets, for the sake of symmetry, and to complete the scheme of nature? An eminent physiologist accounts for the presence of rudimentary organs, by supposing that they serve to excrete matter in excess, or injurious to the system; but can we suppose that the minute papilla, which often represents the pistil in male flowers, and which is formed merely of cellular tissue, can thus act? Can we suppose that the formation of rudimentary teeth which are subsequently absorbed, can be of any service to the rapidly growing embryonic calf by the excretion of precious phosphate of lime? When a man’s fingers have been amputated, imperfect nails sometimes appear on the stumps: I could as soon believe that these vestiges of nails have appeared, not from unknown laws of growth, but in order to excrete horny matter, as that the rudimentary nails on the fin of the manatee were formed for this purpose.

I have now provided the key details about rudimentary organs. When thinking about them, everyone must be amazed: because the same reasoning that clearly shows us that most parts and organs are perfectly suited for specific purposes also clearly indicates that these rudimentary or underdeveloped organs are flawed and pointless. In natural history books, rudimentary organs are often said to have been created "for the sake of symmetry" or to "complete the scheme of nature;" but to me, this is not an explanation, just a restatement of the fact. Would it make sense to say that because planets orbit the sun in elliptical paths, satellites follow the same paths around the planets for the sake of symmetry and to complete the scheme of nature? A well-known physiologist explains the existence of rudimentary organs by suggesting they help remove excess or harmful materials from the system; but can we really believe that the tiny structure that often represents the pistil in male flowers, made up of just cellular tissue, can serve that function? Can we believe that the development of rudimentary teeth, which are later absorbed, is in any way beneficial to a fast-growing embryonic calf by getting rid of valuable phosphate of lime? When a person has lost fingers, imperfect nails sometimes show up on the stumps: I could just as easily believe that these remnants of nails appeared not due to unknown growth laws but instead to excrete keratin, as I could believe that the rudimentary nails on the fin of the manatee were formed for this purpose.

On my view of descent with modification, the origin of rudimentary organs is simple. We have plenty of cases of rudimentary organs in our domestic productions,—as the stump of a tail in tailless breeds,—the vestige of an ear in earless breeds,—the reappearance of minute dangling horns in hornless breeds of cattle, more especially, according to Youatt, in young animals,—and the state of the whole flower in the cauliflower. We often see rudiments of various parts in monsters. But I doubt whether any of these cases throw light on the origin of rudimentary organs in a state of nature, further than by showing that rudiments can be produced; for I doubt whether species under nature ever undergo abrupt changes. I believe that disuse has been the main agency; that it has led in successive generations to the gradual reduction of various organs, until they have become rudimentary,—as in the case of the eyes of animals inhabiting dark caverns, and of the wings of birds inhabiting oceanic islands, which have seldom been forced to take flight, and have ultimately lost the power of flying. Again, an organ useful under certain conditions, might become injurious under others, as with the wings of beetles living on small and exposed islands; and in this case natural selection would continue slowly to reduce the organ, until it was rendered harmless and rudimentary.

In my understanding of evolution through change, the origin of rudimentary organs is straightforward. We have many examples of rudimentary organs in our domesticated animals—like the tail stub in tailless breeds, the remnants of an ear in earless breeds, and the tiny, hanging horns in hornless cattle, particularly seen in younger animals, as noted by Youatt—and even the structure of the whole flower in the cauliflower. We often observe rudimentary parts in anomalies. However, I’m not sure any of these cases clarify the origin of rudimentary organs in nature, except to demonstrate that rudiments can develop; I doubt species in the wild ever undergo sudden changes. I think that lack of use has been the primary factor, leading to a gradual reduction of various organs over generations until they become rudimentary—like the eyes of animals living in dark caves and the wings of birds on isolated oceanic islands, which rarely need to fly and eventually lose that ability. Furthermore, an organ that is beneficial in certain conditions might become disadvantageous in others, such as the wings of beetles on small, exposed islands; in this case, natural selection would gradually reduce the organ until it became harmless and rudimentary.

Any change in function, which can be effected by insensibly small steps, is within the power of natural selection; so that an organ rendered, during changed habits of life, useless or injurious for one purpose, might easily be modified and used for another purpose. Or an organ might be retained for one alone of its former functions. An organ, when rendered useless, may well be variable, for its variations cannot be checked by natural selection. At whatever period of life disuse or selection reduces an organ, and this will generally be when the being has come to maturity and to its full powers of action, the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages will reproduce the organ in its reduced state at the same age, and consequently will seldom affect or reduce it in the embryo. Thus we can understand the greater relative size of rudimentary organs in the embryo, and their lesser relative size in the adult. But if each step of the process of reduction were to be inherited, not at the corresponding age, but at an extremely early period of life (as we have good reason to believe to be possible) the rudimentary part would tend to be wholly lost, and we should have a case of complete abortion. The principle, also, of economy, explained in a former chapter, by which the materials forming any part or structure, if not useful to the possessor, will be saved as far as is possible, will probably often come into play; and this will tend to cause the entire obliteration of a rudimentary organ.

Any change in function, which can happen through tiny steps, is within the reach of natural selection. So, an organ that becomes useless or harmful due to changes in lifestyle could easily be modified and used for a different purpose. Alternatively, an organ might be kept for just one of its previous functions. An organ that becomes useless is likely to vary, as its variations won’t be limited by natural selection. Whenever disuse or selection leads to a reduction of an organ, it usually happens when the organism has matured and reached its full ability to act. The principle of inheritance at similar ages will reproduce the organ in its reduced form at that same age, which means it usually won’t be affected or reduced in the embryo. This explains why rudimentary organs are relatively bigger in the embryo and smaller in the adult. However, if each stage of the reduction process were to be inherited not at the corresponding age but at an extremely early stage of life (which we have strong reasons to believe is possible), the rudimentary part would likely be completely lost, resulting in total abortion. Additionally, the principle of economy, which was explained in a previous chapter, suggests that materials forming any part or structure that aren’t useful to the organism will be conserved as much as possible; this will likely lead to the complete disappearance of a rudimentary organ.

As the presence of rudimentary organs is thus due to the tendency in every part of the organisation, which has long existed, to be inherited—we can understand, on the genealogical view of classification, how it is that systematists have found rudimentary parts as useful as, or even sometimes more useful than, parts of high physiological importance. Rudimentary organs may be compared with the letters in a word, still retained in the spelling, but become useless in the pronunciation, but which serve as a clue in seeking for its derivation. On the view of descent with modification, we may conclude that the existence of organs in a rudimentary, imperfect, and useless condition, or quite aborted, far from presenting a strange difficulty, as they assuredly do on the ordinary doctrine of creation, might even have been anticipated, and can be accounted for by the laws of inheritance.

Since rudimentary organs exist because there’s a long-standing tendency in every part of the organism to be inherited, we can see from a genealogical perspective of classification why systematists have found rudimentary parts to be as valuable, or sometimes even more valuable, than highly functional parts. Rudimentary organs can be likened to letters in a word that are still part of the spelling but are useless in pronunciation; however, they provide a clue for tracing the word's origin. From the perspective of descent with modification, we can conclude that the presence of organs in a rudimentary, imperfect, and nonfunctional state—or completely undeveloped—doesn’t present an odd challenge, as it certainly would under the traditional creationist view. Instead, it can be anticipated and explained through the laws of inheritance.

Summary.—In this chapter I have attempted to show, that the subordination of group to group in all organisms throughout all time; that the nature of the relationship, by which all living and extinct beings are united by complex, radiating, and circuitous lines of affinities into one grand system; the rules followed and the difficulties encountered by naturalists in their classifications; the value set upon characters, if constant and prevalent, whether of high vital importance, or of the most trifling importance, or, as in rudimentary organs, of no importance; the wide opposition in value between analogical or adaptive characters, and characters of true affinity; and other such rules;—all naturally follow on the view of the common parentage of those forms which are considered by naturalists as allied, together with their modification through natural selection, with its contingencies of extinction and divergence of character. In considering this view of classification, it should be borne in mind that the element of descent has been universally used in ranking together the sexes, ages, and acknowledged varieties of the same species, however different they may be in structure. If we extend the use of this element of descent,—the only certainly known cause of similarity in organic beings,—we shall understand what is meant by the natural system: it is genealogical in its attempted arrangement, with the grades of acquired difference marked by the terms varieties, species, genera, families, orders, and classes.

Summary.—In this chapter, I have tried to illustrate that the hierarchy of groups within all organisms has existed throughout time; that the way all living and extinct beings are connected by complex, branching, and indirect lines of relationships creates one grand system; the principles followed and the challenges faced by naturalists in their classifications; the importance placed on characteristics, whether they are consistent and widespread, vital, trivial, or in the case of rudimentary organs, negligible; the significant differences in value between analogous or adaptive traits and traits of true affinity; and other related principles—all logically stem from the idea of common ancestry among those forms that naturalists consider related, along with their changes through natural selection, including the factors of extinction and the divergence of characteristics. When thinking about this classification perspective, it's important to remember that the concept of descent has been universally applied to group together the sexes, ages, and recognized varieties of the same species, no matter how different their structures may be. If we broaden the use of this descent concept—the only definitely known reason for similarity among living beings—we will grasp what is meant by the natural system: it is organized genealogically, with the levels of acquired differences marked by the terms varieties, species, genera, families, orders, and classes.

On this same view of descent with modification, all the great facts in Morphology become intelligible,—whether we look to the same pattern displayed in the homologous organs, to whatever purpose applied, of the different species of a class; or to the homologous parts constructed on the same pattern in each individual animal and plant.

On this same idea of descent with modification, all the major facts in Morphology make sense—whether we look at the same pattern shown in the homologous organs, no matter their function, across different species in a class, or at the homologous parts built on the same pattern in each individual animal and plant.

On the principle of successive slight variations, not necessarily or generally supervening at a very early period of life, and being inherited at a corresponding period, we can understand the great leading facts in Embryology; namely, the resemblance in an individual embryo of the homologous parts, which when matured will become widely different from each other in structure and function; and the resemblance in different species of a class of the homologous parts or organs, though fitted in the adult members for purposes as different as possible. Larvæ are active embryos, which have become specially modified in relation to their habits of life, through the principle of modifications being inherited at corresponding ages. On this same principle—and bearing in mind, that when organs are reduced in size, either from disuse or selection, it will generally be at that period of life when the being has to provide for its own wants, and bearing in mind how strong is the principle of inheritance—the occurrence of rudimentary organs and their final abortion, present to us no inexplicable difficulties; on the contrary, their presence might have been even anticipated. The importance of embryological characters and of rudimentary organs in classification is intelligible, on the view that an arrangement is only so far natural as it is genealogical.

Based on the idea of gradual small changes that don’t necessarily happen early in life but are inherited at similar stages later on, we can grasp the key concepts in Embryology. This includes the similarity in an individual embryo's corresponding parts, which will develop into very different structures and functions when mature, as well as the similarity in different species regarding the homologous parts or organs that, in adult forms, serve very different purposes. Larvae are active embryos that have been specifically adapted to their lifestyles through inherited modifications at equivalent developmental stages. Following this same principle—and keeping in mind that when organs shrink in size, either due to disuse or natural selection, it typically occurs at the stage when the organism has to fend for itself—and recognizing the strong influence of inheritance, the appearance of rudimentary organs and their eventual disappearance isn't really puzzling; in fact, we might have expected their existence. The significance of embryological traits and rudimentary organs in classification makes sense when we consider that a system is only as natural as it reflects ancestral relationships.

Finally, the several classes of facts which have been considered in this chapter, seem to me to proclaim so plainly, that the innumerable species, genera, and families of organic beings, with which this world is peopled, have all descended, each within its own class or group, from common parents, and have all been modified in the course of descent, that I should without hesitation adopt this view, even if it were unsupported by other facts or arguments.

Finally, the different types of facts we've looked at in this chapter clearly show that the countless species, genres, and families of living beings that inhabit this world have all evolved, each within its own class or group, from common ancestors, and have all changed over generations. I would wholeheartedly embrace this perspective, even if there were no additional facts or arguments to back it up.

CHAPTER XIV.
RECAPITULATION AND CONCLUSION.

Recapitulation of the difficulties on the theory of Natural Selection. Recapitulation of the general and special circumstances in its favour. Causes of the general belief in the immutability of species. How far the theory of natural selection may be extended. Effects of its adoption on the study of Natural history. Concluding remarks.

Recap of the challenges to the theory of Natural Selection. Recap of the general and specific factors supporting it. Reasons for the widespread belief in the unchanging nature of species. The extent to which the theory of natural selection can be applied. Impact of its acceptance on the study of Natural history. Final thoughts.

As this whole volume is one long argument, it may be convenient to the reader to have the leading facts and inferences briefly recapitulated.

As this entire volume is one long argument, it might be helpful for the reader to have the main facts and conclusions summarized briefly.

That many and grave objections may be advanced against the theory of descent with modification through natural selection, I do not deny. I have endeavoured to give to them their full force. Nothing at first can appear more difficult to believe than that the more complex organs and instincts should have been perfected, not by means superior to, though analogous with, human reason, but by the accumulation of innumerable slight variations, each good for the individual possessor. Nevertheless, this difficulty, though appearing to our imagination insuperably great, cannot be considered real if we admit the following propositions, namely,—that gradations in the perfection of any organ or instinct, which we may consider, either do now exist or could have existed, each good of its kind,—that all organs and instincts are, in ever so slight a degree, variable,—and, lastly, that there is a struggle for existence leading to the preservation of each profitable deviation of structure or instinct. The truth of these propositions cannot, I think, be disputed.

Many serious objections can be raised against the theory of descent with modification through natural selection, and I acknowledge that. I've tried to present them in their full strength. At first glance, it seems incredibly hard to believe that complex organs and instincts developed not through methods superior to, but similar to human reasoning, through countless small variations, each beneficial to the individual. However, this challenge, while seeming insurmountable to our imagination, isn't real if we accept the following ideas: that there are gradations in the perfection of any organ or instinct that currently exist or could have existed, each good in its own right; that all organs and instincts are, to some degree, variable; and that there's a struggle for existence that leads to the survival of each advantageous change in structure or instinct. I believe the truth of these ideas can't be disputed.

It is, no doubt, extremely difficult even to conjecture by what gradations many structures have been perfected, more especially amongst broken and failing groups of organic beings; but we see so many strange gradations in nature, as is proclaimed by the canon, “Natura non facit saltum,” that we ought to be extremely cautious in saying that any organ or instinct, or any whole being, could not have arrived at its present state by many graduated steps. There are, it must be admitted, cases of special difficulty on the theory of natural selection; and one of the most curious of these is the existence of two or three defined castes of workers or sterile females in the same community of ants; but I have attempted to show how this difficulty can be mastered.

It’s definitely very challenging to even guess how many structures have been refined, especially among struggling and failing groups of living things; however, we observe so many unusual variations in nature, as the saying goes, “Nature doesn’t make jumps,” that we should be very careful in claiming that any organ or instinct, or any entire organism, couldn't have reached its current state through many gradual steps. There are, to be fair, some specific challenges to the theory of natural selection; and one of the most intriguing of these is the presence of two or three distinct castes of workers or sterile females within the same ant community; but I’ve tried to demonstrate how this challenge can be addressed.

With respect to the almost universal sterility of species when first crossed, which forms so remarkable a contrast with the almost universal fertility of varieties when crossed, I must refer the reader to the recapitulation of the facts given at the end of the eighth chapter, which seem to me conclusively to show that this sterility is no more a special endowment than is the incapacity of two trees to be grafted together, but that it is incidental on constitutional differences in the reproductive systems of the intercrossed species. We see the truth of this conclusion in the vast difference in the result, when the same two species are crossed reciprocally; that is, when one species is first used as the father and then as the mother.

Regarding the nearly universal sterility of species when first crossed, which is a striking contrast to the almost universal fertility of varieties when crossed, I direct the reader to the summary of the facts provided at the end of the eighth chapter. These facts convincingly demonstrate that this sterility is not a unique trait any more than the inability of two trees to be grafted together; rather, it is a result of fundamental differences in the reproductive systems of the intercrossed species. We can see the truth of this conclusion in the significant difference in outcomes when the same two species are crossed in both directions—meaning, when one species is first used as the father and then as the mother.

The fertility of varieties when intercrossed and of their mongrel offspring cannot be considered as universal; nor is their very general fertility surprising when we remember that it is not likely that either their constitutions or their reproductive systems should have been profoundly modified. Moreover, most of the varieties which have been experimentised on have been produced under domestication; and as domestication apparently tends to eliminate sterility, we ought not to expect it also to produce sterility.

The fertility of different varieties when crossed with each other and their mixed offspring shouldn’t be viewed as a universal rule; it’s also not shocking that they are generally fertile when we consider that it's unlikely their make-up or reproductive systems have changed drastically. Furthermore, most of the varieties that have been experimented on were created through domestication; and since domestication seems to reduce sterility, we shouldn't assume it would make them sterile either.

The sterility of hybrids is a very different case from that of first crosses, for their reproductive organs are more or less functionally impotent; whereas in first crosses the organs on both sides are in a perfect condition. As we continually see that organisms of all kinds are rendered in some degree sterile from their constitutions having been disturbed by slightly different and new conditions of life, we need not feel surprise at hybrids being in some degree sterile, for their constitutions can hardly fail to have been disturbed from being compounded of two distinct organisations. This parallelism is supported by another parallel, but directly opposite, class of facts; namely, that the vigour and fertility of all organic beings are increased by slight changes in their conditions of life, and that the offspring of slightly modified forms or varieties acquire from being crossed increased vigour and fertility. So that, on the one hand, considerable changes in the conditions of life and crosses between greatly modified forms, lessen fertility; and on the other hand, lesser changes in the conditions of life and crosses between less modified forms, increase fertility.

The sterility of hybrids is quite different from that of first crosses because their reproductive organs are somewhat functionally ineffective; in contrast, the organs on both sides of first crosses are fully functional. Since we often observe that organisms of all kinds become somewhat sterile due to their bodies being affected by slightly different and new living conditions, we shouldn't be surprised that hybrids tend to be somewhat sterile, as their systems have likely been disrupted by being a mix of two distinct organisms. This comparison is backed by another opposing set of facts: that the strength and fertility of all living beings are enhanced by slight changes in their living conditions, and that the offspring of slightly modified forms or varieties gain increased strength and fertility from being crossed. Thus, on one hand, significant changes in living conditions and crossings between highly modified forms reduce fertility; while on the other hand, minor changes in living conditions and crossings between less modified forms boost fertility.

Turning to geographical distribution, the difficulties encountered on the theory of descent with modification are grave enough. All the individuals of the same species, and all the species of the same genus, or even higher group, must have descended from common parents; and therefore, in however distant and isolated parts of the world they are now found, they must in the course of successive generations have passed from some one part to the others. We are often wholly unable even to conjecture how this could have been effected. Yet, as we have reason to believe that some species have retained the same specific form for very long periods, enormously long as measured by years, too much stress ought not to be laid on the occasional wide diffusion of the same species; for during very long periods of time there will always be a good chance for wide migration by many means. A broken or interrupted range may often be accounted for by the extinction of the species in the intermediate regions. It cannot be denied that we are as yet very ignorant of the full extent of the various climatal and geographical changes which have affected the earth during modern periods; and such changes will obviously have greatly facilitated migration. As an example, I have attempted to show how potent has been the influence of the Glacial period on the distribution both of the same and of representative species throughout the world. We are as yet profoundly ignorant of the many occasional means of transport. With respect to distinct species of the same genus inhabiting very distant and isolated regions, as the process of modification has necessarily been slow, all the means of migration will have been possible during a very long period; and consequently the difficulty of the wide diffusion of species of the same genus is in some degree lessened.

When considering geographical distribution, the challenges faced in the theory of descent with modification are significant. All individuals of the same species, and all species within the same genus, or even higher classifications, must have descended from common ancestors. Therefore, even if they are currently found in remote and isolated parts of the world, they must have migrated from some central area over many generations. Often, we are completely unable to even speculate on how this could have happened. However, we have reason to believe that some species have maintained the same specific form for extremely long periods—much longer than we think. So, we shouldn't place too much emphasis on the occasional widespread distribution of the same species, as there will always be opportunities for extensive migration over vast timescales. A broken or fragmented range might often be explained by the extinction of the species in the areas in between. We cannot deny that we are still quite ignorant of the full scope of the various climatic and geographical changes that have impacted the Earth in modern times; such changes will have significantly facilitated migration. For example, I've tried to illustrate how influential the Glacial period has been on the distribution of both the same and related species around the world. We are still deeply unaware of the many occasional means of transport available. Concerning distinct species of the same genus that inhabit very distant and isolated regions, since the process of modification has inevitably been slow, all means of migration would have been possible over a long period. Therefore, the challenge of the widespread distribution of species within the same genus is somewhat diminished.

As on the theory of natural selection an interminable number of intermediate forms must have existed, linking together all the species in each group by gradations as fine as our present varieties, it may be asked, Why do we not see these linking forms all around us? Why are not all organic beings blended together in an inextricable chaos? With respect to existing forms, we should remember that we have no right to expect (excepting in rare cases) to discover directly connecting links between them, but only between each and some extinct and supplanted form. Even on a wide area, which has during a long period remained continuous, and of which the climate and other conditions of life change insensibly in going from a district occupied by one species into another district occupied by a closely allied species, we have no just right to expect often to find intermediate varieties in the intermediate zone. For we have reason to believe that only a few species are undergoing change at any one period; and all changes are slowly effected. I have also shown that the intermediate varieties which will at first probably exist in the intermediate zones, will be liable to be supplanted by the allied forms on either hand; and the latter, from existing in greater numbers, will generally be modified and improved at a quicker rate than the intermediate varieties, which exist in lesser numbers; so that the intermediate varieties will, in the long run, be supplanted and exterminated.

As per the theory of natural selection, countless intermediate forms must have existed, connecting all species within each group through subtle gradations similar to our current varieties. This raises the question: Why don't we see these linking forms all around us? Why aren't all living organisms mixed together in a complicated chaos? Concerning existing forms, we should remember that we shouldn't expect (except in rare cases) to find directly connecting links between them, but rather between each form and some extinct or replaced one. Even in a large area that has remained continuous over a long period, where the climate and other living conditions change gradually from a region occupied by one species to another region with a closely related species, we cannot justly expect to frequently find intermediate varieties in the transitional zone. We have reason to believe that only a few species undergo changes at any given time, and all changes happen slowly. I have also shown that the intermediate varieties that might initially exist in these transitional zones are likely to be replaced by the related forms on either side; the latter, because they exist in greater numbers, will generally adapt and evolve faster than the intermediate varieties, which are fewer in number. Consequently, the intermediate varieties will eventually be replaced and eliminated.

On this doctrine of the extermination of an infinitude of connecting links, between the living and extinct inhabitants of the world, and at each successive period between the extinct and still older species, why is not every geological formation charged with such links? Why does not every collection of fossil remains afford plain evidence of the gradation and mutation of the forms of life? We meet with no such evidence, and this is the most obvious and forcible of the many objections which may be urged against my theory. Why, again, do whole groups of allied species appear, though certainly they often falsely appear, to have come in suddenly on the several geological stages? Why do we not find great piles of strata beneath the Silurian system, stored with the remains of the progenitors of the Silurian groups of fossils? For certainly on my theory such strata must somewhere have been deposited at these ancient and utterly unknown epochs in the world’s history.

On this idea of wiping out countless connecting links between the living and extinct beings of the world, and at each stage between the extinct and even older species, why isn't every geological formation filled with such links? Why doesn't every collection of fossil remains provide clear evidence of the gradual changes and evolution of life forms? We don't find any such evidence, and this is one of the most obvious and compelling objections to my theory. Why, again, do entire groups of related species seem to appear suddenly at various geological stages, even though they often don't really appear that way? Why don't we see large layers of strata beneath the Silurian system packed with the remains of the ancestors of the Silurian fossil groups? Because, according to my theory, those strata must have been deposited somewhere during those ancient and totally unknown periods in the history of the Earth.

I can answer these questions and grave objections only on the supposition that the geological record is far more imperfect than most geologists believe. It cannot be objected that there has not been time sufficient for any amount of organic change; for the lapse of time has been so great as to be utterly inappreciable by the human intellect. The number of specimens in all our museums is absolutely as nothing compared with the countless generations of countless species which certainly have existed. We should not be able to recognise a species as the parent of any one or more species if we were to examine them ever so closely, unless we likewise possessed many of the intermediate links between their past or parent and present states; and these many links we could hardly ever expect to discover, owing to the imperfection of the geological record. Numerous existing doubtful forms could be named which are probably varieties; but who will pretend that in future ages so many fossil links will be discovered, that naturalists will be able to decide, on the common view, whether or not these doubtful forms are varieties? As long as most of the links between any two species are unknown, if any one link or intermediate variety be discovered, it will simply be classed as another and distinct species. Only a small portion of the world has been geologically explored. Only organic beings of certain classes can be preserved in a fossil condition, at least in any great number. Widely ranging species vary most, and varieties are often at first local,—both causes rendering the discovery of intermediate links less likely. Local varieties will not spread into other and distant regions until they are considerably modified and improved; and when they do spread, if discovered in a geological formation, they will appear as if suddenly created there, and will be simply classed as new species. Most formations have been intermittent in their accumulation; and their duration, I am inclined to believe, has been shorter than the average duration of specific forms. Successive formations are separated from each other by enormous blank intervals of time; for fossiliferous formations, thick enough to resist future degradation, can be accumulated only where much sediment is deposited on the subsiding bed of the sea. During the alternate periods of elevation and of stationary level the record will be blank. During these latter periods there will probably be more variability in the forms of life; during periods of subsidence, more extinction.

I can address these questions and serious objections only if we assume that the geological record is much more incomplete than most geologists think. It's not valid to argue that there hasn't been enough time for any significant organic change; the span of time has been so vast that it's beyond human comprehension. The number of specimens in all our museums is insignificant compared to the countless generations of countless species that have certainly existed. We wouldn't be able to identify a species as the ancestor of one or more species even if we examined them very closely, unless we also had many of the intermediate links between their past or ancestor and their current states; and we can hardly expect to find many of these links due to the incompleteness of the geological record. There are many existing questionable forms that could be labeled as varieties; but who can claim that in future ages so many fossil links will be found that naturalists will be able to determine, based on common understanding, whether these questionable forms are varieties? As long as most of the links between any two species remain unknown, if we discover any one link or intermediate variety, it will simply be classified as another and distinct species. Only a small part of the world has been studied geologically. Only certain classes of organic beings can be preserved as fossils, at least in significant numbers. Widely ranging species tend to vary the most, and varieties are often initially local—both factors making the discovery of intermediate links less likely. Local varieties won't spread to other distant regions until they are significantly modified and improved; and when they do spread, if found in a geological formation, they will seem to have been created there suddenly and will simply be classified as new species. Most formations have accumulated intermittently, and I suspect their duration has been shorter than the average duration of specific forms. Successive formations are separated by vast blank periods of time; fossil-rich formations thick enough to survive future erosion can only form where a lot of sediment is deposited on the sinking sea floor. During the alternating periods of uplift and stable levels, the record will be blank. During these latter periods, there will likely be more variability in life forms; during periods of sinking, more extinction.

With respect to the absence of fossiliferous formations beneath the lowest Silurian strata, I can only recur to the hypothesis given in the ninth chapter. That the geological record is imperfect all will admit; but that it is imperfect to the degree which I require, few will be inclined to admit. If we look to long enough intervals of time, geology plainly declares that all species have changed; and they have changed in the manner which my theory requires, for they have changed slowly and in a graduated manner. We clearly see this in the fossil remains from consecutive formations invariably being much more closely related to each other, than are the fossils from formations distant from each other in time.

Regarding the lack of fossil-containing layers beneath the lowest Silurian rocks, I can only refer back to the idea presented in the ninth chapter. Everyone agrees that the geological record is incomplete; however, not many will agree that it is incomplete to the extent I suggest. When we examine long spans of time, geology clearly shows that all species have evolved, and they have evolved in the way my theory predicts: slowly and gradually. We can clearly observe this in the fossil remains from consecutive layers being significantly more closely related to each other than the fossils from layers that are separated by larger intervals of time.

Such is the sum of the several chief objections and difficulties which may justly be urged against my theory; and I have now briefly recapitulated the answers and explanations which can be given to them. I have felt these difficulties far too heavily during many years to doubt their weight. But it deserves especial notice that the more important objections relate to questions on which we are confessedly ignorant; nor do we know how ignorant we are. We do not know all the possible transitional gradations between the simplest and the most perfect organs; it cannot be pretended that we know all the varied means of Distribution during the long lapse of years, or that we know how imperfect the Geological Record is. Grave as these several difficulties are, in my judgment they do not overthrow the theory of descent with modification.

These are the main objections and challenges that can reasonably be raised against my theory, and I've briefly summarized the answers and explanations I can provide for them. I've felt these challenges weigh heavily on me for many years to doubt their significance. However, it's important to note that the more significant objections pertain to questions we openly admit we don't understand; we don't even know how much we don't know. We aren't aware of all the possible transitional forms between the simplest and most advanced organs; we can't claim to understand all the different ways species have been distributed over long periods, nor do we fully grasp how incomplete the Geological Record is. As serious as these challenges are, I believe they do not disprove the theory of descent with modification.

Now let us turn to the other side of the argument. Under domestication we see much variability. This seems to be mainly due to the reproductive system being eminently susceptible to changes in the conditions of life; so that this system, when not rendered impotent, fails to reproduce offspring exactly like the parent-form. Variability is governed by many complex laws,—by correlation of growth, by use and disuse, and by the direct action of the physical conditions of life. There is much difficulty in ascertaining how much modification our domestic productions have undergone; but we may safely infer that the amount has been large, and that modifications can be inherited for long periods. As long as the conditions of life remain the same, we have reason to believe that a modification, which has already been inherited for many generations, may continue to be inherited for an almost infinite number of generations. On the other hand we have evidence that variability, when it has once come into play, does not wholly cease; for new varieties are still occasionally produced by our most anciently domesticated productions.

Now let’s look at the other side of the argument. With domestication, we see a lot of variability. This seems to mainly come from the reproductive system being highly sensitive to changes in living conditions; so, when this system isn’t rendered ineffective, it doesn’t produce offspring that are exactly like the parents. Variability is influenced by many complex factors—like how growth is connected, the effects of use and disuse, and the direct impact of physical living conditions. It’s quite challenging to determine how much change our domesticated species have undergone, but we can reasonably conclude that it’s significant, and that these changes can be passed down for long periods. As long as living conditions remain constant, we have good reason to believe that a change that has already been passed down for many generations may continue to be passed down for an almost infinite number of generations. On the flip side, we have evidence that variability, once it starts, doesn’t completely stop; new varieties are still occasionally produced by our oldest domesticated species.

Man does not actually produce variability; he only unintentionally exposes organic beings to new conditions of life, and then nature acts on the organisation, and causes variability. But man can and does select the variations given to him by nature, and thus accumulate them in any desired manner. He thus adapts animals and plants for his own benefit or pleasure. He may do this methodically, or he may do it unconsciously by preserving the individuals most useful to him at the time, without any thought of altering the breed. It is certain that he can largely influence the character of a breed by selecting, in each successive generation, individual differences so slight as to be quite inappreciable by an uneducated eye. This process of selection has been the great agency in the production of the most distinct and useful domestic breeds. That many of the breeds produced by man have to a large extent the character of natural species, is shown by the inextricable doubts whether very many of them are varieties or aboriginal species.

Humans don’t actually create variability; they just unintentionally expose living beings to new life conditions, and then nature influences the organization, causing variability. However, people can and do select the variations provided by nature, accumulating them in whichever way they want. This allows them to adapt animals and plants for their own benefit or enjoyment. They can do this in a systematic way, or they might do it unconsciously by keeping the individuals that are most useful to them at that moment, without intending to change the breed. It’s clear that they can significantly influence a breed's characteristics by selecting, in each generation, individual differences that are so slight that they wouldn’t be noticed by an untrained eye. This selection process has been the key factor in creating the most distinct and useful domestic breeds. The fact that many of the breeds produced by humans resemble natural species to a considerable extent raises doubts about whether many of them are varieties or original species.

There is no obvious reason why the principles which have acted so efficiently under domestication should not have acted under nature. In the preservation of favoured individuals and races, during the constantly-recurrent Struggle for Existence, we see the most powerful and ever-acting means of selection. The struggle for existence inevitably follows from the high geometrical ratio of increase which is common to all organic beings. This high rate of increase is proved by calculation, by the effects of a succession of peculiar seasons, and by the results of naturalisation, as explained in the third chapter. More individuals are born than can possibly survive. A grain in the balance will determine which individual shall live and which shall die,—which variety or species shall increase in number, and which shall decrease, or finally become extinct. As the individuals of the same species come in all respects into the closest competition with each other, the struggle will generally be most severe between them; it will be almost equally severe between the varieties of the same species, and next in severity between the species of the same genus. But the struggle will often be very severe between beings most remote in the scale of nature. The slightest advantage in one being, at any age or during any season, over those with which it comes into competition, or better adaptation in however slight a degree to the surrounding physical conditions, will turn the balance.

There's no clear reason why the principles that work so effectively in domestication shouldn't also apply in nature. In the preservation of favored individuals and races during the ongoing struggle for existence, we see the strongest and most consistent means of selection. The struggle for existence inevitably arises from the high rate of reproduction that is typical for all living beings. This high rate of increase is demonstrated through calculations, the impacts of unusual seasons, and the results of naturalization, as explained in the third chapter. More individuals are born than can possibly survive. Even a small difference can determine which individual will live and which will die—whether a certain variety or species will grow in number, diminish, or eventually go extinct. Since individuals of the same species are in the closest competition with one another, the struggle is usually fiercest among them; it’s also significantly intense among varieties of the same species and next among species within the same genus. However, there can be very intense competition even between beings that are far apart on the evolutionary scale. The slightest advantage at any age or during any season for one being over its competitors, or even a minor adaptation to the surrounding environment, can tip the scales.

With animals having separated sexes there will in most cases be a struggle between the males for possession of the females. The most vigorous individuals, or those which have most successfully struggled with their conditions of life, will generally leave most progeny. But success will often depend on having special weapons or means of defence, or on the charms of the males; and the slightest advantage will lead to victory.

With animals having distinct sexes, there is usually competition among the males for access to the females. The strongest individuals, or those best adapted to their environment, typically produce the most offspring. However, success often relies on having particular tools or defenses, or on the appeal of the males; even the slightest edge can result in victory.

As geology plainly proclaims that each land has undergone great physical changes, we might have expected that organic beings would have varied under nature, in the same way as they generally have varied under the changed conditions of domestication. And if there be any variability under nature, it would be an unaccountable fact if natural selection had not come into play. It has often been asserted, but the assertion is quite incapable of proof, that the amount of variation under nature is a strictly limited quantity. Man, though acting on external characters alone and often capriciously, can produce within a short period a great result by adding up mere individual differences in his domestic productions; and every one admits that there are at least individual differences in species under nature. But, besides such differences, all naturalists have admitted the existence of varieties, which they think sufficiently distinct to be worthy of record in systematic works. No one can draw any clear distinction between individual differences and slight varieties; or between more plainly marked varieties and sub-species, and species. Let it be observed how naturalists differ in the rank which they assign to the many representative forms in Europe and North America.

As geology clearly shows that each land has gone through significant physical changes, we might expect that living beings would have varied in nature in the same way they often vary under domestication. If there is any variation in nature, it would be strange if natural selection weren't involved. It's often claimed, though this claim can't be proven, that the amount of variation in nature is limited. Humans, by acting on external traits and often in an unpredictable way, can achieve substantial results in a short time by accumulating individual differences in their domestic breeding. Everyone agrees that at least some individual differences exist among species in nature. Additionally, all naturalists have acknowledged the presence of varieties that they consider distinct enough to be worth documenting in systematic studies. No one can clearly distinguish between individual differences and slight varieties, or between more distinctly marked varieties and sub-species, and species. It's worth noting how naturalists disagree on the classification of many representative forms in Europe and North America.

If then we have under nature variability and a powerful agent always ready to act and select, why should we doubt that variations in any way useful to beings, under their excessively complex relations of life, would be preserved, accumulated, and inherited? Why, if man can by patience select variations most useful to himself, should nature fail in selecting variations useful, under changing conditions of life, to her living products? What limit can be put to this power, acting during long ages and rigidly scrutinising the whole constitution, structure, and habits of each creature,—favouring the good and rejecting the bad? I can see no limit to this power, in slowly and beautifully adapting each form to the most complex relations of life. The theory of natural selection, even if we looked no further than this, seems to me to be in itself probable. I have already recapitulated, as fairly as I could, the opposed difficulties and objections: now let us turn to the special facts and arguments in favour of the theory.

If we have natural variability and a strong force always ready to act and choose, why should we doubt that variations beneficial to living beings, given their incredibly complex life relationships, would be preserved, accumulated, and passed down? If humans can patiently select the most useful variations for themselves, why would nature not be able to select useful variations, under changing life conditions, for her living products? What limit can be placed on this power that acts over long periods, closely examining the entire makeup, structure, and habits of each creature—favoring the good and eliminating the bad? I see no limit to this power in gradually and beautifully adapting each form to the most intricate life relationships. The theory of natural selection, even without considering anything else, seems probable to me. I have already summarized, as fairly as I could, the opposing difficulties and objections: now let’s look at the specific facts and arguments supporting the theory.

On the view that species are only strongly marked and permanent varieties, and that each species first existed as a variety, we can see why it is that no line of demarcation can be drawn between species, commonly supposed to have been produced by special acts of creation, and varieties which are acknowledged to have been produced by secondary laws. On this same view we can understand how it is that in each region where many species of a genus have been produced, and where they now flourish, these same species should present many varieties; for where the manufactory of species has been active, we might expect, as a general rule, to find it still in action; and this is the case if varieties be incipient species. Moreover, the species of the larger genera, which afford the greater number of varieties or incipient species, retain to a certain degree the character of varieties; for they differ from each other by a less amount of difference than do the species of smaller genera. The closely allied species also of the larger genera apparently have restricted ranges, and they are clustered in little groups round other species—in which respects they resemble varieties. These are strange relations on the view of each species having been independently created, but are intelligible if all species first existed as varieties.

On the idea that species are just well-defined and permanent varieties, and that each species originally started as a variety, it makes sense why we can't clearly separate species, which are typically thought to have been created by special acts of creation, from varieties, which we know were formed by secondary processes. From this perspective, we can also understand why in each region where many species of a genus have emerged and are thriving, these species also show many varieties. When the process of species creation has been active, we would generally expect it to continue, and this holds true if varieties are considered to be early stages of species. Additionally, the species in larger genera, which yield more varieties or early species, still somewhat resemble varieties; they differ from one another less than species in smaller genera. The closely related species of larger genera also seem to have limited ranges and are often grouped around other species, which is similar to the behavior of varieties. These connections seem odd if we assume each species was created independently, but they make sense if we accept that all species began as varieties.

As each species tends by its geometrical ratio of reproduction to increase inordinately in number; and as the modified descendants of each species will be enabled to increase by so much the more as they become more diversified in habits and structure, so as to be enabled to seize on many and widely different places in the economy of nature, there will be a constant tendency in natural selection to preserve the most divergent offspring of any one species. Hence during a long-continued course of modification, the slight differences, characteristic of varieties of the same species, tend to be augmented into the greater differences characteristic of species of the same genus. New and improved varieties will inevitably supplant and exterminate the older, less improved and intermediate varieties; and thus species are rendered to a large extent defined and distinct objects. Dominant species belonging to the larger groups tend to give birth to new and dominant forms; so that each large group tends to become still larger, and at the same time more divergent in character. But as all groups cannot thus succeed in increasing in size, for the world would not hold them, the more dominant groups beat the less dominant. This tendency in the large groups to go on increasing in size and diverging in character, together with the almost inevitable contingency of much extinction, explains the arrangement of all the forms of life, in groups subordinate to groups, all within a few great classes, which we now see everywhere around us, and which has prevailed throughout all time. This grand fact of the grouping of all organic beings seems to me utterly inexplicable on the theory of creation.

As each species tends to increase in number according to its reproductive rate, and as the modified descendants of each species can grow even more as they become more varied in habits and structures, allowing them to occupy many different roles in the ecosystem, there is a constant tendency in natural selection to favor the most divergent offspring of any one species. Therefore, over a long period of change, the slight differences that characterize varieties of the same species tend to become more pronounced into the greater differences characteristic of species within the same genus. New and improved varieties will inevitably replace and eliminate the older, less developed, and intermediate varieties; thus, species become largely defined and distinct entities. Dominant species from larger groups tend to produce new and dominant forms, so each large group continues to grow bigger and also more varied in characteristics. However, since not all groups can simultaneously increase in size—because the world couldn't support them—the more dominant groups surpass the less dominant ones. This tendency of larger groups to keep growing and diversifying, along with the inevitable occurrence of many extinctions, explains the organization of all forms of life into groups subordinate to groups, all within a few major classes, which we see everywhere around us and which has been present throughout history. This fundamental fact of the grouping of all living beings seems completely inexplicable to me under the theory of creation.

As natural selection acts solely by accumulating slight, successive, favourable variations, it can produce no great or sudden modification; it can act only by very short and slow steps. Hence the canon of “Natura non facit saltum,” which every fresh addition to our knowledge tends to make more strictly correct, is on this theory simply intelligible. We can plainly see why nature is prodigal in variety, though niggard in innovation. But why this should be a law of nature if each species has been independently created, no man can explain.

As natural selection works by gradually accumulating small, beneficial changes, it can't create big or sudden changes; it operates only in tiny, slow steps. This is why the rule "Natura non facit saltum," which our growing knowledge continues to verify, makes sense under this theory. We can clearly see why nature is generous in variety but stingy in innovation. However, no one can explain why this should be a natural law if each species was created independently.

Many other facts are, as it seems to me, explicable on this theory. How strange it is that a bird, under the form of woodpecker, should have been created to prey on insects on the ground; that upland geese, which never or rarely swim, should have been created with webbed feet; that a thrush should have been created to dive and feed on sub-aquatic insects; and that a petrel should have been created with habits and structure fitting it for the life of an auk or grebe! and so on in endless other cases. But on the view of each species constantly trying to increase in number, with natural selection always ready to adapt the slowly varying descendants of each to any unoccupied or ill-occupied place in nature, these facts cease to be strange, or perhaps might even have been anticipated.

Many other facts can be explained by this theory, in my opinion. How odd it is that a bird like the woodpecker was created to hunt insects on the ground; that upland geese, which hardly ever swim, have webbed feet; that a thrush was designed to dive and feed on underwater insects; and that a petrel was made with traits suitable for living like an auk or grebe! And there are countless other examples. But if we consider that each species is always trying to increase in number, with natural selection ready to adapt the slowly changing descendants of each species to any unoccupied or poorly occupied area in nature, these facts no longer seem strange and might even have been expected.

As natural selection acts by competition, it adapts the inhabitants of each country only in relation to the degree of perfection of their associates; so that we need feel no surprise at the inhabitants of any one country, although on the ordinary view supposed to have been specially created and adapted for that country, being beaten and supplanted by the naturalised productions from another land. Nor ought we to marvel if all the contrivances in nature be not, as far as we can judge, absolutely perfect; and if some of them be abhorrent to our ideas of fitness. We need not marvel at the sting of the bee causing the bee’s own death; at drones being produced in such vast numbers for one single act, and being then slaughtered by their sterile sisters; at the astonishing waste of pollen by our fir-trees; at the instinctive hatred of the queen bee for her own fertile daughters; at ichneumonidæ feeding within the live bodies of caterpillars; and at other such cases. The wonder indeed is, on the theory of natural selection, that more cases of the want of absolute perfection have not been observed.

As natural selection operates through competition, it adapts the inhabitants of each country based on how well they interact with those around them. So, it's not surprising when the inhabitants of any particular country, often thought to have been specially created and suited for that place, are outperformed and replaced by species introduced from elsewhere. We also shouldn't be shocked if not all the features in nature are, as far as we can see, perfectly designed, or if some of them clash with our ideas of what makes sense. We shouldn't be surprised that the bee's sting leads to its own death; that drones are produced in huge numbers just for one task and then killed by their non-reproductive sisters; that our fir trees waste so much pollen; that the queen bee has a natural aversion to her own fertile daughters; that certain wasps feed inside live caterpillars; and many other similar instances. In fact, considering the theory of natural selection, the real surprise is that we haven't noticed even more examples of things that aren't perfectly designed.

The complex and little known laws governing variation are the same, as far as we can see, with the laws which have governed the production of so-called specific forms. In both cases physical conditions seem to have produced but little direct effect; yet when varieties enter any zone, they occasionally assume some of the characters of the species proper to that zone. In both varieties and species, use and disuse seem to have produced some effect; for it is difficult to resist this conclusion when we look, for instance, at the logger-headed duck, which has wings incapable of flight, in nearly the same condition as in the domestic duck; or when we look at the burrowing tucutucu, which is occasionally blind, and then at certain moles, which are habitually blind and have their eyes covered with skin; or when we look at the blind animals inhabiting the dark caves of America and Europe. In both varieties and species correlation of growth seems to have played a most important part, so that when one part has been modified other parts are necessarily modified. In both varieties and species reversions to long-lost characters occur. How inexplicable on the theory of creation is the occasional appearance of stripes on the shoulder and legs of the several species of the horse-genus and in their hybrids! How simply is this fact explained if we believe that these species have descended from a striped progenitor, in the same manner as the several domestic breeds of pigeon have descended from the blue and barred rock-pigeon!

The complex and little-known laws governing variation are seemingly the same as the laws that have regulated the creation of specific forms. In both cases, physical conditions appear to have little direct impact; however, when varieties enter a new area, they sometimes take on characteristics of the species native to that area. In both varieties and species, the effects of use and disuse seem evident; it's hard to ignore this conclusion when we consider, for instance, the logger-headed duck, which has wings that can't support flight, closely resembling those of the domestic duck; or the burrowing tucutucu, which can sometimes be blind, and then compare it to certain moles that are normally blind with their eyes covered by skin; or when we examine the blind creatures living in the dark caves of America and Europe. In both varieties and species, the correlation of growth seems to be crucial, so that when one part is altered, other parts are inevitably affected. Reversions to long-lost traits are observed in both varieties and species. The sporadic appearance of stripes on the shoulders and legs of various horse species and their hybrids is puzzling under the creation theory! Yet, this fact is simply explained if we accept that these species descended from a striped ancestor, just as various domestic pigeon breeds have descended from the blue and barred rock-pigeon!

On the ordinary view of each species having been independently created, why should the specific characters, or those by which the species of the same genus differ from each other, be more variable than the generic characters in which they all agree? Why, for instance, should the colour of a flower be more likely to vary in any one species of a genus, if the other species, supposed to have been created independently, have differently coloured flowers, than if all the species of the genus have the same coloured flowers? If species are only well-marked varieties, of which the characters have become in a high degree permanent, we can understand this fact; for they have already varied since they branched off from a common progenitor in certain characters, by which they have come to be specifically distinct from each other; and therefore these same characters would be more likely still to be variable than the generic characters which have been inherited without change for an enormous period. It is inexplicable on the theory of creation why a part developed in a very unusual manner in any one species of a genus, and therefore, as we may naturally infer, of great importance to the species, should be eminently liable to variation; but, on my view, this part has undergone, since the several species branched off from a common progenitor, an unusual amount of variability and modification, and therefore we might expect this part generally to be still variable. But a part may be developed in the most unusual manner, like the wing of a bat, and yet not be more variable than any other structure, if the part be common to many subordinate forms, that is, if it has been inherited for a very long period; for in this case it will have been rendered constant by long-continued natural selection.

On the common belief that each species was created independently, why would the specific traits that differentiate species within the same genus be more variable than the traits that they all share? For example, why would the color of a flower in one species of a genus be more likely to change if the other species—thought to have been created independently—have differently colored flowers, compared to if all species in the genus had the same color? If species are simply well-defined varieties that have developed stable traits over time, we can understand this phenomenon; these species have already changed in certain ways since they branched off from a common ancestor, leading them to become distinct from one another. Because of this, these specific traits would be more likely to vary than the general traits that have remained unchanged for a long time. It is difficult to explain under the theory of creation why a part of a species would develop in such an unusual way, which we might assume is significant for the species, and yet be highly susceptible to variation. However, from my perspective, this part has experienced considerable variability and change since the different species branched off from a common ancestor, so we would expect this part to remain variable. Yet, a part can develop in a very unique way, like a bat's wing, and still not be more variable than any other structure if it is common to many related forms. In that case, it has been maintained by long-term natural selection.

Glancing at instincts, marvellous as some are, they offer no greater difficulty than does corporeal structure on the theory of the natural selection of successive, slight, but profitable modifications. We can thus understand why nature moves by graduated steps in endowing different animals of the same class with their several instincts. I have attempted to show how much light the principle of gradation throws on the admirable architectural powers of the hive-bee. Habit no doubt sometimes comes into play in modifying instincts; but it certainly is not indispensable, as we see, in the case of neuter insects, which leave no progeny to inherit the effects of long-continued habit. On the view of all the species of the same genus having descended from a common parent, and having inherited much in common, we can understand how it is that allied species, when placed under considerably different conditions of life, yet should follow nearly the same instincts; why the thrush of South America, for instance, lines her nest with mud like our British species. On the view of instincts having been slowly acquired through natural selection we need not marvel at some instincts being apparently not perfect and liable to mistakes, and at many instincts causing other animals to suffer.

Looking at instincts, as amazing as some are, they don’t present any more challenge than the physical structure based on the theory of natural selection of gradual, minor yet beneficial changes. This helps us understand why nature proceeds step by step in giving different animals of the same type their unique instincts. I have tried to show how the principle of gradation sheds light on the impressive building abilities of the hive bee. While habits can sometimes modify instincts, they are not always necessary, as seen with worker insects that don’t leave offspring to pass on the effects of long-standing habits. With the idea that all species of the same genus have evolved from a common ancestor and share many traits, we can see why related species, when faced with significantly different living conditions, still tend to follow nearly identical instincts; for example, the thrush in South America lines her nest with mud just like our British species. If we view instincts as having been slowly developed through natural selection, we shouldn’t be surprised that some instincts seem imperfect and prone to errors, and that many instincts can cause suffering to other animals.

If species be only well-marked and permanent varieties, we can at once see why their crossed offspring should follow the same complex laws in their degrees and kinds of resemblance to their parents,—in being absorbed into each other by successive crosses, and in other such points,—as do the crossed offspring of acknowledged varieties. On the other hand, these would be strange facts if species have been independently created, and varieties have been produced by secondary laws.

If species are just clearly defined and stable varieties, we can immediately understand why their mixed offspring should adhere to the same complex rules regarding how closely they resemble their parents—in terms of blending through successive crosses and other similar factors—as the mixed offspring of recognized varieties do. Conversely, these would be odd outcomes if species were created separately and varieties emerged from secondary laws.

If we admit that the geological record is imperfect in an extreme degree, then such facts as the record gives, support the theory of descent with modification. New species have come on the stage slowly and at successive intervals; and the amount of change, after equal intervals of time, is widely different in different groups. The extinction of species and of whole groups of species, which has played so conspicuous a part in the history of the organic world, almost inevitably follows on the principle of natural selection; for old forms will be supplanted by new and improved forms. Neither single species nor groups of species reappear when the chain of ordinary generation has once been broken. The gradual diffusion of dominant forms, with the slow modification of their descendants, causes the forms of life, after long intervals of time, to appear as if they had changed simultaneously throughout the world. The fact of the fossil remains of each formation being in some degree intermediate in character between the fossils in the formations above and below, is simply explained by their intermediate position in the chain of descent. The grand fact that all extinct organic beings belong to the same system with recent beings, falling either into the same or into intermediate groups, follows from the living and the extinct being the offspring of common parents. As the groups which have descended from an ancient progenitor have generally diverged in character, the progenitor with its early descendants will often be intermediate in character in comparison with its later descendants; and thus we can see why the more ancient a fossil is, the oftener it stands in some degree intermediate between existing and allied groups. Recent forms are generally looked at as being, in some vague sense, higher than ancient and extinct forms; and they are in so far higher as the later and more improved forms have conquered the older and less improved organic beings in the struggle for life. Lastly, the law of the long endurance of allied forms on the same continent,—of marsupials in Australia, of edentata in America, and other such cases,—is intelligible, for within a confined country, the recent and the extinct will naturally be allied by descent.

If we acknowledge that the geological record is extremely flawed, then the facts provided by that record support the theory of evolution through modification. New species have emerged gradually and at different times; the degree of change, after similar time periods, varies significantly across different groups. The extinction of species and entire groups has played a major role in the history of life on Earth, which almost inevitably follows the principle of natural selection, as older forms are replaced by newer, improved versions. Neither individual species nor groups of species reappear once the cycle of ordinary reproduction has been disrupted. The gradual spread of dominant forms, along with the slow evolution of their descendants, makes it seem like life forms have changed simultaneously around the world after long periods. The fact that the fossil remains of each geological layer are somewhat intermediate between the fossils found in the layers above and below them is simply explained by their intermediate position in the lineage. It is a significant fact that all extinct organisms are part of the same system as living organisms, either falling into the same groups or intermediate ones, as both living and extinct beings share common ancestors. As groups that descended from an ancient ancestor have typically diverged in characteristics, the ancestor along with its early descendants will often exhibit intermediate traits compared to their later descendants; this helps explain why the older a fossil is, the more likely it is to show characteristics that lie between existing and related groups. Recent forms are generally viewed as being somewhat 'superior' to ancient and extinct forms; they are higher in the sense that the later, more advanced forms have outcompeted older, less advanced organisms in the struggle for survival. Lastly, the pattern of similar species enduring on the same continent—like marsupials in Australia or edentates in America—is understandable, as within a specific area, recent and extinct species will naturally be related through descent.

Looking to geographical distribution, if we admit that there has been during the long course of ages much migration from one part of the world to another, owing to former climatal and geographical changes and to the many occasional and unknown means of dispersal, then we can understand, on the theory of descent with modification, most of the great leading facts in Distribution. We can see why there should be so striking a parallelism in the distribution of organic beings throughout space, and in their geological succession throughout time; for in both cases the beings have been connected by the bond of ordinary generation, and the means of modification have been the same. We see the full meaning of the wonderful fact, which must have struck every traveller, namely, that on the same continent, under the most diverse conditions, under heat and cold, on mountain and lowland, on deserts and marshes, most of the inhabitants within each great class are plainly related; for they will generally be descendants of the same progenitors and early colonists. On this same principle of former migration, combined in most cases with modification, we can understand, by the aid of the Glacial period, the identity of some few plants, and the close alliance of many others, on the most distant mountains, under the most different climates; and likewise the close alliance of some of the inhabitants of the sea in the northern and southern temperate zones, though separated by the whole intertropical ocean. Although two areas may present the same physical conditions of life, we need feel no surprise at their inhabitants being widely different, if they have been for a long period completely separated from each other; for as the relation of organism to organism is the most important of all relations, and as the two areas will have received colonists from some third source or from each other, at various periods and in different proportions, the course of modification in the two areas will inevitably be different.

Considering geographical distribution, if we accept that there has been significant migration from one part of the world to another over time due to past climatic and geographical changes, as well as various occasional and unknown means of dispersal, then we can understand, based on the theory of descent with modification, most of the key facts in distribution. We can see why there is such a striking similarity in the distribution of living organisms across space and in their geological succession over time; in both cases, these organisms have been linked through ordinary reproduction, and the means of modification have been consistent. We recognize the significance of the remarkable fact that must have amazed every traveler: that on the same continent, under extremely diverse conditions—whether hot or cold, in mountains or lowlands, on deserts or marshes—most inhabitants within each major class are clearly related; they will generally be descendants of the same ancestors and early settlers. Using the same principle of past migration, often combined with modification, we can comprehend, with the help of the Glacial period, why some plants are identical and many others closely related on the most distant mountains, despite vastly different climates; we can also see the close relationships of certain sea inhabitants in the northern and southern temperate zones, even though they are separated by the entire intertropical ocean. While two regions may share similar physical conditions for life, it is not surprising if their inhabitants are quite different, provided they have been completely isolated from one another for a long time. Because the relationship among organisms is the most crucial of all relationships, and since the two regions may have received settlers from a third source or from each other at various times and in different amounts, the process of modification in the two areas will inevitably diverge.

On this view of migration, with subsequent modification, we can see why oceanic islands should be inhabited by few species, but of these, that many should be peculiar. We can clearly see why those animals which cannot cross wide spaces of ocean, as frogs and terrestrial mammals, should not inhabit oceanic islands; and why, on the other hand, new and peculiar species of bats, which can traverse the ocean, should so often be found on islands far distant from any continent. Such facts as the presence of peculiar species of bats, and the absence of all other mammals, on oceanic islands, are utterly inexplicable on the theory of independent acts of creation.

With this perspective on migration, along with some adjustments, we can understand why oceanic islands tend to have few species, yet those present are often unique. It's clear why animals that can't cross large expanses of ocean, like frogs and land mammals, don't live on oceanic islands; conversely, it's also understandable why new and unique species of bats, which can fly over the ocean, are frequently found on islands that are far from any continent. These facts, such as the presence of unique species of bats and the absence of other mammals on oceanic islands, make no sense if we consider the theory of independent acts of creation.

The existence of closely allied or representative species in any two areas, implies, on the theory of descent with modification, that the same parents formerly inhabited both areas; and we almost invariably find that wherever many closely allied species inhabit two areas, some identical species common to both still exist. Wherever many closely allied yet distinct species occur, many doubtful forms and varieties of the same species likewise occur. It is a rule of high generality that the inhabitants of each area are related to the inhabitants of the nearest source whence immigrants might have been derived. We see this in nearly all the plants and animals of the Galapagos archipelago, of Juan Fernandez, and of the other American islands being related in the most striking manner to the plants and animals of the neighbouring American mainland; and those of the Cape de Verde archipelago and other African islands to the African mainland. It must be admitted that these facts receive no explanation on the theory of creation.

The presence of closely related or similar species in any two areas suggests, according to the theory of descent with modification, that the same ancestors once lived in both locations; and we typically find that wherever many closely related species are found in two areas, some identical species common to both still exist. In places where many closely related but distinct species are present, there are often many questionable forms and varieties of the same species as well. It's generally true that the organisms in each area are connected to those from the nearest source of potential immigrants. We see this clearly in almost all the plants and animals of the Galapagos archipelago, Juan Fernandez, and other American islands, which are notably related to the plants and animals of the nearby American mainland; similarly, the species of the Cape Verde archipelago and other African islands are related to the African mainland. It's important to note that these facts cannot be explained by the theory of creation.

The fact, as we have seen, that all past and present organic beings constitute one grand natural system, with group subordinate to group, and with extinct groups often falling in between recent groups, is intelligible on the theory of natural selection with its contingencies of extinction and divergence of character. On these same principles we see how it is, that the mutual affinities of the species and genera within each class are so complex and circuitous. We see why certain characters are far more serviceable than others for classification;—why adaptive characters, though of paramount importance to the being, are of hardly any importance in classification; why characters derived from rudimentary parts, though of no service to the being, are often of high classificatory value; and why embryological characters are the most valuable of all. The real affinities of all organic beings are due to inheritance or community of descent. The natural system is a genealogical arrangement, in which we have to discover the lines of descent by the most permanent characters, however slight their vital importance may be.

The fact, as we've seen, that all past and present living beings make up one large natural system, with groups organized under other groups, and with extinct groups often existing between recent ones, makes sense under the theory of natural selection along with the likelihood of extinction and differing traits. Based on these same ideas, we understand why the relationships between species and genera within each class are so intricate and complicated. We see why certain traits are much more useful than others for classification; why traits that are adaptive, although crucial for survival, are hardly important for classification; why traits that come from rudimentary parts, despite being useless for survival, can be highly valuable for classification; and why embryological traits are the most important of all. The true relationships among all living beings arise from inheritance or shared ancestry. The natural system is a genealogical structure, and we need to trace the lines of descent using the most enduring traits, no matter how minor their significance for survival may be.

The framework of bones being the same in the hand of a man, wing of a bat, fin of the porpoise, and leg of the horse,—the same number of vertebræ forming the neck of the giraffe and of the elephant,—and innumerable other such facts, at once explain themselves on the theory of descent with slow and slight successive modifications. The similarity of pattern in the wing and leg of a bat, though used for such different purpose,—in the jaws and legs of a crab,—in the petals, stamens, and pistils of a flower, is likewise intelligible on the view of the gradual modification of parts or organs, which were alike in the early progenitor of each class. On the principle of successive variations not always supervening at an early age, and being inherited at a corresponding not early period of life, we can clearly see why the embryos of mammals, birds, reptiles, and fishes should be so closely alike, and should be so unlike the adult forms. We may cease marvelling at the embryo of an air-breathing mammal or bird having branchial slits and arteries running in loops, like those in a fish which has to breathe the air dissolved in water, by the aid of well-developed branchiæ.

The structure of bones is the same in the hand of a human, the wing of a bat, the fin of a dolphin, and the leg of a horse—the same number of vertebrae form the neck of both the giraffe and the elephant—and countless other examples like this clearly support the theory of evolution through gradual and minor adaptations. The similarity in the wing and leg of a bat, even though they serve very different functions, as well as in the jaws and legs of a crab, and in the petals, stamens, and pistils of a flower, can also be understood through the gradual modification of features that were similar in the common ancestor of each group. Based on the principle that variations don’t always occur at an early age and are inherited at a later stage in life, we can easily understand why the embryos of mammals, birds, reptiles, and fish are so similar and yet so different from their adult forms. We can stop being surprised that the embryo of an air-breathing mammal or bird has gill slits and arteries that loop like those in a fish that needs to extract oxygen from water through its developed gills.

Disuse, aided sometimes by natural selection, will often tend to reduce an organ, when it has become useless by changed habits or under changed conditions of life; and we can clearly understand on this view the meaning of rudimentary organs. But disuse and selection will generally act on each creature, when it has come to maturity and has to play its full part in the struggle for existence, and will thus have little power of acting on an organ during early life; hence the organ will not be much reduced or rendered rudimentary at this early age. The calf, for instance, has inherited teeth, which never cut through the gums of the upper jaw, from an early progenitor having well-developed teeth; and we may believe, that the teeth in the mature animal were reduced, during successive generations, by disuse or by the tongue and palate having been fitted by natural selection to browse without their aid; whereas in the calf, the teeth have been left untouched by selection or disuse, and on the principle of inheritance at corresponding ages have been inherited from a remote period to the present day. On the view of each organic being and each separate organ having been specially created, how utterly inexplicable it is that parts, like the teeth in the embryonic calf or like the shrivelled wings under the soldered wing-covers of some beetles, should thus so frequently bear the plain stamp of inutility! Nature may be said to have taken pains to reveal, by rudimentary organs and by homologous structures, her scheme of modification, which it seems that we wilfully will not understand.

Disuse, sometimes combined with natural selection, often leads to the reduction of an organ when it becomes useless due to changes in habits or living conditions of life. This perspective helps us understand the significance of rudimentary organs. However, disuse and selection usually affect each creature once it reaches maturity and needs to fulfill its role in the struggle for survival, which means they have limited impact on an organ during early life; consequently, the organ won’t be significantly reduced or made rudimentary at this early stage. For example, a calf inherits teeth that never break through the gums of its upper jaw from an ancestor that had well-developed teeth. We can assume that, over generations, these teeth were reduced through disuse or because the tongue and palate adapted through natural selection to graze without them; in contrast, the calf’s teeth have gone relatively unaffected by selection or disuse, and following the principle of inheritance at corresponding stages, they have been passed down from a distant time to now. From the perspective that each living being and every individual organ was specially created, it’s puzzling that parts like the teeth in the embryonic calf or the shriveled wings beneath the fused wing-covers of some beetles frequently show clear signs of being useless! Nature seems to have made an effort to show, through rudimentary organs and homologous structures, her method of modification, which we seemingly refuse to comprehend.

I have now recapitulated the chief facts and considerations which have thoroughly convinced me that species have changed, and are still slowly changing by the preservation and accumulation of successive slight favourable variations. Why, it may be asked, have all the most eminent living naturalists and geologists rejected this view of the mutability of species? It cannot be asserted that organic beings in a state of nature are subject to no variation; it cannot be proved that the amount of variation in the course of long ages is a limited quantity; no clear distinction has been, or can be, drawn between species and well-marked varieties. It cannot be maintained that species when intercrossed are invariably sterile, and varieties invariably fertile; or that sterility is a special endowment and sign of creation. The belief that species were immutable productions was almost unavoidable as long as the history of the world was thought to be of short duration; and now that we have acquired some idea of the lapse of time, we are too apt to assume, without proof, that the geological record is so perfect that it would have afforded us plain evidence of the mutation of species, if they had undergone mutation.

I have now summarized the key facts and points that have completely convinced me that species have changed and are still slowly changing through the preservation and accumulation of successive slight favorable variations. Why, one might wonder, have all the most distinguished current naturalists and geologists rejected this idea of species changing over time? It cannot be asserted that living organisms in their natural state do not experience variation; it cannot be proven that the amount of variation over long periods is fixed; no clear distinction has been, or can be, made between species and well-defined varieties. It cannot be claimed that species are always sterile when interbred, while varieties are always fertile; or that sterility is a special characteristic and indicator of creation. The belief that species were unchanging was almost inevitable as long as the history of the world was believed to be brief; and now that we have some understanding of the passage of time, we tend to assume, without evidence, that the geological record is so complete that it would have given us clear proof of the change of species if they had actually changed.

But the chief cause of our natural unwillingness to admit that one species has given birth to other and distinct species, is that we are always slow in admitting any great change of which we do not see the intermediate steps. The difficulty is the same as that felt by so many geologists, when Lyell first insisted that long lines of inland cliffs had been formed, and great valleys excavated, by the slow action of the coast-waves. The mind cannot possibly grasp the full meaning of the term of a hundred million years; it cannot add up and perceive the full effects of many slight variations, accumulated during an almost infinite number of generations.

But the main reason we’re hesitant to accept that one species has evolved into different species is that we’re always slow to recognize any major change when we can't see the gradual steps leading up to it. The challenge is similar to what many geologists felt when Lyell first argued that long stretches of inland cliffs were formed and vast valleys dug out by the slow action of coastal waves. The mind just can’t fully understand what a hundred million years really means; it struggles to add together and recognize the total impact of many small changes that have stacked up over countless generations.

Although I am fully convinced of the truth of the views given in this volume under the form of an abstract, I by no means expect to convince experienced naturalists whose minds are stocked with a multitude of facts all viewed, during a long course of years, from a point of view directly opposite to mine. It is so easy to hide our ignorance under such expressions as the “plan of creation,” “unity of design,” etc., and to think that we give an explanation when we only restate a fact. Any one whose disposition leads him to attach more weight to unexplained difficulties than to the explanation of a certain number of facts will certainly reject my theory. A few naturalists, endowed with much flexibility of mind, and who have already begun to doubt on the immutability of species, may be influenced by this volume; but I look with confidence to the future, to young and rising naturalists, who will be able to view both sides of the question with impartiality. Whoever is led to believe that species are mutable will do good service by conscientiously expressing his conviction; for only thus can the load of prejudice by which this subject is overwhelmed be removed.

Although I fully believe in the ideas presented in this volume as an overview, I don’t expect to persuade experienced naturalists whose knowledge is filled with countless facts seen from a perspective completely opposite to mine. It’s so easy to cover up our ignorance with terms like “plan of creation,” “unity of design,” etc., and to think we’re providing an explanation when we’re just restating a fact. Anyone who tends to focus more on unexplained issues than on the explanations for certain facts will likely dismiss my theory. A few naturalists, who are open-minded and have started to question the idea that species are unchanging, might be swayed by this volume; but I’m optimistic about the future, looking to the young and emerging naturalists who can consider both sides of the issue fairly. Anyone who comes to believe that species can change will contribute positively by expressing their belief; only in this way can we lift the burden of prejudice that surrounds this topic.

Several eminent naturalists have of late published their belief that a multitude of reputed species in each genus are not real species; but that other species are real, that is, have been independently created. This seems to me a strange conclusion to arrive at. They admit that a multitude of forms, which till lately they themselves thought were special creations, and which are still thus looked at by the majority of naturalists, and which consequently have every external characteristic feature of true species,—they admit that these have been produced by variation, but they refuse to extend the same view to other and very slightly different forms. Nevertheless they do not pretend that they can define, or even conjecture, which are the created forms of life, and which are those produced by secondary laws. They admit variation as a vera causa in one case, they arbitrarily reject it in another, without assigning any distinction in the two cases. The day will come when this will be given as a curious illustration of the blindness of preconceived opinion. These authors seem no more startled at a miraculous act of creation than at an ordinary birth. But do they really believe that at innumerable periods in the earth’s history certain elemental atoms have been commanded suddenly to flash into living tissues? Do they believe that at each supposed act of creation one individual or many were produced? Were all the infinitely numerous kinds of animals and plants created as eggs or seed, or as full grown? and in the case of mammals, were they created bearing the false marks of nourishment from the mother’s womb? Although naturalists very properly demand a full explanation of every difficulty from those who believe in the mutability of species, on their own side they ignore the whole subject of the first appearance of species in what they consider reverent silence.

Recently, several well-known naturalists have expressed their belief that many species thought to belong to the same genus aren't actually distinct species; instead, they claim that other species are real—that is, they were independently created. This seems like a puzzling conclusion to reach. They recognize that many forms, which until recently they themselves believed were special creations, and which the majority of naturalists still view this way and that have all the external traits of true species, were produced through variation. Yet, they refuse to apply the same reasoning to other forms that are only slightly different. Still, they don’t claim they can define or even guess which forms of life are created and which are produced by natural laws. They accept variation as a vera causa in one instance but arbitrarily dismiss it in another without explaining the difference. One day, this will be seen as a curious example of the blindness caused by preconceived notions. These authors seem just as unfazed by a miraculous act of creation as they are by a routine birth. But do they genuinely believe that at countless moments in Earth’s history, certain elemental atoms were suddenly commanded to turn into living tissues? Do they think that in each supposed act of creation, one individual or many were produced? Were all the countless different kinds of animals and plants created as eggs or seeds, or as fully grown? And in the case of mammals, were they created with the false signs of having been nurtured in the mother’s womb? While naturalists rightly expect a complete explanation of every challenge from those who believe in the mutability of species, they conveniently overlook the entire issue of how species first appeared, treating it with what they consider respectful silence.

It may be asked how far I extend the doctrine of the modification of species. The question is difficult to answer, because the more distinct the forms are which we may consider, by so much the arguments fall away in force. But some arguments of the greatest weight extend very far. All the members of whole classes can be connected together by chains of affinities, and all can be classified on the same principle, in groups subordinate to groups. Fossil remains sometimes tend to fill up very wide intervals between existing orders. Organs in a rudimentary condition plainly show that an early progenitor had the organ in a fully developed state; and this in some instances necessarily implies an enormous amount of modification in the descendants. Throughout whole classes various structures are formed on the same pattern, and at an embryonic age the species closely resemble each other. Therefore I cannot doubt that the theory of descent with modification embraces all the members of the same class. I believe that animals have descended from at most only four or five progenitors, and plants from an equal or lesser number.

It might be asked how far I extend the idea of species modification. This question is tough to answer because the more distinct the forms we consider, the weaker the arguments become. However, some of the strongest arguments reach quite far. All members of entire classes can be linked by chains of affinities, and they can all be classified based on the same principle, into groups that are subordinate to larger groups. Fossil remains sometimes help to bridge significant gaps between existing orders. Organs in a rudimentary state clearly show that an early ancestor had the organ well developed; in some cases, this indicates a great deal of modification in the descendants. Throughout entire classes, various structures are formed based on the same design, and at the embryonic stage, species resemble each other closely. Therefore, I have no doubt that the theory of descent with modification includes all members of the same class. I think that animals have descended from at most only four or five ancestors, and plants from an equal or even smaller number.

Analogy would lead me one step further, namely, to the belief that all animals and plants have descended from some one prototype. But analogy may be a deceitful guide. Nevertheless all living things have much in common, in their chemical composition, their germinal vesicles, their cellular structure, and their laws of growth and reproduction. We see this even in so trifling a circumstance as that the same poison often similarly affects plants and animals; or that the poison secreted by the gall-fly produces monstrous growths on the wild rose or oak-tree. Therefore I should infer from analogy that probably all the organic beings which have ever lived on this earth have descended from some one primordial form, into which life was first breathed.

Analogy leads me to believe that all animals and plants have evolved from a single ancestor. However, analogy can be misleading. Still, all living things share a lot in common in their chemical makeup, their reproductive structures, their cellular organization, and their growth and reproduction processes. This is evident even in small details, like how the same poison often affects both plants and animals in similar ways, or how the poison from the gall-fly can cause unusual growths on wild roses or oak trees. Therefore, I would conclude from this analogy that it’s likely all the living beings that have ever existed on this planet have descended from a single original form, where life first began.

When the views entertained in this volume on the origin of species, or when analogous views are generally admitted, we can dimly foresee that there will be a considerable revolution in natural history. Systematists will be able to pursue their labours as at present; but they will not be incessantly haunted by the shadowy doubt whether this or that form be in essence a species. This I feel sure, and I speak after experience, will be no slight relief. The endless disputes whether or not some fifty species of British brambles are true species will cease. Systematists will have only to decide (not that this will be easy) whether any form be sufficiently constant and distinct from other forms, to be capable of definition; and if definable, whether the differences be sufficiently important to deserve a specific name. This latter point will become a far more essential consideration than it is at present; for differences, however slight, between any two forms, if not blended by intermediate gradations, are looked at by most naturalists as sufficient to raise both forms to the rank of species. Hereafter we shall be compelled to acknowledge that the only distinction between species and well-marked varieties is, that the latter are known, or believed, to be connected at the present day by intermediate gradations, whereas species were formerly thus connected. Hence, without quite rejecting the consideration of the present existence of intermediate gradations between any two forms, we shall be led to weigh more carefully and to value higher the actual amount of difference between them. It is quite possible that forms now generally acknowledged to be merely varieties may hereafter be thought worthy of specific names, as with the primrose and cowslip; and in this case scientific and common language will come into accordance. In short, we shall have to treat species in the same manner as those naturalists treat genera, who admit that genera are merely artificial combinations made for convenience. This may not be a cheering prospect; but we shall at least be freed from the vain search for the undiscovered and undiscoverable essence of the term species.

When the ideas in this book about the origin of species are accepted, or when similar views become widely accepted, we can vaguely anticipate a significant change in the study of natural history. Systematists will continue their work as they do now, but they won’t constantly be troubled by the nagging doubt about whether this form or that is truly a species. I’m confident that this will be a big relief based on my experience. The endless debates about whether around fifty species of British brambles are real species will come to an end. Systematists will only need to determine (though this won't be easy) whether any form is consistent and distinct enough from others to be defined; and if it can be defined, whether the differences are significant enough to warrant a specific name. This last consideration will become far more crucial than it is now; because differences, no matter how minor, between any two forms—if they aren’t connected by intermediate variations—are viewed by most naturalists as enough to elevate both forms to the level of species. In the future, we’ll have to recognize that the only difference between species and clearly defined varieties is that the latter are known, or believed, to have current intermediate variations connecting them, while species were once connected in such ways. Therefore, without entirely dismissing the importance of current intermediate variations between any two forms, we will be encouraged to carefully evaluate and appreciate the actual differences between them. It’s entirely possible that forms now generally considered mere varieties may be seen in the future as deserving specific names, like the primrose and cowslip; and in such cases, scientific terminology and common language will align. In short, we’ll need to treat species the same way some naturalists treat genera, who acknowledge that genera are simply artificial groupings made for convenience. This may not be an encouraging outlook, but at least we’ll be free from the futile search for the unknown and unknowable essence of what a species truly is.

The other and more general departments of natural history will rise greatly in interest. The terms used by naturalists of affinity, relationship, community of type, paternity, morphology, adaptive characters, rudimentary and aborted organs, etc., will cease to be metaphorical, and will have a plain signification. When we no longer look at an organic being as a savage looks at a ship, as at something wholly beyond his comprehension; when we regard every production of nature as one which has had a history; when we contemplate every complex structure and instinct as the summing up of many contrivances, each useful to the possessor, nearly in the same way as when we look at any great mechanical invention as the summing up of the labour, the experience, the reason, and even the blunders of numerous workmen; when we thus view each organic being, how far more interesting, I speak from experience, will the study of natural history become!

The other, broader areas of natural history will become much more engaging. The terms used by naturalists such as affinity, relationship, community of type, paternity, morphology, adaptive features, rudimentary and vestigial organs, etc., will lose their metaphorical meanings and will have clear definitions. When we no longer see an organism the way a primitive person sees a ship—as something completely incomprehensible; when we view every natural creation as something that has a history; when we examine every complex structure and instinct as the result of many adaptations, each beneficial to the organism, much like we analyze any significant mechanical invention as the result of the combined efforts, experiences, reasoning, and even mistakes of numerous workers; when we look at each organism this way, I can tell from experience, the study of natural history will be so much more fascinating!

A grand and almost untrodden field of inquiry will be opened, on the causes and laws of variation, on correlation of growth, on the effects of use and disuse, on the direct action of external conditions, and so forth. The study of domestic productions will rise immensely in value. A new variety raised by man will be a far more important and interesting subject for study than one more species added to the infinitude of already recorded species. Our classifications will come to be, as far as they can be so made, genealogies; and will then truly give what may be called the plan of creation. The rules for classifying will no doubt become simpler when we have a definite object in view. We possess no pedigrees or armorial bearings; and we have to discover and trace the many diverging lines of descent in our natural genealogies, by characters of any kind which have long been inherited. Rudimentary organs will speak infallibly with respect to the nature of long-lost structures. Species and groups of species, which are called aberrant, and which may fancifully be called living fossils, will aid us in forming a picture of the ancient forms of life. Embryology will reveal to us the structure, in some degree obscured, of the prototypes of each great class.

A vast and mostly unexplored area of research will open up, focusing on the causes and patterns of variation, the correlation of growth, the impact of use and disuse, the direct effects of external conditions, and more. The study of domesticated species will become significantly more valuable. A new variety developed by humans will be a much more important and fascinating subject of study than just another species added to the endless list of recorded species. Our classifications will evolve into genealogies as much as possible, truly reflecting what could be called the blueprint of creation. The rules for classification will likely become simpler when we have a clear objective in mind. We don't have any pedigrees or crests; we need to uncover and trace the various divergent lines of descent in our natural genealogies using any inherited traits that have persisted over time. Rudimentary organs will provide clear evidence regarding the nature of long-lost structures. Species and groups of species that are referred to as aberrant and can whimsically be called living fossils will help us create a picture of ancient life forms. Embryology will reveal to us the structure, somewhat obscured, of the ancestors of each major class.

When we can feel assured that all the individuals of the same species, and all the closely allied species of most genera, have within a not very remote period descended from one parent, and have migrated from some one birthplace; and when we better know the many means of migration, then, by the light which geology now throws, and will continue to throw, on former changes of climate and of the level of the land, we shall surely be enabled to trace in an admirable manner the former migrations of the inhabitants of the whole world. Even at present, by comparing the differences of the inhabitants of the sea on the opposite sides of a continent, and the nature of the various inhabitants of that continent in relation to their apparent means of immigration, some light can be thrown on ancient geography.

When we can be confident that all individuals of the same species, as well as closely related species of most genera, have emerged from a common ancestor not too long ago and have migrated from a single origin, and when we have a clearer understanding of the various means of migration, then, with the insights that geology currently provides and will continue to provide regarding past climate changes and land levels, we will surely be able to trace the historical migrations of the world’s inhabitants in a remarkable way. Even now, by comparing the differences among marine life on opposite sides of a continent and the nature of the different species on that continent in relation to their apparent means of migration, we can gain some understanding of ancient geography.

The noble science of Geology loses glory from the extreme imperfection of the record. The crust of the earth with its embedded remains must not be looked at as a well-filled museum, but as a poor collection made at hazard and at rare intervals. The accumulation of each great fossiliferous formation will be recognised as having depended on an unusual concurrence of circumstances, and the blank intervals between the successive stages as having been of vast duration. But we shall be able to gauge with some security the duration of these intervals by a comparison of the preceding and succeeding organic forms. We must be cautious in attempting to correlate as strictly contemporaneous two formations, which include few identical species, by the general succession of their forms of life. As species are produced and exterminated by slowly acting and still existing causes, and not by miraculous acts of creation and by catastrophes; and as the most important of all causes of organic change is one which is almost independent of altered and perhaps suddenly altered physical conditions, namely, the mutual relation of organism to organism,—the improvement of one being entailing the improvement or the extermination of others; it follows, that the amount of organic change in the fossils of consecutive formations probably serves as a fair measure of the lapse of actual time. A number of species, however, keeping in a body might remain for a long period unchanged, whilst within this same period, several of these species, by migrating into new countries and coming into competition with foreign associates, might become modified; so that we must not overrate the accuracy of organic change as a measure of time. During early periods of the earth’s history, when the forms of life were probably fewer and simpler, the rate of change was probably slower; and at the first dawn of life, when very few forms of the simplest structure existed, the rate of change may have been slow in an extreme degree. The whole history of the world, as at present known, although of a length quite incomprehensible by us, will hereafter be recognised as a mere fragment of time, compared with the ages which have elapsed since the first creature, the progenitor of innumerable extinct and living descendants, was created.

The noble field of Geology loses its prestige due to the extreme incompleteness of the record. We shouldn't view the earth's crust with its embedded remains as a well-organized museum, but rather as a random collection put together haphazardly and at rare intervals. The formation of each major fossil-rich layer relied on unusual combinations of circumstances, and the long gaps between these stages lasted for vast periods. However, we can estimate the length of these gaps by comparing the earlier and later forms of life. We need to be careful when trying to link two formations as being from the same period if they contain few identical species, based simply on the general order of their life forms. Species emerge and go extinct due to slow, ongoing processes, and not through miraculous creations or disasters; and the most significant factor driving organic change is often independent of sudden environmental shifts, namely the relationships between different organisms—where the advancement of one species can lead to the improvement or extinction of others. Thus, the extent of organic change in fossils from different formations likely reflects the passage of real time. However, a group of species might remain unchanged for long periods, while during the same time, some of those species might adapt by migrating to new areas and competing with new species, so we shouldn't overestimate how accurately organic change measures time. In the early stages of the earth's history, with probably fewer and simpler life forms, the rate of change was likely slower; and at the very beginnings of life, when there were very few simple structures, the rate of change might have been extremely slow. The entire history of the world, as we currently understand it, despite being incredibly vast, will eventually be seen as just a tiny fragment of time compared to the ages that have passed since the first living creature, the ancestor of countless extinct and existing descendants, was created.

In the distant future I see open fields for far more important researches. Psychology will be based on a new foundation, that of the necessary acquirement of each mental power and capacity by gradation. Light will be thrown on the origin of man and his history.

In the distant future, I see open fields for much more significant research. Psychology will be built on a new foundation, focusing on the gradual acquisition of each mental power and ability. We will gain insight into the origin of humanity and our history.

Authors of the highest eminence seem to be fully satisfied with the view that each species has been independently created. To my mind it accords better with what we know of the laws impressed on matter by the Creator, that the production and extinction of the past and present inhabitants of the world should have been due to secondary causes, like those determining the birth and death of the individual. When I view all beings not as special creations, but as the lineal descendants of some few beings which lived long before the first bed of the Silurian system was deposited, they seem to me to become ennobled. Judging from the past, we may safely infer that not one living species will transmit its unaltered likeness to a distant futurity. And of the species now living very few will transmit progeny of any kind to a far distant futurity; for the manner in which all organic beings are grouped, shows that the greater number of species of each genus, and all the species of many genera, have left no descendants, but have become utterly extinct. We can so far take a prophetic glance into futurity as to foretel that it will be the common and widely-spread species, belonging to the larger and dominant groups, which will ultimately prevail and procreate new and dominant species. As all the living forms of life are the lineal descendants of those which lived long before the Silurian epoch, we may feel certain that the ordinary succession by generation has never once been broken, and that no cataclysm has desolated the whole world. Hence we may look with some confidence to a secure future of equally inappreciable length. And as natural selection works solely by and for the good of each being, all corporeal and mental endowments will tend to progress towards perfection.

Authors of great importance seem to be completely convinced that each species was created independently. I believe it makes more sense, based on what we understand about the laws set upon matter by the Creator, that the rise and fall of past and present inhabitants of the world should have been caused by secondary factors, similar to those that affect the birth and death of individuals. When I see all living things not as special creations, but as direct descendants of a few organisms that existed long before the first layers of the Silurian system were formed, they appear to become more noble to me. Looking at the past, we can safely conclude that no living species will pass on its exact likeness into the distant future. Among the species currently alive, very few will produce any descendants far into the future; the way all living beings are arranged indicates that most species within each genus, and all species of many genera, have left no descendants and are completely extinct. We can predict that the common and widespread species, those belonging to larger and dominant groups, will ultimately thrive and give rise to new and dominant species. Since all living forms are direct descendants of those that lived long before the Silurian epoch, we can be confident that the usual process of generation has never been broken, and that no catastrophe has devastated the entire world. Therefore, we can look forward with some assurance to a secure future of equally immense length. And as natural selection operates solely for the benefit of each being, all physical and mental traits will tend to evolve towards perfection.

It is interesting to contemplate an entangled bank, clothed with many plants of many kinds, with birds singing on the bushes, with various insects flitting about, and with worms crawling through the damp earth, and to reflect that these elaborately constructed forms, so different from each other, and dependent on each other in so complex a manner, have all been produced by laws acting around us. These laws, taken in the largest sense, being Growth with Reproduction; Inheritance which is almost implied by reproduction; Variability from the indirect and direct action of the external conditions of life, and from use and disuse; a Ratio of Increase so high as to lead to a Struggle for Life, and as a consequence to Natural Selection, entailing Divergence of Character and the Extinction of less-improved forms. Thus, from the war of nature, from famine and death, the most exalted object which we are capable of conceiving, namely, the production of the higher animals, directly follows. There is grandeur in this view of life, with its several powers, having been originally breathed into a few forms or into one; and that, whilst this planet has gone cycling on according to the fixed law of gravity, from so simple a beginning endless forms most beautiful and most wonderful have been, and are being, evolved.

It’s fascinating to think about a tangled bank filled with various plants, with birds singing in the bushes, insects buzzing around, and worms wriggling through the damp earth. When we reflect on how these intricate forms, so different from one another and so interconnected in complex ways, have all come about through the laws that govern our world, it’s remarkable. These laws, in the broadest sense, include Growth with Reproduction; Inheritance, which is almost a given with reproduction; Variability influenced by both direct and indirect effects of external conditions of life, as well as through use and disuse; a Ratio of Increase that is so high it leads to a Struggle for Life, resulting in Natural Selection, which brings about Divergence of Character and the extinction of less-adapted forms. Thus, from nature’s challenges, famine, and death comes the highest achievement we can imagine: the emergence of higher animals. There’s a certain grandeur in this perspective on life, which, despite its many abilities, originated from just a few or even just one form; and while our planet continues to revolve according to the unchanging law of gravity, from such a simple start, countless beautiful and remarkable forms have evolved and are still evolving.

INDEX.

Aberrant groups, 429.

Abyssinia, plants of, 375.

Acclimatisation, 139.

Affinities:
of extinct species, 329.
of organic beings, 411.

Agassiz:
on Amblyopsis, 139.
on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.
on embryological succession, 338.
on the glacial period, 366.
on embryological characters, 418.
on the embryos of vertebrata, 439.
on parallelism of embryological development and geological succession, 449.

Algæ of New Zealand, 376.

Alligators, males, fighting, 88.

Amblyopsis, blind fish, 139.

America, North:
productions allied to those of Europe, 371.
boulders and glaciers of, 373.
South, no modern formations on west coast, 290.

Ammonites, sudden extinction of, 321.

Anagallis, sterility of, 247.

Analogy of variations, 159.

Ancylus, 386.

Animals:
not domesticated from being variable, 17.
domestic, descended from several stocks, 19.
acclimatisation of, 141.
of Australia, 116.
with thicker fur in cold climates, 133.
blind, in caves, 137.
extinct, of Australia, 339.

Anomma, 240.

Antarctic islands, ancient flora of, 399.

Antirrhinum, 161.

Ants:
attending aphides, 211.
slave-making instinct, 219.

Ants, neuter, structure of, 236.

Aphides attended by ants, 211.

Aphis, development of, 442.

Apteryx, 182.

Arab horses, 35.

Aralo-Caspian Sea, 339.

Archiac, M. de, on the succession of species, 325.

Artichoke, Jerusalem, 142.

Ascension, plants of, 389.

Asclepias, pollen of, 193.

Asparagus, 359.

Aspicarpa, 417.

Asses, striped, 163.

Ateuchus, 135.

Audubon:
on habits of frigate-bird, 185.
on variation in birds’-nests, 212.
on heron eating seeds, 387.

Australia:
animals of, 116.
dogs of, 215.
extinct animals of, 339.
European plants in, 375.

Azara on flies destroying cattle, 72.

Azores, flora of, 363.

Babington, Mr., on British plants, 48.

Balancement of growth, 147.

Bamboo with hooks, 197.

Barberry, flowers of, 98.

Barrande, M.:
on Silurian colonies, 313.
on the succession of species, 325.
on parallelism of palæozoic formations, 328.
on affinities of ancient species, 330.

Barriers, importance of, 347.

Batrachians on islands, 393.

Bats:
how structure acquired, 180.
distribution of, 394.

Bear, catching water-insects, 184.

Bee:
sting of, 202.
queen, killing rivals, 202.

Bees fertilising flowers, 73.

Bees:
hive, not sucking the red clover, 95.
cell-making instinct, 224.
humble, cells of, 225.
parasitic, 218.

Beetles:
wingless, in Madeira, 135.
with deficient tarsi, 135.

Bentham, Mr.:
on British plants, 48.
on classification, 419.

Berkeley, Mr., on seeds in salt-water, 358.

Bermuda, birds of, 391.

Birds:
acquiring fear, 212.
annually cross the Atlantic, 364.
colour of, on continents, 132.
fossil, in caves of Brazil, 339.
of Madeira, Bermuda, and Galapagos, 390.
song of males, 89.
transporting seeds, 361.
waders, 386.
wingless, 134, 182.
with traces of embryonic teeth, 451.

Bizcacha, 349.
affinities of, 429.

Bladder for swimming in fish, 190.

Blindness of cave animals, 137,

Blyth, Mr.:
on distinctness of Indian cattle, 18.
on striped Hemionus, 163.
on crossed geese, 253.

Boar, shoulder-pad of, 88.

Borrow, Mr., on the Spanish pointer, 35.

Bory St. Vincent on Batrachians, 393.

Bosquet, M., on fossil Chthamalus, 304.

Boulders, erratic, on the Azores, 363.

Branchiæ, 190.

Brent, Mr.:
on house-tumblers, 214.
on hawks killing pigeons, 362.

Brewer, Dr., on American cuckoo, 217.

Britain, mammals of, 395.

Bronn on duration of specific forms, 293.

Brown, Robert, on classification, 414.

Buckman on variation in plants, 10.

Buzareingues on sterility of varieties, 270.

Cabbage, varieties of, crossed, 99.

Calceolaria, 251.

Canary-birds, sterility of hybrids, 252.

Cape de Verde islands, 398.

Cape of Good Hope, plants of, 110, 375.

Carrier-pigeons killed by hawks, 362.

Cassini on flowers of compositæ, 145.

Catasetum, 424.

Cats:
with blue eyes, deaf, 12.
variation in habits of, 91.
curling tail when going to spring, 201.

Cattle:
destroying fir-trees, 71.
destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.
breeds of, locally extinct, 111.
fertility of Indian and European breeds, 254.

Cave, inhabitants of, blind, 137.

Centres of creation, 352.

Cephalopodæ, development of, 442.

Cervulus, 253.

Cetacea, teeth and hair, 144.

Ceylon, plants of, 375.

Chalk formation, 322.

Characters:
divergence of, 111.
sexual, variable, 156.
adaptive or analogical, 427.

Charlock, 76.

Checks:
to increase, 67.
mutual, 71.

Chickens, instinctive tameness of, 216.

Chthamalinæ, 288.

Chthamalus, cretacean species of, 304.

Circumstances favourable:
to selection of domestic products, 40.
to natural selection, 101.

Cirripedes:
capable of crossing, 101.
carapace aborted, 148.
their ovigerous frena, 192.
fossil, 304.
larvæ of, 440.

Classification, 413.

Clift, Mr., on the succession of types, 339.

Climate:
effects of, in checking increase of beings, 68.
adaptation of, to organisms, 139.

Cobites, intestine of, 190.

Cockroach, 76.

Collections, palæontological, poor, 287.

Colour:
influenced by climate, 132.
in relation to attacks by flies, 198.

Columba livia, parent of domestic pigeons, 23.

Colymbetes, 386.

Compensation of growth, 147.

Compositæ:
outer and inner florets of, 144.
male flowers of, 451.

Conclusion, general, 480.

Conditions, slight changes in, favourable to fertility, 267.

Coot, 185.

Coral:
islands, seeds drifted to, 360.
reefs, indicating movements of earth, 309.

Corn-crake, 185.

Correlation:
of growth in domestic productions, 11.
of growth, 143, 198.

Cowslip, 49.

Creation, single centres of, 352.

Crinum, 250.

Crosses, reciprocal, 258.

Crossing:
of domestic animals, importance in altering breeds, 20.
advantages of, 96.
unfavourable to selection, 102.

Crustacea of New Zealand, 376.

Crustacean, blind, 137.

Cryptocerus, 238.

Ctenomys, blind, 137.

Cuckoo, instinct of, 216.

Currants, grafts of, 262.

Currents of sea, rate of, 359.

Cuvier:
on conditions of existence, 206.
on fossil monkeys, 303.

Cuvier, Fred., on instinct, 208.

Dana, Professor:
on blind cave-animals, 139.
on relations of crustaceans of Japan, 372.
on crustaceans of New Zealand, 376.

De Candolle:
on struggle for existence, 62.
on umbelliferæ, 146.
on general affinities, 430.

De Candolle, Alph.:
on low plants, widely dispersed, 406.
on widely-ranging plants being variable, 53.
on naturalisation, 115.
on winged seeds, 146.
on Alpine species suddenly becoming rare, 175.
on distribution of plants with large seeds, 360.
on vegetation of Australia, 379.
on fresh-water plants, 386.
on insular plants, 389.

Degradation of coast-rocks, 282.

Denudation:
rate of, 285.
of oldest rocks, 308.

Development of ancient forms, 336.

Devonian system, 334.

Dianthus, fertility of crosses, 256.

Dirt on feet of birds, 362.

Dispersal:
means of, 356.
during glacial period, 365.

Distribution:
geographical, 346.
means of, 356.

Disuse, effects of, under nature, 134.

Divergence of character, 111.

Division, physiological, of labour, 115.

Dogs:
hairless, with imperfect teeth, 12.
descended from several wild stocks, 18.
domestic instincts of, 213.
inherited civilisation of, 215.
fertility of breeds together, 254.
of crosses, 268.
proportions of, when young, 444.

Domestication, variation under, 7.

Downing, Mr., on fruit-trees in America, 85.

Downs, North and South, 285.

Dragon-flies, intestines of, 190.

Drift-timber, 360.

Driver-ant, 240.

Drones killed by other bees, 202.

Duck:
domestic, wings of, reduced, 11.
logger-headed, 182.

Duckweed, 385.

Dugong, affinities of, 414.

Dung-beetles with deficient tarsi, 135.

Dyticus, 386.

Earl, Mr. W., on the Malay Archipelago, 395.

Ears:
drooping, in domestic animals, 11.
rudimentary, 454.

Earth, seeds in roots of trees, 361.

Eciton, 238.

Economy of organisation, 147.

Edentata:
teeth and hair, 144.
fossil species of, 339.

Edwards, Milne:
on physiological divisions of labour, 115.
on gradations of structure, 194.
on embryological characters, 418.

Eggs, young birds escaping from, 87.

Electric organs, 192.

Elephant:
rate of increase, 64.
of glacial period, 141.

Embryology, 439.

Existence:
struggle for, 60.
conditions of, 206.

Extinction:
as bearing on natural selection, 109.
of domestic varieties, 111.
317.

Eye:
structure of, 187.
correction for aberration, 202.

Eyes reduced in moles, 137.

Fabre, M., on parasitic sphex, 218.

Falconer, Dr.:
on naturalization of plants in India, 65.
on fossil crocodile, 313.
on elephants and mastodons, 334.
and Cautley on mammals of sub-Himalayan beds, 340.

Falkland Island, wolf of, 393.

Faults, 285.

Faunas, marine, 348.

Fear, instinctive, in birds, 212.

Feet of birds, young molluscs adhering to, 385.

Fertility:
of hybrids, 249.
from slight changes in conditions, 267.
of crossed varieties, 267.

Fir-trees:
destroyed by cattle, 71.
pollen of, 203.

Fish:
flying, 182.
teleostean, sudden appearance of, 305.
eating seeds, 362, 387.
fresh-water, distribution of, 384.

Fishes:
ganoid, now confined to fresh water, 107.
electric organs of, 192.
ganoid, living in fresh water, 321.
of southern hemisphere, 376.

Flight, powers of, how acquired, 182.

Flowers:
structure of, in relation to crossing, 97.
of compositæ and umbelliferæ, 144.

Forbes, E.:
on colours of shells, 132.
on abrupt range of shells in depth, 175.
on poorness of palæontological collections, 287.
on continuous succession of genera, 316.
on continental extensions, 357.
on distribution during glacial period, 366
on parallelism in time and space, 409.

Forests, changes in, in America, 74.

Formation, Devonian, 334.

Formations:
thickness of, in Britain, 284.
intermittent, 290.

Formica rufescens, 219.

Formica sanguinea, 219.

Formica flava, neuter of, 239.

Frena, ovigerous, of cirripedes, 192.

Fresh-water productions, dispersal of, 383.

Fries on species in large genera being closely allied to other species, 57.

Frigate-bird, 185.

Frogs on islands, 393.

Fruit-trees:
gradual improvement of, 37.
in United States, 85.
varieties of, acclimatised in United States, 142.

Fuci, crossed, 258.

Fur, thicker in cold climates, 133.

Furze, 439.

Galapagos Archipelago:
birds of, 390.
productions of, 398, 400.

Galeopithecus, 181.

Game, increase of, checked by vermin, 68.

Gärtner:
on sterility of hybrids, 247, 255.
on reciprocal crosses, 258.
on crossed maize and verbascum, 270.
on comparison of hybrids and mongrels, 272.

Geese:
fertility when crossed, 253.
upland, 185.

Genealogy important in classification, 425.

Geoffrey St. Hilaire:
on balancement, 147.
on homologous organs, 434.

Geoffrey St. Hilaire, Isidore:
on variability of repeated parts, 149.
on correlation in monstrosities, 11.
on correlation, 144.
on variable parts being often monstrous, 155.

Geographical distribution, 346.

Geography, ancient, 487.

Geology:
future progress of, 487.
imperfection of the record, 279.

Giraffe, tail of, 195.

Glacial period, 365.

Gmelin on distribution, 365.

Gnathodon, fossil, 368.

Godwin-Austen, Mr., on the Malay Archipelago, 299.

Goethe on compensation of growth, 147.

Gooseberry, grafts of, 262.

Gould, Dr. A., on land-shells, 397.

Gould, Mr.:
on colours of birds, 132.
on birds of the Galapagos, 398.
on distribution of genera of birds, 404.

Gourds, crossed, 270.

Grafts, capacity of, 261.

Grasses, varieties of, 113.

Gray, Dr. Asa:
on trees of United States, 100.
on naturalised plants in the United States, 115.
on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.
on Alpine plants, 365.

Gray, Dr. J. E., on striped mule, 165.

Grebe, 185.

Groups, aberrant, 429.

Grouse:
colours of, 84.
red, a doubtful species, 49.

Growth:
compensation of, 147.
correlation of, in domestic products, 11.
correlation of, 143.

Habit:
effect of, under domestication, 11.
effect of, under nature, 134.
diversified, of same species, 183.

Hair and teeth, correlated, 144.

Harcourt, Mr. E. V., on the birds of Madeira, 391.

Hartung, M., on boulders in the Azores, 363.

Hazel-nuts, 359.

Hearne on habits of bears, 184.

Heath, changes in vegetation, 72,

Heer, O., on plants of Madeira, 107.

Helix pomatia, 397.

Helosciadium, 359.

Hemionus, striped, 163.

Herbert, W.:
on struggle for existence, 62.
on sterility of hybrids, 249.

Hermaphrodites crossing, 96.

Heron eating seed, 387.

Heron, Sir R., on peacocks, 89.

Heusinger on white animals not poisoned by certain plants, 12.

Hewitt, Mr., on sterility of first crosses, 264.

Himalaya:
glaciers of, 373.
plants of, 375.

Hippeastrum, 250.

Holly-trees, sexes of, 93.

Hollyhock, varieties of, crossed, 271.

Hooker, Dr., on trees of New Zealand, 100.

Hooker, Dr.:
on acclimatisation of Himalayan trees, 140.
on flowers of umbelliferæ, 145.
on glaciers of Himalaya, 373.
on algæ of New Zealand, 376.
on vegetation at the base of the Himalaya, 378.
on plants of Tierra del Fuego, 374, 378.
on Australian plants, 375, 399.
on relations of flora of South America, 379.
on flora of the Antarctic lands, 381, 399.
on the plants of the Galapagos, 391, 398.

Hooks:
on bamboos, 197.
to seeds on islands, 392.

Horner, Mr., on the antiquity of Egyptians, 18.

Horns, rudimentary, 454.

Horse, fossil, in La Plata, 318.

Horses:
destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.
striped, 163.
proportions of, when young, 445.

Horticulturists, selection applied by, 32.

Huber on cells of bees, 230.

Huber, P.:
on reason blended with instinct, 208.
on habitual nature of instincts, 208.
on slave making ants, 219.
on Melipona domestica, 225.

Humble-bees, cells of, 225.

Hunter, J., on secondary sexual characters, 150.

Hutton, Captain, on crossed geese, 253.

Huxley, Professor:
on structure of hermaphrodites, 101.
on embryological succession, 338.
on homologous organs, 438.
on the development of aphis, 442.

Hybrids and mongrels compared, 272.

Hybridism, 245.

Hydra, structure of, 190.

Ibla, 148.

Icebergs transporting seeds, 363.

Increase, rate of, 63.

Individuals:
numbers favourable to selection, 102.
many, whether simultaneously created, 356.

Inheritance:
laws of, 12.
at corresponding ages, 14, 86.

Insects:
colour of, fitted for habitations, 84.
sea-side, colours of, 132.
blind, in caves, 138.
luminous, 193.
neuter, 236.

Instinct, 207.

Instincts, domestic, 213.

Intercrossing, advantages of, 96.

Islands, oceanic, 388.

Isolation favourable to selection, 104.

Japan, productions of, 372.

Java, plants of, 375.

Jones, Mr. J. M., on the birds of Bermuda, 391.

Jussieu on classification, 417.

Kentucky, caves of, 137.

Kerguelen-land, flora of, 381, 399.

Kidney-bean, acclimatisation of, 142.

Kidneys of birds, 144.

Kirby on tarsi deficient in beetles, 135.

Knight, Andrew, on cause of variation, 7.

Kölreuter:
on the barberry, 98.
on sterility of hybrids, 247.
on reciprocal crosses, 258.
on crossed varieties of nicotiana, 271.
on crossing male and hermaphrodite flowers, 451.

Lamarck on adaptive characters, 427.

Land-shells:
distribution of, 397.
of Madeira, naturalised, 402.

Languages, classification of, 422.

Lapse, great, of time, 282.

Larvæ, 440.

Laurel, nectar secreted by the leaves, 92.

Laws of variation, 131.

Leech, varieties of, 76.

Leguminosæ, nectar secreted by glands, 92.

Lepidosiren, 107, 330.

Life, struggle for, 60.

Lingula, Silurian, 306.

Linnæus, aphorism of, 413.

Lion:
mane of, 88.
young of, striped, 439.

Lobelia fulgens, 73, 98.

Lobelia, sterility of crosses, 250.

Loess of the Rhine, 384.

Lowness of structure connected with variability, 149.

Lowness, related to wide distribution, 406.

Lubbock, Mr., on the nerves of coccus, 46.

Lucas, Dr. P.:
on inheritance, 12.
on resemblance of child to parent, 275.

Lund and Clausen on fossils of Brazil, 339.

Lyell, Sir C.:
on the struggle for existence, 62.
on modern changes of the earth, 95.
on measure of denudation, 283.
on a carboniferous land-shell, 289.
on fossil whales, 303.
on strata beneath Silurian system, 307.
on the imperfection of the geological record, 310.
on the appearance of species, 312.
on Barrande’s colonies, 313.
on tertiary formations of Europe and North America, 323.
on parallelism of tertiary formations, 328.
on transport of seeds by icebergs, 363.
on great alternations of climate, 382.
on the distribution of fresh-water shells, 385.
on land-shells of Madeira, 402.

Lyell and Dawson on fossilized trees in Nova Scotia, 296.

Macleay on analogical characters, 427.

Madeira:
plants of, 107.
beetles of, wingless, 135.
fossil land-shells of, 339.
birds of, 390.

Magpie tame in Norway, 212.

Maize, crossed, 270.

Malay Archipelago:
compared with Europe, 299.
mammals of, 395.

Malpighiaceæ, 417.

Mammæ, rudimentary, 451.

Mammals:
fossil, in secondary formation, 303.
insular, 393.

Man, origin of races of, 199.

Manatee, rudimentary nails of, 454.

Marsupials:
of Australia, 116.
fossil species of, 339.

Martens, M., experiment on seeds, 360.

Martin, Mr. W. C., on striped mules, 165.

Matteuchi on the electric organs of rays, 193.

Matthiola, reciprocal crosses of, 258.

Means of dispersal, 356.

Melipona domestica, 225.

Metamorphism of oldest rocks, 308.

Mice:
destroying bees, 74.
acclimatisation of, 141.

Migration, bears on first appearance of fossils, 296.

Miller, Professor, on the cells of bees, 226.

Mirabilis, crosses of, 258.

Missel-thrush, 76.

Misseltoe, complex relations of, 3.

Mississippi, rate of deposition at mouth, 284.

Mocking-thrush of the Galapagos, 402.

Modification of species, how far applicable, 483.

Moles, blind, 137.

Mongrels:
fertility and sterility of, 267.
and hybrids compared, 272.

Monkeys, fossil, 303,

Monocanthus, 424.

Mons, Van, on the origin of fruit-trees, 29, 39.

Moquin-Tandon on sea-side plants, 132.

Morphology, 434.

Mozart, musical powers of, 209.

Mud, seeds in, 386.

Mules, striped, 165.

Müller, Dr. F., on Alpine Australian plants, 375.

Murchison, Sir R.:
on the formations of Russia, 289.
on azoic formations, 307.
on extinction, 317.

Mustela vison, 179.

Myanthus, 424.

Myrmecocystus, 238.

Myrmica, eyes of, 240.

Nails, rudimentary, 453.

Natural history:
future progress of, 484.
selection, 80.
system, 413.

Naturalisation:
of forms distinct from the indigenous species, 115.
in New Zealand, 201.

Nautilus, Silurian, 306.

Nectar of plants, 92.

Nectaries, how formed, 92.

Nelumbium luteum, 387.

Nests, variation in, 212.

Neuter insects, 236.

Newman, Mr., on humble-bees, 74.

New Zealand:
productions of, not perfect, 201.
naturalised products of, 337.
fossil birds of, 339.
glacial action in, 373.
crustaceans of, 376.
algæ of, 376.
number of plants of, 389.
flora of, 399.

Nicotiana:
crossed varieties of, 271.
certain species very sterile, 257.

Noble, Mr., on fertility of Rhododendron, 251.

Nodules, phosphatic, in azoic rocks, 307.

Oak, varieties of, 50.

Onites apelles, 135.

Orchis, pollen of, 193.

Organs:
of extreme perfection, 186.
electric, of fishes, 192.
of little importance, 194.
homologous, 434.
rudiments of, 450.

Ornithorhynchus, 107, 416.

Ostrich:
not capable of flight, 134.
habit of laying eggs together, 218.
American, two species of, 349.

Otter, habits of, how acquired, 179.

Ouzel, water, 185.

Owen, Professor:
on birds not flying, 134.
on vegetative repetition, 149.
on variable length of arms in ourang-outang, 150.
on the swim-bladder of fishes, 191.
on electric organs, 192.
on fossil horse of La Plata, 319.
on relations of ruminants and pachyderms, 329.
on fossil birds of New Zealand, 339.
on succession of types, 339.
on affinities of the dugong, 414.
on homologous organs, 435.
on the metamorphosis of cephalopods and spiders, 442.

Pacific Ocean, faunas of, 348.

Paley on no organ formed to give pain, 201.

Pallas on the fertility of the wild stocks of domestic animals, 253.

Paraguay, cattle destroyed by flies, 72.

Parasites, 217.

Partridge, dirt on feet, 362.

Parts:
greatly developed, variable, 150.
degrees of utility of, 201.

Parus major, 183.

Passiflora, 251.

Peaches in United States, 85.

Pear, grafts of, 261.

Pelargonium:
flowers of, 145.
sterility of, 251.

Pelvis of women, 144.

Peloria, 145.

Period, glacial, 365.

Petrels, habits of, 184.

Phasianus, fertility of hybrids, 253.

Pheasant, young, wild, 216.

Philippi on tertiary species in Sicily, 312.

Pictet, Professor:
on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.
on rate of organic change, 313.
on continuous succession of genera, 316.
on close alliance of fossils in consecutive formations, 335.
on embryological succession, 338.

Pierce, Mr., on varieties of wolves, 91.

Pigeons:
with feathered feet and skin between toes, 12.
breeds described, and origin of, 20.
breeds of, how produced, 39, 42.
tumbler, not being able to get out of egg, 87.
reverting to blue colour, 160.
instinct of tumbling, 214.
carriers, killed by hawks, 362.
young of, 445.

Pistil, rudimentary, 451.

Plants:
poisonous, not affecting certain coloured animals, 12.
selection applied to, 32.
gradual improvement of, 37.
not improved in barbarous countries, 38.
destroyed by insects, 67.
in midst of range, have to struggle with other plants, 77.
nectar of, 92.
fleshy, on sea-shores, 132.
fresh-water, distribution of, 386.
low in scale, widely distributed, 406.

Plumage, laws of change in sexes of birds, 89.

Plums in the United States, 85.

Pointer dog:
origin of, 35.
habits of, 213.

Poison not affecting certain coloured animals, 12.

Poison, similar effect of, on animals and plants, 484.

Pollen of fir-trees, 203,

Poole, Col., on striped hemionus, 163.

Potamogeton, 387.

Prestwich, Mr., on English and French eocene formations, 328.

Primrose, 49.
sterility of, 247.

Primula, varieties of, 49.

Proteolepas, 148.

Proteus, 139.

Psychology, future progress of, 488.

Quagga, striped, 165.

Quince, grafts of, 261.

Rabbit, disposition of young, 215.

Races, domestic, characters of, 16.

Race-horses:
Arab, 35.
English, 356.

Ramond on plants of Pyrenees, 368.

Ramsay, Professor:
on thickness of the British formations, 284.
on faults, 285.

Ratio of increase, 63.

Rats:
supplanting each other, 76.
acclimatisation of, 141.
blind in cave, 137.

Rattle-snake, 201.

Reason and instinct, 208.

Recapitulation, general, 459.

Reciprocity of crosses, 258.

Record, geological, imperfect, 279.

Rengger on flies destroying cattle, 72.

Reproduction, rate of, 63.

Resemblance to parents in mongrels and hybrids, 273.

Reversion:
law of inheritance, 14.
in pigeons to blue colour, 160.

Rhododendron, sterility of, 251.

Richard, Professor, on Aspicarpa, 417.

Richardson, Sir J.:
on structure of squirrels, 180.
on fishes of the southern hemisphere, 376.

Robinia, grafts of, 262.

Rodents, blind, 137.

Rudimentary organs, 450.

Rudiments important for classification, 416.

Sageret on grafts, 262.

Salmons, males fighting, and hooked jaws of, 88.

Salt-water, how far injurious to seeds, 358.

Saurophagus sulphuratus, 183.

Schiödte on blind insects, 138.

Schlegel on snakes, 144.

Sea-water, how far injurious to seeds, 358.

Sebright, Sir J.:
on crossed animals, 20.
on selection of pigeons, 31.

Sedgwick, Professor, on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302.

Seedlings destroyed by insects, 67.

Seeds:
nutriment in, 77.
winged, 146.
power of resisting salt-water, 358.
in crops and intestines of birds, 361.
eaten by fish, 362, 387.
in mud, 386.
hooked, on islands, 392.

Selection:
of domestic products, 29.
principle not of recent origin, 33.
unconscious, 34.
natural, 80.
sexual, 87.
natural, circumstances favourable to, 101.

Sexes, relations of, 87.

Sexual:
characters variable, 156.
selection, 87.

Sheep:
Merino, their selection, 31.
two sub-breeds unintentionally produced, 36.
mountain, varieties of, 76.

Shells:
colours of, 132.
littoral, seldom embedded, 288.
fresh-water, dispersal of, 385.
of Madeira, 391.
land, distribution of, 397.

Silene, fertility of crosses, 257.

Silliman, Professor, on blind rat, 137.

Skulls of young mammals, 197, 437.

Slave-making instinct, 219.

Smith, Col. Hamilton, on striped horses, 164.

Smith, Mr. Fred.:
on slave-making ants, 219.
on neuter ants, 239.

Smith, Mr., of Jordan Hill, on the degradation of coast-rocks, 283.

Snap-dragon, 161.

Somerville, Lord, on selection of sheep, 31.

Sorbus, grafts of, 262.

Spaniel, King Charles’s breed, 35.

Species:
polymorphic, 46.
common, variable, 53.
in large genera variable, 54.
groups of, suddenly appearing, 302, 306.
beneath Silurian formations, 306.
successively appearing, 312.
changing simultaneously throughout the world, 322.

Spencer, Lord, on increase in size of cattle, 35.

Sphex, parasitic, 218.

Spiders, development of, 442.

Spitz-dog crossed with fox, 268.

Sports in plants, 9.

Sprengel, C. C.:
on crossing, 98.
on ray-florets, 145.

Squirrels, gradations in structure, 180.

Staffordshire, heath, changes in, 72.

Stag-beetles, fighting, 88.

Sterility:
from changed conditions of life, 9.
of hybrids, 246.
laws of, 254.
causes of, 263.
from unfavourable conditions, 265.
of certain varieties, 269.

St. Helena, productions of, 389.

St. Hilaire, Aug., on classification, 418.

St. John, Mr., on habits of cats, 91.

Sting of bee, 202.

Stocks, aboriginal, of domestic animals, 18,

Strata, thickness of, in Britain, 284.

Stripes on horses, 163.

Structure, degrees of utility of, 201.

Struggle for existence, 60.

Succession, geological, 312.

Succession of types in same areas, 338.

Swallow, one species supplanting another, 76.

Swim-bladder, 190.

System, natural, 413.

Tail:
of giraffe, 195.
of aquatic animals, 196.
rudimentary, 454.

Tarsi deficient, 135.

Tausch on umbelliferous flowers, 146.

Teeth and hair:
correlated, 144.
embryonic, traces of, in birds, 451.
rudimentary, in embryonic calf, 450, 480.

Tegetmeier, Mr., on cells of bees, 228, 233.

Temminck on distribution aiding classification, 419.

Thouin on grafts, 262.

Thrush:
aquatic species of, 185.
mocking, of the Galapagos, 402.
young of, spotted, 439.
nest of, 243.

Thuret, >M., on crossed fuci, 258.

Thwaites, Mr., on acclimatisation, 140.

Tierra del Fuego:
dogs of, 215.
plants of, 374, 378.

Timber-drift, 360.

Time, lapse of, 282.

Titmouse, 183.

Toads on islands, 393.

Tobacco, crossed varieties of, 271.

Tomes, Mr., on the distribution of bats, 394.

Transitions in varieties rare, 172.

Trees:
on islands belong to peculiar orders, 392.
with separated sexes, 99.

Trifolium pratense, 73, 94.

Trifolium incarnatum, 94.

Trigonia, 321.

Trilobites, 306.
sudden extinction of, 321.

Troglodytes, 243.

Tucutucu, blind, 137.

Tumbler pigeons:
habits of, hereditary, 214.
young of, 446.

Turkey-cock, brush of hair on breast, 90.

Turkey:
naked skin on head, 197.
young, wild, 216.

Turnip and cabbage, analogous variations of, 159.

Type, unity of, 206.

Types, succession of, in same areas, 338.

Udders:
enlarged by use, 11.
rudimentary, 451.

Ulex, young leaves of, 439.

Umbelliferæ, outer and inner florets of, 144.

Unity of type, 206.

Use:
effects of, under domestication, 11.
effects of, in a state of nature, 134.

Utility, how far important in the construction of each part, 199.

Valenciennes on fresh-water fish, 384.

Variability of mongrels and hybrids, 274.

Variation:
under domestication, 7.
caused by reproductive system being affected by conditions of life, 8.
under nature, 44.
laws of, 131.

Variations:
appear at corresponding ages, 14, 86.
analogous in distinct species, 159.

Varieties:
natural, 44.
struggle between, 75.
domestic, extinction of, 111.
transitional, rarity of, 172.
when crossed, fertile, 267.
when crossed, sterile, 269.
classification of, 423.

Verbascum:
sterility of, 251.
varieties of, crossed, 270.

Verneuil, M. de, on the succession of species, 325.

Viola tricolor, 73.

Volcanic islands, denudation of, 284.

Vulture, naked skin on head, 197.

Wading-birds, 386.

Wallace, Mr.:
on origin of species, 2.
on law of geographical distribution, 355.
on the Malay Archipelago, 395.

Wasp, sting of, 202.

Water, fresh, productions of, 383.

Water-hen, 185.

Waterhouse, Mr.:
on Australian marsupials, 116.
on greatly developed parts being variable, 150.
on the cells of bees, 225.
on general affinities, 429.

Water-ouzel, 185.

Watson, Mr. H. C.:
on range of varieties of British plants, 58.
on acclimatisation, 140.
on flora of Azores, 363.
on Alpine plants, 367, 376.
on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.

Weald, denudation of, 285.

Web of feet in water-birds, 185.

West Indian islands, mammals of, 395.

Westwood:
on species in large genera being closely allied to others, 57.
on the tarsi of Engidæ, 157.
on the antennæ of hymenopterous insects, 416.

Whales, fossil, 303.

Wheat, varieties of, 113.

White Mountains, flora of, 365.

Wings, reduction of size, 134.

Wings:
of insects homologous with branchiæ, 191.
rudimentary, in insects, 451.

Wolf:
crossed with dog, 214.
of Falkland Isles, 393.

Wollaston, Mr.:
on varieties of insects, 48.
on fossil varieties of land-shells in Madeira, 52.
on colours of insects on sea-shore, 132.
on wingless beetles, 135.
on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.
on insular insects, 389.
on land-shells of Madeira, naturalised, 402.

Wolves, varieties of, 90.

Woodpecker:
habits of, 184.
green colour of, 197.

Woodward, Mr.:
on the duration of specific forms, 293.
on the continuous succession of genera, 316.
on the succession of types, 339.

World, species changing simultaneously throughout, 322.

Wrens, nest of, 243.

Youatt, Mr.:
on selection, 31.
on sub-breeds of sheep, 36.
on rudimentary horns in young cattle, 454.

Zebra, stripes on, 163.

Aberrant groups, 429.

Abyssinia, plants of, 375.

Acclimatization, 139.

Affinities:
of extinct species, 329.
of organic beings, 411.

Agassiz:
on Amblyopsis, 139.
on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.
on embryological succession, 338.
on the glacial period, 366.
on embryological characteristics, 418.
on the embryos of vertebrates, 439.
on the parallelism of embryological development and geological succession, 449.

Algae of New Zealand, 376.

Alligators, males, fighting, 88.

Amblyopsis, blind fish, 139.

America, North:
productions related to those of Europe, 371.
boulders and glaciers of, 373.
South, no modern formations on the west coast, 290.

Ammonites, sudden extinction of, 321.

Anagallis, sterility of, 247.

Analogy of variations, 159.

Ancylus, 386.

Animals:
not domesticated due to being variable, 17.
domestic, descended from several stocks, 19.
acclimatization of, 141.
from Australia, 116.
with thicker fur in cold climates, 133.
blind, in caves, 137.
extinct, from Australia, 339.

Anomma, 240.

Antarctic islands, ancient flora of, 399.

Antirrhinum, 161.

Ants:
attending aphids, 211.
slave-making instinct, 219.

Ants, neuter, structure of, 236.

Aphids attended by ants, 211.

Aphis, development of, 442.

Apteryx, 182.

Arab horses, 35.

Aralo-Caspian Sea, 339.

Archiac, M. de, on the succession of species, 325.

Artichoke, Jerusalem, 142.

Ascension, plants of, 389.

Asclepias, pollen of, 193.

Asparagus, 359.

Aspicarpa, 417.

Asses, striped, 163.

Ateuchus, 135.

Audubon:
on habits of frigate birds, 185.
on variation in bird nests, 212.
on herons eating seeds, 387.

Australia:
animals of, 116.
dogs of, 215.
extinct animals of, 339.
European plants in, 375.

Azara on flies destroying cattle, 72.

Azores, flora of, 363.

Babington, Mr., on British plants, 48.

Balancement of growth, 147.

Bamboo with hooks, 197.

Barberry, flowers of, 98.

Barrande, M.:
on Silurian colonies, 313.
on the succession of species, 325.
on the parallelism of Paleozoic formations, 328.
on affinities of ancient species, 330.

Barriers, importance of, 347.

Batrachians on islands, 393.

Bats:
how structure acquired, 180.
distribution of, 394.

Bear, catching water insects, 184.

Bee:
sting of, 202.
queen, killing rivals, 202.

Bees fertilizing flowers, 73.

Bees:
hive, not sucking the red clover, 95.
cell-making instinct, 224.
humble, cells of, 225.
parasitic, 218.

Beetles:
wingless, in Madeira, 135.
with deficient tarsi, 135.

Bentham, Mr.:
on British plants, 48.
on classification, 419.

Berkeley, Mr., on seeds in salt water, 358.

Bermuda, birds of, 391.

Birds:
acquiring fear, 212.
annually crossing the Atlantic, 364.
color of, on continents, 132.
fossil, in caves of Brazil, 339.
from Madeira, Bermuda, and Galapagos, 390.
song of males, 89.
transporting seeds, 361.
waders, 386.
wingless, 134, 182.
with traces of embryonic teeth, 451.

Bizcacha, 349.
affinities of, 429.

Bladder for swimming in fish, 190.

Blindness of cave animals, 137,

Blyth, Mr.:
on distinctness of Indian cattle, 18.
on striped Hemionus, 163.
on crossed geese, 253.

Boar, shoulder-pad of, 88.

Borrow, Mr., on the Spanish pointer, 35.

Bory St. Vincent on Batrachians, 393.

Bosquet, M., on fossil Chthamalus, 304.

Boulders, erratic, on the Azores, 363.

Branchiæ, 190.

Brent, Mr.:
on house tumbler, 214.
on hawks killing pigeons, 362.

Brewer, Dr., on American cuckoo, 217.

Britain, mammals of, 395.

Bronn on duration of specific forms, 293.

Brown, Robert, on classification, 414.

Buckman on variation in plants, 10.

Buzareingues on sterility of varieties, 270.

Cabbage, varieties of, crossed, 99.

Calceolaria, 251.

Canary birds, sterility of hybrids, 252.

Cape Verde Islands, 398.

Cape of Good Hope, plants of, 110, 375.

Carrier pigeons killed by hawks, 362.

Cassini on flowers of compositæ, 145.

Catasetum, 424.

Cats:
with blue eyes, deaf, 12.
variation in habits of, 91.
curling tail when about to spring, 201.

Cattle:
destroying fir trees, 71.
destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.
breeds of, locally extinct, 111.
fertility of Indian and European breeds, 254.

Cave, inhabitants of, blind, 137.

Centers of creation, 352.

Cephalopodæ, development of, 442.

Cervulus, 253.

Cetacea, teeth and hair, 144.

Ceylon, plants of, 375.

Chalk formation, 322.

Characteristics:
divergence of, 111.
sexual, variable, 156.
adaptive or analogical, 427.

Charlock, 76.

Checks:
to increase, 67.
mutual, 71.

Chickens, instinctive tameness of, 216.

Chthamalinæ, 288.

Chthamalus, cretaceous species of, 304.

Circumstances favorable:
to selection of domestic products, 40.
to natural selection, 101.

Cirripedes:
capable of crossing, 101.
carapace aborted, 148.
their ovigerous frena, 192.
fossil, 304.
larvae of, 440.

Classification, 413.

Clift, Mr., on the succession of types, 339.

Climate:
effects of, in checking the increase of beings, 68.
adaptation of, to organisms, 139.

Cobites, intestine of, 190.

Cockroach, 76.

Collections, paleontological, poor, 287.

Color:
influenced by climate, 132.
in relation to attacks by flies, 198.

Columba livia, parent of domestic pigeons, 23.

Colymbetes, 386.

Compensation of growth, 147.

Compositæ:
outer and inner florets of, 144.
male flowers of, 451.

Conclusion, general, 480.

Conditions, slight changes in, favorable to fertility, 267.

Coot, 185.

Coral:
islands, seeds drifted to, 360.
reefs, indicating movements of the earth, 309.

Corn-crake, 185.

Correlation:
of growth in domestic productions, 11.
of growth, 143, 198.

Cowslip, 49.

Creation, single centers of, 352.

Crinum, 250.

Crosses, reciprocal, 258.

Crossing:
of domestic animals, importance in altering breeds, 20.
advantages of, 96.
unfavorable to selection, 102.

Crustacea of New Zealand, 376.

Crustacean, blind, 137.

Cryptocerus, 238.

Ctenomys, blind, 137.

Cuckoo, instinct of, 216.

Currants, grafts of, 262.

Currents of the sea, rate of, 359.

Cuvier:
on conditions of existence, 206.
on fossil monkeys, 303.

Cuvier, Fred., on instinct, 208.

Dana, Professor:
on blind cave animals, 139.
on relations of crustaceans of Japan, 372.
on crustaceans of New Zealand, 376.

De Candolle:
on the struggle for existence, 62.
on umbelliferæ, 146.
on general affinities, 430.

De Candolle, Alph.:
on low plants, widely dispersed, 406.
on widely-ranging plants being variable, 53.
on naturalization, 115.
on winged seeds, 146.
on Alpine species suddenly becoming rare, 175.
on distribution of plants with large seeds, 360.
on vegetation of Australia, 379.
on fresh-water plants, 386.
on insular plants, 389.

Degradation of coast rocks, 282.

Denudation:
rate of, 285.
of oldest rocks, 308.

Development of ancient forms, 336.

Devonian system, 334.

Dianthus, fertility of crosses, 256.

Dirt on feet of birds, 362.

Dispersal:
means of, 356.
during the glacial period, 365.

Distribution:
geographical, 346.
means of, 356.

Disuse, effects of, under nature, 134.

Divergence of character, 111.

Division, physiological, of labor, 115.

Dogs:
hairless, with imperfect teeth, 12.
descended from several wild stocks, 18.
domestic instincts of, 213.
inherited civilization of, 215.
fertility of breeds together, 254.
of crosses, 268.
proportions of, when young, 444.

Domestication, variation under, 7.

Downing, Mr., on fruit trees in America, 85.

Downs, North and South, 285.

Dragon flies, intestines of, 190.

Drift timber, 360.

Driver ant, 240.

Drones killed by other bees, 202.

Duck:
domestic, wings of, reduced, 11.
logger-headed, 182.

Duckweed, 385.

Dugong, affinities of, 414.

Dung beetles with deficient tarsi, 135.

Dyticus, 386.

Earl, Mr. W., on the Malay Archipelago, 395.

Ears:
drooping, in domestic animals, 11.
rudimentary, 454.

Earth, seeds in roots of trees, 361.

Eciton, 238.

Economy of organization, 147.

Edentata:
teeth and hair, 144.
fossil species of, 339.

Edwards, Milne:
on physiological divisions of labor, 115.
on gradations of structure, 194.
on embryological characteristics, 418.

Eggs, young birds escaping from, 87.

Electric organs, 192.

Elephant:
rate of increase, 64.
of glacial period, 141.

Embryology, 439.

Existence:
struggle for, 60.
conditions of, 206.

Extinction:
as it relates to natural selection, 109.
of domestic varieties, 111.
317.

Eye:
structure of, 187.
correction for aberration, 202.

Eyes reduced in moles, 137.

Fabre, M., on parasitic sphex, 218.

Falconer, Dr.:
on naturalization of plants in India, 65.
on fossil crocodile, 313.
on elephants and mastodons, 334.
and Cautley on mammals of sub-Himalayan beds, 340.

Falkland Island, wolf of, 393.

Faults, 285.

Faunas, marine, 348.

Fear, instinctive, in birds, 212.

Feet of birds, young molluscs adhering to, 385.

Fertility:
of hybrids, 249.
from slight changes in conditions, 267.
of crossed varieties, 267.

Fir trees:
destroyed by cattle, 71.
pollen of, 203.

Fish:
flying, 182.
teleostean, sudden appearance of, 305.
eating seeds, 362, 387.
fresh-water, distribution of, 384.

Fishes:
ganoid, now confined to fresh water, 107.
electric organs of, 192.
ganoid, living in fresh water, 321.
of southern hemisphere, 376.

Flight, powers of, how acquired, 182.

Flowers:
structure of, in relation to crossing, 97.
of compositæ and umbelliferæ, 144.

Forbes, E.:
on colors of shells, 132.
on abrupt range of shells in depth, 175.
on poorness of paleontological collections, 287.
on continuous succession of genera, 316.
on continental extensions, 357.
on distribution during the glacial period, 366
on parallelism in time and space, 409.

Forests, changes in, in America, 74.

Formation, Devonian, 334.

Formations:
thickness of, in Britain, 284.
intermittent, 290.

Formica rufescens, 219.

Formica sanguinea, 219.

Formica flava, neuter of, 239.

Frena, ovigerous, of cirripedes, 192.

Fresh-water productions, dispersal of, 383.

Fries on species in large genera being closely allied to other species, 57.

Frigate bird, 185.

Frogs on islands, 393.

Fruit trees:
gradual improvement of, 37.
in the United States, 85.
varieties of, acclimatized in the United States, 142.

Fucus, crossed, 258.

Fur, thicker in cold climates, 133.

Furze, 439.

Galapagos Archipelago:
birds of, 390.
productions of, 398, 400.

Galeopithecus, 181.

Game, increase of, checked by vermin, 68.

Gärtner:
on sterility of hybrids, 247, 255.
on reciprocal crosses, 258.
on crossed maize and verbascum, 270.
on comparison of hybrids and mongrels, 272.

Geese:
fertility when crossed, 253.
upland, 185.

Genealogy important in classification, 425.

Geoffrey St. Hilaire:
on balancement, 147.
on homologous organs, 434.

Geoffrey St. Hilaire, Isidore:
on variability of repeated parts, 149.
on correlation in monstrosities, 11.
on correlation, 144.
on variable parts being often monstrous, 155.

Geographical distribution, 346.

Geography, ancient, 487.

Geology:
future progress of, 487.
imperfection of the record, 279.

Giraffe, tail of, 195.

Glacial period, 365.

Gmelin on distribution, 365.

Gnathodon, fossil, 368.

Godwin-Austen, Mr., on the Malay Archipelago, 299.

Goethe on compensation of growth, 147.

Gooseberry, grafts of, 262.

Gould, Dr. A., on land shells, 397.

Gould, Mr.:
on colors of birds, 132.
on birds of the Galapagos, 398.
on distribution of genera of birds, 404.

Gourds, crossed, 270.

Grafts, capacity of, 261.

Grasses, varieties of, 113.

Gray, Dr. Asa:
on trees of the United States, 100.
on naturalized plants in the United States, 115.
on rarity of intermediate varieties, 176.
on Alpine plants, 365.

Gray, Dr. J. E., on striped mule, 165.

Grebe, 185.

Groups, aberrant, 429.

Grouse:
colors of, 84.
red, a doubtful species, 49.

Growth:
compensation of, 147.
correlation of, in domestic products, 11.
correlation of, 143.

Habit:
effect of, under domestication, 11.
effect of, under nature, 134.
diversified, of the same species, 183.

Hair and teeth, correlated, 144.

Harcourt, Mr. E. V., on the birds of Madeira, 391.

Hartung, M., on boulders in the Azores, 363.

Hazelnuts, 359.

Hearne on habits of bears, 184.

Heath, changes in vegetation, 72,

Heer, O., on plants of Madeira, 107.

Helix pomatia, 397.

Helosciadium, 359.

Hemionus, striped, 163.

Herbert, W.:
on the struggle for existence, 62.
on sterility of hybrids, 249.

Hermaphrodites crossing, 96.

Heron eating seed, 387.

Heron, Sir R., on peacocks, 89.

Heusinger on white animals not poisoned by certain plants, 12.

Hewitt, Mr., on sterility of first crosses, 264.

Himalaya:
glaciers of, 373.
plants of, 375.

Hippeastrum, 250.

Holly trees, sexes of, 93.

Hollyhock, varieties of, crossed, 271.

Hooker, Dr., on trees of New Zealand, 100.

Hooker, Dr.:
on acclimatization of Himalayan trees, 140.
on flowers of umbelliferæ, 145.
on glaciers of Himalaya, 373.
on algae of New Zealand, 376.
on vegetation at the base of the Himalaya, 378.
on plants of Tierra del Fuego, 374, 378.
on Australian plants, 375, 399.
on relations of flora of South America, 379.
on flora of the Antarctic lands, 381, 399.
on the plants of the Galapagos, 391, 398.

Hooks:
on bamboos, 197.
to seeds on islands, 392.

Horner, Mr., on the antiquity of Egyptians, 18.

Horns, rudimentary, 454.

Horse, fossil, in La Plata, 318.

Horses:
destroyed by flies in La Plata, 72.
striped, 163.
proportions of, when young, 445.

Horticulturists, selection applied by, 32.

Huber on cells of bees, 230.

Huber, P.:
on reason blended with instinct, 208.
on habitual nature of instincts, 208.
on slave-making ants, 219.
on Melipona domestica, 225.

Humble bees, cells of, 225.

Hunter, J., on secondary sexual characters, 150.

Hutton, Captain, on crossed geese, 253.

Huxley, Professor:
on structure of hermaphrodites, 101.
on embryological succession, 338.
on homologous organs, 438.
on the development of aphis, 442.

Hybrids and mongrels compared, 272.

Hybridism, 245.

Hydra, structure of, 190.

Ibla, 148.

Icebergs transporting seeds, 363.

Increase, rate of, 63.

Individuals:
numbers favorable to selection, 102.
many, whether simultaneously created, 356.

Inheritance:
laws of, 12.
at corresponding ages, 14, 86.

Insects:
color of, suited for habitats, 84.
seaside, colors of, 132.
blind, in caves, 138.
luminous, 193.
neuter, 236.

Instinct, 207.

Instincts, domestic, 213.

Intercrossing, advantages of, 96.

Islands, oceanic, 388.

Isolation favorable to selection, 104.

Japan, productions of, 372.

Java, plants of, 375.

Jones, Mr. J. M., on the birds of Bermuda, 391.

Jussieu on classification, 417.

Kentucky, caves of, 137.

Kerguelen land, flora of, 381, 399.

Kidney bean, acclimatization of, 142.

Kidneys of birds, 144.

Kirby on tarsi deficient in beetles, 135.

Knight, Andrew, on the cause of variation, 7.

Kölreuter:
on the barberry, 98.
on sterility of hybrids, 247.
on reciprocal crosses, 258.
on crossed varieties of Nicotiana, 271.
on crossing male and hermaphrodite flowers, 451.

Lamarck on adaptive characters, 427.

Land shells:
distribution of, 397.
of Madeira, naturalized, 402.

Languages, classification of, 422.

Lapse, great, of time, 282.

Larvae, 440.

Laurel, nectar secreted by the leaves, 92.

Laws of variation, 131.

Leech, varieties of, 76.

Leguminosæ, nectar secreted by glands, 92.

Lepidosiren, 107, 330.

Life, struggle for, 60.

Lingula, Silurian, 306.

Linnæus, aphorism of, 413.

Lion:
mane of, 88.
young of, striped, 439.

Lobelia fulgens, 73, 98.

Lobelia, sterility of crosses, 250.

Loess of the Rhine, 384.

Lowness of structure connected with variability, 149.

Lowness, related to wide distribution, 406.

Lubbock, Mr., on the nerves of coccus, 46.

Lucas, Dr. P.:
on inheritance, 12.
on resemblance of child to parent, 275.

Lund and Clausen on fossils of Brazil, 339.

Lyell, Sir C.:
on the struggle for existence, 62.
on modern changes of the earth, 95.
on measure of denudation, 283.
on a carboniferous land shell, 289.
on fossil whales, 303.
on strata beneath Silurian system, 307.
on the imperfection of the geological record, 310.
on the appearance of species, 312.
on Barrande’s colonies, 313.
on tertiary formations of Europe and North America, 323.
on the parallelism of tertiary formations, 328.
on transport of seeds by icebergs, 363.
on great alternations of climate, 382.
on the distribution of fresh-water shells, 385.
on land shells of Madeira, 402.

Lyell and Dawson on fossilized trees in Nova Scotia, 296.

Macleay on analogical characters, 427.

Madeira:
plants of, 107.
beetles of, wingless, 135.
fossil land shells of, 339.
birds of, 390.

Magpie tame in Norway, 212.

Maize, crossed, 270.

Malay Archipelago:
compared with Europe, 299.
mammals of, 395.

Malpighiaceæ, 417.

Mammæ, rudimentary, 451.

Mammals:
fossil, in secondary formation, 303.
insular, 393.

Man, origin of races of, 199.

Manatee, rudimentary nails of, 454.

Marsupials:
of Australia, 116.
fossil species of, 339.

Martens, M., experiment on seeds, 360.

Martin, Mr. W. C., on striped mules, 165.

Matteuchi on the electric organs of rays, 193.

Matthiola, reciprocal crosses of, 258.

Means of dispersal, 356.

Melipona domestica, 225.

Metamorphism of oldest rocks, 308.

Mice:
destroying bees, 74.
acclimatization of, 141.

Migration, bears on first appearance of fossils, 296.

Miller, Professor, on the cells of bees, 226.

Mirabilis, crosses of, 258.

Missel-thrush, 76.

Misseltoe, complex relations of, 3.

Mississippi, rate of deposition at mouth, 284.

Mocking-thrush of the Galapagos, 402.

Modification of species, how far applicable, 483.

Moles, blind, 137.

Mongrels:
fertility and sterility of, 267.
and hybrids compared, 272.

Monkeys, fossil, 303,

Monocanthus, 424.

Mons, Van, on the origin of fruit trees, 29, 39.

Moquin-Tandon on seaside plants, 132.

Morphology, 434.

Mozart, musical powers of, 209.

Mud, seeds in, 386.

Mules, striped, 165.

Müller, Dr. F., on Alpine Australian plants, 375.

Murchison, Sir R.:
on the formations of Russia, 289.
on azoic formations, 307.
on extinction, 317.

Mustela vison, 179.

Myanthus, 424.

Myrmecocystus, 238.

Myrmica, eyes of, 240.

Nails, rudimentary, 453.

Natural history:
future progress of, 484.
selection, 80.
system, 413.

Naturalization:
of forms distinct from the indigenous species, 115.
in New Zealand, 201.

Nautilus, Silurian, 306.

Nectar of plants, 92.

Nectaries, how formed, 92.

Nelumbium luteum, 387.

Nests, variation in, 212.

Neuter insects, 236.

Newman, Mr., on humble bees, 74.

New Zealand:
productions of, not perfect, 201.
naturalized products of, 337.
fossil birds of, 339.
glacial action in, 373.
crustaceans of, 376.
algae of, 376.
number of plants of, 389.
flora of, 399.

Nicotiana:
crossed varieties of, 271.
certain species very sterile, 257.

Noble, Mr., on fertility of Rhododendron, 251.

Nodules, phosphatic, in azoic rocks, 307.

Oak, varieties of, 50.

Onites apelles, 135.

Orchis, pollen of, 193.

Organs:
of extreme perfection, 186.
electric, of fishes, 192.
of little importance, 194.
homologous, 434.
rudiments of, 450.

Ornithorhynchus, 107, 416.

Ostrich:
not capable of flight, 134.
habit of laying eggs together, 218.
American, two species of, 349.

Otter, habits of, how acquired, 179.

Ouzel, water, 185.

Owen, Professor:
on birds not flying, 134.
on vegetative repetition, 149.
on variable length of arms in orangutan, 150.
on the swim bladder of fishes, 191.
on electric organs, 192.
on fossil horse of La Plata, 319.
on relations of ruminants and pachyderms, 329.
on fossil birds of New Zealand, 339.
on succession of types, 339.
on affinities of the dugong, 414.
on homologous organs, 435.
on the metamorphosis of cephalopods and spiders, 442.

Pacific Ocean, faunas of, 348.

Paley on no organ formed to give pain, 201.

Pallas on the fertility of the wild stocks of domestic animals, 253.

Paraguay, cattle destroyed by flies, 72.

Parasites, 217.

Partridge, dirt on feet, 362.

Parts:
greatly developed, variable, 150.
degrees of utility of, 201.

Parus major, 183.

Passiflora, 251.

Peaches in the United States, 85.

Pear, grafts of, 261.

Pelargonium:
flowers of, 145.
sterility of, 251.

Pelvis of women, 144.

Peloria, 145.

Period, glacial, 365.

Petrels, habits of, 184.

Phasianus, fertility of hybrids, 253.

Pheasant, young, wild, 216.

Philippi on tertiary species in Sicily, 312.

Pictet, Professor:
on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302, 305.
on rate of organic change, 313.
on continuous succession of genera, 316.
on close alliance of fossils in consecutive formations, 335.
on embryological succession, 338.

Pierce, Mr., on varieties of wolves, 91.

Pigeons:
with feathered feet and skin between toes, 12.
breeds described, and origin of, 20.
breeds of, how produced, 39, 42.
tumbler, not being able to get out of egg, 87.
reverting to blue color, 160.
instinct of tumbling, 214.
carriers, killed by hawks, 362.
young of, 445.

Pistil, rudimentary, 451.

Plants:
poisonous, not affecting certain colored animals, 12.
selection applied to, 32.
gradual improvement of, 37.
not improved in barbarous countries, 38.
destroyed by insects, 67.
amidst range, have to struggle with other plants, 77.
nectar of, 92.
fleshy, on seashores, 132.
fresh-water, distribution of, 386.
low in scale, widely distributed, 406.

Plumage, laws of change in sexes of birds, 89.

Plums in the United States, 85.

Pointer dog:
origin of, 35.
habits of, 213.

Poison not affecting certain colored animals, 12.

Poison, similar effect of, on animals and plants, 484.

Pollen of fir trees, 203,

Poole, Col., on striped hemionus, 163.

Potamogeton, 387.

Prestwich, Mr., on English and French eocene formations, 328.

Primrose, 49.
sterility of, 247.

Primula, varieties of, 49.

Proteolepas, 148.

Proteus, 139.

Psychology, future progress of, 488.

Quagga, striped, 165.

Quince, grafts of, 261.

Rabbit, disposition of young, 215.

Races, domestic, characters of, 16.

Racehorses:
Arab, 35.
English, 356.

Ramond on plants of Pyrenees, 368.

Ramsay, Professor:
on thickness of the British formations, 284.
on faults, 285.

Ratio of increase, 63.

Rats:
supplanting each other, 76.
acclimatization of, 141.
blind in caves, 137.

Rattle-snake, 201.

Reason and instinct, 208.

Recapitulation, general, 459.

Reciprocity of crosses, 258.

Record, geological, imperfect, 279.

Rengger on flies destroying cattle, 72.

Reproduction, rate of, 63.

Resemblance to parents in mongrels and hybrids, 273.

Reversion:
law of inheritance, 14.
in pigeons to blue color, 160.

Rhododendron, sterility of, 251.

Richard, Professor, on Aspicarpa, 417.

Richardson, Sir J.:
on structure of squirrels, 180.
on fishes of the southern hemisphere, 376.

Robinia, grafts of, 262.

Rodents, blind, 137.

Rudimentary organs, 450.

Rudiments important for classification, 416.

Sageret on grafts, 262.

Salmons, males fighting, and hooked jaws of, 88.

Salt water, how far injurious to seeds, 358.

Saurophagus sulphuratus, 183.

Schiödte on blind insects, 138.

Schlegel on snakes, 144.

Sea water, how far injurious to seeds, 358.

Sebright, Sir J.:
on crossed animals, 20.
on selection of pigeons, 31.

Sedgwick, Professor, on groups of species suddenly appearing, 302.

Seedlings destroyed by insects, 67.

Seeds:
nutriment in, 77.
winged, 146.
power of resisting salt water, 358.
in crops and intestines of birds, 361.
eaten by fish, 362, 387.
in mud, 386.
hooked, on islands, 392.

Selection:
of domestic products, 29.
principle not of recent origin, 33.
unconscious, 34.
natural, 80.
sexual, 87.
natural, circumstances favorable to, 101.

Sexes, relations of, 87.

Sexual:
characters variable, 156.
selection, 87.

Sheep:
Merino, their selection, 31.
two sub-breeds unintentionally produced, 36.
mountain, varieties of, 76.

Shells:
colors of, 132.
littoral, seldom embedded, 288.
fresh-water, dispersal of, 385.
of Madeira, 391.
land, distribution of, 397.

Silene, fertility of crosses, 257.

Silliman, Professor, on blind rat, 137.

Skulls of young mammals, 197, 437.

Slave-making instinct, 219.

Smith, Col. Hamilton, on striped horses, 164.

Smith, Mr. Fred.:
on slave-making ants, 219.
on neuter ants, 239.

Smith, Mr., of Jordan Hill, on the degradation of coast rocks, 283.

Snapdragon, 161.

Somerville, Lord, on selection of sheep, 31.

Sorbus, grafts of, 262.

Spaniel, King Charles’s breed, 35.

Species:
polymorphic, 46.
common, variable, 53.
in large genera variable, 54.
groups of, suddenly appearing, 302, 306.
beneath Silurian formations, 306.
successively appearing, 312.
changing simultaneously throughout the world, 322.

Spencer, Lord, on increase in size of cattle, 35.

Sphex, parasitic, 218.

Spiders, development of, 442.

Spitz dog crossed with fox, 268.

Sports in plants, 9.

Sprengel, C. C.:
on crossing, 98.
on ray florets, 145.

Squirrels, gradations in structure, 180.

Staffordshire, heath, changes in, 72.

Stag beetles, fighting, 88.

Sterility:
from changed conditions of life, 9.
of hybrids, 246.
laws of, 254.
causes of, 263.
from unfavorable conditions, 265.
of certain varieties, 269.

St. Helena, productions of, 389.

St. Hilaire, Aug., on classification, 418.

St. John, Mr., on habits of cats, 91.

Sting of bee, 202.

Stocks, aboriginal, of domestic animals, 18,

Strata, thickness of, in Britain, 284.

Stripes on horses, 163.

Structure, degrees of utility of, 201.

Struggle for existence, 60.

Succession, geological, 312.

Succession of types in same areas, 338.

Swallow, one species supplanting another, 76.

Swim bladder, 190.

System, natural, 413.

Tail:
of giraffe, 195.
of aquatic animals, 196.
rudimentary, 454.

Tarsi deficient, 135.

Tausch on umbelliferous flowers, 146.

Teeth and hair:
correlated, 144.
embryonic, traces of, in birds, 451.
rudimentary, in embryonic calf, 450, 480.

Tegetmeier, Mr., on cells of bees, 228, 233.

Temminck on distribution aiding classification, 419.

Thouin on grafts, 262.

Thrush:
aquatic species of, 185.
mocking, of the Galap


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!